****************************************************************** * NOTE!! THERE ARE VARIOUS WEB SITES (I.E. WWW.HADITHONLINE.COM) * * THAT CAN BE USED TO VALIDATE THE AUTHENTICITY OF EACH HADITHS * * GENERATED OR VIEWED IN THIS SOFTWARE. PLEASE REFER TO THEM IF * * YOU HAVE ANY QUESTIONS OR DOUBTS. - Islamasoft Solutions. (UK) * ****************************************************************** Islamasoft Solutions. (www.islamasoft.co.uk) The Hadith Software : Shahi Muslim. Muslim Book 1. Faith. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0001. ------------------------------ Chapter : Not known. It is narrated on the authority of Yahya b. Ya'mur that the first man who discussed about Qadr(Divine Decree) in Basra was Ma'bad al-Juhani. I along with Humaid b. 'Abdur-Rahman Himyari set out for pilgrimage or for 'Umrah and said: Should it so happen that we come into contact with one of the Companions of the Messenger of Allah (peace be upon him) we shall ask him a bout what is talked about Taqdir (Division Decree). Accidentally we came across Abdullah Ibn Umar Ibn al-Khattab, while he was entering the mosque. My companion and I surrounded him. One of us (stood) on his right and the other stood on his left. I expected that my companion would authorize me to speak. I therefore said: Abu Abdur Rahman! there have appeared some people in our land who recite the Holy Qur'an and pursue knowledge. And then after talking about their affairs, added: They (such people) claim that there is no such thing as Divine Decree and events are not predestined. He (Abdullah Ibn Umar) said: When you happen to meet such people tell them that I have nothing to do with them and they have nothing to do with me. And verily they are in no way responsible for my (belief). Abdullah Ibn Umar swore by Him (the Lord) (and said): If any one of them (who does not believe in the Divine Decree) had with him gold equal to the bulk of (the mountain) Uhud and then, it (in the way of Allah), Allah would not accept it unless he affirmed his faith in Divine Decree. He further said: My father, Umar Ibn al-Khattab, told me: One day we were sitting in the company of Allah's Apostle (peace be upon him) when there appeared before us a man dressed in pure white clothes, his hair extraordinarily black. There were no signs of travel on him. None amongst us recognized him. At last he sat with the Apostle (peace be upon him) He knelt before him placed his palms on his thighs and said: Muhammad, inform me about al-Islam. The Messenger of Allah (peace be upon him) said: Al-Islam implies that you testify that there is no god but Allah and that Muhammad is the messenger of Allah, and you establish prayer, pay Zakat, observe the fast of Ramadan, and perform pilgrimage to the (House) if you are solvent enough (to bear the expense of) the journey. He (the inquirer) said: You have told the truth. He (Umar Ibn al-Khattab) said: It amazed us that he would put the question and then he would himself verify the truth. He (the inquirer) said: Inform me about Iman (faith). He (the Holy Prophet) replied: That you affirm your faith in Allah, in His angels, in His Muslim Books, in His Apostles, in the Day of Judgment, and you affirm your faith in the Divine Decree about good and evil. He (the inquirer) said: You have told the truth. He (the inquirer) again said: Inform me about al-Ihsan (performance of good deeds). He (the Holy Prophet) said: That you worship Allah as if you are seeing Him, for though you don't see Him, He, verily, sees you. He (the enquirer) again said: Inform me about the hour (of the Doom). He (the Holy Prophet) remarked: One who is asked knows no more than the one who is inquiring (about it). He (the inquirer) said: Tell me some of its indications. He (the Holy Prophet) said: That the slave-girl will give birth to her mistress and master, that you will find barefooted, destitute goat-herds vying with one another in the construction of magnificent buildings. He (the narrator, Umar Ibn al-Khattab) said: Then he (the inquirer) went on his way but I stayed with him (the Holy Prophet) for a long while. He then, said to me: Umar, do you know who this inquirer was? I replied: Allah and His Apostle knows best. He (the Holy Prophet) remarked: He was Gabriel (the angel). He came to you in order to instruct you in matters of religion. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0002. ------------------------------ Chapter : Not known. It is narrated on the authority of Yahya b. Ya'mur that when Ma'bad discussed the problem pertaining to Divine Decree, we refuted that. He (the narrator) said: I and Humaid b. Abdur-Rahman Himyari argued. And they carried on the conversation about the purport of the hadith related by Kahmas and its chain of transmission too, and there is some variation of words. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0003. ------------------------------ Chapter : Not known. It is narrated on the authority of Yahya b. Ya'mur and Humaid b. 'Abdur-Rahman that they said: We met Abdullah b. 'Umar and we discussed about the Divine Decree, and what they talked about it and he narrated the hadith that has been transmitted by 'Umar (may Allah be pleased with him) from the Apostle (may peace be upon him). There is a slight variation in that. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0004. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is Iman and what are its characteristics. Abu Huraira reported: One day the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) appeared before the public that a man came to him and said: Prophet of Allah, (tell me) what is Iman. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) replied: That you affirm your faith in Allah, His angels, His Muslim Books, His meeting, His Messengers and that you affirm your faith in the Resurrection hereafter. He (again) said: Messenger of Allah, (tell me) what does al-Islam signify. He (the Holy Prophet) replied: Al-Islam signifies that you worship Allah and do not associate anything with Him and you establish obligatory prayer and you pay the obligatory poor-rate (Zakat) and you observe the fast of Ramadan. He (the inquirer) again said: Messenger of Allah, what does Al-Ihsan imply? He (the Holy Prophet) replied: That you worship Allah as if you are seeing Him, and in case you fail to see Him, then observe prayer (with this idea in your mind) that (at least) He is seeing you. He (the inquirer) again said: Messenger of Allah, when would there be the hour (of Doom)? He (the Holy Prophet) replied: The one who is asked about it is no better informed than the inquirer. I, however, narrate some of its signs (and these are): when the slave-girl will give birth to he master, when the naked, barefooted would become the chiefs of the people - these are some of the signs of (Doom). (Moreover) when the shepherds of the black (camels) would exult themselves in buildings, this is one of the signs of (Doom). (Doom) is one of the five (happenings wrapped in the unseen) which no one knows but Allah. Then he (the Messenger of Allah) recited (the verse): "Verily Allah! with Him alone is the knowledge of the hour and He it is Who sends (down the rain) and knows that which is in the wombs and no person knows whatsoever he shall earn tomorrow, and a person knows not in whatsoever land he shall die. Verily Allah is Knowing, Aware. He (the narrator, Abu Huraira) said: Then the person turned back and went away. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Bring that man back to me. They (the Companions of the Holy Prophet present there) went to bring him back, but they saw nothing there. Upon this the Messenger of Allah remarked: he was Gabriel, who came to teach the people their religion. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0005. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is Iman and what are its characteristics. This hadith is narrated to us on the authority of Muhammad b. 'Abdullah b. Numair, on the authority of Muhammad b. Bishr, on the authority of Abd Hayyan al-Taymi with the exception that in this narration (instead of the words (Iza Waladat al'amah rabbaha), the words are (Iza Waladat al'amah Ba'laha), i.e, when slave-girl gives birth to her master. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0006. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is Iman and what are its characteristics. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Ask me (about matters pertaining to religion), but they (the Companions of the Holy Prophet) were too much overawed out of profound respect for him to ask him (anything). In the meanwhile a man came there, and sat near his knees and said: Messenger of Allah, what al-Islam is?-to which he (the Holy Prophet)replied: You must not associate anything with Allah, and establish prayer, pay the poor-rate (Zakat) and observe (the fasts) of Ramadan. He said: You (have) told the truth. He (again) said: Messenger of Allah, what al-Iman (the faith) is? He (the Holy Prophet) said: That you affirm your faith in Allah, His angels, His Muslim Books, His meeting, His Apostles, and that you believe in Resurrection and that you believe in Qadr (Divine Decree) in all its entirety, He (the inquirer) said: You (have) told the truth. He (again) said: Messenger of Allah, what al-Ihsan is? Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) said: (Al-Ihsan implies) that you fear Allah as if you are seeing Him, and though you see Him not, verily He is seeing you. He (the inquirer) said: You(have) told the truth. He (the inquirer) said: When there would be the hour (of Doom)? (Upon this) he (the Holy Prophet said: The one who is being asked about it is no better informed than the inquirer himself. I, however; narrate some of its signs (and these are):when you see a slave(woman)giving birth to her master - that is one of the signs of (Doom); when you see barefooted, naked, deaf and dumb (ignorant and foolish persons) as the rulers of the earth - that is one of the signs of the Doom. And when you see the shepherds of black camels exult in buildings - that is one of the signs of Doom. The (Doom) is one of the five things (wrapped) in the unseen. No one knows them except Allah. Then(the Holy Prophet) recited (the following verse): "Verily Allah ! with Him alone is the knowledge of the hour and He it is Who sends down the rain and knows that which is in the wombs and no person knows whatsoever he shall earn on morrow and a person knows not in whatsoever land he shall die. Verily Allah is Knowing, Aware. He (the narrator, Abu Huraira) said: Then the person stood up an (made his way). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Bring him back to me. He was searched for, but they (the Companions of the Holy Prophet) could not find him. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) thereupon said: He was Gabriel and he wanted to teach you (things pertaining to religion) when you did not ask (them yourselves). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0007. ------------------------------ Chapter : On Prayer (Salat) which is one of the Pillars of Iman. It is reported on the authority of Talha b. 'Ubaidullah that a person with dishevelled hair, one of the people of Nejd, came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). We heard the humming of his voice but could not fully discern what he had been saying, till he came nigh to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). It was then (disclosed to us) that he was asking questions pertaining to Islam. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Five prayers during the day and the night. (Upon this he said: Am I obliged to say any other (prayer) besides these? He (the Holy Prophet,) said: No, but whatever you observe voluntarily, out of your own free will, and the fasts of Ramadan. The inquirer said: Am I obliged to do anything else besides this? He (the Holy Prophet) said: No, but whatever you do out of your own free will. And the Messenger of Allah told him about the Zakat (poor-rate). The inquirer said: Am I obliged to pay anything else besides this? He (the Holy Prophet) said: No, but whatever you pay voluntarily out of your own free will. The man turned back and was saying: I would neither make any addition to this, nor will decrease anything out of it. The Prophet remarked: He is successful, if he is true to what he affirms. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0008. ------------------------------ Chapter : On Prayer (Salat) which is one of the Pillars of Iman. Another hadith, the like of which has been narrated by Malik (b. Anas) (and mentioned above) is also reported by Talha b. 'Ubaidullah, with the only variation that the Holy Prophet remarked: By his father, he shall succeed if he were true (to what he professed), or: By his father, he would enter heaven if he were true (to what he professed). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0009. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to Faith In Allah. It is reported on the authority of Anas b. Malik that he said: We were forbidden that we should ask anything (without the genuine need) from the Holy Prophet. It, therefore, pleased us that an intelligent person from the dwellers of the desert should come and asked him (the Holy Prophet) and we should listen to it. A man from the dwellers of the desert came (to the Holy Prophet) and said: Muhammad, your messenger came to us and told us your assertion that verily Allah had sent you (as a prophet). He (the Holy Prophet) remarked: He told the truth. He (the bedouin) said: Who created the heaven? He (the Holy Prophet) replied: Allah. He (the bedouin again) said: Who created the earth? He (the Holy Prophet) replied: Allah. He (the bedouin again) said: Who raised these mountains and who created in them whatever is created there? He (the Holy Prophet) replied: Allah. Upon this he (the bedouin) remarked: By Him Who created the heaven and created the earth and raised mountains thereupon, has Allah (in fact) sent you? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Yes. He (the bedouin) said: Your messenger also told us that five prayers (had been made) obligatory for us during the day and the night. He (the Holy Prophet) remarked: He told you the truth. He (the bedouin) said: By Him Who sent you, is it Allah Who ordered you about this (i.e. prayers)? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Yes. He (the bedouin) said: Your messenger told us that Zakat had been made obligatory in our riches. He (the Holy Prophet) said, He has told the truth. He (the bedouin) said: By Him Who sent you (as a prophet), is it Allah Who ordered you about it (Zakat)? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Yes. He (the bedouin) said: Your messenger told us that it had been made obligatory for us to fast every year during the month of Ramadan. He (the Holy Prophet) said: He has told the truth. He (the bedouin) said: By Him Who sent you (as a prophet), is it Allah Who ordered you about it (the fasts of Ramadan)? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Yes. He (the bedouin) said: Your messenger also told us that pilgrimage (Hajj) to the House (of Ka'bah) had been made obligatory for him who is able to undertake the journey to it. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Yes. The narrator said that he (the bedouin) set off (at the conclusion of this answer, but at the time of his departure) remarked: By Him Who sent you with the Truth, I would neither make any addition to them nor would I diminish anything out of them. Upon this the Holy Prophet remarked: If he were true (to what he said) he must enter Paradise. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0010. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to Faith In Allah. It is narrated on the authority of Thabit that Anas said: We were forbidden in the Holy Qur'an that we should ask about anything from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and then Anas reported the hadith in similar words. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0011. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning Iman by which a person would enter Heaven. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Ayyub Ansari that once during the journey of the Holy Prophet (may peace of Allah be upon him) a bedouin appeared before him and caught hold of the nose-string of his she-camel and then said, Messenger of Allah (or Muhammad), inform me about that which takes me near to Paradise and draws me away from the Fire (of Hell). He (the narrator) said: The Prophet (may peace be upon him) stopped for a while and cast a glance upon his companions and then said: He was afforded a good opportunity (or he had been guided well). He (the Holy Prophet) addressing the bedouin said: (Repeat) whatever you have uttered. He (the bedouin) repeated that. Upon this the Apostle (may peace be upon him) remarked: The deed which can draw you near to Paradise and take you away from Hell is, that you worship Allah and associate none with Him, and you establish prayer and pay Zakat, and do good to your kin. After having uttered these words, the Holy Prophet asked the bedouin to release the nose-string of his she-camel. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0012. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning Iman by which a person would enter Heaven. This hadith is transmitted by Muhammad b. Hatim on the authority of Abu Ayyub Ansari. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0013. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning Iman by which a person would enter Heaven. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Ayyub that a man came to the Prophet (may peace be upon him) and said: Direct me to a deed which draws me near to Paradise and takes me away from the Fire (of Hell). Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) said: You worship Allah and never associate anything with Him, establish prayer, and pay Zakat, and do good to your kin. When he turned his back, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) remarked: If he adheres to what he has been ordered to do, he would enter Paradise. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0014. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning Iman by which a person would enter Heaven. It is reported on the authority of Abu Huraira that a bedouin came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: Messenger of Allah, direct me to a deed by which I may be entitled to enter Paradise. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) remarked: You worship Allah and never associate anything with Him, establish the obligatory prayer, and pay the Zakat which is incumbent upon you, and observe the fast of Ramadan. He (the bedouin) said: By Him in Whose hand is my life, I will never add anything to it, nor will I diminish anything from it. When he (the bedouin) turned his back, the Prophet (may peace be upon him) said: He who is pleased to see a man from the dwellers of Paradise should catch a glimpse of him. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0015. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning Iman by which a person would enter Heaven. It is narrated on the authority of Jabir that Nu'man b. Qaufal came to the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) and said: Would I enter Paradise if I say the obligatory prayers and deny myself that which is forbidden and treat that as lawful what has been made permissible (by the Shari'ah)? The Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) replied in the affirmative. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0016. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning Iman by which a person would enter Heaven. A similar hadith is narrated on Jabir's authority in which the following words are added: I will do nothing more. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0017. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning Iman by which a person would enter Heaven. It is narrated on the authority of Jabir that a man once said to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him): Shall I enter Paradise in case I say the obligatory prayers, observe the (fasts) of Ramadan and treat that as lawful which has been made permissible (by the Shari'ah) and deny myself that what is forbidden, and make no addition to it? He (the Holy Prophet) replied in the affirmative. He (the inquirer) said: By Allah, I would add nothing to it. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0018. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the saying of the Apostle; Islam is founded on five (fundamentals). It is narrated on the authority of ('Abdullah) son of Umar (may Allah be pleased with them) that the Holy Prophet (may peace of Allah be upon him) said: (The superstructure of) al-Islam is raised on five (pillars), i.e. the oneness of Allah, the establishment of prayer, payment of Zakat, the, fast of Ramadan, Pilgrimage (to Mecca). A person said (to 'Abdullah b. Umar the narrator): Which of the two precedes the other-Pilgrimage or the fasts of Rarnadan? Upon this he (the narrator) replied: No (it is not the Pilgrimage first) but the fasts of Ramadan precede the Pilgrimage. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0019. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the saying of the Apostle; Islam is founded on five (fundamentals). It is narrated on the authority of ('Abdullah) son of 'Umar, that the Holy Prophet (may peace of Allah be upon him) said: (The superstructure of) al-Islam is raised on five (pillars), i.e. Allah (alone) should be worshipped, and (all other gods) beside Him should be (categorically) denied. Establishment of prayer, the payment of Zakat, Pilgrimage to the House, and the fast of Ramadan (are the other obligatory acts besides the belief in the oneness of Allah and denial of all other gods). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0020. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the saying of the Apostle; Islam is founded on five (fundamentals). It is narrated on the authority of ('Abdullah) son of 'Umar that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: (The superstructure of) al-Islam is raised on five (pillars), testifying (the fact) that there is no god but Allah, that Muhammad is His bondsman and messenger, and the establishment of prayer, payment of Zakat, Pilgrimage to the House (Ka'ba) and the fast of Ramadan. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0021. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the saying of the Apostle; Islam is founded on five (fundamentals). It is reported on the authority of Ta'us that a man said to 'Abdullah son of 'Umar (may Allah be pleased with him). Why don't you carry out a military expedition? Upon which he replied: I heard the messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) say: Verily, al-Islam is founded on five (pillars): testifying the fact that there is no god but Allah, establishment of prayer, payment of Zakat, fast of Ramadan and Pilgrimage to the House. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0022. ------------------------------ Chapter : Relating to the Command for Belief In Allah and His Prophet and the laws of Islam and inviting (people to) them. It is narrated on the authority of Ibn 'Abbas that a delegation of Abdul Qais came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: Messenger of Allah, verily ours is a tribe of Rabi'a and there stand between you and us the unbelievers of Mudar and we find no freedom to come to you except in the sacred month. Direct us to an act which we should ourselves perform and invite those who live beside us. Upon this the Prophet remarked: I command you to do four things and prohibit you against four acts. (The four deeds which you are commanded to do are): Faith in Allah, and then he explained it for them and said: Testifying the fact. that there is no god but Allah, that Muhammad is the messenger of Allah, performance of prayer, payment of Zakat, that you pay Khums (one-fifth) of the booty fallen to your lot, and I prohibit you to use round gourd, wine jars, wooden pots or skins for wine. Khalaf b. Hisham has made this addition in his narration: Testifying the fact that there is no god but Allah, and then he with his finger pointed out the oneness of the Lord. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0023. ------------------------------ Chapter : Relating to the Command for Belief In Allah and His Prophet and the laws of Islam and inviting (people to) them. Abu Jamra reported: I was an interpreter between Ibn Abbas and the people, that a woman happened to come there and asked about nabidh or the pitcher of wine. He replied: A delegation of the people of 'Abdul-Qais came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). He (the Holy Prophet) asked the delegation or the people (of the delegation about their identity). They replied that they belonged to the tribe of Rabi'a. He (the Holy Prophet) welcomed the people or the delegation which were neither humiliated nor put to shame. They (the members of the delegation) said: Messenger of Allah, we come to you from a far-off distance and there lives between you and us a tribe of the unbelievers of Mudar and, therefore, it is not possible for us to come to you except in the sacred months. Thus direct us to a clear command, about which we should inform people beside us and by which we may enter heaven. He (the Holy Prophet) replied: I command you to do four deeds and forbid you to do four (acts), and added: I direct you to affirm belief in Allah alone, and then asked them: Do you know what belief in Allah really implies? They said: Allah and His Messenger know best. The Prophet said: It implies testimony to the fact that there is no god but Allah, and that Muhammad is the messenger of Allah, establishment of prayer, payment of Zakat, fast of Ramadan, that you pay one-fifth of the booty (fallen to your lot) and I forbid you to use gourd, wine jar, or a receptacle for wine. Shu'ba sometimes narrated the word naqir (wooden pot) and sometimes narrated it as muqayyar. The Holy Prophet also said: Keep it in your mind and inform those who have been left behind. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0024. ------------------------------ Chapter : Relating to the Command for Belief In Allah and His Prophet and the laws of Islam and inviting (people to) them. There is another hadith narrated on the authority of Ibn Abbas (the contents of which are similar to the one) narrated by Shu'ba in which the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) said: I forbid you to prepare nabidh in a gourd, hollowed block of wood, a varnished jar or receptacle. Ibn Mu'adh made this addition on the authority of his father that the Messenger of Allah said to Ashajj, of the tribe of 'Abdul-Qais: You possess two qualities which are liked by Allah: insight and deliberateness. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0025. ------------------------------ Chapter : Relating to the Command for Belief In Allah and His Prophet and the laws of Islam and inviting (people to) them. It is reported on the authority of Qatada that one among the delegates of the 'Abdul-Qais tribe narrated this tradition to him. Sa'id said that Qatada had mentioned the name of Abu Nadra on the authority of Abu Sa'id Khudri who narrated this tradition: That people from the- tribe of 'Abdul-Qais came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: Messenger of Allah, we belong to the tribe of Rabi'a and there live between you and us the unbelievers of the Mudar tribe and we find it impossible to come to you except in the sacred months; direct us to a deed which we must communicate to those who have been left behind us and by doing which we may enter heaven. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I enjoin upon you four (things) and forbid you to do four (things): worship Allah and associate none with Him, establish prayer, pay Zakat, and observe the fast of Ramadan, and pay the fifth part out of the booty. And I prohibit you from four (things): dry gourds, green-coloured jars, hollowed stumps of palm-trees, and receptacles. They (the members of the delegation) said: Do you know what al-naqir is? He replied: Yes, it is a stump which you hollow out and in which you throw small dates. Sa'id said: He (the Holy Prophet) used the word tamar (dates). (The Holy Prophet then added): Then you sprinkle water over it and when its ebullition subsides, you drink it (and you are so intoxicated) that one amongst you, or one amongst them (the other members of your tribe, who were not present there) strikes his cousin with the sword. He (the narrator) said: There was a man amongst us who had sustained injury on this very account due to (intoxication), and he told that he tried to conceal it out of shame from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). I, however, inquired from the Messenger of Allah (it we discard those utensils which you have forbidden us to use), then what type of vessels should be used for drink? He (the Holy Prophet) replied: In the water-skin the mouths of which are tied (with a string). They (again) said: Prophet of Allah, our land abounds in rats and water-skins cannot remain preserved. The holy Prophet of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: (Drink in water-skins) even if these are nibbled by rats. And then (addressing) al-Ashajj of 'Abdul-Qais he said: Verily, you possess two such qualities which Allah loves: insight and deliberateness. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0026. ------------------------------ Chapter : Relating to the Command for Belief In Allah and His Prophet and the laws of Islam and inviting (people to) them. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Said al-Khudri that when the delegation of the tribe of Abdul-Qais came to the Prophet of Allah (may peace be upon him), (its members) said: Apostle of Allah, may God enable us to lay down our lives for you, which beverage is good for us? He (the Prophet) said: (Not to speak of beverages, I would lay stress) that you should not drink in the wine jars. They said: Apostle of Allah, may God enable us to lay down our lives for you, do you know what Al-Naqir is? He (the Holy Prophet) replied: Yes, it is a stump which you hollow out in the middle, and added: Do not use gourd or receptacle (for drink). Use water-skin the mouth of which is tied with a thong (for this purpose). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0027. ------------------------------ Chapter : Calling people to testifications and the Canons of Islam. It is reported on the authority of Ibn 'Abbas that Mu'adh said: The Messenger of Allah sent me (as a governor of Yemen) and (at the time of departure) instructed me thus: You will soon find yourself in a community one among the people of the Muslim Book, so first call them to testify that there is no god but Allah, that I (Muhammad) am the messenger of Allah, and if they accept this, then tell them Allah has enjoined upon them five prayers during the day and the night and if they accept it, then tell them that Allah has made Zakat obligatory for them that it should be collected from the rich and distributed among the poor, and if they agree to it don't pick up (as a share of Zakat) the best of their wealth's. Beware of the supplication of the oppressed for there is no barrier between him and Allah. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0028. ------------------------------ Chapter : Calling people to testifications and the Canons of Islam. It is narrated on the authority of Ibn 'Abbas that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sent Mu'adh towards Yemen (as governor) he said to him: Verily you would reach a community of the people of the Muslim Book, the very first thing to which you should call them is the worship of Allah, may His Glory be Magnificent, and when they become fully aware of Allah, instruct them that He has enjoined five prayers on them during the day and the night, and when the begin observing it, then instruct them that verily Allah has made Zakat obligatory for them which would be collected from the wealthy amongst them and distributed to their needy ones, and when they submit to it, then collect it from them and avoid (the temptation) of selecting the best (items) of their riches. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0029. ------------------------------ Chapter : Command for fighting against the people so long as they do not profess that there is no god but Allah and Muhammad is His Messenger. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) breathed his last and Abu Bakr was appointed as his successor (Caliph), those amongst the Arabs who wanted to become apostates became apostates. 'Umar b. Khattab said to Abu Bakr: Why would you fight against the people, when the Messenger of Allah declared: I have been directed to fight against people so long as they do not say: There is no god but Allah, and he who professed it was granted full protection of his property and life on my behalf except for a right? His (other) affairs rest with Allah. Upon this Abu Bakr said: By Allah, I would definitely fight against him who severed prayer from Zakat, for it is the obligation upon the rich. By Allah, I would fight against them even to secure the cord (used for hobbling the feet of a camel) which they used to give to the Messenger of Allah (as Zakat) but now they have withheld it. Umar b. Khattab remarked: By Allah, I found nothing but the fact that Allah had opened the heart of Abu Bakr for (perceiving the justification of) fighting (against those who refused to pay Zakat) and I fully recognized that the (stand of Abu Bakr) was right. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0030. ------------------------------ Chapter : Command for fighting against the people so long as they do not profess that there is no god but Allah and Muhammad is His Messenger. It is reported on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah said: I have been commanded to fight against people so long as they do not declare that there is no god but Allah, and he who professed it was guaranteed the protection of his property and life on my behalf except for the right affairs rest with Allah. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0031. ------------------------------ Chapter : Command for fighting against the people so long as they do not profess that there is no god but Allah and Muhammad is His Messenger. It is reported on the authority of Abu Huraira that he heard the Messenger of Allah say: I have been commanded to fight against people, till they testify to the fact that there is no god but Allah, and believe in me (that) I am the messenger (from the Lord) and in all that I have brought. And when they do it, their blood and riches are guaranteed protection on my behalf except where it is justified by law, and their affairs rest with Allah. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0032. ------------------------------ Chapter : Command for fighting against the people so long as they do not profess that there is no god but Allah and Muhammad is His Messenger. It is narrated on the authority of Jabir that the Messenger of Allah said: I have been commanded that I should fight against people till they declare that there is no god but Allah, and when they profess it that there is no god but Allah, their blood and riches are guaranteed protection on my behalf except where it is justified by law, and their affairs rest with Allah, and then he (the Holy Prophet) recited (this verse of the Holy Qur'an): "Thou art not over them a warden" (lxxxviii, 22). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0033. ------------------------------ Chapter : Command for fighting against the people so long as they do not profess that there is no god but Allah and Muhammad is His Messenger. It has been narrated on the authority of Abdullah b. 'Umar that the Messenger of Allah said: I have been commanded to fight against people till they testify that there is no god but Allah, that Muhammad is the messenger of Allah, and they establish prayer, and pay Zakat and if they do it, their blood and property are guaranteed protection on my behalf except when justified by law, and their affairs rest with Allah. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0034. ------------------------------ Chapter : Command for fighting against the people so long as they do not profess that there is no god but Allah and Muhammad is His Messenger. It Is narrated on the authority of Abu Malik: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) say: He who professed that there is no god but Allah and made a denial of everything which the people worship beside Allah, his property and blood became inviolable, an their affairs rest with Allah. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0035. ------------------------------ Chapter : Command for fighting against the people so long as they do not profess that there is no god but Allah and Muhammad is His Messenger. Abu Malik narrated on the authority of his father that he heard the Apostle (may peace be upon him) say: He who held belief in the unity of Allah, and then narrated what has been stated above. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0036. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who accepts Islam at the death-bed, before the actual agony of death, is a Muslim. It is forbidden to supplicate blessings for the polytheists. He who dies as a polytheist is one among the denizens of Hell and no means would be effective enough to take him out of that. It is reported by Sa'id b. Musayyib who narrated it on the authority of his father (Musayyib b. Hazm) that when Abu Talib was about to die, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to him and found with him Abu Jahl ('Amr b. Hisham) and 'Abdullah b. Abi Umayya Ibn al-Mughirah. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: My uncle, you just make a profession that there is no god but Allah, and I will bear testimony before Allah (of your being a believer), Abu Jahl and 'Abdullah b. Abi Umayya addressing him said: Abu Talib, would you abandon the religion of 'Abdul-Muttalib? The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) constantly requested him (to accept his offer),and(on the other hand) was repeated the same statement (of Abu Jahl and 'Abdullah b. Abi Umayya) till Abu Talib gave his final decision and be stuck to the religion of 'Abdul-Muttalib and refused to profess that there is no god but Allah. Upon this the Messenger of Allah remarked: By Allah, I will persistently beg pardon for you till I am forbidden to do so (by God), It was then that Allah, the Magnificent and the Glorious, revealed this verse: "It is not meet for the Prophet and for those who believe that they should beg pardon for the polytheists, even though they were their kith and kin, after it had been made known to them that they were the denizens of Hell" (ix. 113) And it was said to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him): "Verily thou canst not guide to the right path whom thou lovest. And it is Allah Who guideth whom He will, and He knoweth best who are the guided"(xxviii, 56). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0037. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who accepts Islam at the death-bed, before the actual agony of death, is a Muslim. It is forbidden to supplicate blessings for the polytheists. He who dies as a polytheist is one among the denizens of Hell and no means would be effective enough to take him out of that. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah said to his uncle at the time of his death: Make a profession of it that there is no god but Allah and I will bear testimony (of your being a Muslim) on the Day of judgment. But he (Abu Talib) refused to do so. Then Allah revealed this verse: "Verily thou canst not guide to the right path whom thou lovest. And it is Allah Who guideth whom He will and He knoweth best who are the guided" (xxviii. 56). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0038. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who accepts Islam at the death-bed, before the actual agony of death, is a Muslim. It is forbidden to supplicate blessings for the polytheists. He who dies as a polytheist is one among the denizens of Hell and no means would be effective enough to take him out of that. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah said to his uncle (at the time of his death):Make a profession of it that there is no god but Allah and I will bear testimony (of your being a Muslim) on the Day of judgment. He (Abu Talib) said: Were it not the fear of the Quraysh blaming me (and) saying that it was the fear of (approaching death) that induced me to do so, I would have certainly delighted your eyes. It was then that Allah revealed: "Verily thou canst not guide to the right path whom thou lovest. And it is Allah Who guideth whom He will and He knoweth best who are the guided" (xxviii-56). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0039. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who meets his Lord with implicit faith would enter Heaven and fire would be forbidden to harm him. It is narrated on the authority of 'Uthman that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who died knowing (fully well) that there is no god but Allah entered Paradise. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0040. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who meets his Lord with implicit faith would enter Heaven and fire would be forbidden to harm him. It is narrated on the authority of Humran that he heard Uthman saying this: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) uttering these words (as stated above). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0041. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who meets his Lord with implicit faith would enter Heaven and fire would be forbidden to harm him. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira: We were accompanying the Apostle (may peace be upon him) in a march (towards Tabuk). He (the narrator) said: The provisions with the people were almost depleted. He (the narrator) said: (And the situation became so critical) that they (the men of the army) decided to slaughter some of their camels. He (the narrator) said: Upon this Umar said: Messenger of Allah, I wish that you should pool together what has been left out of the provisions with the people and then invoke (the blessings of) Allah upon it. He (the narrator) said: He (the Holy Prophet) did it accordingly. He (the narrator) said: The one who had wheat in his possession came there with wheat. He who had dates with him came there with dates. And Mujahid said: He who possessed stones of dates came there with stones. I (the narrator) said: What did they do with the date-stones. They said: They (the people) sucked them and then drank water over them. He (the narrator said): He (the Holy Prophet) invoked the blessings (of Allah) upon them (provisions). He (the narrator) said: (And there was such a miraculous increase in the stocks) that the people replenished their provisions fully. He (the narrator) said: At that time he (the Holy Prophet) said: I bear testimony to the fact that there is no god but Allah, and I am His messenger. The bondsman who would meet Allah without entertaining any doubt about these (two fundamentals) would enter heaven. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0042. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who meets his Lord with implicit faith would enter Heaven and fire would be forbidden to harm him. It is narrated either on the authority of Abu Huraira or that of Abu Sa'id Khudri. The narrator A'mash has narrated this hadith with a little bit of doubt (about the name of the very first narrator who was in direct contact with the Holy Prophet. He was either Abu Huraira or Abu Sa'id Khudri. Both are equally reliable transmitters of the traditions). He (the narrator) said: During the time of Tabuk expedition, the (provisions) ran short and the men (of the army) suffered starvation; they said: Messenger of Allah, would you permit us to slay our camels? We would eat them and use their fat. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Do as you please. He (the narrator) said: Then 'Umar came there and said: Messenger of Allah, if you do that (if you give your consent and the men begin to slay their camels), the riding animals would become short. But (I would suggest you to) summon them along with the provisions left with them Then invoke Allah's blessings on them (different items of the provisions) It is hoped Allah shall bless them. The Messenger of Allah replied in the affirmative, (the narrator) said: He called for a leather mat to be used as a table cloth and spread it out. Then he called people along with the remaining portions of their provisions. He (the narrator) said: Someone was coming with handful of mote, another was coming with a handful of dates, still another was coming with a portion of bread, till small quantities of these things were collected on the table cloth. He (the narrator said): Then the messenger of Allah invoked blessing (on them) and said: Fill your utensils with these provisions. He (the narrator) said: They filled their vessel to the brim with them, and no one amongst the army (which comprised of 30,000 persons) was left even with a single empty vessel. He (the narrator) aid: They ate to their fill, and there was still a surplus. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) remarked: I bear testimony that there is no god but Allah and I am the messenger of Allah. The man who meets his Lord without harbouring any doubt about these two (truths) would never be kept away from Paradise. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0043. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who meets his Lord with implicit faith would enter Heaven and fire would be forbidden to harm him. It is narrated on the authority of Ubadah b. Samit that the messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: He who said: "There is no god but Allah, He is One and there is no associate with Him, that Muhammad is his servant and His messenger, that Christ is servant and the son of His slave-girl and he (Christ) His word which He communicated to Mary and is His Spirit, that Paradise is a fact and Hell is a fact," Allah would make him (he who affirms these truths enter Paradise through any one of its eight doors which he would like. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0044. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who meets his Lord with implicit faith would enter Heaven and fire would be forbidden to harm him. It is narrated on the authority of Umar b. Hani with the same chain of transmitters with the exception of these words: Allah would make him (he who affirms these truths) enter Paradise through one of the eight doors which he would like. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0045. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who meets his Lord with implicit faith would enter Heaven and fire would be forbidden to harm him. It is narrated on the authority of Sunabihi that he went to Ubada b. Samit when he was about to die. I burst into tears. Upon this he said to me: Allow me some time (so that I may talk with you). Why do you weep? By Allah, if I am asked to bear witness, I would certainly testify for you (that you are a believer). Should I be asked to intercede, I would certainly intercede for you, and if I have the power, I would certainly do good to you, and then observed: By Allah, never did I hear anything from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) which could have been a source of benefit to you and then not conveyed it to you except this single hadith. That I intend to narrate to you today, since I am going to breathe my last. I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) say: He who testifies that there is no god but Allah and that Muhammad is the messenger of Allah, Allah would prohibit the fire of Hell for him. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0046. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who meets his Lord with implicit faith would enter Heaven and fire would be forbidden to harm him. It is narrated on the authority of Mu'adh b. Jabal: I was riding behind the Prophet (may peace be upon him) and there was nothing between him and me but the rear part of the saddle, when he said: Mu'adh b.Jabal: To which I replied: At your beck and call, and at your pleasure, Messenger of Allah ! He moved along for a few minutes, when again he said: Mu'adh b. Jabal: To which I replied: At your beck and call, and at your pleasure, Messenger of Allah ! He then again moved along for a few minutes and said: Mu'adh b. Jabal: To which I replied. At your beck and call, and at your pleasure. Messenger of Allah He,(the Holy Prophet) said: Do you know what right has Allah upon His servants? I said: Allah and His Messenger know best. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Verily the right of Allah over His servants is that they should worship Him, not associating anything with Him. He (the Holy Prophet) with Mu'adh behind him, moved along for a few minutes and said: Mu'adh b. Jabal: To which I replied: At your beck and call, and at your pleasure, Messenger of Allah ! He (the Holy Prophet) said: Do you know what rights have servants upon Allah in case they do it (i.e. they worship Allah without associating anything with Him)? I (Mu'adh b. Jabal) replied: Allah and His Messenger know best. (Upon this) he (the Holy Prophet) remarked: That He would not torment them (with the fire of Hell). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0047. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who meets his Lord with implicit faith would enter Heaven and fire would be forbidden to harm him. It is narrated on the authority of Mu'adh b. Jabal that he observed: I was riding behind the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on an ass known as 'Ufair. He (Mu'adh) observed: He (the Holy Prophet) said: Mu'adh, do you know what right has Allah over His bondsmen and what right have His bondsmen over Him? Mu'adh added: I replied: Allah and his Messenger know best. Upon this he(the Holy Prophet remarked: The right of Allah over His bondsmen is that they should worship Allah and should not associate anything with Him, and the right of His bondsmen over Allah, Glorious and Sublime, is that He does not punish him who associates not anything with Him. He (Mu'adh) added: I said to the Messenger of Allah: Should I then give the tidings to the people? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Do not tell them this good news, for they would trust in it alone. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0048. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who meets his Lord with implicit faith would enter Heaven and fire would be forbidden to harm him. It is narrated on the authority of Mu'adh b. Jabal that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Mu'adh, do you know the right of Allah over His bondsmen? He (Mu'adh) said: Allah and His Apostle know best. He (the Messenger of Allah) said: That Allah alone should be worshipped and nothing should be associated with Him. He (the Holy Prophet) said: What right have they (bondsmen) upon Him in case they do it? He (Mu'adh) said: Allah and His Apostle know best. He (the Holy Prophet) said: That He would not punish them. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0049. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who meets his Lord with implicit faith would enter Heaven and fire would be forbidden to harm him. It is narrated on the authority of Aswad b. Hilal that he heard Mu'adh say this: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) called, me and I replied to him. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Do you know the right of Allah upon the people? and then followed the hadith (mentioned above). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0050. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who meets his Lord with implicit faith would enter Heaven and fire would be forbidden to harm him. It is reported on the authority of Abu Huraira: We were sitting around the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him). Abu Bakr and Umar were also there among the audience. In the meanwhile the Messenger of Allah got up and left us, He delayed in coming back to us, which caused anxiety that he might be attacked by some enemy when we were not with him; so being alarmed we got up. I was the first to be alarmed. I, therefore, went out to look for the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) and came to a garden belonging to the Banu an-Najjar, a section of the Ansar went round it looking for a gate but failed to find one. Seeing a rabi' (i.e. streamlet) flowing into the garden from a well outside, drew myself together, like a fox, and slinked into (the place) where God's Messenger was. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Is it Abu Huraira? I (Abu Huraira) replied: Yes, Messenger of Allah. He (the Holy Prophet) said: What is the matter with you? replied: You were amongst us but got up and went away and delayed for a time, so fearing that you might be attacked by some enemy when we were not with you, we became alarmed. I was the first to be alarmed. So when I came to this garden, I drew myself together as a fox does, and these people are following me. He addressed me as Abu Huraira and gave me his sandals and said: Take away these sandals of mine, and when you meet anyone outside this garden who testifies that there is no god but Allah, being assured of it in his heart, gladden him by announcing that he shall go to Paradise. Now the first one I met was Umar. He asked: What are these sandals, Abu Huraira? I replied: These are the sandals of the Messenger of Allah with which he has sent me to gladden anyone I meet who testifies that there is no god but Allah, being assured of it in his heart, with the announcement that he would go to Paradise. Thereupon 'Umar struck me on the breast and I fell on my back. He then said: Go back, Abu Huraira, So I returned to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and was about to break into tears. 'Umar followed me closely and there he was behind me. The Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be on him) said: What is the matter with you, Abu Huraira? I said: I happened to meet 'Umar and conveyed to him the message with which you sent me. He struck me on my breast which made me fall down upon my back and ordered me to go back. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: What prompted you to do this, 'Umar? He said: Messenger of Allah, my mother and father be sacrificed to thee, did you send Abu Huraira with your sandals to gladden anyone he met and who testified that there is no god but Allah, and being assured of it in his heart, with the tidings that he would go to Paradise? He said: Yes. Umar said: Please do it not, for I am afraid that people will trust in it alone; let them go on doing (good) deeds. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Well, let them. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0051. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who meets his Lord with implicit faith would enter Heaven and fire would be forbidden to harm him. It is reported on the authority of Anas b. Malik that the Prophet of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) addressed Mu'adh b. Jabal as he was riding behind him to which he replied: At thy beck and call, and at thy pleasure, Messenger of Allah. He again called out: Mu'adh, to which he (again) replied: At thy beck and call, and at thy pleasure. He (the Holy Prophet) addressed him (again): Mu'adh, to which he replied: At thy beck and call, and at thy pleasure, Messenger of Allah. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) observed: If anyone testifies (sincerely from his heart) that there is no god but Allah, and that Muhammad is His bondsman and His messenger, Allah immuned him from Hell. He (Mu'adh) said: Messenger of Allah, should I not then inform people of it, so that they may be of good cheer? He replied: Then they would trust in it alone. Mu'adh told about it at the time of his death, to avoid sinning. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0052. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who meets his Lord with implicit faith would enter Heaven and fire would be forbidden to harm him. It is narrated on the authority of 'Itban b. Malik that he came to Medina and said: Something had gone wrong with my eyesight. I, therefore, sent (a message to the Holy Prophet): Verily it is my ardent desire that you should kindly grace my house with your presence and observe prayer there so, that I should make that corner a place of worship. He said: The Prophet (may peace be upon him) came there, and those amongst the Companions whom Allah willed also accompanied him. He entered (my place) and offered prayer at my residence and his Companions began to talk amongst themselves (and this conversation centred round hypocrites), and then the conspicuous one, Malik b. Dukhshum was made the target and they wished that he (the Holy Prophet) should curse him and he should die or he should meet some calamity. In the meanwhile the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) completed his prayer and said: Does Malik b. Dukhshum not testify the fact that there is no god but Allah and verily I am the messenger of Allah. They replied: He makes a profession of it (no doubt) but does not do it out of (sincere) heart. He (the Holy Prophet) said: He who testifies that there is no god but Allah and I am the messenger of Allah would not enter Hell or its (flames) would not consume him. Anas said: This hadith impressed me very much and I told my son to write it down. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0053. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who meets his Lord with implicit faith would enter Heaven and fire would be forbidden to harm him. It is narrated on the authority of Anas that 'Itban b. Malik told him that he became blind. He sent a message to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) that he should come and mark a place of worship for him. Thereupon came the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and his people and then there was a discussion among them about a man who was known as Malik b. Dukhshum, and subsequently the narrator described the hadith of Sulaiman b. Mughira as stated above. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0054. ------------------------------ Chapter : He relished the flavour of Iman who was pleased with Allah as his Lord. It is narrated on the authority of 'Abbas b. 'Abdul-Muttalib that he heard the Messenger of Allah saying: He relished the flavour of faith (Iman) who became the Muslim Book of faith pleased with Allah as Lord, with al-Islam as the code of life and with Muhammad as the Messenger (of Allah). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0055. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the branches of Iman. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Prophet (may peace be upon him) said: Iman has over seventy branches, and modesty is a branch of Iman. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0056. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the branches of Iman. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) said: Faith has over seventy branches or over sixty branches, the most excellent of which is the declaration that there is no god but Allah, and the humblest of which is the, removal of what is injurious from the path: and modesty is the branch of faith. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0057. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the branches of Iman. Salim reported on the authority of his father that the Prophet (may peace and blessings be upon him) heard a man instruction his brother about modesty. Upon this the Prophet remarked: Modesty is an ingredient of Iman (faith). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0058. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the branches of Iman. Zuhri has narrated this hadith with the addition of these words: He (the Holy Prophet) happened to pass by a mass of Ansar who was instructing his brother (about modesty). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0059. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the branches of Iman. It is narrated on the authority of 'Imran b. Husain that the Prophet (may peace and blessings be upon him) said: Modesty brings forth nothing but goodness. Bushair b. Ka'b said: It is recorded in the Muslim Books of wisdom, there lies sobriety in it and calmness of mind in it, Imran said: I am narrating to you the tradition of the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) and you talk of your Muslim Books. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0060. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the branches of Iman. It is narrated on the authority of Qatada. We were sitting with 'Imran b. Husain in a company and Bushair Ibn Ka'b was also amongst us. 'Imran narrated to us that on a certain occasion the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) said: Modesty is a virtue through and through, or said: Modesty is a goodness complete. Upon this Bushair Ibn Ka'b said: Verily we find in certain Muslim Books or Muslim Books of (wisdom) that it is God-inspired peace of mind or sobriety for the sake of Allah and there is also a weakness in it. Imran was so much enraged that his eyes became red and he said: I am narrating to you the hadith of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and you are contradicting it. He (the narrator) said: Imran reported the hadith, He (the narrator) said: Bushair repeated,(the same thing). Imran was enraged. He (the narrator) said: We asserted: Verily Bushair is one amongst us. Abu Nujaid ! There is nothing wrong, with him (Bushair). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0061. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the branches of Iman. Ishaq b. Ibrahim narrates this hadith of the Holy Prophet on the authority of Imran b. Husain, like the one narrated by Hammad b. Zaid. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0062. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the comprehensive attributes of Islam. It is narrated on the authority of Sufyan b. 'Abdulla al-Thaqafi that he said: I asked the Messenger of Allah to tell me about Islam a thing which might dispense with the necessity of my asking anybody after you. In the hadith of Abu Usama the (words) are: other than you. He (the Holy Prophet) remarked: Say I affirm my faith in Allah and then remain steadfast to it. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0063. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the eminence of Islam and of the affairs which are excellent. It is narrated on the authority of 'Abdullah b. 'Amr that a man asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) which of the merits (is superior) in Islam. He (the Holy Prophet) remarked: That you provide food and extend greetings to one whom you know or do not know. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0064. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the eminence of Islam and of the affairs which are excellent. 'Abdullah b. Amr b. al-As is reported to have said: Verily a person asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) who amongst the Muslims was better. Upon this (the Holy Prophet) remarked: From whose hand and tongue the Muslims are safe. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0065. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the eminence of Islam and of the affairs which are excellent. It is narrated on the authority of Jabir that he heard the (Holy Prophet) say: A Muslim is he from whose hand and tongue the Muslim's are safe. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0066. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the eminence of Islam and of the affairs which are excellent. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Musa Ash'ari: I asked the Messenger of Allah which (attribute) of Islam is more excellent. Upon this he remarked: One in which the Muslims are safe, protected from the tongue and hand of (other Muslims). Ibrahim b. Sa'id al-Jauhari has narrated this hadith with the same words in addition to these. The Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) was asked as to who amongst the Muslims is better, and the rest of the hadith was narrated like this. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0067. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the attributes by which one gets the relish of Iman. It is reported on the authority of Anas that the Prophet of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) said: There are three qualities for which anyone who is characterised by them will relish the sweetness of faith: he to whom Allah and His Messenger are dearer than all else; he who loves a man for Allah's sake alone; and he who has as great an abhorrence of returning to unbelief after Allah has rescued him from it as he has of being cast into Hell. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0068. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the attributes by which one gets the relish of Iman. It is reported on the authority of Anas that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: There are three qualities for which any one who is characterised by them will relish the savour of faith: that he loves man and he does not love him but for Allah's sake alone; he is to whom Allah and His Messenger are dearer than all else; he who prefers to be thrown into fire than to return to unbelief after Allah has rescued him out of it. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0069. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the attributes by which one gets the relish of Iman. A similar hadith has been reported on the authority of Anas (with another chain of transmitters) with the exception of these words: that he again becomes a Jew or a Christian. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0070. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is obligatory to love the Prophet more than the members of one's household: one's child, father or even the whole of humanity. It is reported on the authority of Anas that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: No bondsman believes, and, in the hadith narrated by Abdul Warith, no person believes, till I am dearer to him than the members of his household, his wealth and the whole of mankind. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0071. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is obligatory to love the Prophet more than the members of one's household: one's child, father or even the whole of humanity. It is reported on the authority of Anas b. Malik that the Messenger of Allah said: None of you is a believer till I am dearer to him than his child, his father and the whole of mankind. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0072. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the fact that it is one of the characteristics of Iman that one should like the same thing for one's brother-in-Islam as one likes for one's self. It is arrested on the authority of Anas b. Malik that the Prophet (may peace and blessings be upon him) observed: one amongst you believes (truly) till one likes for his brother or for his neighbour that which he loves for himself. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0073. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the fact that it is one of the characteristics of Iman that one should like the same thing for one's brother-in-Islam as one likes for one's self. It is narrated on the authority of Anas that the Prophet (may peace blessings be upon him) observed: By Him in whose Hand is my life, no, bondsman (truly) believes till he likes for his neighbour, or he (the Holy Prophet) said: for his brother, whatever he likes for himself. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0074. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the prohibition to harm neighbour. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessing be upon him) observed: He will not enter Paradise whose neighbour is not secure from his wrongful conduct. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0075. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning exhortation to accord honour and respect to the neighbour and the guest and obligation to observe silence except in goodness, and all these qualities come within the orbit of Iman. It is reported on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: He who believes in Allah and the Last Day should either utter good words or better keep silence; and he who believes in Allah and the Last Day should treat his neighbour with kindness and he who believes in Allah and the Last Day should show hospitality to his guest. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0076. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning exhortation to accord honour and respect to the neighbour and the guest and obligation to observe silence except in goodness, and all these qualities come within the orbit of Iman. It is reported on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) observed: He who believes in Allah and the Last Day does not harm is neighbour, and he who believes in Allah and the Last Day shows hospitality to his guest and he who believes in Allah and the Last Day speaks good or remains silent. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0077. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning exhortation to accord honour and respect to the neighbour and the guest and obligation to observe silence except in goodness, and all these qualities come within the orbit of Iman. Another hadith similar to one narrated (above) by Abu Husain is also reported by Abu Huraira with the exception of these words: He (the Prophet) said: He should do good to the neighbour. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0078. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning exhortation to accord honour and respect to the neighbour and the guest and obligation to observe silence except in goodness, and all these qualities come within the orbit of Iman. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Shuraih al-Khuzai' that the Prophet (may peace and blessings of Allah be upon him) observed: He who believes in Allah and the Last Day should do good to his neighbour and he who believes in Allah and the Last Day should show hospitality to the guest and he who believes in Allah and the Last Day should either speak good or better remain silent. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0079. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the facts that Interdiction against abominable is a part of Faith, that Faith increases and diminishes; enjoining that which is good and for bidding that which is abominable are obligatory(acts). It is narrated on the authority of Tariq b. Shihab: It was Marwan who initiated (the practice) of delivering khutbah (address) before the prayer on the 'Id day. A man stood up and said: Prayer should precede khutbah. He (Marwan) remarked, This (practice) has been done away with. Upon this Abu Sa'id remarked: This man has performed (his duty) laid on him. I heard the Messenger of Allah as saying: He who amongst you sees something abominable should modify it with the help of his hand; and if he has not strength enough to do it, then he should do it with his tongue, and if he has not strength enough to do it, (even) then he should (abhor it) from his heart, and that is the least of faith. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0080. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the facts that Interdiction against abominable is a part of Faith, that Faith increases and diminishes; enjoining that which is good and for bidding that which is abominable are obligatory(acts). The same hadith of the Holy Prophet (may peace and blessings be upon him) has been reported by Abu Sa'id al-Khudri in connection with the story of Marwan. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0081. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the facts that Interdiction against abominable is a part of Faith, that Faith increases and diminishes; enjoining that which is good and for bidding that which is abominable are obligatory(acts). It is narrated on the authority 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud that the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) observed: Never a Prophet had been sent before me by Allah towards his nation who had not among his people (his) disciples and companions who followed his ways and obeyed his command. Then there came after them their successors who said whatever they did not practise, and practised whatever they were not commanded to do. He who strove against them with his hand was a believer: he who strove against them with his tongue was a believer, and he who strove against them with his heart was a believer and beyond that there is no faith even to the extent of a mustard seed. Abu Rafi' said: I narrated this hadith to 'Abdullah b. 'Umar; he contradicted me. There happened to come 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud who stayed at Qanat, and 'Abdullah b 'Umar wanted me to accompany him for visiting him(as 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud was ailing), so I went along with him and as we sat (before him) I asked Ibn Mas'ud about this hadith. He narrated it in the same way as I narrated it to Ibn 'Umar. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0082. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the facts that Interdiction against abominable is a part of Faith, that Faith increases and diminishes; enjoining that which is good and for bidding that which is abominable are obligatory(acts). The same hadith has been transmitted by another chain of narrators on the authority of 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud who observed: Never was there one among the prophets who had had not disciples who followed his direction and followed his ways. The remaining part of the hadith is like that as narrated by Salih but the arrival of Ibn Mas'ud and the meeting of Ibn 'Umar with him is not mentioned. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0083. ------------------------------ Chapter : Precedence of the believers over one another and the superiority of the people of Yemen in this respect. It is narrated on the authority of Ibn Mas'ud that the Apostle of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) pointed towards Yemen with his hand and said: Verily Iman is towards this side, and harshness and callousness of the hearts is found amongst the rude owners of the camels who drive them behind their tails (to the direction)where emerge the two horns of Satan, they are the tribes of Rabi'a and Mudar. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0084. ------------------------------ Chapter : Precedence of the believers over one another and the superiority of the people of Yemen in this respect. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah observed: There have come the people of Yemen; they are tender of hearts, the belief is that of the Yemenites, the understanding (of the faith) is that of the Yemenites and sagacity is that of the Yemenites. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0085. ------------------------------ Chapter : Precedence of the believers over one another and the superiority of the people of Yemen in this respect. Abu Huraira reported the same hadith which is transmitted to us by another chain of transmitters, e.g. Muhammad b. al-Muthanna, Ishaq b. Yusuf Azraq, Ibn 'Aun, etc. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0086. ------------------------------ Chapter : Precedence of the believers over one another and the superiority of the people of Yemen in this respect. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) observed: There came to you the people from Yemen; they are tender of hearts and mild of feelings, the understanding is Yemenite, the sagacity is Yemenite. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0087. ------------------------------ Chapter : Precedence of the believers over one another and the superiority of the people of Yemen in this respect. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) remarked: The summit of unbelief is towards the East and the pride and conceitedness is found among the owners of horses and camels who are rude and uncivil, people of the tents, and tranquillity is found among those who rear goats and sheep. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0088. ------------------------------ Chapter : Precedence of the believers over one another and the superiority of the people of Yemen in this respect. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) observed: The belief is among the Yemenites, and the unbelief is towards the East, and tranquillity is among those who rear goats and sheep, and pride and simulation is among the uncivil and rude owners of horses and camels. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0089. ------------------------------ Chapter : Precedence of the believers over one another and the superiority of the people of Yemen in this respect. It is reported on the authority of Abu Huraira: I heard the Messenger of Allah saying this: Pride and conceitedness is found among the uncivil owners of the camels and tranquillity is found among the owners of sheep and goats. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0090. ------------------------------ Chapter : Precedence of the believers over one another and the superiority of the people of Yemen in this respect. The same hadith has been narrated by Zuhri with the same chain of authorities with the addition: The belief is among the Yemenites, the sagacity is that of the Yemenites. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0091. ------------------------------ Chapter : Precedence of the believers over one another and the superiority of the people of Yemen in this respect. Abu Huraira said: I heard the Prophet (may peace and blessings be upon him) saying: There came the people of Yemen, they are tender of feelings and meek of hearts. The belief is that of the Yemenites, the sagacity is that of the Yemenites, the tranquillity is among the owners of goats and sheep, and pride and conceitedness is among the uncivil owners of the camels, the people of the tents in the direction of sunrise. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0092. ------------------------------ Chapter : Precedence of the believers over one another and the superiority of the people of Yemen in this respect. It is reporter on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) observed: There came the people of Yemen who are soft of hearts, tender in feelings: the belief is that of the Yemenites, the sagacity is that of the Yemenites and the summit of unbelief is towards the East. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0093. ------------------------------ Chapter : Precedence of the believers over one another and the superiority of the people of Yemen in this respect. Qutaiba b. Sa'id and Zubair b. Harb say: Jarir narrated this on the authority of A'mash with the same chain of narrators (as mentioned above). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0094. ------------------------------ Chapter : Precedence of the believers over one another and the superiority of the people of Yemen in this respect. Shu'ba narrated the hadith as reported by Jarir with the same chain of narrators with this addition: Pride and conceitedness is among the owners of the camels and tranquillity and sobriety is found amongst the owners of sheep. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0095. ------------------------------ Chapter : Precedence of the believers over one another and the superiority of the people of Yemen in this respect. It is reported on the authority of Jabir b. Abdullah that the Messenger of Allah (may peace and, blessings be upon him) observed: The callousness of heart and sternness is in the East and faith is among the people of the Hijaz. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0096. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the fact that no one will enter Paradise except believers, that love for believers is (a characteristic (feature of) Faith and giving currency to (the practice of paying salutation by, saying) As-Salimu 'Alaikum (peace be upon you) is the means to achieve it (Faith). Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessing be upon him) observed: You shall not enter Paradise so long as you do not affirm belief (in all those things which are the articles of faith) and you will not believe as long as you do not love one another. Should I not direct you to a thing which, if you do, will foster love amongst you: (i.e.) give currency to (the practice of paying salutation to one another by saying) as-salamu alaikum. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0097. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the fact that no one will enter Paradise except believers, that love for believers is (a characteristic (feature of) Faith and giving currency to (the practice of paying salutation by, saying) As-Salimu 'Alaikum (peace be upon you) is the means to achieve it (Faith). Zuhair b. Harb said: Jarir reported on the authority of A'mash with this chain of transmitters that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: By him in Whose hand is my life, you shall not enter Paradise unless you believe. The rest of the hadith is the same as narrated by Abd Mu'awiya and Waki'. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0098. ------------------------------ Chapter : Din is sincerity and well-wishing. It is narrated on the authority of Tamim ad-Dari that the Apostle of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) observed: Al-Din is a name of sincerity and well wishing. Upon this we said: For whom? He replied: For Allah, His Muslim Book, His Messenger and for the leaders and the general Muslims. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0099. ------------------------------ Chapter : Din is sincerity and well-wishing. Muhammad b. Hatim and others narrate the same hadith of the Apostle (may peace and blessings be upon him) on the authority of Tamim ad-Dari. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0100. ------------------------------ Chapter : Din is sincerity and well-wishing. Umayya b. Bistam narrates the same hadith of the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) on the authority of Tamim ad-Dari. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0101. ------------------------------ Chapter : Din is sincerity and well-wishing. It is narrated on the authority of Jarir that he observed I gave pledge of allegiance to the Messenger of Allah(may peace and blessings be upon him) on the observance of prayer, payment of Zakat, and sincerity and well-wishing for every Muslim. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0102. ------------------------------ Chapter : Din is sincerity and well-wishing. Sufyan narrated on the authority of Ziyad b. 'Ilaqa that he heard Jarir b. 'Abdullah saying: I pledged allegiance to the Apostle of Allah may peace and blessings be upon him) on sincerity and well-wishing for every Muslim. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0103. ------------------------------ Chapter : Din is sincerity and well-wishing. It is narrated on the authority of Jarir that he observed: I owed allegiance to the Apostle of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) on hearing (is commands) and obeying (them) and the Prophet) instructed me (to act) as lay in my power, and sincerity and goodwill for every Muslim. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0104. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning diminution of Belief due to sins and its separation from the sinner; negation of the excellence of Islam at the time of committing sin. Abu Huraira reported that the Messenger of Allah observed: The fornicator who fornicates is not a believer so long as he commits it and no thief who steals is a believer as long as he commits theft, and no drunkard who drinks wine is a believer as long as he drinks it. 'Abdul-Malik b. Abi Bakr' narrated this on the authority of Abu Bakr b. Abdur-Rahman b. Harith and then said: Abu Huraira made this addition: No plunderer who plunders a valuable thing that attracts the attention of people is a believer so long as he commits this act. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0105. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning diminution of Belief due to sins and its separation from the sinner; negation of the excellence of Islam at the time of committing sin. 'Abdul-Malik b. Shu'aib narrated this hadith on the authority of Abu Huraira that he observed: The Messenger of Allah said that a fornicator does not fornicate, and then narrated the hadith like this, and he also made mention of plundering too, but did not mention of a thin having value. Ibn Shihab said: Sa'id b. al-Musayyib and Abu Salama narrated this hadith on the authority of Abu Huraira a hadith like that of Abu Bakr with the exception of (the mention) of plundering. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0106. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning diminution of Belief due to sins and its separation from the sinner; negation of the excellence of Islam at the time of committing sin. Muhammad b. Mihran narrates this hadith on the authority of Abu Huraira and made mention of plundering but did not talk of (a thing) having value. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0107. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning diminution of Belief due to sins and its separation from the sinner; negation of the excellence of Islam at the time of committing sin. Imam Muslim has reported this hadith by Hasan b. 'Ali al-Halwani and other traditions. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0108. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning diminution of Belief due to sins and its separation from the sinner; negation of the excellence of Islam at the time of committing sin. It is reported on the authority of Qutaiba b. Sa'id who reported on the authority of Abu Huraira the hadith like that narrated from Zuhri with this exception that in the hadith narrated by 'Ala' and Safwan b. Sulaim there is no mention of: People raise there eyes towards him, and in the hadith narrated by Hammam: The believers raise their eyes towards him, and such like words, so long as he plunders (is not) a believer, and these words were added: And no exploiter who makes an exploitation is a believer as long as he exploits It; therefore avoid and shun (these evils). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0109. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning diminution of Belief due to sins and its separation from the sinner; negation of the excellence of Islam at the time of committing sin. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira: A fornicator who fornicates is not a believer as long as he commits fornication, and no one who steals is a believer as long as he commits theft, and no one who drinks wine is a believer as long as he drinks it, and repentance may be accepted after that. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0110. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning diminution of Belief due to sins and its separation from the sinner; negation of the excellence of Islam at the time of committing sin. Muhammad b. Rafi', Abdur-Razzaq, Sufyan, A'mash narrated this hadith like one narrated by Shu'ba, on the authority of Abu Huraira tracing, it (right to the Holy Prophet). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0111. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the peculiarities of a hypocrite. It is narrated on the authority of Abdullah b. 'Amr that the Prophet observed: Four characteristics made anyone who possessed them, a sheer hypocrite; anyone who possessed one of them possessed a characteristic of hypocrisy till be abandons it: when he talked he lied, when he made a covenant he acted treacherously, and when he quarrelled he deviated from the truth. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0112. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the peculiarities of a hypocrite. It is reported on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) said: Three are the signs of a hypocrite: when he spoke he told a lie, when he made a promise he acted treacherously against it, when he was trusted he betrayed. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0113. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the peculiarities of a hypocrite. Abu Huraira reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) observed: There are three characteristics of a hypocrite: when he spoke he told a lie, when he made promise he acted treacherously, and when he was trusted he betrayed. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0114. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the peculiarities of a hypocrite. 'Uqba b. Mukarram al-'Ami reported that he heard 'Ala' b. 'Abdur-Rahman narrating this hadith with this chain of transmitters and he said: Three are the signs of a hypocrite, even if he observed fast and prayed and asserted that he was a Muslim. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0115. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the peculiarities of a hypocrite. It is reported on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings of Allah be upon him) made observations like them embodied in the hadith narrated by Yahya b. Muhammad on the authority of 'Ala', and added to it: even if he observed fast and prayed and asserted that he was a Muslim. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0116. ------------------------------ Chapter : The condition of the Faith of one who calls his brother Muslim as an unbeliever. It is reported on the authority of Ibn 'Umar that the Apostle (may peace and blessings be upon him) observed: When a man calls his brother an unbeliever, it returns (at least) to one of them. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0117. ------------------------------ Chapter : The condition of the Faith of one who calls his brother Muslim as an unbeliever. It is reported on the authority of Ibn 'Umar that the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) said: Any person who called his brother: or unbeliever (has in fact done an act by which this unbelief) would return to one of them. If it were so, as he asserted (then the unbelief of man was confirmed but if it was not true), then it returned to him (to the man who labelled it on his brother Muslim). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0118. ------------------------------ Chapter : The condition of the Faith of one who knowingly denies his true fatherhood. It is reported on the authority of Abu Dharr that he heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) saying: No person who claimed knowingly anyone else as his father besides(his own)committed nothing but infidelity, and he who made a claim of anything, which (in fact) did not belong to him, is not amongst us; he should make his abode in Fire, and he who labelled anyone with unbelief or called him the enemy of Allah, and he was in fact not so, it rebounded on him. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0119. ------------------------------ Chapter : The condition of the Faith of one who knowingly denies his true fatherhood. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) observed: Do not detest your fathers; he who detested his father committed infidelity. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0120. ------------------------------ Chapter : The condition of the Faith of one who knowingly denies his true fatherhood. It is reported on the authority of Sa'd b. Abi Waqqas: Both of my ears heard the Messenger of Allah saying this: He who claimed the fatherhood of anyone else besides his real father knowingly (committed a great sin);Paradise is forbidden to him. Abu Bakra asserted that he too heard it from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0121. ------------------------------ Chapter : The condition of the Faith of one who knowingly denies his true fatherhood. Sa'd and Abu Bakra each one of them said: My ears heard and my hearing preserved it that Muhammad (peace and blessings be upon him) observed: He who claimed for another one his fatherhood besides his own father knowingly that he was not his father-to him Paradise is forbidden. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0122. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abusing a Muslim is an outrage and fighting against him is unbelief. It is narrated on the authority of 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud that the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) observed: Abusing a Muslim is an outrage and fighting against him is unbelief. Zubaid said: I asked Abu Wa'il: Did you hear it from Abdullah narrating if from the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him)? He replied: Yes. But there is mention of the talk between Zubaid and Abu Wa'il in the hadith narrated by Shu'ba. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0123. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abusing a Muslim is an outrage and fighting against him is unbelief. Abu Bakr b. Abu Shaiba narrated a hadith like this from the Apostle (may peace and blessings be upon him) on the authority of Abdullah. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0124. ------------------------------ Chapter : Don't become unbelievers after me by striking the necks of one another. It is narrated on the authority of Jarir b. 'Abdullah that the Apostle of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) asked him on the occasion of the Farewell Pilgrimage to make the people silent and then said: Do not return to unbelief after me by striking the necks of one another. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0125. ------------------------------ Chapter : Don't become unbelievers after me by striking the necks of one another. Abdullah b. Mu'adh narrated from the Apostle(may peace and blessings be upon him) a hadith like this on the authority on Ibn Umar. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0126. ------------------------------ Chapter : Don't become unbelievers after me by striking the necks of one another. It is narrated on the authority of Abdullah b. Umar that the Apostle(may peace and blessings be upon him) observed on the occasion of the Farewell Pilgrimage Woe unto you distress unto you! Don't turn back as unbelievers after me by striking the necks of one another. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0127. ------------------------------ Chapter : Don't become unbelievers after me by striking the necks of one another. Harmala b. Yahya, Abdullah b. Wahb, Umar b. Muhammad, Ibn Umar narrated like the hadith reported by Shu'ba on the authority of Waqid. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0128. ------------------------------ Chapter : The use of the word "Unbelief" in case of slandering (anyone) or one's lineage, and lamentation. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) observed: Two (things) are found among men which are tantamount to unbelief: slandering one's lineage and lamentation on the dead. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0129. ------------------------------ Chapter : Calling the fugitive slave as infidel. It is narrated on the authority of Jarir that he heard (the Holy Prophet) saying, The slave who fled from his master committed an act of infidelity as long as he would not return to him. Mansur observed: By God, this hadith was narrated from the Apostle (may peace and blessings be upon him), but I do not like that this should be narrated on my authority here in Basra. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0130. ------------------------------ Chapter : Calling the fugitive slave as infidel. It is narrated on the authority of Jarir that the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) observed: The slave who fled from his master, responsibility with regard to him was absolved. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0131. ------------------------------ Chapter : Calling the fugitive slave as infidel. Jarir b. Abdullah reported it from the Holy Prophet: When the slave runs away from his master, his prayer is not accepted. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0132. ------------------------------ Chapter : The unbelief of one who said: We got rainfall by the movement (of the stars). It is narrated on the authority of Zaid b. Khalid al-Juhani: The Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) led the morning prayer at Hudaybiya. There were some marks of the rainfall during the night. At the conclusion of prayer he turned towards people and observed: Do you know what your Lord has said? They replied: Allah and His Messenger know best. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) remarked: He (Allah) said: Some of My bondsmen entered the morning as My believers and some as unbelievers. He who said: We have had a rainfall due to the Blessing and Mercy of Allah, he is My believer and a disbeliever of stars, and who said: We have had a rainfall due to the rising of such and such (star) disbelieved Me and affirmed his faith in the stars. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0133. ------------------------------ Chapter : The unbelief of one who said: We got rainfall by the movement (of the stars). It is reported on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) said: Don't you know what your Lord said? He observed: I have never endowed My bondsmen with a favour, but a section amongst them disbelieved it and said: Stars, it was due to the stars. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0134. ------------------------------ Chapter : The unbelief of one who said: We got rainfall by the movement (of the stars). It is reported on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessing be upon him) observed: Allah does not shower His blessings from the heaven that in the morning a group of men disbelieve it (to be a blessing from Allah). Allah sends down rain, but they (the disbelievers) say: Such and such star (is responsible for that). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0135. ------------------------------ Chapter : The unbelief of one who said: We got rainfall by the movement (of the stars). It is reported on the authority of Ibn 'Abbas that there was (once) a downpour during the life of the Apostle (may peace and blessings be upon him Upon this the Apostle (may peace and blessings be upon him) observed: Some people entered the morning with gratitude and some with ingratitude (to Allah). Those who entered with gratitude said: This is the blessing of Allah, and those who entered with ingratitude said: Such and such asterism was right. It was upon this that the verse was revealed: I swear by the setting of the stars to the end and make your provision that you should disbelieve it. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0136. ------------------------------ Chapter : The love of Ansar (helpers) and 'All (may Allah be pleased with all of them) is (an Ingredient) of Iman and (one of) its signs, and hatred against them is a sign of dissemblance. It is reported on the authority of Anas that the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings Be upon him) observed: The sign of a hypocrite is the hatred against the Ansar and the sign of a believer is the love for the Ansar. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0137. ------------------------------ Chapter : The love of Ansar (helpers) and 'All (may Allah be pleased with all of them) is (an Ingredient) of Iman and (one of) its signs, and hatred against them is a sign of dissemblance. It is narrated on the authority of Anas that the Apostle(may peace and blessings be upon him) said: The love of the Ansar is the sign of faith and hatred against them is the sign of dissemblance. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0138. ------------------------------ Chapter : The love of Ansar (helpers) and 'All (may Allah be pleased with all of them) is (an Ingredient) of Iman and (one of) its signs, and hatred against them is a sign of dissemblance. Al-Bara reported it from the Apostle(may peace and blessing be upon him) that he observed with regard to the Ansar, None but the believer loves them, none but the hypocrite hates them. He who loved them loved Allah and he who hated them hated Allah. I (the narrator) said: Did you hear this hadith from al-Bara'? He said: To me, he narrated it. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0139. ------------------------------ Chapter : The love of Ansar (helpers) and 'All (may Allah be pleased with all of them) is (an Ingredient) of Iman and (one of) its signs, and hatred against them is a sign of dissemblance. It is reported on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) said: A person who believes in Allah and the Last Day never nurses a grudge against the Ansar. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0140. ------------------------------ Chapter : The love of Ansar (helpers) and 'All (may Allah be pleased with all of them) is (an Ingredient) of Iman and (one of) its signs, and hatred against them is a sign of dissemblance. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Sa'id Khudri that the Messenger of Allah observed: The person who believes in Allah and the Last Day never nurses a grudge against the Ansar. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0141. ------------------------------ Chapter : The love of Ansar (helpers) and 'All (may Allah be pleased with all of them) is (an Ingredient) of Iman and (one of) its signs, and hatred against them is a sign of dissemblance. Zirr reported: 'Ali observed: By Him Who split up the seed and created something living, the Apostle(may peace and blessings be upon him) gave me a promise that no one but a believer would love me, and none but a hypocrite would nurse grudge against me. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0142. ------------------------------ Chapter : Distribution of Iman by failing in submission and the use of the word "Kufr" for things besides unbelief of Allah, for example ungratefulness and Ingratitude. It is narrated on the authority of 'Abdullah b. Umar that the Messenger of Allah observed: O womenfolk, you should give charity and ask much forgiveness for I saw you in bulk amongst the dwellers of Hell. A wise lady among them said: Why is it, Messenger of Allah, that our folk is in bulk in Hell? Upon this the Holy Prophet observed: You curse too much and are ungrateful to your spouses. I have seen none lacking in common sense and failing in religion but (at the same time) robbing the wisdom of the wise, besides you. Upon this the woman remarked: What is wrong with our common sense and with religion? He (the Holy Prophet) observed: Your lack of common sense (can be well judged from the fact) that the evidence of two women is equal to one man, that is a proof of the lack of common sense, and you spend some nights (and days) in which you do not offer prayer and in the month of Ramadan (during the days) you do not observe fast, that is a failing in religion. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abu Tahir with this chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0143. ------------------------------ Chapter : Distribution of Iman by failing in submission and the use of the word "Kufr" for things besides unbelief of Allah, for example ungratefulness and Ingratitude. A hadith like this as narrated by Ibn 'Umar has also been transmitted by Abu Huraira. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0144. ------------------------------ Chapter : Application of the word "Kufr" on one who neglects prayer. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that when, the son of Adam recites the Ayat of Sajdah (prostration) and then falls down in prostration, the Satan goes into seclusion and weeps and says: Alas, and in the narration of Abu Kuraib the words are: Woe unto me, the son of Adam was commanded to prostrate, and he prostrated and Paradise was entitled to him and I was commanded to prostrate, but I refused and am doomed to Hell. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0145. ------------------------------ Chapter : Application of the word "Kufr" on one who neglects prayer. A'mash narrated this hadith with the same chain of transmitters, with this change of words that he (the Satan) said: I disobeyed and I am doomed to Hell. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0146. ------------------------------ Chapter : Application of the word "Kufr" on one who neglects prayer. It is narrated on the authority of Jabir that he heard the Apostle (may peace and blessings be upon him) saying. Verily between man and between polytheism and unbelief is the negligence of prayer. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0147. ------------------------------ Chapter : Application of the word "Kufr" on one who neglects prayer. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Zubair that he heard Jabir b. 'Abdullah saying. I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace and blessings be upon him) observing this: Between man and polytheism and unbelief is the abandonment of salat. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0148. ------------------------------ Chapter : Belief in Allah is the best of deeds. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah was asked about the best of deeds. He observed: Belief in Allah. He (the inquirer) said: What next? He (the Holy Prophet) replied: Jihad (struggle to the utmost) in the cause of Allah. He (the inquirer) again said: What next? He (the Holy Prophet) replied: Pilgrimage accepted into the grace of the Lord. In the tradition narrated on the authority of Muhammad b. Ja'far (the words are) that he (the Holy Prophet) said: Belief in Allah and His Messenger. Muhammad b. Rafi and 'Abd b. Humaid, 'Abdur-Razzaq and Ma'mar and Zuhri have narrated a hadith like this on the authority of the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0149. ------------------------------ Chapter : Belief in Allah is the best of deeds. Abu Dharr reported: I said: Messenger of Allah, which of the deeds is the best? He (the Holy Prophet) replied: Belief in Allah and Jihad in His cause. I again asked: Who is the slave whose emancipation is the best? He (the Holy Prophet) replied: One who is valuable for his master and whose price is high. I said: If I can't afford to do it? He (the Holy Prophet) replied: Help an artisan or make anything for the unskilled (labourer). I (Abu Dharr) said: Messenger of Allah, you see that I am helpless in doing some of these deeds. He (the Holy Prophet) replied: Desist from doing mischief to the people. That is the charity of your person on your behalf. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0150. ------------------------------ Chapter : Belief in Allah is the best of deeds. Muhammad b. Abu Rafi' narrated the hadith on the authority of Abu Dharr with a slight difference. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0151. ------------------------------ Chapter : Belief in Allah is the best of deeds. It is narrated on the authority of 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud that he observed. I asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) which deed was the best. He (the Holy Prophet) replied: Prayer at its appointed hour. I (again) said: Then what? He (the Holy Prophet) replied: Kindness to the parents. I (again) said: Then what? He replied: Earnest endeavour (Jihad) in the cause of Allah. And I would have not ceased asking more questions but out of regard (for his feelings). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0152. ------------------------------ Chapter : Belief in Allah is the best of deeds. 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud reported: I said: Messenger of Allah, which of the deeds (takes one) nearer to Paradise? He (the Holy Prophet) replied: Prayer at its proper time, I said: What next, Messenger of Allah? He replied: Kindness to the parents. I said: What next? He replied: Jihad in the cause of Allah. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0153. ------------------------------ Chapter : Belief in Allah is the best of deeds. It was heard from Abu 'Amr Shaibani that, pointing towards the house of Abdullah, he said: The owner of this house told me that he asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him): Which of the deeds are liked by Allah? He (the Holy Prophet) observed: Prayer at its proper time. I (again) said: What next? He replied: Then goodness to the parents. I (again) said: What then? He replied: Then Jihad in the cause of Allah. He ('Abdullah) said: This is what I was told (by the Holy Prophet). Had I questioned further, he would have made additions for me. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0154. ------------------------------ Chapter : Belief in Allah is the best of deeds. This hadith has been transmitted by Muhammad b. Bashshar, Muhammad b. Ja'far Shu'ba with this chain of narrators, with the addition that he pointed towards the house of 'Abdullah, but he did not mention his name for us. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0155. ------------------------------ Chapter : Belief in Allah is the best of deeds. It is reported on the authority of 'Abdullah that the Apostle of Allah observed: The best of' the deeds or deed is the (observance of) prayer at its proper time and kindness to the parents. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0156. ------------------------------ Chapter : Polytheism is the most shameful of sins and the mentioning of the gravest sin next to it. 'Abdullah reported: I asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him): Which sin is the gravest in the eye of Allah? He (the Holy Prophet) replied: That you associate a partner with Allah (despite the fact) that He has created you. He (the reporter) said: I told him (the, Holy Prophet): Verily it is indeed grave. He (the reporter) said: I asked him what the next (gravest sin) was. He (the Holy Prophet) replied: That you kill your child out of fear that he shall join you in food. He (the reporter)said: I asked (him) what the next (gravest sin)was. He (the Holy Prophet) observed: Then (the next gravest sin) is that you commit adultery with the wife of your neighbour. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0157. ------------------------------ Chapter : Polytheism is the most shameful of sins and the mentioning of the gravest sin next to it. It is narrated on the authority of Abdullah b. Mas'ud that a man said: Messenger of Allah, which offence is the most grievous in the eye of Allah? He (the Holy Prophet) replied: That you associate a partner with Allah (despite the fact) that He created you. He (the man) said: What next? He (the Holy Prophet) replied: That you kill your child out of fear that he would join you in food. He (the inquirer) said (again): What next? He (the Holy Prophet) replied: That you commit adultery with the wife of your neighbour. And the Almighty and Exalted Lord testified it (with this verse): All those who call not unto another god along with Allah, and slay not any soul which Allah has forbidden, except in the cause of justice, nor commit fornication, and he who does this shall meet a requital of sin (xxv. 68). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0158. ------------------------------ Chapter : Major sins and the gravest among these. It is narrated on the authority of 'Abdur-Rahman b. Abu Bakra that his father said: We were in the company of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) that he observed: Should I not inform you about the most grievous of the grave sins? (The Holy Prophet) repeated it three times, and then said: Associating anyone with Allah, disobedience to parents, false testimony or false utterance. The Holy Prophet was reclining, then he sat up, and he repeated it so many times that we wished that he should become silent. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0159. ------------------------------ Chapter : Major sins and the gravest among these. Anas narrated from the Apostle (may peace be upon him) about the major sins. He (the Holy Prophet) observed: Associating anyone with Allah, disobedience to parents, killing a person and false utterance. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0160. ------------------------------ Chapter : Major sins and the gravest among these. Ubaidullah b. Abu Bakr said: I heard Anas b. Malik saying: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) talked about the major sins, or he was asked about the major sins. Upon this he observed: Associating anyone with Allah, killing of a person, disobedience to parents. He (the Holy Prophet further) said: Should I not inform you about the gravest of the major sins, and (in this connection) observed: False utterance or false testimony. Shu'ba said: It was most probably "false testimony". Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0161. ------------------------------ Chapter : Major sins and the gravest among these. It is reported on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: Avoid the seven noxious things. It was said (by the hearers): What are they, Messenger of Allah? He (the Holy Prophet) replied: Associating anything with Allah, magic, killing of one whom God has declared inviolate without a just cause, consuming the property of an orphan, and consuming of usury, turning back when the army advances, and slandering chaste women who are believers, but unwary. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0162. ------------------------------ Chapter : Major sins and the gravest among these. It is narrated on the authority of 'Abdullah b. Amr b. al-'As that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: Abusing one's parents is one of the major sins. They (the hearers) said: Messenger of Allah, does a man abuse his parents too? He (the Holy Prophet) replied: Yes, one abuses the father of another man, who in turn abuses his father. One abuses his mother and he in turn abuses his (the formers) mother. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0163. ------------------------------ Chapter : Major sins and the gravest among these. This hadith has also been transmitted on the authority of Sa'd b. Ibrahim with this chain of narrators. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0164. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance of pride. It Is narrated on the authority of Abdullah b. Mas'ud that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), observed: He who has in his heart the weight of a mustard seed of pride shall not enter Paradise. A person (amongst his hearers) said: Verily a person loves that his dress should be fine, and his shoes should be fine. He (the Holy Prophet) remarked: Verily, Allah is Graceful and He loves Grace. Pride is disdaining the truth (out of self-conceit) and contempt for the people. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0165. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance of pride. It is narrated on the authority of 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: None shall enter the Fire (of Hell) who has in his heart the weight of a mustard seed of Iman and none shall enter Paradise who has in his heart the weight of a mustard seed of pride. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0166. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance of pride. It is narrated on the authority of 'Abdullah that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: He who as in his heart the weight of a mustard seed of pride shall not enter Paradise. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0167. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who dies associating none with Allah would enter Paradise and he who dies as a polytheist would enter the fire of Hell. It is narrated on the authority of Abdullah b. Mas'ud that Waki told (him) that the Messenger of Allah had observed and Ibn Numair asserted: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying: He who dies associating anything with Allah would enter the Fire (of Hell). 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud said: I say that he who died without associating anything with Allah entered Paradise. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0168. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who dies associating none with Allah would enter Paradise and he who dies as a polytheist would enter the fire of Hell. It is narrated on the authority of Jabir that a man came to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: Messenger of Allah, what are the two things quite unavoidable? He replied: He who dies without associating anyone with Allah would (necessarily) enter Paradise and he who dies associating anything with Allah would enter the (Fire of) Hell. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0169. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who dies associating none with Allah would enter Paradise and he who dies as a polytheist would enter the fire of Hell. It is narrated on the authority of Jabir b. Abdullah: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying: He who met Allah without associating anything with Allah entered Paradise and he who met Him associating (anything) with Him entered Fire. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0170. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who dies associating none with Allah would enter Paradise and he who dies as a polytheist would enter the fire of Hell. The same hadith has been narrated by Ishaq b. Mansur on the authority of Jabir with another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0171. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who dies associating none with Allah would enter Paradise and he who dies as a polytheist would enter the fire of Hell. I heard Abu Dharr narrating it from the Apostle (may peace be upon him) that he observed: Gabriel came to me and gave me the tidings: Verily he who died amongst your Ummah without associating anything with Allah would enter Paradise. I (the narrator) said: Even if he committed adultery and theft. He (the Holy Prophet) said: (Yes), even if he committed adultery and theft. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0172. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who dies associating none with Allah would enter Paradise and he who dies as a polytheist would enter the fire of Hell. Abu Dharr reported,: I came to the Apostle (may peace be upon him) and he was asleep with a white mantle over him. I again came, he was still asleep, I came again and he had awakened. I sat by his side and (the Holy Prophet) observed: There is none among the bondsmen who affirmed his faith in La illaha ill-Allah there is no God but Allah) and died in this state and did not enter Paradise. I (Abu Dharr) said: Even if he committed adultery and theft? He (the Holy Prophet) replied: (Yes) even though he committed adultery and theft. I (again said): Even if he committed adultery and theft? He replied: (Yes) even though he committed adultery and theft. (The Holy Prophet repeated it three times) and said for the fourth time: In defiance of Abu Dharr. Abu Dharr then went out and he repeated (these words): In defiance of Abu Dharr. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0173. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prohibition of killing of an infidel after he say's: "There is no god but Allah". It is narrated on the authority of Miqdad b. Aswad that he said. Messenger of Allah, you just see (here is a point): If I encountered a person amongst the infidels (in the battlefield) and he attacked me and struck me and cut off one of my hands with the sword. Then he (in order to protect himself from me) took shelter of a tree and said: I become Muslim for Allah's sake. Messenger of Allah, can I kill him after he had uttered this? The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Do not kill him. I (the narrator) said: Messenger of Allah, he cut off my hand and uttered this after amputating it; should I then kill him? The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Don't kill him, for I you kill him, verily he would be in a position where you had been before killing him and verily you would be in a position where he had been before uttering (kalima). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0174. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prohibition of killing of an infidel after he say's: "There is no god but Allah". The same hadith has been transmitted by the same chain of narrators. The hadith transmitted by Auza'i and Ibn Juraij contains these words: I embraced Islam for Allah's sake, and in the hadith narrated by Ma'mar the words are: I knelt down to kill him, that he said; There is no god but Allah. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0175. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prohibition of killing of an infidel after he say's: "There is no god but Allah". It is narrated by Miqdad, and he was an ally of B. Zuhra and was of those who participated in the Battle of Badr along with the Messenger of Allah, that he said: Messenger of Allah, here is a point: If I happened to encounter a person amongst the infidels (in the battle). Then he narrated a hadith similar to the one transmitted by Laith. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0176. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prohibition of killing of an infidel after he say's: "There is no god but Allah". It is narrated on the authority of Usama b. Zaid that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sent us in a raiding party. We raided Huraqat of Juhaina in the morning. I caught hold of a man and he said: There is no god but Allah, I attacked him with a spear. It once occurred to me and I talked about it to the Apostle (may peace be upon him). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Did he profess "There is no god but Allah," and even then you killed him? I said: Messenger of Allah, he made a profession of it out of the fear of the weapon. He (the Holy Prophet) observed: Did you tear his heart in order to find out whether it had professed or not? And he went on repeating it to me till I wished I had embraced Islam that day. Sa'd said: By Allah, I would never kill any Muslim so long as a person with a heavy belly, i.e., Usama, would not kill. Upon this a person remarked: Did Allah not say this: And fight them until there is no more mischief and religion is wholly for Allah? Sa'd said: We fought so that there should be no mischief, but you and your companions wish to fight so that there should be mischief. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0177. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prohibition of killing of an infidel after he say's: "There is no god but Allah". It is narrated on the authority of Usama b. Zaid: The Messenger of Allah may peace be upon him) sent us to Huraqat, a tribe of Juhaina. We attacked that tribe early in the morning and defeated them and I and a man from the Ansar caught hold of a person (of the defeated tribe). When we overcame him, he said: There is no god but Allah. At that moment the Ansari spared him, but I attacked him with my spear and killed him. The news had already reached the Apostle (peace be upon him), so when we came back he (the Apostle) said to me: Usama, did you kill him after he had made the profession: There is no god but Allah? I said. Messenger of Allah, he did it only as a shelter. The Holy Prophet observed: Did you kill him after he had made the profession that there is no god but Allah? He (the Holy Prophet) went on repeating this to me till I wished I had not embraced Islam before that day. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0178. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prohibition of killing of an infidel after he say's: "There is no god but Allah". It is narrated by Safwan b. Muhriz that Jundab b. 'Abdullah al-Bajali during the stormy days of Ibn Zubair sent a message to 'As'as b. Salama: Gather some men of your family so that I should talk to them. He ('As'as) sent a messenger to them (to the members of his family). When they had assembled, Jundab came there with a yellow hooded cloak on him, He said: Talk what you were busy in talking. The talk went on by turns, till there came his (Jundab's) turn. He took off the hooded cloak from his head and said: I have come to you with no other intention but to narrate to you a hadith of your Apostle: Verily the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sent a squad of the Muslims to a tribe of the polytheists. Both the armies confronted one another. There was a man among the army of polytheists who (was so dashing that), whenever he intended to kill a man from among the Muslims, he killed him. Amongst the Muslims too was a man looking forward to (an opportunity of) his (the polytheist's) unmindfulness. He (the narrator) said: We talked that he was Usama b, Zaid. When he raised his sword, he (the soldier of the polytheists) uttered: "There is no god but Allah," but he (Usama b. Zaid) killed him. When the messenger of the glad tidings came to the Apostle (may peace be upon him) he asked him (about the events of the battle) and he informed him about the man (Usama) and what he had done He (the Prophet of Allah) called for him and asked him why he had killed him. He (Usama) said: Messenger of Allah, he struck the Muslims and killed such and such of them. And he even named some of them. (He continued): I attacked him and when he saw the sword he said: There is no god but Allah. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Did you kill him? He (Usama) replied in the affirmative. He (the Holy Prophet) remarked: What would you do with: "There is no god but Allah," when he would come (before you) on the Day of Judgment? He (Usama) said: Messenger of Allah, beg pardon for me (from your Lord). He (the Holy Prophet) said: What would you do with: "There is no god but Allah" when he would come (before you) on the Day of Judgment? He (the Holy Prophet) added nothing to it but kept saying: What would you do with: "There is no god but Allah," when he would come (before you) on the Day of Judgment? Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0179. ------------------------------ Chapter : The utterance of the Apostle (may peace be upon him). He who takes up arms against us is not of us (i.e. he ceases to be a Muslim). It is narrated on the authority of Abdullah b. Umar who narrates from the Prophet of Allah (may peace be upon him) who said: He who took up arms against us is not of us. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0180. ------------------------------ Chapter : The utterance of the Apostle (may peace be upon him). He who takes up arms against us is not of us (i.e. he ceases to be a Muslim). Iyas b. Salama narrated from his father that the Apostle (may peace be upon him) observed: He who draws the sword against us is not of us. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0181. ------------------------------ Chapter : The utterance of the Apostle (may peace be upon him). He who takes up arms against us is not of us (i.e. he ceases to be a Muslim). It is narrated on the authority of Abu Musa Ash'ari: He who took up arms against us is not of us. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0182. ------------------------------ Chapter : The utterance of the Apostle (way peace be upon him). He who acted dishonestly towards us is not of us(i.e. he is not to be counted amongst Muslims). It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: He who took up arms against us is not of us and he who acted dishonestly towards us is not of us. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0183. ------------------------------ Chapter : The utterance of the Apostle (way peace be upon him). He who acted dishonestly towards us is not of us(i.e. he is not to be counted amongst Muslims). It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) happened to pass by a heap of eatables (corn). He thrust his hand in that (heap) and his fingers were moistened. He said to the owner of that heap of eatables (corn): What is this? He replied: Messenger of Allah, these have been drenched by rainfall. He (the Holy Prophet) remarked: Why did you not place this (the drenched part of the heap) over other eatables so that the people could see it? He who deceives is not of me (is not my follower). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0184. ------------------------------ Chapter : Beating of the cheeks, tearing of the front opening of the shirt, and calling the calls of the Jihillya (Ignorance) are forbidden. It is narrated on the authority of Abdullah b. Mas'ud that the Holy Prophet observed: He is not one of us (one among the Ummah of Islam) who beat the cheeks or tore the front opening of the shirt or uttered the slogans of (the days of) Jahiliya (ignorance). Ibn Numair and Abu Bakr said (instead of the word "au"(or) it is "wa" [and] the words are) and tore and uttered (the slogans) of Jahiliya without "alif". Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0185. ------------------------------ Chapter : Beating of the cheeks, tearing of the front opening of the shirt, and calling the calls of the Jihillya (Ignorance) are forbidden. This hadith has been narrated by A'mash with the same chain of narrators and the transmitters said: He tore and called. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0186. ------------------------------ Chapter : Beating of the cheeks, tearing of the front opening of the shirt, and calling the calls of the Jihillya (Ignorance) are forbidden. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Burda b. Abu Musa that Abu Musa was afflicted with grave pain and he became unconscious and his head was in the lap of a lady of his household. One of the women of his household walled. He (Abu Musa) was unable (because of weakness) to say anything to her. But when he was a bit recovered he said: I have no concern with one with whom the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) has no concern, Verily the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) has no concern with that woman who wails loudly, shaves her hair and tears (her garment in grief). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0187. ------------------------------ Chapter : Beating of the cheeks, tearing of the front opening of the shirt, and calling the calls of the Jihillya (Ignorance) are forbidden. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Burda that Abu Musa fell unconscious and his wife Umm Abdullah came there and wailed loudly. When he felt relief he said: Don't you know?-and narrated to her: Verily the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I have no concern with one who shaved her hair, lamented loudly and tore (her clothes in grief). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0188. ------------------------------ Chapter : Beating of the cheeks, tearing of the front opening of the shirt, and calling the calls of the Jihillya (Ignorance) are forbidden. This hadith is narrated on the authority of Abu Musa with this change only: That (the Holy Prophet) did not say that he had no concern but said: He is not one of us. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0189. ------------------------------ Chapter : Serious prohibition of tale-carrying. It is reported from Hudhaifa that news reached him (the Holy Prophet) that a certain man carried tales. Upon this Hudhaifa remarked: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) saying: The tale-bearer shall not enter Paradise. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0190. ------------------------------ Chapter : Serious prohibition of tale-carrying. It is reported on the authority of Hammam b, al-Harith that a man used to carry tales to the governor. We were sitting in the mosque, the people said: He is one who carries tales to the governor. He (the narrator) said: Then he came and sat with us. Thereupon Hudhaifa remarked: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying: The beater of false tales would never enter heaven. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0191. ------------------------------ Chapter : Serious prohibition of tale-carrying. It is narrated on the authority of Hammam b. al-Harith: We were sitting with Hudhaifa in the mosque. A man came and sat along with us. It was said to Hudhaifa that he was the man who carried tales to the ruler. Hudhaifa remarked with the intention of conveying to him: I have heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying: The tale-bearer will not enter Paradise. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0192. ------------------------------ Chapter : Serious prohibition of letting down the lower garment: of laying obligation of selling goods by false oaths, and description of those three (persons) with whom Allah would not speak on the Day of Resurrection nor would He see towards them nor would absolve them, and for them is a painful chastisement. It is narrated o the authority of Abu Dharr that the Messenger of Allah (may ace he upon him) observed: Three are the (persons) with whom Allah would neither speak on the Day of Resurrection, nor would look at them nor would absolve the and there is a painful chastisement for them. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) repeated it three times. Abu Dharr remarked: They failed and they lost; who are these persons, Messenger of Allah? Upon this he (the Holy) Prophet) observed: They are: the dragger of lower garment, the recounter of obligation the seller of goods by false oath. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0193. ------------------------------ Chapter : Serious prohibition of letting down the lower garment: of laying obligation of selling goods by false oaths, and description of those three (persons) with whom Allah would not speak on the Day of Resurrection nor would He see towards them nor would absolve them, and for them is a painful chastisement. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Dharr who narrates that the Prophet (may peace be upon him) observed: Three are the persons with whom Allah would not speak on the Day of Resurrection: the bestower of gift who does not give anything but by laying obligation on him, the seller of goods who sells them by taking false oath and one who hangs low his lower garment. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0194. ------------------------------ Chapter : Serious prohibition of letting down the lower garment: of laying obligation of selling goods by false oaths, and description of those three (persons) with whom Allah would not speak on the Day of Resurrection nor would He see towards them nor would absolve them, and for them is a painful chastisement. Bishr b. Khalid has narrated this hadith on the authority of Sulaiman with the same chain of transmitters with this addition: Allah shall neither speak nor look at nor absolve then, and there is a tormenting punishment for them. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0195. ------------------------------ Chapter : Serious prohibition of letting down the lower garment: of laying obligation of selling goods by false oaths, and description of those three (persons) with whom Allah would not speak on the Day of Resurrection nor would He see towards them nor would absolve them, and for them is a painful chastisement. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: Three (are the persons) with whom Allah would neither speak, nor would He absolve them on the Day of Resurrection. Abu Mu'awiya added: He would not look at them and there is grievous torment for them: the aged adulterer, the liar king and the proud destitute. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0196. ------------------------------ Chapter : Serious prohibition of letting down the lower garment: of laying obligation of selling goods by false oaths, and description of those three (persons) with whom Allah would not speak on the Day of Resurrection nor would He see towards them nor would absolve them, and for them is a painful chastisement. Abu Huraira narrated on the authority of Abu Bakr that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Three are the persons with whom Allah would neither speak on the Day of Resurrection, nor would He look towards them, nor would purify them (from sins), and there would be a tormenting chastisement for them: a person who in the waterless desert has more water (than his need) and he refuses to give it to the traveller and a person who sold a commodity to another person in the afternoon and took an oath of Allah that he had bought it at such and such price and he (the buyer) accepted it to be true though it was not a fact, and a person who pledged allegiance to the Imam but for the sake of the world (material gains). And if the Imam bestowed on him (something) out of that (worldly riches) he stood by his allegiance and if he did not give him, he did not fulfil the allegiance. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0197. ------------------------------ Chapter : Serious prohibition of letting down the lower garment: of laying obligation of selling goods by false oaths, and description of those three (persons) with whom Allah would not speak on the Day of Resurrection nor would He see towards them nor would absolve them, and for them is a painful chastisement. The same hadith has been transmitted by another chain of transmitters with the exception of these words: He offered for sale a commodity to another person. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0198. ------------------------------ Chapter : Serious prohibition of letting down the lower garment: of laying obligation of selling goods by false oaths, and description of those three (persons) with whom Allah would not speak on the Day of Resurrection nor would He see towards them nor would absolve them, and for them is a painful chastisement. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that he (the Apostle of Allah)observed: Three are the persons with whom Allah would neither speak (on the Day of Resurrection) nor would He look at them, and there would be a painful chastisement for them, a person who took an oath on the goods of a Muslim in the afternoon and then broke it. The rest of the hadith is the same as narrated by A'mash. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0199. ------------------------------ Chapter : Suicide is the gravest sin. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: He who killed himself with steel (weapon) would be the eternal denizen of the Fire of Hell and he would have that weapon in his hand and would be thrusting that in his stomach for ever and ever, he who drank poison and killed himself would sip that in the Fire of Hell where he is doomed for ever and ever; and he who killed himself by falling from (the top of) a mountain would constantly fall in the Fire of Hell and would live there for ever and ever. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0200. ------------------------------ Chapter : Suicide is the gravest sin. This hadith has been narrated by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0201. ------------------------------ Chapter : Suicide is the gravest sin. Thabit b. Dahhak reported that he pledged allegiance to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) under the Tree, and verily the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: He who took an oath of a religion other than Islam, in the state of being a liar, would became so, as he professed. He who killed himself with a thing would be tormented on the Day of Resurrection with that very thing. One is not obliged to offer votive offering of a thing which is not in his possession. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0202. ------------------------------ Chapter : Suicide is the gravest sin. It is narrated on the authority of Thabit b. al-Dahhak that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) observes: None is obliged to give votive offering (of a thing) which is not in his possession and the cursing of a believer is tantamount to killing him, and he who killed himself with a thing in this world would be tormented with that (very thing) on the Day of Resurrection, and he who made a false claim to increase(his wealth), Allah would make no addition but that of paucity, and he who perjured would earn the wrath of God Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0203. ------------------------------ Chapter : Suicide is the gravest sin. It is narrated on the authority of Thabit b. Dahhak that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: He who took deliberately a false oath on a religion other than Islam would become that which he had professed. And he who killed himself with anything Allah would torment him with that in the Fire of Hell. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0204. ------------------------------ Chapter : Suicide is the gravest sin. In the hadith narrated by Shu'ba the words are: Verily the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who took an oath on a religion other than Islam as a liar would become so as he said, and he who slaughtered himself with a thing would be slaughtered with that on the Day of Resurrection. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0205. ------------------------------ Chapter : Suicide is the gravest sin. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira: We participated in the Battle of Hunain along with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). He (the Holy Prophet) said about a man who claimed to be a Muslim that he was one of the denizens of the Fire (of Hell). When we were in the thick of the battle that man fought desperately and was wounded. It was said: Messenger of Allah, the person whom you at first called as the denizen of Fire fought desperately and died. Upon this the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) remarked: He was doomed to the Fire (of Hell). Some men were on the verge of doubt (about his fate) when it was said that he was not dead but fatally wounded. When it was night he could not stand the (pain of his) wound and killed himself. The Apostle (may peace be upon him) was informed of that. He (the Holy Prophet) observed: Allah is Great, I bear testimony to the fact that I am the servant of Allah and His messenger. He then commanded Bilal to announce to the people that none but a Muslim would enter Paradise. Verily Allah helps this faith even by a sinful person. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0206. ------------------------------ Chapter : Suicide is the gravest sin. It is reported on the authority of Sahl b. Sa'd al-Sa'idi that there was an encounter between the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and the polytheists, and they fought (against one another). At the conclusion of the battle the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) bent his steps towards his army and they (the enemies) bent their steps towards their army. And there was a person (his name was Quzman and he was one of the hypocrites) among the Companions of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) who did not spare a detached (fighter of the enemy) but pursued and killed him with the sword. They (the Companions of the Holy Prophet) said: None served us better today than this man Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) remarked: Verily he is one of the denizens of Fire. One of the people (Muslims) said: I will constantly shadow him. Then this man went out along with him. He halted whenever he halted, and ran along with him whenever he ran. He (the narrator) said: The man was seriously injured. He (could not stand the pain) and hastened his own death. He placed the blade of the sword on the ground with the tip between his chest and then pressed himself against the sword and killed himself. Then the man (following him) went to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: I bear testimony that verily thou art the Messenger of Allah, He (the Holy Prophet) said: What is the matter? He replied: The person about whom you just mentioned that he was one among the denizens of Fire and the people were surprised (at this) and I said to them that I would bring (the news about him) and consequently I went out in search of him till I (found him) to be very seriously injured. He hastened his death. He placed the blade of the sword upon the ground and its tip between his chest and then pressed himself against that and killed himself. Thereupon the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) remarked: A person performs the deeds which to the people appear to be the deeds befitting the dweller of Paradise, but he is in fact one of the denizens of Hell. And verily a person does an act which in the eyes of public is one which is done by the denizens of Hell, but the person is one among the dwellers of Paradise. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0207. ------------------------------ Chapter : Suicide is the gravest sin. It is reported on the authority of Hasan: A person belonging to the people of the past suffered from a boil, when it pained him, he drew out an arrow from the quiver and pierced it. And the bleeding did not stop till he died. Your Lord said: I forbade his entrance into Paradise. Then he (Hasan) stretched his hand towards the mosque and said: By God, Jundab transmitted this hadith to me from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) in this very mosque. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0208. ------------------------------ Chapter : Suicide is the gravest sin. It is reported on the authority of Hasan: Jundab b. 'Abdullah al-Bajali narrated this hadith in this mosque which we can neither forget and at the same time we have no apprehension that Jundab could attribute a lie to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). He (the Holy Prophet) observed: A person belonging to the people of the past suffered from a boil, and then the rest of the hadith was narrated. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0209. ------------------------------ Chapter : Strict forbiddance of acting unfaithfully in relation to the spoils or booty. The believers alone would enter Paradise. It is narrated on the authority of 'Umar b. Khattab that when it was the day of Khaibar a party of Companions of the Apostle (may peace be upon him) came there and said: So and so is a martyr, till they happened to pass by a man and said: So and so is a martyr. Upon this the Messenger of Allah remarked: Nay, not so verily I have seen him in the Fire for the garment or cloak that he had stolen from the booty, Then the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Umar son of Khattab, go and announce to the people that none but the believers shall enter Paradise. He ('Umar b. Khattab) narrated: I went out and proclaimed: Verily none but the believers would enter Paradise. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0210. ------------------------------ Chapter : Strict forbiddance of acting unfaithfully in relation to the spoils or booty. The believers alone would enter Paradise. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira: We went to Khaibar along with the Apostle (may peace be upon him) and Allah granted us victory. We plundered neither gold nor silver but laid our hands on goods, corn and clothes, and then bent our stops to a valley; along with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) there was a slave who was presented to him by one Rifa'a b. Zaid of the family of Judham, a tribe of Dubayb. When we got down into the valley the slave of the Messenger of Allah stood up and began to unpack the saddle-bag and was suddenly struck by a (stray) arrow which proved fatal. We said: There is a greeting for him, Messenger of Allah, as he is a martyr. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) remarked: Nay, not so. By Him in Whose hand is the life of Muhammad, the small garment which he stole from the booty on the day of Khaibar but which did not (legitimately) fall to his lot is burning like the Fire (of Hell) on him. The people were greatly perturbed (on hearing this). A person came there with a lace or two laces and said: Messenger of Allah, I found (them) on the day of Khaibar. He (the Holy Prophet) remarked: This is a lace of fire or two laces of fire. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0211. ------------------------------ Chapter : Argument in favour of the fact that he who kills himself does not become unbeliever. It is narrated on the authority of Jabir that Tufail son of Amr al-Dausi came to the Apostle (may peace be upon him) and said: Do you need strong, fortified protection? The tribe of Daus had a fort in the pre-Islamic days. The Apostle (may peace be upon him) declined this offer, since it (the privilege of protecting the Holy Prophet) had already been reserved for the Ansar. When the Apostle(may peace be upon him) migrated to Medina, Tufail son of Amr also migrated to that place, and there also migrated along with him a man of his tribe. But the climate of Medina did not suit him, and he fell sick. He felt very uneasy. So he took hold of an iron head of an arrow and cut his finger-joints. The blood streamed forth from his hands, till he died. Tufail son of Amr saw him in a dream. His state was good and he saw him with his hands wrapped. He (Tufail) said to him: What treatment did your Allah accord to you? He replied. Allah granted me pardon for my migration to the Apostle(may peace be upon him): He (Tufail) again said: What is this that I see you wrapping up your hands? He replied: I was told (by Allah): We would not set right anything of yours which you damaged yourself. Tufail narrated this (dream) to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Upon this he prayed: O Allah I grant pardon even to his hands. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0212. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the wind which would blow near the Day of Resurrection and would cause to die anyone having anything like faith in his heart. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Verily Allah would make a wind to blow from the side of the Yemen more delicate than silk and would spare none but cause him to die who, in the words of Abu 'Alqama, has faith equal to the weight of a grain; while Abdul-'Aziz said: having faith equal to the weight of a dust particle. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0213. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to be prompt in doing good deeds before the appearance of turbulence. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: Be prompt in doing good deeds (before you are overtaken) by turbulence which would be like a part of the dark night. During (that stormy period) a man would be a Muslim in the morning and an unbeliever in the evening or he would be a believer in the evening and an unbeliever in the morning, and would sell his faith for worldly goods. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0214. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the fear of a believer lest his deed should be lost. It is narrated on the authority of Anas b. Malik that when this verse: "O ye who believe I raise not your voices above the voice of the Prophet, nor shout loud unto him in discourse, as ye shout loud unto one another, lest your deeds should become null and void, while you perceive not" (xlix. 2-5), was revealed. Thabit b. Qais confined himself in his house and said: I am one of the denizens of Fire, and he deliberately avoided coming to the Apostle (may peace be upon him). The Apostle (may peace be upon him) asked Sa'd b, Mu'adh about him and said, Abu Amr, how is Thabit? Has he fallen sick? Sa'd said: He is my neighbour, but I do not know of his illness. Sa'd came to him (Thabit), and conveyed to him the message of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Upon this Thabit said: This verse was revealed, and you are well aware of the fact that, amongst all of you, mine is the voice louder than that of the Messenger of Allah, and so I am one amongst the denizens of Fire, Sa'd Informed the Holy Prophet about it. Upon this the Messenger of Allah observed: (Nay, not so) but he (Thabit) is one of the dwellers of Paradise. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0215. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the fear of a believer lest his deed should be lost. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Anas b. Malik by another chain of transmitters in which these words are found: Thabit b. Qais was the orator of the Ansar, when this verse was revealed: the rest of the hadith is the same with the exception that there is no mention of Sa'd b. Mu'adh in it. This hadith is also transmitted by Ahmad b. Sa'id, Habban, Sulaiman b. Mughira on the authority of Anas who said: When the verse was revealed: "Do not raise your voice louder than the voice of the Apostle," no mention was made of Sa'd b, Mu'adh in it. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0216. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the fear of a believer lest his deed should be lost. This hadith is narrated on the authority of Anas by another chain of transmitters in which there is no mention of Sa'd b. Mu'adh, but the following words are there: We observed a man, one of the dwellers of Paradise, walking about amongst us. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0217. ------------------------------ Chapter : Would (people) be held responsible for the deeds committed during the state of ignorance?. It is narrated on the authority of Abdullah b. Mas'ud that some people said to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him): Messenger of Allah, would we be held responsible for our deeds committed in the state of ignorance (before embracing Islam)? Upon his he (the Holy Prophet) remarked: He who amongst you performed good deeds in Islam, He would not be held responsible for them (misdeeds which he committed in ignorance) and he who committed evil (even after embracing Islam) would be held responsible or his misdeeds that he committed in the state of ignorance as well as in that of Islam. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0218. ------------------------------ Chapter : Would (people) be held responsible for the deeds committed during the state of ignorance?. It is narrated on the authority of Abdullah b. Mas'ud: We once said: Messenger of Allah, would we be held responsible for our deeds committed in the state of ignorance? He (the Holy Prophet) observed: He who did good deeds in Islam would not be held responsible for what he did in the state of ignorance, but he who committed evil (after having come within the fold of Islam) would be held responsible for his previous and later deeds. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0219. ------------------------------ Chapter : Would (people) be held responsible for the deeds committed during the state of ignorance?. This hadith has been transmitted by Minjab b. al-Harith Tamimi with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0220. ------------------------------ Chapter : Islam effaces all the previous misdeeds and so do Migration and Pilgrimage. It is narrated on the authority of Ibn Shamasa Mahri that he said: We went to Amr b. al-As and he was about to die. He wept for a long time and turned his face towards the wall. His son said: Did the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him not give you tidings of this? Did the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) not give you tidings of this? He (the narrator) said: He turned his face (towards the audience) and said: The best thing which we can count upon is the testimony that there is no god but Allah and that Muhammad is the Apostle of Allah. Verily I have passed through three phases. (The first one) in which I found myself averse to none else more than I was averse to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and there was no other desire stronger in me than the one that I should overpower him and kill him. Had I died in this state, I would have been definitely one of the denizens of Fire. When Allah instilled the love of Islam in my heart, I came to the Apostle (may peace be upon him) and said: Stretch out your right hand so that may pledge my allegiance to you. He stretched out his right hand, I withdrew my hand, He (the Holy Prophet) said: What has happened to you, O 'Amr? replied: I intend to lay down some condition. He asked: What condition do you intend to put forward? I said: should be granted pardon. He (the Holy Prophet) observed: Are you not aware of the fact that Islam wipes out all the previous (misdeeds)? Verily migration wipes out all the previous (misdeeds), and verily the pilgrimage wipes out all the (previous) misdeeds. And then no one as or dear to me than the Messenger of Allah and none was more sublime in my eyes than he, Never could I, pluck courage to catch a full glimpse of his face due to its splendour. So if I am asked to describe his features, I cannot do that for I have not eyed him fully. Had I died in this state had every reason to hope that I would have bee among the dwellers of Paradise. Then we were responsible for certain things (in the light of which)I am unable to know what is in store for me. When I die, let neither female mourner nor fire accompany me. When you bury me, fill my grave well with earth, then stand around it for the time within which a camel is slaughtered and its meat is distributed so that I may enjoy your intimacy and (in your company) ascertain what answer I can give to the messengers (angels) of Allah. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0221. ------------------------------ Chapter : Islam effaces all the previous misdeeds and so do Migration and Pilgrimage. It is narrated on the authority of Ibn 'Abbas that some persons amongst the polytheist had committed a large number of murders and had excessively indulged in fornication. Then they came to Muhammad (may peace be upon him) and said: Whatever you assert and whatever you call to is indeed good. But if you inform us that there is atonement of our past deeds (then we would embrace Islam). Then it was revealed: And those who call not unto another god along with Allah and slay not any soul which Allah has forbidden except in the cause of justice, nor commit fornication; and he who does this shall meet the requital of sin. Multiplied for him shall be the torment on the Day of Resurrection, and he shall therein abide disgraced, except him who repents a believes and does good deeds. Then these! for the Allah shall change their vices into virtues. Verily Allah is Ever Forgiving, Merciful (xxv. 68-70). Say thou: O my bondsmen woo have committed extravagance against themselves despair not of the Mercy of Allah I Verily Allah will forgive the sins altogether. He is indeed the Forgiving, the Merciful (xxxix. 53). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0222. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the virtuous act of a man before embracing Islam. Hakim b. Hizam reported to 'Urwa b. Zubair that he said to the Messenger of Allah: Do you think that there is any thing for me (of he reward with the Lord) for the deed of religious purification that I did in the state of ignorance? Upon this he (the Apostle of Allah) said to him: You accepted Islam with all the previous virtues that you practised. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0223. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the virtuous act of a man before embracing Islam. Hakim b. Hizam reported to 'Urwa b. Zubair that he said to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him): Messenger of Allah, do you think if there is any reward (of the Lord with me on the Day of Resurrection) for the deeds of religious purification that I performed in the state of ignorance, such as charity, freeing a slave, cementing of blood-relations? Upon this he (the Apostle of Allah) said to him: You have accepted Islam with all the previous virtues that you had practised. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0224. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the virtuous act of a man before embracing Islam. It is narrate on the authority of Hakim b. Hizam: I said: Messenger of Allah, I did so some of the deeds in the state of ignorance. (One of the transmitters Hisham b. Urwa explained them as acts of piety. Upon this the Messenger, of Allah remarked: You have embraced Islam with all the previous acts of virtue. I said: By God, I would leave nothing undone in Islam the like of which I did in the state of ignorance. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0225. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the virtuous act of a man before embracing Islam. Hisham b. Urwa narrated it on the authority of his father: Hakim b. Hizam freed one hundred slave and donated one hundred camels (for the sake of Allah) during the state of ignorance. Then he freed one hundred slaves and donated one hundred camel(for the sake of Allah) after) he had embraced Islam. He subsequently came to the Apostle (may peace be upon him). The rest of the hadith is the same as narrated above. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0226. ------------------------------ Chapter : The veracity of Faith and its sincerity. It is narrated on the authority of 'Abdullah (b. Mas'ud) that when this verse was revealed: "It is those who believe and confound not their belief with wrongdoing" (vi. 82), the Companions of the Messenger of Allah wore greatly perturbed. They said: Who amongst us (is so fortunate) that he does not wrong himself? Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) remarked: It does not mean that which you presume It implies that which Luqman said to his son: O my son, do not associate anything with Allah, for indeed it is the gravest wrongdoing (xxxi. 13). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0227. ------------------------------ Chapter : The veracity of Faith and its sincerity. This hadith is narrated by another chain of transmitters, (namely) lshaq b. Ibrahim. Ibn Idris says: My father transmitted it from Aban b. Taghlib who heard it from A'mash; then I heard it also from him (A'mash). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0228. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the Words of Allah whether you manifest whatever is in your mind or hide it. It is reported on the authority of Abu Huraira that when it was revealed to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him): To Allah belongs whatever is in the heavens and whatever is in the earth and whether you disclose that which is in your mind or conceal it, Allah will call you to account according to it. Then He forgives whom He pleases and chastises whom He Pleases; and Allah is over everything Potent" (ii. 284), the Companions of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) felt it hard and severe and they came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and sat down on their knees and said: Messenger of Allah, we were assigned some duties which were within our power to perform, such as prayer, fasting, struggling (in the cause of Allah), charity. Then this (the above-mentioned) verse was revealed unto you and it is beyond our power to live up to it. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Do you intend to say what the people of two Muslim Books (Jews and Christians) said before you: "We hear and disobey"? You should rather say: "We hear and we obey, (we seek) Thy forgiveness, our Lord! and unto Thee is the return." And they said: "We hear and we obey, (we seek) Thy forgiveness, Our Lord! and unto Thee is the return." When the people recited it and it smoothly flowed on their tongues, then Allah revealed immediately afterwards: "The Apostle believes in that which is sent down unto him from his Lord, and so do the believers. Each one believes in Allah and His Angels and His Muslim Books and His Apostles, saying: We differentiate not between any of His Apostles and they say: We hearken and we obey: (we seek) Thy forgiveness, our Lord! and unto Thee is the return" (ii. 285). When they did that, Allah abrogated this (verse) and the Great, Majestic Allah revealed: "Allah burdens not a soul beyond its capacity. It gets every good that it earns and it suffers every ill that it earns. Our Lord, punish us not if we forget or make a mistake." (The Prophet said:) Yes, our Lord! do not lay on us a burden as Thou didst lay on those before us. (The Prophet said:) Yes, our Lord, impose not on us (burdens) which we have not the strength to bear (The Prophet said:) Yes, and pardon us and grant us protection! and have mercy on us. Thou art our Patron, so grant us victory over the disbelieving people" (ii. 286). He (the Lord) said: Yes. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0229. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the Words of Allah whether you manifest whatever is in your mind or hide it. It is narrated on the authority of Ibn 'Abbas: When this verse: "Whether you disclose that which is in your mind or conceal it, Allah will call you to account according to it" (ii 284), there entered in their minds something (of that fear) such as had never entered their hearts (before). The Apostle (may peace be upon him) observed: Say: We have heard and obeyed and submitted ourselves. He (the reporter) said: Allah instilled faith in their hearts and He revealed this verse: "Allah burdens not a soul beyond its capacity. It gets every good that it earns and it suffers every ill that it earns. Our Lord, call us not to account if we forget or make a mistake. He the (Lord) said: I indeed did it. Our Lord! do not lay on us a burden as Thou didst lay on those before us. He (our Lord) said: I indeed did it. And pardon us, have mercy on us. Thou art our Protector" (ii. 286). He said: I indeed did it. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0230. ------------------------------ Chapter : Allah disregards the premonition of the evil promptings of the heart so long as they do not take a firm-root. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: Verily Allah forgave my people the evil promptings which arise within their hearts as long as they did not speak about them or did not act upon them. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0231. ------------------------------ Chapter : Allah disregards the premonition of the evil promptings of the heart so long as they do not take a firm-root. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: Verily the Great and Mighty Allah forgave my people the evil promptings arising in their minds, but they neither talked about them nor acted upon them. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0232. ------------------------------ Chapter : Allah disregards the premonition of the evil promptings of the heart so long as they do not take a firm-root. The same hadith has been narrated by Zuhair b. Harb, Waki, Ishaq b. Mansur, Husain b. 'Ali. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0233. ------------------------------ Chapter : Whenever a person intends to do a good deed, it is recorded, but whenever he intends to commit evil, it is not written. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The Great and the Glorious Lord said (to angels): Whenever My bondsman intends to corn it an evil, do not record it against him, but if he actually commits it, then write it as one evil. And when he intends to do good but does not do it, then take it down is one act of goodness, but if he does it, then write down ten good deeds (in his record). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0234. ------------------------------ Chapter : Whenever a person intends to do a good deed, it is recorded, but whenever he intends to commit evil, it is not written. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: Allah, the Great and Glorious, said: Whenever my bondsman intends to do good, but does not do it, I write one good act for him, but if he puts it into practice I wrote from ten to seven hundred good deeds in favour of him. When he intends to commit an evil, but does not actually do it, do not record it. But if he does it, I write only one evil. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0235. ------------------------------ Chapter : Whenever a person intends to do a good deed, it is recorded, but whenever he intends to commit evil, it is not written. Abu Huraira reported that Muhammad, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), said: When it occurs to my bondsman that he should do a good deed but he actually does not do it, record one good to him, but if he puts it into practice, I make an entry of ten good acts in his favour. When it occurs to him to do evil, but he does not commit it, I forgive that. But if he commits it, I record one evil against his name. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed. The angels said: That bondsman of Yours intends to commit evil. though His Lord is more Vigilant than he. Upon this He (the Lord) said: Watch him; if he commits (evil), write it against his name but if he refrains from doing it, write one good deed or him, for he desisted from doing it for My sake. The Messenger of Allah said: He who amongst you is good of faith, all his good acts are multiplied from ten to seven hundred times (and are recorded in his name) and all the evils that he commits are recorded as such (i.e. without increase) till he meets Allah. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0236. ------------------------------ Chapter : Whenever a person intends to do a good deed, it is recorded, but whenever he intends to commit evil, it is not written. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: He who intended to do good, but did not do it, one good was recorded for him, and he who intended to do good and also did it, ten to seven hundred good deeds were recorded for him. And he who intended evil, but did not commit it, no entry was made against his name, but if he committed that, it was recorded. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0237. ------------------------------ Chapter : Whenever a person intends to do a good deed, it is recorded, but whenever he intends to commit evil, it is not written. It is narrated on the authority of Ibn Abbas that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) transmitted it from the Blessed and Great Lord: Verily Allah recorded the good and the evil and then made it clear that he who intended good but did not do it, Allah recorded one complete good in his favour, but if he intended it and also did it, the Glorious and Great Allah recorded ten to seven hundred virtues and even more to his credit. But it he intended evil, but did not commit it, Allah wrote down full one good in his favour. If he intended that and also committed it, Allah made an entry of one evil against him. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0238. ------------------------------ Chapter : Whenever a person intends to do a good deed, it is recorded, but whenever he intends to commit evil, it is not written. This hadith has been narrated with another chain of transmitters with the addition of these words: Allah would even wipe out (the evil committed by a man) and Allah does not put to destruction anyone except he who is doomed to destruction. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0239. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to evil suggestion or prompting in faith and what should be said when it occurs to the mind of a man. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that some people from amongst the Companions of the Apostle (may peace be upon him) came to him and said: Verily we perceive in our minds that which every one of us considers it too grave to express. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Do you really perceive it? They said: Yes. Upon this he remarked: That is the faith manifest. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0240. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to evil suggestion or prompting in faith and what should be said when it occurs to the mind of a man. The same hadith has been transmitted by Muhammad b. 'Amr, Abu Baker b. Ishaq, Abu'l-Jawwab, A'mash and Abu Huraira. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0241. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to evil suggestion or prompting in faith and what should be said when it occurs to the mind of a man. It is narrated on the authority of 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud that the Apostle (may peace be upon him) was asked about evil prompting, to which he replied: It is pure faith. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0242. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to evil suggestion or prompting in faith and what should be said when it occurs to the mind of a man. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Men will continue to question one another till this is propounded: Allah created all things but who created Allah? He who found himself confronted with such a situation should say: I affirm my faith in Allah. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0243. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to evil suggestion or prompting in faith and what should be said when it occurs to the mind of a man. This hadith has been transmitted by Mahmud b. Ghailan by another chain of transmitters (and the words are): The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The Satan will come to everyone of you and say: Who created the heaven, who created the earth? (And the man) replies: It is Allah, Then the remaining part of the hadith was narrated as mentioned above and the words 'His prophets" were added to it. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0244. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to evil suggestion or prompting in faith and what should be said when it occurs to the mind of a man. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah may peace be upon him) observed: The Satan comes to everyone of you and says: Who created this and that? till he questions: Who created your Lord? When he comes to that, one should seek refuge in Allah and keep away (from such idle thoughts). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0245. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to evil suggestion or prompting in faith and what should be said when it occurs to the mind of a man. This hadith is transmitted by Urwa b. Zubair on the authority of Abu Huraira (and the words are):The Satan comes to the bondsman (of Allah) and says: Who created this and that? The remaining part of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0246. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to evil suggestion or prompting in faith and what should be said when it occurs to the mind of a man. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: People will constantly ask you questions pertaining to knowledge till they would say: Allah created us, but who created Allah? he (the narrator) says: he (Abu Huraira) was (at the time of narrating this hadith) catching hold of the hand of a man and he said: Allah and the Messenger told the truth. Two persons have already put me this question, and this is the third one, or he said: One man has put me this question and he is the second one. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0247. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to evil suggestion or prompting in faith and what should be said when it occurs to the mind of a man. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that he said: The people will constantly, and the rest of the hadith is the same as that transmitted by 'Abdul-Warith with the exception that there is no mention of the Apostle of Allah in that, but he observed at the end of the hadith: Allah and His Messenger told the truth. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0248. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to evil suggestion or prompting in faith and what should be said when it occurs to the mind of a man. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to me: they (the people) till constantly ask you, Abu Huraira, (about different things pertaining to religion) the they would say: Well, there is Allah, but after all who created Allah? He (Abu Huraira) narrated: Once we were in the mosque that some of the Bedouins came there and said: Well, there is Allah, but who created Allah? He (the narrator) said: I took hold of the pebbles in my fist and flung at them and remarked: Stand up, stand up (go away) my friend (the Holy Prophet) told the truth. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0249. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to evil suggestion or prompting in faith and what should be said when it occurs to the mind of a man. Yazid b. al-Asamm said: I heard Abu Huraira saying that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: people will certainly ask you about everything till they will propound: Allah created every thing, but who created Allah? Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0250. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to evil suggestion or prompting in faith and what should be said when it occurs to the mind of a man. Anas b. Malik transmitted it from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) that the Great and Glorious Allah said: Verily your people would constantly question about this and that till they would say: Well, it is Allah Who created the creation, but who created Allah? Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0251. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to evil suggestion or prompting in faith and what should be said when it occurs to the mind of a man. This hadith has been narrated by another chain of transmitters with the exception that Ishaq made no mention of this: Allah said: Verily your people. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0252. ------------------------------ Chapter : Warning for one appropriating the right of a Muslim by taking a false oath: the fire (of Hell) is his chastisement. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Umama that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: He who appropriated the right of a Muslim by (swearing a false) oath, Allah would make Hell-fire necessary for him and would declare Paradise forbidden for him. A person said to him: Messenger of Allah, even if it is something insignificant? He (the Holy Prophet) replied:(Yes)even if it is the twig of the arak tree. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0253. ------------------------------ Chapter : Warning for one appropriating the right of a Muslim by taking a false oath: the fire (of Hell) is his chastisement. This hadith has been transmitted by another chain of narrators: Abu Bakr b. Abi Shaiba, Ishaq b. Ibrahim, Harun b. Abdullah, Abi Usama, Walid b. Kathir, Muhammad b. Ka'b, his brother Abdullah b. Ka'b and Abi Usama. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0254. ------------------------------ Chapter : Warning for one appropriating the right of a Muslim by taking a false oath: the fire (of Hell) is his chastisement. It is narrated on the authority of Abdullah (b. Umar) that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: He who perjured with a view to appropriating the property of a Muslim, and he is in fact a liar and would meet Allah in a state that He would be angry with him. He (the narrator) said: There came Ash'ath b. Qais and said (to the people): What does Abu Abdur-Rahman (the Kunya of Abdullah b. Umar) narrate to you? They replied: So and so. Upon this he remarked: Abu Abdur-Rahman told the truth. This (command) has been revealed in my case. There was a piece of land in Yemen over which I and another person had a claim. I brought the dispute with him to the Apostle of Allah (to decide) He (the Holy Prophet) said: Can you produce an evidence (in your support)? I said: No. He (the Holy Prophet) observed: (Then the decision would be made) on his oath. I said: He would readily take an oath. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) remarked: He who perjured for appropriating the wealth of a Muslim, whereas he is a liar, would meet Allah while He would be angry with him. This verse was then revealed: "Verily those who barter Allah's covenant and their oaths at a small price..." (iii 77). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0255. ------------------------------ Chapter : Warning for one appropriating the right of a Muslim by taking a false oath: the fire (of Hell) is his chastisement. It is narrated on the authority of Abdullah that he heard the Prophet (may peace be upon him) saying: He who took an oath in order to entitle himself (to the possession) of a property, whereas he is a liar, would meet Allah in a state that He would be very much angry with him. Then the remaining part of the hadith was narrated as transmitted by A'mash but with the exception of these words: There was a dispute between me and another person in regard to a well. We referred this dispute to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Upon this he remarked: Either (you should produce) two witnesses (to support your contention) or his oath (would be accepted as valid). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0256. ------------------------------ Chapter : Warning for one appropriating the right of a Muslim by taking a false oath: the fire (of Hell) is his chastisement. Ibn Mas'ud says: I heard the Messenger of Allah observing: He who took an oath on the property of a Muslim without legitimate right would meet Allah and He would be angry, with him. Then the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) in support of his contention recited the verse: "Verily those who barter Allah's covenant and their oaths at a small price. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0257. ------------------------------ Chapter : Warning for one appropriating the right of a Muslim by taking a false oath: the fire (of Hell) is his chastisement. It is narrated on the authority of Wa'il that there came a person from Hadramaut and another one from Kinda to the Apostle (may peace be upon him). One who had come from Hadramaut said: Messenger of Allah, only this man has appropriated my land which belonged to my father. The one who had came from Kinda contended. This is my land and is in my possession: I cultivate it. There is no right for him in it. The Messenger of Allah said to the Hadramite: Have you any evidence (to support you)? He replied in the negative. He (the Apostle of Allah) said: Then your case is to be decided on his oath. He (the Hadramite) said: Messenger of Allah, he is a liar and cares not what he swears and has no regard for anything. Upon this he (the Messenger of Allah) remarked: For you then there is no other help to it. He (the man from Kinda) set out to take an oath. When he turned his back the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: If he took an oath on his property with a view to usurping it, he would certainly meet his Lord in a state that He would turn away from him. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0258. ------------------------------ Chapter : Warning for one appropriating the right of a Muslim by taking a false oath: the fire (of Hell) is his chastisement. Wa'il reported it on the authority of his father Hujr: I was with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) that two men came there disputing over a piece of land. One of them said: Messenger of Allah, this man appropriated my land without justification in the days of ignorance. The (claimant) was Imru'l-Qais b.'Abis al-Kindi and his opponent was Rabi'a b. 'Iban He (the Holy Prophet) said (to the claimant): Have you evidence (to substantiate your claim)? He replied: I have no evidence. Upon this he (the Messenger of Allah) remarked: Then his (that is of the defendant) is the oath. He (the claimant) said: In this case he (the defendant) would appropriate this (the property). He (the Holy Prophet) said: There is than no other way left for you but this. He (the narrator) said: When he (the defendant) stood up to take oath, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who appropriated the land wrongfully would meet Allah in a state that He would be angry with him. Ishaq in his narration mentions Rabi'a b. 'Aidan (instead of Rabi'a b. 'Ibdan). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0259. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the fact that violable is the blood of one who makes an attempt to take possession of the property of another without any legitimate right. If such a man is killed his abode is Fire and he who dies in protecting his property is a martyr. Abu Huraira reported: A person came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: Messenger of Allah, what do you think if a man comes to me in order to appropriate my possession? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Don't surrender your possession to him. He (the inquirer) said: If he fights me? He (the Holy Prophet) remarked: Then fight (with him). He (the inquirer) again said: What do you think if I am killed? He (the Holy Prophet) observed: You would be a martyr. He (the inquirer) said: What do you think of him (Messenger of Allah) If I kill him. He (the Holy Prophet) said: he would be in the Fire. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0260. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the fact that violable is the blood of one who makes an attempt to take possession of the property of another without any legitimate right. If such a man is killed his abode is Fire and he who dies in protecting his property is a martyr. It is narrated on the authority of Thabit, that when 'Abdullah b. 'Amr and 'Anbasa b. Abi Sufyan were about to fight against each other, Khalid b. 'As rode to 'Abdullah b. 'Amr and persuaded him (not to do so). Upon this Abdullah b. 'Amr said: Are you not aware that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had observed: "He who died in protecting his property is a martyr." This hadith has been narrated by Muhammad b. Hatim, Muhammad b. Bakr, Ahmad b. 'Uthman Naufali, Abu 'Asim, Ibn Juraij. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0261. ------------------------------ Chapter : The ruler who is unjust to his subjects deserves punishment of Fire. Hasan reported: 'Ubaidullah b. Ziyad paid a visit to Ma'qil b. Yasar Muzani in his illness of which he (later on) died. (At this juncture) Ma'qil said: I am going to narrate to you a hadith which I have heard from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and which I would not have transmitted if I knew that I would survive. Verily I have heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) say: There is none amongst the bondsmen who was entrusted with the affairs of his subjects and he died in such a state that he was dishonest in his dealings with those over whom he ruled that the Paradise is not forbidden for him. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0262. ------------------------------ Chapter : The ruler who is unjust to his subjects deserves punishment of Fire. Hasan reported: Ubaidullah b. Ziyad went to see Ma'qil b. Yasir and he was ailing. He ('Ubaidullah) inquired (about his health) to which he (Ma'qil) replied: I am narrating to you a hadith which I avoided narrating to you (before). Verily the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: Allah does not entrust to his bondsman the responsibility of managing the affairs of his subjects and he dies as a dishonest (ruler) but Paradise is forbidden by Allah for such a (ruler). He (Ibn Ziyad) said: Why did you not narrate it to me before this day? He replied: I (in fact) did not narrate it to you as it was not (fit) for me to narrate that to you. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0263. ------------------------------ Chapter : The ruler who is unjust to his subjects deserves punishment of Fire. Hasan reported: We were with Ma'qil b. Yasar inquiring about his health that Ubaidullah b. Ziyad came there. Ma'qil said to him: Verily I am going to narrate to you a hadith which I heard from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Then he narrated the hadith like those two (mentioned above). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0264. ------------------------------ Chapter : The ruler who is unjust to his subjects deserves punishment of Fire. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Malih that Ubaidullah b. Ziyad visited Ma'qil b. Yasar in his illness. Ma'qil said to him: I am narrating to you a hadith which I would have never narrated to you had I not been in death-bed. I heard Allah's apostle (may peace be upon him) say: A ruler who has been entrusted with the affairs of the Muslims but he makes no endeavours (for the material and moral uplift) and does not sincerely mean (their welfare) would not enter Paradise along with them. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0265. ------------------------------ Chapter : Removal of Trustworthiness and Faith from some hearts and appearance of discord therein. Hudhaifa reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) narrated to us two ahadith. I have seen one (crystallized into reality), and I am waiting for the other. He told us: Trustworthiness descended in the innermost (root) of the hearts of people. Then the Qur'an was revealed and they learnt from the Qur'an and they learnt from the Sunnah. Then he (the Holy Prophet) told us about the removal of trustworthiness. He said: The man would have a wink of sleep and trustworthiness would be taken away from his heart leaving the impression of a faint mark. He would again sleep and trustworthiness would be taken away from his heart leaving an impression of a blister, as if you rolled down an ember on your foot and it was vesicled. He would see a swelling having nothing in it. He (the Holy Prophet) then took up a pebble and rolled it down over his foot and (said): The people would enter into transactions amongst one another and hardly a person would be left who would return (things) entrusted to him. (And there would be so much paucity of honest persons) till it would be said: There in such a such tribe is a trustworthy man. And they would also say about a person: How prudent he is, how broad-minded he is and how intelligent he is, whereas in his heart there would not be faith even to the weight of a mustard seed. I have passed through a time in which I did not care with whom amongst you I entered into a transaction, for if he were a Muslim his faith would compel him to discharge his obligations to me and it he were a Christian or a Jew, the ruler would compel him to discharge his obligations to me. But today I would not enter into a transaction with you except so and so. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0266. ------------------------------ Chapter : Removal of Trustworthiness and Faith from some hearts and appearance of discord therein. This hadith has been transmitted by another chain of transmitters: Ibn Numair, Waki', Ishaq b. Ibrahim, 'Isa b. Yunus on the authority of A'mash. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0267. ------------------------------ Chapter : Removal of Trustworthiness and Faith from some hearts and appearance of discord therein. It is narrated on the authority of Hudhaifa: We were sitting in the company of Umar and he said: Who amongst you has heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) talking about the turmoil? Some people said: It is we who heard it. Upon this be remarked: Perhaps by turmoil you presume the unrest of man in regard to his household or neighbour, they replied: Yes. He ('Umar) observed: Such (an unrest) would be done away with by prayer, fasting and charity. But who amongst you has heard from the Apostle (may peace be upon him) describing that turmoil which would come like the wave of the ocean. Hudhaifa said: The people hushed into silence, I replied: It is I. He ('Umar) said: Ye, well, your father was also very pious. Hudhaifa said: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be, upon him) observing: Temptations will be presented to men's hearts as reed mat is woven stick by stick and any heart which is impregnated by them will have a black mark put into it, but any heart which rejects them will have a white mark put in it. The result is that there will become two types of hearts: one white like a white stone which will not be harmed by any turmoil or temptation, so long as the heavens and the earth endure; and the other black and dust-coloured like a vessel which is upset, not recognizing what is good or rejecting what is abominable, but being impregnated with passion. Hudhaifa said: I narrated to him ('Umar): There is between you and that (turmoil) a closed door, but there is every likelihood of its being broken. 'Umar said: Would it be broken? You have, been rendered fatherless. Had it been opened, it would have been perhaps closed also. I said: No, it would be broken, and I narrated to him: Verily that door implies a person who would be killed or die. There is no mistake in this hadith. Abu Khalid narrated: I said to Sa'd, O Abu Malik, what do you mean by the term "Aswad Murbadda"? He replied: High degree of whiteness in blackness. I said: What is meant by "Alkoozu Mujakhiyyan"? He replied: A vessel turned upside down. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0268. ------------------------------ Chapter : Removal of Trustworthiness and Faith from some hearts and appearance of discord therein. It is narrated on the authority of Rib'i (b. Hirash). When Hudhaifa came from 'Umar he sat down to narrate to us and said: Verily yesterday when I was sitting with the Commander of the believers he asked his companions: When amongst you retains in his memory the utterance of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) with regard to the turmoil?-and he cited the hadith like the hadith narrated on the authority of Abu Khalid, but he did not mention the exposition of his words (Murbaddan) and (Mujakhiyyan). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0269. ------------------------------ Chapter : Removal of Trustworthiness and Faith from some hearts and appearance of discord therein. It is transmitted by Rib'i b. Hirash, who narrated it on the authority of Hudhaifa that verily 'Umar said: Who would narrate to us or who amongst you would narrate to us (and Hudhaifa was one amongst them) what the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said about the turmoil? Hudhaifa said: I will, and recited the hadith like that transmitted by Abu Malik on the authority of Rib'i and he observed in connection with this hadith that Hudhaifa remarked: I am narrating to you a hadith and it has no mistake, and said: That it is transmitted from he Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0270. ------------------------------ Chapter : Islam was initiated as something strange, and it would revert to its (old position) of being strange, and it would concentrate between the two mosques. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Islam initiated as something strange, and it would revert to its (old position) of being strange, so good tidings for the stranger. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0271. ------------------------------ Chapter : Islam was initiated as something strange, and it would revert to its (old position) of being strange, and it would concentrate between the two mosques. It is narrated on the authority of Ibn 'Umar ('Abdullah b. 'Umar) that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: Verily Islam started as something strange and it would again revert (to its old position) of being strange just as it started, and it would recede between the two mosques just as the serpent crawls back into its hole. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0272. ------------------------------ Chapter : Islam was initiated as something strange, and it would revert to its (old position) of being strange, and it would concentrate between the two mosques. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Verily the faith would recede to Medina just as the serpent crawls back into its hole. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0273. ------------------------------ Chapter : The effacing of Faith in the later age. It is narrated on the authority of Anas that verily the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: The Hour (Resurrection) would not come so long as Allah is supplicated in the world. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0274. ------------------------------ Chapter : The effacing of Faith in the later age. It is narrated on the authority of Anas that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The Hour (Resurrection) would not come upon anyone so long as he supplicates Allah. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0275. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of concealing the Faith of one who fears. Hudhaifa reported: We were in the company of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) when he said: Count for me those who profess al-Islam. We said: Messenger of Allah, do you entertain any fear concerning us and we are (at this time) between six hundred and seven hundred (in strength). He (the Holy Prophet) remarked: You don't perceive; you may be put to some trial, He (the narrator) said: We actually suffered trial so much so that some of our men were constrained to offer their prayers in concealment. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0276. ------------------------------ Chapter : To habituate the heart with Faith which due to its weakness, is scared and the forbiddance to call positively one believer without a definite proof. Sa'd narrated it on the authority of his father (Abi Waqqas) that he observed: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) distributed shares (of booty among his Companions). I said: Messenger of Allah! Give it to so and so, for verily he is a believer. Upon this the Apostle of Allah remarked: Or a Muslim. I (the narrator) repeated it (the word "believer") thrice and he (the Holy Prophet) turned his back upon me (and substituted the word) "Muslim," and then observed: I bestow it (this share) to a man out of apprehension lest Allah should throw him prostrate into the fire (of Hell) whereas in fact the other man is dearer to me than he. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0277. ------------------------------ Chapter : To habituate the heart with Faith which due to its weakness, is scared and the forbiddance to call positively one believer without a definite proof. It is narrated on the authority of Sa'd that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) bestowed upon a group of persons (things), and Sa'd was sitting amongst them. Sa'd said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) ignored some of them. And he who was ignored seemed to be more deserving in my eyes (as compared with others). I (Sa'd) said: Messenger of Allah I why is it that you did not give to such and such (man)? Verily I see him a believer. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: Or a Muslim? I kept quiet for some time but I was again impelled (to express) what I knew about him. I said: Messenger of Allah why is it that you did not give it to such and such? Verily, by Allah, see him a believer. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) remarked: (Nay, not a believer) but a Muslim. He (Sa'd) said: I again kept quite for some time but what I knew about him again impelled me (to express my opinion) and I said: Why is it that you did not give (the share) to so and so: By Allah, verily I see him a believer. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) remarked; (Nay, not so) but a Muslim. Verily (at times) I give (a share) to a certain man apprehending that he may not be thrown prostrate in the Fire, whereas the other man (who is not given) is dearer to me (as compared with him). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0278. ------------------------------ Chapter : To habituate the heart with Faith which due to its weakness, is scared and the forbiddance to call positively one believer without a definite proof. Sa'd reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) bestowed upon a group of persons (booty) and I was sitting with them. The remaining part of the hadith is the same as mentioned (above) with the addition I stood up and went to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and whispered to him: Why did you omit such and such a man? Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0279. ------------------------------ Chapter : To habituate the heart with Faith which due to its weakness, is scared and the forbiddance to call positively one believer without a definite proof. The same hadith has been narrated on the authority of Muhammad b Sa'd and these words (are also there): The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) gave a stroke on my neck or between my two shoulders and said: Sa'd, do you fight with me simply because I gave (a share) to a man? Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0280. ------------------------------ Chapter : The heart is more satisfied on seeing evidence. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: We have more claim to doubt than Ibrahim (may peace be upon him) when he said: My Lord! Show me how Thou wilt quicken the dead. He said: Believeth thou not? He said: Yes! But that my heart may rest at ease. He (the Holy Prophet) observed: May Lord take mercy on Lot, that he wanted a strong support, and had I stayed (in the prison) as long as Yusuf stayed, I would have responded to him who invited me. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0281. ------------------------------ Chapter : The heart is more satisfied on seeing evidence. 'Abdullah b. Muhammad narrated the same hadith on the authority of Abu Huraira and in the transmission by Malik the words are that he (the Holy Prophet) recited the verse: "but that my heart may rest at ease" and completed it. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0282. ------------------------------ Chapter : The heart is more satisfied on seeing evidence. This hadith has also been narrated by Abd b. Humaid Ya'qub, i.e. son of Ibrahim b. Sa'd, Abu Uwais, Zuhri, like the one narrated by Malik with the same chain of transmission and said: He recited this verse till he completed it. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0283. ------------------------------ Chapter : The necessity of affirming the Prophethood of our Apostle Muhammad (may peace be upon him) who is the Apostle sent to the whole of humanity. and the abrogation of other religions with his religion. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: There has never been a Prophet amongst the prophets who was not bestowed with a sign amongst the signs which were bestowed (on the earlier prophets). Human beings believed in it and verily I have been conferred upon revelation (the Holy Qur'an) which Allah revealed to me. I hope that I will have the greatest following on the Day of Resurrection. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0284. ------------------------------ Chapter : The necessity of affirming the Prophethood of our Apostle Muhammad (may peace be upon him) who is the Apostle sent to the whole of humanity. and the abrogation of other religions with his religion. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: By Him in Whose hand is the life of Muhammad, he who amongst the community of Jews or Christians hears about me, but does not affirm his belief in that with which I have been sent and dies in this state (of disbelief), he shall be but one of the denizens of Hell-Fire. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0285. ------------------------------ Chapter : The necessity of affirming the Prophethood of our Apostle Muhammad (may peace be upon him) who is the Apostle sent to the whole of humanity. and the abrogation of other religions with his religion. It is narrated on the authority of Sha'bi that one among the citizens of Khurasan asked him: O Abu! some of the people amongst us who belong to Khurasan say that a person who freed his bondswoman and then married her is like one who rode over a sacrificial animal. Sha'bi said: Abu Burda b. Abi Musa narrated it to me on the authority of his father that verily the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: There are three (classes of persons) who would be given a double reward. One who is amongst the People of the Muslim Book and believed in his apostle and (lived) to see the time of Apostle Muhammad (may peace be upon him) and affirmed his faith in him and followed him and attested his truth, for him is the double reward; and the slave of the master who discharges all those obligations that he owes to Allah and discharges his duties that he owes to his master, for him there is a double reward. And a man who had a bondswoman and fed her and fed her well, then taught her good manners, and did that well and later on granted her freedom and married her, for him is the double reward. Then Sha'bi said: Accept this hadith without (giving) anything. Formerly a man was (obliged) to travel to Medina even for a smaller hadith than this. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0286. ------------------------------ Chapter : The necessity of affirming the Prophethood of our Apostle Muhammad (may peace be upon him) who is the Apostle sent to the whole of humanity. and the abrogation of other religions with his religion. This hadith has been narrated by another chain of transmitters like Abu Bakr b. Abi Shaiba, 'Abda b. Sulaiman Ibn Abi 'Umar Sufyan, 'Ubaidullah b. Mu'adh, Shu'ba; all of them heard it from Salih b. Salih. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0287. ------------------------------ Chapter : The descent of Jesus son of Mary, and he will judge according to the Shari'ah of our Apostle, Muhammad(may peace be upon him). Abu Huraira reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: By Him in Whose hand is my life, the son of Mary (may peace be upon him) will soon descend among you as a just judge. He will break crosses, kill swine and abolish Jizya and the wealth will pour forth to such an extent that no one will accept it. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0288. ------------------------------ Chapter : The descent of Jesus son of Mary, and he will judge according to the Shari'ah of our Apostle, Muhammad(may peace be upon him). The same hadith is transmitted from Zuhri with the same chain of transmission. But in the tradition narrated by Ibn 'Uyaina the words are: "impartial leader and just judge" and in the tradition narrated by Yunus: the "judge judging with justice" and "impartial leader" are not mentioned. And in the hadith narrated by Salih like the one transmitted by Laith the words are: "impartial judge". And in the hadith transmitted by Ziyad the words are: "Till one sajda is better than the world and what it contains. Then Abu Huraira used to say, "recite" if you like: Not one of the People of the Muslim Book will fail to believe in him before his death. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0289. ------------------------------ Chapter : The descent of Jesus son of Mary, and he will judge according to the Shari'ah of our Apostle, Muhammad(may peace be upon him). It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger or Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: I swear by Allah that the son of Mary will certainly descend as a just judge and he would definitely break the cross, and kill swine and abolish Jizya and would leave the young she-camel and no one would endeavour to (collect Zakat on it). Spite, mutual hatred and jealousy against one another will certainly disappear and when he summons people to accept wealth, not even one would do so. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0290. ------------------------------ Chapter : The descent of Jesus son of Mary, and he will judge according to the Shari'ah of our Apostle, Muhammad(may peace be upon him). It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: What will be your state when the son of Mary descends amongst you and there will be an Imam amongst you? Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0291. ------------------------------ Chapter : The descent of Jesus son of Mary, and he will judge according to the Shari'ah of our Apostle, Muhammad(may peace be upon him). It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that he heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: What would you do when the son of Mary would descend and lead you? Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0292. ------------------------------ Chapter : The descent of Jesus son of Mary, and he will judge according to the Shari'ah of our Apostle, Muhammad(may peace be upon him). It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: What would you do when the son of Mary would descend amongst you and would lead you as one amongst you? Ibn Abi Dhi'b on the authority of Abu Huraira narrated: Your leader amongst you. Ibn Abi Dhi'b said: Do you know what the words: "He would lead as one amongst you" mean? I said: Explain these to me. He said: He would lead you according to the Muslim Book of your: Lord (hallowed be He and most exalted) and the Sunnah of your Apostle (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0293. ------------------------------ Chapter : The descent of Jesus son of Mary, and he will judge according to the Shari'ah of our Apostle, Muhammad(may peace be upon him). Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) say: A section of my people will not cease fighting for the Truth and will prevail till the Day of Resurrection. He said: Jesus son of Mary would then descend and their (Muslims') commander would invite him to come and lead them in prayer, but he would say: No, some amongst you are commanders over some (amongst you). This is the honour from Allah for this Ummah. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0294. ------------------------------ Chapter : Description of the period in which Iman would not be acceptable to Allah. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The (Last) Hour shall not came till the sun rises from the place of its setting And on the day when it rises from the place of its setting even if all the people together affirmed their faith, it would not be of any avail to one who did not believe previously and derived no good out of his belief. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0295. ------------------------------ Chapter : Description of the period in which Iman would not be acceptable to Allah. This hadith has been narrated by another chain of transmitters, Abu Bakr b. Abi Shaiba, Ibn Numair, Abu Kuraib, Ibn Fudail. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0296. ------------------------------ Chapter : Description of the period in which Iman would not be acceptable to Allah. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: When three things appear faith will not benefit one who has not previously believed or has derived no good from his faith: the rising of the sun in its place of setting, the Dajjal, and the beast of the earth. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0297. ------------------------------ Chapter : Description of the period in which Iman would not be acceptable to Allah. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Dharr that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) one day said: Do you know where the sun goes? They replied: Allah and His Apostle know best. He (the Holy Prophet) observed: Verily it (the sun) glides till it reaches its resting place under the Throne. Then it falls prostrate and remains there until it is asked: Rise up and go to the place whence you came, and it goes back and continues emerging out from its rising place and then glides till it reaches its place of rest under the Throne and falls prostrate and remains in that state until it is asked: Rise up and return to the place whence you came, and it returns and emerges out from it rising place and the it glides (in such a normal way) that the people do not discern anything (unusual in it) till it reaches its resting place under the Throne. Then it would be said to it: Rise up and emerge out from the place of your setting, and it will rise from the place of its setting. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Do you know when it would happen? It would happen at the time when faith will not benefit one who has not previously believed or has derived no good from the faith. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0298. ------------------------------ Chapter : Description of the period in which Iman would not be acceptable to Allah. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Dharr that the Apostle of Allah(may peace be upon him) one day said: Do you know where the sun goes? The remaining part of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0299. ------------------------------ Chapter : Description of the period in which Iman would not be acceptable to Allah. Abu Dharr reported: I entered the mosque and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was sitting there. When the sun disappeared (from the sight) he said: O Abu Dharr! Do you know where it goes? He (the narrator) said: Allah and His Apostle know best. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Verily it goes and begs permission, for prostration (to Allah) and the permission is granted to it. Once it would be said: Return to the place whence you came, and then it would rise from its setting place. Then he, after the recitation of 'Abdullah recited it: And that is its appointed term. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0300. ------------------------------ Chapter : Description of the period in which Iman would not be acceptable to Allah. Abu Dharr reported: I asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) the (implication of the) words of Allah, the Exalted: The sun glides to its appointed resting place. He replied: Its appointed resting place is under the Throne. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0301. ------------------------------ Chapter : The beginning of Revelation to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). A'isha, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), reported: The first (form) with which was started the revelation to the Messenger of Allah was the true vision in sleep. And he did not see any vision but it came like the bright gleam of dawn. Thenceforth solitude became dear to him and he used to seclude himself in the cave of Hira', where he would engage in tahannuth (and that is a worship for a number of nights) before returning to his family and getting provisions again for this purpose. He would then return to Khadija and take provisions for a like period, till Truth came upon him while he was in the cave of Hira'. There came to him the angel and said: Recite, to which he replied: I am not lettered. He took hold of me [the Apostle said] and pressed me, till I was hard pressed; thereafter he let me off and said: Recite. I said: I am not lettered. He then again took hold of me and pressed me for the second time till I was hard pressed and then let me off and said: Recite, to which I replied: I am not lettered. He took hold of me and pressed me for the third time, till I was hard pressed and then let me go and said: Recite in the name of your Lord Who created, created man from a clot of blood. Recite. And your most bountiful Lord is He Who taught the use of pen, taught man what he knew not (al-Qur'an, xcvi. 1-4). Then the Prophet returned therewith, his heart was trembling, and he went to Khadija and said: Wrap me up, wrap me up ! So they wrapped him till the fear had left him. He then said to Khadija: O Khadija! what has happened to me? and he informed her of the happening, saying: I fear for myself. She replied: It can't be. Be happy. I swear by Allah that He shall never humiliate you. By Allah, you join ties of relationship, you speak the truth, you bear people's burden, you help the destitute, you entertain guests, and you help against the vicissitudes which affect people. Khadija then took him to Waraqa b. Naufal b. Asad b. 'Abd al-'Uzza, and he was the son of Khadija's uncle, i.e., the brother of her father. And he was the man who had embraced Christianity in the Days of Ignorance (i.e. before Islam) and he used to write Muslim Books in Arabic and, therefore, wrote Injil in Arabic as God willed that he should write. He was very old and had become blind Khadija said to him: O uncle! listen to the son of your brother. Waraqa b. Naufal said: O my nephew! what did you see? The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), then, informed him what he had seen, and Waraqa said to him: It is namus that God sent down to Musa. Would that I were then (during your prophetic career) a young man. Would that I might be alive when your people would expel you! The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Will they drive me out? Waraqa said: Yes. Never came a man with a like of what you have brought but met hostilities. If I see your day I shall help you wholeheartedly. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0302. ------------------------------ Chapter : The beginning of Revelation to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). This hadith has been narrated on the authority of 'Aisha with another chain of narrators like one transmitted by Yunus, i.e. the first thing with which the revelation was initiated with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) except the words: By Allah, Allah would never humiliate you, and Khadija said: O son of my uncle! Listen to the son of your brother. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0303. ------------------------------ Chapter : The beginning of Revelation to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). This hadith has been reported from 'Aisha by another chain of transmitters and the words are: He (the Holy Prophet) came to Khadija an his heart was trembling. The rest of the hadith has been narrated like one transmitted by Yunus and Ma'mar, but the first part is not mentioned, i.e. the first thing with which was started the revelation to the Holy Prophet was the true vision. And these words like those transmitted by Yunus are mentioned thus: By Allah, Allah would never humiliate you. And there is also a mention of the words of Khadija: O son of my uncle! Listen to the son of your brother. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0304. ------------------------------ Chapter : The beginning of Revelation to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Jabir b. 'Abdullah al-Ansari who was one of the Companions of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) reported The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) told about the intermission of revelation and narrated While I was walking I heard a voice from the sky, and raising my head I saw the angel who had come to me in Hira', sitting on a Throne between heaven and earth I was terror-stricken on that account and came back (to my family) and said: Wrap me up, wrap me up ! So they wrapped me up, and the Blessed and Most Exalted Allah sent down: "You who are shrouded, arise and deliver warning, your Lord magnify, your clothes cleanse, and defilement shun," and "defilement" means idols; and then the revelation was followed continuously. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0305. ------------------------------ Chapter : The beginning of Revelation to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). It is narrated on the authority of Jabir b. Abdullah that he heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) says: The wahi was intermitted for me for a small span of time and while I was walking, and then the hadith like the one narrated by Yunus was transmitted but with the exception of these words: I was terror-stricken till I fell on the ground. Abu Salama said: Defilement means idols. After this the revelation was speeded up and followed rapidly. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0306. ------------------------------ Chapter : The beginning of Revelation to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). This hadith, the like of one narrated by Yunus has also been transmitted by Ma'mar on the authority of al-Zuhri who narrated: Allah the Most Glorious and Exalted revealed this: "You who are shrouded, arise and deliver warning, your Lord magnify, your clothes cleanse and defilement shun," before making the prayer obligatory. I felt terror-stricken as narrated by Uqail. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0307. ------------------------------ Chapter : The beginning of Revelation to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Yahya reported: I asked Abu Salama what was revealed first from the Qur'an. He said:" O, the shrouded one." I said: Or "Recite." Jabir said: I am narrating to you what was narrated to us by the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). He said: I stayed in Hira' for one month and when my stay was completed, I come down and went into the heart of the valley. Somebody called me aloud. I looked in front of me, behind me, on the right of my side and on my left, but I did not see any body. I was again called and I looked about but saw nothing. I was called again and raised my head, and there on the Throne in the open atmosphere he, i.e. Gabriel (peace be upon him) was sitting. I began to tremble on account of fear. I came to Khadija and said: Wrap me up. They wrapped me up and threw water on me and Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, sent down this: you who are shrouded! arise and deliver warning, your Lord magnify, your clothes cleanse." Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0308. ------------------------------ Chapter : The beginning of Revelation to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Yahya b Abi Kathir has reported this hadith with the same chain of transmitters and narrated: And there he was sitting on the Throne between the heaven and the earth. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0309. ------------------------------ Chapter : Night journey of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) to Heaven and the prayer made obligatory. It is narrated on the authority of Anas b. Malik that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I was brought al-Buraq Who is an animal white and long, larger than a donkey but smaller than a mule, who would place his hoof a distance equal to the range of version. I mounted it and came to the Temple (Bait Maqdis in Jerusalem), then tethered it to the ring used by the prophets. I entered the mosque and prayed two rak'ahs in it, and then came out and Gabriel brought me a vessel of wine and a vessel of milk. I chose the milk, and Gabriel said: You have chosen the natural thing Then he took me to heaven. Gabriel then asked the (gate of heaven) to be opened and he was asked who he was He replied: Gabriel. He was again asked: Who is with you? He (Gabriel) said: Muhammad. It was said: Has he been sent for? Gabriel replied: He has indeed been sent for. And (the door of the heaven) was opened for us and lo ! we saw Adam. He welcomed me and prayed for my good. Then we ascended to the second heaven. Gabriel (peace be upon him) (asked the door of heaven to be opened), and he was asked who he was. He answered: Gabriel; and was again asked: Who is with you? He replied: Muhammad. It was said: Has he been sent for? He replied: He has indeed been sent for. The gate was opened. When I entered 'Isa b. Maryam and Yahya b. Zakariya (peace be upon both of them), cousins from the maternal side, welcomed me and prayed for my good Then I was taken to the third heaven and Gabriel asked for the opening (of the door). He was asked: Who are you? He replied: Gabriel. He was (again) asked: Who is with you? He replied Muhammad (may peace be upon him). It was said: Has he been sent for? He replied He has indeed been sent for. (The gate) was opened for us and I saw Yusuf (peace of Allah be upon him) who had been given half of (world) beauty. He welcomed me prayed for my well-being. Then he ascended with us to the fourth heaven. Gabriel (peace be upon him) asked for the (gate) to be opened, and it was said: Who is he? He replied: Gabriel. It was (again) said: Who is with you? He said: Muhammad. It was said: Has he been sent for? He replied: He has indeed been sent for. The (gate) was opened for us, and lo! Idris was there. He welcomed me and prayed for my well-being (About him) Allah, the Exalted and the Glorious, has said: "We elevated him (Idris) to the exalted position" (Qur'an xix. 57). Then he ascended with us to the fifth heaven and Gabriel asked for the (gate) to be opened. It was said: Who is he? He replied Gabriel. It was (again) said: Who is with thee? He replied: Muhammad. It was said Has he been sent for? He replied: He has indeed been sent for. (The gate) was opened for us and then I was with Harun (Aaron-peace of Allah be upon him). He welcomed me prayed for my well-being. Then I was taken to the sixth heaven. Gabriel (peace be upon him) asked for the door to be opened. It was said: Who is he? He replied: Gabriel. It was said: Who is with thee? He replied: Muhammad. It was said: Has he been sent for? He replied: He has indeed been sent for. (The gate) was opened for us and there I was with Musa (Moses peace be upon him) He welcomed me and prayed for my well-being. Then I was taken up to the seventh heaven. Gabriel asked the (gate) to be opened. It was said: Who is he? He said: Gabriel It was said. Who is with thee? He replied: Muhammad (may peace be upon him.) It was said: Has he been sent for? He replied: He has indeed been sent for. (The gate) was opened for us and there I found Ibrahim (Abraham peace be upon him) reclining against the Bait-ul-Ma'mur and there enter into it seventy thousand angels every day, never to visit (this place) again Then I was taken to Sidrat-ul-Muntaha whose leaves were like elephant ears and its fruit like big earthenware vessels. And when it was covered by the Command of Allah, it underwent such a change that none amongst the creation has the power to praise its beauty. Then Allah revealed to me a revelation and He made obligatory for me fifty prayers every day and night. Then I went down to Moses (peace be upon him) and he said: What has your Lord enjoined upon your Ummah? I said: Fifty prayers. He said: Return to thy Lord and beg for reduction (in the number of prayers), for your community shal1 not be able to bear this burden. as I have put to test the children of Isra'il and tried them (and found them too weak to bear such a heavy burden). He (the Holy Prophet) said: I went back to my Lord and said: My Lord, make things lighter for my Ummah. (The Lord) reduced five prayers for me. I went down to Moses and said: (The Lord) reduced five (prayers) for me, He said: Verily thy Ummah shall not be able to bear this burden; return to thy Lord and ask Him to make things lighter. I then kept going back and forth between my Lord Blessed and Exalted and Moses, till He said: There are five prayers every day and night. O Muhammad, each being credited as ten, so that makes fifty prayers. He who intends to do a good deed and does not do it will have a good deed recorded for him; and if he does it, it will be recorded for him as ten; whereas he who intends to do an evil deed and does not do, it will not be recorded for him; and if he does it, only one evil deed will be recorded. I then came down and when I came to Moses and informed him, he said: Go back to thy Lord and ask Him to make things lighter. Upon this the Messenger of Allah remarked: I returned to my Lord until I felt ashamed before Him. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0310. ------------------------------ Chapter : Night journey of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) to Heaven and the prayer made obligatory. It is narrated on the authority of Anas b. Malik that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: (the angels) came to me and took me to the Zam-Zam and my heart was opened and washed with the water of Zam-Zam and then I was left (at my place). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0311. ------------------------------ Chapter : Night journey of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) to Heaven and the prayer made obligatory. Anas b. Malik reported that Gabriel came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upo him) while he was playing with his playmates. He took hold of him and lay him prostrate on the ground and tore open his breast and took out the heart from it and then extracted a blood-clot out of it and said: That was the part of Satan in thee. And then he washed it with the water of Zam-Zam in a golden basin and then it was joined together and restored to it place. The boys came running to his mother, i.e. his nurse, and said: Verily Muhammad has been murdered. They all rushed toward him (and found him all right) His colour was changed, Anas said: I myself saw the marks of needle on his breast. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0312. ------------------------------ Chapter : Night journey of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) to Heaven and the prayer made obligatory. Anas b. Malik, while recounting the Night journey of the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him), from the mosque of Ka'bah, reported: Three beings (angels) came to him in the mosque of the Ka'bah, while he was sleeping in the sacred mosque before it (the Command of Night Journey and Ascension) was revealed to him. The rest of the hadith is narrated like that of Thabit. However, some portions have occurred before and some of them have occurred after; some have been added and some deleted. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0313. ------------------------------ Chapter : Night journey of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) to Heaven and the prayer made obligatory. Anas b. Malik reported: Abu Dharr used to relate that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The roof of my house was cleft when I was in Mecca and Gabriel descended and opened my heart and then washed it with the water of Zam-Zam. He then brought a gold basin full of wisdom and faith and after emptying it into my breast, he closed it up. Then taking me by he hand, he ascended with me to the heaven, and when we came to the lowest heaven, Gabriel said to the guardian of the lowest heaven: Open. He asked who was there? He replied. It is Gabriel. He again asked when he there was someone with him. He replied: Yes, it is Muhammad with me. He was asked if he had been sent for, He (Gabriel) said: Yes. Then he opened (the gate). When we ascended the lowest heaven (I saw) a man seated with parties on his right side and parties on his left side. When he looked up to his right, he laughed and when he looked to his left, he wept. He said: Welcome to the righteous apostle and the righteous son. I asked Gabriel who he was and he replied: He is Adam (peace be upon him) and these parties on his right and on his left are the souls of his descendants. Those of them on his right are the inmates of Paradise and the parties which are on his left side are the inmates of Hell; so when he looked towards his right side, he laughed, and when he looked towards his left side, he wept. Then Gabriel ascended with me to the second heaven. He asked its guardian to open (its gate), and its guardian replied in the same way as the guardian of the lowest heaven had said. He (opened it). Anas b. Malik said: He (the Holy Prophet) mentioned that he found in the heavens Adam, Idris, Jesus, Moses and Abraham (may peace be on all of them), but he did not ascertain as to the nature of their abodes except that he had found Adam in the lowest heaven and Abraham in the sixth heaven. When Gabriel and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) passed by Idris (peace be upon him) he said: Welcome to the righteous apostle and righteous brother. He (the narrator) said: He then proceeded and said: Who is he? Gabriel replied: It is Idris. Then I passed by Moses (peace be upon him) and he said: Welcome to the righteous apostle and righteous brother. I said to (Gabriel): Who is he? He replied: It is Moses. Then I passed by Jesus and he said: Welcome to the righteous apostle and righteous brother. I said (to Gabriel): Who is he? He replied: Jesus, son of Mary. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Then I went to Ibrahim (peace be upon him). He said: Welcome to the righteous apostle and righteous son. I asked: Who is he? He (Gabriel) replied: It is Abraham. Ibn Shihab said: Ibn Hazm told me that Ibn 'Abbas and Abd Habba al-Ansari used to say that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Thereafter he ascended with me till I was taken to such a height where I heard the scraping of the pens. Ibn Hazm and Anas told that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Allah then made fifty prayers obligatory for my Ummah and I returned with that and passed by Moses. Moses, (peace be upon him) said: What has thy Lord enjoined on thy people? I said: Fifty prayers have been made obligatory on them. Moses (peace be upon him) said: Return to thy Lord, for thy Ummah would not be able to bear this burden. Then I came back to my Lord and He remitted a portion out of that. I then again went to Moses (peace be upon him) and informed him about it He said: Return to thy Lord, for thy Ummah shall not be able to bear this burden. I then went back to my Lord and He said: They are five and at the same time fifty, and what has been said will not be changed. I then returned to Moses and he said: Go back to thy Lord. whereupon I said: I feel ashamed of my Lord. Gabriel then travelled with me till we came to the farthest lote-tree Many a colour had covered it which I do not know. Then I was admitted to Paradise and saw in it domes of pearls, and its soil of musk. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0314. ------------------------------ Chapter : Night journey of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) to Heaven and the prayer made obligatory. Anas b. Malik reported on the authority of Malik b. Sa sa', perhaps a person of his tribe, that the Prophet of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I was near the House (i.e. Ka'bah) in a state between sleep and wakefulness when I heard someone say: He is the third among the two persons. Then he came to me and took me with him. Then a golden basin containing the water of Zam-Zam was brought to me and my heart was opened up to such and such (part). Qatada said: I asked him who was with me (i.e. the narrator) and what he meant by such and such (part). He replied: (It means that it was opened) up to the lower part of his abdomen (Then the hadith continues): My heart was extracted and it was washed with the water of Zam-Zam and then it was restored in its original position, after which it was filled with faith and wisdom. I was then brought a white beast which is called al-Buraq, bigger than a donkey and smaller than a mule. Its stride was as long as the eye could reach. I was mounted on it, and then we went forth till we reached the lowest heaven. Gabriel asked for the (gate) to be opened, and it was said: Who is he? He replied: Gabriel. It was again said: Who is with thee? He replied: Muhammad (may peace be upon him). It was said: Has he been sent for? He (Gabriel) said: Yes. He (the Prophet) said: Then (the gate) was opened for us (and it was said): Welcome unto him ! His is a blessed arrival. Then we came to Adam (peace be upon him). And he (the narrator) narrated the whole account of the hadith. (The Holy Prophet) observed that he met Jesus in the second heaven, Yahya (peace be on both of them) in the third heaven, Yusuf in the third, Idris in the fourth, Harun in the fifth (peace and blessings of Allah be upon them). Then we travelled on till we reached the sixth heaven and came to Moses (peace be upon him) and I greeted him and he said: Welcome unto righteous brother and righteous prophet. And when I passed (by him) he wept, and a voice was heard saying: What makes thee weep? He said: My Lord, he is a young man whom Thou hast sent after me (as a prophet) and his followers will enter Paradise in greater numbers than my followers. Then we travelled on till we reached the seventh heaven and I came to Ibrahim. He (the narrator) narrated in this hadith that the Prophet of Allah (may peace be upon him) told that he saw four rivers which flowed from (the root of the lote-tree of the farthest limits): two manifest rivers and two hidden rivers. I said: 'Gabriel ! what are these rivers? He replied:The two hidden rivers are the rivers of Paradise, and as regards the two manifest ones, they are the Nile and the Euphrates. Then the Bait-ul-Ma'mur was raised up to me. I said: O Gabriel! what is this? He replied: It is the Bait-ul-Ma'mur. Seventy thousand angels enter into it daily and, after they come out, they never return again. Two vessels were then brought to me. The first one contained wine and the second one contained milk, and both of them were placed before me. I chose milk. It was said: You did right. Allah will guide rightly through you your Ummah on the natural course. Then fifty prayers daily were made obligatory for me. And then he narrated the rest of the hadith to the end. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0315. ------------------------------ Chapter : Night journey of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) to Heaven and the prayer made obligatory. It is reported on the authority of Malik b. Sa'sa' that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) narrated the hadith (mentioned above) and added to it: I was brought a gold basin full of wisdom and faith, and then the (part of the body) right from the upper end of the chest to the lower part of the abdomen was opened and it was washed with the water of Zam-Zam and then filled with wisdom and faith. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0316. ------------------------------ Chapter : Night journey of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) to Heaven and the prayer made obligatory. Qatada reported that he heard Abu al-'Aliya saying that the cousin of your Prophet (may peace be upon him), i.e. Ibn Abbas, told him: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), while narrating his night journey observed: Musa (peace be upon him) was a man of high stature as if he was of the people of the Shanu'a (tribe), and Jesus was a well-built person having curly hair. He also mentioned Malik, the guardian of Hell, and Dajjal. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0317. ------------------------------ Chapter : Night journey of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) to Heaven and the prayer made obligatory. Abu al-'Aliya reported: Ibn Abbas, the son of your Prophet's uncle, told us that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had observed: On the night of my night journey I passed by Moses b. 'Imran (peace be upon him), a man light brown in complexion, tall. well-built as if he was one of the men of the Shanu'a, and saw Jesus son of Mary as a medium-statured man with white and red complexion and crisp hair, and I was shown Malik the guardian of Fire, and Dajjal amongst the signs which were shown to me by Allah. He (the narrator) observed: Then do not doubt his (i.e. of the Holy Prophet) meeting with him (Moses). Qatada elucidated it thus: Verily the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), met Moses (peace be upon him). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0318. ------------------------------ Chapter : Night journey of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) to Heaven and the prayer made obligatory. Abu al-'Aliya narrated it on the authority of Ibn 'Abbas that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) passed through the valley of Azraq, and he asked: Which valley is this? They said: This is the valley of Azraq, and he observed: (I perceive) as if I am seeing Moses (peace be upon him) coming down from the mountain track, and he is calling upon Allah loudly (saying: Here I am ! at your service !). Then he came to the mountain track of Harsha. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Which is this mountain track? They said: It is the mountain track of Harsha. He observed (I feel) as If I am seeing Yunus (Jonah-peace be upon him) son of Matta on a well- built red dromedary, with a cloak of wool around him and the rein of his dromedary is made of the fibres of date-palm, and he is calling upon Allah (saying: Here I am ! at your service, my Lord!). Ibn Hanbal said in the hadith narrated by him: Hushaim said that the meaning of khulba was fibre of date-palm. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0319. ------------------------------ Chapter : Night journey of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) to Heaven and the prayer made obligatory. Abu al-'Aliya narrated it on the authority of Ibn 'Abbas that he said: We travelled with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) between Mecca and Medina and we passed by a valley. He (the Holy Prophet) asked: Which valley is this? They said: This is the valley of Azraq Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) remarked: (I feel) as if I am seeing Moses (peace be upon him), and then he described something about his complexion and hair, which Diwud (the narrator) could not remember. He (Moses, as described by the Holy Prophet) was keeping his fingers in his ears and was responding loudly to Allah (saying: I am as Thy service, my Lord) while passing through that valley. We then travelled (further) till we came to the mountain trail. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Which mountain trail is this? They said: It is the Harsha or Lift. He (the Holy Prophet) said: (I perceive) as if I am seeing Yunus on a red camel, with a cloak of wool around him. The halter of his camel was that of the fibre of date-palm, and he was passing through the valley saying: I am at Thy service! my Lord. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0320. ------------------------------ Chapter : Night journey of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) to Heaven and the prayer made obligatory. It is narrated on the authority of Mujahid that he said: We were with Ibn 'Abbas and (the people) talked about al-Dajjal. (One of them remarked. There is written between his eyes (the word) Kafir (infidel). The narrator said: Ibn 'Abbas remarked: I did not hear him (the Holy Prophet) say it, but he said: So far as Ibrahim is concerned. you may see your companion and so far as Moses is concerned, he is a well-built man with wheat complexion (riding) on a red camel with its halter made of the fibre of date-palm (and I perceive) as if I am seeing towards him as he is going down in the valley saying: I am at Thy service ! my Lord. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0321. ------------------------------ Chapter : Night journey of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) to Heaven and the prayer made obligatory. It is narrated on the authority of Jabir that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: There appeared before me the apostles, and Moses was among men as if he was one of the people of Shanu'a, and I saw Jesus son of Mary (peace be upon him) and I saw nearest in resemblance with him was 'Urwa b. Mas'ud, and I saw Ibrahim (blessings of Allah be upon him) and I see your companions much in resemblance with him, i.e. his personality, and I saw Gabriel (peace be upon him) and I saw Dihya nearest in resemblance to him; but in the narration of Ibn Rumh it is Dihya b. Khalifa. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0322. ------------------------------ Chapter : Night journey of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) to Heaven and the prayer made obligatory. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When I was taken for the night journey I met Moses peace be upon him). The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) gave his description thus: He was a man, I suppose-and he (the narrator) was somewhat doubtful (that the Holy Prophet observed): (Moses) was a man erect in stature with straight hair on his head as it he was one of the men of the Shanu'a; and I met Jesus and the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) described him as one having a medium stature and a red complexion as if he had (just) come out of the bath He observed: I saw Ibrahim (peace be upon him) and amongst his children I have the greatest resemblance with him. He said: There were brought to me two vessels. In one of them was milk and in the other one there was wine. And it was said to me: Select any one you like. So I selected the vessel containing milk and drank it. He (the angel) said: You have been guided on al-fitra or you have attained al-fitra. Had you selected wine, your Ummah would have been misled. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0323. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to Jesus son of Mary and al-Masib al-Dajjil. It is narrated on the authority of 'Abdullah b. Umar that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I found myself one night near the Ka'bah, and I saw a man with wheat complexion amongst the fair-complexioned men that you ever saw. He had a lock of hair the most beautiful of the locks that you ever saw. He had combed it. Water was trickling out of them. He was leaning on two men, or on the shoulders of two men, and he was circumscribing the Ka'bah. I asked, What is he? It was said: He is al-Masih son of Mary. Then I saw another person, stout and having too much curly hair, and blind in his right eye as if it was a full swollen grape. I asked Who is he? It was said: He is al-Masih al-Dajjal. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0324. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to Jesus son of Mary and al-Masib al-Dajjil. It is narrated on the authority of 'Abdulldh b. Umar that one day the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) mentioned in the presence of people about al-Masih al-Dajjal. He said: Verily Allah (hallowed be He and High) is not blind of one eye. Behold, but the Masih al-Dajjal is blind of right eye as if his eye is like a swollen grape, and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I was shown in a dream in the night that near the Ka'bah there was a man fair-complexioned, fine amongst the white-complexioned men that you ever saw, his locks of hair were falling on his shoulders. He was a man whose hair were neither too curly nor too straight, and water trickled down from his head. He was placing his bands on the shoulders of two persons and amidst them was making a circuit around the Ka'bah. I said: Who is he? They replied: Al-Masih son of Mary. And I saw behind him a man with intensely curly hair, blind of right eye. Amongst the persons I have ever seen Ibn Qatan has the greatest resemblance with him. He was making a circuit around the Ka'bah by placing both his hands on the shoulders of two persons. I said: Who is he? They said; It is al-Masih al-Dajjal. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0325. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to Jesus son of Mary and al-Masib al-Dajjil. It is narrated on the authority of Ibn 'Umar that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I saw near the Ka'bah a man of fair complexion with straight hair, placing his hands on two persons. Water was flowing from his head or it was trickling from his head. I asked: Who is he? They said: He is Jesus son of Mary or al-Masih son of Mary. The narrator) says: I do not remember which word it was. He (the Holy Prophet) said: And I saw behind him a man with red complexion and thick curly hair, blind in the right eye. I saw in him the greatest resemblance with Ibn Qitan I asked: Who is he? They replied: It is al-Masih al-Dajjal. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0326. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to Jesus son of Mary and al-Masib al-Dajjil. It is narrated on the authority of Jabir b. 'Abdullah that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When the Quraish belied me, I was staying in Hatim and Allah lifted before me Bait-ul-Maqdis and I began to narrate to them (the Quraish of Mecca) its signs while I was in fact looking at it. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0327. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to Jesus son of Mary and al-Masib al-Dajjil. 'Abdullah reported on the authority of his father 'Umar b. Khattab that he heard from the Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) say: I was sleeping when I saw myself making circuit around the Ka'bah, and I saw there a man of fair complexion with straight hair between two men. Water was flowing from his head or water was falling from his head. I said: Who is he? They answered: He is the son of Mary. Then I moved forward and cast a glance and there was a bulky man of red complexion with thick locks of hair on his head, blind of one eye as it his eye was a swollen grape. I asked: Who is he? They said: He is Dajjal. He had close resemblance with Ibn Qatan amongst men. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0328. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to Jesus son of Mary and al-Masib al-Dajjil. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I found myself in Hijr and the Quraish were asking me about my might journey. I was asked about things pertaining to Bait-ul-Maqdis which I could not preserve (in my mind). I was very much vexed, so vexed as I had never been before. Then Allah raised it (Bait-ul-Maqdis) before my eyes. I looked towards it, and I gave them the information about whatever they questioned me I also saw myself among the group of apostles. I saw Moses saying prayer and found him to be a well-built man as if he was a man of the tribe of Shanu'a. I saw Jesus son of Mary (peace be upon him) offering prayer, of all of men he had the closest resemblance with 'Urwa b. Masu'd al-Thaqafi. I saw Ibrahim (peace be upon him) offering prayer; he had the closest resemblance with your companion (the Prophet himself) amongst people. When the time of prayer came I led them. When I completed the prayer, someone said: Here is Malik, the keeper of the Hell; pay him salutations. I turned to him, but he preceded me in salutation. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0329. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning Sidrat-ul-Muntabi (remotest Lote tree). It is narrated on the authority of Abdullah (b. Umar) that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was taken for the Night journey, he was taken to Sidrat-ul-Muntaha, which is situated on the sixth heaven, where terminates everything that ascends from the earth and is held there, and where terminates every- thing that descends from above it and is held there. (It is with reference to this that) Allah said: "When that which covers covered the lote-tree" (al-Qur'an, liii. 16). He (the narrator) said: (It was) gold moths. He (the narrator further) said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was given three (things): he was given five prayers, be was given the concluding verses of Sura al-Baqara, and remission of serious Sins for those among his Ummah who associate not anything with Allah Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0330. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning Sidrat-ul-Muntabi (remotest Lote tree). Al-Shaibini reported to us: I asked Zirr b. Hubaish about the words of Allah (the Mighty and Great): "So he was (at a distance) of two bows or nearer" (al-Qur'an, liii 8). He said: Ibn Mas'ud informed me that, verily, the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) saw Gabriel and he had six hundred wings. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0331. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning Sidrat-ul-Muntabi (remotest Lote tree). Al-Shaibani narrated on the authority of Zirr who narrated it on this authority of Abdullah that the (words of Allah): "The heart belied not what he saw" (al Qur'an, liii. 11) imply that he saw Gabriel (peace be upon him) and he had six hundred wings. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0332. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning Sidrat-ul-Muntabi (remotest Lote tree). Zirr b. Hubaish narrated it on the authority of 'Abdullah (that the words of Allah): "Certainly he saw of the greatest signs of Allah" (al-Qur'an, liii. 18) imply that he saw Gabriel in his (original) form and he had six hundred wings. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0333. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning Sidrat-ul-Muntabi (remotest Lote tree). It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the (words of Allah): "And certainly he saw him in another descent" (al-Qur'an, liii. 13) imply that he saw Gabriel. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0334. ------------------------------ Chapter : The meaning of the words of Allah: "He saw Him in another descent" (Al-Qur'an 2, liii. 13).Did the Apostle (may peace be upon him) see his Lord on the night of his journey (to Heaven) ?. It is narrated on the authority of Ibn 'Abbas that he (the Holy Prophet) saw (Allah) with, his heart. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0335. ------------------------------ Chapter : The meaning of the words of Allah: "He saw Him in another descent" (Al-Qur'an 2, liii. 13).Did the Apostle (may peace be upon him) see his Lord on the night of his journey (to Heaven) ?. It is narrated on the authority of Ibn Abbas that the words: "The heart belied not what he saw" (al-Qur'an, liii. 11) and "Certainly he saw Him in another descent" (al-Qur'an, liii. 13) imply that he saw him twice with his heart. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0336. ------------------------------ Chapter : The meaning of the words of Allah: "He saw Him in another descent" (Al-Qur'an 2, liii. 13).Did the Apostle (may peace be upon him) see his Lord on the night of his journey (to Heaven) ?. Abu Bakr b. Abi Shaiba narrated it on the same authorities. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0337. ------------------------------ Chapter : The meaning of the words of Allah: "He saw Him in another descent" (Al-Qur'an 2, liii. 13).Did the Apostle (may peace be upon him) see his Lord on the night of his journey (to Heaven) ?. It is narrated on the authority of Masruq that he said: I was resting at (the house of) 'Aisha that she said: O Abu 'Aisha (kunya of Masruq), there are three things, and he who affirmed even one of them fabricated the greatest lie against Allah. I asked that they were. She said: He who presumed that Muhammad (may peace be upon him) saw his Lord (with his ocular vision) fabricated the greatest lie against Allah. I was reclining but then sat up and said: Mother of the Faithful, wait a bit and do not be in a haste. Has not Allah (Mighty and Majestic) said: "And truly he saw him on the clear horizon" (al-Qur'an, lxxxi. 23) and "he saw Him in another descent" (al-Qur'an, iiii. 13)? She said: I am the first of this Ummah who asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) about it, and he said: Verily he is Gabriel. I have never seen him in his original form in which he was created except on those two occasions (to which these verses refer); I saw him descending from the heaven and filling (the space) from the sky to the earth with the greatness of his bodily structure. She said: Have you not heard Allah saying. "Eyes comprehend Him not, but He comprehends (all) vision and He is Subtle, and All-Aware" (al-Qur'an, v. 104)? (She, i.e. 'Aisha, further said): Have you not heard that, verily, Allah says: "And it is not vouchsafed to a human being that Allah should speak unto him otherwise than by revelation, or from behind a veil, or that He sendeth a messenger (angel), so that he revealth whatsoever He wills. Verily He is Exalted, Wise" (al. Qur'an, xii. 51)She said: He who presumes that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) concealed anything, from the Muslim Book, of Allah fabricates the greatest lie against Allah. Allah says: "O Messenger ! deliver that which has been revealed to thee from thy Lord, and if thou do (it) not, thou hast not delivered His message" (al-Qur'an, v. 67). She said: He who presumes that he would inform about what was going to happen tomorrow fabricates the greatest lie against Allah. And Allah says "Say thou (Muhammad): None in the heavens and the earth knoweth the unseen save Allah" (al-Qur'an, xxvii 65). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0338. ------------------------------ Chapter : The meaning of the words of Allah: "He saw Him in another descent" (Al-Qur'an 2, liii. 13).Did the Apostle (may peace be upon him) see his Lord on the night of his journey (to Heaven) ?. Dawud reported on the same authorities the hadith as narrated above by Ibn 'Uliyya and added: She ('Aisha) said: If Muhammad were to conceal anything which was sent to him, he would have certainly concealed this verse: "And when thou saidst to him on whom Allah had conferred favour and thou too had conferred favour: Keep thy wife to thyself and fear Allah, and thou wast concealing in thy heart that which Allah was going to disclose, and thou wast fearing men while Allah has a better right that thou shouldst fear Him." Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0339. ------------------------------ Chapter : The meaning of the words of Allah: "He saw Him in another descent" (Al-Qur'an 2, liii. 13).Did the Apostle (may peace be upon him) see his Lord on the night of his journey (to Heaven) ?. Masruq reported: I asked 'Aisha if Muhammad (may peace be upon him) had seen his Lord. She replied: Hallowed be Allah, my hair stood on end when you said this, and he (Masruq) narrated the hadith as narrated above. The hadith reported by Diwud is more complete and longer. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0340. ------------------------------ Chapter : The meaning of the words of Allah: "He saw Him in another descent" (Al-Qur'an 2, liii. 13).Did the Apostle (may peace be upon him) see his Lord on the night of his journey (to Heaven) ?. Masruq reported: I said to 'Aisha: What about the words of Allah: "Then he drew nigh and came down, so he was at a distance of two bows or closer still: so He revealed to His servant what He revealed" (al-Qur'an, liii. 8-10)? She said: It implies Gabriel. He used to come to him (the Holy Prophet) in the shape of men; but he came at this time in his true form and blocked up the horizon of the sky. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0341. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to his (Prophet's) words: He is a Light; how could I see Him?-and his words: I saw the Light. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Dharr: I asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him): Did you see thy Lord? He said: He is a light; now could I see Him? Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0342. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to his (Prophet's) words: He is a Light; how could I see Him?-and his words: I saw the Light. Abdullah b. Shaqiq reported: I said to Abu Dharr: Had I seen the Messenger of Allah, I would have asked him. He (Abu Dharr) said: What is that thing that you wanted to inquire of him? He said: I wanted to ask him whether he had seen his Lord. Abu Dharr said: I, in fact, inquired of him, and he replied: I saw Light. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0343. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to his (Prophet's) words: He is a Light; how could I see Him?-and his words: I saw the Light. Abu Musa reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was standing amongst us and he told us five things. He said: Verily the Exalted and Mighty God does not sleep, and it does not befit Him to sleep. He lowers the scale and lifts it. The deeds in the night are taken up to Him before the deeds of the day. and the deeds of the day before the deeds of the night. His veil is the light. In the hadith narrated by Abu Bakr (instead of the word "light") it is fire. If he withdraws it (the veil), the splendour of His countenance would consume His creation so far as His sight reaches. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0344. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to his (Prophet's) words: He is a Light; how could I see Him?-and his words: I saw the Light. A'mash has narrated this hadith on the same authority and said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was standing amongst us and he told us four things. He then narrated the hadith like the one reported by Abu Mua'wiya, but did not mention the words "His creation" and said: His veil is the light. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0345. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to his (Prophet's) words: He is a Light; how could I see Him?-and his words: I saw the Light. Abu Musa reported: The Messenger of Allah (peace be upon him) was standing amongst us and (he said) four (things): Verily Allah dock not sleep and it does not befit Him to sleep. He raises the scale and lowers it. The deeds of the day are presented to Him in the night and the deeds of the night in the day. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0346. ------------------------------ Chapter : In proof of the fact that the believers would see their Lord hallowed be He and exalted) on the Last Day. 'Abdullah b. Qais transmitted on the authority of his father (Abu Musa Ash'ari) that the Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: There would be two gardens (in Paradise) the vessels and contents of which would be of silver, and two gardens whose vessels and contents would be of gold. The only thing intervening to hinder the people from looking at their Lord will be the mantle of Grandeur over His face in the Garden of Eden. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0347. ------------------------------ Chapter : In proof of the fact that the believers would see their Lord hallowed be He and exalted) on the Last Day. Suhaib reported the Apostle (may peace be upon him) saying: When those deserving of Paradise would enter Paradise, the Blessed and the Exalted would ask: Do you wish Me to give you anything more? They would say: Hast Thou not brightened our faces? Hast Thou not made us enter Paradise and saved us from Fire? He (the narrator) said: He (God) would lift the veil, and of things given to them nothing would he dearer to them than the sight of their Lord, the Mighty and the Glorious. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0348. ------------------------------ Chapter : In proof of the fact that the believers would see their Lord hallowed be He and exalted) on the Last Day. Hammad b. Salama narrated it on the same authority and added: He then recited the verse: "Those who do good will have the best reward and even more" (x. 26) Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0349. ------------------------------ Chapter : The way in which the believers would see the Lord. Abu Haraira reported: The people said to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him): Messenger of Allah, shall we see our Lord on the Day of Resurrection? The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Do you feel any trouble in seeing the moon on the night when it is full? They said: Messenger of Allah, no. He (the Messenger) further said: Do you feel any trouble in seeing the sun, when there is no cloud over it? They said: Messenger of Allah. no. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Verily you would see Him like this (as you see the sun and the moon). God will gather people on the Day of Resurrection and say: Let every people follow what they worshipped. Those who worshipped the sun would follow the sun, and those who worshipped the moon would follow the moon, and those who worshipped the devils would follow the devils. This Ummah (of Islam) alone would be left behind and there would be hypocrites too amongst it. Allah would then come to them in a form other than His own Form, recognisable to them, and would say: I am your Lord. They would say: We take refuge with Allah from thee. We will stay here till our Lord comes to us. and when our Lord would come we would recognise Him. Subsequently Allah would come to them in His own Form, recognisable to them, and say: I am your Lord. They would say: Thou art our Lord. And they would follow Him, and a bridge would be set over the Hell; and I (the Holy Prophet) and my Ummah would be the first to pass over it; and none but the messengers would speak on that day, and the prayer of the messengers on that day would be: O Allah ! grant safety, grant safety. In Hell, there would be long spits like the thorns of Sa'dan He (the Holy Prophet) said: Have you seen Sa'dan? They replied: Yea, Messenger of Allah. He said: Verily those (hooks) would be like the thorns of Sa'dan, but no one knows their size except Allah. These would seize people for their misdeeds. Some of them would escape for their (good) deeds, and some would be rewarded for their deeds till they get salvation. When Allah would finish judging His bondsmen and because of His mercy decide to take out of Hell such people as He pleases. He would command the angels to bring out those who had not associated anything with Allah; to whom Allah decided to show mercy. those who would say: There is no god but Allah. They (the angels) would recognise them in the Fire by the marks of prostration, for Hell-fire will devour everything (limb) of the sons of Adam except the marks of prostration. Allah has forbidden the fire to consume the marks of prostration. They will be taken out of the Fire having been burnt, and the water of life would be poured over them, and they will sprout as seed does In the silt carried by flood. Then Allah would finish judging amongst His bondsmen; but a man who will be the last to enter Paradise will remain facing Hell and will say: O my Lord I turn my face away from Hell, for its air has poisoned me and its blaze has burnt me. He will then call to Allah as long as Allah would wish that he should call to Him. Then Allah, Blessed and Exalted, would say: If I did that, perhaps you would ask for more than that. He would say: I would not ask You more than this, and he would give his Lord covenants and agreements as Allah wished, and so He would turn his face away from the Fire When he turns towards the Paradise and sees it, he will remain silent as long as Allah wishes him to remain so. He will then say: O my Lord I bring me forward to the gate of the Paradise. Allah would say to him: Did you not give covenants and agreements that you would not ask for anything besides what I had given you. Woe to thee ! O son of Adam, how treacherous you are ! He would say: O my Lord ! and would continue calling to Allah till He. would say to him: If I grant you that, perhaps you will ask for more. He will reply: No, by Thy greatness, and he will give His Lord promises and covenants as Allah had wished He would then bring him to the gate of the Paradise, and when he would stand at the gate of the Paradise, it would lay open before him and he would see the bounty and the joy that there is in it. He would remain quiet as long as Allah would desire him to remain silent. He would then say: O my Lord, admit me to Paradise. Allah. Blessed and Exalted, would say: Did you not give covenants and agreements that you would not ask for anything more than what I had granted you? Woe to you ! son of Adam, how treacherous you are! And he would say: O my Lord, I do not wish to be the most miserable of Thy creatures. He would continue calling upon Allah till Allah. Blessed and Exalted would laugh. When Allah would laugh at him. He would say: Enter the Paradise. When he would enter, Allah would say: State your wish. He would express his wishes till Allah would remind him (the desire of) such and such (things). When his desires would be exhausted Allah would say: That is for thee and, besides it, the like of it also. 'Ata' b. Yazid said: Abu Sa'id al-Khudri was with Abu Huraira and be did not reject anything from the hadith narrated by him, but when Abu Huraira narrated: "Allah said to that man; and its like along with it," Abu Sa'id said: "Ten like it along with it," O Abu Huraira. Abu Huraira said: I do not remember except the words: "That is for you and a similar one along with it." Abu Sa'id said: I bear witness to the fact that I remembered from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) his words: "That is for thee and ten like it." Abu Huraira said: That man was the last of those deserving of Paradise to enter Paradise. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0350. ------------------------------ Chapter : The way in which the believers would see the Lord. Abu Huraira reported: The people said to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him): Messenger of Allah I shall we see our Lord on the Day of Resurrection? The rest of the hadith was narrated according to the narration of Ibrahim b. Sa'd. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0351. ------------------------------ Chapter : The way in which the believers would see the Lord. Hammam b.Munabbih said: This is what Abu Huraira transmitted to us from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and he narrated many of them;- one of them was: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The lowest in rank among you in Paradise would be asked: Desire (whatever you like). And he would express his desire and again and again express a desire. He would be asked: Have you expressed your desire? He would say: Yes. Then He (Allah) would say: For thee is (granted) what thou desirest, and the like of it along with it. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0352. ------------------------------ Chapter : The way in which the believers would see the Lord. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported: Some people during the lifetime of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Messenger of Allah ! shall we see our Lord on the Day of Resurrection? The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Yes, and added: Do you feel any trouble in seeing the sun at noon with no cloud over it, and do you feel trouble in seeing the moon (open) in the full moonlit night with no cloud over it? They said: No, Messenger of Allah ! He (the Holy Prophet) said: You will not feel any trouble in seeing Allah on the Day of Resurrection any more than you do in seeing any one of them. When the Day of Resurrection comes a Mu'adhdhin (a proclaimer) would proclaim: Let every people follow what they used to worship. Then all who worshipped idols and stones besides Allah would fall into the Fire, till only the righteous and the vicious and some of the people of the Muslim Book who worshipped Allah are left. Then the Jews would be summoned, and it would be said to them: What did you worship? They will say: We worshipped 'Uzair, son of Allah. It would be said to them: You tell a lie; Allah had never had a spouse or a son. What do you want now? They would say: We feel thirsty, O our Lord I Quench our thirst. They would be directed (to a certain direction) and asked: Why don't you go there to drink water? Then they would be pushed towards the Fire (and they would find to their great dismay that) it was but a mirage (and the raging flames of fire) would be consuming one another, and they would fall into the Fire. Then the Christians would be summoned and it would be said to them: What did you worship? They would say: We worshipped Jesus, son of Allah. It would be said to them: You tell a lie; Allah did not take for Himself either a spouse or a son. Then it would be said to them: What do you w4nt? They would say: Thirsty we are, O our Lord ! Quench our thirst. They would be directed (to a certain direction) and asked: Why don't you go there to get water? But they would be pushed and gathered together towards the Hell, which was like a mirage to them, and the flames would consume one another. They would fall Into the Fire, till no one is left except he who worshipped Allah, be he pious or sinful. The Lord of the Universe, Glorified and Exalted, would come to them in a form recognisable to them and say; What are you looking for? Every people follow that which they worshipped. They would say: Our Lord, we kept ourselves separate from the people in the world, though we felt great need of them; we, however, did not associate ourselves with them. He would say: I am your Lord. They would say: We take refuge with Allah from thee and do not associate anything with Allah. They would repeat it twice or thrice, till some of them would be about to return. It would be said: Is there any sign between you and Him by which you will recognise Him? They would say: Yes, and the things would be laid bare. Those who used to prostrate themselves before God of their own accord would be permitted by God to prostrate themselves. But there would remain none who used to prostrate out of fear (of people) and ostentation but Allah would make his back as one piece, and whenever he would attempt to prostrate he would fall on his back. Then they would raise their heads and He would assume the Form in which they had seen Him the first time and would say: I am your Lord. They would say: Thou art our Lord. Then the bridge would be set up over the Hell and intercession would be allowed and they will say: O God, keep safe, keep safe. It was asked: Messenger of Allah, what is this bridge? He said: The void in which one Is likely to slip. There would be hooks, tongs, spits like the thorn that is found in Najd and is known as Sa'dan. The believers would then pass over within the twinkling of an eye, like lightning, like wind, like a bird, like the finest horses and camels. Some will escape and be safe, some will be lacerated and let go, and some will be pushed into the fire of Hell till the believers will find rescue from the Fire. By One in Whose hand is my life, there will be none among you more eager to claim a right than the believers on the Day of Resurrection for (saying their) brethren in the Fire who would say: O our Lord, they were fasting along with us, and praying and performing pilgrimage. It will be said to them: Take out those whom you recognise. Then their persons would be forbidden to the Fire; and they would take out a large number of people who had been overtaken by Fire up to the middle of the shank or up to the knees. They would then say: O our Lord I not one of those about whom Thou didst give us command remains in it. He will then say: Go back and bring out those in whose hearts you find good of the weight of a dinar Then they will take out a large number of people. Then they would say: O our Lord ! we have not left anyone about whom You commanded us. He will then say: Go back and bring out those in whose hearts you find as much as half a dinar of good. Then they will take out a large number of people, and would say: O our Lord ! not one of those about whom Thou commanded us we have left in it. Then He would say: Go back and in whose heart you find good to the weight of a particle bring him out. They would bring out a large number of people, and would then say: O our Lord, now we have not left anyone in it (Hell) having any good in him. Abu Sa'id Khudri said: If you don't testify me in this hadith, then recite if you like: "Surely Allah wrongs not the weight of an atom; and if it is a good deed. He multiplies it and gives from Himself a great reward" (al-Qur'an, iv. 40). Then Allah, Exalted and Great, would say: The angels have interceded, the apostles have inter- ceded and the believers have interceded, and no one remains (to grant pardon) but the Most Merciful of the mercifuls. He will then take a handful from Fire and bring out from it people who never did any good and who had been turned into charcoal, and will cast them into a river called the river of life, on the outskirts of Paradise. They will come out as a seed comes cut from the silt carried by flood. You see it near the stone or near the tree. That which is exposed to the sun is yellowish or greenish and which is under the shade is white. They said: Messenger of Allah ! it seems as if you had been tending a flock in the jungle. He (the Holy Prophet) said: They will come forth like pearls with seals on their necks. The inhabitants of Paradise would recognise them (and say): Those are who have been set free by the Compassionate One. Who has admitted them into Paradise without any (good) deed that they did or any good that they sent in advance Then He would say: Enter the Paradise; whatever you see in it is yours. They would say: O Lord, Thou hast bestowed upon us (favours) which Thou didst not bestow upon anyone else in the world. He would say: There is with Me (a favour) for you better than this. They would say: O our Lord ! which thing is better than this? He would say: It is My pleasure. I will never be angry with you after this. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0353. ------------------------------ Chapter : The way in which the believers would see the Lord. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Sa'id al-Khudri: We said: Messenger of Allah, shall we see our Lord? The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Do you feel any trouble in seeing the sun on a cloudless day? We said: No. And the remaining part of the hadith has been narrated to the end like the hadith transmitted by Hafs b. Maisara with the addition of these words: Without the deed that they did or any good that they had sent before. It would be said to them: For you is whatever you see (in it) and with it the like of it. Abu Sa'id said: I have come to know that the bridge would be thinner even than the hair and sharper than the sword; and in the hadith narrated by Laith these words are not found: They would say, O our Lord ! Thou hast bestowed upon us (favours) which thou didst not bestow on anyone else in the world. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0354. ------------------------------ Chapter : The way in which the believers would see the Lord. Abu Bakr b. Abi Shaiba, Ja'far b. 'Aun, Hisham b. Sa'd, Zaid b. Aslam narrated the hadith as transmitted by Hafs b. Maisara, with certain additions and omissions. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0355. ------------------------------ Chapter : Affirmation of intercession and rescue from Fire of the believers in Oneness of Allah. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported: Verily the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Allah will admit into Paradise those deserving of Paradise, and He will admit whom He wishes out of His Mercy, and admit those condemned to Hell into the Fire (of Hell). He would then say: See, he whom you find having as much faith in his heart as a grain of mustard, bring him out. They will then be brought out burned and turned to charcoal, and would be cast into the river of life, and they would sprout as does a seed in the silt carried away by flood. Have you not seen that it comes out yellow (fresh) and intertwined? Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0356. ------------------------------ Chapter : Affirmation of intercession and rescue from Fire of the believers in Oneness of Allah. This hadith is transmitted by 'Amr b. Yahya with the same chain of transmitters who narrated: They would be cast into the river which is called (the river of) life, and (both the narrators) did not doubt the hadith. The text transmitted by Khalid is: just as seeds sprout beside the flood water; and in the hadith of Wuhaib it is: Just as the seed sprouts in the silt or deposit left by flood. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0357. ------------------------------ Chapter : Affirmation of intercession and rescue from Fire of the believers in Oneness of Allah. It is reported by Abu Sa'id that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The (permanent) inhabitants of the Fire are those who are doomed to it, and verily they would neither die nor live in it (al-Qur'an, xx. 47; lxxxvii. 13). But the people whom the Fire would afflict (temporarily) on account of their sins, or so said (the narrator) "on account of their misdeeds," He would cause them to die till they would be turned into charcoal. Then they would be granted intercession and would be brought in groups and would be spread on the rivers of Paradise and then it would be said: O inhabitants of Paradise, pour water over them; then they would sprout forth like the sprouting of seed in the silt carried by flood. A man among the people said: (It appears) as if the Messenger of Allah lived in the steppe. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0358. ------------------------------ Chapter : Affirmation of intercession and rescue from Fire of the believers in Oneness of Allah. Abu Nadra narrated it from Abu Sa'id al-Khudri who reported it from the Apostle (may peace be upon him) a similar (hadith) up to the words: "in the mud of the flood," and he did not mention (the words narrated) after it. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0359. ------------------------------ Chapter : Affirmation of intercession and rescue from Fire of the believers in Oneness of Allah. Abdullah b. Mas'ud reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I know the last of the inhabitants of Fire to be taken out there-from, and the last of the inhabitants of Paradise to enter it. A man will come out of the Fire crawling. Then Allah, the Blessed and Exalted will say to him: Go and enter Paradise. So he would come to it and it would appear to him as if it were full. He would go back and say: O my Lord ! I found it full. Allah, the Blessed and Exalted, would say to him: Go and enter Paradise. He would come and perceive as if it were full. He would return and say: O my Lord ! I found it full. Allah would say to him: Go and enter Paradise, for there is for you the like of the world and ten times like it, or for you is ten times the like of this world. He (the narrator) said: He (that man) would say: Art Thou making a fun of me? or Art Thou laughing at me, though Thou art the King? He (the narrator) said: I saw the Messenger of Allah laugh till his front teeth were visible. And it was said: That would be the lowest rank among the inhabitants of Paradise. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0360. ------------------------------ Chapter : Affirmation of intercession and rescue from Fire of the believers in Oneness of Allah. It is narrated on the authority of Abdullah b. Mas'ud that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him said: I recognise the last of the inhabitants of Fire to be taken out thereof. A man will come out of it crawling. It will be said to him: Go and enter Paradise. He (the Holy Prophet) said: He would go there to enter Paradise, but would find persons who have already occupied all its apartments. It would be said to him: Do you recall the time when you were in it (in the Hell)? He would say: Yes. It would be said to him: Express any desire. And he would express the desire. It would be said to him: For thee is that which thou desireth and ten times the world (worldly resources). He (the Holy Prophet) said: He would say: Art Thou making a fun of me, though Thou art the King? I saw the Messenger of Allah laugh till his front teeth were visible. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0361. ------------------------------ Chapter : Affirmation of intercession and rescue from Fire of the believers in Oneness of Allah. Ibn Mas'ud reported: Verily the Messenger of Allah said: The last to enter Paradise would be a man who would walk once and stumble once and be burnt by the Fire once. Then when he gets beyond it, he will turn to it and say: Blessed is He Who has saved me from thee. Allah has given me something He has not given to any one of those in earlier or later times. Then a tree would be raised up for him and he will say: O my Lord I bring me near this tree so that I may take shelter in its shade and drink of its water. Allah, the Exalted and Great, would say: O son of Adam, if I grant you this, you will ask Me for something else. He would say: No. my Lord. And he would promise Him that he would not ask for anything else. His Lord would excuse him because He sees what he cannot help desiring; so He would bring him near it, and he would take shelter in its shade and drink of its water. Afterwards a tree more beautiful than the first would be raised up before him and he would say: O my Lord ! bring me near this tree in order that I may drink of its water and take shelter in its shade and I shall not ask Thee for anything else. He (Allah) would say: O son of Adam, if I bring you near it you may ask me for something else. He would promise Him that he would not ask for anything else. His Lord will excuse him because He would see something he cannot help desiring. So He would bring him near it and he would enjoy its shade and drink its water. Then a tree would be raised up for him at the gate of the Paradise, more beautiful than the first two. He would say: O my Lord ! bring me near this (tree) so that I may enjoy its shade and drink from its water. I shall not ask Thee for anything else. He (Allah) would say: O son of Adam ! did you not promise Me that you would not ask Me anything else? He would say: Yes, my Lord, but I shall not ask Thee for anything else. His Lord would excuse him for He sees something the temptation of which he could not resist. He (Allah) would bring him near to it, and when He would bring him near it he would hear the voices of the inhabitants of the Paradise. He would say: O my Lord ! admit me to it. He (Allah) would say: O son of Adam, what will bring an end to your requests to Me? Will it please you if I give you the whole world and a like one along with it? He will say: O my Lord ! art Thou mocking at me, though Thou art the Lord of the worlds? Ibn Mas'ud laughed and asked (the hearers): Why don't you ask me what I am laughing at. They (then) said: Why do you laugh? He said: It is in this way that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) laughed. They (the companions of the Holy Prophet) asked: Why do you laugh. Messenger of Allah? He said: On account of the laugh of the Lord of the universe, when he, desirer of Paradise) said Thou mocking at me though Thou art the Lord of the worlds? He would say: I am not mocking at you, but I have power to do whatever I will. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0362. ------------------------------ Chapter : The lowest of the ranks in Paradise. It is transmitted from Abu Sa'id al-Khudri that, verily, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Amongst the inhabitants of Paradise the lowest in rank will be the person whose face Allah would turn away from the Fire towards the Paradise, and make a shady tree appear before him. He would say: O my Lord ! direct my steps to this tree so that I (should enjoy) its shade; and the rest of the hadith is like that narrated by Ibn Mas'ud, but he did not mention: "He (Allah) would say: O son of Adam ! what will bring an end to your making requests to Me" to the end of the tradition. In it, he added: Allah will remind him: Ask such and such, and when his expectations would be realised, Allah would say: That is for you, and ten times as much. He said that he would then enter his house and his two wives with large and dark eyes would enter after him. They will say: Praise be to Allah, Who has created you for us and us for you. He will say: No one has been given the like of what I have been given. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0363. ------------------------------ Chapter : The lowest of the ranks in Paradise. It is reported on the authority of al-Mughira b. Shu'ba that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Moses asked his Lord: Who amongst the inhabitants of Paradise is the lowest to rank? He (Allah) said: The person who would be admitted into Paradise last of all among those deserving of Paradise who are admitted to it. I would be said to him: Enter Paradise. He would gay: O my Lord ! how (should I enter) while the people have settled in their apartments and taken the shares (portions)? It would be said to him: Would you be pleased if there be for you like the kingdom of a king amongst the kings of the world? He would say: I am pleased my Lord. He (Allah) would say: For you is that, and like that, and like that, and like that, and that. He would say at the fifth (point): I am well pleased. My Lord. He (Allah) would say: It is for you and, ten times like it, and for you is what your self desires and your eye enjoys. He would say: I am well pleased, my Lord. He (Moses) said: (Which is) the highest of their (inhabitants of Paradise) ranks? He (Allah) said: They are those whom I choose. I establish their honour with My own hand and then set a seal over it (and they would be blessed with Bounties) which no eye has seen, no ear has heard and no human mind has perceived: and this is substantiated by the Muslim Book of Allah, Exalted and Great: "So no soul knows what delight of the eye is hidden for them; a reward for what they did" (xxxii. 17). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0364. ------------------------------ Chapter : The lowest of the ranks in Paradise. Sha'bi reported he had heard al-Mughira b. Shu'ba say on the pulpit that Moses (peace be upon him) had asked Allah, Exalted and Great, about the reward of the lowest of the inhabitants of Paradise, and the remaining part of hadith is the same (as narrated) above. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0365. ------------------------------ Chapter : The lowest of the ranks in Paradise. Abu Dharr reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: I know the last of the inhabitants of Paradise to enter it and the last of the inhabitants of Hell to come out of it. He is a man who would be brought on the Day of Resurrection and it will be said: Present his minor sins to him, and withhold from him his serious Sins. Then the minor sins would be placed before him, and it would be said: On such and such a day you did so and so and on such and such a day you did so and so. He would say: Yes. It will not be possible for him to deny, while he would be afraid lest serious sins could be presented before him. It would be said to him: In place of every evil deed you will have good deed He will say: My Lord ! I have done things I do not see here. I indeed saw the Messenger of Allah laugh till his front teeth were exposed. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0366. ------------------------------ Chapter : The lowest of the ranks in Paradise. This hadith is also narrated by another chain of narrators, i.e. Ibn Numair, Abu Mu'awiya, Waki', Abu Bakr b. Abi Shaiba, Abu Kuraib, A'mash. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0367. ------------------------------ Chapter : The lowest of the ranks in Paradise. It is reported on the authority of Abu Zubair that he heard from Jabir b 'Abdullah, who was asked about the arrival (of people on the Day of Resurrection). He said, We would come on the Day of Resurrection like this, like this, and see carefully that which concerns "elevated people". He (the narrator) said: Then the people would be summoned along with their idols whom they worshipped, one after another. Then our Lord would come to us and say: Whom are you waiting for? They would say: We are waiting for our Lord. He would say: I am your Lord. They would say: (We are not sure) till we gaze at Thee, and He would manifest Himself to them smilingly, and would go along with them and they would follow Him; and every person, whether a hypocrite or a believer, would be endowed with a light, and there would be spikes and hooks on the bridge of the Hell, which would catch hold of those whom Allah willed. Then the light of the hypocrites would be extinguished, and the believers would secure salvation and the first group to achieve it would comprise seventy thousand men who would have the brightness of full moon on their faces, and they would not be called to account. Then the people immediately following them would have their faces as the brightest stars in the heaven. This is how (the groups would follow one after another). Then the stage of intercession would come, and they (who are permitted to intercede) would intercede, till he who had declared: "There is no god but Allah" and had in his heart virtue of the weight of a barley grain would come out of the Fire. They would be then brought in the courtyard of Paradise and the inhabitants of Paradise would begin to sprinkle water over them till they would sprout like the sprouting of a thing in flood water, and their burns would disappear. They would ask their Lord till they would be granted (the bounties) of the world and with it ten more besides it. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0368. ------------------------------ Chapter : The lowest of the ranks in Paradise. Jabir reported that he had heard with his ears the Apostle (may peace be upon him) saying: Allah will bring out people from the Fire and admit them into Paradise. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0369. ------------------------------ Chapter : The lowest of the ranks in Paradise. Hammad b. Zaid, reported: I said to 'Amr b. Dinar: Did you hear Jabir b. 'Abdullah narrating from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) that Allah would bring out people from the Fire through intercession. He said: Yes. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0370. ------------------------------ Chapter : The lowest of the ranks in Paradise. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Verily people would be brought out from the Fire, and they would be burnt except the exterior (surfaces, fronts) of their faces; and they would enter Paradise. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0371. ------------------------------ Chapter : The lowest of the ranks in Paradise. Yazid al-Faqir said: This view of the Khwarij (i.e. those who commit major sins and would be eternally doomed to Hell) had obsessed me, and we set out in a large group intending to perform the hajj and then going to the people (for the propagation of the views of the Khwarij). He (the narrator) said: We happened to past by Medina and found there Jabir b. 'Abdullah sitting near a column narrating to the people (the ahadith of) the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him). When he mentioned the inhabitants of Hell, I said: O companion of the Messenger of Allah what is this that thou narrateth, whereas Allah sayeth: "Verily whomsoever Thou shall commit to the Fire, Thou indeed humillateth him" (al-Qur'an, iii. 192); and All those who endeavoured to get out of that would be thrown back into it" (al-Qur'an, xxxii. 20)? So what is it that you say? He said: Have you read the Qur'an? I said: Yes. He said: Have you heard about' the (exalted) position of Muhammad (may peace be upon him), i.e. to which Allah would raise, him? I said: Yes. He said: Verily the position of Muhammad (may peace be upon him) is that of great glory and that is by which Allah would bring out whosoever He would wish to bring out. He then described the Path (the Bridge) and the passing of the people over it, and said: I am afraid I may not have remembered (other things) but this much is still in my memory that people would come out of the Hell after having gone into it, and he said: They would come out of it as if they were the wood of the ebony tree. He (the narrator said: They would enter a river, one or the rivers of Paradise, and would bathe in it, and then come out as if they were (white like) paper. We then turned back and said: Woe be upon you ! How can this old man tell a lie against the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him)? We turned back (from the views of the Khwarij), and by God every one of us abandoned this (band of Khwarij) except one man. A similar statement has been made by Abu Nu'aim. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0372. ------------------------------ Chapter : The lowest of the ranks in Paradise. It is narrated on the authority of Anas b. Malik that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Four persons would be brought out from the Fire and would be presented to Allah. One of them would turn (towards the He))) and say: O my Lord, when Thou hast brought me out from it, do not throw me back into it, and Allah would rescue him from it. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0373. ------------------------------ Chapter : The lowest of the ranks in Paradise. Anas b Malik reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Allah would gather people on the Day of Resurrection and they would be concerned about it, and Ibn Ubaid said: They would get a Divine inspiration about it, and would say: If we could seek intercession with our Lord, we may be relieved from this predicament of ours. He (the Holy Prophet) said: They would come to Adam and say, Thou art Adam, the father of mankind. Allah created thee with His own hand and breathed unto thee of His Spirit and commanded the angels and they prostrated before thee. So intercede for us with thy Lords, that He may relieve us from this position of ours. He would say: I am not in a position to do this, and would recall his error, and would fight shy of his Lord on account of that; go to Noah the first messenger (after me) sent by Allah. He (the Holy Prophet) said: So they would come to Noah (peace be upon him). He would say: I am not in a position to do that for you, and recall his fault which he had committed, and would fight shy of his Lord on account of that, (and would say): You better go to Ibrahim (peace be upon him) whom Allah took for a friend. They would come to Ibrahim (peace be upon him) and he would say: I am not in a position to do that for you, and would recall his fault that he had committed and would, therefore, fight shy of his Lord on that account (and would say): You better go to Moses (peace be upon him) with whom Allah conversed and conferred Torah upon him. He (the Holy Prophet) said: So they would come to Moses (peace be upon him) He would say: I am not in a position to do that for you, and would recall his fault that he had committed and would fight shy of his Lord on account of that (and would say): You better go to Jesus, the Spirit of Allah and His word He would say: I am not in a position to do that for you; you better go to Muhammad (may peace be upon him), a servant whose former and later sins have been forgiven. He (the narrator) said: The Messenger or Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: So they would come to me and I would ask the permission of my Lord and it would be granted to me, and when I would see Him, I would fall down in prostration, and He (Allah) would leave me thus as long as He would wish, and then it would be said: O Muhammad, raise your head, say and you would be heard; ask and it would be granted; intercede and intercession would be accepted. Then I would raise my head and exalt my Lord with the praise which my Lord would teach me. I shall then inter- cede, but a limit would be set for me I would bring them out from the Fire and make them enter Paradise (according to the limit). I shall return then and fall down in prostration and Allah would leave me (in that position) as long as He would wish to leave me it would be said: Rise, O Muhammad, say and you would be heard; ask and it would be conferred; intercede and intercession would be granted. I would raise my head and exalt my Lord with praise that He would teach me. I would theft intercede and a limit would be set for me. I would bring them out of the Fire (of Hell) and make them enter Paradise. He (the narrator) said: I do not remember whether he (the Holy Prophet) said at the third time or at the fourth time: O my Lord, none has been left in the Fire, but these restrained by the Holy Qur'an, i.e. those who were eternally doomed. Ibn Ubaid said in a narration: Qatada observed: whose everlasting stay was imperative". Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0374. ------------------------------ Chapter : The lowest of the ranks in Paradise. Anas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The believers would gather on the Day of Resurrection, and they would be concerned about it, or would be made mindful of it (i.e. the trouble for it), (and the remaining part of the hadith would be narrated) like the one transmitted by Abu Uwana, and he said in the hadith: Then I would come for the fourth time, or I would return the fourth time, and would say: O my Lord, no one has been left but he whom the Holy Qur'an has restrained. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0375. ------------------------------ Chapter : The lowest of the ranks in Paradise. Anas b. Malik reported: The Prophet of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Allah will gather the believers on the Day of Resurrection and they would be made mindful of it; and the rest (of the hadith) is like the one narrated above; and then he mentioned the fourth time: And I (the Holy Prophet) would say: O my Lord, no one is left in the Fire except he whom the Qur'an has restrained, i.e. eternally doomed. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0376. ------------------------------ Chapter : The lowest of the ranks in Paradise. Anas b. Malik reported: Verily the Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: He who professed: There is no god but Allah, would be brought out of the Fire even though he has in his heart virtue equal to the weight of a barley grain. Then he who professed: There is no god but Allah, would come out of the Fire, even though he has in his heart virtue equal to the weight of a wheat grain. He would then bring out from the Fire he who professed: There is no god but Allah, even though he has in his heart virtue equal to the weight of an atom. Ibn Minhal has made an addition (of these words) in his narration: Yazid said: I met Shu'ba and narrated to him this hadith. Shu'ba said: Qatada transmitted to us this hadith from Anas b. Malik who heard it from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) with this alteration that he substituted the word Zurra (grain) in place of Zarra (atom). Yazid said: Abu Bistam has made a change in it. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0377. ------------------------------ Chapter : The lowest of the ranks in Paradise. Ma'bad b. Hilal al 'Anazi reported: We went to Anas b. Malik through Thabit and reached there (his house) while he was offering the forenoon prayer. Thabit sought permission for us and we entered, and he seated Thabit with him on his bedstead. He (Thabit) said to him (Anas b. Malik): O Abu Hamza (kunya of Anas b. Malik), your brothers from among the inhabitants of Basra ask you to narrate to them the hadith of intercession. He said: Muhammad (may peace be upon him) narrated to us: When it would be the Day of Resurrection, some of the people would rush to one another in bewilderment. They would come to Adam and say: Intercede (with your Lord) for your progeny. He would say: I am not fit to do this, but go to Ibrabim (peace be upon him) for he is the Friend of Allah. They would come to Ibrahim, but he would say: I am not fit to do this, but go to Moses, for he is Allah's Interlocutor. They would come to Moses, but he would say: I am not fit to do this, but you should go to Jesus, for he is the Spirit of Allah and His word. They would come to Jesus, and he would say, I am not fit to do this; you better go to Muhammad (may peace be upon him). They would come to me, and I would say: I am in a position to do that, I would go and ask the permission of my Lord and it would be granted to me. I would then stand before Him and would extol Him with praises which I am not able to do now, but with which Allah would inspire me, then I would fall in prostration and it would be said to me: O Muhammad, raise thy head, and say and it would be listened to; ask and it would be granted, intercede and it would be accepted. I shall say: My Lord, my people, my people It would be said: Go, and bring forth from it (Hell) him who has in his heart faith equal to the weight of a wheat grain or a barley seed. I would go and do that; then I would return to my Lord and extol Him with those praises (taught to me by Allah), then I would fall in prostration. It would be said to me: O Muhammad, raise your head, and say and it would be heard; ask and it would be granted; intercede and intercession would be accepted. So I would say: My people, my people. It would be said to me: Go and take out from it (Hell) him who has in his heart faith equal to the weight of a mustard seed. I would go and do that. I would again return to my Lord and extol Him with those praises. I would then fall in prostration. It would be said to me: O Muhammad, raise your head: say, and you would be listened to; ask and it would be granted; intercede and intercession would be accepted. I would say: My Lord, my people, my people. It would be said to me: Go, and bring out of the Fire him who has in his heart as much faith as the smallest, smallest, smallest grain of mustard seed. I would go and do that. This is the hadith which Anas narrated to us. We went out of his (house) and when we reached the upper part of Jabban (graveyard) we said: Would that we meet Hasan and salute him and he was hiding in the house of Abu Khalifa. He (Ma'bad b. Hilal, the narrator) said: We went to him and greeted him and we said: O Abu Sa'id, we come from your brother Abu Hamza (kunya of Anas), and we have never heard a hadith like this relating to intercession, which he has narrated to us. He said: Narrate it, we narrated the hadith. He said: Narrate it (still further). We said: He did not (narrate it) before us more than this. He said: He (Anas) had narrated it to us twenty years back, when he was strong and healthy. He has in fact missed something. I cannot make out whether the old man has forgotten or he has (intentionally) avoided to narrate it to you lest you should rely (absolutely) upon it (and abandon doing good deeds). We said to him: Relate that to us, and he laughed and said: There is haste in the nature of man. I did not make mention of it to you but for the fact that I wanted to narrate that to you (and added that the Holy Prophet said): I would then return to my Lord for the fourth time and extol Him with these praises. I would then fall in prostration. It would be said to me: O Muhammad, raise your head: say and it will be listened to; ask and it will be granted; intercede and intercession would be accepted. I would say: O my Lord, permit me regarding him who professed: There is no god but Allah. He (the Lord) would say: That is not for thee or that is not what lies with thee, but by My Honour, Glory, Greatness and Might, I would certainly take him out who professed it: There is no god but Allah. He (the narrator, Ma'bad) said: I hear testimony to the fact that the hadith transmitted to us-by Hasan was heard by him from Anas b. Malik and I can see that he reported it twenty years back, when he was hale and hearty. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0378. ------------------------------ Chapter : The lowest of the ranks in Paradise. Abu Huraira reported: Meat was one day brought to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and a foreleg was offered to him, a part which he liked. He sliced with his teeth a piece out of it and said: I shall be the leader of mankind on the Day of Resurrection. Do you know why? Allah would gather in one plain the earlier and the later (of the human race) on the Day of Resurrection. Then the voice of the proclaimer would be heard by all of them and the eyesight would penetrate through all of them and the sun would come near. People would then experience a degree of anguish, anxiety and agony which they shall not be able to bear and they shall not be able to stand. Some people would say to the others: Don you see in which trouble you are? Don't you see what (misfortune) has overtaken you? Why don't you find one who should intercede for you with your Lord? Some would say to the others: Go to Adam. And they would go to Adam and say: O Adam, thou art the father of mankind. Allah created thee by His own Hand and breathed in thee of His spirit and ordered the angels to prostrate before thee. Intercede for us with thy Lord Don't you see in what (trouble) we are? Don't you see what (misfortune) has overtaken us? Adam would say: Verily, my Lord is angry to an extent to which He had never been angry before nor would He be angry afterward. Verily, He forbade me (to go near) that tree and I disobeyed Him. I am concerned with my own self. Go to someone else; go to Noah. They would come to Noah and would say: O Noah, thou art the first of the Messengers (sent) on the earth (after Adam), and Allah named thee as a "Grateful Servant," intercede for us with thy Lord. Don't you see in what (trouble) we are? Don't you see what (misfortune) has overtaken us? He would say: Verily, my Lord is angry today as He had never been angry before, and would never be angry afterwards. There had emanated a curse from me with which I cursed my people. I am concerned with only myself, I am concerned only with myself; you better go to Ibrahim (peace be upon him). They would go to Ibrahim and say: Thou art the apostle of Allah and His Friend amongst the inhabitants of the earth; intercede for us with thy Lord. Don't you see in which (trouble) we are? Don't you see what (misfortune) has overtaken us? Ibrahim would say to them: Verily, my Lord is today angry as He had never been angry before and would never be angry afterwards. and (Ibrahim) would mention his lies (and then say): I am concerned only with myself, I am concerned only with myself. You better go to someone else: go to Moses. They would come to Moses (peace be upon him) and say: O Moses, thou art Allah's messenger, Allah blessed thee with His messenger-ship and His conversation amongst people. Intercede for us with thy Lord. Don't you see in what (trouble) we are? Don't you see what (misfortune) has overtaken us? Moses (peace be upon him) would say to them: Verily, my Lord is angry as He had never been angry before and would never be angry afterwards. I, in fact, killed a person whom I had not been ordered to kill. I am concerned with myself, I am concerned with myself. You better go to Jesus (peace be upon him). They would come to Jesus and would say: O Jesus, thou art the messenger of Allah and thou conversed with people in the cradle, (thou art) His Word which is sent down upon Mary and (thou art) the Spirit from Him; so intercede for us with thy Lord. Don't you see (the trouble) in which we are? Don't you see (the misfortune) that has overtaken us? Jesus (peace be upon him) would say: Verily, my Lord is angry today as He had never been angry before or would ever be angry after- wards. He mentioned no sin of his. (He simply said:) I am concerned with myself, I am concerned with myself; you go to someone else: better go to Muhammad (may peace be upon him). They would come to me and say: O Muhammad, thou art the messenger of Allah and the last of the apostles. Allah has pardoned thee all thy previous and later sins. Intercede for us with thy Lord; don't you see in which (trouble) we are? Don't you see what (misfortune) has overtaken us? I shall then set off and come below the Throne and fall down prostrate before my Lord; then Allah would reveal to me and inspire me with some of His Praises and Glorifications which He had not revealed to anyone before me. He would then say: Muhammad, raise thy head; ask and it would be granted; intercede and intercession would be accepted I would then raise my head and say: O my Lord, my people, my people. It would be said: O Muhammad, bring in by the right gate of Paradise those of your people who would have no account to render. They would share with the people some other door besides this door. The Holy Prophet then said: By Him in Whose Hand is the life of Muhammad, verify the distance between two door leaves of the Paradise is as great as between Mecca and Hajar, or as between Mecca and Busra. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0379. ------------------------------ Chapter : The lowest of the ranks in Paradise. It is reported on the authority of Abu Huraira that there was placed before the Messenger of Allah a cup of soft bread, soup and meat. He took part of the foreleg which he liked most. He sliced (with his teeth) a slice (out of that) and said: I would be the leader of mankind on the Day of Resurrection. He then sliced (that meat) for the second time and said: I am the leader of mankind on the Day of Resurrection. When he saw that his companions did not ask him (about this assertion) he said: Why don't you say: How would that be? They said: How would be it, Messenger of Allah? He said: People would stand before the Lord of the worlds. And the rest of the hadith was narrated like the one transmitted by Abu Hayyan, on the authority of Abu Zur'a, and in the story of Ibrahim, this addition was made. He said and made mention of his words with regard to the star: This is my Lord. And his words with regard to their gods: But the big among them has done that. And his words: I am ailing. He (the Holy Prophet) said: By Him in Whose Hand is the life of Muhammad, the distance between two leaves of the door from their supporting frames is as the distance between Mecca and Hajar or Hajar and Mecca. I do not remember how he said it (whether Mecca and Hajar or Hajar and Mecca). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0380. ------------------------------ Chapter : The lowest of the ranks in Paradise. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira and Hudhaifa that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Allah, the Blessed and Exalted, would gather people. The believers would stand till the Paradise would be brought near them. They would come to Adam and say: O our father, open for us the Paradise. He would say: What turned ye out from the Paradise was the sin of your father Adam. I am not in a position to do that; better go to my son Ibrahim, the Friend of Allah. He (the Holy Prophet) said: He (Ibrahim) would say: I am not in a position to do that. Verily I had been the Friend (of Allah) from beyond, beyond; you better approach Moses (peace be upon him) with whom Allah conversed. They would come to Moses (peace be upon him), but he would say: I am not in a position to do that; you better go to Jesus, the Word of Allah and His Spirit. Jesus (peace be upon him) would say: I am not in a position to do that. So they would come to Muhammad (may peace be upon him). He would then be permitted (to open the door of Paradise). Trust worthiness and kinship would be despatched, and these would stand on the right and left of the Path and the first of you would pass with (the swiftness) of lightning. He (the narrator) said: I said, O thou who art far dearer to me than my father and my mother I which thing is like the passing of lightning? He said: Have you not seen lightning, how it passes and then comes back within the twinkling of an eye? Then (they would pass) like the passing of the wind, then like the passing of a bird, and the hastening of persons would be according to their deeds, and your Apostle would be standing on the Path saying: Save, O my Lord, save. (The people would go on passing) till the deeds of the servants would be failing in strength, till a man would come who would find it hard to go along (that Path) but crawlingly. He (the narrator) said: And on the sides of the Path hooks would be suspended ready to catch anyone whom these would be required (to catch). There would be those who would somehow or other succeed in transversing that Path and some would be piled up in Hell. By Him in Whose Hand is the life of Abu Huraira it would take one seventy years to fathom the depth of Hell. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0381. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the words of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him): "I would be the first among people to Intercede in the Paradise and among the Apostles I would have the largest following". Anas b. Malik reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I would be the first among people to intercede in the Paradise and amongst the apostles I would have the largest following (on the Day of Resurrection). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0382. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the words of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him): "I would be the first among people to Intercede in the Paradise and among the Apostles I would have the largest following". Anas b. Malik reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Amongst the apostles I would have the largest following on the Day of Resurrection, and I would be the first to knock at the door of Paradise. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0383. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the words of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him): "I would be the first among people to Intercede in the Paradise and among the Apostles I would have the largest following". Anas b. Malik said: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I would be the first intercessor in the Paradise and no apostle amongst the apostles has been testified (by such a large number of people) as I have been testified. And verily there would be an apostle among the apostles who would be testified to by only one man from his people. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0384. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the words of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him): "I would be the first among people to Intercede in the Paradise and among the Apostles I would have the largest following". Anas b. Malik reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I will come to the gate of Paradise on the Day of Resurrection and would seek its opening and the keeper would say: Who art thou? I would say: Muhammad. He would then say: It is for thee that I have been ordered, and not to open it for anyone before thee. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0385. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the words of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him): "I would be the first among people to Intercede in the Paradise and among the Apostles I would have the largest following". Abu Huraira reported: Verity the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: There is for every apostle a (special) prayer with which he would pray. I wish I could reserve, my prayer for intercession of my Ummah on the Day of Resurrection. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0386. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the words of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him): "I would be the first among people to Intercede in the Paradise and among the Apostles I would have the largest following". Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: There is for every apostle a prayer, and I intend (if Allah so willed) that I would reserve my prayer for the intercession of my Ummah on the Day of Resurrection. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0387. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the words of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him): "I would be the first among people to Intercede in the Paradise and among the Apostles I would have the largest following". 'Amr b. Abu Sufyan transmitted a hadith like this from Abu Huraira who narrated it from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0388. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the words of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him): "I would be the first among people to Intercede in the Paradise and among the Apostles I would have the largest following". Amr b. Abu Sufyan reported: Abu Huraira said to Ka'b al-Ahbar that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said: For every apostle there Is a (special) prayer by which he would pray (to his Lord). I, however, intend (if Allah so willed) that I would reserve my prayer for the intercession of my Ummah on the Day of Resurrection. Ka'b said to Abu Huraira: Did you hear this from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him)? Abu Huraira said: Yes. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0389. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the words of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him): "I would be the first among people to Intercede in the Paradise and among the Apostles I would have the largest following". Abu Huraira said: The Prophet of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: There is for every apostle a prayer which is granted, but every prophet showed haste in his prayer. I have, however, reserved my prayer for the intercession of my Ummah on the Day of Resurrection, and it would be granted, if Allah so willed, in case of everyone amongst my Ummah provided he dies without associating anything with Allah. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0390. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the words of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him): "I would be the first among people to Intercede in the Paradise and among the Apostles I would have the largest following". Abu Huraira said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Every Messenger is endowed with a prayer which is granted and by which he would (pray to his Lord) and it would he granted for him. I have, however, reserved my prayer for the intercession of my Ummab on the Day of Resurrection. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0391. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the words of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him): "I would be the first among people to Intercede in the Paradise and among the Apostles I would have the largest following". Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: There was for every apostle a prayer with which he prayed for his Ummah and it was granted to him; but I wish, if Allah so wills, to defer my prayer for the intercession of my Ummah on the Day of Resurrection. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0392. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the words of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him): "I would be the first among people to Intercede in the Paradise and among the Apostles I would have the largest following". Anas b. Malik reported: Verily the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: There is for every apostle a prayer with which he prays (to Allah) for his Ummah. I have reserved my prayer for the intercession of my Ummah on the Day of Resurrection. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0393. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the words of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him): "I would be the first among people to Intercede in the Paradise and among the Apostles I would have the largest following". This hadith is narrated with the same chain of narrators by Qatada. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0394. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the words of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him): "I would be the first among people to Intercede in the Paradise and among the Apostles I would have the largest following". Mis'ar transmitted it with the same chain of narrators from Qatada except that in the hadith narrated by Waki' (the Prophet) said: "He was endowed," and in the hadith reported by Abu Usama (the words are): "It is reported from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him)." Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0395. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the words of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him): "I would be the first among people to Intercede in the Paradise and among the Apostles I would have the largest following". Muhammad b. 'Abd al-A'la reported it to me: Mu'tamir narrated to us on the authority of his father who transmitted it to Anas that verity the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said, and then narrated the hadith like the one transmitted by Qatada on the authority of Anas. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0396. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the words of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him): "I would be the first among people to Intercede in the Paradise and among the Apostles I would have the largest following". Abu Zubair heard Jabir b. Abdullah reporting it from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him): For every apostle was a prayer with which he prayed (to his Lord) for his Ummah, but I have reserved my prayer for the intercession of my Ummah on the Day of Resurrection. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0397. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer of the Apostle (may peace be upon him) for his Ummah and his being moved to tears on account of his affection for them. 'Abdullah b. Amr b. al-'As reported: Verily the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) recited the words of Allah, the Great and Glorious, that Ibrahim uttered. My Lord ! lo! they have led many of mankind astray: "But whoso followeth me, he verily is of me" (al-Qur'an, xiv. 35) and Jesus (peace be upon him) said: "If thou punisheth them, lo! they are Thy slaves, and if Thou forgiveth them-verily Thou art the Mighty, the Wise" (al-Qur'an, v 117). Then he raised his hands and said: O Lord, my Ummah, my Ummah, and wept; so Allah the High and the Exalted said: O Gabriel, go to Muhammad (though your Lord knows it fully well) and ask him: What makes thee weep? So Gabriel (peace be upon him) came to him and asked him, and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) informed him what he had said (though Allah knew it fully well). Upon this Allah said: O Gabriel, go to Muhammad any say: Verily We will please thee with regard to your Ummah and would not displease thee. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0398. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who died with unbelief would be (thrown) into the Fire, intercession would be of no avail to him and the relationship of his favourites would not benefit him. Anas reported: Verily, a person said: Messenger of Allah, where is my father? He said: (He) is in the Fire. When he turned away, he (the Holy Prophet) called him and said: Verily my father and your father are in the Fire. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0399. ------------------------------ Chapter : Regarding the words of Allah: "And warn thy nearest kindred". Abu Huraira reported: When this verse was revealed: "And warn thy nearest kindred (al-Qur'an, xxvi. 214), the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) called the Quraish; so they gathered and he gave them a general warning. Then he made a particular (reference to certain tribes) and said: O sons of Ka'b b. Luwayy, rescue yourselves from the Fire; O sons of Murra b. Ka'b, rescue yourselves from the Fire: O sons of Abd Shams, rescue yourselves from the Fire; O sons of Abd Manaf rescue yourselves from the Fire; O sons of Hashim, rescue yourselves from the Fire; O sons of Abd al-Muttalib, rescue yourselves from the Fire; O Fatimah, rescue thyself from the Fire, for I have no power (to protect you) from Allah in anything except this that I would sustain relationship with you. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0400. ------------------------------ Chapter : Regarding the words of Allah: "And warn thy nearest kindred". The same hadith is narrated by Ubaidallah b. Umar al-Qawariri from Abu 'Uwana, who transmitted it to 'Abd al-Malik b. 'Umair on the same chain of transmitter and the hadith of Jarir is more perfect and comprehensive. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0401. ------------------------------ Chapter : Regarding the words of Allah: "And warn thy nearest kindred". It is narrated on the authority of 'Aisha that when this verse was revealed: "And warn thy nearest kindred," the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) stood up on Safa' and said: O Fatima, daughter of Muhammad. O Safiya, daughter of 'Abd al-Muttalib, O sons of 'Abd al-Muttalib. I have nothing which can avail you against Allah; you may ask me what you want of my worldly belongings. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0402. ------------------------------ Chapter : Regarding the words of Allah: "And warn thy nearest kindred". Abu Huraira reported: When (this verse) was revealed to him: "Warn your nearest kinsmen." the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: O people of Quraish, buy yourselves from Allah, I cannot avail you at all against Allah; O sons of Abd al-Muttalib. I cannot avail you at all against Allah; O Abbas b. 'Abd al- Muttalib, I cannot avail you at all against Allah; O Safiya (aunt of the Messenger of Allah), I cannot avail you at all against Allah; O Fatima, daughter of Muhammad, ask me whatever you like, but I cannot avail you at all against Allah. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0403. ------------------------------ Chapter : Regarding the words of Allah: "And warn thy nearest kindred". This hadith is narrated from the Apostle (may peace be upon him) by another chain of narrators, 'Amr al-Naqid, Mu'awiya b. 'Amr, Abdullah b. Dhakwan, A'raj on the authority of Abu Huraira. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0404. ------------------------------ Chapter : Regarding the words of Allah: "And warn thy nearest kindred". Qabisa b. al-Mukhariq and Zuhair b. 'Amr reported: When this verse was revealed: "And warn thy nearest kindred," the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) set off towards a rock of the hill and ascended the highest of the rocks and then called: O sons of 'Abd Manaf! I am a warner; my similitude and your similitude is like a man who saw the enemy and went to guard his people, but, being afraid they might get there before him, he shouted: Be on your guard! Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0405. ------------------------------ Chapter : Regarding the words of Allah: "And warn thy nearest kindred". This hadith is narrated from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) by another chain of narrators, Muhammad b. Abd al-A'la, Mu'tamir, Abu 'Uthman, Zuhair b. 'Amr, Qabisa b. Mukhariq. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0406. ------------------------------ Chapter : Regarding the words of Allah: "And warn thy nearest kindred". It is reported on the authority of Ibn 'Abbas that when this verse was revealed: "And warn thy nearest kindred" (and thy group of selected people among them) the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) set off till he climbed Safa' and called loudly: Be on your guard! They said: Who is it calling aloud? They said: Muhammad. They gathered round him, and he said: O sons of so and so, O sons of so and so, O sons of 'Abd Manaf, O sons of 'Abd al-Muttalib, and they gathered around him. He (the Apostle) said: If I were to inform you that there were horsemen emerging out of the foot of this mountain, would you believe me? They said: We have not experienced any lie from you. He said: Well, I am a warner to you before a severe torment. He (the narrator) said that Abu Lahab then said: Destruction to you! Is it for this you have gathered us? He (the Holy Prophet) then stood up, and this verse was revealed: "Perish the hands of Abu Lahab, and he indeed perished" (cxi. 1). A'mash recited this to the end of the Sura. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0407. ------------------------------ Chapter : Regarding the words of Allah: "And warn thy nearest kindred". This hadith was narrated by A'mash on the authority of the same chain of narrators and he said: One day the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) climbed the hill of Safa' and said: Be on your guard, and the rest of the hadith was narrated like the hadith transmitted by Usama; he made no mention of the revelation of the verse: "Warn thy nearest kindred." Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0408. ------------------------------ Chapter : Intercession of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) for Abu Talib and some remission for him on this account. It is reported on the authority of 'Abbas b. Abd al-Muttalib that he said: Messenger of Allah, have you benefited Abu Talib in any way for he defended you and was fervent in your defence? The Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) said: Yes; he would be in the most shallow part of the Fire: and but for me he would have been in the lowest part of Hell. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0409. ------------------------------ Chapter : Intercession of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) for Abu Talib and some remission for him on this account. Abdullah b. al-Harith reported: I heard Abbas say: I said: Messenger of Allah, verily Abu Talib defended you and helped you; would it be beneficial for him? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Yes; I found him in the lowest part of the Fire and I brought him to the shallow part. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0410. ------------------------------ Chapter : Intercession of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) for Abu Talib and some remission for him on this account. This hadith is narrated from the Apostle (may peace be upon him) like one narrated by Abu 'Uwana on the authority of the chain of transmitters like Muhammad b. Hatim, Yahya b. Sa'id, Abu Sufyan, 'Abbas b. 'Abd al-Muttalib and others. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0411. ------------------------------ Chapter : Intercession of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) for Abu Talib and some remission for him on this account. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported: A mention was made of his uncle Abu Talib before the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) He said: My intercession may benefit him on the Day of Resurrection and he may be placed in the shallow part of the Fire which would reach his ankles and his brain would be boiling. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0412. ------------------------------ Chapter : Intercession of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) for Abu Talib and some remission for him on this account. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported: Verily, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The least tormented of the inhabitants of the Fire would be he who would wear two shoes of Fire and his brain would boil on account of the heat of the shoes. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0413. ------------------------------ Chapter : Intercession of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) for Abu Talib and some remission for him on this account. Ibn 'Abbas reported: The Prophet (may peace be upon him) said: Among the inhabitants of the Fire Abu Talib would have the least suffering, and he would be wearing two shoes (of Fire) which would boil his brain. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0414. ------------------------------ Chapter : Intercession of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) for Abu Talib and some remission for him on this account. Nu'man b. Bashir was delivering an address and saying: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) say: the least suffering for the inhabitants of Hell on the Day of Resurrection would be for the man under whose soles would be placed two embers and his brain would boil on account of them. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0415. ------------------------------ Chapter : Intercession of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) for Abu Talib and some remission for him on this account. Nu'man b. Bashir reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Verily the least suffering for the inhabitants of Fire would be for him who would have two shoes and two laces of Fire (on his feet), and with these would boil his brain as boils the cooking vessel, and he would think that he would not see anyone in a more grievous torment than him, whereas he would be in the least torment. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0416. ------------------------------ Chapter : Proof in support of the fact that he who died in unbelief, his deed would not be of any avail to him. 'Aisha reported: I said: Messenger of Allah, the son of Jud'an established ties of relationship, fed the poor. Would that be of any avail to him? He said: It would be of no avail to him as he did not ever say: O my Lord, pardon my sins on the Day of Resurrection. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0417. ------------------------------ Chapter : Friendship with believers and dissociation with non-believers and severance from the. 'Amr b. 'As reported: I heard it from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) quite audibly and not secretly: Behold! the posterity of my fathers, that is, so and so, are not my friends. Verily Allah and the pious believers are my friends. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0418. ------------------------------ Chapter : The admittance into Paradise of a group of Muslims without rendering any account and suffering punishment (torment). It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Seventy thousand (persons) of my Ummah would enter Paradise without rendering an account. Upon this a person said: Messenger of Allah; pray to Allah that He make me one of them. He (the Holy Prophet) said: O Allah! make him one of them. Then another stood up and said: Messenger of Allah, pray to Allah that He make me one of them. He (the Holy Prophet) said: 'Ukkasha has preceded you in this matter. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0419. ------------------------------ Chapter : The admittance into Paradise of a group of Muslims without rendering any account and suffering punishment (torment). Muhammad b. Ziyad reported: I heard Abu Huraira narrate this: I heard it from the Messenger of Allah(may peace be upon him) saying a hadith like one narrated by al-Rabi'. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0420. ------------------------------ Chapter : The admittance into Paradise of a group of Muslims without rendering any account and suffering punishment (torment). Abu Huraira reported: I heard it from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying: A group of my Ummah consisting of seventy thousand persons would enter Paradise; their faces would be as bright as the brightness of the full moon. Abd Huraira said: 'Ukkasha b. Mihsan al-Asadi then stood up wrapping the blanket around him and said: Messenger of Allah, supplicate (before) Allah that He should make me one among them. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: O Allah, make him among them. Then stood up a man from the Ansa and said: Messenger of Allah, pray to Allah that He should make me one among them. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: 'Ukkasha has preceded you in this matter. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0421. ------------------------------ Chapter : The admittance into Paradise of a group of Muslims without rendering any account and suffering punishment (torment). Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Seventy thousand (persons) would enter Paradise as one group and among them (there would be people) whom faces would be bright like the moon. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0422. ------------------------------ Chapter : The admittance into Paradise of a group of Muslims without rendering any account and suffering punishment (torment). It is reported on the authority of 'Imran that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Seventy thousand people of my Ummah would be admitted into Paradise without rendering any account. They (the companions) said: Who would be of those (fortunate persons)? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Those who do not cauterise and practise charm, but repose trust in their Lord, 'Ukkasha then stood up and said: Supplicate (before) Allah that He should make me one among them. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Thou art one among them He (the narrator) said: A man stood up and said: Apostle of Allah, supplicate (before) Allah that He should make me one among them. He (the Holy Prophet said: 'Ukkasha has preceded you (in this matter). Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0423. ------------------------------ Chapter : The admittance into Paradise of a group of Muslims without rendering any account and suffering punishment (torment). 'Imran b. Husain reported: Verily the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Seventy thousand men of my Ummah would enter Paradise without rendering account. They (the companions of the Holy Prophet) said: Who would be those, Messenger of Allah? He (the Holy Prophet) said: They would be those who neither practise charm, not take omens, nor do they cauterise, but they repose their trust in their Lord. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0424. ------------------------------ Chapter : The admittance into Paradise of a group of Muslims without rendering any account and suffering punishment (torment). Abu Hazim narrated it on the authority of Ibn Sa'd that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Seventy thousand persons or seven hundred thousand persons (Abu Hazim does not remember the exact number) would enter Paradise holding and supporting one another, and the first among them would not enter till the last among them would enter (therein); (they would enter simultaneously) and their faces would be bright like the full moon. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0425. ------------------------------ Chapter : The admittance into Paradise of a group of Muslims without rendering any account and suffering punishment (torment). Husain b. 'Abd al-Rahman reported: I was with Sa'id b. Jubair when he said: Who amongst you saw a star shooting last night? I said: It was I; then I said: I was in fact not (busy) in prayer, but was stung by a scorpion (and that is the reason why I was awake and had a glimpse of the shooting star). He said: Then what did you do? I said: I practised charm. He said: What urged you to do this? I said: (I did this according to the implied suggestion)of the hadith which al-Shu'ba narrated. He said: What did al-Shu'ba narrate to you? I said: Buraida b. Husaib al-Aslami narrated to us. The charm is of no avail except in case of the (evil influence) of an eye or the sting of a scorpion. He said: He who acted according to what he had heard (from the Holy Prophet) acted rightly, but Ibn 'Abbas narrated to us from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) that he said: There were brought before me the peoples and I saw an apostle and a small group (of his followers) along with him, another (apostle) and one or two persons (along with him) and (still another) apostle having no one with him. When a very large group was brought to me I conceived as if it were my Ummah. Then it was said to me: It is Moses and his people. You should look at the horizon, and I saw a very huge group. It was again said to me: See the other side of the horizon, and there was (also) a very huge group. It was said to me: This is your Ummah, and amongst them there were seventy thousand persons who would be made to enter Paradise without rendering any account and without (suffering) any torment. He then stood up and went to his house. Then the people began to talk about the people who would be admitted to Paradise without rendering any account and without (suffering) any torment. Some of them said: They may be those who (have had the good fortune of living) in the company of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and some of them said: They be those who were born in Islam and did not associate anything with Allah. Some people mentioned other things. Thereupon came forth the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) before them and he said: What was that which you were talking about? They informed him. He said: They are those persons who neither practise charm, nor ask others to practise it, nor do they take omens, and repose their trust in their Lord. Upon this 'Ukkasha b. Mihsan stood up and said: Supplicate for me that He should make me one among them. Upon this he (Messenger of Allah) said: Thou are one among them. Then another man stood up and said: Supplicate before Allah that He should make me one among them. Upon this he said: 'Ukkisha has preceded you. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0426. ------------------------------ Chapter : The admittance into Paradise of a group of Muslims without rendering any account and suffering punishment (torment). Ibn 'Abbas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Peoples would be presented to me (on the Day of Resurrection), and then the remaining part of the hadith was narrated like the one transmitted by Hushaim, but he made no mention of the first portion. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0427. ------------------------------ Chapter : This Ummah (Ummah of Islam) would constitute half of the inhabitants of Paradise. Abdullah b. Mas'ud reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) addressing us said: Aren't you pleased that you should constitute one-fourth of the inhabitants of Paradise? He (the narrator) said: We glorified (our Lord, i.e. we called aloud Allah-o Akbar, Allah is the Greatest). He, then, again said: Aren't you pleased that you should constitute one-third of the inhabitants of Paradise? He (the narrator) said: We glorified (our Lord) and he (the Holy Prophet) then again said: I hope that you would constitute half of the inhabitants of Paradise and I shall explain to you its (reason). The believers among the unbelievers would not be more than a white hair on (the body of a) black ox or a black hair on (the body of a) white ox. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0428. ------------------------------ Chapter : This Ummah (Ummah of Islam) would constitute half of the inhabitants of Paradise. 'Abdullah (b. Mas'ud) reported: We, about forty men, were with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) in a camp when he said: Aren't you pleased that they should constitute one-fourth of the inhabitants of Paradise? He (the narrator) said: Yes. He (the Holy Prophet) again said: Aren't you pleased that you should constitute one-third of the inhabitants of Paradise? They said: Yes. Upon this he again said: By Him in Whose Hand is my life, I hope that you would constitute one-half of the inhabitants of Paradise and the reason is that no one would be admitted into Paradise but a believer and you are no more among the polytheists than as a white hair on the skin of a black ox or a black hair on the skin of a red ox. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0429. ------------------------------ Chapter : This Ummah (Ummah of Islam) would constitute half of the inhabitants of Paradise. Abdullah b Mas'ud reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) addressed us and then supported his back (by reclining) against a leather tent and said: Behold, no one but a believing person would enter Paradise. O Allah, (see) have I conveyed (it not)? O Allah, be witness (to it that I have conveyed it). (Then addressing the companions) he said: Don't you like that you should constitute one-fourth of the inhabitants of Paradise? We said: Yes, Messenger of Allah. He again said: Don't you like that you should constitute one-third of the inhabitants of Paradise? They said: Yes, Messenger of Allah. He said: I hope that you would constitute one- half of the inhabitants of Paradise and you would be among the peoples of the world, like a black hair on (the body of) a white ox or like a white hair on the body of a black ox. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0430. ------------------------------ Chapter : This Ummah (Ummah of Islam) would constitute half of the inhabitants of Paradise. Abu Sa'id reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Allah, the High and Glorious, would say: O Adam I and he would say: At Thy service, at thy beck and call, O Lord, and the good is in Thy Hand. Allah would say: Bring forth the group of (the denizens of) Fire. He (Adam) would say: Who are the denizens of Hell? It would be said: They are out of every thousand nine hundred and ninety-nine. He (the Holy Prophet) said: It is at this juncture that every child would become white-haired and every pregnant woman would abort and you would see people in a state of intoxication, and they would not be in fact intoxicated but grievous will be the torment of Allah. He (the narrator) said: This had a very depressing effect upon them (upon the companions of the Holy Prophet) and they said: Messenger of Allah, who amongst us would be (that unfortunate) person (who would be doomed to Hell)? He said: Good tidings for you, Yajuj Majuj would be those thousands (who would be the denizens of Hell) and a person (selected for Paradise) would be amongst you. He (the narrator) further reported that he (the Messenger of Allah) again said: By Him in Whose Hand is thy life, I hope that you would constitute one-fourth of the inhabitants of Paradise. We extolled Allah and we glorified (Him). He (the Holy Prophet) again said: BY Him in Whose Hand is my life, I wish you would constitute one-third of the inhabitants of Paradise. We extolled Allah and Glorified (Him). He (the Holy Prophet) again said: By Him in Whose Hand is my life, I hope that you would constitute half of the inhabitants of Paradise. Your likeness among the people is the likeness of a white hair on the skin of a black ox or a strip on the foreleg of an ass. Muslim Book 001, Hadith Number 0431. ------------------------------ Chapter : This Ummah (Ummah of Islam) would constitute half of the inhabitants of Paradise. The same hadith has been narrated from A'mash on the authority of the same chain of transmitters with the exception of these words: You would be no more among men (on the Day of Resurrection) but like a white hair on (the body of) a black ox, or like a black hair on (the body of) a white ox, and he made no mention of: a strip on the foreleg of an ass. Total Hadiths : 431. Generated By : The Hadith Software Version 1.0 Date : 05-03-2009. ****************************************************************** * NOTE!! THERE ARE VARIOUS WEB SITES (I.E. WWW.HADITHONLINE.COM) * * THAT CAN BE USED TO VALIDATE THE AUTHENTICITY OF EACH HADITHS * * GENERATED OR VIEWED IN THIS SOFTWARE. PLEASE REFER TO THEM IF * * YOU HAVE ANY QUESTIONS OR DOUBTS. - Islamasoft Solutions. (UK) * ****************************************************************** Islamasoft Solutions. (www.islamasoft.co.uk) The Hadith Software : Shahi Muslim. Muslim Book 2. Purification. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0432. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of Wudu. Abu Malik at-Ash'ari reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Cleanliness is half of faith and al-Hamdu Liliah (Praise be to Allah) fills the scale, and Subhan Allah (Glory be to Allah) and al-Hamdu Liliah (Praise be to Allah) fill-up what is between the heavens and the earth, and prayer is a light, and charity is proof (of one's faith) and endurance is a brightness and the Holy Qur'an is a proof on your behalf or against you. All men go out early in the morning and sell themselves, thereby setting themselves free or destroying themselves. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0433. ------------------------------ Chapter : Purification is essential for prayer. Mus'ab b. Sa'd reported: 'Abdullah son of Umar came to Ibn'Amir in order to inquire after his health as he was ailing. He said Ibn 'Umar, why don't you pray to Allah for me? He said: I heard of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) say: Neither the prayer is accepted without purification nor is charity accepted out of the ill-gotten (wealth), and thou wert the (governor) of Basra. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0434. ------------------------------ Chapter : Purification is essential for prayer. A hadith like this is narrated from the Apostle (may peace be upon him) with the same chain of transmitters by Muhammad b. Muthanna, Ibn Bashshar, Muhammad b. Ja'far, Shu'ba. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0435. ------------------------------ Chapter : Purification is essential for prayer. Hammam b. Munabbih who is the brother of Wahb b. Munabbih said: This is what has been transmitted to us by Abu Huraira from Muhammad, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and then narrated a hadith out of them and observed that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The prayer of none amongst you would be accepted in a state of impurity till he performs ablution. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0436. ------------------------------ Chapter : How to perform ablution. Humran, the freed slave of 'Uthman, said: Uthman b. 'Affan called for ablution water and this is how he performed the ablution. He washed his hands thrice. He then rinsed his mouth and cleaned his nose with water (three times). He then washed his face three times, then washed his right arm up to the elbow three times, then washed his left arm like that, then wiped his head; then washed his right foot up to the ankle three times, then washed his left foot like that, and then said: I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) perform ablution like this ablution of mine. Then the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who performs ablution like this ablution of mine and then stood up (for prayer) and offered two rak'ahs of prayer without allowing his thoughts to be distracted, all his previous sins are expiated. Ibn Shihab said: Our scholars remarked: This is the most complete of the ablutions performed for prayer. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0437. ------------------------------ Chapter : How to perform ablution. Humran, the freed slave of 'Uthman said: I saw Uthman call for a vessel (of water) and poured water over his hands three times and then washed them. Then he put his right hand in the vessel and rinsed his mouth and cleaned his nose. Then he washed his face three times and his hands up to the elbow three times; then wiped his head, then washed his feet three times. Then he said that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said: He who performed ablution like this ablution of mine and offered two rak'ahs of prayer without allowing his thoughts to be distracted, all his previous sins would be expiated. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0438. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Wudu and that of prayer after it. Humran, the freed slave of 'Uthman said: I heard from 'Uthman b. 'Affan and he was in the courtyard of the mosque, when the Mu'adhdhin (announcer of the prayer) came to him at the time of afternoon prayer. So the ('Uthman) called for the ablution water and performed ablution and then said: By Allah, I am narrating to you a hadith. If there were not a verse in the Muslim Book of Allah, I would have never narrated it to you. I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) say: If a Muslim performs ablution and does it well and offers prayer, all his (sins) daring the period from one prayer to another would be pardoned by Allah. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0439. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Wudu and that of prayer after it. This hadith is also narrated on the authority with the same chain of transmitters and in the hadith of Abu Usama the words are: "He who performed the ablution well and then offered the obligatory prayer." Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0440. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Wudu and that of prayer after it. Humran reported when 'Uthman performed ablution he said: By Allah, I am narrating to you a hadith had there not been this verse in the Muslim Book of Allah. I would not have narrated it to you. Verily I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) say: Not a person is there who performed ablution, and did it well, then offered prayer, but his sins (which he committed) were not pardoned between the prayer that he offered and the next one. 'Urwa said: The verse is this: "Those who suppress the clear proofs and the guidance which We have sent down"... to His words: "the Cursers" (ii. 15). Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0441. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Wudu and that of prayer after it. 'Amr b Sa'id b al-As reported: I was with Uthman that he called for ablution water and said: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) say: When the time for a prescribed prayer comes, if any Muslim perform ablution well and offers his prayer) with humility and bowing, it will be an expiation for his past sins, so long as he has not committed a major sin; and this applies to for all times. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0442. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Wudu and that of prayer after it. Humran, the freed slave of 'Uthman reported: I brought for Uthman b. 'Affan the ablution water. He performed ablution and then said: Verily the people narrate from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) a hadith. I do not know what these are, but (I know this fact) that I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) perform ablution like this ablution of mine and then he said: He who performed ablution like this, all his previous sins would be expiated and his prayer and going towards the mosque would have an extra reward. In the tradition narrated by Ibn 'Abda (the words are): "I came to Uthman and he performed ablution." Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0443. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Wudu and that of prayer after it. Abu Anas reported that Uthman performed ablution at Maqi'aid and said: Should I not show you the ablution performed by Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him)? And he then washed (the different parts of the body) three times.4" Qutaiba has added in his narration the words: "There were with him (with Uthman) Companions of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him)." Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0444. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Wudu and that of prayer after it. Humran b. Abin reported: I used to fetch water for 'Uthman for his purification. Never was there a day that he did not take a bath with a small quantity of water. And Uthman said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) at the time of our returning from our prayer told us (certain things pertaining to purification). Mis'ar said: I find that it was afternoon prayer. He said: I do not know whether I should tell you a thing or keep quiet. We said: Messenger of Allah, tell us if it is good and if it is otherwise, Allah and His Apostle know better. Upon this he said: A Muslim who purifies (himself) and completes purification as enjoined upon him by Allah and then offers the prayers, that will be expiatious (of his sins he committed) between these (prayers). Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0445. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Wudu and that of prayer after it. Jami' b. Shaddad reported: I heard Humran b. Aban narrate to Abu Burda in this very mosque during the governorship of Bishr that 'Uthman b. Alfan said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: He who completed ablution as Allah, the Exalted, enjoined upon him, his obligatory prayers would be expiatious (for his minor sins that he would commit) during (the interval) between them. This hadith is transmitted by Ibn Mu'adh, and in the hadith narrated by Ghundar, the words "during the governorship of Bishr" are omitted and there is no mention of the obligatory prayers. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0446. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Wudu and that of prayer after it. Humran, the freed slave of Uthman reported: One day Uthman b. Affan performed the ablution well, and then said: I saw Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) perform ablution, the best ablution, and then observed: He who performed ablution like this and then went towards the mosque and nothing (but the love of) prayer urged him (to do so), all his previous (minor) sins would be expiated. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0447. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Wudu and that of prayer after it. Humran, the freed slave of 'Uthman b. 'Affan, reported on the authority of 'Uthman b. 'Affan that he heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) say: He who performed ablution for prayer and performed it properly and then went (to observe) obligatory prayer and offered it along with people or with the congregation or in the mosque, Allah would pardon his sins. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0448. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Wudu and that of prayer after it. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him)said: Five prayers and from one Friday prayer to (the next) Friday prayer is an expiation (of the sins committed in between their intervals) if major sins are not committed. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0449. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Wudu and that of prayer after it. Abu Huraira reported that the Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) said: Five prayers and one Friday prayer to (the next) Friday prayer are expiatious (for the sins committed in the intervals) between them. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0450. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Wudu and that of prayer after it. Abu Huraira reported: Verily the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Five (daily) prayers and from one Friday prayer to the (next) Friday prayer, and from Ramadhan to Ramadhan are expiatious for the (sins) committed in between (their intervals) provided one shuns the major sins. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0451. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Wudu and that of prayer after it. 'Uqba b. 'Amir reported: We were entrusted with the task of tending the camels. On my turn when I came back in the evening after grazing them in the pastures, I found Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) stand and address the people. I heard these words of his: If any Muslim performs ablution well, then stands and prays two rak'ahs setting about them with his heart as well as his face, Paradise would be guaranteed to him. I said: What a fine thing is this ! And a narrator who was before me said: The first was better than even this. When I cast a glance, I saw that it was 'Umair who said: I see that you have just come and observed: If anyone amongst you performs the ablution, and then completes the ablution well and then says: I testify that there is no god but Allah and that Muhammad is the servant of Allah and His Messenger, the eight gates of Paradise would be opened for him and he may enter by whichever of them he wishes. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0452. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Wudu and that of prayer after it. Uqba b. 'Amir al-Juhani reported: Verily the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said and then narrated (the hadith) like one (mentioned above) except (this) that he said: He who performed ablution and said: I testify that there is no god but Allah, the One, there is no associate with Him and I testify that Muhammad is His servant and His Messenger. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0453. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Wudu and that of prayer after it. 'Abdullah b. Zaid b. 'Asim al-Ansari, who was a Companion (of the Holy Prophet), reported: It was said to him (by people): Perform for us the ablution (as it was performed) by the Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him). He ('Abdullah b. Zaid) called for a vessel (of water), and poured water from it on his hands and washed them three times. Then he inserted his hand (in the vessel) and brought it (water) out, rinsed his mouth and snuffed up water from the palm of one hand doing that three times, He again inserted his hand and brought it out and washed his face three times, then inserted his hand and brought it out and washed each arm up to the elbow twice, then inserted his hand and brought it out and wiped his head both front and back with his hands. He then washed his feet up to the ankles, and then said: This is how God's Messenger (peace be upon him) performed ablution. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0454. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Wudu and that of prayer after it. This hadith is narrated by Amr b. Yahya with the same chain of transmitters, but there is no mention of ankles. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0455. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Wudu and that of prayer after it. Malik b. Anas narrated it from 'Amr b. Yahya with the same chain of transmitters, transmitters and mentioned the rinsing (of mouth) and snuffing (of water into the nostrils) three times, but he did not mention "from one palm," and made this addition: He moved them (his hands) for wiping to the front of his head and then the nape of his neck, then bringing them back till he reached the place from which he had begun, after which he washed his feet. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0456. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Wudu and that of prayer after it. Babz reported: This hadith has been narrated by Wuwb on the authority of 'Amr b. Yahyi with the same chain of transmitters and it has been mentioned therein: He rinsed his mouth, snuffed up water in nostrils and cleaned the nose with three handfuls and wiped his head moving (his hand) in front and then back once. Bahz said: Wuhaib narrated this hadith to me and Wuhaib said: Amr b. Yahya narrated to me this hadith twice. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0457. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Wudu and that of prayer after it. 'Abdullah b. Zaid b. 'Asim al-Mazini reported: He saw Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) perform the ablution. He rinsed his mouth then cleaned his nose, then washed his face three times, then washed his right hand thrice and then the other one, thrice. He then took fresh water and wiped his head and then washed his feet till he cleaned them. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0458. ------------------------------ Chapter : While cleaning the nose and using of pebbles in the toilet, the odd number is preferable. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: When anyone wipes himself with pebbles (after answering the call of nature) he must make use of an odd number and when any one of you performs ablution he must snuff in his nose water and then clean it. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0459. ------------------------------ Chapter : While cleaning the nose and using of pebbles in the toilet, the odd number is preferable. Hammam b. Munabbih reported: This is what Abu Huraira transmitted to us from Muhammad, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and he mentioned a number of a hadith, of which this is one: that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When anyone amongst you (performs ablution) he must snuff his nostrils with water and then clean them. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0460. ------------------------------ Chapter : While cleaning the nose and using of pebbles in the toilet, the odd number is preferable. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (way peace he upon him) said: When anyone performs ablution he must clean his nose and when anyone wipes himself with pebbles (after answering the call of nature) he must do that odd number of times. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0461. ------------------------------ Chapter : While cleaning the nose and using of pebbles in the toilet, the odd number is preferable. It has been transmitted by Abu Huraira and Abu Sa'id al-Khudri (both of them the reputed Companions of the Holy Prophet) that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said like that. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0462. ------------------------------ Chapter : While cleaning the nose and using of pebbles in the toilet, the odd number is preferable. Abu Huraira reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When any one of you awakes up from sleep and performs ablution, he must clean his nose three times, for the devil spends the night in the interior of his nose. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0463. ------------------------------ Chapter : While cleaning the nose and using of pebbles in the toilet, the odd number is preferable. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported that he heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) say: When anyone wipes himself with pebbles (after answering the call of nature) he should do this odd number of times. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0464. ------------------------------ Chapter : The washing of feet properly is indispensable in Wudu. Salim, the freed slave of Shaddad, said: I came to 'Aisha, the wife of the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him), on the day when Sa'db. Abi Waqqas died. 'Abd al-Rahman b. Abu Bakr also came there and he performed ablution in her presence. She (Hadrat 'Aisha) said: Abd al-Rahman, complete the ablution as I heard the Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) say: Woe to the heels because of hell-fire. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0465. ------------------------------ Chapter : The washing of feet properly is indispensable in Wudu. Abdullah, the freed slave of Shahddad, came to 'Aisha and transmitted from her a hadith like this (which she narrated) from the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0466. ------------------------------ Chapter : The washing of feet properly is indispensable in Wudu. Salim, the freed slave of Mahri, reported: I and 'Abd al-Rahman b. Abu Bakr went out (in order to join) the funeral procession of Sa'd b. Abi Waqqas and passed by the door of the residence of 'Aisha, and then he transmitted a hadith like this from her who (narrated it) from the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0467. ------------------------------ Chapter : The washing of feet properly is indispensable in Wudu. Salim, the freed slave of Shaddad b. al-Had said: I was in the presence of 'Aisha, and then narrated on her authority a hadith like this from the Holy Prophet (way peace be upon him). Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0468. ------------------------------ Chapter : The washing of feet properly is indispensable in Wudu. 'Abdullah b. 'Amr reported: We returned from Mecca to Medina with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and when we came to some water on the way, some of the people were in a hurry at the time of the afternoon prayer and performed ablution hurriedly; and when we reached them, their heels were dry, no water had touched them. The Prophet (may peace be upon him) said: Woe to (dry) heels, because of Hell-fire. Make your ablution thorough. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0469. ------------------------------ Chapter : The washing of feet properly is indispensable in Wudu. In the hadith transmitted by Shu'ba these words are not there: "Complete the Wudu," and there is the name of Abu Yahya al-A'raj (a narrator). Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0470. ------------------------------ Chapter : The washing of feet properly is indispensable in Wudu. 'Abdullah b. Amr reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) lagged behind us on a journey. We travelled (back) and be took him; and then came the time of the afternoon prayer, and as we were going to wipe our feet he (the Holy Prophet) called out: Woe to the heels because of Hell-fire. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0471. ------------------------------ Chapter : The washing of feet properly is indispensable in Wudu. Abu Huraira reported: Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) saw a man who did not wash his heel and he remarked: Woe to the heels because of hell-fire. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0472. ------------------------------ Chapter : The washing of feet properly is indispensable in Wudu. Abu Huraira reported: He saw people perform ablution with the help of a water jar and he said: Complete the Wudu for I heard Abu al-Qasim (may peace be upon him) say: Woe to the hamstrings because of hell-fire. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0473. ------------------------------ Chapter : The washing of feet properly is indispensable in Wudu. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Woe to the heels because of hell-fire. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0474. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is obligatory to wash all parts of the body necessary for purification. Jabir reported: 'Umar b. Khattab said that a person performed ablution and left a small part equal to the space of a nail (unwashed). The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) saw that and said: Go back and perform ablution well. He then went back (performed ablution well) and offered the prayer. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0475. ------------------------------ Chapter : Purging of sins with ablution water. Abu Huraira reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: When a bondsman-a Muslim or a believer-washes his face (in course of ablution), every sin he contemplated with his eyes will be washed away from his face along with water, or with the last drop of water; when he washes his hands, every sin they wrought will be effaced from his hands with the water, or with the last drop of water; and when he washes his feet, every sin towards which his feet have walked will be washed away with the water or with the last drop of water with the result that he comes out pure from all sins. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0476. ------------------------------ Chapter : Purging of sins with ablution water. Uthman b. 'Affan reported: The Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) said: He who performed ablution well, his sins would come out from his body, even coming out from under his nails. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0477. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is commendable to include forehead in washing the face and elbow and ankle in washing the hands and feet, while performing ablution. Nu'aim b. 'Abdullah al-Mujmir reported: I saw Abu Huraira perform ablution. He washed his face and washed it well. He then washed his right hand including a portion of his arm. He then washed his left hand including a portion of his arm. He then wiped his head. He then washed his right foot including his shank, and then washed his left foot including shank, and then said: This is how I saw Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) perform his ablution. And (Abu Huraira) added that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had observed: You shall have your faces hands and feet bright on the Day of Resurrection because of your perfect ablution. He who can afford among you, let him increase the brightness of his forehead and that of hands and legs. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0478. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is commendable to include forehead in washing the face and elbow and ankle in washing the hands and feet, while performing ablution. Nu'aim b. 'Abdallah reported: He saw Abu Huraira perform ablution. He washed his face and washed his hands up to the arms. He then washed his feet and reached up to the shanks and then said: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) say: My people would come with bright faces and bright hands and feet on account of the marks of ablution, so he who can increase the lustre of his forehead (and that of his hands and legs) should do so. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0479. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is commendable to include forehead in washing the face and elbow and ankle in washing the hands and feet, while performing ablution. Abu Huraira reported: Verily Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: My Cistern has its dimensions wider than the distance between Aila and Aden, and its water is whiter than ice and sweeter than the honey diluted with milk, and its cups are more numerous than the numbers of the stars. Verily I shall prevent the (faithless) people there-from just as a man prevents the camels of the people from his fountain. They said: Messenger of Allah will you recognise us on that day? He said: Yes, you will have distinctive marks which nobody among the peoples (except you) will have; you would come to me with blazing forehead and bright hands and feet on account of the traces of ablution. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0480. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is commendable to include forehead in washing the face and elbow and ankle in washing the hands and feet, while performing ablution. Abu Huraira reported the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: My people would come to me on the Cistern and I would drive away persons (from it) just as a person drives away other people's camels from his camels. They (the hearers) said: Apostle of Allah, would you recognize us? He replied: Yea, you would have a mark which other people will not have. You would come to me with a white blaze on your foreheads and white marks on your feet because of the traces of ablution. A group among you would be prevented from coming to me, and they would not meet me, and I would say: O my Lord, they are my companions. Upon this an angel would reply to me saying: Do you know what these people did after you. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0481. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is commendable to include forehead in washing the face and elbow and ankle in washing the hands and feet, while performing ablution. Hudhaifa reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: My Cistern is bigger than the space between Aila and Aden. By Him in Whose Hand is my life, I will drive away persons (from it) just as a person drives away unknown camels from his cistern. They (the companions) said: Messenger of Allah, would you recognise us? He said: Yes, you would come to me with white faces, and white hands and feet on account of the traces of ablution. None but you would have (this mark). Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0482. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is commendable to include forehead in washing the face and elbow and ankle in washing the hands and feet, while performing ablution. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to the graveyard and said: Peace be upon you ! the abode of the believing people and we, if God so wills, are about to join you. I love to see my brothers. They (the hearers) said: Aren't we your brothers - Messenger of Allah? He said: You are my companions, and our brothers are those who have, so far, not come into the world. They said: Messenger of Allah, how would you recognise those persons of your Ummah who have not yet been born? He said: Supposing a man had horses with white blazes on fore- heads and legs among horses which were all black, tell me, would he not recognise his own horses? They said: Certainly. Messenger of Allah. He said: They would come with white faces and arms and legs owing to ablution, and I would arrive at the Cistern before them. Some people would be driven away from my Cistern as the stray camel is driven away. I would call out. Come; come. Then it would be said (to me): These people changed themselves after you, and I would say: Be off, be off. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0483. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is commendable to include forehead in washing the face and elbow and ankle in washing the hands and feet, while performing ablution. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace The upon him) went out to the graveyard and said: Peace be upon you, the abode of the believing people and If Allah so wills we shall join you... (and so on and so forth) like the hadith narrated by Isma'il b. Ja'far except the words of Malik: Then some persons would be driven away from my Cistern. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0484. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is commendable to include forehead in washing the face and elbow and ankle in washing the hands and feet, while performing ablution. Abu Hazim reported: I was (standing) behind Abu Huraira and he was performing the ablution for prayer. He extended the (washing) of his hand that it went up to his armpit. I said to him: O Abu Huraira, what is this ablution? He said: O of the tribe of Faruukh, you are here; if I knew that you were here, I would have never performed ablution like this; I have heard my Friend (may peace be upon him) say. In a believer adornment would reach the places where ablution reaches. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0485. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is commendable to include forehead in washing the face and elbow and ankle in washing the hands and feet, while performing ablution. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Should I not suggest to you that by which Allah obliterates the sins and elevates the ranks (of a man). They (the hearers) said: Yes, Messenger of Allah. He said: Performing the ablution thoroughly despite odds, tranverside of more paces towards the mosque, and waiting for the next prayer after observing a prayer, and that is mindfulness. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0486. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is commendable to include forehead in washing the face and elbow and ankle in washing the hands and feet, while performing ablution. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Ali' b. 'Abd al-Rahman with the same chain of transmitters and there is no mention of the word of al-Ribat in the hadith transmitted by Shu'ba and in the badith narrated by Malik "Ribat" has been mentioned twice. This is the "Ribat" for you, this is the "Ribat" for you. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0487. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to tooth-stick. Abu Huraira reported: The Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: Were it not that I might over-burden the believers-and in the hadith transmitted by Zuhair "people"-I would have ordered them to use tooth-stick at every time of prayer. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0488. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to tooth-stick. Miqdam b. Shuraih narrated it from his father who said: I asked 'Aisha what Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) did first when he entered his house, and she replied: He used tooth-stick (first of all). Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0489. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to tooth-stick. 'Aisha reported: Whenever Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) entered his house, he used tooth-stick first of all. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0490. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to tooth-stick. Abu Musa reported: I went to the Apostle (may peace be upon him) and found one end of the tooth-stick upon his tongue (i.e. he was rinsing his mouth). Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0491. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to tooth-stick. Huddaifa reported: Whenever the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) got up for Tahajjud prayer, he cleansed his mouth with the tooth-stick. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0492. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to tooth-stick. This hadith is reported from Hudaifa by another chain of transmitters. Whenever he (the Holy Prophet) got up in the night, they (the transmitters) have not mentioned the words: for offering Tahajjud prayer. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0493. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to tooth-stick. Hudaifa reported: Whenever he (the Holy Prophet) got up for prayer during the night, he cleansed his mouth with the tooth-stick. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0494. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to tooth-stick. Ibn 'Abbas reported that he spent a night at the house of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), The Apostle of Allah (way peace be upon him) got up for prayer in the latter part of the night. He went out and looked towards the sky and then recited this verse (190th) of Al-Imran: "Verily in the creation of the heavens and the earth and the alternation of night and day." up to the (words) "save us from the torment of Hell." He then returned to his house, used the tooth-stick, performed the ablution, and then got up and offered the prayer. He than lay down on the bed and again got up and went out and looked towards the sky and recited this verse (mentioned above), then returned, used the tooth-stick, performed ablution and again offered the prayer. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0495. ------------------------------ Chapter : Characteristics of Fitra. Abu Huraira reported: Five are the acts quite akin to the Fitra, or five are the acts of Fitra: circumcision, shaving the pubes, cutting the nails, plucking the hair under the armpits and clipping the moustache. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0496. ------------------------------ Chapter : Characteristics of Fitra. Abu Huraira reported: Five are the acts of Fitra: circumcision, removing the pubes, clipping the moustache, cutting the nails, plucking the hair under the armpits. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0497. ------------------------------ Chapter : Characteristics of Fitra. Anas reported: A time limit has been prescribed for us for clipping the moustache, cutting the nails, plucking hair under the armpits, shaving the pubes, that it should not be neglected far more than forty nights. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0498. ------------------------------ Chapter : Characteristics of Fitra. Ibn Umar said: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Trim closely the moustache, and let the beard grow. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0499. ------------------------------ Chapter : Characteristics of Fitra. Ibn Umar said: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) ordered us to trim the moustache closely and spare the beard. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0500. ------------------------------ Chapter : Characteristics of Fitra. Ibn Umar said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Act against the polytheists, trim closely the moustache and grow beard. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0501. ------------------------------ Chapter : Characteristics of Fitra. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Trim closely the moustache, and grow beard, and thus act against the fire-worshippers. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0502. ------------------------------ Chapter : Characteristics of Fitra. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Ten are the acts according to Fitra: clipping the moustache, letting the beard grow, using the tooth-stick, snuffing water in the nose, cutting the nails, washing the finger joints, plucking the hair under the armpits, shaving the pubes and cleaning one's private parts with water. The narrator said: I have forgotten the tenth, but it may have been rinsing the mouth. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0503. ------------------------------ Chapter : Characteristics of Fitra. This hadith has been narrated by Mus'ab b. Shaiba with the same chain of transmitters except for these words: "His father said: I forgot the tenth one." Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0504. ------------------------------ Chapter : How to cleanse oneself after relieving oneself. Salman reported that it was said to him: Your Apostle (may peace be upon him) teaches you about everything, even about excrement. He replied: Yes, he has forbidden us to face the Qibla at the time of excretion or urination, or cleansing with right hand or with less than three pebbles, or with dung or bone. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0505. ------------------------------ Chapter : How to cleanse oneself after relieving oneself. Salman said that (one among) the polytheists remarked: I see that your friend even teaches you about the excrement. He replied; Yes, he has in fact forbidden us that anyone amongst us should cleanse himself with his right hand, or face the Qibla. He has forbidden the use of dung or bone for it, and he has also instructed us not to use less than three pebbles (for this purpose). Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0506. ------------------------------ Chapter : How to cleanse oneself after relieving oneself. Jabir reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) forbade the use of bone or the droppings of camels for wiping (after excretion). Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0507. ------------------------------ Chapter : How to cleanse oneself after relieving oneself. Abu Ayyub reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Whenever you go to the desert, neither turn your face nor turn your back towards the Qibla while answering the call of nature, but face towards the east or the west. Abu Ayyub said: When we came to Syria we found that the latrines already built there were facing towards the Qibla. We turned our faces away from them and begged forgiveness of the Lord. He said: Yes. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0508. ------------------------------ Chapter : How to cleanse oneself after relieving oneself. Abu Huraira said: When any one amongst you squats for answering the call of nature, he should neither turn his face towards the Qibla nor turn his back towards it. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0509. ------------------------------ Chapter : How to cleanse oneself after relieving oneself. Wasi' b. Habban reported: I was offering my prayer in the mosque and Abdullah b. Umar was sitting there reclining with his back towards the Qibla. After completing my prayer. I went to him from one side. Abdullah said: People say when you go to the latrine, you should neither turn your face towards the Qibla nor towards Bait-ul-Maqdis. 'Abdullah said (farther): I went up to the roof of the house and saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) squatting on two bricks for relieving himself with his face towards Bait-al-Maqdis. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0510. ------------------------------ Chapter : How to cleanse oneself after relieving oneself. Abdullah b. Umar said: I went up to the roof of the house of my sister Hafsa and saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) relieving himself facing Syria. with his back to the Qibla. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0511. ------------------------------ Chapter : How to cleanse oneself after relieving oneself. Abu Qatada reported it from his father: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: None of you should hold penis with his right hand while urinating, or wipe himself with his right hand in privy and should not breathe into the vessel (from which he drinks). Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0512. ------------------------------ Chapter : How to cleanse oneself after relieving oneself. Abu Qatada reported it from his father that the Messenger of Allah(may peace be upon him) said: When anyone amongst you enters the privy he should not touch his penis with his right hand. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0513. ------------------------------ Chapter : How to cleanse oneself after relieving oneself. Aba Qatada reported: The Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) forbade (us) to breathe into the venal, to touch the penis with the right hand and to wipe after relieving with right hand. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0514. ------------------------------ Chapter : Starting from the right-hand side for ablution, etc. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) loved to start from the right-hand side for performing ablution, for combing (the hair) and wearing the shoes. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0515. ------------------------------ Chapter : Starting from the right-hand side for ablution, etc. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) loved to start from the right-hand side in his every act i.e. in wearing shoes, in combing (his hair) and in performing ablution. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0516. ------------------------------ Chapter : Easing is forbidden in the streets and under the shade. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Be on your guard against two things which provoke cursing. They (the companions present there) said: Messenger of Allah, what are those things which provoke cursing? He said: Easing on the thoroughfares or under the shades (where they take shelter and rest). Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0517. ------------------------------ Chapter : Easing is forbidden in the streets and under the shade. Anas b. Malik reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) entered an enclosure while a servant was following him with a jar of water and he was the youngest amongst us and he placed it by the side of a lote-tree. When the Messenger of Allah,(may peace be upon him) relieved himself, he came out and had cleansed himself with water. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0518. ------------------------------ Chapter : Easing is forbidden in the streets and under the shade. Anas b. Malik reported: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) entered the privy, a servant and I used to carry a skin of water, and a pointed staff, and he would cleanse himself with water. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0519. ------------------------------ Chapter : Easing is forbidden in the streets and under the shade. Anas b. Malik reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) went to a far-off place in the desert (hidden from the sight of human beings) for relieving himself. Then I brought water for him and he cleansed himself. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0520. ------------------------------ Chapter : Wiping over the socks. Hummam reported: Jarir urinated, then performed ablution and wiped over the socks. It was said to him: Do you do like this? He said: Yes, I saw that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) urinated, then performed ablution and then wiped over his shoes. A'mash said: Ibrahim had observed that this hadith was a surprise for them (the people) because Jarir had embraced Islam after the revelation of Surat al-Ma'ida. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0521. ------------------------------ Chapter : Wiping over the socks. This hadith is narrated on the same authority from A'mash by another chain of transmitters like one transmitted by Abu Mu'awyia. The hadith reported by 'Isa and Sufyan has these words also: "This hadith surprised the friends of Abdullab'" for Jarir had embraced Islam after the revelation of al-Ma'ida. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0522. ------------------------------ Chapter : Wiping over the socks. Hudhaifa reported: I was with the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) when he came to the dumping ground of filth belonging to a particular tribe. He urinated while standing, and I went aside. He (the Holy Prophet) asked me to come near him and I went so near to him that I stood behind his heels. He then performed ablution and wiped over his socks. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0523. ------------------------------ Chapter : Wiping over the socks. Abu Wa'il reported: Abu Musa inflicted extreme rigour upon himself in the matter of urination and urinated in a bottle and said: When the skin of anyone amongst the people of Israel was besmeared with urine, he cut that portion with a cutter. Hudhaifa said: I wish that your friend should not inflict such an extreme rigour. I and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) were going together till we reached the dumping ground of filth behind an enclosure. He stood up as one among you would stand up and he urinated, I tried to turn away from him, but he beckoned to me, so I went to him and I stood behind him, till he had relieved himself. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0524. ------------------------------ Chapter : Wiping over the socks. The son of Mughira b. Shu'ba reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) went out for relieving himself. Mughira went with him carrying a jug full of water. When he (the Holy Prophet) came back after relieving himself, he poured water over him and he performed ablution and wiped over his socks; and in the narration of Ibn Rumh there is "till" instead of "when". Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0525. ------------------------------ Chapter : Wiping over the socks. This hadith has been transmitted with the same chain of transmitters by Yahya b. Sa'id with the addition of these words: "He washed his face and hands, and wiped his head and then wiped his socks." Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0526. ------------------------------ Chapter : Wiping over the socks. Mughira b. Shu'ba reported: I was with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) one night. He came down (from the ride) and relieved himself. He then came and I poured water upon him from the jar that I carried with me. He performed ablution and wiped over his socks. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0527. ------------------------------ Chapter : Wiping over the socks. Mughira b. Shu'ba reported: I was in the company of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on a journey when he said: Mughira take hold of this jar (of water). I took hold of it and I went out with him. (I stopped but) the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) proceeded on till he was out of my sight. He relieved himself and then came back and he was wearing a tight-sleeved Syrian gown. He tried to get his forearms out, but the sleeve of the gown was very narrow, so he brought his hands out from under the gown. I poured water over (his hands) and he performed ablution for prayer, then wiped over his socks and prayed. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0528. ------------------------------ Chapter : Wiping over the socks. Mughira b. Shu'ba reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) went out for relieving himself. When he came back I brought for him a jar (of water) and poured water upon his hands and He washed his face. He tried to wash his forearms, but as the (sleeves of the) gown were tight. He, therefore, brought them out from under the gown. He then washed them, wiped his head, and wiped his socks and then prayed. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0529. ------------------------------ Chapter : Wiping over the socks. 'Urwa b. Mughira reported his father having said: I was one night with the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) on a journey. He said to me: Have you any water with you? I said: Yes. He (the Holy Prophet) came down from his ride and went on till he disappeared in the darkness of night. He then came back and I poured water for him from the jar. He washed his face, He had a woollen gown on him and he could not bring out his forearms from it (i.e. from its sleeves) and consequently he brought them out from under his gown. He washed his forearms, wiped over his head. I then bent down to take off his socks. But he said: Leave them, for my feet were clean when I put them in, and he only wiped over them. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0530. ------------------------------ Chapter : Wiping over the socks. 'Urwah al Mughira reported it from his father: He(Mughira) helped the Apostle (may peace be upon him) in performing the ablution, and he performed it and wiped over his shoes. He (Mughira) said to him (about the washing of the feet after putting them off), but he (the Holy Prophet) said: I put them (feet) in when these were clean. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0531. ------------------------------ Chapter : Wiping (over) the forelock and turban. 'Urwa b. al Mughira b. Shu'ba reported it on the authority of his father that he said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) lagged behind (in a journey) and I also lagged behind along with him. After having relieved himself he said: Have you any water with you? I brought to him a jar of water; he washed his palms, and face, and when he tried to get his forearms out (he could not) for the sleeve of the gown was tight. He, therefore, brought them out from under the gown and, throwing it over his shoulders, he washed his forearm. He then wiped his forelock and his turban and his socks. He then mounted and I also mounted (the ride) and came to the people. They had begun the prayer with 'Abd ar-Rabmin b. 'Anf leading them and had completed a rak'ah. When he perceived the presence of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) he began to retire. He (the Holy Prophet) signed to him to continue and offered prayer along with them. Then when he had pronounced the salutation, the Apostle (may peace be upon him) got up and I also got up with him, and we offered the rak'ah which had been finished before we came. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0532. ------------------------------ Chapter : Wiping (over) the forelock and turban. Ibn Mughira narrated it from his father: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) wiped over his socks and over his forehead and over his turban. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0533. ------------------------------ Chapter : Wiping (over) the forelock and turban. This hadith has been transmitted by Ibn Mughira on the authority of his father by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0534. ------------------------------ Chapter : Wiping (over) the forelock and turban. Bakr reported that he had heard from the son of Mughira that verily the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) performed ablution and wiped over his forehead and wiped over his turban and over his socks. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0535. ------------------------------ Chapter : Wiping (over) the forelock and turban. It is narrated from Bilal that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) wiped over the socks and turban, and in the hadith transmitted by 'Isa b. Yaunus the words are: "Bilal narrated it to me." Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0536. ------------------------------ Chapter : Wiping (over) the forelock and turban. This tradition is transmitted by A'mash with this addition: I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him)." Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0537. ------------------------------ Chapter : Time limit for wiping over the shoes. Shuraih b. Hani said: I came to 'Aisha to ask her about wiping over the socks. She said: You better ask ('Ali) son of Abu Talib for he used to travel with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). We asked him and he said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) stipulated (the upper limit) of three days and three nights for a traveller and one day and one night for the resident. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0538. ------------------------------ Chapter : Time limit for wiping over the shoes. This hadith is narrated by Ubaidullah b. 'Amr and Zaid b. Abu Unaisa with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0539. ------------------------------ Chapter : Time limit for wiping over the shoes. Shuraib b. Hani reported: I asked 'Aisha about wiping over the shoes. She said: You better go to 'Ali, for he knows more about this than I. I, therefore, came to 'Ali and he narrated from the Apostle (may peace be upon him) like this. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0540. ------------------------------ Chapter : Time limit for wiping over the shoes. Sulaiman b. Buraida narrated it from his father that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) offered prayers with one ablution on the day of the Conquest (of Mecca) and wiped over the socks. 'Umar said to him: You have today done something that you have not been accustomed to before. He (the Holy Prophet) said: O 'Umar, I have done that on purpose. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0541. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is undesirable to put one's hand in the utensil before washing it. Abu Huraira said: When anyone amongst you wakes up from sleep, he must not put his hand in the utensil till he has washed it three times, for he does not know where his hand was during the night. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0542. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is undesirable to put one's hand in the utensil before washing it. This hadith is transmitted from Abu Huraira by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0543. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is undesirable to put one's hand in the utensil before washing it. Zahri and Ibn Musayyab have both transmitted a hadith like this from Abu Huraira who narrated it from the Apostle (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0544. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is undesirable to put one's hand in the utensil before washing it. Abu Huraira reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When anyone amongst you wakes up from sleep, he should wash his hands three times before putting it in the utensil, for he does not know where his hand was during the night. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0545. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is undesirable to put one's hand in the utensil before washing it. This hadith has been transmitted through other chains of transmitters on the authority of Abu Huraira in which it is reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) made a mention of washing the hand, and did not instruct to wash it three times. But the hadith narrated from Jabir and Ibn Musayyab. Abu Salama, and Abdullah b. Shaqiq, Abu Salih, Abla Razin, there is a mention of "three times". Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0546. ------------------------------ Chapter : Instructions pertaining to the licking of a dog. Abu Huraira reported the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) to have said: When a dog licks a utensil belonging to any one of you, (the thing contained in it) should be thrown away and then (the utensil) should be washed seven times. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0547. ------------------------------ Chapter : Instructions pertaining to the licking of a dog. This hadith has been transmitted by another chain of transmitters in which there is no mention of "throwing away". Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0548. ------------------------------ Chapter : Instructions pertaining to the licking of a dog. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When a dog drinks out of a vessel belonging to any one of you, he must wash it seven times. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0549. ------------------------------ Chapter : Instructions pertaining to the licking of a dog. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The purification of the utensil belonging to any one of you, after it is licked by a dog, lies in washing it seven times, using sand for the first time. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0550. ------------------------------ Chapter : Instructions pertaining to the licking of a dog. Hammam b. Munabbih reported: Of the a hadith narrated by Abu Huraira from Muhammad, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), one is this: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The purification of the utensil belonging to one amongst you, after it is licked by a dog, lies in washing it seven times. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0551. ------------------------------ Chapter : Instructions pertaining to the licking of a dog. Ibn Mughaffal reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) ordered killing of the dogs, and then said: What about them, i.e. about other dogs? and then granted concession (to keep) the dog for hunting and the dog for (the security) of the herd, and said: When the dog licks the utensil, wash it seven times, and rub it with earth the eighth time. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0552. ------------------------------ Chapter : Instructions pertaining to the licking of a dog. A hadith like this has been narrated from Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters except for the fact that in the hadith transmitted by Yahya those words are: "He (the Holy Prophet) gave concession in the case of the dog for looking after the herd, for hunting and for watching the cultivated land," and there is no mention of this addition (i.e. concession in case of watching the cultivated lands) except in the hadith transmitted by Yahya. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0553. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to urinate in stagnant water. Jabir reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) forbade to urinate in stagnant water. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0554. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to urinate in stagnant water. Abu Huraira reported: the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: None amongst you should urinate in standing water, and then wash in it. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0555. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to urinate in stagnant water. Hammam b. Munabbih said: Of the ahadith narrated to us by Abfi Huraira from Muhammad the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) one is this: The Messenger or Allah (may peace be upon him) said: You should not urinate in standing water, that is not flowing, then wash in it. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0556. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to wash oneself in standing water. Abu Huraira reported the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying: None of you must wash in standing water when he is in a state of Junub. And Abu Huraira was asked how it was to be done; he said: It was to be taken out in handfuls. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0557. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is obligatory to cleanse the mosque when there are impurities in it and the earth becomes clean of impurities with the help of water without scraping (the part of it). Anas reported: A Bedouin urinated in the mosque. Some of the persons stood up (to reprimand him or to check him from doing so), but the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Leave him alone; don't interrupt him. He (the narrator) said: And when he had finished, he called for a bucket of water and poured it over. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0558. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is obligatory to cleanse the mosque when there are impurities in it and the earth becomes clean of impurities with the help of water without scraping (the part of it). Anas b. Malik narrated that a desert Arab (Bedouin) stood in a corner of the mosque and urinated there. The people (the Companions of the Holy Prophet who were present there) shouted, but the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Leave him alone. When he had finished, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) ordered that a bucket (of water) should be brought and poured over it. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0559. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is obligatory to cleanse the mosque when there are impurities in it and the earth becomes clean of impurities with the help of water without scraping (the part of it). Anas b. Malik reported: While we were in the mosque with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), a desert Arab came and stood up and began to urinate in the mosque. The Companions of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Stop, stop, but the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Don't interrupt him; leave him alone. They left him alone, and when he finished urinating, Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) called him and said to him: These mosques are not the places meant for urine and filth, but are only for the remembrance of Allah, prayer and the recitation of the Qur'an, or Allah's Messenger said something like that. He (the narrator) said that he (the Holy Prophet) then gave orders to one of the people who brought a bucket of water and poured It over. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0560. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the urine of the suckling babe, and how it is to be washed away. 'Aisha, the wife of the Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: Babies were brought to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he blessed them, and after having chewed (something, e.g. dates or any other sweet thing) he rubbed there with their soft palates. A baby was brought to him and he passed water over him (over his garment), so he asked water to be brought and sprinkled it, but he did not wash it. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0561. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the urine of the suckling babe, and how it is to be washed away. 'Aisha reported: A suckling babe was brought to the Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) and he urinated in his tap. He (the Holy Prophet) sent for water and poured it over. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0562. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the urine of the suckling babe, and how it is to be washed away. Hisham narrated the hadith like one transmitted by Ibn Numair (the above mentioned one) with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0563. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the urine of the suckling babe, and how it is to be washed away. Umm Qais daughter of Mihsan reported that she came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) with her child, who was not yet weaned, and she placed him in his lap; and he urinated in his (Holy Prophet's) lap. He (the Holy Prophet) did nothing more than spraying water over it. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0564. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the urine of the suckling babe, and how it is to be washed away. This hadith has also been narrated from al-Zuhri with the same chain of narrators. (but for the words): "He (the Holy Prophet) sent for water and sprinkled it over." Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0565. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the urine of the suckling babe, and how it is to be washed away. Ubaidullah b. Abdullah b. 'Utba b. Mas'ud said: Umm Qais, daughter of Mihsan, was among the earliest female emigrants who took the oath of allegiance to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and she was the sister of 'Ukkasha b. Mihsan, one amongst the sons of Asad b. Khuzaima. He (the narrator) said: She (Umm Qais) told me that she came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) with her son and he had not attained the age of eating food. He (the narrator, 'Ubaidullah), said: She told me that her son passed urine in the lap of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sent for water and sprayed it over his garment (over that part which was contaminated with the urine of the child) and he did not wash it thoroughly. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0566. ------------------------------ Chapter : Washing away of the semen from the garment and its scraping. Alqama and Aswad reported: A person stayed in the house of 'Aisha and in the morning began to wash his garment. 'Aisha said: In case you saw it (i.e. drop of semen), it would have served the purpose (of purifying the garment) if you had simply washed that spot; and in case you did not see it, it would have been enough to sprinkle water around it, for when I saw that on the garment of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). I simply scraped it off and he offered prayer, while putting that on. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0567. ------------------------------ Chapter : Washing away of the semen from the garment and its scraping. Al-Aawad and Hammam reported 'Aisha as saying: I used to scrape off the (drop of) semen from the garment of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0568. ------------------------------ Chapter : Washing away of the semen from the garment and its scraping. Qutaiba b. Sa'id, Ishaq b. Ibrahim, Ibn Abi 'Aruba, Abu Ma'shar, Abu Bakr b. Abu Shaiba, Mansur and Mughira have all transmitted from Ibrahim, who transmitted it on the authority of 'Aisha's narration pertaining to the scraping off of the (drop) of semen from the garment of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) like the hadith of Khalid on the authority of Abu Ma'shar. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0569. ------------------------------ Chapter : Washing away of the semen from the garment and its scraping. Hammam narrated the hadith from 'Aisha like the (above-mentioned) traditions. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0570. ------------------------------ Chapter : Washing away of the semen from the garment and its scraping. 'Amr b. Maimun said: I asked Sulaiman b. Yasir whether the semen that gets on to the garment of a person should be washed or not. He replied: 'Aisha told me: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) washed the semen, and then went out for prayer in that very garment and I saw the mark of washing on it. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0571. ------------------------------ Chapter : Washing away of the semen from the garment and its scraping. Abu Kuraib, Ibn al-Mubarak, Ibn Abu Za'ida all of them narrated from Amr b. Maimun with the same chain of transmitters. Ibn Abu Za'ida narrated as was transmitted from Ibn Bishr that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) washed semen, and in the hadith transmitted on the authority of Ibn Mabarak and Abdul Wahid the words are: "She ('Aisha) reported: I used to wash it from the garment of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him)." Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0572. ------------------------------ Chapter : Washing away of the semen from the garment and its scraping. Abdullah b. Shihab al-Khaulani reported: I stayed in the house of 'Aisha and had a wet dream (and perceived its effect on my garment), so (in the morning) I dipped both (the clothes) in water. This (act of mine) was watched by a maid-servant of 'Aisha and she informed her. She (Hadrat 'Aisha) sent me a message: What prompted you to act like this with your clothes? He (the narrator) said: I told that I saw in a dream what a sleeper sees. She said: Did you find (any mark of the fluid) on your clothes? I said: No. She said: Had you found anything you should have washed it. In-case I found that (semen) on the garment of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) dried up, I scraped it off with my nails. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0573. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Impurity of the blood of menses and its washing. Asma (daughter of Abu Bakr) reported: A woman came to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: What should one do if the blood of menses smears the garment of one amongst us? He (the Holy Prophet) replied: She should scrape it, then rub it with water, then pour water over it and then offer prayer in it. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0574. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Impurity of the blood of menses and its washing. This tradition is narrated by Abu Kuraib, Ibn Numair, Abu Tahir, Ibn Wahb, Yahya b. 'Abdullah b. Salim, Malik b. Anas, 'Amr b. Harith on the authority of Hisham b. 'Urwa, with the same chain of transmitters like one transmitted by Yahya b. Sa'id like the above-mentioned. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0575. ------------------------------ Chapter : Proof of the impurity of urine and that it is obligatory to safeguard oneself from it. Ibn Abbas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) happened to pass by two graves and said: They (their occupants) are being tormented, but they are not tormented for a grievous sin. One of them carried tales and the other did not keep himself safe from being defiled by urine. He then called for a fresh twig and split it into two parts, and planted them on each grave and then said: Perhaps, their punishment way be mitigated as long as these twigs remain fresh. Muslim Book 002, Hadith Number 0576. ------------------------------ Chapter : Proof of the impurity of urine and that it is obligatory to safeguard oneself from it. This hadith is transmitted from A'mash by Abmad b. Yusuf al-Azdi, Mu'alla b. Asad, Abd al-Wahid, Sulaiman with the same chain of transmitters but for the words: "The other did not keep himself safe from being defiled by urine." Total Hadiths : 145. Generated By : The Hadith Software Version 1.0 Date : 05-03-2009. ****************************************************************** * NOTE!! THERE ARE VARIOUS WEB SITES (I.E. WWW.HADITHONLINE.COM) * * THAT CAN BE USED TO VALIDATE THE AUTHENTICITY OF EACH HADITHS * * GENERATED OR VIEWED IN THIS SOFTWARE. PLEASE REFER TO THEM IF * * YOU HAVE ANY QUESTIONS OR DOUBTS. - Islamasoft Solutions. (UK) * ****************************************************************** Islamasoft Solutions. (www.islamasoft.co.uk) The Hadith Software : Shahi Muslim. Muslim Book 3. Menstruation. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0577. ------------------------------ Chapter : Lying with one in menstruation above the waist wrapper. 'Aisha reported: When anyone amongst us (amongst the wives of the Holy Prophet) menstruated, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) asked her to tie a waist-wrapper over her (body) and then embraced her. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0578. ------------------------------ Chapter : Lying with one in menstruation above the waist wrapper. 'Aisha reported: When anyone amongst us was menstruating the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) asked her to tie waist-wrapper daring the time when the menstrual blood profusely flowed and then embraced her; and she ('Aisha) observed: And who amongst you can have control over his desires as the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had over his desires. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0579. ------------------------------ Chapter : Lying with one in menstruation above the waist wrapper. Maimuna (the wife of the Holy Prophet) reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) contacted and embraced his wives over the waist-wrapper when they were menstruating. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0580. ------------------------------ Chapter : Lying with one in menstruation above the waist wrapper. Kuraibthe freed slave of Ibn Abbas, reported: I heard it from Maimuna, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (way peace be upon him): The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to lie with me when I menstruated, and there was a cloth between me and him. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0581. ------------------------------ Chapter : Lying with one in menstruation above the waist wrapper. Umm Salama reported: While I was lying with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) in a bed cover I menstruated, so I slipped away and I took up the clothes (which I wore) in menses. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Have you menstruated? I said: Yes. He called me and I lay down Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0582. ------------------------------ Chapter : The menstruating woman is permitted to wash the head of her husband, comb his hair, and her left-over is clean, and one is permitted to recline in her lap and recite the Qur'an. It is reported from 'Aisha that she observed: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was in I'tikaf, he inclined his head towards me and I combed his hair, and he did not enter the house but for the natural calls (for relieving himself). Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0583. ------------------------------ Chapter : The menstruating woman is permitted to wash the head of her husband, comb his hair, and her left-over is clean, and one is permitted to recline in her lap and recite the Qur'an. 'Amra daughter of 'Abd al-Rahman reported: 'Aisha, wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: When I was (in I'tikaf), I entered the house for the call of nature, and while passing I inquired after the health of the sick (in the family), and when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was (in I'tikaf), he put out his head towards me, while he himself was in the mosque, and I combed his hair; and he did not enter the house except for the call of nature so long as he was In I'tikaf; and Ibn Rumh stated: As long as they (the Prophet and his wives) were among the observers of I'tikaf. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0584. ------------------------------ Chapter : The menstruating woman is permitted to wash the head of her husband, comb his hair, and her left-over is clean, and one is permitted to recline in her lap and recite the Qur'an. 'Aisha, the wife of the Apostle (may peace he upon him), reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) put out from the mosque his head for me as he was in I'tikaf, and I washed it in the state that I was menstruating. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0585. ------------------------------ Chapter : The menstruating woman is permitted to wash the head of her husband, comb his hair, and her left-over is clean, and one is permitted to recline in her lap and recite the Qur'an. 'Urwa reported it from 'Aisha that she observed: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) inclined his head towards me (from the mosque) while I was in my apartment and I combed it in a state of menstruation. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0586. ------------------------------ Chapter : The menstruating woman is permitted to wash the head of her husband, comb his hair, and her left-over is clean, and one is permitted to recline in her lap and recite the Qur'an. Al-Aswad narrated it from 'Aisha that she observed: I used to wash the head of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), while I was in a state of menstruation. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0587. ------------------------------ Chapter : The menstruating woman is permitted to wash the head of her husband, comb his hair, and her left-over is clean, and one is permitted to recline in her lap and recite the Qur'an. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to me: Get me the mat from the mosque. I said: I am menstruating. Upon this he remarked: Your menstruation is not in your hand. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0588. ------------------------------ Chapter : The menstruating woman is permitted to wash the head of her husband, comb his hair, and her left-over is clean, and one is permitted to recline in her lap and recite the Qur'an. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) ordered me that I should get him the mat from the mosque. I said: I am menstruating. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Do get me that, for menstruation is not in your hand. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0589. ------------------------------ Chapter : The menstruating woman is permitted to wash the head of her husband, comb his hair, and her left-over is clean, and one is permitted to recline in her lap and recite the Qur'an. Abu Huraira reported: While the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was in the mosque, he said: O 'Aisha, get me that garment. She said: I am menstruating. Upon this he remarked: Your menstruation is not in your hand, and she, therefore, got him that. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0590. ------------------------------ Chapter : The menstruating woman is permitted to wash the head of her husband, comb his hair, and her left-over is clean, and one is permitted to recline in her lap and recite the Qur'an. 'Aisha reported: I would drink when I was menstruating, then I would hand it (the vessel) to the Apostle (may peace be upon him) and he would put his mouth where mine had been, and drink, and I would eat flesh from a bone when I was menstruating, then hand it over to the Apostle (may peace be upon him) and he would put his mouth where mine had been. Zuhair made no mention of (the Holy Prophet's) drinking. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0591. ------------------------------ Chapter : The menstruating woman is permitted to wash the head of her husband, comb his hair, and her left-over is clean, and one is permitted to recline in her lap and recite the Qur'an. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) would recline in my lap when I was menstruating, and recite the Qur'an. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0592. ------------------------------ Chapter : The menstruating woman is permitted to wash the head of her husband, comb his hair, and her left-over is clean, and one is permitted to recline in her lap and recite the Qur'an. Thabit narrated it from Anas: Among the Jews, when a woman menstruated, they did not dine with her, nor did they live with them in their houses; so the Companions of the Apostle (may peace be upon him) asked The Apostle (may peace be upon him), and Allah, the Exalted revealed: "And they ask you about menstruation; say it is a pollution, so keep away from woman during menstruation" to the end (Qur'an, ii. 222). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Do everything except intercourse. The Jews heard of that and said: This man does not want to leave anything we do without opposing us in it. Usaid b. Hudair and Abbad b. Bishr came and said: Messenger of Allah, the Jews say such and such thing. We should not have, therefore, any contact with them (as the Jews do). The face of the Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) underwent such a change that we thought he was angry with them, but when they went out, they happened to receive a gift of milk which was sent to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him). He (the Holy Prophet) called for them and gave them drink, whereby they knew that he was not angry with them. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0593. ------------------------------ Chapter : On al-Madhi. 'Ali reported: I was one whose prostatic fluid flowed readily and I was ashamed to ask the Apostle (may peace be upon him) about it, because of the position of his daughter. I, therefore, asked Miqdad.b. al-Asad and he inquired of him (the Holy Prophet). He (the Holy Prophet) said: He should wash his male organ and perform ablution. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0594. ------------------------------ Chapter : On al-Madhi. 'Ali reported: I felt shy of asking about prostatic fluid from the Apostle (may peace be upon him) because of Fatimah. I, therefore, asked al-Miqdad (to ask on my behalf) and he asked. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Ablution is obligatory in such a case. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0595. ------------------------------ Chapter : On al-Madhi. Ibn 'Abbas reported it from 'Ali: We sent al-Miqdad b. al-Aswad to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) to ask him what must be done about prostatic fluid which flows from (the private part of) a person. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Perform ablution and wash your sexual organ. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0596. ------------------------------ Chapter : Washing of face and hands after waking up from sleep. Ibn 'Abbas reported: The Apostle (may peace be upon him) woke up at night; relieved himself, and then washed his face and hands and then again slept. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0597. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible for a person to sleep after sexual intercourse (without a bath) and the desirability of ablution for him, and washing of the sexual organ, as he intends to eat, drink, or sleep or cohabit. 'Aisha reported: Whenever the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) intended to sleep after having sexual intercourse, he performed ablution as for the prayer before going to sleep. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0598. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible for a person to sleep after sexual intercourse (without a bath) and the desirability of ablution for him, and washing of the sexual organ, as he intends to eat, drink, or sleep or cohabit. 'Aisha reported: Whenever the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had sexual intercourse and intended to eat or sleep, he performed the ablution of prayer. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0599. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible for a person to sleep after sexual intercourse (without a bath) and the desirability of ablution for him, and washing of the sexual organ, as he intends to eat, drink, or sleep or cohabit. This hadith has been transmitted by Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters. Ibn at-Muthanna said in his narration: AI-Hakam narrated to us who heard from Ibrahim narrating that. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0600. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible for a person to sleep after sexual intercourse (without a bath) and the desirability of ablution for him, and washing of the sexual organ, as he intends to eat, drink, or sleep or cohabit. Ibn 'Umar reported: Umar said: Is one amongst us permitted to sleep in a state of impurity (i.e. after having sexual intercourse)? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Yes, after performing ablution. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0601. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible for a person to sleep after sexual intercourse (without a bath) and the desirability of ablution for him, and washing of the sexual organ, as he intends to eat, drink, or sleep or cohabit. Ibn 'Umar said: 'Umar asked the verdict of the Shari'ah from the Apostle (may peace be upon him) thus: Is it permissible for any one of us to sleep in a state of impurity? He (the Holy Prophet said: Yes, he must perform ablution and then sleep and take a bath when he desires. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0602. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible for a person to sleep after sexual intercourse (without a bath) and the desirability of ablution for him, and washing of the sexual organ, as he intends to eat, drink, or sleep or cohabit. Ibn Umar reported: Umar b. al-Khattab said to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), that he became Junbi during the night. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to him: Perform ablution, wash your sexual organ and then go to sleep. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0603. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible for a person to sleep after sexual intercourse (without a bath) and the desirability of ablution for him, and washing of the sexual organ, as he intends to eat, drink, or sleep or cohabit. 'Abdullah b. Abu'l-Qais reported: I asked 'Aisha about the Witr (prayer) of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and made mention of a hadith, then I said: What did he do after having sexual intercourse? Did he take a bath before going to sleep or did he sleep before taking a bath? She said: He did all these. Sometimes he took a bath and then slept, and sometimes he performed ablution only and went to sleep. I (the narrator) said: Praise be to Allah Who has made things easy (for human beings). Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0604. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible for a person to sleep after sexual intercourse (without a bath) and the desirability of ablution for him, and washing of the sexual organ, as he intends to eat, drink, or sleep or cohabit. This hadith has been transmitted with the same chain of transmitters from Mu'awyia b. Salih by Zuhair b. Harb, 'Abd al-Rahman b. Mahdi, Harun b. Sa'id al-'Aili and Ibn Wahb. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0605. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible for a person to sleep after sexual intercourse (without a bath) and the desirability of ablution for him, and washing of the sexual organ, as he intends to eat, drink, or sleep or cohabit. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When anyone amongst you has sexual intercourse with his wife and then he intends to repeat it, he should perform ablution. In the hadith transmitted by Abu Bakr. (the words are): "Between the two (acts) there should be an ablution," or he (the narrator) said: "Then he intended that it should be repeated." Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0606. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible for a person to sleep after sexual intercourse (without a bath) and the desirability of ablution for him, and washing of the sexual organ, as he intends to eat, drink, or sleep or cohabit. Anas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to have sexual intercourse with his wives with a single bath. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0607. ------------------------------ Chapter : Bathing is obligatory for a woman after experiencing orgasm in dream. Anas b. Malik reported: Umm Sulaim who was the grandmother of Ishaq came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) in the presence of 'Aisha and said to him: Messenger of Allah, in case or woman sees what a man sees in dream and she experiences in dream what a man experiences (i.e. experiences orgasm)? Upon this 'Aisha remarked: O Umm Sulaim, you brought humiliation to women; may your right hand be covered with dust. He (the Holy Prophet) said to 'Aisha: Let your hand be covered with dust, and (addressing Umm Sulaim) said: Well, O Umm Sulaim, she should take a bath if she sees that (i.e. she experiences orgasm in dream). Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0608. ------------------------------ Chapter : Bathing is obligatory for a woman after experiencing orgasm in dream. Anas b. Malik reported that Umm Sulaim narrated it that she asked the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) about a woman who sees in a dream what a man sees (sexual dream). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon bi m) said: In case a woman sees that, she must take a bath. Umm Sulaim said: I was bashful on account of that and said: Does it happen? Upon this the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Yes (it does happen), otherwise how can (a child) resemble her? Man's discharge (i.e. sperm) is thick and white and the discharge of woman is thin and yellow; so the resemblance comes from the one whose genes prevail or dominate. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0609. ------------------------------ Chapter : Bathing is obligatory for a woman after experiencing orgasm in dream. Anas b. Malik reported: A woman asked the Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) about a woman who sees in her dream what a man sees in his dream (sexual dream). He (the Holy Prophet) said: If she experiences what a man experiences, she should take a bath. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0610. ------------------------------ Chapter : Bathing is obligatory for a woman after experiencing orgasm in dream. Umm Salama reported: Umm Sulaim went to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: Apostle of Allah, Allah is not ashamed of the truth. Is bathing necessary for a woman when she has a sexual dream? Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Yes, when she sees the liquid (vaginal secretion). Umm Salama said: Messenger of Allah, does a woman have sexual dream? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Let your hand be covered with dust, in what way does her child resemble her? Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0611. ------------------------------ Chapter : Bathing is obligatory for a woman after experiencing orgasm in dream. This hadith with the same sense (as narrated above) bus been transmitted from Hisham b. 'Urwa with the same chain of narrators but with this addition that she (Umm Salama) said: "You humiliated the women. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0612. ------------------------------ Chapter : Bathing is obligatory for a woman after experiencing orgasm in dream. 'Aisha the wife of the Apostle (may peace be upon him) narrated: Umm Sulaim, the mother of Bani Abu Talha, came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and a hadith (like that) narrated by Hisham was narrated but for these words. 'Aisha said: I expressed disapproval to her, saying: Does a woman see a sexual dream? Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0613. ------------------------------ Chapter : Bathing is obligatory for a woman after experiencing orgasm in dream. It is reported on the authority of 'Aisha that a woman came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and inquired: Should a woman wash herself when she sees a sexual dream and sees (the marks) of liquid? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Yes. 'Aisha said to her: May your hand be covered with dust and injured. She narrated: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Leave her alone. In what way does the child resemble her but for the fact that when the genes contributed by woman prevail upon those of man, the child resembles the maternal family, and when the genes of man prevail upon those of woman the child resembles the paternal family. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0614. ------------------------------ Chapter : The characteristic of the male reproductive substance(sperm) and female reproductive substance (ovum),and that the offspring is produced by the contribution of both. Thauban, the freed slave of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), said: While I was standing beside the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) one of the rabbis of the Jews came and said: Peace be upon you, O Muhammad. I pushed him back with a push that he was going to fall. Upon this he said: Why do you push me? I said: Why don't you say: O Messenger of Allah? The Jew said: We call him by the name by which he was named by his family. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: My name is Muhammad with which I was named by my family. The Jew said: I have come to ask you (something). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Should that thing be of any benefit to you, if I tell you that? He (the Jew) said: I will lend my ears to it. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) drew a line with the help of the stick that he had with him and then said: Ask (whatever you like). Thereupon the Jew said: Where would the human beings be on the day when the earth would change into another earth and the heavens too (would change into other heavens)? The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: They would be in darkness beside the Bridge. He (the Jew) again said: Who amongst people would be the first to cross (this bridge)? He said: They would be the poor amongst the refugees. The Jew said: What would constitute their breakfast when they would enter Paradise? He (the Holy Prophet) replied: A caul of the fish-liver. He (the Jew) said: What would be their food alter this? He (the Holy Prophet) said: A bullock which was fed in the different quarters of Paradise would be slaughtered for them. He (the Jew) said: What would be their drink? He (the Holy Prophet) said: They would be given drink from the fountain which is named "Salsabil". He (the Jew) said: I have come to ask you about a thing which no one amongst the people on the earth knows except an apostle or one or two men besides him. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Would it benefit you if I tell you that? He (the Jew) said: I would lend ears to that. He then said: I have come to ask you about the child. He (the Holy Prophet) said: The reproductive substance of man is white and that of woman (i.e. ovum central portion) yellow, and when they have sexual intercourse and the male's substance (chromosomes and genes) prevails upon the female's substance (chromosomes and genes), it is the male child that is created by Allah's Decree, and when the substance of the female prevails upon the substance contributed by the male, a female child is formed by the Decree of Allah. The Jew said: What you have said is true; verily you are an Apostle. He then returned and went away. The Messenger of Allah(may peace be upon him) said: He asked me about such and such things of which I have had no knowledge till Allah gave me that. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0615. ------------------------------ Chapter : The characteristic of the male reproductive substance(sperm) and female reproductive substance (ovum),and that the offspring is produced by the contribution of both. This tradition has been narrated by Mu'awyia b. Salim with the same chain of transmitters except for the words: I was sitting beside the Messenger of Allah" and some other minor alterations. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0616. ------------------------------ Chapter : Bathing after sexual intercourse or seminal emission. 'Aisha reported: When Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) bathed because of sexual intercourse, he first washed his hands: he then poured water with his right hand on his left hand and washed his private parts. He then performed ablution as is done for prayer'. He then took some water and put his fingers and moved them through the roots of his hair. And when he found that these had been properly moistened, then poured three handfuls on his head and then poured water over his body and subsequently washed his feet. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0617. ------------------------------ Chapter : Bathing after sexual intercourse or seminal emission. This hadith is narrated by Abu Kuraib. Ibn Numair and others, all on the authority of Hisham with the same chain of transmitters, but in their narration these words are not there: "washed his feet." Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0618. ------------------------------ Chapter : Bathing after sexual intercourse or seminal emission. Hisham narrated it from his father, who narrated it on the authority of 'Aisha that when the Apostle (may peace be upon him) took a bath because of sexual inter-course, he first washed the palms of his hands three times, and then the whole hadith was transmitted like that based on the authority of Abu Mu'awyia, but no mention is made of the washing of feet. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0619. ------------------------------ Chapter : Bathing after sexual intercourse or seminal emission. 'Urwa has narrated it on the authority of 'Aisha that when Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) took a bath because of sexual intercourse, he first washed his hands before dipping one of them into the basin, and then performed ablution as is done for prayer. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0620. ------------------------------ Chapter : Bathing after sexual intercourse or seminal emission. Ibn 'Abbas reported it on the authority of Maimuna, his mother's sister, that she said: I placed water near the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) to take a bath because of sexual intercourse. He washed the palms of his bands twice or thrice and then put his hand In the basin and poured water over his private parts and washed them with his left hand. He then struck his hand against the earth and rubbed it with force and then performed ablution for the prayer and then poured three handfuls of water on his head and then washed his whole body after which he moved aside from that place and washed his feet, and then I brought a towel (so that he may wipe his body). but he returned it. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0621. ------------------------------ Chapter : Bathing after sexual intercourse or seminal emission. This hadith is narrated by A'mash with the same chain of transmitters, but in the hadith narrated by Yahya b. Yahya and Abu Kuraib there is no mention of: "Pouring of three handfuls of water on the head." and in the hadith narrated by Waki' all the features of ablution have been recorded: rinsing (of mouth), snuffing of water (in the nostrils); and in the hadith transmitted by Abu Mu'awyia, there is no mention of a towel. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0622. ------------------------------ Chapter : Bathing after sexual intercourse or seminal emission. Ibn Abbas narrated It on the authority of Maimuna that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) was given a towel, but he did not rub (his body) with it, but he did like this with water, i.e. he shook it off. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0623. ------------------------------ Chapter : Bathing after sexual intercourse or seminal emission. 'Aisha reported: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) took a bath because of sexual intercourse, he called for a vessel and took a handful of water from it and first (washed) the right side of his head, then left, and then took a handful (of water) and poured it on his head. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0624. ------------------------------ Chapter : The quantity of water that is desirable for a bath because of sexual intercourse, bathing of the male and female with one vessel in the same condition and washing of one of them with the left-over of the other. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) washed himself with water from a vessel (measuring seven to eight seers) because of sexual intercourse. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0625. ------------------------------ Chapter : The quantity of water that is desirable for a bath because of sexual intercourse, bathing of the male and female with one vessel in the same condition and washing of one of them with the left-over of the other. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) took a bath from the vessel (which contained seven to eight seers, i.e. fifteen to sixteen pounds) of water And I and he (the Holy Prophet) took a bath from the same vessel. And in the hadith narrated by Sufyan the words are: "from one vessel". Qutaiba said: Al-Faraq is three Sa' (a cubic measuring of varying magnitude). Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0626. ------------------------------ Chapter : The quantity of water that is desirable for a bath because of sexual intercourse, bathing of the male and female with one vessel in the same condition and washing of one of them with the left-over of the other. Abu Salamab. 'Abd al-Rahman reported: I along with the foster brother of 'Aisha went to her and he asked about the bath of the Apostle (may peace be upon him) because of sexual intercourse. She called for a vessel equal to a Sa' and she took a bath and there was a curtain between us and her. She poured water on her head thrice and he (Abu Salama) said: The wives of the Apostle (may peace be upon him) collected hair on their heads and these lopped up to ears(and did rot go beyond that). Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0627. ------------------------------ Chapter : The quantity of water that is desirable for a bath because of sexual intercourse, bathing of the male and female with one vessel in the same condition and washing of one of them with the left-over of the other. Salama b. Abd al-Rahman narrated it on the authority of 'Aisha that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) took a bath, he started from the right hand and poured water over it and washed it, and then poured water on the impurity with the right band and washed it away with the help of the left hand and after having removed it, he poured water on his head. 'Aisha said: I and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) took a bath from the same vessel, after sexual intercourse. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0628. ------------------------------ Chapter : The quantity of water that is desirable for a bath because of sexual intercourse, bathing of the male and female with one vessel in the same condition and washing of one of them with the left-over of the other. Hafsa, daughter of 'Abd al-Rahman b. Abu Bakr, reported that 'Aisha narrated to her that she and the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) took a bath from the same vessel which contained water equal to three Mudds or thereabout. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0629. ------------------------------ Chapter : The quantity of water that is desirable for a bath because of sexual intercourse, bathing of the male and female with one vessel in the same condition and washing of one of them with the left-over of the other. 'Aisha reported: I and the Messenger (may peace be upon him) took a bath from the same vessel and our hands alternated into it in the state that we had had sexual intercourse. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0630. ------------------------------ Chapter : The quantity of water that is desirable for a bath because of sexual intercourse, bathing of the male and female with one vessel in the same condition and washing of one of them with the left-over of the other. 'Aisha reported: I and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) took a bath from one vessel which was placed between me and him and he would get ahead of me, so that I would say: Spare (some water for) me, spare (some water for) me; and she said that they had had sexual intercourse. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0631. ------------------------------ Chapter : The quantity of water that is desirable for a bath because of sexual intercourse, bathing of the male and female with one vessel in the same condition and washing of one of them with the left-over of the other. Ibn Abbas said: Maimuna (the wife of the Holy Prophet)reported to me that she and the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) took a bath from one vessel. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0632. ------------------------------ Chapter : The quantity of water that is desirable for a bath because of sexual intercourse, bathing of the male and female with one vessel in the same condition and washing of one of them with the left-over of the other. Ibn Abbas reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) took a bath with the water left over by Maimuna. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0633. ------------------------------ Chapter : The quantity of water that is desirable for a bath because of sexual intercourse, bathing of the male and female with one vessel in the same condition and washing of one of them with the left-over of the other. Zainab bint Umm Salama (the wife of the Holy Prophet) reported that Umm Salama and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) took a bath from the same vessel. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0634. ------------------------------ Chapter : The quantity of water that is desirable for a bath because of sexual intercourse, bathing of the male and female with one vessel in the same condition and washing of one of them with the left-over of the other. Anas reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) took a bath with five Makkuks of water and performed ablution with one Makkuk. Ibn Muthanna has used the words five Makakiyya, and Ibn Mu'adh narrated it from 'Abdullah b. 'Abdullah and he made no mention of Ibn Jabr. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0635. ------------------------------ Chapter : The quantity of water that is desirable for a bath because of sexual intercourse, bathing of the male and female with one vessel in the same condition and washing of one of them with the left-over of the other. Anas said: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) performed ablution with one Mudd and took bath with a Sa' up to five Mudds. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0636. ------------------------------ Chapter : The quantity of water that is desirable for a bath because of sexual intercourse, bathing of the male and female with one vessel in the same condition and washing of one of them with the left-over of the other. Safina reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) took a bath with one g' of water because of sexual intercourse and performed ablution with one Mudd. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0637. ------------------------------ Chapter : The quantity of water that is desirable for a bath because of sexual intercourse, bathing of the male and female with one vessel in the same condition and washing of one of them with the left-over of the other. Safina reported that Abd Bakr, the Companion of the Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him), observed: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) took a bath with one Sa' of water and performed ablution with one Mudd (of water); and in the hadith narrated by Ibn Hujr the words are: One Mudd sufficed for his (Holy Prophet's) ablution. And Ibn Hujr said that (his Shaikh) Isma'il was much advanced in age, and it was because of this that he could not fully rely on him for this tradition. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0638. ------------------------------ Chapter : The desirability of pouring water thrice on the head and other parts (of the body). Jubair b. Mut'im reported: The people contended amongst themselves in the presence of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) with regard to bathing. Some of them said: We wash our heads like this and this. Upon this the Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: As for me I pour three handfuls of water upon my head. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0639. ------------------------------ Chapter : The desirability of pouring water thrice on the head and other parts (of the body). Jubair b. Mut'im reported it from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) that a mention was made before him about bathing because of sexual intercourse and he said: I pour water over my head thrice. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0640. ------------------------------ Chapter : The desirability of pouring water thrice on the head and other parts (of the body). Jabir b. Abdullah reported: A delegation of the Thaqif said to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him): Our land is cold; what about our bathing then? He (the Holy Prophet) said: I pour water thrice over my head. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0641. ------------------------------ Chapter : The desirability of pouring water thrice on the head and other parts (of the body). Ibn Salim in his narration reported: "The delegation of the Thaqif said: Messenger of Allah." Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0642. ------------------------------ Chapter : The desirability of pouring water thrice on the head and other parts (of the body). Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) took a bath because of sexual intercourse, he poured three handfuls of water upon his head. Hasan b. Muhammad said to him (the narrator): My hair is thick. Upon this Jabir observed. I said to him: O son of my brother, the hair of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was thicker than your hair and these were more fine (than yours). Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0643. ------------------------------ Chapter : Law of Shari'ah pertaining to the plaited hair of the woman who takes a bath. Umm Salama reported: I said: Messenger of Allah, I am a woman who has closely plaited hair on my head; should I undo it for taking a bath, because of sexual intercourse? He (the Holy Prophet) said: No, it is enough for you to throw three handfuls of water on your head and then pour water over yourself, and you shall be purified. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0644. ------------------------------ Chapter : Law of Shari'ah pertaining to the plaited hair of the woman who takes a bath. This hadith has been narrated by Amr al-Naqid, Yazid b. Harun, 'Abd b. Humaid, Abd al-Razzaq, Thauri, Ayyub b. Musa, with the same chain of transmitters. In hadith narrated by Abd al-Razzaq there is a mention of the menstruation and of the sexual intercourse. The rest of the hadith has been transmitted like that of Ibn 'Uyaina. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0645. ------------------------------ Chapter : Law of Shari'ah pertaining to the plaited hair of the woman who takes a bath. This hadith is narrated by the same chain of transmitters by Ahmad al. Darimi, Zakariya b. 'Adi, Yazid, i.e.' Ibn Zurai', Rauh b. al-Qasim, Ayyub b. Musa with the same chain of transmitters, and there is a mention of these words: "Should I undo the plait and wash it, because of sexual intercourse?" and there is no mention of menstruation. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0646. ------------------------------ Chapter : Law of Shari'ah pertaining to the plaited hair of the woman who takes a bath. 'Ubaid b. Umair reported: It was conveyed to 'Aisha that 'Abdullah b. 'Amr ordered the women to undo the (plaits) of hair on their heads. She said: How strange it is for Ibn 'Amr that he orders the women to undo the plaits of their head while taking a bath; why does he not order them to shave their beads? I and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) took bath from one vessel. I did no more than this that I poured three handfuls of water over my head. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0647. ------------------------------ Chapter : The desirability of using musk at the spot of blood while bathing after menstruation. 'Aisha reported: A woman asked the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) how to wash herself after menstruation. She mentioned that he taught her how to take bath and then told her to take a piece of cotton with musk and purify herself. She said: How should I purify myself with that? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Praise be to Allah, purify yourself with it, and covered his face, Sufyan b. 'Uyaina gave a demonstration by covering his face (as the Holy Prophet had done). 'Aisha reported: I dragged her to my side for I had understood what the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) intended and, therefore, said: Apply this cotton with musk to the trace of blood. Ibn 'Umar in his hadith (has mentioned the words of 'Aisha thus): Apply it to the marks of blood. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0648. ------------------------------ Chapter : The desirability of using musk at the spot of blood while bathing after menstruation. 'Aisha reported: A woman asked the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) how he should wash herself after the menstrual period. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Take a cotton with musk and purity yourself, and the rest of the hadith was narrated like that of Sufyan. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0649. ------------------------------ Chapter : The desirability of using musk at the spot of blood while bathing after menstruation. 'Aisha reported: Asma (daughter of Shakal) asked the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) about washing after menstruation. He said: Everyone amongst you should use water (mixed with the leaves of) the lote-tree and cleanse herself well, and then pour water on her head and rub it vigorously till it reaches the roots of the hair. Then she should pour water on it. Afterwards she should take a piece of cotton smeared with musk and cleanse herself with it. Asma' said: How should she cleanse herself with the help of that? Upon this he (the Apostle of Allah) observed: Praise be to Allah, she should cleanse herself. 'Aisha said in a subdued tone that she should apply it to the trace of blood. She (Asma) then further asked about bathing after sexual intercourse. He (the Holy Prophet) said: She should take water and cleanse herself well or complete the ablution and then (pour water) on her head and rub it till it reaches the roots of the hair (of her) head and then pour water on her. 'Aisha said: How good are the women of Ansar (helpers) that their shyness does not prevent them from learning religion. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0650. ------------------------------ Chapter : The desirability of using musk at the spot of blood while bathing after menstruation. This hadith is narrated by 'Ubaidullah b. Mu'adh with the same chain of transmitters (but for the words) that he (the Holy Prophet) said: Cleanse yourself with it, and he covered (his face on account of shyness). Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0651. ------------------------------ Chapter : The desirability of using musk at the spot of blood while bathing after menstruation. 'Aisha reported: Asma' b. Shakal came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: Messenger of Allah, how one amongst us should take a bath after the menstruation, and the rest of the hadith is the same and there is no mention of bathing because of sexual intercourse. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0652. ------------------------------ Chapter : The woman who has a prolonged flow of blood, her bathing and prayer. 'Aisha reported: Fatimah b. Abu Hubaish came to the Apostle (may peace be upon him) and said: I am a woman whose blood keeps flowing (even after the menstruation period). I am never purified; should I, therefore, abandon prayer? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Not at all, for that is only a vein, and is not a menstruation, so when menstruation comes, abandon prayer, and when it ends wash the blood from yourself and then pray. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0653. ------------------------------ Chapter : The woman who has a prolonged flow of blood, her bathing and prayer. The hadith narrated by Waki' and with its chain of narrators has been transmitted on the authority of Hisham b. 'Urwa, but in the hadith narrated by Qutaiba on the authority of Jarir, the words are: "There came Fatimah b. Abu Hubaish, b. 'Abd al-Muttalib b. Asad, and she was a woman amongst us," and in the hadith of Hammid b. Zaid there is an addition of these words: "We abandoned mentioning him." Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0654. ------------------------------ Chapter : The woman who has a prolonged flow of blood, her bathing and prayer. 'Aisha reported: Umm Habiba b. Jahsh thus asked for a verdict from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him): I am a woman whose blood keeps flowing (after the menstrual period). He (the Holy Prophet) said: That is only a vein, so take a bath and offer prayer; and she took a bath at the time of every prayer. Laith b. Sa'd said: Ibn Shihab made no mention that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had ordered her to take a bath at the time of every prayer, but she did it of her own accord. And in the tradition transmitted by Ibn Rumh there is no mention of Umm Habiba (and there is mention of the daughter of Jahsh only.) Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0655. ------------------------------ Chapter : The woman who has a prolonged flow of blood, her bathing and prayer. 'Aisha, the wife of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him)reported: Umm Habiba b. Jahsh who was the sister-in-law of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and the wife of 'Abd al-Rahman b. Auf, remained mustahada for seven years, and she, therefore, asked for the verdict of Shari'ah from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) about it The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: This is not menstruation, but (blood from) a vein: so bathe yourself and offer prayer. 'Aisha said: She took a bath in the wash-tub placed in the apartment of her sister Zainab b. Jahsh, till the redness of the blood came over the water. Ibn Shihab said: I narrated it to Abu Bakr b. 'Abd al-Rahman b. al-Harith b. Hisham about it who observed: May Allah have mercy on Hinda! would that she listened to this verdict. By Lord, she wept for not offering prayer. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0656. ------------------------------ Chapter : The woman who has a prolonged flow of blood, her bathing and prayer. This hadith has been thus reported by another chain of transmitters: Umm Habiba b. Jahsh came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and she had been a mustahada for seven years, and the rest of the hadith was narrated like that of 'Amr b. al-Harith up to the words: "There came the redness of the blood over water." and nothing was narrated beyond it. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0657. ------------------------------ Chapter : The woman who has a prolonged flow of blood, her bathing and prayer. The hadith has been narrated by 'Aisha through another chain of transmitters (in these words): I The daughter of jahsh had been mustabida for seven years," and the rest of the hadith is the same (as mentioned above). Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0658. ------------------------------ Chapter : The woman who has a prolonged flow of blood, her bathing and prayer. On the authority of 'Aisha: Umm Habiba asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) about the blood (which flows beyond the period of menstruation). 'Aisha said: I saw her wash-tub full of blood. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Remain away (from prayer) equal (to the length of time) that your menses prevented you. After this (after the period of usual courses) bathe yourself and offer prayer. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0659. ------------------------------ Chapter : The woman who has a prolonged flow of blood, her bathing and prayer. 'Aisha, the wife of the Apostle (may peace be upon him), said: Umm Habiba b. Jahsh who was the spouse of Abd al- Rahman b. Auf made a complaint to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) about blood (which flows beyond the menstrual period). He said to her: Remain away (from prayer) equal (to the length of time) that your menstruation holds you back. After this, bathe yourself. And she washed herself before every prayer. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0660. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is obligatory for menstruating woman to complete the abandoned fats, but not the abandoned prayers. Mu'adha reported: A woman asked 'Aisha: Should one amongst us complete prayers abandoned during the period of menses? 'Aisha said: Are you a Haruriya? When any one of us during the time of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was in her menses (and abandoned prayer) she was not required to complete them. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0661. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is obligatory for menstruating woman to complete the abandoned fats, but not the abandoned prayers. It is reported from Mu'adha that she asked 'Aisha: Should a menstruating woman complete the prayer (abandoned during the menstrual period)? 'Aisha said: Are you a Hurariya? The wives of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) have had their monthly courses, (but) did he order them to make compensation (for the abandoned prayers)? Muhammad b. Ja'far said: (Compensation) denotes their completion. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0662. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is obligatory for menstruating woman to complete the abandoned fats, but not the abandoned prayers. Mu'adha said: I asked 'Aisha: What is the reason that a menstruating woman completes the fasts (that she abandons during her monthly course), but she does not complete the prayers? She (Hadrat 'Aisha) said: Are you a Haruriya? I said: I am not a Haruriya, but I simply want to inquire. She said: We passed through this (period of menstruation), and we were ordered to complete the fasts, but were not ordered to complete the prayers. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0663. ------------------------------ Chapter : One should draw around a curtain while taking a bath. Umm Hani b. Abu Talib reported: I went to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on the day of the conquest (of Mecca) and found him take a bath, while his daughter Fatimah was holding a curtain around him. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0664. ------------------------------ Chapter : One should draw around a curtain while taking a bath. Umm Hani b. Abu Talib reported: It was the day of the conquest (of Mecca) that she went to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he was staying at a higher part (of that city). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) got up for his bath. Fatimah held a curtain around him (in order to provide him privacy). He then put on his garments and wrapped himself with that and then offered eight rak'ahs of the forenoon prayer. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0665. ------------------------------ Chapter : One should draw around a curtain while taking a bath. This hadith is narrated by Sa'id b. Abu Hind with the same chain of transmitters and said: His (the Holy Prophet's) daughter Fatimah provided him privacy with the help of his cloth, and when he had taken a bath he took it up and wrapped it around him and then stood and offered eight rak'ahs of the forenoon prayer. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0666. ------------------------------ Chapter : One should draw around a curtain while taking a bath. Maimuna reported: I placed water for the Apostle (may peace be upon him) and provided privacy for him, and he took a bath. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0667. ------------------------------ Chapter : It Is forbidden to see the private parts of someone else. 'Abd al-Rahman, the son of Abu Sa'id al-Khudri, reported from his father: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: A man should not see the private parts of another man, and a woman should not see the private parts of another woman, and a man should not lie with another man under one covering, and a woman should not lie with another woman under one covering. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0668. ------------------------------ Chapter : It Is forbidden to see the private parts of someone else. This hadith has been narrated by Ibn Abu Fudaik and Dabbik b. 'Uthman with the same chain of transmitters and they observed: Private parts of man are the nakedness (which is concealed). Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0669. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to take: a bath naked in complete privacy. Amongst the traditions narrated from Muhammad, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on the authority of Abu Huraira, the one is that Banu Isra'il used to take a bath naked, and they looked at the private parts of one another. Moses (peace be upon him), however, took a bath alone (in privacy); and they said (tauntingly): By Allah, nothing prohibits Moses to take a bath along with us, but sacrotal hernia. He (Moses) once went for a bath and placed his clothes on a stone and the stone moved on with his clothes. Moses ran after it saying: O stone, my clothes, O stone, my clothes, and Banu Isra'il had the chance to see the private parts of Moses, and said: By Allah, Moses does not suffer from any ailment. The stone then stopped, till Moses had been seen by them, and he then took hold of his clothes and struck the stone. Abu Huraira said: By Allah, there are the marks of six or seven strokes made by Moses on the stone. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0670. ------------------------------ Chapter : Utmost care for keeping private parts of body concealed. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported: When the Ka'ba was constructed the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and Abbas went and lifted stones. Abbas said to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him): Place your lower garment on your shoulder (so that you may protect yourself from the roughness and hardness of stones). He (the Holy Prophet) did this, but fell down upon the ground in a state of unconsciousness and his eyes were turned towards the sky. He then stood up and said: My lower garment, my lower garment; and this wrapper was tied around him. In the hadith transmitted by Ibn Rafi', there is the word: "On his neck" and he did not say: "Upon his shoulder." Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0671. ------------------------------ Chapter : Utmost care for keeping private parts of body concealed. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was carrying along with them (his people) stones for the Ka'ba and there was a waist wrapper around him. His uncle, "Abbas, said to him: O son of my brother! if you take off the lower garment and place it on the shoulders underneath the stones, it would be better. He (the Holy Prophet) took it off and placed it on his shoulder and fell down unconscious. He (the narrator) said: Never was he seen naked after that day. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0672. ------------------------------ Chapter : Utmost care for keeping private parts of body concealed. Al-Miswar b. Makhrama reported: I was carrying a heavy stone and my lower garment was loose, and it, therefore, slipped off (so soon) that I could not place the stone (on the ground) and carry to its proper place. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Return to your cloth (lower garment), take it (and tie it around your waist) and do not walk naked. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0673. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concealing one's private parts while relieving oneself. 'Abdullah b. Ja'far reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) one day made me mount behind him and he confided to me something secret which I would not disclose to anybody; and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) liked the concealment provided by a lofty place or cluster of dates (while answering the call of nature), Ibn Asma' said in his narration: It implied an enclosure of the date-trees. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0674. ------------------------------ Chapter : Emission of semen makes bath obligatory. Sa'id al-Khudri narrated it from his father: I went to Quba' with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on Monday till we reached (the habitation) of Banu Salim. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) stood at the door of 'Itban and called him loudly. So he came out dragging his lower garment. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: We have made this man to make haste 'Itban said: Messenger of Allah, if a man parts with his wife suddenly without seminal emission, what is he required to do (with regard to bath)? The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: It is with the seminal emission that bath becomes obligatory. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0675. ------------------------------ Chapter : Emission of semen makes bath obligatory. Abu al.'Ala' b. al-Shikhkhir said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) abrogated some of his commands by others, just as the Qur'an abrogates some part with the other. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0676. ------------------------------ Chapter : Emission of semen makes bath obligatory. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) happened to pass by (the house) of a man amongst the Ansar, and he sent for him. He came out and water was trickling down from his head. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) said: Perhaps we put you to haste. He said: Yes. Messenger of Allah. He (the Holy Prophet) said: When you made haste or semen is not emitted, bathing is not obligatory for you, but ablution is binding. Ibn Bashshir has narrated it with a minor alteration. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0677. ------------------------------ Chapter : Emission of semen makes bath obligatory. Ubayy Ibn Ka'b reported: I asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) about a man who has sexual intercourse with his wife, but leaves her before orgasm. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) said: He should wash the secretion of his wife, and then perform ablution and offer prayer. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0678. ------------------------------ Chapter : Emission of semen makes bath obligatory. Ubayy Ibn Ka'b narrated it from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) that he said: If a person has sexual intercourse with his wife, but does not experience orgasm, he should wash his organ and perform an ablution. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0679. ------------------------------ Chapter : Emission of semen makes bath obligatory. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: Bathing is obligatory in case of seminal emission. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0680. ------------------------------ Chapter : Emission of semen makes bath obligatory. Zaid b. Khalid al-Jubani reported that he asked Uthman b. 'Affan: What is your opinion about the man who has sexual intercourse with his wife, but does not experience orgasm? Uthman said: He should perform ablution as he does for prayer, and wash his organ. 'Uthmin also said: I have heard it from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0681. ------------------------------ Chapter : Emission of semen makes bath obligatory. Abu Ayyub reported that he had heard like this from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0682. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abrogation of (the command that) bath is obligatory(only) because of seminal emission and instead contact of the circumcised parts makes bath obligatory. Abu Huraira reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When a man has sexual intercourse, bathing becomes obligatory (both for the male and the female). In the hadith of Matar the words are: Even if there is no orgasm. Zuhair has narrated it with a minor alteration of words. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0683. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abrogation of (the command that) bath is obligatory(only) because of seminal emission and instead contact of the circumcised parts makes bath obligatory. This hadith is narrated by Qatida with the same chain of transmitters, but with minor alterations. Here instead of the word -(jahada, (ijtahada) has been used, and the words; "Even if there is no orgasm" have been omitted. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0684. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abrogation of (the command that) bath is obligatory(only) because of seminal emission and instead contact of the circumcised parts makes bath obligatory. Abu Musa reported: There cropped up a difference of opinion between a group of Muhajirs (Emigrants and a group of Ansar (Helpers) (and the point of dispute was) that the Ansar said: The bath (because of sexual intercourse) becomes obligatory only-when the semen spurts out or ejaculates. But the Muhajirs said: When a man has sexual intercourse (with the woman), a bath becomes obligatory (no matter whether or not there is seminal emission or ejaculation). Abu Musa said: Well, I satisfy you on this (issue). He (Abu Musa, the narrator) said: I got up (and went) to 'Aisha and sought her permission and it was granted, and I said to her: O Mother, or Mother of the Faithful, I want to ask you about a matter on which I feel shy. She said: Don't feel shy of asking me about a thing which you can ask your mother, who gave you birth, for I am too your mother. Upon this I said: What makes a bath obligatory for a person? She replied: You have come across one well informed! The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When anyone sits amidst four parts (of the woman) and the circumcised parts touch each other a bath becomes obligatory. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0685. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abrogation of (the command that) bath is obligatory(only) because of seminal emission and instead contact of the circumcised parts makes bath obligatory. 'Aisha the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) reported. A person asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) about one who has sexual intercourse with his wife and parts away (without orgasm) whether bathing is obligatory for him. 'Aisha was sitting by him. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I and she (the Mother of the Faithful) do it and then take a bath. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0686. ------------------------------ Chapter : Ablution is essential where one takes something cooked with the help of fire. Zaid b Thabit reported: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) say this: Ablution is obligatory (for one who takes anything) touched by fire. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0687. ------------------------------ Chapter : Ablution is essential where one takes something cooked with the help of fire. 'Abdullah b. Ibrahim b. Qariz reported that he found Abu Huraira performing ablution in the mosque, who said: I am performing ablution because of having eaten pieces of cheese, for I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) say: Perform ablution (after eating anything) touched by fire. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0688. ------------------------------ Chapter : Ablution is essential where one takes something cooked with the help of fire. 'Urwa reported on the authority of 'Aisha, the wife of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), saying this: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Perform ablution (after eating) anything touched by fire. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0689. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abrogation of the Hadith that ablution is obligatory for him who takes something cooked with the help of fire. Ibn 'Abbas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) took (meat of) goat's shoulder and offered prayer and did not perform ablution. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0690. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abrogation of the Hadith that ablution is obligatory for him who takes something cooked with the help of fire. Ibn 'Abbas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) took flesh from the bone or meat, and then offered prayer and did not perform ablution, and (in fact) he did not touch water. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0691. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abrogation of the Hadith that ablution is obligatory for him who takes something cooked with the help of fire. Ja'far b. Amr b. Umayya al-Damari reported on the authority of his father who said: I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) take slices from goat's shoulder, and then eat them, and then offer prayer without having performed ablution. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0692. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abrogation of the Hadith that ablution is obligatory for him who takes something cooked with the help of fire. Ja'far b. 'Amr b. Umayya al-Damari reported on the authority of his father who said: I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) take slices from goat's shoulder and then eat them. He was called for prayer and he got up, leaving aside the knife, and offered prayer but did not perform ablution. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0693. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abrogation of the Hadith that ablution is obligatory for him who takes something cooked with the help of fire. Ibn 'Abbas reported it on the authority of Maimuana, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) took (a piece of goat's) shoulder at her place, and then offered prayer but did not perform ablution. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0694. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abrogation of the Hadith that ablution is obligatory for him who takes something cooked with the help of fire. This hadith has been narrated by Ibn 'Abbas on the authority of Maimuna. the wife of the Apostle (may peace be upon him), by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0695. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abrogation of the Hadith that ablution is obligatory for him who takes something cooked with the help of fire. Abu Rafi' reported: I testify that I used to roast the liver of the goat for the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and then he offered prayer but did not perform ablution. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0696. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abrogation of the Hadith that ablution is obligatory for him who takes something cooked with the help of fire. Ibn Abbas reported: The Apostle (may peace be upon him) took milk and then called for water and rinsed (his mouth) and said: It contains greasiness. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0697. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abrogation of the Hadith that ablution is obligatory for him who takes something cooked with the help of fire. This hadith has been narrated by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0698. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abrogation of the Hadith that ablution is obligatory for him who takes something cooked with the help of fire. Ibn Abbas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) dressed himself, and then went out for prayer, when he was presented with bread and meat. He took three morsels out of that, and then offered prayer along with other people and did not touch water. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0699. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abrogation of the Hadith that ablution is obligatory for him who takes something cooked with the help of fire. This hadith is narrated by Muhammad b. 'Amr b. Ata' with these words: I was with Ibn 'Abbas, and Ibn 'Abbas saw the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) doing like this, and it is also said that the words are: He (the Holy Prophet) offered prayer; and the word "people" is not mentioned. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0700. ------------------------------ Chapter : The question of ablution after eating the flesh of the camel. Jabir b. Samura reported: A man asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) whether he should perform ablution after (eating) mutton. He (the Messenger of Allah) said: Perform ablution it you so desire, and if you do not wish, do not perform it. He (again) asked: Should I perform ablution (after eating) camel's flesh? He said: Yes, perform ablution (after eating) camel's flesh. He (again) said: May I say prayer in the sheepfolds? He (the Messenger of Allah) said: Yes. He (the narrator) again said: May I say prayer where camels lie down? He (the Holy Prophet) said: No. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0701. ------------------------------ Chapter : The question of ablution after eating the flesh of the camel. This hadith is also narrated by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0702. ------------------------------ Chapter : A man who is sure of his purification, but entertains doubt of anything breaking it, can safely offer prayer without performing a new ablution. 'Abbad b. Tamim reported from his uncle that a person made a complaint to the Apostle (may peace be upon him) that he entertained (doubt) as it something had happened to him breaking his ablution. He (the Holy Prophet) said: He should not return (from prayer) unless he hears a sound or perceives a smell (of passing wind). Abu Bakr and Zuhair b. Harb have pointed out in their narrations that it was 'Abdullah b. Zaid. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0703. ------------------------------ Chapter : A man who is sure of his purification, but entertains doubt of anything breaking it, can safely offer prayer without performing a new ablution. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: If any one of you has pain in his abdomen, but is doubtful whether or not anything has issued from him, be should not leave the mosque unless he hears a sound or perceives a smell. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0704. ------------------------------ Chapter : Purification of the skins of the dead animals by tanning them. The freed slave-girl of Maimuna was given a goat in charity but it died. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) happened to pass by that (carcass). Upon this be said: Why did you not take off its skin? You could put it to use, after tanning it. They (the Companions) said: It was dead. Upon, this he (the Messenger of Allah) said: Only its eating is prohibited. Abu Bakr and Ibn Umar in their narrations said: It is narrated from Maimuna (may Allah be pleased with her). Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0705. ------------------------------ Chapter : Purification of the skins of the dead animals by tanning them. Ibn 'Abbas said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saw a dead goat, which had been given in charity to the freed slave-girl of Maimuna. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Why don't you make use of its skin? They (the Companions around the Holy Prophet) said: It is dead. Upon this he said: It is the eating (of the dead animal) which is prohibited. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0706. ------------------------------ Chapter : Purification of the skins of the dead animals by tanning them. This hadith is narrated by Ibn Shihab with the same chain of transmitters as transmitted by Yunus. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0707. ------------------------------ Chapter : Purification of the skins of the dead animals by tanning them. Ibn Abbas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) happened to pass by a goat thrown (away) which had been in fact given to the freed slave-girl of Maimuna as charity. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (way peace he upon him) said: Why did they not get its skin? They had better tan it and make use of it. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0708. ------------------------------ Chapter : Purification of the skins of the dead animals by tanning them. Ibn'Abbas reported on the authority of Maimuna that someone amongst the wives of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had a domestic animal and it died. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Why did you not take off its skin and make use of that? Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0709. ------------------------------ Chapter : Purification of the skins of the dead animals by tanning them. Ibn 'Abbas reported: The Apostle of Allah(may peace be upon him)happened to pass by (the dead body) of the goat which belonged to the freed slave-girl of Maimuna and said: Why did you not make use of its skin? Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0710. ------------------------------ Chapter : Purification of the skins of the dead animals by tanning them. Abdullah b. Abbas said: I heard the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) say: When the skin is tanned it becomes purified. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0711. ------------------------------ Chapter : Purification of the skins of the dead animals by tanning them. This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Ibn 'Abbas by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0712. ------------------------------ Chapter : Purification of the skins of the dead animals by tanning them. Abu al-Khair reported: I saw Ibn Wa'la al-Saba'i wear a fur. I touched it. He said: Why do you touch it? I asked Ibn 'Abbas saying: We are the inhabitants of the western regions, and there (live) with us Berbers and Magians. They bring with them rams and slaughter them, but we do not eat (the meat of the animals) slaughtered by them, and they come with skins full of fat. Upon this Ibn 'Abbas said: We asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) about this and he said: Its tanning makes it pure. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0713. ------------------------------ Chapter : Purification of the skins of the dead animals by tanning them. Ibn Wa'la al-Saba'i reported: I asked 'Abdullah b. 'Abbas saying: We are the inhabitants of the western regions. The Magians come to us with skins full of water and fat. He said: Drink. I said to him: Is it your own opinion? Ibn Abbas said: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) say: Tanning purifies it (the skin). Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0714. ------------------------------ Chapter : Tayammum. 'Aisha reported: We went with the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) on one of his journeys and when we reached the place Baida' or Dhat al-jaish, my necklace was broken (and fell somewhere). The Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) along with other people stayed there for searching it. There was neither any water at that place nor was there any water with them (the Companions of the Holy Prophet). Some persons came to my father Abu Bakr and said: Do you see what 'Aisha has done? She has detained the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and persons accompanying him, and there is neither any water here or with them. So Abu Bakr came there and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was sleeping with his head on my thigh. He (Abu Bakr) said: You have detained the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and other persons and there is neither water here nor with them. She ('Aisha) said: Abu Bakr scolded me and uttered what Allah wanted him to utter and nudged my hips with his hand. And there was nothing to prevent me from stirring but for the fact that the messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was lying upon my thigh. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) slept till it was dawn at a waterless place. So Allah revealed the verses pertaining to tayammum and they (the Holy Prophet and his Companions) performed tayammum. Usaid b. al-Hudair who was one of the leaders said: This is not the first of your blessings, O Family to Abu Bakr. 'Aisha said: We made the came) stand which was my mount and found the necklace under it. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0715. ------------------------------ Chapter : Tayammum. 'Aisha reported she had borrowed from Asma' (her sister) a necklace and it was lost. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sent men to search for it. As it was the time for prayer, they offered prayer without ablution (as water was not available there). When they came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), they made a complaint about it, and the verses pertaining to tayammum were revealed. Upon this Usaid b. Hadair said (to 'Aisha): May Allah grant you a good reward! Never has been there an occasion when you were beset with difficulty and Allah did not make you come out of that and made it an occasion of blessing for the Muslims. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0716. ------------------------------ Chapter : Tayammum. Shaqiq reported: I was sitting in the company of Abdullah and Abu Musa when Abu Musa said: O 'Abd al-Rahman (kunya of 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud), what would you like a man to do about the prayer if he experiences a seminal emission or has sexual intercourse but does not find water for a month? 'Abdullah said: He should not perform tayammum even if he does not find water for a month. 'Abdullah said: Then what about the verse in Sura Ma'ida: "If you do not find water, betake yourself to clean dust"? 'Abdullah said: If they were granted concession on the basis of this verse, there is a possibility that they would perform tayammum with dust on finding water very cold for themselves. Abu Musa said to Abdullah: You have not heard the words of 'Ammar: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sent me on an errand and I had a seminal emission, but could find no water, and rolled myself in dust just as a beast rolls itself. I came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) then and made a mention of that to him and he (the Holy Prophet)said: It would have been enough for you to do thus. Then he struck the ground with his hands once and wiped his right hand with the help of his left hand and the exterior of his palms and his face. 'Abdullah said: Didn't you see that Umar was not fully satisfied with the words of 'Ammar only? Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0717. ------------------------------ Chapter : Tayammum. This hadith is narrated by Shaqiq with the same chain of transmitters but with the alteration of these words: He (the Holy Prophet) struck hands upon the earth, and then shook them and then wiped his face and palm. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0718. ------------------------------ Chapter : Tayammum. Abd al-Rabmin b. Abza narrated It on the authority of his father that a man came to 'Umar and said: I am (at times) affected by seminal emission but find no water. He ('Umar) told him not to say prayer. 'Ammar then said: Do you remember, O Commander of the Faithful, when I and you were in a military detachment and we had had a seminal emission and did not find water (for taking bath) and you did not say prayer, but as for myself I rolled in dust and said prayer, and (when it was mentioned before) the Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: It was enough for you to strike the ground with your hands and then blow (the dust) and then wipe your face and palms. Umar said: 'Ammar, fear Allah. He said: If you so like, I would not narrate it. A hadith like this has been transmitted with the same chain of transmitters but for the words: 'Umar said: We hold you responsible for what you claim." Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0719. ------------------------------ Chapter : Tayammum. 'Abd al-Rahman b. Abza narrated it on the authority of his father that a man came to Umar and said: I have had a seminal emission but I found no water, and the rest of the hadith is the same but with this addition: 'Amr said: O Commander of the Faithful, because of the right given to you by Allah over me, if you desire, I would not narrate this hadith to anyone. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0720. ------------------------------ Chapter : Tayammum. Umair, the freed slave of Ibn 'Abbas, reported: I and 'Abd al-Rahmin b. Yasir, the freed slave of Maimuna, the wife of the Apostle (way peace be upon him) came to the house of Abu'l-Jahm b. al-Harith al-Simma Ansari and he said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came from the direction of Bi'r Jamal and a man met him; he saluted him but the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) made no response, till he (the Holy Prophet) came to the wall, wiped his face and hands and then returned his salutations. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0721. ------------------------------ Chapter : Tayammum. Ibn Umar reported: A person happened to pass by the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) when he was making water and saluted him, but he did not respond to his salutation. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0722. ------------------------------ Chapter : A Muslim is not defiled. Abu Huraira reported that he met the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him)on one of the paths leading to Medina in a state of (sexual) defilement and he slipped away and took a bath. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) searched for him and when he came, he said to him: O Abu Huraira, where were you? He said: Messenger of Allah, you met when I was (sexually) defiled and I did not like to sit in your company before taking a bath. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Hallowed be Allah, verily a believer is never defiled. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0723. ------------------------------ Chapter : A Muslim is not defiled. Hudhaifa reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) happened to meet him and he was (sexually) defiled, and he slipped away and took a bath and then came and said: I was (sexually) defiled. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) remarked: A Muslim is never defiled. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0724. ------------------------------ Chapter : Remembrance of Allah even in a state of sexual defilement. 'Aisha said: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to remember Allah at all moments. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0725. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to eat without ablution and there is no abhorrence in it and performing of ablution immediately (after that) is not essential. Ibn 'Abbas reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) came out of the privy, and he was presented with some food, and the people reminded him about ablution, but he said: Am I to say prayer that I should perform ablution? Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0726. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to eat without ablution and there is no abhorrence in it and performing of ablution immediately (after that) is not essential. Ibn 'Abbas reported: We were with the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he had come out of the privy. Food was presented to him. It was said to him (by the Companions around him): Wouldn't you perform ablution? Upon this he said: Why, am I to say prayer that I should perform ablution? Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0727. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to eat without ablution and there is no abhorrence in it and performing of ablution immediately (after that) is not essential. Ibn 'Abbas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) went to the privy and when he came back, he was presented with food. It was said to him; Messenger of Allah, wouldn't you perform ablution. He said: Why, am I to say prayer? Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0728. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to eat without ablution and there is no abhorrence in it and performing of ablution immediately (after that) is not essential. Ibn Abbas, reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) came out of the privy after relieving himself, and food was brought to him and he took it, and did not touch water. In another narration transmitted by Sa'id b. al-Huwairith it is like this: It was said to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) You have not performed ablution. He said: I do not intend to say prayer that I should perform ablution. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0729. ------------------------------ Chapter : What should be uttered while entering the privy ?. Anas reported: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) entered the privy, and in the hadith transmitted by Hushaim (the words are): When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) entered the lavatory, be used to say: O Allah, I seek refuge in Thee from wicked and noxious things. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0730. ------------------------------ Chapter : What should be uttered while entering the privy ?. This hadith is also transmitted by 'Abd Al-'Aziz with the same chain of transmitters, and the words are: I seek refuge with Allah from the wicked and noxious things. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0731. ------------------------------ Chapter : Ablution does not break by dozing in a sitting posture. Anas reported: (The people) stood up for prayer and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was whispering to a man, and in the narration of 'Abd al-Warith (the words are): The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) was having a private conversation with a man, and did not start the prayer till the people dozed off. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0732. ------------------------------ Chapter : Ablution does not break by dozing in a sitting posture. Anas b. Malik reported: (The people) stood up for prayer and the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) was talking in whispers with a man, and he did not discontinue the conversation till his Companions dozed off; he then came and led the prayer. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0733. ------------------------------ Chapter : Ablution does not break by dozing in a sitting posture. Qatida reported: I heard Anas as saying that the Companion of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) dozed off and then offered prayer and did not perform ablution. He (the narrator) said: I asked him if he had actually heard it from Anas. He said: By Allah. yes. Muslim Book 003, Hadith Number 0734. ------------------------------ Chapter : Ablution does not break by dozing in a sitting posture. Anas reported: (The people) stood up for the night prayer when a man spoke forth: I need to say something. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) entered into secret conversation with him, till the people dozed off or some of the people (dozed off), and then they said the prayer. Total Hadiths : 158. Generated By : The Hadith Software Version 1.0 Date : 05-03-2009. ****************************************************************** * NOTE!! THERE ARE VARIOUS WEB SITES (I.E. WWW.HADITHONLINE.COM) * * THAT CAN BE USED TO VALIDATE THE AUTHENTICITY OF EACH HADITHS * * GENERATED OR VIEWED IN THIS SOFTWARE. PLEASE REFER TO THEM IF * * YOU HAVE ANY QUESTIONS OR DOUBTS. - Islamasoft Solutions. (UK) * ****************************************************************** Islamasoft Solutions. (www.islamasoft.co.uk) The Hadith Software : Shahi Muslim. Muslim Book 4. Prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0735. ------------------------------ Chapter : Lying with one in menstruation above the waist wrapper. Ibn Umar reported: When the Muslims came to Medina, they gathered and sought to know the time of prayer but no one summoned them. One day they discussed the matter, and some of them said: Use something like the bell of the Christians and some of them said: Use horn like that of the Jews. Umar said: Why may not a be appointed who should call (people) to prayer? The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: O Bilal, get up and summon (the people) to prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0736. ------------------------------ Chapter : Lying with one in menstruation above the waist wrapper. Anas reported: Bilal was commanded (by the Apostle of Allah) to repeat (the phrases of) Adhan twice and once in Iqama. The narrator said: I made a mention of it before Ayyub who said: Except for saying: Qamat-is-Salat [the time for prayer has come]. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0737. ------------------------------ Chapter : Lying with one in menstruation above the waist wrapper. Anas b. Malik reported: They (the Companions) discussed that they should know the timings of prayer by means of something recognized by all. Some of them said that fire should be lighted or a bell should be rung. But Bilal was ordered to repeat the phrases twice in Adhan, and once in Iqama. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0738. ------------------------------ Chapter : Lying with one in menstruation above the waist wrapper. This hadith is transmitted by Khalid Hadhdha with the same chain of transmitters (and the words are): When the majority of the people discussed they should know, like the hadith narrated by al-Thaqafi (mentioned above) except for the words: "They (the people) should kindle fire." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0739. ------------------------------ Chapter : Lying with one in menstruation above the waist wrapper. Anas reported: Bilal was commanded (by the Holy Prophet) to repeat the phrases twice in Adhan, and once in Iqama. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0740. ------------------------------ Chapter : The beginning of Adhan. Abu Mahdhura said that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) taught him Adhan like this: Allah is the Greatest, Allah is the Greatest; I testify that there is no god but Allah, I testify that there is no god but Allah; I testify that Muhammad Is the Messenger of Allah, I testify that Muhammad is the Messenger of Allah, and it should be again repeated: I testify that there is no god but Allah, I testify that there is no god but Allah; I testify that Muhammad Is the Messenger of Allah, I testify that Muhammad is the Messenger of Allah. Come to the prayer (twice). Come to the prayer (twice). Ishaq added: Allah is the Greatest, Allah is the Greatest; there Is no god but Allah. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0741. ------------------------------ Chapter : How Adhan is to be pronounced. Ibn Umar reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had two Mu'adhdhins, Bilal and 'Abdullah b. Umm Maktum, who (latter) was blind. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0742. ------------------------------ Chapter : How Adhan is to be pronounced. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of 'Aisha by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0743. ------------------------------ Chapter : How Adhan is to be pronounced. 'Aisha reported: Ibn Umm Maktum used to pronounce Adhan at the behest of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) (despite the fact) that he was blind. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0744. ------------------------------ Chapter : How Adhan is to be pronounced. A hadith like this has been transmitted by Hisham. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0745. ------------------------------ Chapter : There can be two pronouncers of Adhan for one mosque. Anas b. Malik reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to attack the enemy when it was dawn. He would listen to the Adhan; so if he heard an Adhan, he stopped, otherwise made an attack. Once on hearing a man say: Allah is the Greatest, Allah is the Greatest, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) remarked: He is following al-Fitra (al-Islam). Then hearing him say: I testify that there is no god but Allah. there is no god but Allah, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: You have come out of the Fire (of Hell). They looked at him and found that he was a goatherd. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0746. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Holy Prophet refrained from attacking people living in Dar al-Kufr on bearing Adhan from them. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported: When you hear the call (to prayer), repeat what the Mu'adhdhin pronounces. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0747. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Holy Prophet refrained from attacking people living in Dar al-Kufr on bearing Adhan from them. 'Abdullah b. Amr b. al-As reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When you hear the Mu'adhdhin, repeat what he says, then invoke a blessing on me, for everyone who invokes a blessing on me will receive ten blessings from Allah; then beg from Allah al-Wasila for me, which is a rank in Paradise fitting for only one of Allah's servants, and I hope that I may be that one. If anyone who asks that I be given the Wasila, he will be assured of my intercession. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0748. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Holy Prophet refrained from attacking people living in Dar al-Kufr on bearing Adhan from them. 'Umar b. al-Khattab reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When the Mu'adhdhin says: Allah is the Greatest, Allah is the Greatest, and one of you should make this response: Allah is the Greatest, Allah is the Greatest; (and when the Mu'adhdhin) says: I testify that there is no god but Allah, one should respond: I testify that there is no god but Allah, and when he says: I testify that Muhammad is the Messenger of Allah, one should make a response: I testify that Muhammad is Allah's Messenger. When he (the Mu'adhdhin) says: Come to prayer, one should make a response: There is no might and no power except with Allah. When he (the Mu'adhdhin) says: Come to salvation, one should respond: There is no might and no power except with Allah, and when he (the Mu'adhdhin) says: Allah is the Greatest, Allah is the Greatest, then make a response: Allah is the Greatest, Allah is the Greatest. When he (the Mu'adhdhin) says: There is no god but Allah, and he who makes a response from the heart: There is no god but Allah, he will enter Paradise. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0749. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Holy Prophet refrained from attacking people living in Dar al-Kufr on bearing Adhan from them. Sa'd b. Abu Waqqas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: If anyone says on hearing the Mu'adhdhin: I testify that there is no god but Allah alone. Who has no partner, and that Muhammad is His servant and His Messenger, (and that) I am satisfied with Allah as my Lord, with Muhammad as Messenger, and with Islam as din (code of life), his sins would be forgiven. In the narration transmitted by Ibn Rumh the words are: "He who said on hearing the Mu'adhdhin and verity I testify."' Qutaiba has not mentioned his words: "And I." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0750. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who hears the Adhin should respond like it, invoke blessings upon the Apostle (may peace be upon him)and then beg for him the Wasila. Yahya narrated it on the authority of his uncle that he had been sitting in the company of Mu'awiya b. Abu Sufyan when the Mu'adhdhin called (Muslims) to prayer. Mu'awiya said: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying The Mu'adhdhins will have the longest necks on the Day of Resurrection. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0751. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who hears the Adhin should respond like it, invoke blessings upon the Apostle (may peace be upon him)and then beg for him the Wasila. Abu Sufyan reported it on the authority of Jabir that he had heard the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) say: When Satan hears the call to prayer, he runs away to a distance like that of Rauha. Sulaimin said: I asked him about Rauha. He replied: It is at a distance of thirty-six miles from Medina. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0752. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who hears the Adhin should respond like it, invoke blessings upon the Apostle (may peace be upon him)and then beg for him the Wasila. Abu Mu'awiya narrated it on the authority of A'mash with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0753. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who hears the Adhin should respond like it, invoke blessings upon the Apostle (may peace be upon him)and then beg for him the Wasila. AbuHuraira reported the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: When Satan hears the call to prayer, he turns back and breaks the wind so as not to bear the call being made, but when the call is finished he turns round and distracts (the minds of those who pray), and when he bears the Iqama he again runs away so as not to hear its voice and when it subsides, he comes back and distracts (the minds of those who stand for prayer). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0754. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who hears the Adhin should respond like it, invoke blessings upon the Apostle (may peace be upon him)and then beg for him the Wasila. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When the Mu'adhdhin calls to prayer, Satan runs back vehemently. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0755. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who hears the Adhin should respond like it, invoke blessings upon the Apostle (may peace be upon him)and then beg for him the Wasila. Suhail reported that his father sent him to Banu Haritha along with a boy or a man. Someone called him by his name from an enclosure. He (the narrator) said: The person with me looked towards the enclosure, but saw nothing. I made a mention of that to my father. He said: If I knew that you would meet such a situation I would have never sent you (there), but (bear in wind) whenever you hear such a call (from the evil spirits) pronounce the Adhan. for I have heard Abu Huraira say that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Whenever Adhan is proclaimed, Satan runs back vehemently. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0756. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who hears the Adhin should respond like it, invoke blessings upon the Apostle (may peace be upon him)and then beg for him the Wasila. Abu Huraira reported: The Apostle (may peace be upon him) said When the call to prayer is made, Satan runs back and breaks wind so as not to hear the call being made, and when the call is finished, he turns round. When Iqama is proclaimed he turns his back, and when it is finished he turns round to distract a man, saying: Remember such and such; remember such and such, referring to something the man did not have in his mind, with the result that he does not know how much he has prayed. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0757. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who hears the Adhin should respond like it, invoke blessings upon the Apostle (may peace be upon him)and then beg for him the Wasila. A hadith like it has been narrated by Abu Huraira but for these words: "He (the man saying the prayer) does not know how much he has prayed. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0758. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of Adhin and running away of the Satan on hearing it. Salim narrated it on the authority of his father who reported: I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) raising his hands apposite the shoulders at the time of beginning the prayer and before bowing down and after coming back to the position after bowing, but he did not raise them between two prostrations. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0759. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of Adhin and running away of the Satan on hearing it. Ibn Umar reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), when he stood up for prayer, used to raise his hands apposite the shoulders and then recited takbir (Allah-o-Akbar), and when he was about to bow he again did like it and when he raised himself from the ruku' (bowing posture) he again did like it, but he did not do it at the time of raising his head from prostration. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0760. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of Adhin and running away of the Satan on hearing it. This hadith has been transmitted with the same chain of transmitters by al. Zuhri as narrated by Ibn Juraij (who) said: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) stood up for prayer, he raised hands (to the height) apposite the shoulders and then recited takbir. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0761. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of Adhin and running away of the Satan on hearing it. Abu Qilaba reported that he saw Malik b. Huwairith raising his hands at the beginning of prayer and raising his hands before kneeling down, and raising his hands after lifting his head from the state of kneeling, and he narrated that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to do like this. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0762. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of Adhin and running away of the Satan on hearing it. Malik b. Huwairith reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) raised his hands apposite his ears at the time of reciting the takbir (i.e. at the time of beginning the prayer) and then again raised his hands apposite the ears at the time of bowing and when he lifted his head after bowing he said: Allah listened to him who praised Him, and did like it (raised his hands up to the ears). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0763. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of Adhin and running away of the Satan on hearing it. This hadith has been transmitted by Qatada with the same chain of transmitters that he saw the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) doing like this (i.e. raising his hands) till they were apposite the lobes of cars. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0764. ------------------------------ Chapter : The desirability of raising the hands apposite the shoulders at the time of beginning the prayer and at the time of bowing and at the time of returning to the erect position after bowing. Abu Salama reported: Abu Huraira led prayer for them and recited takbir when he bent and raised himself (in ruku' and sujud) and after completing (the prayer) he said: By Allah I say prayer which has the best resemblance with the prayer of the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) amongst you. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0765. ------------------------------ Chapter : The desirability of raising the hands apposite the shoulders at the time of beginning the prayer and at the time of bowing and at the time of returning to the erect position after bowing. Abu Huraira reported: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) got up for prayer, he would say the takbir (Allah-o-Akbar) when standing, then say the takbir when bowing, then say: "Allah listened to him who praised him," when coming to the erect position after bowing, then say while standing: "To Thee, our Lord, be the praise", then recite the takbir when getting down for prostration, then say the takbir on raising his head, then say the takbir on prostrating himself, then say the takbir on raising his head. He would do that throughout the whole prayer till he would complete it, and he would say the takbir when he would get up at the end of two rak'as after adopting the sitting posture. Abu Huraira said: My prayer has the best resemblance amongst you with the prayer of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0766. ------------------------------ Chapter : The desirability of raising the hands apposite the shoulders at the time of beginning the prayer and at the time of bowing and at the time of returning to the erect position after bowing. Ibn al-Harith reported: He had heard Abu Huraira say: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) recited takbir on standing for prayer, and the rest of the hadith is like that transmitted by Ibn Juraij (recorded above), but he did not mention Abu Huraira as saying: "My prayer has the best resemblance amongst you with the prayer of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him)." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0767. ------------------------------ Chapter : The desirability of raising the hands apposite the shoulders at the time of beginning the prayer and at the time of bowing and at the time of returning to the erect position after bowing. Abu Salama b. 'Abd al-Rahman reported.. When Marwan appointed Abu Huraira as his deputy in Medina, he recited takbir whenever he got up for obligatory prayer, and the rest of the hadith is the same as transmitted by Ibn Juraij (but with the addition of these words): On completing the prayer with salutation, and he turned to the people in the mosque and said.... Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0768. ------------------------------ Chapter : The desirability of raising the hands apposite the shoulders at the time of beginning the prayer and at the time of bowing and at the time of returning to the erect position after bowing. Abu Salama reported that Abu Huraira recited takbir in prayer on all occasions of rising and kneeling. We said: O Abu Huraira, what is this takbir? He said: Verily it is the prayer of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0769. ------------------------------ Chapter : The desirability of raising the hands apposite the shoulders at the time of beginning the prayer and at the time of bowing and at the time of returning to the erect position after bowing. Suhail reported on the authority of his father that Abu Huraira used to recite takbir on all occasions of rising and bending (in prayer) and narrated that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to do like that. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0770. ------------------------------ Chapter : The desirability of raising the hands apposite the shoulders at the time of beginning the prayer and at the time of bowing and at the time of returning to the erect position after bowing. Mutarrif reported: I and 'Imran b. Husain said prayer behind 'Ali b. Abu, Talib. He recited takbir when he prostrated, and he recited takbir when he raised his head and he recited takbir while rising up (from the sitting position at the end of two rak'ahs). When we had finished our prayer, 'Imran caught hold of my hand and said: He (Hadrat Ali) has led prayer like Muhammad (may peace be upon him) or he said: He in fact recalled to my mind the prayer of Muhammad (may peace be upon him.) Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0771. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Takbir at the time of bowing and rising in prayer except rising after Ruku' when it is said: Allah listened to him who praised Him. 'Ubada b. as-Samit reported from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him ): He who does not recite Fatihat al-Kitab is not credited with having observed the prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0772. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Takbir at the time of bowing and rising in prayer except rising after Ruku' when it is said: Allah listened to him who praised Him. Ubada b. as-Samit reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who does not recite Umm Al-Qur'an is not credited with having observed the prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0773. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Takbir at the time of bowing and rising in prayer except rising after Ruku' when it is said: Allah listened to him who praised Him. Mahmud b. al-Rabi', on whose face the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) squirted water from the well, reported on the authority of 'Ubada b. as-Samit that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who does not recite Umm Al-Qur'an is not credited with having observed prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0774. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Takbir at the time of bowing and rising in prayer except rising after Ruku' when it is said: Allah listened to him who praised Him. This hadith has also been transmitted by Ma'mar from al-Zuhri with the same chain of transmitters with the addition of these words: "and something more". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0775. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Takbir at the time of bowing and rising in prayer except rising after Ruku' when it is said: Allah listened to him who praised Him. Abu Huraira reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: If anyone observes prayer in which he does not recite Umm Al-Qur'an, It is deficient [he said this three times] and not complete. It was said to Abu Huraira: At times we are behind the Imam. He said: Recite it inwardly, for he had heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) declare that Allah the Exalted had said: I have divided the prayer into two halves between Me and My servant, and My servant will receive what he asks. When the servant says: Praise be to Allah, the Lord of the universe, Allah the Most High says: My servant has praised me. And when he (the servant) says: The Most Compassionate, the Merciful, Allah the Most High says: My servant has lauded me. And when he (the servant) says: Master of the Day of judgment, He remarks: My servant has glorified me, and sometimes He would say: My servant entrusted (his affairs) to me. And when he (the worshipper) says: Thee do we worship and of Thee do we ask help, He (Allah) says: This is between Me and My servant, and My servant will receive what he asks for. Then, when he (the worshipper) says: Guide us to the straight path, the path of those to whom Thou hast been Gracious not of those who have incurred Thy displeasure, nor of those who have gone astray, He (Allah) says: This is for My servant, and My servant will receive what he asks for. Sufyan said: 'Ala b. 'Abd al-Rahman b. Ya'qub narrated it to me when I went to him and he was confined to his home on account of illness, and I asked him about it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0776. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Takbir at the time of bowing and rising in prayer except rising after Ruku' when it is said: Allah listened to him who praised Him. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that he had heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) say: He who observed prayer but he did not recite the Umm Al-Qur'an in it, and the rest of the hadith is the same as transmitted by Sufyan, and in this hadith the words are: "Allah the Most High said: the prayer is divided into two halves between Me and My servant. The half of it is for Me and the half of it is for My servant." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0777. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Takbir at the time of bowing and rising in prayer except rising after Ruku' when it is said: Allah listened to him who praised Him. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who said his prayer, but did not recite the opening chapter of al-Kitab, his prayer is incomplete. He repeated it thrice. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0778. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Takbir at the time of bowing and rising in prayer except rising after Ruku' when it is said: Allah listened to him who praised Him. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: One is not credited with having observed the prayer without the recitation (of al-Fatiha). So said Abu Huraira: (The prayer in which) the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) recited in a loud voice, we also recited that loudly for you (and the prayer in which) he recited inwardly we also recited inwardly for you (to give you a practical example of the prayer of the Holy Prophet). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0779. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Takbir at the time of bowing and rising in prayer except rising after Ruku' when it is said: Allah listened to him who praised Him. 'Ata' narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira who said that one should recite (al-Fatiha) in every (rak'ah of) prayer. What we heard (i.e. recitation) from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), we made you listen to that. And that which he (recited) inwardly, we (recited) inwardly for you. A person said to him: If I add nothing to the (recitation) of the Umm Al Qur'an (Surat al-Fatiha), would it make the prayer incomplete? He (Abu Huraira) said: If you add to that (if you recite some of verses of the Qur'an along with Surat at-Fatiha) that is better for you. But if you are contented with it (Surat al-Fatiha) only, it is sufficient for you. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0780. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Takbir at the time of bowing and rising in prayer except rising after Ruku' when it is said: Allah listened to him who praised Him. 'Ata' reported it on the authority of Abu Huraira who said: Recitation (of Surat al-Fatiha) in every (rak'ah) of prayer in essential. (The recitation) that we listened to from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) we made you listen to it. And that which he recited inwardly to us, we recited it inwardly for you. And he who recites Umm Al-Qur'an, it is enough for him (to complete the prayer), and he who adds to it (recites some other verses of the Holy Qur'an along with Surat al-Fatiha), it is preferable for him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0781. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Takbir at the time of bowing and rising in prayer except rising after Ruku' when it is said: Allah listened to him who praised Him. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) entered the mosque and a person also entered therein and offered prayer, and then came and paid salutation to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) returned his salutation and said: Go back and pray, for you have not offered the prayer. He again prayed as he had prayed before, and came to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and saluted him. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) returned the salutation and said: Go back and say prayer, for you have not offered the prayer. This (act of repeating the prayer) was done three times. Upon this the person said: By Him Who hast sent you with Truth, whatever better I can do than this, please teach me. He (the Holy Prophet) said: When you get up to pray, recite takbir, and then recite whatever you conveniently can from the Qur'an, then bow down and remain quietly in that position, then raise yourself and stand erect; then prostrate yourself and remain quietly in that attitude; then raise yourself and sit quietly; and do that throughout all your prayers. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0782. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Takbir at the time of bowing and rising in prayer except rising after Ruku' when it is said: Allah listened to him who praised Him. Abu Huraira reported: A person entered the mosque and said prayer while the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was sitting in a nook (of the mosque), and the rest of the hadith is the same as mentioned above, but with this addition: "When you get up to pray, perform the ablution completely, and then turn towards the Qibla and recite takbir (Allah-u-Akbar - Allah is the Most Great)." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0783. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of al-Fatiha in every Rakah of prayer is obligatory. lmrin b. Husain reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) led us In Zuhr or 'Asr prayer (noon or the afternoon prayer). (On concluding it) he said: Who recited behind me (the verses): Sabbih Isma Rabbik al-Ala (Glorify the name of thy Lord, the Most High)? There upon a person said: It was I, but I intended nothing but goodness. I felt that some one of you was disputing with me in it (or he was taking out from my tongue what I was reciting), said the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0784. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of al-Fatiha in every Rakah of prayer is obligatory. 'Imran b. Husain reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed the Zuhr prayer and a person recited Sabbih Isma Rabbik al-a'la (Glorify the name of thy Lord, the Most High) behind him. When he (the Holy Prophet) concluded the prayer he said: Who amongst you recited (the above-mentioned verse) or who amongst you was the reciter? A person said: It was I. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) observed: I thought as if someone amongst you was disputing with me (in what I was reciting). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0785. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of al-Fatiha in every Rakah of prayer is obligatory. This hadith has been narrated by Qatada with the same chain of transmitters that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed Zuhr prayer and said: I felt that someone amongst you was disputing with me (in what I was reciting). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0786. ------------------------------ Chapter : The one led in prayer is forbidden to recite loudly behind the Imam. Anas reported: I observed prayer along with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and with Abu Bakr, Umar and Uthman (may Allah be pleased with all of them), but I never heard any one of them reciting Bismillah-ir-Rahman-ir-Rahim loudly. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0787. ------------------------------ Chapter : The one led in prayer is forbidden to recite loudly behind the Imam. Shu'ba reported it with the same chain of transmitters, with she addition of these words: "I said to Qatada: Did you hear it from Anas? He replied in the affirmative and added: We had inquired of him about it." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0788. ------------------------------ Chapter : The one led in prayer is forbidden to recite loudly behind the Imam. 'Abda reported: 'Umar b. al-Khattab used to recite loudly these words: Subhanak Allahumma wa bi hamdika wa tabarakasmuka wa ta'ala jadduka wa la ilaha ghairuka [Glory to Thee, O Allah, and Thine is the Praise, and Blessed is Thy name and Exalted is Thy Majesty and there is no other object of worship beside Thee]. Qatada informed in writing that Anas b. Malik had narrated to him: I observed prayer behind the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and Abu Bakr and Umar and 'Uthman. They started (loud recitation) with: AI-hamdu lillahi Rabb al-'A1amin [All Praise is due to Allah, the Lord of the worlds] and did not recite Bismillah ir-Rahman-ir-Rahim (loudly) at the beginning of the recitation or at the end of it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0789. ------------------------------ Chapter : The one led in prayer is forbidden to recite loudly behind the Imam. It is reported on the authority of Abu Talha that he had heard Anas b. Malik narrating this. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0790. ------------------------------ Chapter : Argument of those who say that he (the Holy Prophet) did not recite Bismillah (in the name of Allah) loudly. Anas reported: One day the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was sitting amongst us that he dozed off. He then raised his head smilingly. We said: What makes you smile. Messenger of Allah? He said: A Sura has just been revealed to me, and then recited: In the name of Allah, the Compassionate, the Merciful. Verily We have given thee Kauthar (fount of abundance). Therefore turn to thy Lord for prayer and offer sacrifice, and surely thy enemy is cut off (from the good). Then he (the Holy Prophet) said: Do you know what Kauthar is? We said: Allah and His Messenger know best. The Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) said: It (Kauthar) is a canal which my Lord, the Exalted and Glorious has promised me, and there is an abundance of good in it. It is a cistern and my people would come to it on the Day of Resurrection, and tumblers there would be equal to the number of stars. A servant would be turned away from (among the people gathered there). Upon this I would say: My Lord, he is one of my people, and He (the Lord) would say: You do not know that he innovated new things (in Islam) after you. Ibn Hujr made this addition in the hadith: "He (the Holy Prophet) was sitting amongst us in the mosque, and He (Allah) said: (You don't know) what he innovated after you" Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0791. ------------------------------ Chapter : Argument of those who say that he (the Holy Prophet) did not recite Bismillah (in the name of Allah) loudly. Mukhtar b. Fulful reported that he had heard Anas b. Malik say that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) dozed off, and the rest of the hadith is the same as transmitted by Mus-hir except for the words that he (the Holy Prophet) said: It (Kauthar) is a canal which my Lord the Exalted and the Glorious has promised me in Paradise. There is a tank over it, but he made no mention of the tumblers like the number of the stars. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0792. ------------------------------ Chapter : Argument of those who assert that Bismillah is a part of every Sura except Sura Tauba. Wa'il b. Hujr reported: He saw the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) raising his hands at the time of beginning the prayer and reciting takbir, and according to Hammam (the narrator), the hands were lifted opposite to ears. He (the Holy Prophet) then wrapped his hands in his cloth and placed his right hand over his left hand. And when he was about to bow down, he brought out his hands from the cloth, and then lifted them, and then recited takbir and bowed down, and when (he came back to the erect position) he recited: "Allah listened to him who praised Him." And when prostrates, he prostrated between the two palms. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0793. ------------------------------ Chapter : The placing of the right hand over the left hand after the first Takbir in prayer (Takbir-i-Tahrima) below the chest and above the navel and then placing them opposite the shoulders in prostration. 'Abdullah (b. Mas'ud) said: While observing prayer behind the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) we used to recite: Peace be upon Allah, peace be upon so and so. One day the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to us: Verily Allah is Himself Peace. When any one of you sits during the prayer, he should say: All services rendered by words, by acts of worship, and all good things are due to Allah. Peace be upon you, O Prophet, and Allah's mercy and blessings. Peace be upon us and upon Allah's upright servants, for when he says this it reaches every upright servant in heaven and earth (and say further): I testify that there is no god but Allah and I testify that Muhammad is His servant and Messenger. Then he may choose any supplication which pleases him and offer it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0794. ------------------------------ Chapter : The placing of the right hand over the left hand after the first Takbir in prayer (Takbir-i-Tahrima) below the chest and above the navel and then placing them opposite the shoulders in prostration. Shu'ba has narrated this on the authority of Mansur with the same chain of transmitters, but he made no mention of this: "Then he may choose any supplication which pleases him." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0795. ------------------------------ Chapter : The placing of the right hand over the left hand after the first Takbir in prayer (Takbir-i-Tahrima) below the chest and above the navel and then placing them opposite the shoulders in prostration. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Mansur with the same chain of transmitters and he made a mention of this: "Then he may choose any supplication which pleases him or which he likes." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0796. ------------------------------ Chapter : The placing of the right hand over the left hand after the first Takbir in prayer (Takbir-i-Tahrima) below the chest and above the navel and then placing them opposite the shoulders in prostration. Abdullah b. Mas'ud reported: We were sitting with the Apostle (may peace be upon him) in prayer, and the rest of the hadith is the same as narrated by Mansur He (also said): After (reciting tashahud) he may choose any prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0797. ------------------------------ Chapter : The placing of the right hand over the left hand after the first Takbir in prayer (Takbir-i-Tahrima) below the chest and above the navel and then placing them opposite the shoulders in prostration. Ibn Mas'ud is reported to have said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) taught me tashahhud taking my hand within his palms, in the same way as he taught me a Sura of the Qur'an, and he narrated it as narrated above. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0798. ------------------------------ Chapter : The placing of the right hand over the left hand after the first Takbir in prayer (Takbir-i-Tahrima) below the chest and above the navel and then placing them opposite the shoulders in prostration. Ibn 'Abbas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to teach us tashahbud just as he used to teach us a Sura of the Qur'an, and he would say: All services rendered by words, acts of worship and all good things are due to Allah. Peace be upon you, O Prophet and Allah's mercy and blessings. Peace be upon us and upon Allah's upright servants. I testify that there is no god but Allah, and I testify that Muhammad is the Messenger of Allah. In the narration of Ibn Rumb (the words are): "As he would teach us the Qur'an." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0799. ------------------------------ Chapter : The placing of the right hand over the left hand after the first Takbir in prayer (Takbir-i-Tahrima) below the chest and above the navel and then placing them opposite the shoulders in prostration. Tawus narrated it on the authority of Ibn 'Abbas that he said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to teach us tashahhud as he would teach us a Sura of the Qur'an. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0800. ------------------------------ Chapter : The placing of the right hand over the left hand after the first Takbir in prayer (Takbir-i-Tahrima) below the chest and above the navel and then placing them opposite the shoulders in prostration. Hattan b. 'Abdullah al-Raqiishi reported: I observed prayer with Abu Musu al-Ash'ari and when he was in the qa'dah, one among the people said: The prayer has been made obligatory along with piety and Zakat. He (the narrator) said: When Abu Musa had finished the prayer after salutation he turned (towards the people) and said: Who amongst you said such and such a thing? A hush fell on the people. He again said: Who amongst you has said such and such a thing? A hush fell on the people. He (Abu Musa) said: Hattan, It is perhaps you that have uttered it. He (Hattan) said No. I have not uttered it. I was afraid that you might be annoyed with me on account of this. A person amongst the people said: It was I who said it, and In this I intended nothing but good. Abu Musa said: Don't you know what you have to recite in your prayers? Verily the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) addressed us and explained to us all Its aspects and taught us how to observe prayer (properly). He (the Holy Prophet) said: When you pray make your rows straight and let anyone amongst you act as your Imam. Recite the takbir when he recites it and when be recites: Not of those with whom Thou art angry, nor of those who go astray, say: Amin. Allah would respond you. And when he (the Imam) recites the takbir, you may also recite the takbir, for the Imam bows before you and raises himself before you. Then the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The one is equivalent to the other. And when he says: Allah listens to him who praises Him, you should say: O Allah, our. Lord, to Thee be the praise, for Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, has vouchsafed (us) through the tongue of His Apostle (may peace be upon him) that Allah listens to him who praises Him. And when he (the Imam) recites the takbir and prostrates, you should also recite the takbir and prostrate, for the Imam prostrates before you and raises himself before you. The Messenger' of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The one is equivalent to the other. And when he (the Imam) sits for Qa'da (for tashahhud) the first words of every one amongst you should be: All services rendered by words, acts of worship and all good things are due to Allah. Peace be upon you, O Apostle, and Allah's mercy and blessings. Peace be upon us and upon the upright servants of Allah. I testify that there is no god but Allah, and I testify that Muhammad is His servant and His Messenger. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0801. ------------------------------ Chapter : The placing of the right hand over the left hand after the first Takbir in prayer (Takbir-i-Tahrima) below the chest and above the navel and then placing them opposite the shoulders in prostration. Qatida has narrated a hadith like this with another chain of transmitters. In the hadith transmitted by Jarir on the authority of Sulaiman, Qatida's further words are: When (the Qur'an) is recited (in prayer), you should observe silence, and (the following words are) not found in the hadith narrated by anyone except by Abu Kamil who heard it from Abu 'Awina (and the words are): Verily Allah vouchsafed through the tongue of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) this: Allah listens to him who praises Him. Abu Ishaq (a student of Imam Muslim) said: Abu Bakr the son of Abu Nadr's sister has (critically) discussed this hadith. Imam Muslim said: Whom can you find a more authentic transmitter of hadith than Sulaiman? Abu Bakr said to him (Imam Muslim): What about the hadith narrated by Abd Huraira, i.e. the hadith that when the Qur'an is recited (in prayer) observe silence? He (Abu Bakr again) said: Then, why have you not included it (in your compilation)? He (Imam Muslim) said: I have not included in this every hadith which I deem authentic; I have recorded only such ahadith on which there is an agreement (amongst the Muhaddithin apart from their being authentic). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0802. ------------------------------ Chapter : The placing of the right hand over the left hand after the first Takbir in prayer (Takbir-i-Tahrima) below the chest and above the navel and then placing them opposite the shoulders in prostration. This hadith has been transmitted by Qatida with the same chain of transmitters (and the words are): "Allah, the Exalted and the Glorious, commanded it through the tongue of His Apostle (may peace be upon-him): Allah listens to him who praises Him." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0803. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Tashahhud in prayer. Abdullah b. Zaid-he who was shown the call (for prayer in a dream) narrated it on the authority of Mas'ad al-Ansiri who said: We were sitting in the company of Sa'id b. 'Ubida when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to us. Bashir b. S'ad said: Allah has commanded us to bless you. Messenger of Allah! But how should we bless you? He (the narrator) said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) kept quiet (and we were so much perturbed over his silence) that we wished we had not asked him. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) then said: (For blessing me) say: "O Allah, bless Muhammad and the members of his household as Thou didst bless the members of Ibrahim's household. Grant favours to Muhammad and the members of his household as Thou didst grant favours to the members of the household of Ibrahim in the world. Thou art indeed Praiseworthy and Glorious"; and salutation as you know. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0804. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Tashahhud in prayer. Ibn Abi Laila reported: Ka'b b. 'Ujra met me and said: Should I not offer you a present (and added): The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to us and we said: We have learnt how to invoke peace upon you; (kindly tell us) how we should bless you. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Say: "O Allah: bless Muhammad and his family as Thou didst bless the family of Ibrahim. Verily Thou art Praiseworthy and Glorious, O Allah." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0805. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Tashahhud in prayer. A hadith like this has been narrated by Mis'ar on the authority of al-Hakam, but in the hadith transmitted by Mis'ar these words are not found: "Should I not offer you a present?" Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0806. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Tashahhud in prayer. A hadith like this has been narrated by al-Hakam except that he said: "Bless Muhammad (may peace be upon him)" and he did not say: "O Allah I Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0807. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Tashahhud in prayer. Abu Humaid as-Sa'idi reported: They (the Companions of the Holy Prophet) said: Apostle of Allah, how should we bless you? He (the Holy Prophet) observed: Say: "O Allah! bless Muhammad, his wives and his offspring as Thou didst bless Ibrahim, and grant favours to Muhammad, and his wives and his offspring as Thou didst grant favours to the family of Ibrahim; Thou art Praiseworthy and Glorious." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0808. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Tashahhud in prayer. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who blesses me once, Allah would bless him ten times. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0809. ------------------------------ Chapter : Blessing on the Prophet (may peace be upon him) after Tashahhud. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When the Imam says: "Allah listens to him who praises Him." you should say: "O Allah, our Lord for Thee is the praise." for if what anyone says synchronises with what the angels say, his past sins will be forgiven. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0810. ------------------------------ Chapter : Blessing on the Prophet (may peace be upon him) after Tashahhud. A hadith like this is narrated by Abd Huraira by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0811. ------------------------------ Chapter : Blessing on the Prophet (may peace be upon him) after Tashahhud. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: SayAmin when the Imam says Amin, for it anyone's utterance of Amin synchronises with that of the angels, he will be forgiven his past sins. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0812. ------------------------------ Chapter : Blessing on the Prophet (may peace be upon him) after Tashahhud. Abu Huraira said: I heard from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) the hadith like one transmitted by Malik, but he made no mention of the words of Shibab. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0813. ------------------------------ Chapter : Blessing on the Prophet (may peace be upon him) after Tashahhud. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When anyone amongst you utters Amin in prayer and the angels in the sky also utter Amin, and this (utterance of the one) synchronises with (that of) the other, all his previous sins are pardoned. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0814. ------------------------------ Chapter : Blessing on the Prophet (may peace be upon him) after Tashahhud. Abu Harare reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When anyone amongst you utters Amin and the angels In the heaven also utter Amin and (the Amin) of the one synchronises with (that of) the other, all his previous sins are pardoned. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0815. ------------------------------ Chapter : Blessing on the Prophet (may peace be upon him) after Tashahhud. A hadith like this is transmitted by Ma'mar from Hammam b. Munabbih on the authority of Abu Huraira who reported it from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0816. ------------------------------ Chapter : Blessing on the Prophet (may peace be upon him) after Tashahhud. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When the reciter (Imam) utters: "Not of those on whom (is Thine) wrath and not the erring ones," and (the person) behind him utters Amin and his utterance synchronises with that of the dwellers of heavens, all his previous sins would be pardoned. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0817. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Tasmi' (Allah listens to him who praises Him) Tahmid (O our Lord, for Thee is the praise), and Timin (Amin). Anas b. Malik reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) fell down from a horse and his right side was grazed. We went to him to inquire after his health when the time of prayer came. He led us in prayer in a sitting posture and we said prayer behind him sitting, and when he finished the prayer he said: The Imam is appointed only to be followed; so when he recites takbir, you should also recite that; when he prostrates, you should also prostrate; when he rises up, you should also rise up, and when he said: "God listens to him who praises Him," you should say: "Our Lord, to Thee be the praise," and when he prays sitting, all of you should pray sitting. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0818. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Tasmi' (Allah listens to him who praises Him) Tahmid (O our Lord, for Thee is the praise), and Timin (Amin). Anas b. Malik reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) fell down from a horse and he was grazed and he led the prayer for us sitting, and the rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0819. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Tasmi' (Allah listens to him who praises Him) Tahmid (O our Lord, for Thee is the praise), and Timin (Amin). Anas b. Malik reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) fell down from a horse and his right side was grazed, and the rest of the hadith is the same with the addition of these words: "When he (the Imam) says prayer standing, you should also do so." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0820. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Tasmi' (Allah listens to him who praises Him) Tahmid (O our Lord, for Thee is the praise), and Timin (Amin). Anas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) rode a horse and fell down from it and his right side was grazed, and the rest of the hadith is the same, and (these words) are found in it: "When he (the Imam) says prayer in an erect posture, you should also say it in an erect posture." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0821. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Tasmi' (Allah listens to him who praises Him) Tahmid (O our Lord, for Thee is the praise), and Timin (Amin). Anas b. Malik reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) fell down from his horse and his right side was grazed, and the rest of the hadith is the same. In this hadith there are no additions (of words) as transmitted by Yunus and Malik. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0822. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Tasmi' (Allah listens to him who praises Him) Tahmid (O our Lord, for Thee is the praise), and Timin (Amin). 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) fell ill and some of his Companions came to inquire after his health. The Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) said prayer sitting, while (his Companions) said it (behind him) standing. He (the Holy Prophet) directed them by his gesture to sit down, and they sat down (in prayer). After finishing the (prayer) lie (the Holy Prophet) said: The Imam is appointed so that be should be followed, so bow down when lie bows down, and rise rip when he rises up and say (prayer) sitting when he (the Imam) says (it) sitting. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0823. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Tasmi' (Allah listens to him who praises Him) Tahmid (O our Lord, for Thee is the praise), and Timin (Amin). This hadith is narrated with the same chain of transmitters by Hisham b. 'Urwa. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0824. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Tasmi' (Allah listens to him who praises Him) Tahmid (O our Lord, for Thee is the praise), and Timin (Amin). Jabir reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was ill and we said prayer behind him and he was sitting. And Abu Bakr was making audible to the people his takbir. As he paid his attention towards us he saw us standing and (directed us to sit down) with a gesture. So we sat down and said our prayer with his prayer in a sitting posture. After uttering salutation he said: You were at this time about to do an act like that of the Persians and the Romans. They stand before their kings while they sit, so don't do that; follow your Imams. If they say prayer standing, you should also do so, and if they say prayer sitting, you should also say prayer sitting. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0825. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Tasmi' (Allah listens to him who praises Him) Tahmid (O our Lord, for Thee is the praise), and Timin (Amin). Jabir said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) led the prayer and Abu Bakr was behind him. When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) recited the takbir, Abu Bakr also recited (it) in order to make it audible to us. And the rest of the hadith is like one transmitted by Laith. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0826. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Tasmi' (Allah listens to him who praises Him) Tahmid (O our Lord, for Thee is the praise), and Timin (Amin). Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The Imam is appointed, so that he should be followed, so don't be at variance with him. Recite takbir when he recites it; bow down when he bows down and when he says: "Allah listens to him who praises Him," say: "O Allah, our Lord, to Thee be the Praise." And when he (the Imam) prostrates, you should also prostrate, and when he says prayer sitting, you should all observe prayer sitting. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0827. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Tasmi' (Allah listens to him who praises Him) Tahmid (O our Lord, for Thee is the praise), and Timin (Amin). A hadith like this has been transmitted by Hammam b. Munabbih from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) on the authority of Abu Huraira. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0828. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Tasmi' (Allah listens to him who praises Him) Tahmid (O our Lord, for Thee is the praise), and Timin (Amin). Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) while teaching us (the principles of faith), said: Do not try to go ahead of the Imam, recite takbir when he recites it and when he says: "Nor of those who err," you should say Amin, bow down when lie bows down, and when he says: "Allah listens to him who praises Him," say: "O Allah, our Lord, to Thee be the praise". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0829. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Tasmi' (Allah listens to him who praises Him) Tahmid (O our Lord, for Thee is the praise), and Timin (Amin). Abu Huraira reported from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) (a hadith) like it, except the words: "Nor of those who err, say Amin" and added: "And don't rise up ahead of him." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0830. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Tasmi' (Allah listens to him who praises Him) Tahmid (O our Lord, for Thee is the praise), and Timin (Amin). Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Verily the Imam is a shield, say prayer sitting when he says prayer sitting. And when he says: "Allah listens to him who praises Him," say: "O Allah, our Lord, to Thee be the praise." and when the utterance of the people of the earth synchronises with that of the beings of heaven (angels), all the previous sins would be pardoned. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0831. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reciting of Tasmi' (Allah listens to him who praises Him) Tahmid (O our Lord, for Thee is the praise), and Timin (Amin). Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) saying: The Imam is appointed to be followed. So recite takbir when he recites it, and bow down when he bows down and when he utters: "Allah listens to him who praises Him," say "O Allah, our Lord for Thee be the praise." And when he prays, standing, you should pray standing. And when he prays sitting, all of you should pray sitting. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0832. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Muqtadi (follower) should strictly follow the Imam in prayer. Ubaidullah b. Abdullah reported: I visited 'Aisha and asked her to tell about the illness of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). She agreed and said: The Apostle (may peace be upon him) was seriously ill and he asked whether the people had prayed. We said: No, they are waiting for you, Messenger of Allah. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Put some water in the tub for me. We did accordingly and he (the Holy Prophet) took a bath; and when he was about to move with difficulty, he fainted. When he came round, he again said: Have the people said prayer? We said: No, they are waiting for you, Messenger of Allah. He (the Holy Prophet) again said: Put some water for me in the tub. We did accordingly and he took a bag, but when he was about to move with difficulty he fainted. When he came round, he asked whether the people had prayed. We said: No, they are waiting for you, Messenger of Allah. He said: Put some water for me in the tub. We did accordingly and he took a bath and he was about to move with difficulty when he fainted. When he came round he said: Have the people said prayer? We said: No, they are waiting for you, Messenger of Allah. She ('Aisha) said: The people were staying in the mosque and waiting for the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) to lead the last (night) prayer. She ('Aisha) said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sent (instructions) to Abu Bakr to lead the people in prayer. When the messenger came, he told him (Abd Bakr): The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) has ordered you to lead the people in prayer. Abu Bakr who was a man of very tenderly feelings asked Umar to lead the prayer. 'Umar said: You are more entitled to that. Abu Bakr led the prayers during those days. Afterwards the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) felt some relief and he went out supported by two men, one of them was al-'Abbas, to the noon prayer. Abu Bakr was leading the people in prayer. When Abu Bakr saw him, he began to withdraw, but the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) told him not to withdraw. He told his two (companions) to seat him down beside him (Abu Bakr). They seated him by the side of Abu Bakr. Abu Bakr said the prayer standing while following the prayer of the Apostle (way peace be upon him) and the people Bald prayer (standing) while following the prayer of Abu Bakr. The Apostle (may peace be upon him) was seated. Ubaidullah said: I visited 'Abdullah b. 'Abbas, and said: Should I submit to you what 'Aisha had told about the illness of the Apostle (may peace be upon him)?He said: Go ahead. I submitted to him what had been transmitted by her ('Aisha). He objected to none of it, only asking whether she had named to him the man who accompanied al-'Abbas. I said: No. He said: It was 'Ali. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0833. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Muqtadi (follower) should strictly follow the Imam in prayer. 'Aisha reported: It was in the house of Maimuna that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) first fell ill. He asked permission from his wives to stay in her ('Aisha's) house during his illness. They granted him permission. She ('Aisha) narrated: He (the Holy Prophet) went out (for prayer) with his hand over al-Fadl b. 'Abbas and on the other hand there was another person and (due to weakness) his feet dragged on the earth. 'Ubaidullah said: I narrated this hadith to the son of 'Abbas ('Abdullah b. 'Abbas) and he said: Do you know who the man was whose name 'Aisha did not mention? It was 'Ali. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0834. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Muqtadi (follower) should strictly follow the Imam in prayer. 'Aisha, the wife of the Apostle (may peace be upon him), said: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) fell ill and his illness became serious, he asked permission from his wives to stay in my house during his illness. They gave him permission to do so. He stepped out (of 'Aisha's apartment for prayer) supported by two persons. (He was so much weak) that his feet dragged on the ground and he was being supported by 'Abbas b. 'Abd al-Muttalib and another person. 'Ubaidullah said: I informed 'Abdullah (b. 'Abbas) about that which 'Aisha had said. 'Abdullah b. 'Abbas said: Do you know the man whose name 'Aisha did not mention? He said: No. Ibn 'Abbas said: It was 'Ali. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0835. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Muqtadi (follower) should strictly follow the Imam in prayer. 'Aisha, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), said: I tried to dissuade the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) from it (i.e. from appointing Abu Bakr as the Imam.) and my insistence upon it was not due to the fact that I entertained any apprehension in my mind that the people would not love the man who would occupy his (Prophet's) place (i.e. who would be appointed as his caliph) and I feared that the people would be superstitious about one who would occupy his place. I, therefore, desired that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) should leave Abu Bakr aside in this matter. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0836. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Muqtadi (follower) should strictly follow the Imam in prayer. 'Aisha reported: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to my house, he said: Ask Abu Bakr to lead people in prayer. 'Aisha narrated: I said, Messenger of Allah, Abu Bakr is a man of tenderly feelings; as he recites the Qur'an, he cannot help shedding tears: so better command anyone else to lead the prayer. By Allah, there is nothing disturbing in it for me but the idea that the people may not take evil omen with regard to one who is the first to occupy the place of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). I tried to dissuade him (the Holy Prophet) twice or thrice (from appointing my father as an Imam in prayer), but he ordered Abu Bakr to lead the people in prayer and said: You women are like those (who had) surrounded Yusuf. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0837. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Muqtadi (follower) should strictly follow the Imam in prayer. 'Aisha reported: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was confined to bed, Bilal came to him to summon him to prayer. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Ask Abu Bakr to lead the people in prayer. She ('Aisha) reported: I said: Messenger of Allah, Abu! Bakr is a tender-hearted man, go when he would stand at your place (he would be so overwhelmed by feelings) that he would not be able to make the people hear anything (his recitation would not be audible to the followers in prayer). You should better order Umar (to lead the prayer). He (the Holy Prophet) said: Ask Abu Bakr to lead people in prayer. She ('Aisha) said: I asked Hafsa to (convey) my impression to him (the Holy Prophet) that Abu Bakr was a tender-hearted man, so when he would stand at his place, he would not be able to make the people bear anything. He better order Umar. Hafsa conveyed this (message of Hadrat 'Aisha) to him (the Holy Prophet). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: (You are behaving) as if you are the females who had gathered around Yusuf. Order Abd Bakr to lead the people in prayer. She ('Aisha) reported: So Abu Bakr was ordered to lead the people in prayer. As the prayer began, the Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) felt some relief; he got up and moved supported by two persons and his feet dragged on earth (due to excessive weakness). 'Aisha reported: As he (the Holy Prophet) entered the mosque. Abu Bakr perceived his (arrival). He was about to with. draw, but the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) by the gesture (of This hand) told him to keep standing at his place. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came and seated himself on the left side of Abu Bakr. She ('Aisha) reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was leading people in prayer sitting. Abu Bakr was following the prayer of the Apostle (may peace be upon him) in a standing posture and the people were following the prayer of Abu Bakr. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0838. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Muqtadi (follower) should strictly follow the Imam in prayer. A'mash reported: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) suffered from illness of which he died, and in the hadith transmitted by Ibn Mus-hir, the words are: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was brought till he was seated by his (Abu Bakr's) side and the Apostle (may peace be upon him) led the people in prayer and Abu Bakr was making takbir audible to them, and in the hadith transmitted by 'Isa the (words are): "The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sat and led the people in prayer and Abu Bakr was by his side and he was making (takbir) audible to the people." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0839. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Muqtadi (follower) should strictly follow the Imam in prayer. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) ordered Abu Bakr that he should lead people in prayer during his illness, and he led them In prayer. 'Urwa said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) felt relief and went (to the mosque) and Abd Bakr was leading the people in prayer. When Abel Bakr saw him he began to withdraw, but the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) signed him to remain where he was. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sat opposite to Abu Bakr by his side. Abu Bakr said prayer following the prayer of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and the people said prayer following the prayer of Abu Bakr. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0840. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Muqtadi (follower) should strictly follow the Imam in prayer. Anas b. Malik reported, Abu Bakr led them in prayer due to the illness of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) of which be died. It was a Monday and they stood in rows for prayer. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) drew aside the curtain of ('Aisha's) apartment and looked at us while he was standing, and his (Prophet's) face was (as bright) as the paper of the Holy Muslim Book. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) felt happy and smiled. And we were confounded with joy while in prayer due to the arrival (among our midst) of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), Abu Bakr stepped back upon his heels to say prayer in a row perceiving that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had come out for prayer. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) with the help of his hand signed to them to complete their prayer. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) went back (to his apartment) and drew the curtain. He (the narrator) said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) breathed his last on that very day. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0841. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Muqtadi (follower) should strictly follow the Imam in prayer. Anas reported: The last glance that I have had of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) (before his death) was that when he on Monday drew the curtain aside. The hadith transmitted by Salih is perfect and complete. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0842. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Muqtadi (follower) should strictly follow the Imam in prayer. This hadith is narrated on the authority of Anas b. Malik by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0843. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Muqtadi (follower) should strictly follow the Imam in prayer. Anas reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) did not come to us for three days. When the prayer was about to start. Abu Bakr stepped forward (to lead the prayer), and the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) lifted the curtain. When the face of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) became visible to us, we (found) that no sight was more endearing to us than the face of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) as it appeared to us. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) with the gesture of his hand directed Abu Bakr to step forward (and lead the prayer). The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) then drew the curtain, and we could not see him till he died. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0844. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Muqtadi (follower) should strictly follow the Imam in prayer. Abu Musa reported: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) became ill and illness became serious he ordered Abu Bakr to lead the people in prayer. Upon this 'Aisha said: Messenger of Allah, Abd Bakr is a man of tenderly feelings: when he would stand in your place (he would be so much overwhelmed -by grief that) he would not be able to lead the people in prayer. He (the Holy Prophet) said: You order Abu Bakr to lead the people in prayer, and added: You are like the female companions of Yusuf. So Abu Bakr led the prayer (during this period of illness) in the life of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0845. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Imam is authorised to appoint one as his deputy when there is a valid reason for it (for example, illness or journey or any other), and if an Imam leads the prayer sitting as he cannot do so standing, his followers should say prayer standing provided they are able to do it and there is an abrogation of saying prayer sitting behind a sitting Imam. Sahl b. Sa'd al-Sa'idi reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) went to the tribe of Bani Amr b. Auf in order to bring reconciliation amongst (its members), and It was a time of prayer. The Mu'adhdhin came to Abu Bakr and said: Would you lead the prayer in case I recite takbir (tahrima, with which the prayer begins)?He (Abu Bakr) said: Yes. He (the narrator) said: He (Abu Bakr) started (leading) the prayer. The people were engaged in observing prayer when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) happened to come there and made his way (through the people) till he stood in a row. The people began to clap (their hands), but Abu Bakr paid no heed (to it) in prayer. When the people clapped more vigorously, he (Abu Bakr) then paid heed and saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) there. (He was about to withdraw when) the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) signed to him to keep standing at his place. Abu Bakr lifted his hands and praised Allah for what the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had commanded him and then Abu Bakr withdrew himself till he stood in the midst of the row and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) stepped forward and led the prayer. When (the prayer) was over, he (the Holy Prophet) said: O Abu Bakr, what prevented you from standing (at that place) as I ordered you to do? Abu Bakr said: It does not become the son of Abu Quhafa to lead prayer before the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said (to the people) around him: What is it that I saw you clapping so vigorously? (Behold) when anything happens in prayer, say: Subha Allah, for when you would utter it, it would attract the attention, while clapping of hands is meant for women. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0846. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Imam is authorised to appoint one as his deputy when there is a valid reason for it (for example, illness or journey or any other), and if an Imam leads the prayer sitting as he cannot do so standing, his followers should say prayer standing provided they are able to do it and there is an abrogation of saying prayer sitting behind a sitting Imam. This hadith is transmitted by Sahl b. Sa'd in the same way as narrated by Malik, with the exception of these words: "Abu Bakr lifted his hands and praised Allah and retraced his (steps) till he stood in a row." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0847. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Imam is authorised to appoint one as his deputy when there is a valid reason for it (for example, illness or journey or any other), and if an Imam leads the prayer sitting as he cannot do so standing, his followers should say prayer standing provided they are able to do it and there is an abrogation of saying prayer sitting behind a sitting Imam. Sahl b. Sa'd al-Sa'idi reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) went to Bani Amr b. 'Auf in order to bring about reconciliation amongst them. The rest of the hadith is the same but with (the addition of these words): "The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came and made his way through the rows till he came to the first row and Abu Bakr retraced his steps." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0848. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Imam is authorised to appoint one as his deputy when there is a valid reason for it (for example, illness or journey or any other), and if an Imam leads the prayer sitting as he cannot do so standing, his followers should say prayer standing provided they are able to do it and there is an abrogation of saying prayer sitting behind a sitting Imam. Mughira b. Shu'ba reported that he participated In the expedition of Tabuk along with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) went out to answer the call of nature before the morning prayer and I carried along with him a jar (full of water). When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came back to me (after relieving himself). I began to pour water upon his hands out of the jar and he washed his hands three times, then washed his face three times. He then tried to tuck up the sleeves of his cloak upon his forearms but since the sleeves were tight he inserted his hands in the cloak and then brought out his forearms up to the elbow below the cloak, and then wiped over his shoes and then moved on. Mughira said: I also moved along with him till he came to the people and (he found) that they had been saying their prayer under the Imamah of 'Abd al-Rahman b. 'Auf. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) could get one rak-ah out of two and said (this) last rak'ah along with the people. When Abd al-Rahman b. 'Auf pronounced the salutation, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) got up to complete the prayer. This made the Muslims terrified and most of them began to recite the glory of the Lord. When the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) finished his prayer, he turned towards them and then said: You did well, or said with a sense of joy: You did the right thing that you said prayer at the appointed hour. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0849. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Imam is authorised to appoint one as his deputy when there is a valid reason for it (for example, illness or journey or any other), and if an Imam leads the prayer sitting as he cannot do so standing, his followers should say prayer standing provided they are able to do it and there is an abrogation of saying prayer sitting behind a sitting Imam. This hadith is narrated by Hamza b. Mughira by another chain of transmitters (but with the addition of these words): I made up my mind to hold Abd al-Rahman b. 'Auf back, but the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Leave him." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0850. ------------------------------ Chapter : If the Imam arrives late and there is no danger of an unpleasant happening, another Imam can be appointed to lead the prayer. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Glorification of Allah is for men and clapping of hands is meant for women (if something happens in prayer). Harmala added in his narration that Ibn Shihab told him: I saw some of the scholars glorifying Allah and making a gesture. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0851. ------------------------------ Chapter : If the Imam arrives late and there is no danger of an unpleasant happening, another Imam can be appointed to lead the prayer. This hadith is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0852. ------------------------------ Chapter : If the Imam arrives late and there is no danger of an unpleasant happening, another Imam can be appointed to lead the prayer. This hadith is transmitted by Muhammad b. Rafi', Abu'I-Razzaq, Ma'mar, Hammam on the authority of Abu Huraira with the addition of (the word) "prayer". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0853. ------------------------------ Chapter : If something happens in prayers, men should glorify Allah and women should clap hands. Abu Huraira reported: one day the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) led the prayer. Then turning (towards his Companions) he said: O you, the man, why don't you say your prayer well? Does the observer of prayer not see how he is performing the prayer for he performs it for himself? By Allah, I see behind me as I see In front of me. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0854. ------------------------------ Chapter : If something happens in prayers, men should glorify Allah and women should clap hands. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Do you find me seeing towards the Qibla only? By Allah, your bowing and your prostrating are not hidden from my view. Verily I see them behind my back. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0855. ------------------------------ Chapter : If something happens in prayers, men should glorify Allah and women should clap hands. Anas b. Malik reported. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Perform bowing and prostration well. By Allah, I see you even if you are behind me, or he said: (I see you) behind my back when you bow or prostrate. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0856. ------------------------------ Chapter : If something happens in prayers, men should glorify Allah and women should clap hands. Anas reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Complete the bowing and prostration well. By Allah, I see you behind my back as to how you bow and prostrate or when you bow and prostrate. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0857. ------------------------------ Chapter : Command to observe prayer well, perfecting it, and devotion in it. Anas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) one day led us in the prayer and when he completed the Prayer he turned his face towards us and said: O People, I am your Imam, so do not precede me in bowing and prostration and in standing and turning (faces, i.e. In pronouncing salutation), for I see you in front of me and behind me, and then said: By Him in Whose hand Is the life of Muhammad, if you could see what I see, you would have laughed little and wept much more. They said: What did you see, Messenger of Allah? He replied: (I saw) Paradise and Hell. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0858. ------------------------------ Chapter : Command to observe prayer well, perfecting it, and devotion in it. This hadith is narrated by Anas with another chain of transmitters, and in the hadith transmitted by Jarir there is no mention of "turning (faces)". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0859. ------------------------------ Chapter : Command to observe prayer well, perfecting it, and devotion in it. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Does the man who lifts his head ahead of the Imam (from prostration) not fear that Allah may change his head into the head of an ass? Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0860. ------------------------------ Chapter : Command to observe prayer well, perfecting it, and devotion in it. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Does the man who lifts his head before the Imam not fear that Allah may change his face into that of an ass? Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0861. ------------------------------ Chapter : Command to observe prayer well, perfecting it, and devotion in it. This hadith has been narrated by Abu Huraira by another chain of transmitters except for the words narrated by Rabi' b. Muslim: "Allah may make his face like the face of an ass." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0862. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to bow and prostrate ahead of the Imam. Jabir b. Samura reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The people who lift their eyes towards the sky in Prayer should avoid it or they would lose their eyesight. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0863. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to bow and prostrate ahead of the Imam. Abu Huraira reported: People should avoid lifting their eyes towards the sky while supplicating in prayer, otherwise their eyes would be snatched away. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0864. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to lift one's eye towards the sky in prayer. Jabir b. Samura reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to us and said: How is it that I see you lifting your hands like the tails of headstrong horses? Be calm in prayer. He (the narrator) said: He then again came to us and saw us (sitting) in circles; he said: How is it that I see you in separate groups? He (the narrator) said: He again came to us and said: Why don't you draw yourselves up in rows as angels do in the presence of their Lord? We said: Messenger of Allah, bow do the angels draw themselves up in rows in the presence of their Lord? He (the Holy Prophet) said: They make the first rows complete and keep close together in the row. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0865. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to lift one's eye towards the sky in prayer. This hadith has been narrated by A'mash with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0866. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to lift one's eye towards the sky in prayer. Jabir b. Samura reported: When we said prayer with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), we pronounced: Peace be upon you and Mercy of Allah, peace be upon you and Mercy of Allah, and made gesture with the hand on both the sides. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him said: What do you point out with your hands as if they are the tails of headstrong horses? This is enough for you that one should place one's hand on one's thigh and then pronounce salutation upon one's brother on the right side and then on the left. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0867. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to lift one's eye towards the sky in prayer. Jabir b. Samura reported: We said our prayer with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and, while pronouncing salutations, we made gestures with our hands (indicating) "Peace be upon you, peace be upon you." The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) looked towards us and said: Why is it that you make gestures with your hands like the tails of headstrong horses? When any one of you pronounces salutation (in prayer) he should only turn his face towards his companion and should not make a gesture with his hand. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0868. ------------------------------ Chapter : The command to observe prayer with tranquillity and calmness and forbiddance of making gesture with hands and lifting them while pronouncing salutation, and the completing of first rows and joining together well in them. Abu Mas'ud reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) used to touch our shoulders in prayer and say: Keep straight, don't be irregular, for there would be dissension in your hearts. Let those of you who are sedate and prudent be near me, then those who are next to them, then those who are next to them. Abu Mas'ud said: Now-a-days there is much dissension amongst you. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0869. ------------------------------ Chapter : The command to observe prayer with tranquillity and calmness and forbiddance of making gesture with hands and lifting them while pronouncing salutation, and the completing of first rows and joining together well in them. This hadith is narrated by Ibn Uyaina with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0870. ------------------------------ Chapter : The command to observe prayer with tranquillity and calmness and forbiddance of making gesture with hands and lifting them while pronouncing salutation, and the completing of first rows and joining together well in them. Abdullah b. Mas'ud reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Let those who are sedate and prudent be near me, then those who are next to them (saying it three times), and beware of the tumult of the markets. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0871. ------------------------------ Chapter : The command to observe prayer with tranquillity and calmness and forbiddance of making gesture with hands and lifting them while pronouncing salutation, and the completing of first rows and joining together well in them. Anas b. Malik reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Straighten your rows for the straightening of a row is a part of the perfection of prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0872. ------------------------------ Chapter : The command to observe prayer with tranquillity and calmness and forbiddance of making gesture with hands and lifting them while pronouncing salutation, and the completing of first rows and joining together well in them. Anas b. Malik reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Complete the rows, for I can see you behind my back. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0873. ------------------------------ Chapter : The command to observe prayer with tranquillity and calmness and forbiddance of making gesture with hands and lifting them while pronouncing salutation, and the completing of first rows and joining together well in them. Hammam b. Munabbih reported: This is what was transmitted to us by Abu Huraira from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and, while making a mention of a few ahadith, said: (The Messenger of Allah directed us thus): Establish rows in prayer, for the making of a row (straight) is one of the merits of prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0874. ------------------------------ Chapter : The command to observe prayer with tranquillity and calmness and forbiddance of making gesture with hands and lifting them while pronouncing salutation, and the completing of first rows and joining together well in them. Nu'man b. Bashir reported: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) say: Straighten your rows, or Allah would create dissension amongst you. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0875. ------------------------------ Chapter : The command to observe prayer with tranquillity and calmness and forbiddance of making gesture with hands and lifting them while pronouncing salutation, and the completing of first rows and joining together well in them. Nu'man b. Bashir reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace-be upon him) used to straighten our rows as it lie were straightening an arrow with their help until be saw that we had learnt it from him. One day he came out, stood up (for prayer) and was about to say: Allah is the Greatest, when he saw a man, whose chest was bulging out from the row, so he said: Servants of Allah, you hint straighten your rows or Allah would create dissension amongst you. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0876. ------------------------------ Chapter : The command to observe prayer with tranquillity and calmness and forbiddance of making gesture with hands and lifting them while pronouncing salutation, and the completing of first rows and joining together well in them. Abu 'Awana reported this hadith with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0877. ------------------------------ Chapter : The command to observe prayer with tranquillity and calmness and forbiddance of making gesture with hands and lifting them while pronouncing salutation, and the completing of first rows and joining together well in them. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: If the people were to know what excellence is there in the Adhan and in the first row, and they could not (get these opportunities) except by drawing lots, they would have definitely done that. And if they were to know what excellence lies in joining the prayer in the first takbir (prayer), they would have vied with one another. And if they were to know what excellence lies in the night prayer and morning prayer, they would have definitely come even if crawling (on their knees). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0878. ------------------------------ Chapter : The command to observe prayer with tranquillity and calmness and forbiddance of making gesture with hands and lifting them while pronouncing salutation, and the completing of first rows and joining together well in them. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saw (a tendency) among his Companions to go to the back, so he said to them: Come forward and follow my lead, and let those who come after you follow your lead. People will continue to keep back till Allah will put them at the back. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0879. ------------------------------ Chapter : The command to observe prayer with tranquillity and calmness and forbiddance of making gesture with hands and lifting them while pronouncing salutation, and the completing of first rows and joining together well in them. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saw people at the end of the mosque, and then the (above-mentioned hadith) was narrated. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0880. ------------------------------ Chapter : The command to observe prayer with tranquillity and calmness and forbiddance of making gesture with hands and lifting them while pronouncing salutation, and the completing of first rows and joining together well in them. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: If you were to know, or if they were to know, what (excellence) lies in the first rows, there would have been drawing of lots (for filling them); and Ibn Harb said: For (occupying) the first row there would have been drawing of lots. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0881. ------------------------------ Chapter : The command to observe prayer with tranquillity and calmness and forbiddance of making gesture with hands and lifting them while pronouncing salutation, and the completing of first rows and joining together well in them. Abu Huraira said: The best rows for men are the first rows, and the worst ones the last ones, and the best rows for women are the last ones and the worst ones for them are the first ones. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0882. ------------------------------ Chapter : The command to observe prayer with tranquillity and calmness and forbiddance of making gesture with hands and lifting them while pronouncing salutation, and the completing of first rows and joining together well in them. This hadith is narrated by Suhail with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0883. ------------------------------ Chapter : Straightening of rows and the excellence of the first row and then of the subsequent rows and competing and vying with one another for the first row and priority of the men of virtues and their nearness to the Imam. Sahl b. Sa'd reported: I saw men having tied (the ends) of their lower garments around their necks, like children, due to shortage of cloth and offering their prayers behind the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him). One of the proclaimers said: O womenfolk, do not lift your heads till men raise (them). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0884. ------------------------------ Chapter : The praying women have been commanded not to precede men in lifting their heads from prostration. Salim narrated it from his father ('Abdullah b. Umar) that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When women ask permission for going to the mosque, do not prevent them. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0885. ------------------------------ Chapter : The praying women have been commanded not to precede men in lifting their heads from prostration. Abdullah b. Umar reported: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) say: Don't prevent your women from going to the mosque when they seek your permission. Bilal b. 'Abdullah said: By Allah, we shall certainly prevent them. On this 'Abdullah b. Umar turned towards him and reprimanded him to harshly as I had never heard him do before. He ('Abdullah b. Umar) said: I am narrating to you that which comes from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and you (have the audacity) to say: By Allah, we shall certainly prevent them. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0886. ------------------------------ Chapter : The praying women have been commanded not to precede men in lifting their heads from prostration. Ibn 'Umar reported: 'The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Do not prevent the maid-servants of Allah from going to the mosque. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0887. ------------------------------ Chapter : The praying women have been commanded not to precede men in lifting their heads from prostration. lbn Umar reported: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) say: When your women seek your permission for going to the mosque, you grant them (permission). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0888. ------------------------------ Chapter : The praying women have been commanded not to precede men in lifting their heads from prostration. Ibn 'Umar reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Do not prevent women from going to the mosque at night. A boy said to 'Abdullah b. Umar: We would never let them go out, that they may not be caught in evil. He (the narrator) said: Ibn Umar reprimanded him and said: I am saying that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said this, but you say: We would not allow ! Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0889. ------------------------------ Chapter : The praying women have been commanded not to precede men in lifting their heads from prostration. A hadith like this has been narrated by A'mash with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0890. ------------------------------ Chapter : The praying women have been commanded not to precede men in lifting their heads from prostration. Ibn 'Umar reported: Grant permission to women for going to the mosque in the night. His son who was called Waqid said: Then they would make mischief. He (the narrator) said: He thumped his (son's) chest and said: I am narrating to you the hadith of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and you say: No ! Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0891. ------------------------------ Chapter : The praying women have been commanded not to precede men in lifting their heads from prostration. Ibn Umar reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Do not deprive women of their share of the mosques, when they seek permission from you. Bilal said: By Allah, we would certainly prevent them. 'Abdullah said: I say that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said it and you say: We would certainly prevent them ! Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0892. ------------------------------ Chapter : The praying women have been commanded not to precede men in lifting their heads from prostration. Zainab Thaqafiya reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When any one of you (women) participates in the 'Isha prayer, she should not perfume herself that night. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0893. ------------------------------ Chapter : The praying women have been commanded not to precede men in lifting their heads from prostration. Zainab, the wife of Abdullah (b. 'Umar), reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to us: When any one of you comes to the mosque, she should not apply perfume. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0894. ------------------------------ Chapter : The praying women have been commanded not to precede men in lifting their heads from prostration. Abu Huraira said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Whoever (woman) fumigates herself with perfume should not join us in the 'Isha prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0895. ------------------------------ Chapter : The praying women have been commanded not to precede men in lifting their heads from prostration. 'Amra, daughter of Abd al-Rahmin, reported: I heard 'Aisha, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), say: If the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had seen what new things the women have introduced (in their way of life) he would have definitely prevented them from going to the mosque, as the women of Bani Isra'il were prevented. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0896. ------------------------------ Chapter : The praying women have been commanded not to precede men in lifting their heads from prostration. This hadith has been narrated by Yahya b. Sa'id with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0897. ------------------------------ Chapter : Women coming out (from their houses) for going to the mosque when there is no apprehension of wickedness, but they should not come out scented. Ibn 'Abbas reported: The word of (Allah) Great and Glorious: 'And utter not thy prayer loudly, nor be low in it" (xvii. 110) was revealed as the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was hiding himself in Mecca. When he led his Companions in prayer he raised his voice (while reciting the) Qur'an. And when the polytheists heard that, they reviled the Qur'an and Him Who revealed it and him who brought it. Upon this Allah, the Exalted, said to His Apostle (may peace be upon him): Utter not thy prayer so loudly that the polytheists may hear thy recitation and (recite it) not so low that it may be inaudible to your Companions. Make them hear the Qur'an, but do not recite it loudly and seek a (middle) way between these. Recite between loud and low tone. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0898. ------------------------------ Chapter : Women coming out (from their houses) for going to the mosque when there is no apprehension of wickedness, but they should not come out scented. 'Aisha reported that so far as these words of (Allah) Glorious and High are concerned: "And utter not thy prayer loudly, not be low in it" (xvii. 110) relate to supplication (du'a'). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0899. ------------------------------ Chapter : Women coming out (from their houses) for going to the mosque when there is no apprehension of wickedness, but they should not come out scented. A hadith like this has been narrated by Hisham with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0900. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation between loud and low recitation in jahri prayer, when there is a fear of turmoil in reciting loudly. Ibn 'Abbas reported with regard to the words of Allah, Great and Glorious: "Move not thy tongue therewith" (lxxv. 16) that when Gabriel brought revelation to him (the Holy Prophet) he moved his tongue and lips (with a view to committing it to memory instantly). This was something hard for him and it was visible (from his face). Then Allah, the Exalted, revealed this a "Move not thy tongue therewith to make haste (in memorising it). Surely on us rests the collecting of it and the reciting of it" (ixxv.16), i.e. Verily it rests with Us that We would preserve it in your heart and (enable you) to recite it You would recite it when We would recite it and so follow its recitation, and He (Allah) said: "We revealed it, so listen to it attentively. Verily its exposition rests with us i.e. We would make it deliver by your tongue." So when Gabriel came to him (to the Holy Prophet), he kept silence, and when he went away he recited as Allah had promised him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0901. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation between loud and low recitation in jahri prayer, when there is a fear of turmoil in reciting loudly. Ibn Abbas reported with regard to the words: "Do not move thy tongue there with to make haste," that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) felt it hard and he moved his lips. Ibn 'Abbas said to me (Sa'id b. Jubair): I move them just as the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) moved them. Then said Sa'id: I move them just as Ibn 'Abbas moved them, and he moved his lips. Allah, the Exalted, revealed this: "Do not move your tongue therewith to make haste. It is with US that its collection rests and its recital" (Al-Qur'an, ixxv. 16). He said: Its preservation in your heart and then your recital. So when We recite it, follow its recital. He said: Listen to it, and be silent and then it rests with Us that you recite it. So when Gabriel came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), he listened to him attentively, and when Gabriel went away, the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) recited as he (Gabriel) had recited it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0902. ------------------------------ Chapter : Listening to the recitation of the Qur'an. Ibn 'Abbas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) neither recited the Qur'an to the Jinn nor did he see them. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) went out with some of his Companions with the intention of going to the bazaar of 'Ukaz And there had been (at that time) obstructions between satans and the news from the Heaven, and there were flung flames upon them. So satan went back to their people and they said: What has happened to you? They said: There have been created obstructions between us and the news from the Heaven. And there have been flung upon us flames. They said: It cannot happen but for some (important) event. So traverse the eastern parts of the earth and the western parts and find out why is it that there have been created obstructions between us and the news from the Heaven. So they went forth and traversed the easts of the earth and its wests. Some of them proceeded towards Tihama and that is a nakhl towards the bazaar of 'Ukaz and he (the Holy Prophet) was leading his Companions in the morning prayer. So when they heard the Qur'an, they listened to it attentively and said: It is this which has caused obstruction between us and news from the Heaven. They went back to their people and said: O our people, we have heard a strange Qur'an which directs us to the right path; so we affirm our faith in it and we would never associate anyone with our Lord. And Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, revealed to His Apostle Muhammad (may peace be upon him): "It has been revealed to me that a party of Jinn listened to it" (Qur'an, lxxii. 1). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0903. ------------------------------ Chapter : Listening to the recitation of the Qur'an. Dawud reported from 'Amir who said: I asked 'Alqama if Ibn Mas'ud was present with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on the night of the Jinn (the night when the Holy Prophet met them). He (Ibn Mas'uad) said: No, but we were in the company of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) one night and we missed him. We searched for him in the valleys and the hills and said. He has either been taken away (by jinn) or has been secretly killed. He (the narrator) said. We spent the worst night which people could ever spend. When it was dawn we saw him coming from the side of Hiri'. He (the narrator) reported. We said: Messenger of Allah, we missed you and searched for you, but we could not find you and we spent the worst night which people could ever spend. He (the Holy Prophet) said: There came to me an inviter on behalf of the Jinn and I went along with him and recited to them the Qur'an. He (the narrator) said: He then went along with us and showed us their traces and traces of their embers. They (the Jinn) asked him (the Holy Prophet) about their provision and he said: Every bone on which the name of Allah is recited is your provision. The time it will fall in your hand it would be covered with flesh, and the dung of (the camels) is fodder for your animals. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Don't perform istinja with these (things) for these are the food of your brothers (Jinn). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0904. ------------------------------ Chapter : Listening to the recitation of the Qur'an. This hadith has been reported by Dawud with the same chain of transmitters up to the word(s): "The traces of their embers." Sha'bi said: They (the Jinn) asked about their provision, and they were the Jinn of al-jazira, up to the end of the hadith, and the words of Sha'bi have been directly transmitted from the hadith of Abdullah. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0905. ------------------------------ Chapter : Listening to the recitation of the Qur'an. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of 'Abdullah from the Apostle (may peace be upon him) up to the words: "The traces of the embers," but he made no mention of what followed afterward. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0906. ------------------------------ Chapter : Listening to the recitation of the Qur'an. Abdullah (b. Mas'ud) said: I was not with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) but I wish I were with him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0907. ------------------------------ Chapter : Listening to the recitation of the Qur'an. Ma'n reported.. I heard it from my father who said: I asked Masruq who informed the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) about the night when they heard the Qur'an. He said: Your father, Ibn Mas'ud, narrated it to me that a tree informed him about that. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0908. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation of the Qur'an loudly in the dawn prayer. Abu Qatada reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) led us in prayer and recited in the first two rak'ahs of the noon and afternoon prayers Surat al-Fitiha and two (other) surahs. And he would sometimes recite loud enough for us the verses. He would prolong the first rak'ah more than the second. And he acted similarly in the morning prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0909. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation of the Qur'an loudly in the dawn prayer. Abu Qatada reported it on the authority of his father: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) would recite in the first two rak'ahs of the noon and afternoon prayers the opening chapter of the Muslim Book and another surah. He would sometimes recite loud enough to make audible to us the verse and would recite in the last two rak'ahs Surat al-Faitiha (only). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0910. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation of the Qur'an loudly in the dawn prayer. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported: We used to estimate how long Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) stood in the noon and afternoon prayers, and we estimated hat he stood in the first two rak'ahs of the noon prayer as long as it takes to recite Alif Lam Mim, Tanzil, i.e. as-Sajda. We estimated that he stood half that time in the last two rak'ahs; that he stood in the first two of the afternoon as long as he did in the last two at noon; and in the last two of the afternoon prayer about half that time. Abu Bakr in his narration has made no mention of Alif Lam Mim, Tanzil, but said: As long as it takes to recite thirty verses. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0911. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation of the Qur'an loudly in the dawn prayer. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to recite in every rak'ah of the first two rak'ahs of the noon prayer about thirty verses and in the last two about fifteen verses or half (of the first rak'ah) and in every rak'ah of the 'Asr prayer of the first two rak'ahs about fifteen verses and in the last two verses half (of the first ones). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0912. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation of the Qur'an loudly in the dawn prayer. Jabir b. Samura reported: The people of Kufa complained to Umar b. Khattab about Sa'id and they made a mention of his prayer. 'Umar sent for him. He came to him. He ('Umar) told him that the people had found fault with his prayer. He said: I lead them in prayer in accordance with the prayer of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). I make no decrease in it. I make them stand for a longer time in the first two (rak'ahs) and shorten it in the last two. Upon this 'Umar remarked: This is what I deemed of thee, O Abu Ishaq Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0913. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation of the Qur'an loudly in the dawn prayer. This hadith his been narrated by 'Abu al-Malik with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0914. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation of the Qur'an loudly in the dawn prayer. Jabir b. Samura reported: 'Umar said to Sa'd: They complain against you in every matter, even in prayer. He (Sa'd) said: I prolong (standing) in the first two (rak'ahs) and shorten it in the last two, and I make no negligence in following the prayer of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). He ('Umar) remarked: This is what is expected of you, or, that is what I deemed of you. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0915. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation of the Qur'an loudly in the dawn prayer. This hadith is narrated by Jabir b. Samura but with the addition of these words: "(Sa'd said): These bedouins presume to teach me prayer." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0916. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation of the Qur'an loudly in the dawn prayer. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported: The noon prayer would start and one would go to al-Baqi' and after having relieved himself he would perform ablution and then come, while the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) would be in the first rak'ah, because he would prolong it so much. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0917. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation of the Qur'an loudly in the dawn prayer. Qaz'a reported: I came to Abu Sa'id al-Khudri and he was surrounded by people. When the people departed from him I said: I am not going to ask you what these people have been asking you. I want to ask you about the prayer of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). He (Abu Sa'id) said: There is no good for you in this. He (Qaz'a), however, repeated (his demand). He then said: The noon prayer would start and one of us would go to Baqi' and, having relieved himself, would come to his home, then perform ablution and go to the mosque, and (he would find) The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) in the first rak'ah. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0918. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in noon and afternoon prayers. Abdullah b. Sa'id reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) led us in the morning prayer in Mecca and began Sarat al-Mu'minin (xxiii) but when he came to the mention of Moses and Aaron (verse. 45) or to the mention of Jesus (verse 50), a cough got the better of him, and he bowed. 'Abdullah b. Sa'ib was present there, and in the hadith narrated by Abd al-Razzaq (the words are): He cut short (the recitation) and bowed. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0919. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in noon and afternoon prayers. 'Amr b. Huwairith reported: I heard the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) recite in the morning prayer... "Wa'l-lail-i-idhd 'As'asa" (ixxxi. 17). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0920. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in noon and afternoon prayers. Qutba b. Malik reported: I said prayer and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) led it and he recited "Qaf. (I.). By the Glorious Qur'an" till he recited "and the tall palm trees" (l. 10). I wanted to repeat it but I could not follow its significance. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0921. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in noon and afternoon prayers. Qutba b. Malik reported that he had heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) reciting in the morning prayer this: "And the tall palm trees having flower spikes piled one above another" (l. 10). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0922. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in noon and afternoon prayers. Ziyad b. 'Ilaqa reported it on the authority of his uncle that he said the morning prayer with the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he recited in the first rak'ah: "And the tall palm trees having flower spikes piled one above another (l. 10) or perhaps Sarah Qaf. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0923. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in noon and afternoon prayers. Jabir b. Samura reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to recite in the morning prayer "Qaf. By the Glorious Qur'an." and his prayer afterward shortened. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0924. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in noon and afternoon prayers. Simak asked Jabir b. Samura about the prayer of the Apostle (may peace be upon him). He said: He (the Holy Prophet) shortened the prayer and he did not pray like these people then, and he informed me that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to recite "Qaf. By the (Glorious) Qur'an" and a passage of similar length. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0925. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in noon and afternoon prayers. Jabir b. Samura reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to recite in the noon prayer: "By the night when it envelopes" (xcii.), and in the afternoon like this, but he prolonged the morning prayer as compared to that (noon and afternoon prayers). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0926. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in noon and afternoon prayers. Jabir b. Samura reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to recite in the noon prayer: "Glorify the name of thy Most High Lord in the morning prayer longer than this" (lxxxvii.) Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0927. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in noon and afternoon prayers. Abu Barza reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to recite in the morning prayer from sixty to one hundred verses. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0928. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in noon and afternoon prayers. Abu Barza Aslami reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to recite from sixty to one hundred verses in the morning prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0929. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in noon and afternoon prayers. Ibn Abbas reported: Umm al-Fadl daughter of al-Harith heard him reciting: "By those sent forth to spread goodness" (lxxvii.). (Upon this) she remarked: O my son, you reminded me by the recitation of this surah (the fact) that it was the last surah that I heard from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he recited it in the evening prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0930. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in noon and afternoon prayers. This hadith has been narrated by Zuhri with the same chain of transmitters but with this addition: "And he did not lead the player after this till his death." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0931. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in noon and afternoon prayers. Jubair b. Mut'im reported: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) reciting Surat al-Tur (Mountain) (lii) in the evening prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0932. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in noon and afternoon prayers. This hadith has been narrated by Zuhri with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0933. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in the morning prayer. 'Adi reported: I heard al-Bara' narrating it from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) that while in a journey he said the night prayer and recited in one of the two rak'ahs: "By the Fig and the Olive" (Su'rah xcv.). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0934. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in the morning prayer. Al-Bara' b. 'Azib reported that he said prayer with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he recited: "By the Fig and the Olive." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0935. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in the morning prayer. Al-Bara' b. 'Azib reported: I heard the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) reciting in the night prayer: "By the Fig and the Olive," and I have never heard anyone with a sweeter voice than he. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0936. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in the morning prayer. Jabir reported that Mu'adh b. jabal used to pray with the Apostle (may peace be upon him), then came and led his people in prayer. One night he said the night prayer with the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him). He then came to his people and led them in prayer beginning with Surat al-Baqara. A man turned aside, pronounced the taslim (salutation for concluding the prayer), then prayed alone and departed. The people said to him: Have you become a hypocrite, so and so? He said: I swear by Allah that I have not, but I will certainly go to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and will inform (him) about this. He then came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: Messenger of Allah, we look after camels used for watering and work by day. Mu'idh said the night prayer with you. He then came and began with Surat al-Baqara. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) then turned to Mu'adh and said: Are you there to (put the people) to trial? Recite such and recite such (and such a surah). It is transmitted on the authority of Jabir, as told by Sufyan, that he (the Holy Prophet) had said: "By the Sun and its morning brightness" (Sarah xci.), "By brightness" (Surah xciii)"By the night when it spreads" (Surah xcii.), and "Glorify the name of thy most high Lord" (Surah lxxxii.). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0937. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in the morning prayer. Jabir reported: 'Mu'adh b jabal al-Ansari led his companions in the night prayer and prolonged it for them. A person amongst us said prayer (after having separated himself from the congregation). Mu'adh was informed of this, and he remarked that he wasa hypocrite. When it (the remark) was conveyed to the man, he went to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and informed him of what Mu'adh had said. Upon this the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to him: Mu'adh, do you want to become a person putting (people) to trial? When you lead people in prayer, recite: "By the Sun and its morning brightness" (Surah xci.), "Glorify the name of thy most high Lord" (Surah lxxxvi.) and "Read in the name of Lord" (Surah xcvi.), and "By the night when it spreads" (Surah xcii.). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0938. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in the morning prayer. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported: Mu'adh b. Jabal said the night prayer with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and then returned to his people and then led them in this prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0939. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in the morning prayer. Jabir b. Abdullah reported: Mu'adh said the night prayer with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). He then came to the mosque of his people and led them in prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0940. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in the night prayer. Abu Mas'ud al-Ainsari reported: A person came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: I keep away from the morning prayer on account of such and such (a man), because; he keeps us so long. I never saw God's Messenger (may peace be upon him) more angry when giving an exhortation than he was that day. He said: O people, some of you are scaring people away. So whoever of you leads the people in prayer he must be brief, for behind him are the weak, the aged, and the people who have (argent) business to attend. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0941. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in the night prayer. This hadith like one narrated by Hashalm has been narrated from Isma'il with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0942. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in the night prayer. Abu Huraira reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When any one of you leads the people in prayer, he should be brief for among them are the young and the aged, the weak and the sick. But when one of you prays by himself, he may (prolong) as he likes. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0943. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in the night prayer. Hammam b. Munabbih reported: This is what Abu Huraira transmitted to us from Muhammad the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and he narrated (some) ahadith out of (these narrations and one of them is this): The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When any one of you stands to lead people In prayer, he should shorten it, for amongst them are the aged, and amongst them are the weak, but when he prays by himself, he may prolong his prayer as he likes. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0944. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in the night prayer. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When any one of you leads people in prayer, he must shorten it for among them are the weak, the infirm and those who have business to attend. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0945. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in the night prayer. Abu Bakr b. 'Abd al-Rahman reported that he had heard Abu Huraira say that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said like it, but he substituted "the aged" for 'the infirm". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0946. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in the night prayer. Uthman b. Abu'l-'As at-Thaqafi reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to him: Lead your people in prayer. I said: Messenger of Allah. I perceive something (disturbing) in my soul. He (the Holy Prophet) asked me to draw near him and making me sit down in front of him he placed his hand on my breast between my nipples, and then, telling me to turn round, he placed it on my back between my shoulders. He then said: Act as an Imam for your people. He who acts as Imam of the people, he must be brief, for among them are the aged, among them are the sick, among them are the weak, and among them are the people who have business to attend. But when any of you prays alone, he may pray as he likes. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0947. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in the night prayer. Uthman b. Abu'l-'As reported: The last thing which the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) instructed me was: When you lead the people in prayer, be brief . Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0948. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in the night prayer. Anas reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to be brief and perfect in prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0949. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in the night prayer. Anas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was among those whose prayers was brief and perfect. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0950. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in the night prayer. Anas reported: I never prayed behind an Imam who was more brief and more perfect in prayer than the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0951. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in the night prayer. Anas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) would listen to the crying of a lad in the company of his mother, in prayer, and he would recite a short surah or a small surah. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0952. ------------------------------ Chapter : Recitation in the night prayer. Anas b. Malik reported the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) having said: When I begin the prayer I Intend to make it long, but I hear a boy crying; I then shorten it because of his mother's feelings. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0953. ------------------------------ Chapter : The duty of the Imam is to be brief and perfect in prayer. Al-Bara' b. 'Azib reported: I noticed the prayer of Muhammad (may peace be upon him) and saw his Qiyam (standing), his bowing, and then going back to the standing posture after bowing, his prostration, his sitting between the two prostrations, and his prostration and sitting between salutation and going away, all these were nearly equal to one another. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0954. ------------------------------ Chapter : The duty of the Imam is to be brief and perfect in prayer. Hakam reported: There dominated in Kufa a man whose name was mentioned as Zaman b. al-Ash'ath, who ordered Abu 'Ubaidah b. 'Abdullah to lead people in prayer and he accordingly used to lead them. Whenever he raised his head after bowing, he stood up equal to the time that I can recite (this supplication): O Allah! our Lord! unto Thee be the praise which would fill the heavens and the earth, and that which will please Thee besides them I Worthy art Thou of all praise and glory. None can prevent that which Thou bestowest, and none can bestow that which thou preventest. And the greatness of the great will not avail him against Thee. Hakam (the narrator) said: I made a mention of that to Abd al-Rahman Ibn Abi Laila who reported: I heard al-Bara' b. 'Azib say that the prayer of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and his bowing, and when he lifted his head from bowing, and his prostration, and between the two prostrations (all these acts) were nearly proportionate. I made a mention of that to 'Ar b. Murrah and he said: I saw Ibn Abi Laili (saying the prayer), but his prayer was not like this. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0955. ------------------------------ Chapter : The duty of the Imam is to be brief and perfect in prayer. Hakam reported: When Matar b. Najiya dominated Kufa he ordered Abu Ubaida to lead people in prayer, and the rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0956. ------------------------------ Chapter : The duty of the Imam is to be brief and perfect in prayer. Thabit reported it on the authority of Anas: While leading you in prayer I do not shorten anything in the prayer. I pray as I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) leading us. He (Thabit) said: Anas used to do that which I do not see you doing; when he lifted his head from bowing he stood up (so long) that one would say: He has forgotten (to bow down in prostration). And when he lifted his head from prostration, he stayed in that position, till someone would say: He has forgotten (to bow down in prostration for the second sajda). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0957. ------------------------------ Chapter : The duty of the Imam is to be brief and perfect in prayer. Thabit reported it on the authority of Anas: I have never said such a light and perfect prayer as I said behind the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). The prayer of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was well balanced. And so too was the prayer of Abu Bakr well balanced. When it was the time of 'Umar b. al-Khattab he prolonged the morning prayer. When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Allah listened to him who praised Him, he stood erect till we said: He has forgotten. He then prostrated and sat between two prostration till we said: He has forgotten. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0958. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation in the articles of prayers and their shortening and perfection. Al-Bara' (b. 'Azib), and he was no liar (but a truthful Companion of the Holy Prophet), reported: They used to say prayer behind the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). I never saw anyone bending his back at the time when he (the Holy Prophet) raised his head, till the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) placed his forehead on the ground. They then fell in prostration after him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0959. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation in the articles of prayers and their shortening and perfection. Al-Bara' reported, and he was no liar: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Allah listened to him who praised Him, none of us bent his back till he (the Holy Prophet) prostrated; we then, afterwards, went down in prostration. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0960. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation in the articles of prayers and their shortening and perfection. Al-Bara' reported: They (the Companions) said prayer with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and they bowed when he (the Holy Prophet) bowed and when he raised his head after bowing, he pronounced: "Allah listened to him who praised Him," and we kept standing till we saw him placing his face on the ground and then we followed him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0961. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation in the articles of prayers and their shortening and perfection. Al-Bara' reported: When we were (in prayer) with the Messenger of Allah Allah (may peace be upon him) none of us benefit his back till we saw he prostrated. Zuhair and others reported: "till we saw him prostrating". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0962. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation in the articles of prayers and their shortening and perfection. 'Amr b. Huraith reported: I said the dawn prayer behind the Apostle of (may peace be upon him) and heard him reciting: 'Nay. I call to witness the stars, running their courses and setting" (Al-Qur'an, lxxxi. 15-16) and Done of us bent his back till he completed prostration. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0963. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation in the articles of prayers and their shortening and perfection. ('Abdullah b) Ibn Abi Aufa reported: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) raised his back from the ruku' he pronounced: Allah listened to him who praised Him. O Allah ! our Lord ! unto Thee be praise that would fill the heavens and the earth and fill that which will please Thee besides them. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0964. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation in the articles of prayers and their shortening and perfection. 'Abdullah b. Aufa reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to recite this supplication: O Allah ! our Lord, unto Thee be praise that would fill the heavens and the earth and fill that which will please Thee besides them. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0965. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation in the articles of prayers and their shortening and perfection. Abdullah b. Abu Aufa reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to recite (this supplication): O Allah! our Lord, unto Thee be praise that would fill the heavens and the earth and fill that which will please Thee besides (them). O Allah ! purify me with snow, (water of) hail and with cold water; O Allah, cleanse me from the sins and errors just as a white garment is cleansed from dirt. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0966. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation in the articles of prayers and their shortening and perfection. This hadith with the same chain of transmitters has been narrated by Shu'ba, and in the narration of Mu'adh the words are: "just as the white garment is cleansed from filth," and in the narration of Yazid: "from dirt". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0967. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation in the articles of prayers and their shortening and perfection. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) raised his head after bowing, he said: O Allah! our Lord, to Thee be the praise that would fill all the heavens and the earth, and all that it pleases Thee besides (them). O, thou art worthy of praise and glory, most worthy of what a servant says, and we all are Thy servants, no one can withhold what Thou givest or give what Thou withholdest, and riches cannot avail a wealthy person against Thee. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0968. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation in the articles of prayers and their shortening and perfection. Ibn Abbas reported: When the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) raised his head after bowing, he said: Allah ! our Lord, to Thee be the praise that would fill the heavens and the earth and that which is between them, and that which will please Thee besides (them). Worthy art Thou of all praise and glory. No one can withhold what Thou givest, or give what Thou withholdest. And the greatness O! the great availeth not against Thee. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0969. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation in the articles of prayers and their shortening and perfection. Ibn Abbas reported from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) the words: "And that would fill that which will please Thee besides (them) !" and he did not mention the subsequent (portion of supplication). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0970. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation in the articles of prayers and their shortening and perfection. Ibn 'Abbas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) drew aside the curtain (of his apartment) and (he saw) people in rows (saying prayer) behind Aba Bakr. And he said: Nothing remains of the glad tidings of apostlehood, except good visions which a Muslim sees or someone is made to see for him. And see that I have been forbidden to recite the Qur'an in the state of bowing and prostration. So far as Ruk'u is concerned, extol in it the Great and Glorious Lord, and while prostrating yourselves be earnest in supplication, for it is fitting that your supplications should be answered. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0971. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation in the articles of prayers and their shortening and perfection. 'Abdullah b. 'Abbas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) drew aside the curtain and his head was bandaged on account of illness in which he died. He said: O Allah, have I not delivered (Thy Message)? (He repeated it) three times. Nothing has been left out of the glad tidings of apostlebood, but good vision, which a pious servant (of Allah) sees or someone else is made to see for him. He then narrated like the hadith transmitted by Sufyan. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0972. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation in the articles of prayers and their shortening and perfection. 'Ali b. Abi Talib reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) forbade me to recite (the Qur'an) in a state of bowing and prostration. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0973. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation in the articles of prayers and their shortening and perfection. 'Ali b. Abi Talib reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) forbade to recite the Qur'an, while I am in the state of bowing and prostration. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0974. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation in the articles of prayers and their shortening and perfection. 'Ali b. Abi Talib reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) forbade me from the recitation (of the Qur'an) in bowing and prostration and I do not say that he forbade you. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0975. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation in the articles of prayers and their shortening and perfection. 'Ali reported: My loved one (the Holy Prophet) forbade me that I should recite (the Qur'an) in a state of bowing and prostration. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0976. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation in the articles of prayers and their shortening and perfection. This hadith has been narrated by some other narrators, Ibn 'Abbas and others, and they all reported that 'Ali said: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) forbade me to recite the Qur'an while I am in a state of bowing and prostration, and in their narration (there is a mention of) forbiddance from that (recital) in the state of prostration as it has been transmitted by Zuhri, Zaid b. Aslam, al-Wahid b. Kathir, and Dawud b. Qais. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0977. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation in the articles of prayers and their shortening and perfection. This hadith is transmitted on the authority of 'Ali, but he made no mention of "while in prostration". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0978. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation in the articles of prayers and their shortening and perfection. Ibn 'Abbas reported: I was forbidden to recite (the Qur'an) while I was bowing, and there is no mention of 'Ali in the chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0979. ------------------------------ Chapter : Following the Imam and acting after him. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The nearest a servant comes to his Lord is when he is prostrating himself, so make supplication (in this state). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0980. ------------------------------ Chapter : Following the Imam and acting after him. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to say while prostrating himself: O Lord, forgive me all my sins, small and great, first and last, open and secret. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0981. ------------------------------ Chapter : Following the Imam and acting after him. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him') often said while bowing and prostrating himself: "Glory be to Thee, O Allah, our Lord, and praise be to Thee, O Allah, forgive me," thus complying with the (command in) the Qur'an. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0982. ------------------------------ Chapter : Following the Imam and acting after him. 'Aisha reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) before his death recited often: Hallowed be Thou, and with Thy praise, I seek forgiveness from Thee and return to Thee. She reported: I said: Messenger of Allah, what are these words that I find you reciting? He said: There has been made a sign for me in my Ummah; when I saw that, I uttered them (these words of glorification for Allah), and the sign is: "When Allah's help and victory... to the end of the surah. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0983. ------------------------------ Chapter : Following the Imam and acting after him. 'Aisha reported: Never did I ,see the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) after the revelation (of these verses): "When Allah's help and victory came." observing his prayer without making (this supplication) or he said in it (supplication): Hallowed be Thee, my Lord, and with Thy praise, O Allah, forgive me. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0984. ------------------------------ Chapter : Following the Imam and acting after him. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) recited often these words: Hallowed be Allah and with His praise, I seek the forgiveness of Allah and return to Him. She said: I asked: Messenger of Allah, I see that you often repeat the saying "subhan allahi bihamdihi astag firullahi watubuilaih" whereupon he said: My Lord informed me that I would soon see a sign in my Ummah, so when I see it I often recite (these) words: Hallowed be Allah and with His Praise, I seek forgiveness of Allah and return to Him. Indeed I saw it (when this verse) was revealed: "When Allah's help and victory came, it marked the victory of Mecca, and you see people entering into Allah's religion in troops, celebrate the praise of Thy Lord and ask His forgiveness. Surely He is ever returning to Mercy." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0985. ------------------------------ Chapter : Following the Imam and acting after him. Ibn Juraij reported: I asked 'Ata': What do you recite when you are in a state of bowing (in prayer)? He said: "Hallowed be Thou, and with Thy praise, there is no god but Thou." Son of Abd Mulaika narrated to me on the authority of 'Aisha (who reported): I missed one night the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) (from his bed). I thought that he might have gone to one of his other wives. I searched for him and then came back and (found him) in a state of bowing, or prostration, saying: Hallowed be Thou and with Thy praise; there is no god but Thou. I said: With my father mayest thou be ransomed and with my mother. I was thinking of (another) affair, whereas you are (occupied) in another one. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0986. ------------------------------ Chapter : Following the Imam and acting after him. 'Aisha reported: One night I missed Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) from the bed, and when I sought him my hand touched the soles of his feet while he was in the state of prostration; they (feet) were raised and he was saying: "O Allah, I seek refuge in Thy pleasure from Thy anger, and in Thy forgiveness from Thy punishment, and I seek refuge in Thee from Thee (Thy anger). I cannot reckon Thy praise. Thou art as Thou hast lauded Thyself." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0987. ------------------------------ Chapter : Following the Imam and acting after him. 'Aisha reported that the Messenger of Allah (way peace he upon him) used to pronounce while bowing and prostrating himself: All Glorious, All Holy, Lord of the Angels and the Spirit. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0988. ------------------------------ Chapter : Following the Imam and acting after him. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of 'Aisha by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0989. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited in bowing and prostration. Ma'dan b. Talha reported: I met Thauban, the freed slave of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), and asked him to tell me about an act for which, if I do it, Allah will admit me to Paradise, or I asked about the act which was loved most by Allah. He gave no reply. I again asked and he gave no reply. I asked him for the third time, and he said: I asked Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) about that and he said: Make frequent prostrations before Allah, for you will not make one prostration without raising you a degree because of it, and removing a sin from you, because of it. Ma'dan said that then lie met Abu al-Darda' and when he asked him, he received a reply similar to that given by Thauban. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0990. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited in bowing and prostration. Rabi'a b. Ka'b said: I was with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) one night and I brought him water and what he required. He said to me: Ask (anything you like). I said: I ask your company in Paradise. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Or anything else besides it. I said: That is all (what I require). He said: Then help me to achieve this for you by denoting yourself often to prostration. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0991. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of prostration and exhortation to observe it. Ibn 'Abbas reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) had been commanded that he should prostrate on the seven (bones) and he was forbidden to fold back the hair and clothing. And in the narration transmitted by Abu Rabi' (the words are): "on the seven bones and I was forbidden to fold back the hair and clothing". According to Abu'l-Rabi' (the seven bones are): The hands, the knees, and the (extremities) of the feet and the forehead. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0992. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of prostration and exhortation to observe it. Ibn 'Abbas reported from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him): I was commanded to prostrate myself on seven bones and not to fold back clothing or hair. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0993. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of prostration and exhortation to observe it. Ibn 'Abbas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had been commanded to prostrate on seven (bones) and forbidden to fold back hair and clothing. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0994. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of prostration and exhortation to observe it. Ibn Abbas reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I have been commanded to prostrate myself on seven bones: "forehead," and then pointed with his hand towards his nose, hands, feet, and the extremities of the feet; and we were forbidden to fold back clothing and hair. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0995. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of prostration and exhortation to observe it. Ibn Abbas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I was commanded to prostrate myself on the seven (bones) and forbidden to fold back hair and clothing. (The seven bones are): forehead, nose, bands, knees and feet. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0996. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of prostration and exhortation to observe it. Abdullah b. Abbas reported that he saw 'Abdullah b. al-Harith observing the prayer and (his hair) was plaited behind his head. He ('Abdullah b. 'Abbas) stood up and unfolded them. While going back (from the prayer) he met Ibn 'Abbas and said to him: Why is it that you touched my head? He (Ibn 'Abbas) replied: (The man who observes prayer with plaited hair) is like one who prays with his hands tied behind. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0997. ------------------------------ Chapter : How the limbs should work in prostration and forbiddance to fold clothing and hair and plaiting of hair in the prayer. Anas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Observe moderation in prostration, and let none of you stretch out his forearms (on the ground) like a dog. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0998. ------------------------------ Chapter : How the limbs should work in prostration and forbiddance to fold clothing and hair and plaiting of hair in the prayer. This hadith has been narrated by Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters. And in the hadith transmitted by Ibn Ja'far (the words are): "None of you should stretch out his forearms like the stretching out of a dog." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 0999. ------------------------------ Chapter : How the limbs should work in prostration and forbiddance to fold clothing and hair and plaiting of hair in the prayer. Al-Bira' (b. 'Azib) reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When you prostrate yourself, place the palms of your hands on the ground and raise your elbows. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1000. ------------------------------ Chapter : How the limbs should work in prostration and forbiddance to fold clothing and hair and plaiting of hair in the prayer. 'Abdullah b. Malik Ibn Bujainah reported: When the Prophet (may peace be upon him) prostrated, lie spread out his arms so that the whiteness of his armpits was visible. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1001. ------------------------------ Chapter : How the limbs should work in prostration and forbiddance to fold clothing and hair and plaiting of hair in the prayer. This hadith has been narrated by Ja'far b. Rabi' with the same chain of transmitters. And in the narration transmitted by 'Amr b. al-Harith (the words are): "When the Messenger of Allah (peace be upon him) prostrated, he spread out his arms so that the whiteness of his armpits was visible." And in the narration transmitted by al-Laith (the words are: "When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) prostrated, he spread his hands from the armpits so that I saw their whiteness." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1002. ------------------------------ Chapter : How the limbs should work in prostration and forbiddance to fold clothing and hair and plaiting of hair in the prayer. Maimuna reported: When the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) prostrated himself, if a lamb wanted to pass between his arms, it could pass. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1003. ------------------------------ Chapter : How the limbs should work in prostration and forbiddance to fold clothing and hair and plaiting of hair in the prayer. Maimuna, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), reported: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) prostrated himself, he spread his arms, i.e. he separated them so much that the whiteness of his armpits became visible from behind and when he sat (for Jalsa) he rested on his left thigh. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1004. ------------------------------ Chapter : How the limbs should work in prostration and forbiddance to fold clothing and hair and plaiting of hair in the prayer. Maimuna daughter of Harith reported: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) prostrated, he kept his hands so much apart from each other that when it was seen from behind the armpits became visible. Waki' said: That is their whiteness. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1005. ------------------------------ Chapter : Moderation in prostration, placing the palms on the earth (ground), and keeping away elbows from the sides and the belly from the things while prostrating. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to begin prayer with takbir (saying Allih-o-Akbar) and the recitation: "Praise be to Allah, the Lord of the Universe." When he bowed he neither kept his head up nor bent it down, but kept it between these extremes; when he raised his bead after bowing he did not prostrate himself till he had stood erect; when he raised his head after prostration he did not prostrate himself again till he sat-up. At the end of every two rak'ahs he recited the tahiyya; and he used to place his left foot flat (on the ground) and raise up the right; he prohibited the devil's way of sitting on the heels, and he forbade people to spread out their arms like a wild beast. And he used to finish the prayer with the taslim. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1006. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. Musa b. Talha reported it on the authority of his father: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When one of you places in front of him something such as the back of a saddle, he should pray without caring who passes on the other side of it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1007. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. Musa b. Talha reported on the authority of his father: We used to say prayer and the animals moved in front of us. We mentioned it to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he said: If anything equal to the back of a saddle is in front of you, then what walks in front, no harm would come to him. Ibn Numair said: No harm would come whosoever walks in front. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1008. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was asked about sutra of a worshipper; he said: Equal to the back of the saddle. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1009. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was asked in the expedition of Tabuk about the sutra the worshipper; he said: Like the back of the saddle. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1010. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. Ibn Umar reported: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) went out on the 'Id day, he ordered to carry a spear-and it was fixed in front of him, and he said prayer towards its (direction), and the people were behind him. And he did it in the journey, and that is the reason why the Amirs carried it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1011. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. Ibn Umar reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) set up (sutra), and Abu Bakr said: He implanted iron-tipped spear and said prayer towards its direction. Ibn Abu Shaiba made this addition to it: "Ubaidullah said that it was a spear." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1012. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. Ibn 'Umar said: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to place his camel (towards the Ka'ba) and said prayer in its direction. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1013. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. Ibn 'Umar reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to say prayer towards his camel. Ibn Numair said: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said prayer towards the camel. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1014. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. Abu Juhaifa reported it on the authority of his father: I came to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) in Mecca and he was (at that time) at al-Abtah in a red leather tent. And Bilal stepped out with ablution water for him. (And what was left out of that water) some of them got it (whereas others could not get it) and (those who got it) rubbed themselves with it. Then the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) stepped out with a red mantle on him and I was catching a glimpse of the whiteness of his shanks. The narrator said: He (the Holy Prophet) performed the ablution and Bilal pronounced Adhan and I followed his mouth (as he turned) this side and that as he said on the right and the left: "Come to prayer, come to success." A spear was then fixed for him (on the ground). He stepped forward and said two rak'ahs of Zuhr, while there passed in front of him a donkey and a dog, and these were not checked. He then said two rak'ahs of the 'Asr prayer, and he then continued saying two rak'ahs till he came back to Medina. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1015. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. Abu Juhaifa reported on the authority of his father: I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) (in Mecca at al-Abtah) in a red leather tent and I saw Bilal take the ablution water (left by Allah's Messenger), and I saw the people racing, with one another to get that ablution water. If anyone got some of it, he rubbed himself with it, and anyone who did not get any got some of the moisture from his companion's hand. I then saw Bilal take a staff and fix it in the ground, after which the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came out quickly in a red mantle and led the people in two rak'ahs facing the staff, and I saw people and animals passing in front of the staff. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1016. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. 'Aun b. Abu Juhaifa narrated from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) on the authority of his father a hadith like that of Sufyan, and 'Umar b. Abu Za'ida made this addition: Some of them tried to excel the others (in obtaining water), and in the hadith transmitted by Malik b. Mighwal (the words are): When it was noon, Bilal came out and summoned (people) to (noon) prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1017. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. Abu Juhaifa reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) went at noon towards al-Batha', he performed ablution, and said two rak'ahs of the Zuhr prayer and two of the 'Asr prayer, and there was a spear in front of him. Shu'ba said and Aun made this addition to it on the authority of his father Abu Juhaifa: And the woman and the donkey passed behind it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1018. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. Shu'ba narrated the same on the basis of two authorities and in the hadith transmitted by Hakam (the words are): The people began to get water that was left out of his (the Prophet's) ablution. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1019. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. Ibn 'Abbas reported: I came riding on a she-ass, and I was on the threshold of maturity, and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was leading people in prayer at Mina. I passed in front of the row and got down, and sent the she-ass for grazing and joined the row, and nobody made any objection to it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1020. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. Abdullah b. Abbas reported that he came riding on a donkey, and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was leading the people in prayer at Mina on the occasion of the Farewell Pilgrimage and (the narrator) reported: The donkey passed in front of the row and then he got down from it And joined the row along with the people. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1021. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. This hadith has been narrated by Ibn 'Uyaina on the authority of al-Zuhri with the same chain of transmitters and he reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) was leading prayer at 'Arafa. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1022. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. This hadith has been reported by Ma'mar on the authority of al-Zuhri with the came chain of transmitters, but here no mention has been made of Mina or 'Arafa, and he said: It was in the Farewell Pilgrimage or on the Day of Victory. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1023. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When any one of you prays he should not let anyone pass in front of him (if there is no sutra), and should try to turn him away as far as possible, but if he refuses to go, he should turn him away forcibly for he is a devil. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1024. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. Abu Salih al-Samman reported: I narrate to you what I heard and saw from Abu Sa'id al-Khudri: One day I was with Abu Sa'id and he was saying prayer on Friday turning to a thing which concealed him from the people when a young man from Banu Mu'ait came there and he tried to pass in front of him; he turned him back by striking his chest. He looked about but finding no other way to pass except in front of Abu Sa'id, made a second attempt. He (Abu Sa'id) turned him away by Striking his chest more vigorously than the first stroke. He stood up and had a scuffle with Abu Sa'id. Then the people gathered there He came out and went to Marwan and complained to him what had happened to him. Abu Sa'id too came to Marwan. Marwin said to him: What has happened to you and the son of your brother that he came to complain against you? Abu Sa'id said: I heard from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying: When any one of you prays facing something which conceals him from people and anyone tries to pass in front of him, he should be turned away, but if he refuses, he should be forcibly restrained from it, for he is a devil. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1025. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When any one of you prays, he should not allow anyone to pass before him, and if he refuses, he should be then forcibly resisted, for there is a devil with him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1026. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. This hadith has been narrated by Ibn Umar by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1027. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. Busr b Sa'id reported that Zaid b Khalid al-Juhani sent him to Abu Juhaim in order to ask him what he had heard from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) with regard to the passer in front of the worshipper. Abu Juhaim reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: If anyone who passes in front of a man who is praying knew the responsibility he incurs, he would stand still forty (years) rather than to pass in front of him Abu Nadr said: I do not know whether he said forty days or months or years. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1028. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. This hadith has been narrated from Abu Juhaim Ansari by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1029. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. Sahl b. Sa'd al-Si'idi reported: Between the place of worship where the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) prayed and the wall, there was a gap through which a goat could pass. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1030. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. Salama b. Akwa' reported: He sought the place (in the mosque) where the copies of the Qur'an were kept and glorified Allah there, and the narrator made a mention that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sought that place and that was between the pulpit and the qibla - a place where a goat could pass. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1031. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. Yazid reported: Salama sought to say prayer near the pillar which was by that place where copies of the Qur'an were kept. I said to him: Abu Muslim. I see you striving to offer your prayer by this pillar. He said: I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) seeking to pray by its side. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1032. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. Abu Dharr reported: The Messenger of 'Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When any one of you stands for prayer and there is a thing before him equal to the back of the saddle that covers him and in case there is not before him (a thing) equal to the back of the saddle, his prayer would be cut off by (passing of an) ass, woman, and black Dog. I said: O Abu Dharr, what feature is there in a black dog which distinguish it from the red dog and the yellow dog? He said: O, son of my brother, I asked the Messenger of Allah(may peace be upon him) as you are asking me, and he said: The black dog is a devil. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1033. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. This hadith has been transmitted by Humaid b. Hilal on the authority of Yunus. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1034. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: A woman, an ass and a dog disrupt the prayer, but something like the back of a saddle guards against that. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1035. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. 'Aisha reported: The Prophet (may peace be upon him) used to pray at night while I lay interposed between him and the Qibla like a corpse on the bier. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1036. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. 'Aisha reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said his whole prayer (Tahajjud prayer) during the night while I lay between him and the Qibla. When he intended to say Witr (prayer) he awakened me and I too said witr (prayer). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1037. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. 'Urwa b. Zubair reported: 'Aisha asked: What disrupts the prayer? We said: The woman and the ass. Upon this she remarked: Is the woman an ugly animal? I lay in front of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) like the bier of a corpse and he said prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1038. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. Masruq reported: It was mentioned before 'Aisha that prayer is invalidated (in case of passing) of a dog, an ass and a woman (before the worshipper, when he is not screened). Upon this 'Aisha said: You likened us to the asses and the dogs. By Allah I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying prayer while I lay on the bedstead interposing between him and the Qibla. When I felt the need, I did not like to wit to front (of the Holy Prophet) and perturb the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and quietly moved out from under its (i.e. of the bedstead) legs. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1039. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. Al-Aswad reported that 'Aisha said: You have made us equal to the dogs and the asses, whereas I lay on the bedstead and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came there and stood in the middle of the bedstead and said prayer. I did not like to take off the quilt from me (in that state), so I moved away quietly from the front legs of the bedstead and thus came out of the quilt. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1040. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. 'Aisha reported: I was sleeping in front of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) with my legs between him and the Qibla. When he prostrated himself he pinched me and I drew up my legs, and when be stood up, I stretched them out. She said: At that time there were no lamps in the houses. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1041. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. Maimuna, the wife of the Apostle (may peace be upon him), reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said prayer and I (lay) opposite to him while I was in menses. Sometimes his clothes touched me when he prostrated. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1042. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of the prayer and the way it is begun and the excellence of Ruku' and moderation in it and prostration and moderation in it, etc. 'Aisha reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said prayer at night and I was by his side in a state of menses and I had a sheet pulled over me a portion of which was on his side. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1043. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sutra for prayers. Abu Huraira reported: An inquirer asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) about the prayer in a single garment. He (the Holy Prophet) add: Has everyone of you two garments? Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1044. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sutra for prayers. A hadith like this has been narrated by Abu Huraira with another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1045. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sutra for prayers. Abu Huraira reported: A person addressed the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said to him: Can any one of us say prayer in one garment? He said: Do all of you possess two garments? Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1046. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sutra for prayers. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: None of you must pray in a single garment of which no part comes over his shoulders. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1047. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sutra for prayers. Umar b. Abu Salama reported: I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) praying in Umm Salama's house in a single garment, placing its two ends over his shoulders. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1048. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sutra for prayers. This hadith has been narrated by Hisham b. 'Urwa with the same chain of transmitters except (with this difference) that the word mutawashshihan was used and not the word mushtamilan . Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1049. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sutra for prayers. 'Umar b. Abu Salama reported: I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying prayer in the house of Umm Salama in a single garment with its extremities crossing each other. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1050. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sutra for prayers. Umar b. Abu Salama reported: I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) praying in a single garment with its ends crossing each other. 'Isa b. Hammad added: "placing on his shoulders". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1051. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sutra for prayers. Jabir reported: I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) praying in a single garment crossing the two ends. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1052. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sutra for prayers. This hadith has been narrated by Sufyan with the same chain of transmitters and in the hadith transmitted by Numair the words are: I called upon the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him)." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1053. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sutra for prayers. Abu Zubair reported that he saw Jabir b. 'Abdullah praying in a single garment crossing Its ends even though he had the garments, and Jabir said: He saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) doing like this. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1054. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sutra for prayers. Abu Sa'id al Khudri reported: I visited the Apostle (may peace be upon him) and saw him praying on a reed mat on which he was prostrating himself. And I saw him praying in a single garment with ends crossed with each other. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1055. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sutra for prayers. This hadith has been narrated by A'mash with the came chain of transmitters, and in the narration of Abu Karaib the words are: "Placing its (mantle's) ends on his shoulders"; and the narration transmitted by Abu Bakr and Suwaid (the words are): "the ends crossing with each other". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1056. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer in a single garment. Abu Dharr reported: I said: Messenger of Allah, which mosque was set up first on the earth? He said: Al-Masjid al-Haram (the sacred). I (again) said: Then which next? He said: It was the Masjid Aqsa. I (again) said: How long the space of time (between their setting up)? He (the Holy Prophet) said: It was forty years. And whenever the time comes for prayer, pray there, for that is a mosque; and in the hadith transmitted by Abu Kamil (the words are): "Whenever time comes for prayer, pray, for that is a mosque (for you)." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1057. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer in a single garment. Ibrahim b. Yazid al-Tayml reported: I used to read the Qur'an with my father in the vestibule (before the door of the mosque). When I recited the ayat (verses) concerning prostration, he prostrated himself. I said to him: Father, do you prostrate yourself in the path? He said: I heard Abu Dharr saying: I asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) about the mosque that was first set up on the earth. He said: Masjid Harim. I said: Then which next? He said: The Masjid al-Aqsa. I said: How long is the space of time between the two? He said: Forty years. He (then) further said: The earth is a mosque for you, so wherever you are at the time of prayer, pray there. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1058. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer in a single garment. Jabir b. 'Abdullah al-Ansari reported: The Prophet (may peace be upon him) said: I have been conferred upon five (things) which were not granted to anyone before me(and these are): Every apostle wasn't particularly to his own people, whereas I have been sent to all the red and the black the spoils of war have been made lawful for me, and these were never made lawful to anyone before me, and the earth has been made sacred and pure and mosque for me, so whenever the time of prayer comes for any one of you he should pray whenever he is, and I have been supported by awe (by which the enemy is overwhelmed) from the distance (which one takes) one month to cover and I have been granted intercession. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1059. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer in a single garment. Jabir b. 'Abdullah related that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said, and he related like this. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1060. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer in a single garment. Hudhaifa reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: We have been made to excel (other) people in three (things): Our rows have been made like the rows of the angels and the whole earth has been made a mosque for us, and its dust has been made a purifier for us in case water is not available. And he mentioned another characteristic too Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1061. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer in a single garment. Hudhaifa reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said like this. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1062. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer in a single garment. Abu Huraira reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I have been given superiority over the other prophets in six respects: I have been given words which are concise but comprehensive in meaning; I have been helped by terror (in the hearts of enemies): spoils have been made lawful to me: the earth has been made for me clean and a place of worship; I have been sent to all mankind and the line of prophets is closed with me. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1063. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer in a single garment. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I have been commissioned with words which are concise but comprehensive in meaning; I have been helped by terror (in the hearts of enemies): and while I was asleep I was brought the keys of the treasures of the earth which were placed in my hand. And Abfi Huraira added: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) has left (for his heavenly home) and you are now busy in getting them. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1064. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer in a single garment. Abu Huraira reported: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying a hadith like that of Yunus. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1065. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer in a single garment. This hadith has been narrated by Abu Huraira by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1066. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer in a single garment. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I have been helped by terror (in the heart of the enemy); I have been given words which are concise but comprehensive in meaning; and while I was asleep I was brought the keys of the treasures of the earth which were placed in my hand. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1067. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer in a single garment. Hammam b. Munabbih reported: That is what Abu Huraira reported to us from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he narrated (some) ahadith one of which is that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I have been helped by terror (in the hearts of enemies) and I have been given words which are concise but comprehensive in meaning. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1068. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mosques and the places of worship. Anas b. Malik reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to Medina and stayed in the upper part of Medina for fourteen nights with a tribe called Banu 'Amr b 'Auf. He then sent for the chiefs of Banu al-Najir, and they came with swords around their necks. He (the narrator) said: I perceive as if I am seeing the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on his ride with Abu Bakr behind him and the chiefs of Banu al-Najjar around him till he alighted in the courtyard of Abu Ayyub. He (the narrator) said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said prayer when the time came for prayer, and he prayed in the fold of goats and sheep. He then ordered mosques to be built and sent for the chiefs of Banu al-Najjar, and they came (to him). He (the Holy Prophet) said to them: O Banu al-Najjar, sell these lands of yours to me. They said: No, by Allah, we would not demand their price, but (reward) from the Lord. Anas said: There (in these lands) were trees and graves of the polytheists, and ruins. The Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) ordered that the trees should be cut, and the graves should be dug out, and the ruins should be levelled. The trees (were thus) placed in rows towards the qibla and the stones were set on both sides of the door, and (while building the mosque) they (the Companions) sang rajaz verses along with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him): O Allah: there is no good but the good of the next world, So help the Ansar and the Muhajirin. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1069. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mosques and the places of worship. Anas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to pray in the folds of the sheep and goats before the mosque was built. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1070. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mosques and the places of worship. Abu al-Tiyyah reported: I heard from Anas a narration like this from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1071. ------------------------------ Chapter : Building of the Prophet's Mosque in Medina. Al-Bara' b. 'Azib reported: I said prayer with the Apostle (may peace be upon him) turning towards Bait-ul-Maqdis for sixteen months till this verse of Surah Baqara wis revealed: "And wherever you are turn your faces towards it" (ii. 144). This verse was revealed when the Apostle (may peace be upon him) had said prayer. A person amongst his people passed by the people of Ansar as they were engaged in prayer. He narrated to them (this command of Allah) and they turned their faces towards the Ka'ba. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1072. ------------------------------ Chapter : Building of the Prophet's Mosque in Medina. Abu Ishaq reported: I heard al-Bara' saying: We prayed with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) (with our faces) towards Bait-ul-Maqdis for sixteen months or seventeen months. Then we were made to change (our direction) towards the Ka'ba. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1073. ------------------------------ Chapter : Building of the Prophet's Mosque in Medina. Ibn 'Umar reported: As the people were praying at Quba' a man came to them and said: It has been revealed to file Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) during the night and he has been directed to turn towards the Ka'ba. So turn towards it. Their faces were towards Syria and they turned round towards Ka'ba. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1074. ------------------------------ Chapter : Building of the Prophet's Mosque in Medina. Ibn 'Umar reported: As the people were engaged in the morning prayer a man came to them. The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1075. ------------------------------ Chapter : Building of the Prophet's Mosque in Medina. Anas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to pray towards Bait-ul-Maqdis, that it was revealed (to him): "Indeed We see the turning of the face to heaven, wherefore We shall assuredly cause thee to turn towards Qibla which shall please thee. So turn thy face towards the sacred Mosque (Ka'ba)" (ii. 144). A person from Banu Salama was going; (he found the people) in ruk'u (while) praying the dawn prayer and they had said one rak'ah. He said in a loud voice: Listen ! the Qibla has been changed and they turned towards (the new) Qibla (Ka'ba) in that very state. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1076. ------------------------------ Chapter : Change of Qibla from Bait-u'l-Manqdis to Ka'ba. 'Aisha reported: Umm Habiba and Umm Salama made a mention before the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) of a church which they had seen in Abyssinia and which had pictures in it. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When a pious person amongst them (among the religious groups) dies they build a place of worship on his grave, and then decorate it with such pictures. They would be the worst of creatures on the Day of judgment in the sight of Allah. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1077. ------------------------------ Chapter : Change of Qibla from Bait-u'l-Manqdis to Ka'ba. 'Aisha reported: They (some Companions of the Holy Prophet) were conversing with one another in the presence of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) (during his last) illness. Umm Salama and Umm Habiba made a mention of the church and then (the hadith was) narrated. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1078. ------------------------------ Chapter : Change of Qibla from Bait-u'l-Manqdis to Ka'ba. 'Aisha reported: The wives of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be Upon him) made a mention of the church which they had seen in Abyssinia which was called Marya, and the rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1079. ------------------------------ Chapter : Change of Qibla from Bait-u'l-Manqdis to Ka'ba. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said during his illness from which he never recovered: Allah cursed the Jews and the Christians that they took the graves of their prophets as mosques. She ('Aisha) reported: Had it not been so, his (Prophet's) grave would have been in an open place, but it could not be due to the fear that it may not be taken as a mosque. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1080. ------------------------------ Chapter : Change of Qibla from Bait-u'l-Manqdis to Ka'ba. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Let Allah destroy the Jews for they have taken the graves of their apostles as places of worship. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1081. ------------------------------ Chapter : Change of Qibla from Bait-u'l-Manqdis to Ka'ba. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Let there be curse of Allah upon the Jews and the Christians for they have taken the graves of their apostles as places of worship. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1082. ------------------------------ Chapter : Change of Qibla from Bait-u'l-Manqdis to Ka'ba. 'Aisha and Abdullah reported: As the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was about to breathe his last, he drew his sheet upon his face and when he felt uneasy, he uncovered his face and said in that very state: Let there be curse upon the Jews and the Christians that they have taken the graves of their apostles as places of worship. He in fact warned (his men) against what they (the Jews and the Christians) did. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1083. ------------------------------ Chapter : Change of Qibla from Bait-u'l-Manqdis to Ka'ba. Jundub reported: I heard from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) five days before his death and he said: I stand acquitted before Allah that I took any one of you as friend, for Allah has taken me as His friend, as he took Ibrahim as His friend. Had I taken any one of my Ummah as a friend, I would have taken Abu Bakr as a friend. Beware of those who preceded you and used to take the graves of their prophets and righteous men as places of worship, but you must not take graves as mosques; I forbid you to do that. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1084. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to build mosques on the graves and decorating them with pictures and forbiddance to use the graves as mosques. Ubaidullah al-Khaulini reported: 'Uthman b. 'Affan listened to the opinion of the people (which was not favourable) when he rebuilt the mosque of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Thereupon he said: You have not been fair to me for I have heard from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying: He who built a mosque for Allah, the Exalted, Allah would build for him a house in Paradise. Bukair said: I think he (the Holy Prophet) said: While he seeks the pleasure of Allah (by building the mosque). And in the narration of Ibn 'Isa (the words are): "(a house) like that (mosque) in Paradise." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1085. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to build mosques on the graves and decorating them with pictures and forbiddance to use the graves as mosques. Mahmud b. Labid reported: When 'Uthman b. 'Affan intended to build the mosque (of the Prophet) the people did not approve of it. They liked that it should be kept in the same state. Thereupon he said: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) say: He who built a mosque for Allah, Allah would build a house for him like it in Paradise. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1086. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of building the mosques and exhortation to it. Al-Aswad and 'Alqama reported: We came to the house of 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud. He said: Have these people said prayer behind you? We said: No. He said: Then stand up and say prayer. He neither ordered us to say Adhan nor Iqama. We went to stand behind him. He caught hold of our hands and mode one of us stand on his right hand and the other on his left side. When we bowed, we placed our hands on our knees. He struck our hands and put his hands together, palm to palm, then put them between his thighs. When he completed the prayer he said. There would soon come your Amirs, who would defer prayers from their appointed time and would make such delay that a little time is left before sunset. So when you see them doing so, say prayer at its appointed time and then say prayer along with them as (Nafl), and when you are three, pray together (standing in one row), and when you are more than three, appoint one amongst you as your Imam. And when any one of you bows he must place his hands upon his thighs and kneel down and putting his palms together place (them within his thighs). I perceive as if I am seeing the gap between the fingers of the Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1087. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of building the mosques and exhortation to it. This hadith is narrated on the authority of Alqama and Aswad by another chain of transmitters and in the hadith transmitted by Ibn Mus-hir and Jabir the words are: "I perceive as if I am seeing the gap between the fingers of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as he was bowing." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1088. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of building the mosques and exhortation to it. 'Alqama and Aswad reported that they went to 'Abdullah. He said: Have (people) behind you said prayer? They said: Yes. He stood between them ('Alqama and Aswad). One was on his right aide and the other was on his left. We then bowed and placed our hands on our knees. He struck our hands and then putting his hands together, palm to palm, placed them between his thighs. When he completed the prayer he said: This is how the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to do. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1089. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of building the mosques and exhortation to it. Mus'ab b. Sa'd reported: I said prayer by the side of my father and placed my hands between my knees. My father said to me: Place your hands on your knees. I repeated that (the previous act) for the second time, and he struck at my hands and said: We have been forbidden to do so and have been commanded to place our palms on the knees. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1090. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of building the mosques and exhortation to it. This hadith has been narrated by Abu Ya'fur with the same chain of transmitters up to these words: We have been forbidden from it and no mention of that has been made what follows it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1091. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of building the mosques and exhortation to it. Ibn Sa'd reported: I bowed and my hands were in this state, i.e. they were put together, palm to palm, and were placed between his thighs. My father said: We used to do like this but were later on commanded to place them on the knees. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1092. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of building the mosques and exhortation to it. Mus'ab b. Sa'd b. Abu Waqqas reported: I said prayer by the side of my father. When I bowed I intertwined my fingers and placed them between my knees. He struck my hands. When he completed the prayer he said: We used to do that but then were commanded to lift (our palms) to the knees. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1093. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the command of placing one's hands on the knees while in Ruku' and abrogation of al-Tatbiq. Tawus reported: We asked Ibn Abbas about sitting on one's buttocks (in prayer). (ala alqad mein)He said: It is sunnah. We said to him: We find it a sort of cruelty to the foot. Ibn 'Abbas said: It is the sunnah of your Apostle (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1094. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sitting on the buttocks. Mu'awiya b. al-Hakam said: While I was praying with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), a man in the company sneezed. I said: Allah have mercy on you ! The people stared at me with disapproving looks, so I said: Woe be upon me, why is it that you stare at me? They began to strike their hands on their thighs, and when I saw them urging me to observe silence (I became angry) but I said nothing. When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said the prayer (and I declare that neither before him nor after him have I seen a leader who gave better instruction than he for whom I would give my father and mother as ransom). I swear that he did not scold, beat or revile me but said: Talking to persons is not fitting during the prayer, for it consists of glorifying Allah, declaring his Greatness and recitation of the Qur'an or words to that effect. I said: Messenger of Allah. I was till recently a pagan, but Allah has brought Islam to us; among us there are men who have recourse to Kahins. He said, Do not have recourse to them. I said: There are men who take omens. That is something which they find in their breasts, but let it not turn their way (from freedom of action). I said: Among us there are men who draw lines. He said: There was a prophet who drew lines, so if they do it as they did, that is allowable. I had a maid-servant who tended goats by the side of Uhud and Jawwaniya. One day I happened to pass that way and found that a wolf had carried a goat from her flock. I am after all a man from the posterity of Adam. I felt sorry as they (human beings) feel sorry. So I slapped her. I came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and felt (this act of mine) as something grievous I said: Messenger of Allah, should I not grant her freedom? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Bring her to me. So I brought her to him. He said to her: Where is Allah? She said: He is in the heaven. He said: Who am I? She said: Thou art the Messenger of Allah. He said: Grant her freedom, she is a believing woman. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1095. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sitting on the buttocks. This hadith has been narrated by Yahya b. Abu Kathir with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1096. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sitting on the buttocks. Abdullah (b. Masu'd) reported: We used to greet the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) while he was engaged in prayer and he would respond to our greeting. But when we returned from the Negus we greeted him and he did not respond to us; so we said: Messenger of Allah, we used to greet you when you were engaged in prayer and you would respond to us. He replied: Prayer demands whole attention. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1097. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sitting on the buttocks. This hadith has been reported by A'mash with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1098. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sitting on the buttocks. Zaid b. Arqam reported: We used to talk while engaged in prayer and a person talked with a companion on his side in prayer till (this verse) was revealed: "And stand before Allah in devout obedience" (ii, 238) and we were commanded to observe silence (in prayer) and were forbidden to speak. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1099. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sitting on the buttocks. A hadith like this has been transmitted by Isma'il b. Abu Khalid. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1100. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sitting on the buttocks. Jabir reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sent me on an errand. I (having done the business assigned to me came back and) joined him as he was going (on a ride). Qutaiba said that he was saying prayer while he rode. I greeted him. He gestured to me. When he completed the prayer. he called me and said: You greeted me just now while I was engaged in prayer. (Qutaiba said): His (Prophet's face) was towards the east, as he was praying. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1101. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sitting on the buttocks. Jabir reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sent me (on an errand) while he was going to Banu Mustaliq. I came to him and he was engaged in prayer on the back of his camel. I talked to him and he gestured to me With his hand, and Zuhair gestured with his hand. I then again talked and he again (gestured to me with his hand). Zuhair pointed with his hand towards the ground. I heard him (the Holy Prophet) reciting the Qur'an and making a sign with his head. When he completed the prayer he said: What have you done (with regard to that business) for which I sent you? I could not talk with you but for the fact that I was engaged in prayer. Zuhair told that Abu Zubair was sitting with his face turned towards Qibla (as he transmitted this hadith). Abu Zuhair pointed towards Banu Mustaliq with his hand and the direction to which he pointed with his hand was not towards the Ka'ba. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1102. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sitting on the buttocks. Jabir reported: We were in the company of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and he sent me on an errand, and when I came back (I saw him) saying prayer on his ride and his face was not turned towards Qibla. I greeted him but he did not respond to me. As he completed the prayer, he said: Nothing prevented me from responding to your greeting but the fact that I was praying. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1103. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sitting on the buttocks. This hadith that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sent Jabir on an errand has been reported by him through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1104. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance of talking in prayer and abrogation of what was permissible. Abu Huraira reported that he heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying: A highly wicked one amongst the Jinn escaped yester-night to interrupt my prayer, but Allah gave me power over him, so I seized him and intended to tie him to one of the pillars of the mosque in order that you, all together or all, might look at him, but I remembered the supplication of my brother Sulaiman: "My Lord, forgive me, give me such a kingdom as will not be possible for anyone after me" (Al-Qur'an, xxxvii. 35). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1105. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance of talking in prayer and abrogation of what was permissible. This hadith has been transmitted by Ibn Abi Shaiba. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1106. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance of talking in prayer and abrogation of what was permissible. Abu Darda' reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) stood up (to pray) and we heard him say: "I seek refuge in Allah from thee." Then said: " curse thee with Allah's curse" three times, then he stretched out his hand as though he was taking hold of something. When he finished the prayer, we said: Messenger of Allah, we heard you say something during the prayer which we have not heard you say before, and we saw you stretch out your hand. He replied: Allah's enemy Iblis came with a flame of fire to put it in my face, so I said three times: "I Seek refuge in Allah from thee." Then I said three times: "I curse thee with Allah's full curse." But he did not retreat (on any one of these) three occasions. Thereafter I meant to seize him. I swear by Allah that had it not been for the supplication of my brother Sulaiman he would have been bound, and made an object of sport for the children of Medina. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1107. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is allowable to curse Satan during prayer and seek the protection (of the Lord) and minor acts (of commission) in prayer. Abu Qatadi reported: I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying the prayer while he was carrying Umama, daughter of Zainab, daughter of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and Abu'l-'As b. al-Rabi'. When he stood up, he took her up and when he prostrated he put her down, Yahya said: Malik replied in the affirmative. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1108. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is allowable to curse Satan during prayer and seek the protection (of the Lord) and minor acts (of commission) in prayer. Abu Qatada al-Ansari reported: I saw the Apostle (may peace be upon him) leading the people in prayer with Umima, daughter of Abu'l-'As and Zainab, daughter of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), on his shoulder. When he bowed, he put her down, and when he got up after prostration, he lifted her again. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1109. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is allowable to curse Satan during prayer and seek the protection (of the Lord) and minor acts (of commission) in prayer. Abu Qatada reported: I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) leading the people in prayer with Umama daughter of Abu'l-'As on his neck; and when he prostrated he put her down. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1110. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is allowable to curse Satan during prayer and seek the protection (of the Lord) and minor acts (of commission) in prayer. Abu Qatada reported: As we were sitting in the mosque, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to us, and the rest of the hadith is the same except that he made no mention that he led people in this prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1111. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of carrying children in prayer. Abu Hazim is reported on the authority of his father: Some people came to Sahl b. Sa'd and began to differ about the wood of which the (Prophet's pulpit was made. He (Sahl b. Sa'd) said: By Allah, I know of which wood it is made and who made it, and the day when I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) seated himself on it on the first day. I said to him: O Abu Abbas (kunyah of Sabl b. Sa'd), narrate to us (all these facts), He said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sent a person to a woman asking her to allow her slave, a carpenter, to work on woods (to prepare a pulpit) so that I should talk to the people (sitting on it). Abu Hazim said: He (Sahl b. Sa'd) pointed out the name of (that lady) that day. So he (the carpenter) made (a pulpit) with these three steps. Then the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) commanded it to be placed here (where it is lying now). It was fashioned out of the wood of al-Ghaba. And I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) standing upon it and glorifying Allah and the people also glorified Allah after him, while he was on the pulpit. He then raised (his head from prostration) and stepped back (on his heels) till he prostrated himself at the base of pulpit, and then returned (to the former place and this movement of one or two steps continued) till the prayer was complete. He then turned towards the people and said: O people, I have done it so that you should follow me and learn (my mode of) prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1112. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of carrying children in prayer. Abu Hazim reported: They (the people) came to Sahl b. Sa'd and they asked him of what thing the pulpit of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) was made, and the rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1113. ------------------------------ Chapter : The permissibility of moving two steps in the prayer. Abu Huraira reported from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) that he forbade keeping one's hand on one's waist while praying, and in the narration of Abu Bakr (the words are): The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) forbade to do so. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1114. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is not advisable to say prayer while keeping one's hand on one's waist. Mu'aiqib quoted the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) mentioning the removal of pebbles from the ground where he prostrated himself. He (the Prophet) said: It you must do so, do it only once. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1115. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is not advisable to say prayer while keeping one's hand on one's waist. Mu'aiqib said: They asked the Apostle (may peace be upon him) about the removal of (pebbles) in prayer, whereupon he said: If you do it, do it only once. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1116. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to remove pebbles and smooth the ground while engaged in prayer. Abdullah b. Umar reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saw spittle on the wall towards Qibla, and scratched it away and then turning to the people said: When any one of you prays, he must not spit in front of him, for Allah is in front of him when he is engaged in prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1117. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to remove pebbles and smooth the ground while engaged in prayer. Ibn Umar reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saw sputum sticking to the Qibla wall of the mosque, the rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1118. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to remove pebbles and smooth the ground while engaged in prayer. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) saw sputum sticking to the Qibla of the mosque. He scratched it off with a pebble and then forbade spitting on the right side or in front, but (it is permissible) to spit on the left side or under the left foot. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1119. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to remove pebbles and smooth the ground while engaged in prayer. Abu Huraira and Abu Sa'id narrated that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saw sputum, and the rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1120. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to remove pebbles and smooth the ground while engaged in prayer. 'Aisha reported: The Apostle of Allah (may, peace be upon him) saw spittle or snot or sputum, sticking to the wall towards Qibla and scratched it off. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1121. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to remove pebbles and smooth the ground while engaged in prayer. Abu Huraira reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saw some sputum in the direction of the Qibla of the mosque. He turned towards people and said: How Is it that someone amongst you stands before his Lord and then spits out in front of Him? Does any one of you like that he should be made to stand in front of someone and then spit at his face? So when any one of you spits, he must spit on his left side under his foot. But if he does not find (space to spit) he should do like this. Qasim (one of the narrators) spat in his cloth and then folded it and rubbed it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1122. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to remove pebbles and smooth the ground while engaged in prayer. Abu Huraira reported: I perceive as if I am looking at the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) folding up a part of his cloth with another one. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1123. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to remove pebbles and smooth the ground while engaged in prayer. Anas b. Malik reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When any one of you is engaged in prayer, he is holding intimate conversation with his Lord, so none of you must spit in front of him, or towards his right side, but towards his left side under his foot. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1124. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to remove pebbles and smooth the ground while engaged in prayer. Anas b. Malik reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Spitting in a mosque is a sin, and its expiation is that it should be buried. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1125. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to remove pebbles and smooth the ground while engaged in prayer. Shu'ba reported: I asked Qatada about spitting, in the mosque. He said: I heard Anas b. Malik say: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) say: Spitting in the mosque is a sin, and its expiation is that it should be buried. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1126. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to remove pebbles and smooth the ground while engaged in prayer. Abu Dharr reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The deeds of my people, good and bad, were presented before me, and I found the removal of something objectionable from the road among their good deeds, and the sputum mucus left unburied in the mosque among their evil deeds. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1127. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to remove pebbles and smooth the ground while engaged in prayer. Abdullah b. Shakhkhir reported on the authority of his father that he said: I said prayer with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and saw him spitting and rubbing it off with his shoe. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1128. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to remove pebbles and smooth the ground while engaged in prayer. 'Abdullah b. Shakhkhir narrated it on the authority of his father that he said prayer with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and he spat and then rubbed it off with his left shoe. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1129. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to spit in the mosque while engaged in prayer. Sa'd b. Yazid reported: I said to Anas b. Malik: Did the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) pray while putting on the shoes? He said: Yes. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1130. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to spit in the mosque while engaged in prayer. Sa'd b. Yazid Abu Mas'ama reported: I said to Anas like (that mentioned above). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1131. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of wearing shoes in prayers. 'Aisha reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) prayed in a garment which had designs over it, so he (the Holy Prophet) said: Take it to Abu Jahm and bring me a plain blanket from him, because its designs have distracted me. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1132. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of wearing shoes in prayers. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) stood for prayer with a garment which had designs over it. He looked at these designs and after completing the prayer said: Take this garment to Abu Jahm b. Hudhaifa and bring me a blanket for it has distracted me just now. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1133. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of wearing shoes in prayers. 'Aisha reported: The Apostle of Allah (way peace be upon him) had a garment which had designs upon it and this distracted him in prayer. He gave it to Abu Jahm and took a plain garment in its place which is known anbijaniya. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1134. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is not advisable to pray wearing a cloth which has designs or markings over it. Anas b. Malik reported the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying: When the supper is brought and the prayer begins, one, should first take food. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1135. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is not advisable to pray wearing a cloth which has designs or markings over it. Anas b. Malik reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When the supper is brought before you, and it is also the time to say prayer, first take food before saying evening prayer and do not hasten (to prayer, leaving aside the food). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1136. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is not advisable to pray wearing a cloth which has designs or markings over it. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Anas by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1137. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is not advisable to pray wearing a cloth which has designs or markings over it. Ibn 'Umar reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When the supper is served to any one of you and the prayer also begins. (in such a case) first take supper, and do not make haste (for prayer) till you have (taken the food). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1138. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is not advisable to pray wearing a cloth which has designs or markings over it. A hadith like this has been narrated from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) on the authority of Ibn 'Umar with another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1139. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is not advisable to pray wearing a cloth which has designs or markings over it. Ibn Atiq reported: Al-Qasim was in the presence of 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) that I narrated a hadith and Qasim was a man who committed errors in (pronouncing words) and his mother was a freed slave-girl. 'Aisha said to him: What is the matter with you that you do not narrate as this son of my brother narrated (the ahadith)? Well I know from where you picked it up. This is how his mother brought him up and how your mother brought you up. Qasim felt angry (on this remark of Hadrat 'Aisha) and showed bitterness towards her. When he saw that the table had been spread for 'Aisha, he stood up, 'Aisha, said: Where are you going? He said: (I am going) to say prayer. She said: Sit down (to take the food). He said: I must say prayer. She said: Sit down, faithless, for I have heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) say: No prayer can be (rightly said) when the food is there (before the worshipper), or when he is prompted by the call of nature. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1140. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is not advisable to pray wearing a cloth which has designs or markings over it. 'Abdullah b. 'Atiq narrated from the Apostle (may peace be upon him) on the authority of 'Aisha, but he made no mention of the account of Qasim. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1141. ------------------------------ Chapter : When food is brought before man and he is inclined to take it, he should not say prayer before eating it and undesirability of prayer while feeling the call of nature. Ibn 'Umar reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said during the battle of Khaybar: He who ate of this plant, i.e. garlic, should not come to the mosques. In the narration of Zubair, there is only a mention of "battle" and not of Khaybar. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1142. ------------------------------ Chapter : When food is brought before man and he is inclined to take it, he should not say prayer before eating it and undesirability of prayer while feeling the call of nature. Ibn 'Umar reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who eats of this (offensive) plant must not approach our mosque, till its odour dies: (plant signifies) garlic. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1143. ------------------------------ Chapter : When food is brought before man and he is inclined to take it, he should not say prayer before eating it and undesirability of prayer while feeling the call of nature. Ibn Suhaib reported: Anas was asked about the garlic; he stated that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said: He who eats of this plant (garlic) should not approach us and pray along with us. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1144. ------------------------------ Chapter : When food is brought before man and he is inclined to take it, he should not say prayer before eating it and undesirability of prayer while feeling the call of nature. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who eats of this plant (garlic) should not approach our mosque and should not harm us with the odour of garlic. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1145. ------------------------------ Chapter : When food is brought before man and he is inclined to take it, he should not say prayer before eating it and undesirability of prayer while feeling the call of nature. Jabir reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) forbade eating of onions and leek. When we were overpowered by a desire (to eat) we ate them. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) said: He who eats of this offensive plant must not approach our mosque, for the angels are harmed by the same things as men. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1146. ------------------------------ Chapter : When food is brought before man and he is inclined to take it, he should not say prayer before eating it and undesirability of prayer while feeling the call of nature. Jabir reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who eats garlic or onion should remain away from us or from our mosque and stay in his house. A kettle was brought to him which had (cooked) vegetables in it, He smelt (offensive) odour in it. On asking he was informed of the vegetables (cooked in it). He said: Take it to such and such Companion. When he saw it, he also disliked eating it. (Upon this), he (the Holy Prophet) said: You may eat it, for I converse with one with whom you do not converse. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1147. ------------------------------ Chapter : When food is brought before man and he is inclined to take it, he should not say prayer before eating it and undesirability of prayer while feeling the call of nature. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) Saying: He who eats of this (offensive) plant, i.e. garlic, and sometimes he said: He who eats onion and garlic and leek, should not approach our mosque for the angels are harmed by the same things as the children of Adam. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1148. ------------------------------ Chapter : When food is brought before man and he is inclined to take it, he should not say prayer before eating it and undesirability of prayer while feeling the call of nature. Ibn Juraij has narrated it with the same chain of transmitters: He who eats of this plant, i.e. garlic, should not come to us in our mosque, and he made no mention of onions or leek. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1149. ------------------------------ Chapter : When food is brought before man and he is inclined to take it, he should not say prayer before eating it and undesirability of prayer while feeling the call of nature. Abu Sa'id reported: We made no transgression but Khaybar was conquered. We, the Companions of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), fell upon this plant. i.e. garlic. because the people were hungry. We ate it to our heart's content and then made our way towards the mosque. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sensed its odour and he said: He who takes anything of this offensive plant must not approach us in the mosque. The people said: Its (use) has been forbidden; its (use) has been forbidden. This reached the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he said: O people, I cannot forbid (the use of a thing) which Allah has made lawful, but (this garlic) is a plant the odour of which is repugnant to me. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1150. ------------------------------ Chapter : When food is brought before man and he is inclined to take it, he should not say prayer before eating it and undesirability of prayer while feeling the call of nature. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) along with his Companions happened to pass by a field in which onions were sown. The people stopped there and ate out of that, but some of them did not eat. Then they (Prophet's Companions) went to him. He (first) called those who had not eaten the onions and kept the others (who had taken onions) waiting till its odour vanished. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1151. ------------------------------ Chapter : When food is brought before man and he is inclined to take it, he should not say prayer before eating it and undesirability of prayer while feeling the call of nature. Ma'dan b. Talha reported: 'Umar b. Khattab, delivered the Friday sermon and he made a mention of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and Abu Bakr. He (further) said: I saw in a dream that a cock pecked me twice, and I perceive that my death is near. Some people have suggested me to appoint my successor. And Allah would not destroy His religion. His caliphate and that with which He sent His Apostle (may peace be upon him) If death approaches me soon, the (issue) of Caliphate (would be decided) by the consent of these six men with whom the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) remained well pleased till his death. And I know fully well that some people would blame me that I killed with these very hands of mine some persons who apparently professed (Islam). And if they do this (blame me) they are the enemies of Allah, and are non-believers and have gone astray. And I leave not after me anything which to my mind seems more important than Kalala. And I never turned towards the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) (for guidance) more often than this Kalala, and he (the Holy Prophet) was not annoyed with me on any other (issue) than this: (And he was so perturbed) that he struck his fingers on my chest and said: Does this verse that is at the end of Surat al-Nisa', which was revealed in the hot season not suffice you? And if I live longer I would decide this (problem so clearly) that one who reads the Qur'an, or one who does not read it, would be able to take (correct),decisions (under its light). He ('Umar) further said: Allah ! I call You witness on these governors of lands, that I sent them to (the peoples of these lands) so that they should administer justice amongst them, teach them their religion and the Sunnah of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), and distribute amongst them the spoils of war and refer to me that which they find difficult to perform. O people, you eat these two plants and these are onions and garlic and I find them nothing but repugnant for I saw that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sensed the odour of these two from a person in a mosque, he was made to go to al-Baqi'. So he who eats it should (make its odour) die by cooking it well. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1152. ------------------------------ Chapter : When food is brought before man and he is inclined to take it, he should not say prayer before eating it and undesirability of prayer while feeling the call of nature. This hadith has been narrated by Qatada with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1153. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to eat garlic, onions and anything of offensive smell while coming to the mosque. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: If anyone bears a man crying out in the mosque about something lie has lost, he should say: May Allah not restore it to you, for the mosques were not built for this. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1154. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to eat garlic, onions and anything of offensive smell while coming to the mosque. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) saying like this. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1155. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to eat garlic, onions and anything of offensive smell while coming to the mosque. Sulaiman b. Buraida narrated it on the authority of his father that a man cried out in the mosque saying: Who had called out for the red camel? Upon this the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: May it not be restored to you! The mosques are built for what they are meant. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1156. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to eat garlic, onions and anything of offensive smell while coming to the mosque. Sulaiman b. Buraida reported on the authority of his father that when the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said prayer a man stood up and said: Who called for a red camel? (Upon this) the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: May it not be restored to you! The mosques are built for what they are meant. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1157. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to eat garlic, onions and anything of offensive smell while coming to the mosque. Ibn Buraida narrated it on the authority of his father that a Bedouin came when the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) had completed the morning prayer. He thrust his head in the door of the mosque, and then the hadith (as narrated above) was narrated. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1158. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to eat garlic, onions and anything of offensive smell while coming to the mosque. This hadith has been reported by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1159. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When any one of you stands up to pray, the devil comes to him and confuses him to that he does not know how much he has prayed. If any one of you h" such an experience he should perform two prostrations while sitting down (in qa'da). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1160. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. This hadith has been narrated by al-Zubri with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1161. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When there is a call to prayer the devil runs back breaking the wind so that he may not hear the call, and when the call is complete he comes back. And when the takbir is pronounced he again runs back, and when takbir is over he comes back and distracts a man saying: Remember such and such, remember such and such, referring to something the man did not have in his mind, with the result that he does not know how much he has prayed; so when any one of you is not sure how much he has prayed, he should perform two prostrations while sitting (qa'da). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1162. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The devil takes to his heels breaking wind when the prayer begins. and the rest is the same but with this addition: "He (the devil) makes him think of pleasant things (or things productive of enjoyment) and of the things wished for, and reminds him of such needs which he had forgotten." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1163. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. 'Abdullah b. Buhaina reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) led us two rak'ahs of prayer in one of the (obligatory) prayers and then got up and did not sit and the people stood up along with him. When he finished the prayer and we expected him to pronounce salutation, he said: "Allah is Most Great" while sitting and made two prostrations before salutation and then pronounced (the, final) salutation. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1164. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. 'Abdullah b. Buhaina al-Asadi, the ally of Abual-Muttalib, reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) stood up in the noon prayer (though) he hadith sit (after the two rak'ahs). When he completed the prayer he performed two prostrations and said, "Allah is the Most Great" in each prostration, while he was sitting before pronouncing salutation, and the people performed prostration along with him. That was a compensation for he had forgotten to observe jalsa (after two rak'ahs). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1165. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. 'Abdullah b. Malik Ibn Buhaina al-Asadi reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) stood up (at the end of two rak'ahs) when he had to sit and proceeded on with the prayer. But when he was at the end of the prayer, he performed a prostration before the salutation and then pronounced the salutation. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1166. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When any one of you is in doubt about his prayer and he does Dot know how much he has prayed, three or four (rak'ahs), he should cast aside his doubt and base his prayer on what he is sure of, then perform two prostrations before giving salutations. If he has prayed five rak'ahs, they will make his prayer an even number for him, and if he has prayed exactly four, they will be humiliation for the devil. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1167. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. This hadith has been narrated by Zaid b. Aslam with the same chain of transmitters and he said: He should perform two prostrations before the salutation, as it was mentioned by Sulaiman b. Bilal. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1168. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. 'Alqama narrated It on the authority of 'Abdullah (b. Mas'ud) who said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said the prayer; (the narrator added): He made some act of omission or commission when he pronounced salutation; it was said to him: Messenger of Allah, is there something new about (he prayer? He (the Holy Prophet) said: What is it? They said: You said prayer in such and such away. He (the narrator) said: He (the Holy Prophet) turned his feet and faced the Qibla and performed two prostrations and then pronounced salutations, and then turned his face towards us and said: If there is anything new about prayer (new command from the Lord) I informed you of that. But I am a human being and I forget as you forget, so when I forget, remind me, and when any one of you is in doubt about his prayer, he should aim at what Is correct. and complete his prayer in that respect and then make two prostrations. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1169. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. This hadith has been narrated by Mansur with the same chain of transmitters, with a slight modification of words. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1170. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. This hadith is reported by Mansur with the same chain of transmitters, but with these words: "He should aim at correct (prayer) and it is advisable." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1171. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. This hadith has been narrated by Mansur with the same chain of transmitters with the words: I, He should aim at what is correct and complete." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1172. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. This hadith has been narrated by Mansur with the same chain of transmitters and said: "He should aim at correctness and that is right." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1173. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. This hadith has been reported by Mansur with the same chain of transmitters and he said: "He should aim at what is according to him correct." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1174. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. This hadith has been narrated by Mansur and he said: "He should aim at correctness." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1175. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. 'Abdullah (b. Mas'ud) reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said five rak'ahs of the noon prayer and when he completed the prayer, It was said to him: Has there been (commanded) an addition In prayer? He said: What is it? They said: You have said five rak'ahs, so he performed two prostrations. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1176. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. Alqama reported: He (the Holy Prophet) had led them five rak'ahs in prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1177. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. Ibrahim b. Suwaid reported: 'Alqama led us in the noon prayer and be offered five rak'ahs; when the prayer was complete, the people said to him: Abu Shibl, you have offered five rak'ahs. He said: No, I have not done that. They said: Yes (you said five rak'ahs). He (the narrator) said: And I was sitting in a corner among people and I was just a boy. I (also) said: Yes, you have offered five (rak'ahs). He said to me: O, one-eyed, do you say the same thing? I said: Yes. Upon this he turned (his face) and performed two prostrations and then gave salutations, and then reported 'Abdullah as saying: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) led us in prayer and offered five rak'ahs. And as he turned away the people began to whisper amongst themselves. He (the Holy Prophet) said: What is the matter with you? They said: Has the prayer been extended? He said: No. They said: You have in fact said five rak'ahs. He (the Holy Prophet) then turned his back (and faced the Qibla) and performed two prostrations and then gave salutations and further said: Verily I am a human being like you, I forget just as you forget. Ibn Numair made this addition: "When any one of you forgets, he must perform two prostrations." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1178. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. 'Abdullah (b. Mas'ud) reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) led us five (rak'ahs in prayer). We said: Messenger of Allah, has the prayer been extended? He said: What is the matter? They said: You have said five (rak'ahs). He (the Holy Prophet) said: Verily I am a human being like you. I remember as you remember and I forget just as you forget. He then performed two prostrations as (compensation of) forgetfulness. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1179. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. 'Abdullah (b. Mas'ud) reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said prayer and he omitted or committed (something). Ibrahim (one of the narrators of this hadith) said: It is my doubt, and it was said: Messenger of Allah, has there been any addition to the prayer? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Verily I am a human being like you. I forget just as you forget so when any one of you forgets, he must perform two prostrations, and he (the Holy Prophet) was sitting and then the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) turned (his face towards the Qibla) and performed two prostrations. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1180. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) performed two prostrations for forgetfulness after salutation and talking. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1181. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. Abdullah reported: We prayed along with the Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) and he committed or omitted (something). Ibrahim said: By Allah, this is a misgiving of mine only. We said: Messenger of Allah, is there something new about the prayer? He (the Holy Prophet) said: No. We told him about what he had done. He (the Holy Prophet) said: When a man commits or omits (something in prayer), he should perform two prostrations, and he then himself performed two prostrations. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1182. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. Ibn Sirin reported Abu Huraira as saying: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) led us in one of the two evening prayers, Zuhr or 'Asr, and gave salutations after two rak'ahs and going towards a piece of wood which was placed to the direction of the Qibla in the mosque, leaned on it looking as if he were angry. Abu Bakr and Umar were among the people and they were too afraid to speak to him and the people came out in haste (saying): The prayer has been shortened. But among them was a man called Dhu'I-Yadain who said: Messenger of Allah, has the prayer been shortened or have you forgotten? The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) looked to the right and left and said: What was Dhu'I-Yadain saying? They said: He is right. You (the Holy Prophet) offered but two rak'ahs lie offered two (more) rak'ahs and gave salutation, then said takbir and prostrated and lifted (his head) and then said takbir and prostrated, then said takbir and lifted (his head). He (the narrator) says: It has been reported to me by Imran b. Husain that he said: He (their) gave salutation. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1183. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) led us in one of the evening prayers. And this hadith was narrated like one transmitted by Sufyan. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1184. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) led us in the 'Asr prayer and gave salutation after two rak'ahs. Dhu'l-Yadain (the possessor of long arms) stood up and said: Messenger of Allah, has the prayer been shortened or have you forgotten? The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Nothing like this has happened (neither the prayer has been shortened nor have I forgotten). He (Dhu'l-Yadain) said: Messenger of Allah, something has definitely happened. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) turned towards people and said: Is Dhu'l-Yadain true (in his assertion)? They said: Messenger of Allah, he is true. Then the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) completed the rest of the prayer and then performed two prostrations while he was sitting after salutation. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1185. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said two rak'ahs of the noon prayer and then gave salutation when a man from Band Sulaim came to him and said: Messenger of Allah, has the prayer been shortened, or have you forgotten? - and the rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1186. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. Abu Huraira reported: I offered with the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) the noon prayer and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) gave salutation after two rak'ahs. A person from Bani Sulaim stood up, and the rest of the hadith was narrated as mentioned above. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1187. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. 'Imran b. Husain reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said the afternoon prayer and gave the salutation at the end of three rak'ahs and then went into his house. A man called al-Khirbaq, who bad long aims, got up and went to him, and addressed him as Messenger of Allah and mentioned to him what he had done. He came out angrily trailing his mantle, and when he came to the people he said: Is this man telling the truth? They said: Yes. He then said one rak'ah and then gave salutation and then performed two prostrations and then gave salutation. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1188. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to cry out for finding out the lost thing in the mosque. Imran b. Husain reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said three rak'ahs of the 'Asr prayer and then got up and went to his apartment. A man possessing large arms stood up and said: Messenger of Allah, bias the player been shortened? He came out angrily, and said the rak'ah which he had omitted and then gave salutation, then performed two prostrations of forgetfulness and then gave salutation. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1198. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forgetfulness in prayer and prostration as compensation for it. Ibn 'Umar reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) while reciting the Qur'an recited its scarab containing sajda, and he performed prostration and we also prostrated along with him (but we were so overcrowded) that some of us could not find a place for our forehead (when prostrating ourselves). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1190. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forgetfulness in prayer and prostration as compensation for it. Ibn 'Umar reported: Sometimes the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) recited the Qur'an, and would pass by (recite) the verse of sajda and performed prostration and he did this along with us, but we were so crowded in his company that none of us could find a place for performing prostration, (and it was done on occasions) other than prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1191. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forgetfulness in prayer and prostration as compensation for it. Abdullah (b. 'Umar) reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) recited (Surat) al Najm and performed prostration during its recital and all those who were along with him also prostrated themselves except one old man who took a handful of pebbles or dust in his palm and lifted it to his forehead and said: This is sufficient for me. 'Abdullah said: I saw that he was later killed in a state of unbelief. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1192. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forgetfulness in prayer and prostration as compensation for it. 'Ta' b. Yasar reported that he had asked Zaid b. Thabit about recital along with the Imam, to which he said: There should be no recital along with the Imam in anything, and alleged that he recited: "By the star when it sets"(Surah Najm) before the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he did not prostrate himself. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1193. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forgetfulness in prayer and prostration as compensation for it. Abu Salama b. 'Abual-Rahman reported: Abu Huraira recited before them: "hen the heaven burst asunder" (Al-Qur'an, lxxxiv. 1) and performed prostration. After completing (the prayer) he informed them that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) has prostrated himself at it (this verse). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1194. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forgetfulness in prayer and prostration as compensation for it. A hadith like this has been narrated by AbuSalama on the authority of Abu Huraira. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1195. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forgetfulness in prayer and prostration as compensation for it. Abu Huraira reported: We performed prostration along with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) (as he recited these verses:) "When the heaven burst asunder" and "Read in the name of Thy Lord" (Al-Qur'an, xcvi. 1). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1196. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forgetfulness in prayer and prostration as compensation for it. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) prostrated himself (while reciting these verses). "When the heaven burst asunder"; "Read in the name of Thy Lord". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1197. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forgetfulness in prayer and prostration as compensation for it. A hadith like this has been transmitted by Abual-Rahman al-Araj on the authority of Abu Huraira. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1198. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forgetfulness in prayer and prostration as compensation for it. Abu Rafi' reported: I said the night prayer along with Abu Huraira and -as he recited: "When the heaven burst asunder," he performed prostration. I said to him: What prostration is this? He said: I prostrated myself (on this occasion of recital) behind Abu'I-Qasim (Muhammad, may peace be upon him), and I would go on doing this till I meet him (in the next world). Ibn 'Abu al-A'la said: (Abu Huraira uttered this:) I would not abandon performing prostration. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1199. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forgetfulness in prayer and prostration as compensation for it. This hadith has been narrated by Tamimi with the same chain of transmitters except for this that they made no mention of: "Behind Abu'l-Qasim" (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1200. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forgetfulness in prayer and prostration as compensation for it. Abu Rafi' reported: I saw Abu Huraira performing prostration (while reciting this verse:) "When the heaven burst asunder." I said to him: Do you prostrate yourself (while reciting) i? He said: Yes, I saw my best Friend (may peace be upon him) prostrating himself on (the recital of this verse) and I shall continue prostrating till I meet him. Shu'ba asked: Do you mean (by Friend) the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him)? He said: Yes. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1201. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prostration while reciting the Qur'an. Abdullah b. Zubair narrated on the authority of his father: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sat in prayer, he placed the left foot between his thigh and shank and stretched the right foot and placed his left hand or his left knee and placed his right hand on his right thigh, and raised his finger. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1202. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prostration while reciting the Qur'an. 'Abdullah b. Zubair narrated on the authority of his father that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sat for supplication, i.e. tashahhud (blessing and supplication), he placed his right hand on his right thigh and his left hand on his left thigh, and pointed with his forefinger, and placed his thumb on his (middle) finger, and covered his knee with the palm of his left hand.. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1203. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prostration while reciting the Qur'an. Ibn 'Umar reported that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sat for tashahhud he placed his left hand on his left knee and his right hand on his right knee and he raised his right finger, which is next to the thumb, making supplication in this way, and he stretched his left hand on his left knee. Another version on the authority of Ibn Umar says: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sat for tashahhud, he placed his left hand on his left knee and placed his right hand on his right knee, and he formed a ring like (fifty-three) and pointed with his finger of attestation. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1204. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prostration while reciting the Qur'an. 'Ali b. 'Abual-Rahman al-Mu'awi reported: 'Abdullah b. Umar saw me playing with pebbles during prayer. After finishing the prayer he forbade me (to do it) and said: Do as the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to do. I said: How did Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) do? He said that he (the Messenger of Allah) sat at tashahhud, placed his right palm on the right thigh and closed all his fingers and pointed with the help of finger next to the thumb, and placed his left palm on his right thigh. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1205. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prostration while reciting the Qur'an. This hadith has been narrated by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1206. ------------------------------ Chapter : How jalsa is to be observed. Abu Ma'mar reported: There was an Amir in Mecca who pronounced taslim twice. Abdullah said: Where did he get this sunnah? Al-Hakam said: There is a hadith to the effect that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) did like It. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1207. ------------------------------ Chapter : How jalsa is to be observed. 'Abdullah reported: An Amir or a person pronounced taslim twice. 'Abdullah said: Where did he get this sunnah? Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1208. ------------------------------ Chapter : How jalsa is to be observed. 'Amir b. Sa'd reported: I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be open him) pronouncing taslim on his right and on his left till I saw the whiteness of his cheek. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1209. ------------------------------ Chapter : Taslim at the completion of the prayer. Ibn 'Abbas said: We used to know that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had finished his prayer when we heard the takbir (Allah-O-Akbar). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1210. ------------------------------ Chapter : Taslim at the completion of the prayer. Ibn 'Abbas reported: We knew the finishing of the prayer of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) through takbir. 'Amr (b. Dinar) said: I made a mention of it to Abu Mas'ud, he rejected it and said: I never narrated it to you. 'Amr said: He did narrate it before this. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1211. ------------------------------ Chapter : Taslim at the completion of the prayer. Ibn 'Abbas reported: Dhikr (mentioning the name of Allah) in a loud voice after obligatory prayers was (a common practice) during the lifetime of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him); and when I heard that I came to knew that they (the people) had finished the prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1212. ------------------------------ Chapter : Dhikr after the prayer. 'Aisha reported: The Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) entered my house when a Jewess was with me and she was saying: Do you know that you would be put to trial in the grave? The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) trembled (on hearing this) and said: It is the Jews only who would-be put to trial. 'Aisha said: We passed some nights and then the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Do you know that it has been revealed to me: "You would be put to trial in the grave"? 'Aisha said: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) seeking refuge from the torment of the grave after this. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1213. ------------------------------ Chapter : Dhikr after the prayer. Abu Huraira reported. I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) seeking refuge from the torment of the grave after this (after the revelation). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1214. ------------------------------ Chapter : Dhikr after the prayer. 'Aisha reported: There came to me two old women from the old Jewesses of Medina and said: The people of the grave are tormented in their graves. I contradicted them and I did not deem it proper to testify them. They went away and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to me and I said to him: Messenger of Allah I there came to me two old women from the old Jewesses of Medina and asserted that the people of the graves would be tormented therein. He (the Prophet) said: They told the truth; they would be tormented (so much) that the animals would listen to it. She ('Aisha) said: Never did I see him (the Holy Prophet) afterwards but seeking refuge from the torment of the grave in prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1215. ------------------------------ Chapter : Dhikr after the prayer. Masruq reported this hadith on the authority of 'Aisha who said: Never did he (the Holy Prophet) say prayer after this in which I did not hear him seeking refuge from the torment of the grave. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1216. ------------------------------ Chapter : Dhikr after the prayer. 'Aisha reported: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) seeking refuge from the trial of Dajjal (Antichrist) in prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1217. ------------------------------ Chapter : Dhikr after the prayer. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) said: When any one of you utters tashahhud (in prayer) he must seek refuge with Allah from four (trials) and should thus say: "O Allah ! I seek refuge with Thee from the torment of the Hell, from the torment of the grave, from the trial of life and death and from the evil of the trial of Masih al-Dajjal" (Antichrist). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1218. ------------------------------ Chapter : Dhikr after the prayer. 'Aisha, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to supplicate in prayer thus: "O Allah ! I seek refuge with Thee from the torment of the grave, and I seek refuge with Thee from the trial of the Masih al-Dajjal (Antichrist) and I seek refuge with Thee from the trial of life and death. O Allah ! I seek refuge with Thee from sin and debt." She ('Aisha) reported: Someone said to him -(the Holy Prophet): Messenger of Allah ! why is it that you so often seek refuge from debt? He said: When a (person) incurs debt, (he is obliged) to tell lies and break promise. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1219. ------------------------------ Chapter : Dhikr after the prayer. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When any one of you completes the last tashahhud, he should seek refuge with Allah from four (trials) i.e. from the torment of Hell, from the torment of grave, from the trial of life and death.-and from the mischief of Masih at-Dajjal (Antichrist). This hadith has been narrated by al-Auza'i with the same chain of transmitters but with these words: "When any one of you completes the tashahhud" and he made no mention of the words "the last". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1220. ------------------------------ Chapter : Dhikr after the prayer. Abu Huraira reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: O Allah ! I seek refuge with Thee from the torment of the grave, and the torment of Hell, and the trial of life and death and the mischief of Masih al-Dajjal. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1221. ------------------------------ Chapter : Dhikr after the prayer. Abu Huraira reported the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: Seek refuge with Allah from the torment of Hell, seek refuge with Allah from the torment of the grave, and seek refuge with Allah from the trial of Masih al-Dajjal and seek refuge with Allah from the trial of life and death. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1222. ------------------------------ Chapter : Dhikr after the prayer. A hadith like this has been transmitted by Ibn Tawus from his father on the authority of AbuHuraira. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1223. ------------------------------ Chapter : Dhikr after the prayer. A hadith like this has been transmitted by A'raj on the authority of Abu Huraira. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1224. ------------------------------ Chapter : Dhikr after the prayer. Abu Huraira reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) use(t to seek refuge from the torment of the grave, torment of Hell and the trial of Dajjal. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1225. ------------------------------ Chapter : Dhikr after the prayer. Ibn 'Abbas reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) used to teach them this supplication (in the same spirit) with which he used to teach them a surah of the Qur'an. He would thus instruct us: "Say, O Allah I we seek refuge with Thee from the torment of Hell, and I seek refuge with Thee from the torment of the grave, and I seek refuge with Thee from the trial of Masih al-Dajjal and I seek refuge with Thee from the trial of life and death." Muslim b. Hajjaj said: It has reached me that Tawus said to his son: Did you make this supplication in prayer? He said: No. (Upon this) he (Tawus) said: Repeat the prayer. Tawus has narrated this hadith through three or four (transmitters) with words to the same effect. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1226. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of seeking refuge from the torment of the grave. Thauban reported: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) finished his prayer, he begged forgiveness three times and said: O Allah ! Thou art Peace, and peace comes from Thee; Blessed art Thou, O Possessor of Glory and Honour. Walid reported: I said to Auza'i: How Is the seeking of forgiveness? He replied: You should say: I beg forgiveness from Allah, I beg forgiveness from Allah." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1227. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of seeking refuge from the torment of the grave. 'Aisha reported: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) pronounced salutation, he salutation longer than it took him to say: O Allah: Thou art Peace, and peace comes from Thee, blessed art Thou, Possessor of Glory and ]Honour; and in the narration of Ibn Numair the words are: "O Possessor of Glory and Honour." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1228. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of seeking refuge from the torment of the grave. Ibn Numair narrated it with the same chain of transmitters and said: O Possessor of Glory and Honour. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1229. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of seeking refuge from the torment of the grave. A hadith like this has been transmitted by Abdullah b. Harith on the authority of 'Aisha except for the words that he (the Holy Prophet) used to say: " O Possessor of Glory and Honour." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1230. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of seeking refuge from the torment of the grave. Mughira b. Shu'ba wrote to Mu'awiya: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) finished the prayer and pronounced salutation he uttered (this supplication): "There is no god but Allah. He is alone, Who has no partner. To Him belongs the sovereignty and to Him praise is due and He is Potent over everything. O Allah! no one can withhold what Thou givest, or give what Thou withholdest, and the riches cannot avail a wealthy person with Thee." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1231. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of seeking refuge from the torment of the grave. A hadith like this has been narrated by Mughira b. Shu'ba with another chain of transmitters. Abu Bakr and Abu Kuraib narrated in their narration (that Warrad reported): Mughira gave me dictation of it and I wrote it to Mu'awiya. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1232. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of seeking refuge from the torment of the grave. Warrad, the freed slave of Mughira b. Shu'ba, reported: Mughira b. Shu'ba wrote to Mu'awiya (it was Warrad who wrote this letter for him, i.e. Mughira): I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying: "When the salutation is pronounced." and the rest of the hadith is the same except this that he made no mention of: "He is Potent over everything." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1233. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of seeking refuge from the torment of the grave. Warrad, the scribe of Mughira b. Shu'ba, reported: Mu'awiya wrote to Mughira (the contents) of the hadith as transmitted by Mansur and A'mash. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1234. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of seeking refuge from the torment of the grave. Warrad, the scribe of Mughira b. Shu'ba, reported: Mu'awiya wrote to Mughira: Write to me anything which you heard from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). So he (Mughira) wrote to him (Mu'awiya): I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) uttering (these words) at the completion of prayer: "There is no god but Allah. He is alone and there is no partner with Him. Sovereignty belongs to Him and to Him is praise due and He is Potent over everything. O Allah ! no one can withhold what Thou givest, or give what Thou withholdest, and riches cannot avail a wealthy person with Thee." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1235. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of seeking refuge from the torment of the grave. Abu Zubair reported: Ibn Zubair uttered at the end of every prayer after pronouncing salutation (these words): "There is no god but Allah. He is alone. There is no partner with Him. Sovereignty belongs to Him and He is Potent over everything. There is no might or power except with Allah. There is no god but Allah and we do not worship but Him alone. To Him belong all bounties, to Him belongs all Grace, and to Him is worthy praise accorded. There is no god but Allah, to Whom we are sincere in devotion, even though the unbelievers should disapprove it." (The narrator said): He (the Holy Prophet) uttered it at the end of every (obligatory) prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1236. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of seeking refuge from the torment of the grave. Abu Zubair reported: Abdullah b Zubair used to say La ilaha il-Allah at the end of every prayer like the hadith narrated by Ibn Numair and he reported it in the end, and then reported Ibn Zubair saying: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) uttered La ilaha il-Allah at the end of every prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1237. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of seeking refuge from the torment of the grave. Abu Zubair reported: I heard Abdullah b. Zubair addressing (people) on the pulpit and saying: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) pronounced salutation at the end of the prayer or prayers, and then he made a mention of the hadith as transmitted by Hisham b. 'Urwa. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1238. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of seeking refuge from the torment of the grave. Abu Zubair al-Makki reported that he had heard 'Abdullah b. Zubair uttering (the words) like that of the hadith (narrated above) at the end of the prayer after pronouncing salutation. He at the conclusion also said that he was making a mention of that from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1239. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of seeking refuge from the torment of the grave. Abu Huraira reported: The poor amongst the emigrants came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: The possessors of great wealth have obtained the highest ranks and the lasting bliss lie, (the Holy Prophet) said: How Is that? They said: They pray as we pray, and they observe fast as we observe fast, and they give charity but we do not give charity, and they set slaves free but we do not set slaves free. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Shall A not teach you something by which you will catch upon those who have preceded you, and get ahead of those who come after you, only those who do as you do being more excellent than you? They said: Yes, Messenger of Allah. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Extol Allah, declare His Greatness, and Praise Him thirty-three times after every prayer. Abu Salih said: The poor amongst the emigrants returned to the Messenger of Allah (may peace upon him) saying: Our brethren, the possessors, of property have heard what we have done and they did the same. So the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: This is Allah's Grace which He gives to whom He wishes. Sumayy reported: I made a mention of this hadith to some members of my family (and one of them) said: You have forgotten; he (the Holy Prophet) had said (like this):."Extol Allah thirty-three time, praise Allah thirty-three times and declare His Greatness thirty-three times. Ibn 'Ajjan said: I made a mention of this hadith to Raja' b. Haiwata and he narrated to me a hadith like this from AbuSalih from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on the authority of Abu Huraira. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1240. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of seeking refuge from the torment of the grave. Abu Huraira narrated it from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) that they (the poor among the emigrants) said: Messenger of Allah, the possessors of great wealth have obtained the highest ranks and lasting bliss, and the rest of the hadith is the same as transmitted by Qutaiba on the authority of Laith except that he inserted the words of Abu Salih in the narration of Abu Huraira that "the poor of the emigrants came back," to the end of the hadith,, but this addition was made that Suhail said (that every part of the supplication, i.e. Glorification of Allah, His Praise and declaration of His Greatness) should be uttered eleven times making the total as thirty-three. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1241. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of seeking refuge from the torment of the grave. Ka'b b. 'Ujra reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There are certain ejaculations, the repeaters of which or the performers of which after every prescribed prayer will never be caused disappointment: "Glory be to Allah " thirty-three times. "Praise be to Allah" thirty-three times, and "Allah is most Great" thirty-four times. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1242. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of seeking refuge from the torment of the grave. Ka'b b. 'Ujra reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There are certain ejaculations, the repeaters of which or the performers of which at the end of every prayer will never be caused disappointment: "Glory be to Allah" thirty-three times, "Praise be to Allah" thirty-three times, and "Allah is most Great" thirty-four times. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1243. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of seeking refuge from the torment of the grave. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: If anyone extols Allah after every prayer thirty-three times, and praises Allah thirty-three times, and declares His Greatness thirty-three times, ninety-nine times in all, and says to complete a hundred: "There is no god but Allah, having no partner with Him, to Him belongs sovereignty and to Him is praise due, and He is Potent over everything, " his sins will be forgiven even If these are as abundant as the foam of the sea. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1244. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of seeking refuge from the torment of the grave. This hadith has been narrated by Abu Huraira by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1245. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Dhikr after prayer and its description. Abu Huraira reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) used to observe, silence for a short while between the takbir (at the time of opening the prayer) and the recitation of the Qur'an. I said to him: Messenger of Allah, for whom I would give my father and mother in ransom, what do you recite during your period of silence between the takbir and the recitation? He said: I say (these words): " O Allah, remove my sins from me as Thou hast removed the East from the West. O Allah purify me from sins as a white garment is purified from filth. O Allah !wash away my sins with water, snow and hall." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1246. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Dhikr after prayer and its description. Abu Huraira reported that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) stood up for the second rak'ah he opened it with the recitation of the praise of Allah, the Lord of universe (al-Fatiha), and he did not observe silence (before the recitation of al-Fatiha). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1247. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Dhikr after prayer and its description. Anas reported: A man came panting and entered the row of worshippers and said: Praise be to Allah, much praised and blessed. When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) finished the prayer he said: Who amongst you uttered these words? The people remained silent. He (the Holy Prophet again said)-: Who amongst you uttered these words? He said nothing wrong. Then a man said: I came and had a difficulty in breathing, so I uttered them. He replied: I saw twelve angels facing one another as to who will take them up (to Allah). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1248. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Dhikr after prayer and its description. Ibn 'Umar reported: While we said prayer with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), one among the people said: Allah is truly Great, praise be to Allah in abundance. Glory be to Allah in the morning and the evening. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon, him) said: Who uttered such and such a word? A person among the people said: It is I, Messenger of Allah (who have recited these words). He (the Holy Prophet) said: It (its utterance) surprised me, for the doors of heaven were opened for It. Ibn 'Umar said: I have not abandoned them (these words) since I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying this. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1249. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited between Takbir Tahrima,and recitation of the Qur'an. Abu Huraira reported: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying: When the Iqama has been pronounced for prayer, do not go running to it, but go walking in tranquillity and pray what you are in time for, and complete what you have missed. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1250. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited between Takbir Tahrima,and recitation of the Qur'an. Abu Huraira reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When the words of Iqama are pronounced, do not come to (prayer) running, but go with tranquillity, and pray what you are in time for, and complete (what you have missed) for when one of you is preparing for prayer he is in fact engaged in prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1251. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited between Takbir Tahrima,and recitation of the Qur'an. Abu Huraira reported ahadith from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and one of them is that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon), said: When the call is made for prayer come to it walking with tranquillity, and pray what you are in time for, and complete what you have missed. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1252. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited between Takbir Tahrima,and recitation of the Qur'an. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When the words of Iqama are pronounced, none of you should run to it (to join the prayer) but walk with tranquillity and dignity, and pray what you are in time for and complete what has gone before (what the Imam has completed). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1253. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited between Takbir Tahrima,and recitation of the Qur'an. Abdullah b. Abu Qatada reported on the authority of his father: While we said our prayer with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) he heard tumult. (At the end of the prayer) he (the Holy Prophet) said: What is the matter with you? They said: We hastened to prayer. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Don't do that; when you come for prayer, there should be tranquillity upon you. Pray (along with the Imam) what you can find and complete what preceded you. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1254. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited between Takbir Tahrima,and recitation of the Qur'an. This hadith has been narrated by Shaiban with the same chain of transmitters Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1255. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of going to prayer with dignity and tranquillity and forbiddance of going to it in hot haste. Abu Qatada reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When the Iqama is pronounced do not get up till you see me Ibn Hatim was in doubt whether it was said: "When the Iqama is pronounced" or "When call is made". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1256. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of going to prayer with dignity and tranquillity and forbiddance of going to it in hot haste. Abu Salama son of Abd al-Rahman b. Auf reported Abu Huraira as saying: Iqama was pronounced and we stood up and made rows straight till he (the Holy Prophet) stood at his place of worship (the place ahead of the rows where he stood to lead the prayer) before takbir tahrima. He reminded to (himself something) and went back saying that we should stand at our places and not leave them. We waited, till he came back to us and he had taken a bath and water trickled out of his head and then led us in prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1257. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of going to prayer with dignity and tranquillity and forbiddance of going to it in hot haste. Abu Salama reported Abu Huraira as saying: Iqama was pronounced. ant the people had formed themselves into rows. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came out and stood at his place, and then pointed out with his hand that we should stand at our places. He then went away and took a bath and water trickled from his head and then led them in prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1258. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of going to prayer with dignity and tranquillity and forbiddance of going to it in hot haste. Abu Salama reported on the authority of Abu Huraira that when Iqama was pronounced for the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), the people occupied their places in the rows before the Apostle of Allah (way peace be upon him) stood up at his place. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1259. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of going to prayer with dignity and tranquillity and forbiddance of going to it in hot haste. Jabir b. Samura reported: Bilal summoned to prayer as the sun declined but did not pronounce Iqama till the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) came out and the Iqama was pronounced on seeing him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1260. ------------------------------ Chapter : When should the people stand up for prayer. Abu Huraira reported the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who finds a rak'ah of the prayer, he in fact finds the prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1261. ------------------------------ Chapter : When should the people stand up for prayer. Abu Huraira reported the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who finds one rak'ah of the prayer with the Imam, he in fact finds the prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1262. ------------------------------ Chapter : When should the people stand up for prayer. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Malik and there is no mention of "along with the Imam" and In the hadith transmitted by Abdullah the words are: "he in fact finds the entire prayer". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1263. ------------------------------ Chapter : When should the people stand up for prayer. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who finds one rak'ah at dawn before the rising of the sun, he in fact finds the dawn prayer and he who finds one rak'ah of the afternoon prayer before sunset, he in fact finds the afternoon prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1264. ------------------------------ Chapter : When should the people stand up for prayer. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who finds a prostration before sunset or at dawn (prayer) before the rising (of the sun) he Id fact finds that (prayer), and prostration implies a rak'ah. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1265. ------------------------------ Chapter : When should the people stand up for prayer. This hadith is narrated by Abu Huraira with another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1266. ------------------------------ Chapter : When should the people stand up for prayer. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who finds (gets) a rak'ah of the afternoon (prayer) before the setting of the sun, he in fact gets (the full prayer), and he who gets a rak'ah of the morning (prayer) before the rising of the sun he in fact gets (the full prayer). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1267. ------------------------------ Chapter : When should the people stand up for prayer. This hadith has been reported by Ma'mar with another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1268. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who came up with the Rak'ah, he in fact came up with the prayer (led in congregation with the Imam). Ibn Shibab reported: 'Umar b. 'Abd al-'Aziz deferred the afternoon prayer somewhat and 'Urwa said to him: Gabriel came down and he led the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) in prayer. 'Umar said to him: O 'Urwa, are you aware of what you are saying? Upon this he ('Urwa) said: I heard Bashir b. Abu Mas'ud say that he heard Abu Mas'ud say that he heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) say: Gabriel came down and acted as my Imam, then I prayed with him, then I prayed with him, then I prayed with him. then I prayed with him, then I prayed with him, reckoning with his fingers five times of prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1269. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who came up with the Rak'ah, he in fact came up with the prayer (led in congregation with the Imam). Ibn Shibab reported: Umar b. 'Abd al-'Aziz one day deferred the prayer. 'Urwa b. Zubair came to him and informed him that one day as Mughira b. Shu'ba was in Kufa (as its governor), he deferred the prayer, Abu Mas'ud al-Ansari came to him and said: What is this, O Mughira? Did you know that it was Gabriel who came and said prayer and (then) the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said the prayer (along with him), then (Gabriel) prayed and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) also prayed, then (Gabriel) prayed and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) also prayed, then (Gabriel) prayed and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) prayed (along with him), then Gabriel prayed and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) also prayed (along with him) and then said: This is how I have been ordered to do. 'Umar (b. 'Abd al-'Aziz) said: O 'Urwa be mindful of what you are saying that Gabriel (peace be upon him) taught the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) the times of prayer. Upon this 'Urwa said: This is how Bashir b. Abu Mas'ud narrated on the authority of his father and (also said): 'Aisha?, the wife of the Apostle (may peace be upon him) narrated it to me that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to say the afternoon prayer, when the light of the sun was there in her apartment before it went out (of it). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1270. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who came up with the Rak'ah, he in fact came up with the prayer (led in congregation with the Imam). 'Aisha reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said the afternoon" prayer as the sun shone in my apartment, and the afternoon shadow did not extend further. Abu Bakr said: The afternoon shadow did not appear to extend further. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1271. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who came up with the Rak'ah, he in fact came up with the prayer (led in congregation with the Imam). 'Aisha, the wife of the Apostle (may peace be upon him), said that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said the afternoon prayer (at the time) when the sun shone in her apartment and its shadow did not extend beyond her apartment. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1272. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who came up with the Rak'ah, he in fact came up with the prayer (led in congregation with the Imam). 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said the afternoon prayer (at a time) when the (light) of the sun was there in my apartment. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1273. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who came up with the Rak'ah, he in fact came up with the prayer (led in congregation with the Imam). Abdullah b. 'Amr reported the Apostle (may peace be upon him) saying: The time of the noon prayer(lasts)as long as it is not afternoon, and the time of the afternoon prayer (lasts) as long as the sun does not turn pale and the time of the evening prayer (lasts) as long as the spreading appearance of the redness above the horizon after sunset does not sink down, and the, time of the night prayer (lasts) by midnight and the time of the morning prayer (lasts) as long as the sun dots not rise. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1274. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who came up with the Rak'ah, he in fact came up with the prayer (led in congregation with the Imam). Abu Bakr b Abu Shaiban and Yahya b Abu Bukair both of them narrated this hadith with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1275. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who came up with the Rak'ah, he in fact came up with the prayer (led in congregation with the Imam). 'Abdullah b. 'Amr reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The time of the noon prayer is when the sun passes the meridian and a man's shadow is the same (length) as his height, (and it lasts) as long as the time for the afternoon prayer has not come; the time for the afternoon prayer is as long as the sun has not become pale; the time of the evening prayer is as long as the twilight has not ended; the time of the night prayer is up to the middle of the average night and the time of the morning prayer is from the appearance of dawn, as long as the sun has not risen; but when the sun rises, refrain from prayer for it rises between the horns of the devil. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1276. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who came up with the Rak'ah, he in fact came up with the prayer (led in congregation with the Imam). 'Abdullah b. 'Amr b. al-'As reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was asked about the times of prayers. He said: The time for the morning prayer (lasts) as long as the first visible part of the rising sun does not appear and the time of the noon prayer is when the sun declines from the zenith and there is not a time for the afternoon prayer and the time for the afternoon prayer is so long as the sun does not become pale and its first visible part does not set, and the time for the evening prayer is that when the sun disappears and (it lasts) till the twilight is no more and the time for the night prayer is up to the midnight. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1277. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who came up with the Rak'ah, he in fact came up with the prayer (led in congregation with the Imam). 'Abdullah narrated it on the authority of his father Yahya: Knowledge cannot be acquired with sloth. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1278. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who came up with the Rak'ah, he in fact came up with the prayer (led in congregation with the Imam). Sulaiman b. Buraida narrated it on the authority of his father that a person asked the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) about the time of prayer. Upon this he said: Pray with us these two, meaning two days. When the sun passed the meridian, he gave command to Bilal who uttered the call to prayer, then lie commanded him and pronounced Iqama for noon prayer (Then at the tine of the afternoon prayer) he again commanded and Iqama for the afternoon prayer was pronounced when the sun was high, white and clear. He then commanded and Iqama for the evening prayer was pronounced, when the sun had set. He then commanded him and the Iqama for the night prayer was pronounced When the twilight had disappeared. He then commanded him and the Iqama for the morning prayer was pronounced, when the dawn had appeared. When it was the next day, he commanded him to delay the noon prayer till the extreme heat had passed and he did so, and he allowed it to be delayed till the extreme heat had passed. He observed the afternoon prayer when the sun was high, delaying it beyond the time he had previously observed it. He observed the evening prayer before the twilight had vanished; he observed the night prayer when a third of the night had passed; and he observed the dawn prayer when there was clear daylight. He (the Holy Prophet) then said: Where is the man who inquired about the time of prayer? He (the inquirer) said: Messenger of Allah I here I am. He (the Holy Prophet) said: The time for your prayer is within the limits of what you have seen. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1279. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who came up with the Rak'ah, he in fact came up with the prayer (led in congregation with the Imam). Buraida narrated on the authority of his father that a man came to the Prophet (may peace be upon him) and asked about the times of prayer. He said: You observe with us the prayer. He commanded Bilal, and he uttered the call to prayer in the darkness of night preceding daybreak and he said the morning prayer till dawn had appeared. He then commanded him (Bilal) to call for the noon prayer when the sun had declined from the zenith. He then commanded him (Bilal) to call for the afternoon prayer when the sun was high. He then commanded him for the evening prayer when the sun had set. He then commanded him for the night prayer when the twilight had disappeared. Then on the next day he commanded him (to call for prayer) when there was light in the morning. He then commanded him (to call) for the noon prayer when the extreme heat was no more. He then commanded him for the afternoon prayer when the sun was bright and clear and yellowness did not blend with it. He then commanded him to observe the sunset prayer. He then commanded him for the night prayer when a third part of the night bad passed or a bit less than that. Harami (the narrator of this hadith) was in doubt about that part of the mentioned hadith which concerned the portion of the night. When it was dawn, he (the Holy Prophet) said: Where is the inquirer (who inquired about the times of prayer and added): Between (these two extremes) is the time for prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1280. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who came up with the Rak'ah, he in fact came up with the prayer (led in congregation with the Imam). Abu Musa narrated on the authority of his father that a person came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) for inquiring about the times of prayers. He (the Holy Prophet) gave him no reply (because he wanted to explain to him the times by practically observing these prayers). He then said the morning player when it was daybreak, but the people could hardly recognise one another. He then commanded and the Iqama for the noon prayer was pronounced when the tan had passed the meridian and one would say that it was midday but he (the Holy Prophet) knew batter than them. He then again commanded and the Iqama for the afternoon prayer was pronounced when the sun was high. He then commanded and Iqama for the evening prayer was pronounced when the sun had sunk. He then commanded and Iqama for the night prayer was pronounced when the twilight had disappeared. He then delayed the morning prayer on the next day (so much so) that after returning from it one would say that the sun had risen or it was about to rise. He then delayed the noon prayer till it was near the time of afternoon prayer (as it was observed yesterday). He then delayed the afternoon prayer till one after returning from it would say that the sun had become red. He then delayed the evening prayer till the twilight was about to disappear. He then delayed the night prayer till it was one-third of the night. He then called the inquirer in the morning and said: The time for prayers is between these two extremes). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1281. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who came up with the Rak'ah, he in fact came up with the prayer (led in congregation with the Imam). Abu Musa reported on the authority of his father that an Inquirer came to the Prophet (may peace be upon him) and asked him about the times of prayers, and the rest of the hadith is the same (as narrated above) but for these words: "On the second day he (the Holy Prophet) observed the evening prayer before the disappearance of the twilight." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1282. ------------------------------ Chapter : Times of prayer. Abu Huraira reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) said: When it is very hot, say (the noon prayer) when the extreme beat passes away, for intensity of beat is from the exhalation of Hell. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1283. ------------------------------ Chapter : Times of prayer. Another hadith like this has been transmitted by Abu Huraira. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1284. ------------------------------ Chapter : Times of prayer. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When it is a hot day, (delay) the prayer till the extreme heat passes away, for the intensity of heat is from the exhalation of Hell. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1285. ------------------------------ Chapter : Times of prayer. Abu Huraira reported: Refrain from saying (the noon prayer) till the extreme heat passes away, for the Intensity of heat is from the exhalation of Hell. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1286. ------------------------------ Chapter : Times of prayer. Abu Huraira narrated this hadith from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be up on him) by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1287. ------------------------------ Chapter : Times of prayer. Abu Huraira reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: This heat is from the exhalation of Hell-fire, so delay the prayer till it is cool. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1288. ------------------------------ Chapter : Times of prayer. Hammam b. Munabbih reported: This is what Abu Huraira narrated to us from the Holy Prophet and he transmitted some ahadith-one of them was that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Let the heat become less severe before prayer, for the intensity of heat is from the exhalation of Hell. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1289. ------------------------------ Chapter : Times of prayer. Abu Dharr reported: The Mu'adhdin (the announcer of the hour of prayer) of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) called for the noon prayer. Upon this the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Let it cool down, let it cool down, or he said: Wait, wait for the intensity of heat is from the exhalation of Hell. When the heat is intense, delay the prayer till it becomes cooler. Abu Dharr said: (We waited) till we saw the shadow of the mounds. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1290. ------------------------------ Chapter : Times of prayer. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The Fire made a complaint before the Lord saying: "O Lord, some parts of mine have consumed the others." So it was allowed to take two exhalations, one exhalation in winter and the other exhalation in summer. That is why you find extreme heat (in summer) and extreme cold (in winter). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1291. ------------------------------ Chapter : Times of prayer. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When it is hot, make delay (in the noon prayer) till it cools down, for the intensity of beat is from the Exhalation of Hell; and lie also mentioned that the Hellfire complained to the Lord (about the congested atmosphere) and so it was permitted to take two exhalation during the whole year, one exhalation during the winter and one exhalation during the summer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1292. ------------------------------ Chapter : Times of prayer. Abu Huraira reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The Fire said to the Lord: O Lord! some parts of mine have consumed the others, so allow me to exhale (in order to find some relief from this congestion). It was granted permission to take two exhalations, one exhalation during the winter and the other exhalation during the summer So whatever you perceive in the form of intense cold or hurting cold is from the exhalation of Hell. And whatever you perceive in the form of extreme heat or intense beat is from the exhalation of Hell. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1293. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of saying the noon prayer when the extreme heat is over. Jabir b. Samura reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to offer the noon prayer when the sun declined. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1294. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of saying the noon prayer when the extreme heat is over. Khabbab reported: We complained to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) (the difficulty of) saying prayer on the intensely heated (ground or sand), but he paid no heed to our complaint. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1295. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of saying the noon prayer when the extreme heat is over. Khabbab reported: We came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and we complained to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) about (saying prayer) on the extremely heated ground (or sand), but he paid no heed to us. Zuhair said: I asked Abu Ishaq whether it was about the noon prayer. He said: Yes. I again said whether it concerned the (offering) of the noon (prayer) in earlier hours. He said: Yes. I said: Did it concern expediting it? He said: Yes. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1296. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of saying the noon prayer when the extreme heat is over. Anas b. Malik reported: We used to say (the noon prayer) with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) in the intense heat, but when someone amongst us found it hard to place his forehead on the ground, he spread his cloth and prostrated on it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1297. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of observing the noon prayer at the earlier hour (of times prescribed for it) when there is no intense heat. Anas b. Malik reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to pray the afternoon prayer when the sun was high and bright, then one would go off to al-'Awali and get there while the sun was still high. Ibn Qutaiba made no mention of "one would go off to al-'Awali". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1298. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of observing the noon prayer at the earlier hour (of times prescribed for it) when there is no intense heat. This hadith that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to offer the afternoon prayer like the one narrated above has been transmitted by Anas b. Malik by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1299. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of observing the noon prayer at the earlier hour (of times prescribed for it) when there is no intense heat. Anas b. Malik reported: We used to offer the 'Asr prayer, then one would go to Quba' and reach there and the sun would be still high. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1300. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of observing the noon prayer at the earlier hour (of times prescribed for it) when there is no intense heat. Anas b. Malik reported: We used to offer the afternoon prayer (at such a time) that a person would go to Bani 'Amr b. Auf and he would find them busy offering the afternoon prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1301. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of observing the noon prayer at the earlier hour (of times prescribed for it) when there is no intense heat. 'Ala' b. 'Abd al-Rahman reported that they came to the house of Anas b. Malik in Basra after saying the noon prayer. His (Anas) house was situated by the side of the mosque. As revisited him he (Anas) said: Have you said the afternoon prayer? We said to him: It is just a few minutes before that we finished the noon prayer. He said: Offer the afternoon prayer. So we stood up and said our prayer. And when we completed it, he said: I have heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying: This is how the hypocrite prays: he sits watching the sun, and when it is between the horns of devil, he rises and strikes the ground four times (in haste) mentioning Allah a little during it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1302. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of observing the noon prayer at the earlier hour (of times prescribed for it) when there is no intense heat. Abu Umama b. Sahl reported: We offered the noon prayer with Umar b. 'Abd al-'Aziz. We then set out till we came to Anas b. Malik and found him busy in saying the afternoon prayer. I said to him: O uncle! which is this prayer that you are offering? He said: It is the afternoon prayer and this is the prayer of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) that we offered along with him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1303. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of observing the noon prayer at the earlier hour (of times prescribed for it) when there is no intense heat. Anas b. Malik reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) led us in the afternoon prayer. When he completed it, a person from Bani Salama came to him and said: Messenger of Allah, we intend to slaughter our came and we are desirous that you should also be present there (on this occasion). He (the Holy Prophet) said: Yes. He (the person) went and we also went along with him and we found that the camel had not been slaughtered yet. Then it was slaughtered, and it was cut into pieces and then some of those were cooked, and then we ate (them) before the setting of the sun. This hadith has also been narrated by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1304. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of observing the noon prayer at the earlier hour (of times prescribed for it) when there is no intense heat. Rafi' b. Khadij reported: We used to say the afternoon prayer with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and then the camel was slaughtered and ten parts of it were distributed; then it was cooked and then we ate this cooked meat before the sinking of the sun. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1305. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of observing the noon prayer at the earlier hour (of times prescribed for it) when there is no intense heat. This hadith has been reported by 'Auza'i with the same chain of transmitters: We used to slaughter the camel during the lifetime of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) after the 'Asr prayer, but he made no mention of: "We used to pray along with him." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1306. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for saying the 'Asr prayer at the commencement of the prescribed time. Ibn Umar reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who misses the afternoon prayer, it is as though he has been deprived of his family and his property. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1307. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for saying the 'Asr prayer at the commencement of the prescribed time. This hadith has been narrated as Marfu by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1308. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for saying the 'Asr prayer at the commencement of the prescribed time. Abdullah relates on the authority of his father. He who missed his afternoon prayer it is as though he was deprived of his family and property. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1309. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for saying the 'Asr prayer at the commencement of the prescribed time. 'Ali reported: When it was the day (of the Battle) of Ahzab, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: May Allah fill their graves and houses with fire, as they detained us and diverted us from the middle prayer, till the sun set. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1310. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for saying the 'Asr prayer at the commencement of the prescribed time. This hadith has been narrated by Hisham with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1311. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for saying the 'Asr prayer at the commencement of the prescribed time. 'Ali reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: On the day (of the Battle) of Ahzab we were diverted from the middle prayer, till the sun set. May Allah fill their graves or their houses, or their stomachs with fire. The narrator is in doubt about "houses" and "stomachs". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1312. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for saying the 'Asr prayer at the commencement of the prescribed time. This hadith has heed narrated by Qatada with the same chain of transmitters. And he said: Their houses and their graves (be filled with fire), and did not express doubt over the words, "houses" and "graves". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1313. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for saying the 'Asr prayer at the commencement of the prescribed time. Yahya heard 'Ali saying that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said on the day (of the Battle) of Ahzab, while sitting in one of the openings of the ditch: They (the enemies) have diverted us from the middle prayer till the sun set. May Allah fill their graves and their houses with fire, or their graves and stomachs with fire. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1314. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for saying the 'Asr prayer at the commencement of the prescribed time. 'Ali reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said on the day (of the Battle) of Ahzab: They diverted us from saying the middle prayer, i.e. the 'Asr prayer. May Allah fill their houses and graves with fire; he then observed this prayer between the evening prayer and the night prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1315. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for saying the 'Asr prayer at the commencement of the prescribed time. 'Abdullah (b. Mas'ud) reported that the polytheists detained the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) from observing the afternoon prayer till the sun became red or it became yellow. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: They have diverted us from (offering) the middle prayer i.e. the 'Asr prayer. May Allah fill their bellies and their graves with fire, or he said: May Allah stuff their bellies and their graves with fire. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1316. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for saying the 'Asr prayer at the commencement of the prescribed time. Abu Yunus, the freed slave of 'Aisha said: 'Aisha ordered me to transcribe a copy of the Qur'an for her and said: When you reach this verse: "Guard the prayers and the middle prayer" (ii. 238), inform me; so when I reached it, I informed her and she gave me dictation (like this): Guard the prayers and the middle prayer and the afternoon prayer, and stand up truly obedient to Allah. 'Aisha said: This is how I have heard from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1317. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for saying the 'Asr prayer at the commencement of the prescribed time. Al-Bara' b. 'Azib reported: This verse was revealed (in this way): "Guard the prayers and the 'Asr prayer." We recited it (in this very way) so long as Allah desired. Allah, then, abrogated it and it was revealed: "Guard the prayers, and the middle prayer." A person who was sitting with Shaqiq (one of the narrators in the chain of transmitters) said: Now it implies the 'Asr prayer. Upon this al-Bara' said: I have already informed you how this (verse) was revealed and how Allah abrogated it, and Allah knows best. Imam Muslim said: Ashja'i narrated it from Sufyan al-Thauri, who narrated it from al-Aswad b. Qais, who narrated it from 'Uqba, who narrated it from al-Bara' b. 'Azib who said: We recited with the Prophet (may peace be upon him) (the above-mentioned verse like this, i.e. instead of Salat al-Wusta, Salat al-'Asr) for a certain period, as it has been mentioned (in the above-quoted hadith). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1318. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for saying the 'Asr prayer at the commencement of the prescribed time. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported that Umar b. al-Khattab had been cursing the pagans of the Quraish an the day (of the Battle) of Khandaq (Ditch). (He came to the Holy Prophet) and said: Messenger of Allah, by God, I could not say the 'Asr prayer till the sun set. Upon this the Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: By Allah I, too, have not observed it. So we went to a valley. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) performed ablution and we too performed ablution, and then the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said the 'Asr prayer after the sun had set and then said the evening prayer after it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1319. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for saying the 'Asr prayer at the commencement of the prescribed time. This hadith has been reported by Yahya b. Abd Kathir with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1320. ------------------------------ Chapter : The severity (of punishment) in missing the 'Asr prayer. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Angels take turns among you by night and by day, and they all assemble at the dawn and afternoon prayers. Those (of the angels) who spend the night among you, then, ascend, and their Lord asks them, though He is the best informed about them: How did you leave My servants? -they say: We left them while they were praying and we came to them while they were praying. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1321. ------------------------------ Chapter : The severity (of punishment) in missing the 'Asr prayer. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Angels take turns among you by night and by day, and the rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1322. ------------------------------ Chapter : The severity (of punishment) in missing the 'Asr prayer. Jarir b. Abdullah is reported to have said: We were sitting with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) that he looked at the full moon and observed: You shall see your Lord as you are seeing this moon, and you will not be harmed by seeing Him. So if you can, do not let -yourselves be overpowered in case of prayer observed before the rising of the sun and its setting, i.e. the 'Asr prayer and the morning prayer. Jarir then recited it: "Celebrate the praise of thy Lord before the rising of the sun and before Its setting" (xx. 130). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1323. ------------------------------ Chapter : The severity (of punishment) in missing the 'Asr prayer. Waki' reported (this hadith) with the same chain of transmitters (that the Holy Prophet) said: You will be soon presented before your Lord, and you will see Him as you are seeing this moon, and then recited (the above-mentioned verse). But (in this hadith) no mention is made of Jarir. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1324. ------------------------------ Chapter : The severity (of punishment) in missing the 'Asr prayer. 'Umara b. Ruwaiba is reported to have said on the authority of his father: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying: He who observed prayer before the rising of the son and its setting, i.e. the dawn prayer and the afternoon prayer, would not cater the (Hell) fire. A person belonging to Basra said to him: Did you yourself bear it from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him)? He said: Yes. The person (from Basra) said: I bear witness that I heard it from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him); my ears heard it and my heart retained it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1325. ------------------------------ Chapter : The severity (of punishment) in missing the 'Asr prayer. Umara b. Ruwaiba reported on the authority of his father that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who said prayer before the rising of the sun and its setting would not enter the fire (of Hell), and there was a man from Basra (sitting) beside him who said: Did you hear it from the Apostle of Allah (way peace be upon him)? He said: Yes, I bear witness to it. The man from Basra said: I bear witness that I did hear from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying it from the place that you heard from him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1326. ------------------------------ Chapter : The severity (of punishment) in missing the 'Asr prayer. Abu Bakr reported on the authority of his father that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who observed two prayers at two cool (hours) would enter Paradise. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1327. ------------------------------ Chapter : The severity (of punishment) in missing the 'Asr prayer. This hadith has been narrated by the same chain of transmitters by Hammam, and said about Abu Bakr that he was Ibn Abu Musa. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1328. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of the morning and afternoon prayers and exhortation to guard them. Salama b. al-Akwa' reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to say the evening prayer when the sun had set and disappeared (behind the horizon). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1329. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of the morning and afternoon prayers and exhortation to guard them. Rafi' b. Khadij reported: We used to observe the evening prayer with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and then one of us would go away and he could see the (distant) place where his arrow would fall. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1330. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of the morning and afternoon prayers and exhortation to guard them. A hadith like this, i.e. "We used to observe evening prayer ...." so on and so forth, has been narrated by Rafi' b. Khadij by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1331. ------------------------------ Chapter : Commencement of the time for the evening prayer is immediately after sunset. 'Aisha, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) deferred one night the 'Isha prayer. And this is called 'Atama. And the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) did not come out till Umar b. Khattab told (him) that the women and children had gone to sleep. So the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came out towards them and said to the people of the mosque: None except you from the people of the earth waits for it (for the night prayer at this late hour), and it was before Islam had spread amongst people. And in the narration transmitted by Ibn Shihab the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) is reported to have said: It is not meant that you should compel the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) for prayer. And (this he said) when 'Umar b. Khattab called (the Holy Prophet) in a loud voice. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1332. ------------------------------ Chapter : Commencement of the time for the evening prayer is immediately after sunset. A hadith like this has been narrated by Ibn Shihab with the same chain of transmitters, but therein no mention has been made of the words of al-Zuhri: It was narrated to me, and that which followed. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1333. ------------------------------ Chapter : Commencement of the time for the evening prayer is immediately after sunset. 'Aisha reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) one night delayed (observing the 'Isha prayer) till a great part of the night was over and the people in the mosque had gone to sleep. He (the Holy Prophet) then came out and observed prayer and said: This is the proper time for it; were it not that I would impose a burden on my people (I would normally pray at this time). In the hadith transmitters by 'Abd al-Razzaq (the words are): "Were it not that it would impose burden on my people." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1334. ------------------------------ Chapter : Commencement of the time for the evening prayer is immediately after sunset. Abdullah b. Umar reported: We waited one night in expectation of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) for the last prayer of the night, and he came out to us when a third of the night had passed even after that. We do not know whether he had been occupied with family business or something else. When he came cut he said: You are waiting for prayer, for which the followers of no other religion wait, except you. Were it not a burden for my Ummah, I would have led them (in the 'Isha prayer) at this hour. He then ordered the Mu'adhdbin (to call for prayer) and then stood up for prayer and observed prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1335. ------------------------------ Chapter : Commencement of the time for the evening prayer is immediately after sunset. Abdullah b. 'Umar reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was one night occupied (in some work) and he delayed it ('Isha prayer) till we went to sleep in the mosque. We then woke up and again went to sleep and again woke up. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) then came to us and said: None among the people of the earth except you waits for prayer in the night. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1336. ------------------------------ Chapter : Commencement of the time for the evening prayer is immediately after sunset. Thabit reported: They (the believers) asked Anas about the ring of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he said: One night the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) delayed (observing) the 'Isha prayer up to the midnight or midnight was about to be over. He then came and said: (Other) people have offered prayers and slept, but you are constantly in prayer as long as you wait for prayer. Anas said: I perceive as if I am seeing the lustre of his silver ring, and lifted his, small left finger (in order to show how the Holy Prophet had lifted it). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1337. ------------------------------ Chapter : Commencement of the time for the evening prayer is immediately after sunset. Anas b. Malik reported: We waited for the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon hi n) one night, till it was about midnight. He (the Holy Prophet) came and observed prayer and then turned his face towards us, as it I was seeing the lustre of the silver ring on his finger. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1338. ------------------------------ Chapter : Commencement of the time for the evening prayer is immediately after sunset. This hadith has been narrated by Qurra with the same chain of transmitters, but therein he did not mention: "He turned his face towards us." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1339. ------------------------------ Chapter : Commencement of the time for the evening prayer is immediately after sunset. Abu Musa reported: I and my companions who had sailed along with me in the boat landed with me in the valley of Buthan while the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was staying in Medina. A party of people amongst them went to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) every night at the time of the 'Isha prayer turn by turn. Abu Musa said: (One night) we (I and my companions) went to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he was occupied in some matter till there was a delay in prayer so much so that it was the middle of the night. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) then came out and led them (Musa's companions) in prayer. And when he had observed his prayer he said to the audience present: Take it easy, I am going to give you information and glad tidings that it is the blessing of Allah upon you for there is none among the people, except you, who prays at this hour (of the night), or he said: None except you observed prayer at this (late) hour. He (i.e. the narrator) said: I am not sure which of these two sentences he actually uttered. Abu Musa, said: We came back happy for what we heard from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1340. ------------------------------ Chapter : Commencement of the time for the evening prayer is immediately after sunset. Ibn Juraij reported: I said to Ata': Which time do you deem fit for me to say the 'Isha prayer,-as an Imam or alone,-that time which is called by people 'Atama? He said: I heard Ibn 'Abbas saying: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) one night delayed the 'Isha prayer till the people went to sleep. They woke up and again went to sleep and again woke up. Then 'Umar b. Khattab stood up and said (loudly) "Prayer." Ata' further reported that Ibn 'Abbas said: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) came out, and as if I am still seeing him with water trickling from his head, and with his hand placed on one side of the head, and he said: Were it not hard for my Ummah, I would have ordered them to observe this prayer like this (i.e. at late hours). I inquired from 'Ata' how the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) placed his hand upon his head as Ibn Abbas had informed. So Ata' spread his fingers a little and then placed the ends of his fingers on the side of his head. He then moved them like this over his head till the thumb touched that part of the ear which is near the face and then it (went) to the ear-lock and the part of the heard. It (the bind) neither held nor caught anything but this is how (it moved oil). I said to Ata': Was it mentioned to you (by Ibn Abbas) how long did the Apostle (may peace be upon him) delay it (the prayer) during that eight? He said: I do not know (I cannot give you the exact time). Ali' said: I love that I should say prayer, whether as an Imam or alone at delayed hours as the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said that night, but if It is hard upon you in your individual capacity or upon people in the congregation and you are their Imam, then say prayer ('Isha) at the middle hours neither too early nor too late. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1341. ------------------------------ Chapter : Commencement of the time for the evening prayer is immediately after sunset. Jabir b. Samura reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) postponed the last 'Isha prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1342. ------------------------------ Chapter : Commencement of the time for the evening prayer is immediately after sunset. Jabir b. Samura reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe prayers like your prayers, but he would delay the prayer after nightfall to a little after the time you observed it, and he would shorten the prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1343. ------------------------------ Chapter : Commencement of the time for the evening prayer is immediately after sunset. Abdullah b. 'Umar reported: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: Let the bedouin not gain upper hand over you in regard to the name of your prayer. See I (The night prayer should be called) 'Isha (and the bedouins call it Atama (because) they milk their camels late. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1344. ------------------------------ Chapter : Commencement of the time for the evening prayer is immediately after sunset. Ibn 'Umar said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Let the bedouin not gain upper band over you In regard to the name of your prayer, i.e. night prayer, for it is mentioned 'Isha in the Muslim Book of Allah (i.e. the Qur'an). (The bedouin call it 'Atama because) they make delay in milling their she-camels. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1345. ------------------------------ Chapter : Time for the night prayer and its delay. 'Aisha reported: The believing women used to pray the morning prayer with the Messenger of Allah and then return wrapped in their mantles. No one could recognise them. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1346. ------------------------------ Chapter : Time for the night prayer and its delay. 'Aisha, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), reported: The believing women observed the morning prayer with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) wrapped in their mantles. They then went back to their houses and were unrecognisable, because of the Messenger of Allah's (may peace be upon him) praying in the darkness before dawn. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1347. ------------------------------ Chapter : Time for the night prayer and its delay. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe the morning prayer, and the women would go back wrapped in their mantles being unrecognisable because of the darkness before dawn. (Ishaq b. Musa) al-Ansari (one of the transmitters in this chain of narration) narrated "wrapped" (only) in his narration. (No mention was made of mantles.) Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1348. ------------------------------ Chapter : Time for the night prayer and its delay. Muhammad b. 'Amr b. al-Hasan b. 'All reported: When Hajjaj came to Medina we asked Jabir b. Abdullah (about the timings of prayer as observed by the Holy Prophet). He said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to pray afternoon prayer in the midday heat; the afternoon prayer when the sun was bright; the evening prayer when the sun had completely set; and as for the night prayer, he sometimes delayed and sometimes (observed it) at earlier hours. When he found them (his Companions) assembled (at earlier hours) he (prayed) early and when he saw them coming late, he delayed the (prayer) and the morning prayer the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed in the darkness before dawn. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1349. ------------------------------ Chapter : Time for the night prayer and its delay. Muhammad b. 'Amr al-Hasan b. 'All reported: Hajjaj used to delay the prayers, and so we asked Jabir b. 'Abdullah, and the rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1350. ------------------------------ Chapter : Time for the night prayer and its delay. Sayyar b. Salama reported: I heard my father asking Abu Barza (al-Aslami) about the prayer of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) I (Shu'ba, one of the narrators) said: Did you hear it (from Abu Barza)? He said: I feel as if I am bearing you at this very time. He said: I heard my father asking about the prayer of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he (Abu Barza) making this reply: He (the Holy Prophet) did not mind delaying-some (prayer) i.e. 'Isha prayer, even up to the midnight and did not like sleeping before observing it, and talking after it. Shu'ba said: I met him subsequently and asked him (about the prayers of the Holy Prophet) and he said: He observed the noon prayer when the sun was past the meridian, he would pray the afternoon prayer, after which a person would o to the outskirts of Medina and the sun was still bright; (I forgot what he said about the evening prayer); I then met him on a subsequent occasion and asked him (about the prayers of the Holy Prophet; and he said: He would observe the morning prayer (at such a time) so that a man would go back and would recognise his neighbour by casting a glance at his face, and he would recite from sixty to one hundred verses in it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1351. ------------------------------ Chapter : Time for the night prayer and its delay. Sayyar b. Salama reported: I heard Abu Barza saying that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) did not mind some delay in the 'Isha prayer even up to the midnight and he did not like sleeping before (observing it) and talking after it. Shu'ba said: I again met him (Sayyar b. Salama) for the second time and he said: Even up to the third (part) of the night. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1352. ------------------------------ Chapter : Time for the night prayer and its delay. Abu Barza b. Aslami is reported to have said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) delayed the night prayer till a third of the night had passed and he did not approve of sleeping before it, and talking after it, and he used to recite in the morning prayer from one hundred to sixty verses (and completed the prayer at such hours) when we recognised the faces of one another. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1353. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of observing the morning prayer at earlier hour and that is the time when there is darkness before dawn and the exposition about the length of recitation in it. Abu Dharr reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to me: How would you act when you are under the rulers who would delay the prayer beyond its prescribed time, or they would make prayer a dead thing as far as its proper time is concerned? I said: What do you command? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Observe the prayer at Its proper time, and if you can say it along with them do so, for it would be a supererogatory prayer for you. Khalaf (one of the narrators in the above hadith) has not mentioned "beyond their (prescribed) time". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1354. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of observing the morning prayer at earlier hour and that is the time when there is darkness before dawn and the exposition about the length of recitation in it. Abu Dharr reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to me: O Abu Dharr, you would soon find after me rulers who would make their prayers dead. You should say prayer at its prescribed time. If you say prayer at its prescribed time that would be a supererogatory prayer for you, otherwise you saved your prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1355. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of observing the morning prayer at earlier hour and that is the time when there is darkness before dawn and the exposition about the length of recitation in it. Abu Dharr reported: My friend (the Holy Prophet) bade me to hear and obey (the ruler) even if he is a slave having his feet and arms cut off, and observe prayer at its prescribed time. (And further said): It you find people having observed the prayer, you in fact saved your prayer, otherwise (if you join with them) that would be a Nafl prayer for you. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1356. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of observing the morning prayer at earlier hour and that is the time when there is darkness before dawn and the exposition about the length of recitation in it. Abu Dharr reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) struck my thigh and said: How would you act if you survive among the people who would delay prayers beyond their (prescribed) time? He (Abu Dharr) said: What do you command (under this situation)? He (the Holy Prophet) slid: Observe prayer at its prescribed time, then go (to meet) your needs, and if the Iqama is pronounced, and you are present in the mosque, then observe prayer (along with the Jama'at). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1357. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of observing the morning prayer at earlier hour and that is the time when there is darkness before dawn and the exposition about the length of recitation in it. 'Abu'l-'Aliyat al-Bara reported: Ibn Ziyad delayed the prayer. 'Abdullah b. Samit came to me and I placed a chair for him and he sat in it and I made a mention of whit Ibn Ziyad had done. He bit hit lips (as a sign of extreme anger and annoyance) and struck at my thigh and said: I asked Abu Dharr as you have asked me, and he struck my thigh just as I have struck your thigh, and said: I asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as you have asked me and he struck my thigh just as I have struck your thigh, and he (the Holy Prophet) said: Observe prayer at its prescribed time, and if you can say prayer along with them. do so, and do not say. "I have observed prayer and so I shall not pray." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1358. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of observing the morning prayer at earlier hour and that is the time when there is darkness before dawn and the exposition about the length of recitation in it. Abu Dharr reported: (The Messenger of Allah) said: How would you, or how would thou, act if you survive to live among people who defer prayer beyond the (prescribed) time? (The narrator said: Allah and His Messenger know best), whereupon he said: Observe prayer at its prescribed time, but if the Iqama is pronounced for (congregational) prayer, then observe prayer along with them. for herein is an excess of virtue. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1359. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of observing the morning prayer at earlier hour and that is the time when there is darkness before dawn and the exposition about the length of recitation in it. Abu'l-'Aliyat al-Bara' reported: I said to 'Abdullah b. Samit: We say our Jumu'a prayer behind those rulers who defer the prayer. He ('Abdullah b. Samit), struck my thigh that I felt pain and said: I asked Abu Dharr about it, he struck my thigh and said: I asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) about it. Upon this he said: Observe prayer at its prescribed time, and treat prayer along with them (along with those Imams who deter prayer) as Nafl. 'Abdullah said: It was narrated to me that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) struck the thigh of Abd Dharr. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1360. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of delaying the prayer from the prescribes time; what one who is led in prayer should do when the Imam delays it ?. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Prayer said in a congregation is twenty-five degrees more excellent than prayer said by a single person. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1361. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of delaying the prayer from the prescribes time; what one who is led in prayer should do when the Imam delays it ?. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: Prayer said in a congregation is twenty-five degrees more excellent than prayer said by a single person. He (Abu Huraira further) said: The angels of the night and the angels of the day meet together. Abu Huraira said: Recite it you like: "Surely the recital of the Qur'an at dawn is witnessed" (Al-Qur'an, xvii. 78). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1362. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of delaying the prayer from the prescribes time; what one who is led in prayer should do when the Imam delays it ?. A hadith like this has been narrated by Abu Huraira with another chain of transmitters with a very slight change of words. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1363. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of delaying the prayer from the prescribes time; what one who is led in prayer should do when the Imam delays it ?. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Prayer said in a congregation is equivalent to twenty-five (prayers) as compared with the prayer said by a single person. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1364. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of delaying the prayer from the prescribes time; what one who is led in prayer should do when the Imam delays it ?. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) said: Prayer along with the Imam is twenty-five times more excellent than prayer said by a single person. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1365. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of delaying the prayer from the prescribes time; what one who is led in prayer should do when the Imam delays it ?. Ibn Umar reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) assaying: Prayer said in a congregation is twenty-seven degrees more excellent than prayer said by a single person. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1366. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of delaying the prayer from the prescribes time; what one who is led in prayer should do when the Imam delays it ?. Ibn 'Umar reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: The prayer of a person in congregation is twenty-seven times in excess to the prayer said alone. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1367. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of delaying the prayer from the prescribes time; what one who is led in prayer should do when the Imam delays it ?. Ibn Numair reported it on the authority of his father (a preference of) more than twenty (degrees) and Abu Bakr in his narration (has narrated it) twenty-seven degrees. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1368. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of delaying the prayer from the prescribes time; what one who is led in prayer should do when the Imam delays it ?. Ibn 'Umar reported from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) as some and twenty (degrees). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1369. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of delaying the prayer from the prescribes time; what one who is led in prayer should do when the Imam delays it ?. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) found some people absenting from certain prayers and he said: I intend that I order (a) person to lead people in prayer, and then go to the persons who do not join the (congregational prayer) and then order their houses to be burnt by the bundles of fuel. If one amongst them were to know that he would find a fat fleshy bone he would attend the night prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1370. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of delaying the prayer from the prescribes time; what one who is led in prayer should do when the Imam delays it ?. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The most burdensome prayers for the hypocrites are the night prayer and the morning prayer. If they were to know the blessings they have in store, they would have come to them, even though crawling, and I thought that I should order the prayer to be commenced and command a person to lead people in prayer, and I should then go along with some persons having a fagot of fuel with them to the people who have not attended the prayer (in congregation) and would burn their houses with fire. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1371. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of delaying the prayer from the prescribes time; what one who is led in prayer should do when the Imam delays it ?. Hammam b. Munabbih reported: This is what Abu Huraira reported to us from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and (in this connection) he narrated some ahadith, one of them is: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I intend that I should command my young men to gather bundles fuel for me, and then order a person to lead people in prayer, and then burn the houses with their inmates (who have not joined the congregation). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1372. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of delaying the prayer from the prescribes time; what one who is led in prayer should do when the Imam delays it ?. A hadith like this has been narrated by Abu Huraira. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1373. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of delaying the prayer from the prescribes time; what one who is led in prayer should do when the Imam delays it ?. 'Abdullah reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying about people who are absent from Jumu'a prayer: I intend that I should command a person to lead people in prayer, and then burn those persons who absent themselves from Jumu'a prayer in their houses. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1374. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of prayers in congregation and grim warning for remaining away from it. Abu Huraira reported: There came to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) a blind man and said: Messenger of Allah, I have no one to guide me to the mosque. He, therefore, asked. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) permission to say prayer in his house. He (tee Holy Prophet) granted him permission. Then when the man turned away he called him and said: Do you hear the call to prayer? He said: Yes. He (the Holy Prophet then) said: Respond to it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1375. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of prayers in congregation and grim warning for remaining away from it. 'Abdullah (b. Mas'ud) reported: I have seen the time when no one stayed away from prayer except a hypocrite, whose hypocrisy was well known, or a sick man, but it a sick man could walk between two persons (i.e. with the help of two persons with one on each side) he would come to prayer. And (further) said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) taught us the paths of right guidance among which is prayer in the mosque in which the Adzan is called. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1376. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of prayers in congregation and grim warning for remaining away from it. Abdullah (b. Mas'ud) reported: He who likes to meet Allah tomorrow as Muslim, he should persevere in observing these prayers, when a call is announced for them, for Allah has laid down for your Prophet the paths of right guidance, and these (prayers) are among the paths of right guidance. If you were to pray in your houses as this man why stays away (from the mosque) prays in his house, you would abandon the practice of your Prophet, and if you were to abandon the practice of your Prophet, you would go astray. No man purifies himself, doing it well, then makes for one of those mosques without Allah recording a blessing for him for every step he takes raising him a degree for it, and effacing a sin from him for it. I have seen the time when no one stayed away from it, except a hypocrite, who was well known for his hypocrisy, whereas a man would be brought swaying (due to weakness) between two men till he was set up in a row. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1377. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who hears the call for prayer it to essential for him to come to the mosque. Abu Sha'tha' reported: While we were sitting with Abu Huraira in a mosque a man went out of the mosque after the call to prayer had been announced. (A man stood up in the mosque and set off.) Abu Huraira's eyes followed him till he went out of the mosque. Upon this Abu Huraira said: This man has disobeyed Abu'l-Qasim (Muhammad) (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1378. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who hears the call for prayer it to essential for him to come to the mosque. Abu Sha'tha' al-Muharibi reported on the authority of his father, who said: I heard it from Abu Huraira that he saw a person getting out of the mosque after the call to prayer had been announced. Upon this he remarked: This (man) disobeyed Abu'l-Qasim (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1379. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to go out of the mosque after the Adhan has been announced by the Mu'adhdhin. 'Abd al-Rahman b. Abd 'Amr reported: 'Uthman b. 'Affan (narrated the mosque after evening prayer and sat alone. I also sat alone with him, so he said: O, son of m brother, I heard tile Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) say: He who observed the 'Isha prayer in congregation, it was as if he prayed up to the midnight, and he who prayed the morning prayer in congregation, it was as if he prayed the whole night. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1380. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to go out of the mosque after the Adhan has been announced by the Mu'adhdhin. This hadith has been narrated by the chain of transmitters by Abu Sahl 'Uthman b. Hakim. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1381. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to go out of the mosque after the Adhan has been announced by the Mu'adhdhin. Jundab b. 'Abdullah reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who prayed the morning prayer (in congregation) he is in fact under the protection of Allah. And it can never happen that Allah should demand anything from you in connection with the protection (that He guarantees) and one should not get it. He would then throw him in the fire of Hell. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1382. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to go out of the mosque after the Adhan has been announced by the Mu'adhdhin. Anas b. Sirin reported: I heard Jundab b. Qasri saying that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who observed the morning prayer (in congregation), he is in fact under the protection of Allah and it never happens that Allah should make a demand in connection with the protection (that He guarantees and should not get it) for when he asks for anything in relation to His protection, he definitely secures it. He then throws him flatly in the Hell-fire. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1383. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to go out of the mosque after the Adhan has been announced by the Mu'adhdhin. This hadith has been narrated by Jundab b. Sufyan in from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) with the same chain of transmitters, but this has not been mentioned: "He would throw him in fire." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1384. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of praying the 'Isha and morning prayers in congregation. Mahmud b. al-Rabi' reported that 'Ibn b. Malik, who was one of the Companions of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and who participated in the (Battle of) Badr and was among the Ansar (of Medina), told that he came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: Messenger of Allah, I have lost my eyesight and I lead my people in prayer. When there is a downpour there is then a current (of water) in the valley that stands between me and them and I find it impossible to go to their mosque and lead them in prayer. Messenger of Allah, I earnestly beg of you that you should come and observe prayer at a place of worship (in my house) so that I should then use it as a place of worship. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Well, it God so wills. I would soon do so. 'Itban said: On the following day when the day dawned, the Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) came along with Abu Bakr at-Siddiq, and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) asked permission (to get into the house). I gave him the permission, and be did not sit after entering the house, when he said: At what place in your house you desire me to say prayer? I ('Itban b. Malik) said: I pointed to a corner in the house, The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) stood (at that place for prayer) and pronounced Allah-o-Akbar (Allah is the Greatest) (as an expression for the commencement of prayer). We too stood behind him, and he said two rak'ahs and then pronounced salutation (marking the end of the prayer). We detained him (the Holy Prophet) for the meat curry we had prepared for, him. The people of the neighbouring houses came and thus there was a good gathering in (our house). One of them said: Where is Malik b. Dukhshun? Upon this one of them remarked: He is a hypocrite; he does not love Allah and His Messenger. Thereupon the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Do not say so about him. Don't you see that he utters La ilaha ill-Allah (There is no god but Allah) and seeks the pleasure of Allah through it? They said: Allah and His Messenger know beet. One (among the audience) said: We see his inclination and well-wishing for hypocrites only. Upon this the Messenger of Allah'(may peace be upon him) again said: Verily Allah has forbidden the Fire for one who says: There is no god but Allah, thereby seeking Allah's pleasure. Ibn Shihab said: I asked Husain b. Muhammad al-Ansar (he was one of the leaders of Banu Salim) about the hadith transmitted by Mahmud b. Rabi' and he testified it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1385. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of praying the 'Isha and morning prayers in congregation. 'Itban b. Malik reported: I came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and the rest of the hadith is the same as narrated (above) except this that a man said: Where is Malik b. Dukhshun or Dukhaishin, and also made this addition that Mahmud said: I narrated this very hadith to many people and among them was Abu Ayyub al-Ansari who said: I cannot think that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) could have said so as you say. He (the narrator) said: I took an oath that if I ever go to 'Itban. I would ask him about it. So I went to him and found him to be a very aged man, having lost his eyesight, but he was the Imam of the people. I sat by his side and asked about this hadith and he narrated it In the same way as he had narrated it for the first time. Then so many other obligatory acts and commands were revealed which we see having been completed. So he who wants that he should not be deceived would not be deceived. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1386. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of praying the 'Isha and morning prayers in congregation. Mahmud b. Rabi' reported: I well remember the disgorge of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) that he did (with water) from a bucket of our house. Mahmud said: 'Itban b. Malik narrated it to me that he had said: Messenger of Allah, I have lost my eyesight, and the rest of the hadith is the same up to these words: "He led us in two rak'ahs of prayer and we detained the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) for serving him the pudding that we had prepared for him," and no mention has been made of what follows next from the addition made by Yunus and Ma'mar. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1387. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permission to remain away from the congregational prayer for any valid reason. Anas b. Malik reported that his grandmother, Mulaika, invited the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) to a dinner which she had prepared. He (the Holy Prophet) ate out of that and then said: Stand up so that I should observe prayer (in order to bless) you Anas b. Malik said: I stood up on a mat (belonging to us) which had turned dark on account of its long use. I sprinkled water over it (in order to soften it), and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) stood upon it, and I and an orphan formed a row behind him (the Holy Prophet) and the old woman was behind us, and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) led us in two rak'ahs of prayer and then went back. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1388. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permission to remain away from the congregational prayer for any valid reason. Anas b. Malik reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) wits the best among people in character. On occasions, the time of prayer would come while he was in our house. He would then order to spread the mat lying under him. That was dusted and then water was sprinkled over it. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) then led the prayer and we stood behind him, and that mat was made of the leaves of date-palm. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1389. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permission to remain away from the congregational prayer for any valid reason. Thabit reported on the authority of Anas: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to us and there was none in our house but I, my mother and my aunt Umm Haram. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Stand up so that I may lead you in prayer (and there was no time for prescribed prayer). He led us in prayer. A person said to Thabit: Where stood Anas with him (the Holy Prophet)? He replied: He was on the right side. He then blessed us, the members of the household with every good of this world and of the Hereafter. My mother said: Messenger of Allah (and then, pointing towards Anas, said), here is your little servant, invoke the blessing of Allah upon him too. He then blessed me with every good, and he concluded his blessings for me (with these words): Allah ! increase his wealth, and his children and make (them the source of) blessing for him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1390. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permission to remain away from the congregational prayer for any valid reason. Abdullah b. al-Mukhtar heard Musa b. Anas narrating on the authority of Anas b. Malik that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) led him, his mother or his aunt in prayer. He made me, stand on his right side and made the woman stand, behind us. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1391. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permission to remain away from the congregational prayer for any valid reason. This hadith has also been narrated by Shu'ba with this chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1392. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permission to remain away from the congregational prayer for any valid reason. Maimuna, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said prayer while I was by his side, and at times when he prostrated his cloth touched me, and he prayed on a small mat. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1393. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permission to remain away from the congregational prayer for any valid reason. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported that he went to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and found him observing prayer on a mat and prostrating on that. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1394. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (supererogatory) prayer in congregation and that too on the mat or the covering cloth or any other thing which is free from filth and rubbish. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: A man's prayer in congregation is more valuable than twenty degrees and some above them as compared with his prayer in his house and his market, for when he performs ablution doing it well, then goes out to the mosque, and he is impelled (to do so) only by (the love of congregational) prayer, he has no other objective before him but prayer. He does not take a step without being raised a degree for it and having a sin remitted for it, till he enters the mosque, and when he is busy in prayer after having entered the mosque, the angels continue to invoke blessing on him as long as he is in his place of worship, saying: O Allah, show him mercy, and pardon him ! Accept his repentance (and the angels continue this supplication for him) so long as he does not do any harm in it, or as long as his ablution is not broken. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1395. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (supererogatory) prayer in congregation and that too on the mat or the covering cloth or any other thing which is free from filth and rubbish. A hadith having the same meaning (as mentioned above) has been transmitted by A'mash. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1396. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (supererogatory) prayer in congregation and that too on the mat or the covering cloth or any other thing which is free from filth and rubbish. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The angels invoke blessings on everyone among you so long as he is in a place of worship with these words: O Allah ! pardon him, O Allah, have mercy upon him, (and they continue to do so) as long as, he ablution (of the worshipper) is not broken, and one among you is in prayer and so long as he is detained for the prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1397. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (supererogatory) prayer in congregation and that too on the mat or the covering cloth or any other thing which is free from filth and rubbish. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The servant is constantly in prayer so long as he is in a place of worship waiting for the prayer (to be observed in congregation), and the angels invoke (blessings upon him in these words): O Allah ! pardon him. O Allah ! show mercy to him, (and they continue to do so) till he returns (from the mosque having completed the prayer) or his ablution breaks. I said: How is the ablution broken? He said: By breaking of the wind noiselessly or with noise. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1398. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (supererogatory) prayer in congregation and that too on the mat or the covering cloth or any other thing which is free from filth and rubbish. Abu Huraira reported the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: Everyone among you is constantly in prayer so long as the prayer detains him (for this noble objective) and nothing prevents him to return to his family but the prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1399. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (supererogatory) prayer in congregation and that too on the mat or the covering cloth or any other thing which is free from filth and rubbish. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Anyone amongst you who sat in a place of worship waiting for the prayer is in prayer and his ablution is not broken, the angels invoke blessing upon him (in these words): O Allah !pardon him. O Allah ! have mercy upon him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1400. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (supererogatory) prayer in congregation and that too on the mat or the covering cloth or any other thing which is free from filth and rubbish. A hadith like this has been narrated by Hammam b. Munabbih on the authority of Abu Huraira. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1401. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of praying in congregation and waiting for prayer. Abu Musa reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The most eminent among human beings (as a recipient of) reward (is one) who lives farthest away, and who has to walk the farthest distance, and he who waits for the prayer to observe it along with the Imam, his reward is greater than one who prays (alone) and then goes to sleep. In the narration of Abu Kuraib (the words are): "(He waits) till he prays along with the Imam in congregation." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1402. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of praying in congregation and waiting for prayer. Ubayy b. Ka'b reported: There was a man, and I do not know of any other man, whose house was farther than his from the mosque and he never missed the prayer (in congregation). It was said to him or I said to him: It you were to buy a donkey you could ride upon it In the dark nights and in the burning sand. He said: I do not like my house to be situated by the side of the mosque, for I (eagerly) desire that my steps towards the mosque and back from it, should be recorded when I return to my family. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Allah has gathered all (rewards) for you. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1403. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of praying in congregation and waiting for prayer. This hadith has been transmitted by Taimi with the same chain of narrators. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1404. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of praying in congregation and waiting for prayer. Ubayy b. Ka'b reported: There was a person among the Ansar whose house was situated at the farthest end of Medina, but he never in missed any prayer along with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). We felt pity for him and said to him: O, so and so, had you bought a donkey it would have saved you from the burning sand and would have saved you from the reptiles of the earth. He said: Listen I by Allah, I do not like my house to be situated by the side of Muhammad (may peace be upon him). I took (these words of his) ill and came to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and informed him about (these words). He (the Holy Prophet) called him and he said exactly like that (which he had mentioned to Ubbay b. Ka'b), but made a mention of this (also) that he wanted a reward for his steps. Upon this the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: In fact for you is the reward which you expect. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1405. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of praying in congregation and waiting for prayer. A hadith like this has been narrated by 'Asim with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1406. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of praying in congregation and waiting for prayer. Jabir b. 'Abdullah narrated: Our houses were situated far away from the mosque; we, therefore, decided to sell our houses so that we may be able to come near the mosque. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) forbade us (to do so) and said: There is for every step (towards the mosque) a degree (of reward) for you. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1407. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of praying in congregation and waiting for prayer. Jabir b. Abdullah reported: There were some plots vacant around the mosque. Banu Salama decided to shift (to this land) and come near the mosque. This (news) reached the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he said to them (Banu Salama): I have received (information) that you intend to shift near the mosque. They said: Yes, Messenger of Allah, we have taken this decision. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) said: O Banu Salama, live in your houses, for your steps are recorded; live in your houses, for your steps are recorded. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1408. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of praying in congregation and waiting for prayer. Jabir b. Abdullah reported that Banu Salama decided to shift near the mosque (as there were) some plots vacant. This (news) reached the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), whereupon he said: O people of the Salama tribe, you better stay in your houses (where you are living), for your footsteps are recorded They said: We could not be more delighted even by shifting (near the mosque) as we were delighted (on hearing these words from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1409. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of praying in congregation and waiting for prayer. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be' upon him) said: He who purified himself in his house, and then he walked to one of the houses of Allah for the sake of performing a Fard (obligatory act) out of the Fara'id (obligatory acts) of Allah, both his steps (would be significant) as one of them would obliterate his sin and the second one would raise his status. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1410. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of praying in congregation and waiting for prayer. In the hadith narrated of the authority of Abd Huraira the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) is reported to have said: While in the hadith narrated by Bakr (the words are like this): He heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: just see, can anything of his filthiness remain (on the body of) any one of you if there were a river at his door in which he washed himself five times daily? They, said: Nothing of his filthiness will remain (on his body). He said: That is like the five prayers by which Allah obliterates sins. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1411. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of praying in congregation and waiting for prayer. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The similitude of five prayers is like an overflowing river passing by the gate of one of you in which he washes five times daily Hasan said: No filthiness can remain on him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1412. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of praying in congregation and waiting for prayer. Ata' b. Yasar reported, on the authority of Abu Huraira, the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who went towards the mosque in the morning or evening, Allah would arrange a feast for him morning or evening in Paradise. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1413. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of taking many steps for reaching the mosque. Simak b. Harb reported: I said to Jabir b. Samura: Did you sit in the company of the Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him)? He said: Yes, very often. He (the Holy Prophet) used to sit at the place where he observed the morning or dawn prayer till the sun rose or when it had risen; he would stand, and they (his Companions) would talk about matters (pertaining to the days) of ignorance, and they would laugh (on these matters) while (the Holy Prophet) only smiled. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1414. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of taking many steps for reaching the mosque. Simak narrated on the authority of Jabir b. Samura that when the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed the dawn prayer, he sat at the place of worship till the sun had risen enough. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1415. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of taking many steps for reaching the mosque. This hadith has been narrated by Simak with the same chain of transmitters, but no mention has been made of ,enough". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1416. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of taking many steps for reaching the mosque. Abu Huraira reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The parts of land dearest to Allah are its mosques, and the parts most hateful to Allah are markets. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1417. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of sitting at the place of worship after the dawn prayer and excellence of the mosque. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When there are three persons, one of them should lead them. The one among them most worthy to act as Imam is one who is best versed in the Qur'an. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1418. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of sitting at the place of worship after the dawn prayer and excellence of the mosque. A hadith like this has been narrated by Qatida with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1419. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of sitting at the place of worship after the dawn prayer and excellence of the mosque. This hadith has been narrated by Abu Sa'id al-Khudri by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1420. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of sitting at the place of worship after the dawn prayer and excellence of the mosque. Abu Mas'ud al-Ansari reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The one who is most versed in Allah's Muslim Book should act as Imam for the people, but If they are equally versed in reciting it, then the one who has most knowledge regarding Sunnah if they are equal regarding the Sunnah, then the earliest one to emigrate; it they emigrated at the same time, then the earliest one to embrace Islam. No man must lead another in prayer where (the latter) has authority, or sit in his place of honour in his house, without his permission. Ashajj in his narration used the word, "age" in place of "Islam". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1421. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of sitting at the place of worship after the dawn prayer and excellence of the mosque. A hadith like this has been narrated by A'mash by the same chain of transmitters Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1422. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of sitting at the place of worship after the dawn prayer and excellence of the mosque. Abu Mas'ud al-Ansari reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to us: The one who is well grounded in Allah's Muslim Book and is distinguished among them in recitation should act as; Imam for the people and if they are equally versed in reciting it, then the one who has most knowledge regarding Sunnah; if they are equal regarding the Sunnah, then the earliest one to emigrate; If they emigrated at the same time, then the oldest one in age. No man must lead another in prayer in latter's house or where (the latter) has authority, or sit in his place of honour in his house, except that he gives you permission or with his permission. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1423. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of sitting at the place of worship after the dawn prayer and excellence of the mosque. Malik b. Huwairith rejected: We came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and we were all young men of nearly equal age. We stayed with him (the Holy Prophet) for twenty nights, and as the Messenger of Allah may peace be upon him) was extremely kind and tender of heart, he therefore, thought that we were eager (to see) our family (we felt home-sickness). So he asked us about the members of the family that we had left behind and when we informed him, he said: Go back to your family, stay with them, and teach them (beliefs and practices of Islam) and exhort them to good, and when the time for prayer comes, one amongst you should-announce Adzan and then the oldest among you should lead the prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1424. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of sitting at the place of worship after the dawn prayer and excellence of the mosque. This hadith has been transmitted by Ayyub with the same chain of narrator. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1425. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of sitting at the place of worship after the dawn prayer and excellence of the mosque. Malik b. Huwairith Abu Sulaiman reported: I came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) along with other persons and we were young men of nearly equal age, and the rest of the hadith was transmitted like the hadith narrated before. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1426. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of sitting at the place of worship after the dawn prayer and excellence of the mosque. Malik b Huwairith reported: I came to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) along with a companion of mine, and when we intended to return from him, he said: When there is time for prayer, announce prayer, pronounce Iqama, and the oldest amongst you should lead the prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1427. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of sitting at the place of worship after the dawn prayer and excellence of the mosque. This hadith has been narrated with the same chain of transmitters, but al-Hadra' made this addition: "They both were equal in recitation." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1428. ------------------------------ Chapter : Who deserves most to act as Imam. Abu Salama b. Abd al-Rahman b. 'Auf heard Abu Huraira say: (When) Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) (wished to invoke curse or blessing on someone, he would do so at the end) of the recitation in the dawn prayer, when he had pronounced Allah-o-Akbar (for bending) and then lifted his head (saying): "Allah listened to him who praised Him; our Lord ! to Thee is all praise"; he would then stand up and say: "Rescue al-Walid b. Walid, Salama b. Hisham, and 'Ayyash b. Abd Rabi'a, and the helpless among the Muslims. O Allah ! trample severely Mudar and cause them a famine (which broke out at the time) of Joseph. O Allah! curse Lihyan, Ri'l, Dhakwan, 'Usayya, for they disobeyed Allah and His Messenger." (The narrator then adds): The news reached us that he abandoned (this) when this verse was revealed: "Thou but no concern in the matter whether He turns to them (mercifully) or chastises them; surely they are wrongdoers" (ill. 127) Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1429. ------------------------------ Chapter : Who deserves most to act as Imam. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira by another chain of transmitters up to the words: "And cause them a famine like that (which broke out at the time) of Joseph," but the subsequent portion was not mentioned. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1430. ------------------------------ Chapter : Who deserves most to act as Imam. Abu Salama reported it on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) recited Qunut after ruku' in prayer for one mouth at the time of reciting (these words): "Allah listened to him who praised Him," and he said in Qunut: "O Allah! rescue al-Walid b. al-Walid; O Allah! rescue Salama b. Hisham; O Allah! rescue 'Ayyash b. Abu Rabi'a; O Allah! rescue the helpless amongst the Muslims; O Allah! trample Mudar severely; O Allah! cause them a famine like that (which was caused at the time) of Joseph." Abu Huraira (further) said: I saw that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) afterwards abandoned this supplication. I, therefore said: I see the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) abandoning this blessing upon them. It was raid to him (Abu Huraira): Don't you see that (those for whom was blessing invoked by the Holy Prophet) have come (i.e. they have been rescued)? Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1431. ------------------------------ Chapter : Who deserves most to act as Imam. Abu Salama narrated that Abu Huraira told him that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) pronounced: "Allah listened to him who praised Him." and before prostration, he would recite this in the 'Isha prayer: O Allah! rescue 'Ayyash b. Abu Rabi'a, and the rest of the hadith is the same as narrated by Auza'i to the words: "Like the famine (at the time) if Joseph." but he made no mention of that which follows afterwards. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1432. ------------------------------ Chapter : Who deserves most to act as Imam. Abu Salama b. 'Abd al-Rahman is reported to have said that he had heard Abu Huraira saying: I would say prayer along with you which is near to the prayer of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and Abu Huraira recited Qunut in the noon and in the 'Isha and in the morning prayer, and invoked blessing (of Allah) upon Muslims-and curse upon the unbelievers. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1433. ------------------------------ Chapter : Who deserves most to act as Imam. Anas b. Malik reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) invoked curse in the morning (prayer) for thirty days upon those who killed the Companions (of the Holy Prophet) at Bi'r Ma'una. He cursed (the tribes) of Ri'l, Dhakwan, Lihyan, and Usayya, who had disobeyed Allah and His Messenger (may peace be upon him). Anas said: Allah the Exalted and Great revealed (a verse) regarding those who were killed at Bi'r Ma'una, and we recited it, till it was abrogated later on (and the verse was like this): ,convey to it our people the tidings that we have met our Lord, and He was pleased with us and we were pleased with Him". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1434. ------------------------------ Chapter : Who deserves most to act as Imam. Muhammad reported: I asked Anas whether the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed Qunut in the dawn prayer. He said: Yes, (he did so) after the ruku', for a short while. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1435. ------------------------------ Chapter : Who deserves most to act as Imam. Anas b. Malik reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed Qunut for a month in the dawn prayer after ruku' and invoked curse upon Ri'l, Dhakwan, and said that 'Usayya had disobeyed Allah and His Apostle (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1436. ------------------------------ Chapter : Who deserves most to act as Imam. Anas b. Malik reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed Qunut for a month in the dawn prayer after ruku' and invoked curse upon Bani Usayya. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1437. ------------------------------ Chapter : Who deserves most to act as Imam. Asim reported: I asked Anas whether Qunut was observed (by the Holy prophet) before ruku' or after ruku'. He replied: Before ruku'. I said: People conceive that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed Qunut after the ruku'. He said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed Qunut (after the ruku' as the people conceive it) for a mouth invoking curse upon those persons who had killed men among his Companions who were called the reciter (of the Qur'an). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1438. ------------------------------ Chapter : Who deserves most to act as Imam. 'Asim reported: I heard Anas saying: Never did I ace the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) so much grieved (at the loss of a) small army as I saw him grieved at those seventy men who were called "reciters" (and were killed) at Bi'r Ma'una; and he invoked curse for full one month upon their murderers. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1439. ------------------------------ Chapter : Who deserves most to act as Imam. This hadith has been narrated by Anas with another chain of transmitters and with minor additions. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1440. ------------------------------ Chapter : Who deserves most to act as Imam. Anas b. Malik reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed Qunut for one month Invoking curse upon Ri'l, Dhakwan, 'Usayya, those who disobeyed Allah and His Messenger (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1441. ------------------------------ Chapter : Who deserves most to act as Imam. A hadith like this has been transmitted by Anas from the Apostle of Allah (way peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1442. ------------------------------ Chapter : Who deserves most to act as Imam. Anas reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed Qunut for one month invoking curse upon some tribes of Arabia (those who were responsible for the murders in Bi'r Ma'una and Raji'), but then abandoned it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1443. ------------------------------ Chapter : Who deserves most to act as Imam. Al-Bari' b. 'Azib reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed Qunut in the morning and evening (prayers). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1444. ------------------------------ Chapter : Who deserves most to act as Imam. Al-Bari' reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed Qunut in the dawn and evening (prayers). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1445. ------------------------------ Chapter : Who deserves most to act as Imam. Khufaf b. Ima' al-Ghifari reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) aid in prayer: O Allah I curse the tribes of Lihyan, Ri'l, Dhakwan, and 'Usayya for they disobeyed Allah and His Messenger (may peace be upon him). Allah pardoned (the tribe of) Ghifar and Allah granted protection to (the tribe of) Aslam Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1446. ------------------------------ Chapter : Who deserves most to act as Imam. Khufaf b. Ima' reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him), bowed (in prayer) and then lifted his head and then said: So far as the tribe of Ghifar is concerned, Allah had pardoned it, and Allah had granted protection to the tribe of Aslam, and as for the tribe of Usayya, It had disobeyed Allah and His Messenger, (and further said): O Allah! curse the tribe of Lihyan curse Ri'l, and Dhakwan, and then fell in prostration. It is after this that the cursing of the unbelievers got a sanction. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1447. ------------------------------ Chapter : Who deserves most to act as Imam. A hadith like this has been transmitted by Khufaf b. Ima' except this that he did not mention (these words): "cursing of unbelievers got a sanctions. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1448. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of Qunut in all the prayers when any calamity befalls the Muslims. Abu Huraira reported that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) returned from the expedition to Khaibar, he travelled one night, and stopped for rest when he became sleepy. He told Bilal to remain on guard during the night and he (Bilal) prayed as much as he could, while the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and his Companions slept. When the time for dawn approached Bilal leaned against his camel facing the direction from which the dawn would appear but he was overcome by sleep while he was leaning against his camel, and neither the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) nor Bilal, nor anyone else among his Companions got up, till the sun shone on them. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) was the first of them to awake and, being startled, he called to Bilal who said: Messenger of Allah I may my father and mother be offered as ransom for thee, the same thing overpowered me which overpowered you. He (the Holy Prophet, then) said: Lead the beasts on: so they led their camels to some distance. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) then performed ablution and gave orders to Bilal who pronounced the Iqama and then led them in the morning prayer. When he finished the prayer he said: When anyone forgets the prayer, he should observe it when he remembers it, for Allah has said: "And observe the prayer for remembrance of Me" (Qur'an. xx. 14). Yunus said: Ibn Shilab used to recite it like this: "(And observe the prayer) for remembrance." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1449. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of Qunut in all the prayers when any calamity befalls the Muslims. Abu Huraira reported: We stopped for rest along with the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and did not awake till the sun rose. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) then told us that everybody should take hold of his camel's nose-string (get out of this ground) for it was the place where devil had visited us. We did accordingly. He then called for water and performed ablution and then performed two prostrations. Ya'qub said: Then he prayed (performed) two prostrations, then takbir was pronounced for prayer and then he offered the morning prayer (in congregation). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1450. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of Qunut in all the prayers when any calamity befalls the Muslims. Abu Qatida reported: The Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) addressed us and said: You would travel In the evening and the might till (God willing) you would come in the morning to a place of water. So the people travelled (self absorbed) without paying any heed to one another, and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) also travelled till It was midnight. I was by his side. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) began to doze and leaned (to one side) of his camel. I came to him and I lent him support without awaking him till he sat poised on his ride. He went on travelling till a major part of the night was over and (he again) leaned (to one side) of his camel. I supported him without awaking him till he sat "bed on his ride and then travelled till it was near dawn. He (again) leaned which was far more inclined than the two earlier leanings and he was about to fall down. So I came to him and supported him and he lifted his head and said; Who is this? I said: it is Abu Qatida. He (the Holy Prophet again) said: Since how long have you been travelling along with me like this? I said: I have been travelling in this very state since the night. He said: May Allah protect you, as you have protected His Apostle (from falling down), and again said: Do you see that we are hidden from the people? and again said: Do you see anyone? I said: Here is a rider. I again said: Here Is another rider till we gathered together and we were seven riders. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) stepped aside of the highway and placed his head (for sleep and said): Guard for us our prayers. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was the first to wake up and the rays of the sun were falling on his back. We got up startled He (the Holy Prophet) said: Ride on So we rode on till the sun had (sufficiently) risen. He then came down from his camel and called for a jug of water which I had with me. There was a little water in that. He performed ablution kith that which was less thorough as compared with his usual ablutions and some water of that had been left. He (the Holy Prophet) said to Abu Qatida: Keep a watch over your jug of water; it would have (a miraculous) condition about it. Then Bilal summoned (people) to prayer and then the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed two rak'ahs and then said the morning prayer as he said every day. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) (then) rode on and we rode along with him and some of us whispered to the others saying: How would there be compensation for omission in our prayers? Upon this he (the Apostle of Allah) said: Is there not in me (my life) a model for you? There is no omission in sleeping. The (cognisable) emission is that one should not say prayer (intentionally) till the time of (he other prayer comes. So he who did like it (omitted prayer in sleep or due to other unavoidable circumstances) should say prayer when he becomes aware of it and on the next day he should observe it at its prescribed time. He (the Holy Prophet) said: What do you think the people would have done (at this hour)? They would have in the morning found their Apostle missing from amongst them and then Abu Bakr and 'Umar would have told them that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) must be behind you, he cannot leave you behind (him), but the people said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) is ahead of you. So if you had obeyed Abu Bakr and Umar, you would have gone on the right path. So we proceeded on till we came up to the people (from whom we had lagged behind) and the day had considerably risen and everything became hot, and they (the Companions of the Holy Prophet) said: Messenger of Allah, we are dying of thirst. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) remarked: There is no destruction for you. And again said: Bring that small cup of mine and he then asked for the jug of water to be brought to him. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) began to pour water (in that small cup) and Abu Qatida gave them to drink. And when the people saw at there was (a little) water in the jug, they fell upon it. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Behave well; the water (is enough) to satiate all of you. Then they (the Companions) began to receive (their share of) water with calmness (without showing any anxiety) and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) began to fill (the cap), and I began to serve them till no one was left except me and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). He then filled (the cup) with water and said to me: Drink it. I said: Messenger of Allah, I would not drink till you drink. Upon this he said: The server of the people Is the last among them to drink. So I drank and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) also drank and the people came to the place of water quite happy and satiated. 'Abdullah b. Rabah said: I am going to narrate this hadith in the great mosque, when 'Imran b. Husain said: See, O young man, how will you narrate for I was also one of the riders on that night? I said: So you must be knowing this hadith well. He said: Who are you? I said: I am one of the Ansar. Upon this he said: You narrate, for you know your hadith better. I, therefore, narrated it to the people. 'Imran said: I was also present that night, but I know not anyone else who learnt it so well as you have learnt. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1451. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of Qunut in all the prayers when any calamity befalls the Muslims. 'Imran b. Husain reported: I was with the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) in a journey. We travelled the whole of the night, and when it was about to dawn, we got down for rest, and were overpowered (by sleep) till the sun shone. Abu Bakr was the first to awake amongst us and we did not awake the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) from his sleep allowing him to wake up (of his own accord). It was 'Umar who then woke up. He stood by the side of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and recited takbir in a loud voice till the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) woke up. When he lifted his head, he saw that the sun had arisen; he then said: Proceed on. He travelled along with us till the sun shone brightly. He came down (from his camel) and led us in the morning prayer. A person, however, remained away from the people and did not say, prayer along with us. After having completed the prayer, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to him: O, so and so, what prevented you from observing prayer with us? He said: Apostle of Allah! I was not in a state of purity. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) ordered him arid lie performed Tayammum with dust and said prayer. He then urged me to go ahead immediately along with other riders to find out water, for we felt very thirsty. We were travelling when we came across a woman who was sitting (on a camel) with her feet hanging over two leathern water bags. We said to her: How far is water available? She, said: Far, very far, very far. You cannot get water. We (again) said: How much distance is there between (the residence of) your family and water? She said: It is a day and night journey. We said to her: You go to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). She said: Who is the Messenger of Allah? We somehow or the other managed to bring her to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he asked about her, and she informed him as she had informed us that she was a widow having orphan children. He ordered that her camel should be made to kneel down and he gargled in the opening (of her leathern water-bag). The camel was then raised up and we forty thirsty men drank water till we were completely satiated, and we filled up all leathern water-bags and water-skins that we had with us and we washed our companions, but we did not make any camel drink, and (the leathern water-bags) were about to burst (on account of excess of water). He then said: Bring whatever you have with you. So we collected the bits (of eatable things) and dates and packed them up in a bundle, and said to her: Take it away. This is meant for your children, and know that we have not its any way done any loss to your water. When she came to her family she said: I have met the greatest magician amongst human beings, or he is an apostle, as he claims to be, and she then narrated what had happened and Allah guided aright those people through that woman. She affirmed her faith in Islam and so did the people embrace Islam. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1452. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of Qunut in all the prayers when any calamity befalls the Muslims. 'Imran b. Husain reported: We were with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) in a journey and we travelled throughout the night till at the end, just before dawn, we lay down (for rest), and nothing is sweeter for a traveller than this and none awakened us but the heat of the sun, and the rest of the hadith is the same (as mentioned above) except this ahadith: "When 'Umar b. Khattab woke up, he saw what had happened to the people. And he was a man having a big belly and strongly built; he recited takbir in a loud voice till the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) woke up by the loudness of his voice in takbir. When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) got up, the people told him what had happened. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: There is no harm; you better proceed further," and (the rest of the hadith) was narrated. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1453. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of Qunut in all the prayers when any calamity befalls the Muslims. Abu Qatada reported that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was in a journey he got down for rest at night, and he used to lie down on his right side, and when he lay down for rest before the dawn, he used to stretch his forearm and place his head over his palm. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1454. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of Qunut in all the prayers when any calamity befalls the Muslims. Qatada reported from Anas b. Malik that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who forgets the prayer should say it when he remembers it, there is no explation for it, except this. Qatada said: (Allah says) "And observe prayer for remembrance of Me " Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1455. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of Qunut in all the prayers when any calamity befalls the Muslims. This hadith has been narrated by Qatada, but here no mention has been made of "There is no explanation for it except this." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1456. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of Qunut in all the prayers when any calamity befalls the Muslims. Qatada narrated it on the authority of Anas b. Malik that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who forgets the prayer, or he slept (and it was omitted), its expiation is this only that he should observe it when he remembers it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1457. ------------------------------ Chapter : The excellence of Qunut in all the prayers when any calamity befalls the Muslims. Qatada reported it on the authority of Anas b. Malik that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When any one of you omits the prayer due to sleep or he forgets it, he should observe it when he remembers it, for Allah has said: "Observe prayer for remembrance of Me." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1458. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. 'Aisha, the wife of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), reported: The prayer was prescribed as two rak'ahs, two rak'ahs both in journey and at the place of residence. The prayer while travelling remained as it was (originally prescribed), but an addition was made in the prayer (observed) at the place of residence. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1459. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. 'Aisha, the wife of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), said Allah prescribed the prayer as two rak'ahs, then it was completed (to four rak'ahs) at the place of residence, but was retained in the same position in journey as it was first made obligatory. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1460. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. 'Aisha reported: The prayer was prescribed as consisting of two rak'ahs, the prayer in travelling remained the same, but the prayer at the place of residence was completed. (Zuhri said he asked 'Urwa why 'Aisha said prayer in the complete form during journey, and he replied that she interpreted the matter herself as 'Uthman did.) Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1461. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. Yahya b. Umayya said: I told 'Umar b. al-Khattab that Allah had said: "You may shorten the prayer only if you fear that those who are unbelievers may afflict you" (Qur'an, iv. 101), whereas the people are now safe. He replied: I wondered about it in the same way as you wonder about it, so I asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) about it and he said: It is an act of charity which Allah has done to you, so accept His charity. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1462. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. Ya'la b. Umayya reported: I said to 'Umar b. al-Khattab, and the rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1463. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. Ibn 'Abbas reported: Allah has prescribed the prayer through the word of your Prophet (may peace be upon him) as four rak'ahs when resident, two when travelling, and one when danger is present. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1464. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. Ibn 'Abbas reported: Allah has prescribed the prayer by the tongue of your Apostle (may peace be upon him) as two rak'ahs for the traveller, four for the resident, and one in danger. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1465. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. Musa b. Salama Hudhali said: I asked Ibn 'Abbas: How should I say prayer when I am in Mecca, and when I do not pray along with the Imam? He said: Two rak'ahs (of prayer) is the Sunnah of Abu'l-Qasim (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1466. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. A hadith like this has been narrated by Abu Qatada with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1467. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. Hafs b. 'Asim said: I accompanied Ibn 'Umar on the road to Mecca and he led us in two rak'ahs at the noon prayer, then he went forward and we too went along with him to a place where he alighted, and he sat and we sat along with him, and he cast a glance to the side where he said prayer and he saw people standing and asked: What are they doing? I said: They are engaged in glorifying Allah, offering Sunnah prayer. He said: If I had done so I would have perfected my prayer; O my nephew ! I accompanied the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on a journey, and he made no addition to two rak'ahs, till Allah called him. I accompanied Abu Bakr and he made no addition to two rak'ahs till Allah caused him to die. I accompanied 'Umar and he made no addition to two rak'ahs till Allah caused him to die. I accompanied 'Uthman and he made no addition to two rak'ahs, till Allah caused him to die, and Allah has said: "There is a model pattern for you in the Messenger of Allah" (al-Qur'an, xxxiii. 21). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1468. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. Hafs b. 'Asim reported: I fell ill and Ibn 'Umar came to inquire after my health, and I asked him about the glorification of Allah (i.e. prayer) while travelling. Thereupon he said: I accompanied the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on a journey but I did not see him glorifying Him, and were I to glorify (Him). I would have completed the prayer. Allah, the Exalted, has said: "Verily there is a model pattern for you in the Messenger of Allah." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1469. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. Anas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said four rak'ahs in the noon prayer while at Medina, but he offered two rak'ahs in the afternoon prayer at Dhu'l-Hulaifa. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1470. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. Anas b. Malik is reported to have said: I observed four rak'ahs in the noon prayer with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) at Medina, and said two rak'ahs in the afternoon prayer at Dhu'l-Hulaifa. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1471. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. Yahya b. Yazid al-Huna'i reported: I asked Anas b. Malik about shortening of prayer. He said: When the Messenger of' Allah (may peace be upon him) had covered a distance of three miles or three farsakh (Shu'ba, one of the narrators, had some doubt about it) he observed two rak'ahs. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1472. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. Jubair b. Nufair reported: I went along with Shurahbil b. al-Simt to a village which was situated at a distance of seventeen or eighteen miles, and he said only two rak'ahs of prayer. I said to him (about it) and he said: I saw 'Umar observing two rak'ahs at Dhu'l-Hulaifa and I (too) said to him (about it) and he said: I am doing the same as I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) doing. (This hadith has been transmitted by Shu'ba with the same chain of narrators and it is narrated from Simt, and the name of Shurahbil has not been mentioned, and he said that he had gone to a place called Dumin, situated at a distance of eighteen miles from him.) Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1473. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. Anas b. Malik reported: We went out from Medina to Mecca with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he prayed two rak'ahs at each time of prayer till we returned to Medina. I said: For how long did he stay in Mecca? He said: (For) ten (days). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1474. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. A hadith like this has been narrated by Anas by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1475. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. Yahya b. Abu Ishaq reported: I heard Anas b. Malik say: We went out for Pilgrimage from Medina. The rest is the same. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1476. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. A hadith like this has been transmitted by Anas, but no mention has been made of Pilgrimage. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1477. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. Salim b. 'Abdullah (b. 'Umar) reported on the authority of his father that Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) observed the prayer of a traveller, i.e. two rak'ahs in Mina, and other places; so did Abu Bakr and 'Umar, and 'Uthman too observed two rak'ahs at the beginning of his caliphate, but he then completed four. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1478. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. A hadith like this has been reported by Zuhri, with the same chain of transmitters, and in it mention was made of Mina only, but not of other places. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1479. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. Ibn 'Umar reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said two rak'ahs at Mina, and Abu Bakr after him, and 'Umar after Abu Bakr, and 'Uthman at the beginning of his caliphate; then 'Uthman observed four rak'ahs, and when Ibn 'Umar prayed with the Imam, he said four rak'ahs, but when he observed prayer alone, he said two rak'ahs. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1480. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. A hadith like this has been narrated by the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1481. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. Ibn 'Umar reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said in Mina the prayer of a traveller (short prayer); Abu Bakr and 'Umar did the same and 'Uthmia did it for eight years or six years. Hafs (one of the narrators) said: Ibn 'Umar would also say two rak'ahs at Mina and then go to bed. I said to him: O uncle, I wish you could have said two rak'ahs (of Sunnah prayer after shortening the Fard prayer). He said: Were I to do that, I would have completed the prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1482. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. This hadith has been narrated by Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters but no mention has been made of Mina, but they (the narrators) only said: He prayed while travelling. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1483. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. Ibrahim reported: I heard 'Abd al-Rahman as saying; 'Uthman led us four rak'ahs of prayer at Mina. It was reported to Abdullah b. Mas'ud and he recited: "Surely we are Allah's and to Him shall we return," and then said: I prayed with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) at Mina two rak'ahs of prayer. I prayed along with Abu Bakr al-Siddiq two rak'ahs of prayer at Mina. I prayed along with 'Umar b. Khattab two rak'ahs of prayer at Mina. I wish I had my share of the two rak'ahs acceptable (to God) for the four rak'ahs. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1484. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. A hadith like this has been reported by A'mash with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1485. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. Haritha b. Wahb reported: I prayed with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) two rak'ahs and most of them offered two rak'ahs only in Mina, while the people felt secure. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1486. ------------------------------ Chapter : Compensation of the missed prayer and excellence of observing it promptly. Wahb al-Khuza'i reported: I prayed behind the Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) at Mina, and there was the greatest number of people, and they prayed two rak'ahs on the occasion of the Farwell Pilgrimage. (Muslim said: Haritha b. Wahb al-Khuza'i is the brother of 'Ubaidullah b. 'Umar son of Khattab from the side of mother.) Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1487. ------------------------------ Chapter : The prayer of travellers and its shortening. Ibn 'Umar announced Adhan for prayer on a cold, windy night. Then added: Pray in your dwellings; and then said: When it was a cold, rainy night, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to command the Mu'adhdhin to say "Pray in your dwellings." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1488. ------------------------------ Chapter : The prayer of travellers and its shortening. Ibn 'Umar reported that he summoned (people) to pray on a cold, windy and rainy night, and then observed at the end of the Adhan: Pray in your dwellings, pray in your dwellings, and then said: When it was a cold night or it was raining in a journey the Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) used to command the Mu'adhdhin to announce: Pray in your dwellings. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1489. ------------------------------ Chapter : The prayer of travellers and its shortening. Ibn 'Umar reported that he summoned (people) to prayer at a place (known as) Dajnan, and the rest of the hadith is the same, and then said: Pray in your dwellings, but he did not repeat for the second time words of Ibn 'Umar (Pray in your dwellings). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1490. ------------------------------ Chapter : The prayer of travellers and its shortening. Jabir reported: We set cut with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on a journey when it began to rain. Upon this he said: He who desires may pray in his dwelling. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1491. ------------------------------ Chapter : The prayer of travellers and its shortening. 'Abdullah b. 'Abbas reported that he said to the Mu'adhdhin on a rainy day: When you have announced "I testify that there is no god but Allah; I testify that Muhammad is the Messenger of Allah," do not say: "Come to the prayer," but make this announcement: "Say prayer in your houses." He (the narrator) said that the people disapproved of it. Ibn 'Abbas said: Are you astonished at it? He (the Holy Prophet), who is better than I, did it. Jumu'a prayer is no doubt obligatory, but I do not like that I should (force you) to come out and walk in mud and slippery ground. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1492. ------------------------------ Chapter : The prayer of travellers and its shortening. 'Abd al-Hamid reported: I heard 'Abdullah b. al-Harith say: 'Abdullah b. 'Abbas addressed us on a rainy day, and the rest of the hadith is the same, but he made no mention of Jumu'a prayer, and added: He who did it (who commanded us to say prayer in our houses), i.e. the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), is better than I. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1493. ------------------------------ Chapter : The prayer of travellers and its shortening. This hadith has been narrated by Ayyub and 'Asim al-Ahwal with the same chain of transmitters, but in this hadith it is not recorded: "i.e. the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him)." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1494. ------------------------------ Chapter : The prayer of travellers and its shortening. 'Abdullah b. Harith reported that Ibn 'Abbas commanded the Mu'adhdhin to (summon the people to prayer on Friday and make announcement to say prayer in their houses) when it was rainy, and the rest of the hadith is the same (except this) that he said: I do not like you should walk in muddy slippery place. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1495. ------------------------------ Chapter : The prayer of travellers and its shortening. 'Abdullah b. Harith reported that the Mu'adhdhin of Ibn 'Abba said Adhan on Friday (and then made the announcement to say prayer in houses) because it was a rainy day; as it has been narrated by Ma'mar and others, and in this hadith it was mentioned: He who did it, i.e. the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), was better than I. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1496. ------------------------------ Chapter : The prayer of travellers and its shortening. A hadith like this that Ibn 'Abbas ordered his Mu'adhdhin (to summon people to prayer and then make announcement to say prayer in their houses) on Friday which was a rainy day, has been transmitted by 'Abdullah b. Harith. Wuhaib, however, says that he did not hear it from him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1497. ------------------------------ Chapter : Praying in houses when it rains. Ibn 'Umar reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to say Nafl prayer on (the back of) his camel in whatever direction it took him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1498. ------------------------------ Chapter : Praying in houses when it rains. Ibn 'Umar reported that the Apostle (may peace be upon him) used to pray on (the back of) his camel in whatever direction it took him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1499. ------------------------------ Chapter : Praying in houses when it rains. Ibn 'Umar reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to say prayer on his camel while coming from Mecca to Medina, in whatever direction his face had turned; and its was (in this context) that this verse was revealed: "So whether you turn thither is Allah's face" (ii. 115). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1500. ------------------------------ Chapter : Praying in houses when it rains. This hadith has been narrated by another chain of transmitters and in the one narrated by Ibn Mubarak and Ibn Abu Za'ida (these words are narrated). Ibn 'Umar then recited: "Whether you turn thither is Allah's face," and it was revealed in this context. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1501. ------------------------------ Chapter : Praying in houses when it rains. Ibn 'Umar reported: I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) praying (Nafl prayer) on a donkey's back while his face was turned towards Khaibar. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1502. ------------------------------ Chapter : Praying in houses when it rains. Sa'id b. Yasar reported: I was travelling along with Ibn 'Umar on the way to Mecca. Sa'id said: When I apprehended dawn, I dismounted (the ride) and observed Witr prayer and then again joined him. Ibn 'Umar said to me: Where were you? I said: I apprehended the appearance of dawn, so I dismounted and observed Witr prayer. Upon this 'Abdullah said: Is there not a model pattern for you in the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him)? I said: Yes, by Allah, and (then) he said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe Witr prayer on the camel's back. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1503. ------------------------------ Chapter : Praying in houses when it rains. 'Abdullah b. Dinar reported on the authority of Ibn 'Umar that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe prayer on his ride (no matter) in which direction it had its face turned, 'Abdullah b. Dinar said that Ibn 'Umar used to do like that. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1504. ------------------------------ Chapter : Praying in houses when it rains. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe Witr prayer on his ride. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1505. ------------------------------ Chapter : Praying in houses when it rains. Salim b. 'Abdullah reported on the authority of his father that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe Nafl (supererogatory) prayer on his ride no matter in what direction it turned its face, and he observed Witr too on it, but did not observe obligatory prayer on it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1506. ------------------------------ Chapter : Praying in houses when it rains. 'Abdullah b. 'Amir b. Rabi'a has reported on the authority of his father that he had seen the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observing Nafl player at night on a journey on the back of his ride in whichever direction it turned its face. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1507. ------------------------------ Chapter : Praying in houses when it rains. Anas b. Sirin reported: We met Anas b. Malik as he came to Syria at a place known as 'Ain-al-Tamar and saw him observing prayer on the back of his donkey with his face turned in that direction. (Hammam one of the narrators) pointed towards the left of Qibla, so I said to him: I find you observing prayer towards the side other than that of Qibla. Upon this he said: Had I not seen the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) doing like this, I would not have done so at all. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1508. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of saying Nafl prayer on a riding beast while on a journey, in whatever direction it turns. Ibn 'Umar reported: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was in a state of hurry on a journey, he combined the sunset and 'Isha prayers. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1509. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of saying Nafl prayer on a riding beast while on a journey, in whatever direction it turns. Nafi' reported that when Ibn 'Umar was in a state of hurry on a journey, he combined the sunset and 'Isha prayers after the twilight had disappeared, and he would say that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was in a state of hurry on a journey, he combined the sunset and 'Isha prayers. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1510. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of saying Nafl prayer on a riding beast while on a journey, in whatever direction it turns. Salim reported from his father to be saying: I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) combining the sunset and Isha' prayers when he was in a hurry on a journey. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1511. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of saying Nafl prayer on a riding beast while on a journey, in whatever direction it turns. Salim b. 'Abdullah reported that his father had said: I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) delaying the sunset prayer till he would combine it with the 'Isha when he hastened to set out on a journey. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1512. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of saying Nafl prayer on a riding beast while on a journey, in whatever direction it turns. Anas b. Malik reported: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) set out on a journey before the sun declined (from the meridian), he delayed the noon prayer till the afternoon prayer, and then dismounted (his ride) and combined them (noon and afternoon prayers), but if the sun had declined before his setting out on a journey, he observed the noon prayer and then mounted (the ride). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1513. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of saying Nafl prayer on a riding beast while on a journey, in whatever direction it turns. Anas reported: When the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) intended to combine two prayers on a journey, he delayed the noon prayer till came the early time of the afternoon prayer, and then combined the two. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1514. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of saying Nafl prayer on a riding beast while on a journey, in whatever direction it turns. Anas reported that when the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) had to set out on a journey hurriedly, he delayed the noon prayer to the earlier time for the afternoon prayer, and then he would combine them, and he would delay the sunset prayer to the time when the twilight would disappear and then combine it with the 'Isha prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1515. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of combining two prayers on a journey. Ibn 'Abbas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed the noon and afternoon prayers together, and the sunset and Isha' prayers together without being in a state of fear or in a state of journey. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1516. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of combining two prayers on a journey. Ibn 'Abbas reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed the noon and afternoon prayers together in Medina without being in a state of fear or in a state of journey. (Abu Zubair said: I asked Sa'id [one of the narrators] why he did that. He said: I asked Ibn 'Abbas as you have asked me, and he replied that he [the Holy Prophet] wanted that no one among his Ummah should be put to [unnecessary] hardship.) Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1517. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of combining two prayers on a journey. Ibn 'Abbas reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) combined the prayers as he set on a journey in the expedition to Tabuk. He combined the noon prayer with the afternoon prayer and the sunset prayer with the 'Isha prayer. Sa'id (one of the rawis) said to Ibn 'Abbas: What prompted him to do this? He said: He wanted that his Ummah should not be put to (unnecessary) hardship. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1518. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of combining two prayers on a journey. Mu'adh reported: We set out with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on the Tabuk expedition, and he observed the noon and afternoon prayers together and the sunset and 'Isha prayers together. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1519. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of combining two prayers on a journey. Mu'adh b. Jabal reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) combined in the expedition to Tabuk the noon prayer with the afternoon prayer and the sunset prayer with the 'Isha prayer. He (one of the narrators) said: What prompted him to do that? He (Mu'adh) replied that he (the Holy Prophet) wanted that his Ummah should not be put to (unnecessary) hardship. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1520. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of combining two prayers on a journey. Ibn 'Abbas reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) combined the noon prayer with the afternoon prayer and the sunset prayer with the 'Isha prayer in Medina without being in a state of danger or rainfall. And in the hadith transmitted by Waki' (the words are): "I said to Ibn 'Abbas: What prompted him to do that? He said: So that his (Prophet's) Ummah should not be put to (unnecessary) hardship." And in the hadith transmitted by Mu'awiya (the words are): "It was said to Ibn 'Abbas: What did he intend thereby? He said he wanted that his Ummah should not be put to unnecessary hardship." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1521. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of combining two prayers on a journey. Ibn 'Abbas reported: I observed with the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) eight (rak'ahs) in combination, and seven rak'ahs in combination. I (one of the narrators) said: O Abd Sha'tha', I think that he (the Holy Prophet) had delayed the noon prayer and hastened the afternoon prayer, and he delayed the sunset prayer and hastened the 'Isha prayer. He said: I also think so. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1522. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of combining two prayers on a journey. Ibn 'Abbas reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed in Medina seven (rak'ahs) and eight (rak'ahs), i.e. (be combined) the noon and afternoon prayers (eight rak'ahs) and the sunset and 'Isha prayers (seven rak'ahs). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1523. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of combining two prayers on a journey. 'Abdullah b. Shaqiq reported: Ibn 'Abbas one day addressed us in the afternoon (after the afternoon prayer) till the sun disappeared and the stars appeared, and the people began to say: Prayer, prayer. A person from Banu Tamim came there. He neither slackened nor turned away, but (continued crying): Prayer, prayer. Ibn 'Abbas said: May you be deprived of your mother, do you teach me Sunnah? And then he said: I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) combining the noon and afternoon prayers and the sunset and 'Isha prayers. 'Abdullah b. Shaqiq said: Some doubt was created in my mind about it. So I came to Abu Huraira and asked him (about it) and he testified his assertion. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1524. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of combining two prayers on a journey. 'Abdullah b. Shaqiq al-'Uqaili reported: A person said to Ibn 'Abbas (as he delayed the prayer): Prayer. He kept silence. He again said: Prayer. He again kept silence, and he again cried: Prayer. He again kept silence and said: May you be deprived of your mother, do you teach us about prayer? We used to combine two prayers during the life of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1525. ------------------------------ Chapter : Combination of prayers, when one is resident. Abdullah reported: None of you should give a share to Satan out of your self. He should not deem that it is necessary for him to turn but to the right only (after prayer). I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) turning to the left. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1526. ------------------------------ Chapter : Combination of prayers, when one is resident. A hadith like this has been narrated by A'mash, with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1527. ------------------------------ Chapter : Combination of prayers, when one is resident. Suddi reported: I asked Anas how I should turn-to the right or to the left-when I say my prayers. He said: I have very often seen the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) turning to the right. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1528. ------------------------------ Chapter : Combination of prayers, when one is resident. Anas reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to turn to the right (at the end of the prayer). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1529. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of turning to the right and left in prayer. Bara' reported: When we prayed behind the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) we cherished to be on his right side so that his face would turn towards us (at the end of the prayer), and he (the narrator) said: I heard him say: O my Lord ! save me from Thy torment on the Day when Thoil, wouldst raise or gather Thy servants. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1530. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of turning to the right and left in prayer. This hadith has been reported by Mis'ar with the same chain of transmitters, but he made no mention of: "His face would turn towards us." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1531. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence to be on the right side of the Imam. Abu Huraira reported the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: When the prayer commences then there is no prayer (valid), but the obligatory prayer. This hadith has been narrated by Warqa' with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1532. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence to be on the right side of the Imam. Abu Huraira reported the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: When the prayer commences, there is no prayer but the obligatory one. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1533. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence to be on the right side of the Imam. A hadith like this has been reported by Ishaq with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1534. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence to be on the right side of the Imam. This hadith has been narrated by Abu Huraira with another chain of transmitters. Hammad (one of the narrators) said: I then met 'Amr (the other narrator) and he narrated it to me, but it was not transmitted directly from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1535. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence to be on the right side of the Imam. 'Abdullah b. Malik b. Buhaina reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) happened to pass by a person who was busy in praying while the (Fard of the) dawn prayer had commenced. He said something to him, which we do not know what it was. When we turned back we surrounded him and said: What is it that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to you? He replied: He (the Holy Prophet) had said to me that he perceived as if one of them was about to observe four (rak'ahs) of the dawn prayer. Qa'nabi reported that 'Abdullah b. Malik b. Buhaina narrated it on the authority of his father. (Abu'l-Husain Muslim said): His assertion that he has narrated this hadith on the authority of his father is not correct. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1536. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence to be on the right side of the Imam. Ibn Buhaina reported: The dawn prayer had commenced when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saw a person observing prayer, whereas the Mu'adhdhin had pronounced the Iqama. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) remarked: Do you say four (rak'ahs) of Fard in the dawn prayer? Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1537. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence to be on the right side of the Imam. 'Abdullah b. Sarjis reported: A person entered the mosque, while the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was leading the dawn prayer. He observed two rak'ahs in a corner of the mosque, and then joined the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) in prayer. When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had pronounced salutations (he had concluded the prayer), he said: O, so and so, which one out of these two prayers did you count (as your Fard prayer), the one that you observed alone or the prayer that you observed with us? Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1538. ------------------------------ Chapter : The undesirability of observing Nafl prayer, when the Mu'adhdhin begins Adhan. Abu Usaid reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When any one of you enters the mosque, he should say: "O Allah ! open for me the doors of Thy mercy"; and when he steps out he should say: 'O Allah ! I beg of Thee Thy Grace." (Imam Muslim said: I heard Yahya saying: I transcribed this hadith from the compilation of Sulaiman b. Bilal.) Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1539. ------------------------------ Chapter : The undesirability of observing Nafl prayer, when the Mu'adhdhin begins Adhan. A hadith like this has been narrated from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) by Abu Usaid. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1540. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited while entering the mosque. Abu Qatada (a Companion of the Prophet) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When any one of you enters the mosque, he should observe two rak'ahs (of Nafl prayer) before sitting. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1541. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited while entering the mosque. Abu Qatada, a Companion of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), said: I entered the mosque, when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had been sitting among people, and I also sat down among them. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: What prevented you from offering two rak'ahs (of Nafl prayer) before sitting down? I said: Messenger of Allah, I saw you sitting and people sitting (around you and I, therefore, sat in your company). He (the Holy Prophet) then said: When anyone among you enters the mosque, he should not sit till he has observed two rak'ahs. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1542. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited while entering the mosque. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) owed me a debt; he paid me back and made an addition (of this). I entered the mosque and he (the Holy Prophet) said to me: Observe two rak'ahs of prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1543. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of greeting the mosque with two Rak'ahs and undesirability of sitting down before observing them. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) bought a camel from me. When he came back to Medina, he ordered me to come to the mosque and observed two rak'ahs of prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1544. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of greeting the mosque with two Rak'ahs and undesirability of sitting down before observing them. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported: I went with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on an expedition and my camel delayed me and I was exhausted. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) thus came earlier than I, whereas I came on the next day and went to the mosque and found him (the Holy Prophet) at the gate of the mosque. He said: It is now that you have come. I said: Yes. He said: Leave your camel and enter (the mosque) and observe two rak'ahs. He (the narrator) said: So I entered and observed (two rak'ahs) of prayer and then went back. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1545. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of greeting the mosque with two Rak'ahs and undesirability of sitting down before observing them. Ka'b b. Malik reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) did not come back from the journey but by day in the forenoon, and when he arrived, he went first to the mosque, and having prayed two rak'ahs in it he sat down in it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1546. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs in the mosque for one who comes back from a journey. 'Abdullah b. Shaqiq reported: I asked 'Aisha whether the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe the forenoon prayer. She said: No, but when he came back from the journey. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1547. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs in the mosque for one who comes back from a journey. 'Abdullah b. Shaqiq reported: I aksed 'Aisha whether the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe the forenoon prayer. She said: No, except when he came back from a journey. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1548. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs in the mosque for one who comes back from a journey. 'Urwa reported 'Aisha to be saying: I have never seen the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observing the supererogatory prayer of the forenoon, but I observed it. And if the Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) abandoned any act which he in fact loved to do, it was out of fear that if the people practised it constantly, it might become obligatory for them. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1549. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs in the mosque for one who comes back from a journey. Mu'adha asked 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) how many rak'ahs Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) prayed at the forenoon prayer. She replied: Four rak'ahs, but sometimes more as he pleased. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1550. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs in the mosque for one who comes back from a journey. A hadith like this has been reported by the same chain of transmitters, but with this alteration that the transmitter said: "As Allah pleased." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1551. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs in the mosque for one who comes back from a journey. Mua'ada 'Adawiyya reported 'Aisha as saying: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe four rak'ahs in the forenoon prayer and he sometimes observed more as Allah pleased. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1552. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs in the mosque for one who comes back from a journey. A hadith like this has been narrated by Qatada with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1553. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs in the mosque for one who comes back from a journey. Abd al-Rahman b. Abu Laila reported: No one has ever narrated to me that he saw the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) observing the forenoon prayer, except Umm Hani. She, however, narrated that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) entered her house on the day of the Conquest of Mecca and prayed eight rak'ahs (adding): I never saw a shorter prayer than it except that he performed the bowing and prostration completely. But (one of the narrators) Ibn Bashshar in his narration made no mention of the word: "Never". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1554. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs in the mosque for one who comes back from a journey. 'Abdullah b. Harith b. Naufal reported: I had been asking about, as I was desirous to find one among people who should inform me, whether the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed the forenoon prayer, but I found none to narrate that to me except Umm Hani, daughter of Abu Talib (the real sister of Hadrat 'Ali), who told me that on the day of the Conquest the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came (to our house) after the dawn had (sufficiently) arisen. A cloth was brought and privacy was provided for him (the Holy Prophet). He took a bath and then stood up and observed eight rak'ahs. I do not know whether his Qiyam (standing posture) was longer, or bending or prostration or all of them were of equal duration. She (Umm Hani) further said: I never saw him saying this Nafl prayer prior to it or subsequently. (Al-Muradi narrated on the authority of Yunus that he made no mention of the words: "He informed me.") Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1555. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs in the mosque for one who comes back from a journey. Abu Murra, the freed slave of Umm Hani, daughter of Abu Talib, reported Umm Hani to be saying: I went to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on the day of the Conquest of Mecca and found him taking bath, and Fatimah, his daughter, had provided him privacy with the help of a cloth. I gave him salutation and he said: Who is she? I said: It is Umm Hani, daughter of Abu Talib. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Greeting for Umm Hani. When he had completed the bath, he stood up and observed eight rak'ahs wrapped up in one cloth. When he turned back (after the prayer), I said to him: Messenger of Allah, the son of my mother 'Ali b. Abu Talib is going to kill a person, Fulan b. Hubaira whom I have given protection. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) said: We too have given protection whom you have given protection, O Umm Hani. Umm Hani said: It was the forenoon (prayer). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1556. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs in the mosque for one who comes back from a journey. Abu Murra narrated on the authority of Umm Hani that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on the day of the Conquest of Mecca observed in her house eight rak'ahs of prayer in one cloth, its opposite corners having been tied from the opposite sides. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1557. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs in the mosque for one who comes back from a journey. Abu Dharr reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: In the morning charity is due from every bone in the body of every one of you. Every utterance of Allah's glorification is an act of charity. Every utterance of praise of Him is an act of charity, every utterance of profession of His Oneness is an act of charity, every utterance of profession of His Greatness is an act of charity, enjoining good is an act of charity, forbidding what is disreputable is an act of charity, and two rak'ahs which one prays in the forenoon will suffice. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1558. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs in the mosque for one who comes back from a journey. Abu Huraira reported. My friend (the Holy Prophet, may peace be upon him) has instructed me to do three things: three fasts during every month, two rak'ahs of the forenoon prayer, and observing Witr prayer before going to bed. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1559. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs in the mosque for one who comes back from a journey. A hadith like this has been narrated by Abu Huraira by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1560. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs in the mosque for one who comes back from a journey. Abu Huraira reported: My friend Abu'l-Qasim (may peace be upon him) instructed me to do three things, and the rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1561. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs in the mosque for one who comes back from a journey. Abu Murra, the freed slave of Umm Hani, narrated on the authority of Abu Darda': My Friend (may peace be upon him) instructed me in three (acts), and I would never abandon them as long as I live. (And these three things are): Three fasts during every month, the forenoon prayer, and this that I should not sleep till I have observed the Witr prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1562. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the forenoon prayer, two are its minimum Rak'ahs and eight are its maximum Rak'ahs and average Rak'ahs are four or six, and exhortation for the observance of the prayer. Ibn 'Umar reported that Hafsa, the Mother of the Believers, informed him that when the Mu'adhdhin became silent after calling (people) to the dawn prayer, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) commenced the dawn (prayer) when it dawned by observing two short rak'ahs before the commencement of the (Fard) prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1563. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the forenoon prayer, two are its minimum Rak'ahs and eight are its maximum Rak'ahs and average Rak'ahs are four or six, and exhortation for the observance of the prayer. This hadith has been transmitted by Nafi' with the same chain of narrators. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1564. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the forenoon prayer, two are its minimum Rak'ahs and eight are its maximum Rak'ahs and average Rak'ahs are four or six, and exhortation for the observance of the prayer. Hafsa reported that when it was dawn, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) did not observe (any other prayers) but two short rak'ahs. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1565. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the forenoon prayer, two are its minimum Rak'ahs and eight are its maximum Rak'ahs and average Rak'ahs are four or six, and exhortation for the observance of the prayer. A hadith like this has been narrated by Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1566. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the forenoon prayer, two are its minimum Rak'ahs and eight are its maximum Rak'ahs and average Rak'ahs are four or six, and exhortation for the observance of the prayer. Hafsa reported: When the dawn appeared, the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed two rak'ahs (of Sunnah prayers). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1567. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the forenoon prayer, two are its minimum Rak'ahs and eight are its maximum Rak'ahs and average Rak'ahs are four or six, and exhortation for the observance of the prayer. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe two rak'ahs of Sunnah (prayer) when he heard the Adhin and shortened them. (This hadith has been narrated by the same chain of transmitters and in the hadith narrated by Usama the words are: "When it was dawn".) Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1568. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the forenoon prayer, two are its minimum Rak'ahs and eight are its maximum Rak'ahs and average Rak'ahs are four or six, and exhortation for the observance of the prayer. 'Aisha reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe two (supererogatory) rak'ahs in between the call to prayer and the Iqama of the dawn prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1569. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the forenoon prayer, two are its minimum Rak'ahs and eight are its maximum Rak'ahs and average Rak'ahs are four or six, and exhortation for the observance of the prayer. 'Aisha reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed two rak'ahs of the dawn prayer and he shortened them (to the extent) that I (out of surprise) said: Did he recite in them Surah Fatiha (only)? Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1570. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the forenoon prayer, two are its minimum Rak'ahs and eight are its maximum Rak'ahs and average Rak'ahs are four or six, and exhortation for the observance of the prayer. 'Aisha reported: When it was dawn, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed two rak'ahs, and I would say: Does he recite only the opening chapter of the Qur'an in it? Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1571. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the forenoon prayer, two are its minimum Rak'ahs and eight are its maximum Rak'ahs and average Rak'ahs are four or six, and exhortation for the observance of the prayer. 'Aisha reported that the Apostle (may peace be upon him) was not so much particular about observing supererogatory rak'ahs as in case of the two rak'ahs of the dawn prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1572. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the forenoon prayer, two are its minimum Rak'ahs and eight are its maximum Rak'ahs and average Rak'ahs are four or six, and exhortation for the observance of the prayer. 'Aisha reported: I have never seen the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) hastening as much in observing supererogatory as two rak'ahs before the (Fard) of the dawn prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1573. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the forenoon prayer, two are its minimum Rak'ahs and eight are its maximum Rak'ahs and average Rak'ahs are four or six, and exhortation for the observance of the prayer. 'Aisha reported Allah's Messenger as saying: The two rak'ahs at dawn are better than this world and what it contains. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1574. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the forenoon prayer, two are its minimum Rak'ahs and eight are its maximum Rak'ahs and average Rak'ahs are four or six, and exhortation for the observance of the prayer. 'Aisha reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said about the two (supererogatory) rak'ahs of the dawn: They are dearer to me than the whole world. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1575. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the forenoon prayer, two are its minimum Rak'ahs and eight are its maximum Rak'ahs and average Rak'ahs are four or six, and exhortation for the observance of the prayer. Abu Huraira reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) recited in the two (supererogatory) rak'ahs of the dawn (prayer): "Say: O unbelievers," (Qur'an, cix.) and "Say: Allah is one" (cxii.). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1576. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the forenoon prayer, two are its minimum Rak'ahs and eight are its maximum Rak'ahs and average Rak'ahs are four or six, and exhortation for the observance of the prayer. Ibn 'Abbas reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to recite in first of the two (supererogatory) rak'ahs of the dawn: "Say: We believed in Allah and what was revealed to us..." verses 285-286 from Surah Baqara, and in the second of the two: "I believe in Allah and I bear testimony that we are Muslims" (iii. 51). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1577. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the forenoon prayer, two are its minimum Rak'ahs and eight are its maximum Rak'ahs and average Rak'ahs are four or six, and exhortation for the observance of the prayer. Ibn 'Abbas reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to recite in the two (supererogatory) rak'ahs of the dawn prayer: "Say: We believed in Allah and what was revealed to us" and that which is found in Surah Al-i-'lmran: "Come to that word (creed) which is common between you and us"(iii. 64). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1578. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the forenoon prayer, two are its minimum Rak'ahs and eight are its maximum Rak'ahs and average Rak'ahs are four or six, and exhortation for the observance of the prayer. This hadith has been transmitted by another chain of narrators. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1579. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence observing two Rak'ahs of Sunnah in the dawn prayer. Umm Habiba (the wife of the Holy Prophet) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: A house will be built in Paradise, for anyone who prays in a day and a night twelve rak'ahs; and she added: I have never abandoned (observing them) since I heard it from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Some of the other narrators said the same words: I have never abandoned (observing them) since I heard (from so and so). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1580. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence observing two Rak'ahs of Sunnah in the dawn prayer. Nu'man b. Salim reported with the same chain of transmitters: He who observed twelve voluntary rak'ahs, a house will be built for him in Paradise. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1581. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence observing two Rak'ahs of Sunnah in the dawn prayer. Umm Habiba, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: If any Muslim servant (of Allah) prays for the sake of Allah twelve rak'ahs (of Sun'an) every day, over and above the obligatory ones, Allah will build for him a house in Paradise, or a house will be built for him in Paradise; and I have not abandoned to observe the in after (hearing it from the Messenger of Allah). (So said also 'Amr and Nu'man.) Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1582. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence observing two Rak'ahs of Sunnah in the dawn prayer. Umm Habiba reported the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) having said: If any Muslim servant (of Allah) performed ablution, and performed it well, and then observed every day, the rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1583. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence observing two Rak'ahs of Sunnah in the dawn prayer. Ibn 'Umar reported: I prayed along with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) two rak'ahs before and two rak'ahs after the noon prayer, two rak'ahs after the sunset prayer and two rak'ahs after the 'Isha prayer and two rak'ahs after the Friday prayer; and so far as the sunset, 'Isha and Friday prayers are concerned, I observed (them) along with the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) in his house. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1584. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of Sunan prayers before and after the Fard Rak'ahs and their number. 'Abdullah b. Shaqiq said: I asked 'Aisha about the Messenger of Allah's (may peace be upon him) voluntary prayers, and she replied: Before the noon prayer, he used to pray four rak'ahs in my house; then would go out and lead the people in prayer; then come in and pray two rak'ahs. He would then lead the people in the sunset prayer; then come in and pray two rak'ahs. Then he would lead the people in the 'Isha prayer, and enter my house and pray two rak'ahs. He would pray nine rak'ahs during the night, including Witr. At night he would pray for a long time standing and for a long time sitting, and when he recited the Holy Qur'an while standing, he would bow and prostrate himself from the standing position, and when he recited while sitting, he would bow and prostrate himself from the sitting position, and when it was dawn he would pray two rak'ahs. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1585. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of Sunan prayers before and after the Fard Rak'ahs and their number. 'Aisha reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) would pray in the night for a long time, and when he prayed standing be bowed in a standing posture, and when he prayed sitting, he bowed in a sitting posture. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1586. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of Sunan prayers before and after the Fard Rak'ahs and their number. 'Abdullah b. Shaqiq reported: I fell ill in Persia and therefore, prayed in a sitting posture, and I asked 'Aisha about it and she said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) prayed for a long time in the night sitting. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1587. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of Sunan prayers before and after the Fard Rak'ahs and their number. 'Abdullah b. Shaqiq al-'Uqaili reported: I asked 'Aisha about the prayer of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) during the night (i.e. Tahajjud prayer) She replied: He used to pray for a long time standing and for a long time sitting in the night, and when he recited the Qur'an while standing, he would bow himself from the standing position, and when he recited while sitting, he would bow from the sitting position. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1588. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of Sunan prayers before and after the Fard Rak'ahs and their number. 'Abdullah b. Shaqiq al-'Uqaili reported: I asked 'Aisha about the prayer of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). She said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) would observe prayer (Nafl) in a standing position as well as in a sitting position, and when he commenced the prayer in a standing position, he bowed in this very position, and when he commenced the prayer in a sitting position, he bowed in this very position. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1589. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of Sunan prayers before and after the Fard Rak'ahs and their number. 'Aisha reported: I did not see the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) reciting (the Qur'an) in the night prayer in a sitting position, till he grew old and then he recited (it) in a sitting position, but when thirty or forty verses were left out of the Surah, he would then stand up, recite them and then bowed. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1590. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of Sunan prayers before and after the Fard Rak'ahs and their number. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to pray while sitting (when he grew old) and he recited in this position and when the recitation equal to thirty or forty verses was left, he would then stand up and recite (for this duration) in a standing position and then bowed himself and then prostrated himself and did the same in the second rak'ah. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1591. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of Sunan prayers before and after the Fard Rak'ahs and their number. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to recite in sitting position (while observing the Tahajjud prayer) and when he intended to bow, he would stand up and recite (for the duration in which) a man (ordinarily) recites forty verses. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1592. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of Sunan prayers before and after the Fard Rak'ahs and their number. Alqama b. Waqqas reported: I asked 'Aisha how the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) did in the two rak'ahs as he (observed them) sitting. She said: He would recite (the Qur'an) in them, and when he intended to bow, he would stand up and then bowed. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1593. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of Sunan prayers before and after the Fard Rak'ahs and their number. 'Abdullah b. Shaqiq reported: I asked 'Aisha whether the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed (Nafl) sitting. She said: Yes, when the people had made him old. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1594. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of Sunan prayers before and after the Fard Rak'ahs and their number. 'Abdullah b. Shaqiq reported: I said to 'Aisha and she made a mention of that (recorded above) about the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1595. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of Sunan prayers before and after the Fard Rak'ahs and their number. 'Aisha reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) died (in this very state) that he observed most of his (Nafl) prayers in a sitting position. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1596. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of Sunan prayers before and after the Fard Rak'ahs and their number. 'Aisha reported: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) grew bulky and heavy he would observe (most of his Nafl) prayers sitting. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1597. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of Sunan prayers before and after the Fard Rak'ahs and their number. Hafsa reported: Never did I see the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observing supererogatory prayer sitting till one year before his death when he would observe Nafl prayer in a sitting position, and he would recite the Surah (of the Qur'an) in such a slow-measured tone (that duration of its recital) became more lengthy than the one longer than this. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1598. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of Sunan prayers before and after the Fard Rak'ahs and their number. Zuhri reported this hadith with the same chain of transmitters, except this that he made a mention of one year or two years. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1599. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of Sunan prayers before and after the Fard Rak'ahs and their number. Jabir b. Samura reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed (Nafl) prayer sitting before his death. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1600. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of Sunan prayers before and after the Fard Rak'ahs and their number. 'Abdullah b. 'Amr reported: It was narrated to me that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said: The prayer observed by a person sitting is half of the prayer. I came to him (may peace be upon him) and found him praying in a sitting position. I placed my hand on his head. He said: O 'Abdullah b. 'Amr, what is the matter with you? I said: Messenger of Allah, it has been narrated to me that you said: The prayer of a man in a sitting position is half of the prayer, whereas you are observing prayer sitting. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Yes, it is so, but I am not like anyone amongst you. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1601. ------------------------------ Chapter : The virtue of Sunan prayers before and after the Fard Rak'ahs and their number. A hadith like this has been narrated by Abu Yahya al-A'raj with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1602. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. 'Aisha reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to pray eleven rak'ahs at night, observing the Witr with a single rak'ah, and when he had finished them, he lay down on his right side, till the Mu'adhdhin came to him and he (the Holy Prophet) then observed two short rak'ahs (of Sunan of the dawn prayer). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1603. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. 'Aisha, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), said that between the time when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) finished the 'Isha prayer which is called 'Atama by the people, he used to pray eleven rak'ahs, uttering the salutation at the end of every two rak'ahs, and observing the Witr with a single one. And when the Mu'adhdhin had finished the call (for the) dawn prayer and he saw the dawn clearly and the Mu'adhdhin had come to him, he stood up and prayed two short rak'ahs. Then he lay down on his right side till the Mu'adhdhin came to him for Iqama. (This hadith has been narrated with the same chain of transmitters by Ibn Shihab, but in it no mention has been made of Iqama ) Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1604. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe thirteen rak'ahs of the night prayer. Five out of them consisted of Witr, and he did not sit, but at the end (for salutation). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1605. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. This hadith has been narrated by Hisham with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1606. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. 'Aisha reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to pray thirteen rak'ahs during the night including the two rak'ahs (Sunan) of the dawn prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1607. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. Abu Salama b. Abd al-Rahman asked 'Aisha about the (night) prayer of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) during the month of Ramadan. She said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) did not observe either in Ramadan or in other months more than eleven rak'ahs (of the night prayer). He (in the first instance) observed four rak'ahs. Ask not about their excellence and their length (i.e. these were matchless in perfection and length). He again observed four rak'ahs, and ask not about their excellence and their length. He would then observe three rak'ahs (of the Witr prayer). 'Aisha again said: I said: Messenger of Allah, do you sleep before observing the Witr prayer? He said: O 'Aisha, my eyes sleep but my heart does not sleep. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1608. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. Abu Salama asked 'Aisha about the prayer of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) She said: He observed thirteen rak'ahs (in the night prayer). He observed eight rak'ahs and would then observe Witr and then observe two rak'ahs sitting, and when he wanted to bow he stood up and then bowed down, and then observed two rak'ahs in between the Adhan and Iqama of the dawn prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1609. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. Abu Salama reported that he asked 'Aisha about the prayer of the Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) (during the night). The rest of the hadith is the same but with this exception that he (the Holy Prophet) observed nine rak'ahs including Witr. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1610. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. Abu Salama is reported to have said: I came to 'Aisha. I said: O mother, inform me about the prayer of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). She said: His (night prayer) in Ramadan and (during other months) was thirteen rak'ahs at night including two rak'ahs of fajr. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1611. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. It is reported on the authority of 'Aisha that the prayer of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) in the night consisted of ten rak'ahs. He observed a Witr and two rak'ahs (of Sunan) of the dawn prayer, and thus the total comes to thirteen rak'ahs. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1612. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. 'Aisha thus reported about the (night prayer) of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him): He used to sleep in the early part of the night, and woke up in the latter part. If he then wished intercourse with his wife, he satisfied his desire, and then went to sleep; and when the first call to prayer was made he jumped up (by Allah, she, i.e. 'Aisha, did not say "he stood up"), and poured water over him (by Allah she, i.e. 'Aisha, did not say that he took a bath but I know what she meant) and if he did not have an intercourse, he performed ablution, just as a man performs ablution for prayer and then observed two rak'ahs. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1613. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. 'Aisha observed that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe prayer in the night and the last of his (night) prayer was Witr. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1614. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. Masruq is reported to have asked 'Aisha about the action (most pleasing to) the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). She said: He (the Holy Prophet) loved (that action) which one keeps on doing regularly. I said (to 'Aisha): When did he pray (at night)? She replied: When he heard the cock crow, he got up and observed prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1615. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. 'Aisha reported: Never did the earlier part of the dawn find the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) but sleeping in my house or near me. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1616. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. 'Aisha reported: When the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) had prayed the two rak'ahs (Sunan) of the dawn prayer, he would talk to me if I was awake, otherwise he would lie down. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1617. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. A hadith like this has been narrated by 'Aisha by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1618. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to pray in the night and when he observed Witr, he said to me: O 'Aisha, get up and observe Witr. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1619. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. 'Aisha reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to offer prayer at night while she lay in front of him, and when the Witr prayer was yet to be observed, he would awaken her and she observed Witr. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1620. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed the Witr prayer every night and he completed Witr at the time of dawn. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1621. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. Masruq reported on the authority of 'Aisha that she said that the Messenger Of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe the Witr prayer every night, maybe in the early part of night, at midnight and in the latter part, finishing his Witr at dawn. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1622. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. 'Aisha reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe Witr every night, and he would (at times) complete his Witr at the end of the night. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1623. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. Sa'd b. Hisham b. 'Amir decided to participate in the expedition for the sake of Allah, so he came to Medina and he decided to dispose of his property there and buy arms and horses instead and fight against the Romans to the end of his life. When he came to Medina, he met the people of Medina. They dissuaded him to do such a thing, and informed him that a group of six men had decided to do so during the lifetime of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) forbade them to do it, and said: Is there not for you a model pattern in me? And when they narrated this to him (Sa'd b. Hisham), he returned to his wife, though he had divorced her and made (people) witness to his reconciliation. He then came to Ibn 'Abbas and asked him about the Witr of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Ibn 'Abbas said: Should I not lead you to one who knows best amongst the people of the world about the Witr of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him)? He said: Who is it? He (Ibn 'Abbas) said: It is 'Aisha. So go to her and ask her (about Witr) and then come to me and inform me about her answer that she would give you. So I came to Hakim b. Aflah and requested him to take me to her. He said: I would not go to her, for I forbade her to speak anything (about the conflict) between the two groupS, but she refused (to accept my advice) and went (to participate in that conflict). I (requested) him (Hakim) with an oath to lead me to her. So we went to 'Aisha and we begged permission to meet her. She granted us permission and we went in. She said: Are you Hakim? (She recognised him.) He replied: Yes. She said: Who is there with you? He said: He is Sa'd b. Hisham. She said: Which Hisham? He said: He is Hisham b. 'Amir. She blessed him ('Amir) with mercy from Allah and spoke good of him (Qatada said that he died as a martyr in Uhud). I said: Mother of the Faithful, tell me about the character of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). She said: Don't you read the Qur'an? I said: Yes. Upon this she said: The character of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) was the Qur'an. He said: I felt inclined to get up and not ask anything (further) till death. But then I changed my mind and said: Inform me about the observance (of the night prayer) of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). She said: Did you not recite: "O thou wrapped up"? He said: Yes. She said: Allah, the Exalted and the Glorious, made the observance of the night prayer at the beginning of this Surah obligatory. So the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him and his Companions around him observed this (night prayer) for one year. Allah held back the concluding portion of this Surah for twelve months in the Heaven till (at the end of this period) Allah revealed the concluding verses of this Surah which lightened (the burden of this prayer), and the night prayer became a supererogatory prayer after being an obligatory one. I said: Mother of the Faithful, inform me about the Witr of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). She said: I used to prepare tooth stick for him and water for his ablution, and Allah would rouse him to the extent He wished during the night. He would use the tooth stick, and perform ablution, and would offer nine rak'ahs, and would not sit but in the eighth one and would remember Allah, and praise Him and supplicate Him, then he would get up without uttering the salutation and pray the ninth rak'ah. He would then sit, remember, praise Him and supplicate Him and then utter a salutation loud enough for us to hear. He would then pray two rak'ahs sitting after uttering the salutation, and that made eleven rak'ahs. O my son, but when the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) grew old and put on flesh, he observed Witr of seven, doing in the two rak'ahs as he had done formerly, and that made nine. O my son, and when the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed prayer, he liked to keep on observing it, and when sleep or pain overpowered him and made it impossible (for him) to observe prayer in the night, he prayed twelve rak'ahs daring the day. I am not aware of Allah's Prophet (may peace be upon him) having recited the whole Qur'an during one single night, or praying through the night till morning, or fasting a complete month, except Ramadan. He (the narrator) said: I then went to Ibn 'Abbas and narrated to him the hadith (transmitted from her), and he said: She says the truth If I went to her and got into her presence, I would have listened to it orally from her. He said: If I were to know that you do not go to her. I would not have transmitted this hadith to you narrated by her. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1624. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. Zurara b. Aufa said that Sa'd b. Hisham divorced his wife, and then proceeded to Medina to sell his property, and the rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1625. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. Sa'd b. Hisham reported: I went to 'Abdullah b. 'Abbas and asked him about the Witr prayer, and the rest of the hadith is the same as recorded in this event. She (Hadrat 'Aisha) said: Who is that Hisham? I said: Son of 'Amir. She said: What a fine man 'Amir was ! He died as a martyr in the Battle of Uhud. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1626. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. Zurara b. Aufa reported that Sa'd b. Hisham was his neighbour and he informed him that he had divorced his wife and he narrated the hadith like the one transmitted by Sa'd. She ('Aisha) said: Who is Hisham? He said: The son of 'Amir. She said: What a fine man he was; he participated in the Battle of Uhud along with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Hakim b. Aflah said: If I ever knew that you do not go to 'Aisha, I would not have informed you about her hadith (So that you would have gone to her and heard it from her orally). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1627. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. 'Aisha reported that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) missed the night prayer due to pain or any other reason, he observed twelve rak'ahs during the daytime. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1628. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. 'Aisha reported that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) decided upon doing any act, he continued to do it, and when he slept at night or fell sick he observed twelve rak'ahs during the daytime. I am not aware of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) observing prayer during the whole of the night till morning, or observing fast for a whole month continuously except that of Ramadan. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1629. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing Nafl (voluntary prayer) standing or sitting and observing some part of it standing or sitting. 'Umar b. Khattab reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Should anyone fall asleep and fail to recite his portion of the Qur'an, or a part of it, if he recites it between the dawn prayer and the noon prayer, it will be recorded for him as though he had recited it during the night. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1630. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer during the night and the number of the Rak'ahs which the Apostle (may peace be upon him) observed in the night and observance of one Rak'ah of Witr. Zaid b. Arqam, on seeing some people praying in the forenoon, said: They well know that prayer at another time than this is more excellent, for Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: The prayer of those who are penitent is observed when your weaned camels feel the heat of the sun. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1631. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer during the night and the number of the Rak'ahs which the Apostle (may peace be upon him) observed in the night and observance of one Rak'ah of Witr. Zaid b. Arqam reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) went out to the people of Quba' and saw them observing prayer; upon this he said: The prayer of the penitent should be observed when the young weaned camels feel heat of the sun. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1632. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forenoon prayer should be offered when it is sufficiently hot. Ibn 'Umar reported that a person asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) about the night prayer. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Prayer during the night should consist of pairs of rak'ahs, but if one of you fears morning is near, he should pray one rak'ah which will make his prayer an odd number for him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1633. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forenoon prayer should be offered when it is sufficiently hot. Salim reported on the authority of his father that a person asked the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) about the night prayer. He said: It consists of pairs of rak'ahs, but if one fears morning is near, he should make it an odd number by praying one rak'ah. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1634. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forenoon prayer should be offered when it is sufficiently hot. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar reported: A man stood up and said: Messenger of Allah, how is the night prayer? The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The night prayer consists of pair, but if you apprehend the rise of dawn, make it odd number by observing one rak'ah. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1635. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forenoon prayer should be offered when it is sufficiently hot. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar reported: A person asked the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) as I stood between him (the Holy Prophet) and the inquirer and he said: Messenger of Allah, how is the night prayer? He (the Holy Prophet) said: It consists of pairs of rak'ahs, but if you apprehend morning, you should pray one rak'ah and make the end of your prayer as Witr. Then a person asked him (the Holy Prophet) at the end of the year and I was at that place near the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him); but I do not know whether he was the same person or another person, but he (the Holy Prophet) gave him the same reply. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1636. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forenoon prayer should be offered when it is sufficiently hot. This hadith his been narrated by Ibn 'Umar by another chain of transmitters but it does not have these words: "Then a person asked him at the end of the year," and what follows subsequently. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1637. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forenoon prayer should be offered when it is sufficiently hot. Ibn 'Umar reported the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: Hasten to pray Witr before morning. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1638. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forenoon prayer should be offered when it is sufficiently hot. Ibn 'Umar said: He who prayed at night should make Witr the end of his prayer, for the Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) ordered this. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1639. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forenoon prayer should be offered when it is sufficiently hot. Ibn 'Umar reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Make Witr the end of your night prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1640. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forenoon prayer should be offered when it is sufficiently hot. Nafi' reported Ibn 'Umar as saying: He who observed the night prayer should make Witr the end of his prayer before dawn. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to order them thus. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1641. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forenoon prayer should be offered when it is sufficiently hot. Ibn 'Umar reported Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) as saying: Witr is a rak'ah at the end of the prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1642. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forenoon prayer should be offered when it is sufficiently hot. Ibn Umar reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Witr is a rak'ah at the end of the night prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1643. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forenoon prayer should be offered when it is sufficiently hot. Abu Mijlaz reported: I asked Ibn 'Abbas about the Witr prayer. He said: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: It is a rak'ah at the end of the night prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1644. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forenoon prayer should be offered when it is sufficiently hot. Ibn 'Umar reported: A person called (the attention) of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as he was in the mosque, and said: Messenger of Allah, how should I make the rak'ahs of the night prayer an odd number? Upon this the Messenger of Allah (way peace he upon him) said: He who prays (night prayer) he should observe it in pairs, but if he apprehends the rise of morning, he should observe one rak'ah; that would make the number odd (for the rak'ahs) observed by him. This was narrated by Abd Kuraib 'Ubaidullah b. 'Abdullah and Ibn 'Umar did not make mention of it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1645. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forenoon prayer should be offered when it is sufficiently hot. Anas b. Sirin reported: I asked Ibn 'Umar to tell me about the practice of the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) in regard to two rak'ahs before the dawn prayer: Should I make lengthy recitation in them? He said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe, the night prayer in pairs and then made the number odd by observing one rak'ah. I said: I am not asking you about it. He said: You are a bulky man, will you not show me the patience to narrate to you the hadith completely? The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe the night prayer in pairs and then made the number odd by observing one rak'ah, and then he observed two rak'ahs before dawn quite close to the call for prayer (Khalaf said: "Did you see [yourself the Holy Prophet observing] the two rak'ahs before the dawn?" and he made no mention of prayer.) Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1646. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forenoon prayer should be offered when it is sufficiently hot. Anas b. Sirin reported: I asked Ibn 'Umar like this (as recorded in the previous hadith) and he made this addition: "And he (the Holy Prophet) made the end of the night prayer as odd number by one rak'ah." And there is also (this addition): "Stop, stop, you are bulky." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1647. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forenoon prayer should be offered when it is sufficiently hot. Ibn 'Umar reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The night prayer consists of pairs and when you see the approach of dawn, make this number odd by one rak'ah. It was said to Ibn 'Umar: What does the (word) pair imply? He said: (It means) that salutation is uttered after every two rak'ahs. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1648. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forenoon prayer should be offered when it is sufficiently hot. Abu Sa'id (al Khudri) reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: Observe Witr prayer before it is morning. Abu Sa'id reported that they (the Prophet's Companions) asked the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) about Witr (prayer). (In reply to their inquiry) he said: Observe Witr prayer before it is morning. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1649. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forenoon prayer should be offered when it is sufficiently hot. Abu Sa'id reported that they (some of the Companions) of the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) asked the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) about Witr. He said: Observe Witr before morning. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1650. ------------------------------ Chapter : Night prayer consists of pairs of Rak'ahs and Witr is a Rak'ah at the end of the night. Jabir reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: If anyone is afraid that he may not get up in the latter part of the night, he should observe Witr in the first part of it; and if anyone is eager to get up in the last part of it, he should observe Witr at the end of the night, for prayer at the end of the night is witnessed (by the angels) and that is preferable. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1651. ------------------------------ Chapter : Night prayer consists of pairs of Rak'ahs and Witr is a Rak'ah at the end of the night. Jabir reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who amongst you is afraid that he may not be able to get up at the end of the night should observe Witr (in the first part) and then sleep, and he who is confident of getting up and praying at night (i.e. Tahajjud prayer) should observe it at the end of it, for the recitation at the end of the night to visited (by angels), and that is excellent. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1652. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who fears that he would not be able to observe (Tahajjud) prayer at the end of night should observe Witr in the first part of it. Jabir reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The most excellent prayer is that in which the duration of standing is longer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1653. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who fears that he would not be able to observe (Tahajjud) prayer at the end of night should observe Witr in the first part of it. Jabir reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was asked about the prayer which was most excellent. He said: That in which the standing is longer. (This hadith is narrated by another chain of transmitters too.) Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1654. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who fears that he would not be able to observe (Tahajjud) prayer at the end of night should observe Witr in the first part of it. Jabir said he heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) say: There is an hour during the night in which no Muslim individual will ask Allah for good in this world and the next without His giving it to him; and that applies to every night. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1655. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who fears that he would not be able to observe (Tahajjud) prayer at the end of night should observe Witr in the first part of it. Jabir reported: I heard the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: There is an hour during the night in which no Muslim bondman will ask Allah for good in this world and the next but He will grant it to him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1656. ------------------------------ Chapter : The most excellent prayer is one in which one stands for a longer time. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Our Lord, the Blessed and the Exalted, descends every night to the lowest heaven when one-third of the latter part of the night is left, and says: Who supplicates Me so that I may answer him? Who asks Me so that I may give to him? Who asks Me forgiveness so that I may forgive him? Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1657. ------------------------------ Chapter : The most excellent prayer is one in which one stands for a longer time. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Allah descends every night to the lowest heaven when one-third of the first part of the night is over and says: I am the Lord; I am the Lord: who is there to supplicate Me so that I answer him? Who is there to beg of Me so that I grant him? Who is there to beg forgiveness from Me so that I forgive him? He continues like this till the day breaks. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1658. ------------------------------ Chapter : The most excellent prayer is one in which one stands for a longer time. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When half of the night or two-third of it is over. Allah, the Blessed and the Exalted, descends to the lowest heaven and says: Is there any beggar, so that he be given? Is there any supplicator so that he be answered? Is there any beggar of forgiveness so that he be forgiven? (And Allah continues it saying) till it is daybreak. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1659. ------------------------------ Chapter : The most excellent prayer is one in which one stands for a longer time. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Allah descends to the lowest heaven at half of the night or at one-third of the latter part and says: Who is there to supplicate Me so that I answer him? Who is there to ask Me so that I grant him? And then says: Who will lend to One Who is neither indigent nor tyrant? (This hadith has been narrated by Sa'd b. Sa'id with the same chain of transmitters with this addition: "Then the Blessed and the Exalted (Lord) stretches His Hands and says: Who will lend to One Who is neither indigent nor tyrant?) Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1660. ------------------------------ Chapter : The most excellent prayer is one in which one stands for a longer time. Abu Sa'id and Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Allah waits till when one-third of the first part of the night is over; He descends to the lowest heaven and says: It there any supplicator of forgiveness? Is there any penitent? Is there any petitioner (for mercy and favour)? Is there any solicitor?-till it is daybreak. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1661. ------------------------------ Chapter : The most excellent prayer is one in which one stands for a longer time. This hadith is narrated by Ishaq with the same chain of transmitters except this that the hadith transmitted by Mansur (the above one) is more comprehensive and lengthy. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1662. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to supplicate and make mention (of Allah) at the end of the night and its acceptance by the Lord. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who observed prayer at night during Ramadan, because of faith and seeking his reward from Allah, his previous sins would be forgiven. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1663. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to supplicate and make mention (of Allah) at the end of the night and its acceptance by the Lord. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to exhort (his Companions) to pray (at night) during Ramadan without commanding them to observe it as an obligatory act, and say: He who observed the night prayer in Ramadan because of faith and seeking his reward (from Allah), all his previous sins would be forgiven. When Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) died, this was the practice, and it continued thus during Abu Bakr's caliphate and the early part of 'Umar's caliphate. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1664. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to supplicate and make mention (of Allah) at the end of the night and its acceptance by the Lord. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who observed the fasts of Ramadan with faith and seeking reward (from Allah), all his previous sins would be forgiven, and he who observed prayer on Lailat-ul-Qadr with faith and seeking reward (from Allah), all his previous sins would be forgiven. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1665. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to supplicate and make mention (of Allah) at the end of the night and its acceptance by the Lord. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who prayed on the Lailat-ul-Qadr (the Majestic Night) knowing that it is (the same night). I (believe) that he (the Holy Prophet also) said: (He who does) it with faith and seeking reward (from Allah), his sins would be forgiven. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1666. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to supplicate and make mention (of Allah) at the end of the night and its acceptance by the Lord. 'Aisha reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) prayed one night in the mosque and people also prayed along with him. He then prayed on the following night and there were many persons. Then on the third or fourth night (many people) gathered there, but the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) did not come out to them (for leading the Tarawih prayer). When it was morning he said: I saw what you were doing, but I desisted to come to you (and lead the prayer) for I feared that this prayer might become obligatory for you. (He the narrator) said: It was the month of Ramadan. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1667. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to supplicate and make mention (of Allah) at the end of the night and its acceptance by the Lord. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came out during the night and observed prayer in the mosque and some of the people prayed along with him. When it was morning the people talked about this and so a large number of people gathered there. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) went out for the second night, and they (the people) prayed along with him. When it was morning the people began to talk about it. So the mosque thronged with people on the third night. He (the Holy Prophet) came out and they prayed along with him. When it was the fourth night, the mosque was filled to its utmost capacity but the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) did not come out. Some persons among then cried: "Prayer." But the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) did not come to them till he came out for the morning prayer. When he had completed the morning prayer, he turned his face to the people and recited Tashahhud (I bear testimony that there is no god but Allah and I bear testimony that Muhammad is His Messenger) and then said: Your affair was not hidden from me in the night, but I was afraid that (my observing prayer continuously) might make the night prayer obligatory for you and you might be unable to perform it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1668. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to supplicate and make mention (of Allah) at the end of the night and its acceptance by the Lord. Zirr (b. Hubaish) reported: I heard from Ubayy b. Ka'b a statement made by 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud in which he said: He who gets up for prayer (every night) during the year will hit upon Lailat-ul-Qadr. Ubayy said: By Allah I there is no god but He, that (Lailat-ul-Qadr) is in Ramadhan (He swore without reservation:) By Allah, I know the night; it is the night on which the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) commanded us to pray. It is that which precedes the morning of twenty-seventy and its indication is that the sun rises bright on that day without rays. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1669. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to supplicate and make mention (of Allah) at the end of the night and its acceptance by the Lord. Ubayy b Ka'b reported: By Allah, I know about Lailat-ul Qadr and I know it fully well that it is the twenty-seventh night (during Ramadan) on which the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) commanded us to observe prayer. (Shu'ba was in doubt about these words: "the night on which the Messenger of Allah [may peace be upon him] commanded us to observe the prayer." This has been transmitted to me by a friend of mine.) Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1670. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to supplicate and make mention (of Allah) at the end of the night and its acceptance by the Lord. Shu'ba reported this hadith with the same chain of transmitters, but he made no mention that Shu'ba was in doubt and what follows subsequently. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1671. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. Ibn 'Abbas reported: I spent a night with my material aunt (sister of my mother) Maimuna. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) got up during the night and relieved himself, then washed his face and hands and went to sleep. He then got up again, and came to the water skin and loosened its straps, then performed good ablution between the two extremes. He then stood up and observed prayer. I also stood up and stretched my body fearing that he might be under the impression that I was there to find out (what he did at night). So I also performed ablution and stood up to pray, but I stood on his left. He took hold of my hand and made me go round to his right side. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) completed thirteen rak'ahs of his night prayer. He then lay down and slept and snored (and it was his habit to snore while asleep). Then Bilal came and he informed him about the prayer. He (the Holy Prophet) then stood up for prayer and did not perform ablution, and his supplication included there words: "O Allah, place light in my heart, light in my sight, light in my hearing, light on my right hand, light on my left hand, light above me, light below me, light in front of me, light behind me, and enhance light for me." Kuraib (the narrator) said: There are seven (words more) which are in my heart (but I cannot recall them) and I met some of the descendants of 'Abbas and they narrated these words to me and mentioned in them: (Light) in my sinew, in my flesh, in my blood, in my hair, in my skin, and made a mention of two more things. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1672. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. Kuraib, the freed slave of Ibn 'Abbas, reported that Ibn 'Abbas narrated to him that he spent a night in the house of Maimuna, the mother of the believers, who was his mother's sister. I lay down across the cushion, whereas the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and his wife lay down on it length-wise. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) slept up till midnight, or a little before midnight of a little after midnight, and then got up and began to cast off the effects of sleep from his face by rubbing with his hand, and then recited the ten concluding verses of Surah 'Imran. He then stood up near a hanging water-skin and performed ablution well, and then stood up and prayed, 'Ibn 'Abbas said: I also stood up and did the same, as the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had done, and then went to him and stood by his side. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) placed his right hand upon my head and took hold of my right ear and twisted it, and then observed a pair of rak'ahs, again a pair of rak'ahs, again a pair of rak'ahs, again a pair of rak'ahs, again a pair of rak'ahs, again a pair of rak'ahs, and then observed Witr and then lay down till the Mu'adhdhin came to him. He (the Holy Prophet) then stood up and observed two short rak'ahs, and then went out (to the mosque) and observed the dawn prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1673. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. Makhrama b. Sulaiman narrated it with the same chain of narrators and he made this addition: "He then went to the water-skin and brushed his teeth and performed ablution well. He did not pour water but a little. He then awakened me and I stood up," and the rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1674. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. Ibn Abbas reported: I slept (one night) in the house of Maimuna, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), and the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) was with her that night. He (after sleeping for half of the night got up and) then performed ablution and then stood up and observed prayer. I too stood on his left side. He took hold of me and made me stand on his right side. He (the Holy Prophet) observed thirteen rak'ahs on that night. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) then slept and snored and it was a habit with him to snore while sleeping. The Mu'adhdbin then came to him (to inform him about the prayer). He then went out and observed prayer without performing ablution. ('Amr said: Bukair b. Ashajj had narrated it to me ) Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1675. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. Ibn 'Abbas reported: I spent one night in the house of my mother's sister Maimuna, daughter of Harith, and said to her: Awake me when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) stands to pray (at night). (She woke me up when) the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) stood up for prayer. I stood on his left side. He took hold of my hand and made me stand on his right side, and whenever I dozed off he took hold of my earlobe (and made me alert). He (the narrator) said: He (the Holy Prophet) observed eleven rak'ahs. He then sat with his legs drawn and wrapped in his garment and slept so that I could bear his breathing while asleep. And when the dawn appeared, he observed two short rak'ahs of (Sunnah) prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1676. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. Ibn 'Abbas reported that he spent a night in the house of his maternal aunt, Maimuna. The Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) got up at night and performed short ablution (taking water) from the water-skin hanging there. (Giving a description of the ablution Ibn 'Abbas said: It was short and performed with a little water.) I also got up and did the same as the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) had done. I then came (to him) and stood on his left. He then made me go around to his right side. He then observed prayer and went to sleep till he began to snore. Bilal came to him and informed him about the prayer. He (the Holy Prophet) then went out and observed the dawn prayer without performing ablution. Sufyan said: It was a special (prerogative of the) Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) for it has been conveyed to us that the eyes of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) sleep, but his heart does not sleep. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1677. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. Ibn 'Abbas said: I spent the night in the house of my mother's sister, Maimuna, and observed how the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) prayed (at night). He got up and relieved himself. He then washed his face and hands and then went to sleep. He again got up and went near the water-skin and loosened its straps and then poured some water in a bowl and inclined it with his hands (towards himself). He then performed a good ablution between the two extremes and then stood up to pray. I also came and stood by his left side. He took hold of me and made me stand on his right side. It was in thirteen rak'ahs that the (night) prayer of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was completed. He then slept till he began to snore, and we knew that he had gone to sleep by his snoring. He then went out (for the dawn prayer) and then again slept, and said while praying or prostrating himself: "O Allah ! place light in my heart, light in my hearing, light in my sight, light on my right, light on my left, light in front of me, light behind me, light above me, light below me, make light for me," or he said: "Make me light." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1678. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. Salama said: I met Kuraib and he reported Ibn 'Abbas as saying: I was with my mother's sister Maimuna that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came there, and then he narrated the rest of the hadith as was narrated by Ghundar and said these words: "Make me light," beyond any doubt. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1679. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. Ibn 'Abbas reported: I spent a night in the house of my mother's sister, Maimuna, and then narrated (the rest of the) hadith, but he made no mention of the washing of his face and two hands but he only said: He then came to the water-skin and loosened its straps and performed ablution between the two extremes, and then came to his bed and slept. He then got up for the second time and came to the waterskin and loosened its straps and then performed ablution which was in fact an ablution (it was performed well), and implored (the Lord) thus: "Give me abundant light," and he made no retention of: "Make me light." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1680. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. Kuraib reported that Ibn 'Abbas spent a night in the house of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he said: The Messenger of Allah may peace be upon him) stood near the water-skin and poured water out of that and performed ablution in which he neither used excess of water nor too little of it, and the rest of the hadith is the same, and in this mention is also made (of the fact) that on that night the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) made supplication before Allah in nineteen words. Kuraib reported: I remember twelve words out of these, but have forgotten the rest. The Messenger of Allah said: "Place light in my heart, light in my tongue, light in my hearing, light in my sight, light above me, light below me, light on my right, light on my left, light in front of me, light behind me, place light in my soul, and make light abundant for me." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1681. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. Ibn 'Abbas reported: I slept one night in the house of Maimuna when the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) was there, with a view to seeing the prayer of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) at night. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) entered into conversation with his wife for a short while, and then went to sleep, and the rest of the hadith is the same and in it mention is made of: "He then got up, performed ablution and brushed his teeth." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1682. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. 'Abdullah b. 'Abbas reported: He spent (one night) in the house of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). He (the Holy Prophet) got up, brushed his teeth and performed ablution and said: "In the creation of the heavens and the earth, and the alternation of the night and the day, there are indeed signs for people of understanding" (al-Qur'an, iii. 190), to the end of the Surah. He then stood up and prayed two rak'ahs, standing, bowing and prostrating himself at length in them. Then he finished, went to sleep and snored. He did that three times, six rak'ahs altogether, each time cleaning his teeth, performing ablution, and reciting these verses. Then he observed three rak'ahs of Witr. The Mu'adhdhin then pronounced the Adhan and he went out for prayer and was saying,: "O Allah I place light in my heart, light in my tongue, place light in my hearing, place light in my eyesight, place light behind me, and light in front of me, and place light above me, and light below me. O Allah ! grant me light." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1683. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. Ibn Abbas reported: I spent a night in the house of my mother's sister Maimuna. The Apostle of Allah (way peace be upon him) got up for observing voluntary prayer (Tahajjud) at night. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) stood by the water-skin and performed ablution and then stood up and prayed. I also got up when I saw him doing that. I also performed ablution from the water-skin and then stood at his left side. He took hold of my hand from behind his back and then turned me from his back to his right side. I ('Ata', one of the narrators) said: Did it concern the voluntary prayer (at night)? He ('Ibn 'Abbas) said: Yes. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1684. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. Ibn 'Abbas reported: (My father) Abbas sent me to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he was in the house of my mother's sister Maimuna and spent that night along with him. He (the Holy Prophet) got up and prayed at night, and I stood up on his left side. He caught hold of me from behind his back and made me stand on his right side. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1685. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. Ibn 'Abbas reported: I spent a night in the house of my mother's sister Maimuna, and the rest of the hadith is the same as narrated above. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1686. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. Abu Jamra reported: I heard Ibn 'Abbas saying that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed thirteen rak'ahs at night. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1687. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. Zaid b Khalid al-Juhani said: I would definitely watch at night the prayer observed by the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). He prayed two short rak'ahs, then two long, long, long rak'ahs, then he prayed two rak'ahs which were shorter than the two preceding rak'ahs, then he prayed two rak'ahs which were shorter than the two preceding, then he prayed two rak'ahs which were shorter than the two preceding, then observed a single one (Witr), making a total of thirteen rak'ahs Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1688. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported: I accompanied the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) in a journey and we reached a watering place. He said: Jabir, are you going to enter it? I said: Yes. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) then got down and I entered it. He (the Holy Prophet) then went away to relieve himself and I placed for him water for ablution. He then came back and performed ablution, and then stood and prayed in one garment, having its ends tied from the opposite sides. I stood behind him and he caught hold of my ear and made me stand on his right side. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1689. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. 'Aisha reported that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) stood up at night to pray, he began his prayer with two short rak'ahs. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1690. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying When any one of you gets up at night, he should begin the prayer with two short rak'ahs. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1691. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. Ibn Abbas reported that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) got up during the night to pray, he used to say: O Allah, to Thee be the praise Thou art the light of the heavens and the earth. To Thee be the praise; Thou art the Supporter of the heavens and the earth. To Thee be the praise; Thou art the Lord of the heavens and the earth and whatever is therein. Thou art the Truth; Thy promise is True, the meeting with Thee is True. Paradise is true, Hell is true, the Hour is true. O Allah, I submit to Thee; affirm my faith in Thee; repose my trust in Thee, and I return to Thee for repentance; by Thy help I have disputed; and to Thee I have come for decision, so forgive me my earlier and later sins, the sins that I committed in secret and openly. Thou art my God. There is no god but Thee. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1692. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Ibn 'Abbas through another chain of transmitters and with slight alteration of two words. Instead of the word Qayyam (Supporter, as used in the above hadith here the word) Qayyim (the Custodian) has been used, and he (further said): "What I did in secret." And in the hadith narrated by Ibn 'Uyaina there is some addition. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1693. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. This hadith has been narrated by Ibn 'Abbas by another chain of transmitters and the words are nearly the same (as recorded in the above-mentioned hadith). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1694. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. 'Abd al-Rahman b. 'Auf reported: I asked 'Aisha, the mother of the believers, (to tell me) the words with which the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) commenced the prayer when he got up at night. She said: When he got up at night he would commence his prayer with these words: O Allah, Lord of Gabriel, and Michael, and Israfil, the Creator of the heavens and the earth, Who knowest the unseen and the seen; Thou decidest amongst Thy servants concerning their differences. Guide me with Thy permission in the divergent views (which the people) hold about Truth, for it is Thou Who guidest whom Thou wilt to the Straight Path. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1695. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. 'Ali b. Abu Talib reported that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) got up at night for prayer he would say: I turn my face in complete devotion to One Who is the Originator of the heaven and the earth and I am not of the polytheists. Verily my prayer, my sacrifice, my living and my dying are for Allah, the Lord of the worlds; There is no partner with Him and this is what I have been commanded (to profess and believe) and I am of the believers. O Allah, Thou art the King, there is no god but Thee, Thou art my Lord, and I am Thy bondman. I wronged myself and make a confession of my Sin. Forgive all my sins, for no one forgives the sins but Thee, and guide me in the best of conduct for none but Thee guideth anyone (in) good conduct. Remove sins from me, for none else but Thou can remove sins from me. Here I am at Thy service, and Grace is to Thee and the whole of good is in Thine hand, and one cannot get nearnests to Thee through evil. My (power as well as existence) is due to Thee (Thine grace) and I turn to Thee (for supplication). Thou art blessed and Thou art exalted. I seek forgiveness from Thee and turn to Thee in repentance: and when he would bow, he would say: O Allah, it is for Thee that I bowed. I affirm my faith in Thee and I submit to Thee, and submit humbly before Thee my hearing, my eyesight, my marrow, my bone, my sinew; and when he would raise his head, he would say: O Allah, our Lord, praise is due to Thee, (the praise) with which is filled the heavens and the earth, and with which is filled that (space) which exists between them, and filled with anything that Thou desireth afterward. And when he prostrated himself, he (the Holy Prophet) would say: O Allah, it is to Thee that I prostrate myself and it is in Thee that I affirm my faith, and I submit to Thee. My face is submitted before One Who created it, and shaped it, and opened his faculties of hearing and seeing. Blessed is Allah, the best of Creators; and he would then say between Tashahhud and the pronouncing of salutation: Forgive me of the earlier and later open and secret (sins) and that where I made transgression and that Thou knowest better than I. Thou art the First and the Last. There is no god, but Thee. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1696. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encouragement to observe prayers during Ramadhan and that is Tarawih. A'raj reported that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) would start the prayer, he would pronounce takbir (Allah-o-Akbar) and then say: I turn my face (up to Thee), I am the first of the believers; and when he raised his head from ruku' he said: Allah listened to him who praised Him; O our Lord, praise be to Thee; and he said: He shaped (man) and how fine is his shape? And he (the narrator) said: When he pronounced salutation he said: O Allah, forgive me my earlier (sins), to the end of the hadith; and he did not say it between the Tashahhud and salutation (as mentioned above). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1697. ------------------------------ Chapter : Supplication in the night prayer. Hudhaifa reported: I prayed with the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) one night and he started reciting al-Baqara. I thought that he would bow at the end of one hundred verses, but he proceeded on; I then thought that he would perhaps recite the whole (surah) in a rak'ah, but he proceeded and I thought he would perhaps bow on completing (this surah). He then started al-Nisa', and recited it; he then started Al-i-'Imran and recited leisurely. And when he recited the verses which referred to the Glory of Allah, he glorified (by saying Subhan Allah-Glory to my Lord the Great), and when he recited the verses which tell (how the Lord) is to be begged, he (the Holy Prophet) would then beg (from Him), and when he recited the verses dealing with protection from the Lord, he sought (His) protection and would then bow and say: Glory be to my Mighty Lord; his bowing lasted about the same length of time as his standing (and then on returning to the standing posture after ruku') he would say: Allah listened to him who praised Him, and he would then stand about the same length of time as he had spent in bowing. He would then prostrate himself and say: Glory be to my Lord most High, and his prostration lasted nearly the same length of time as his standing. In the hadith transmitted by Jarir the words are: "He (the Holy Prophet) would say: "Allah listened to him who praised Him, our Lord, to Thee i the praise." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1698. ------------------------------ Chapter : Supplication in the night prayer. 'Abdullah reported: I prayed with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he lengthened it till I entertained an evil thought. It was said to him what that thought was. He said: I thought that I should sit down and forsake him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1699. ------------------------------ Chapter : Supplication in the night prayer. A hadith like this has been narrated by A'mash with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1700. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for prolonging recitation in the night prayer. 'Abdullah (b. Mas'ud) reported that a mention was made of a man who slept the whole night till morning. He (the Holy Prophet) remarked: That is a man in whose ears (or in whose ear) the devil urinated. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1701. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for prolonging recitation in the night prayer. Husain b. 'Ali narrated on the authority of (his father) 'Ali b. Abu Talib that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) came one night to see him ('Ali) and Fatimah (the daughter of the Holy Prophet) and said: Don't you observe (Tahajjud) prayer? I ('Ali) said: Messenger of Allah, verily our souls are in the hands of Allah and when He wants to awaken us, He awakens us. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) went back when I said this to him. He was striking his hand on his thigh while returning, and I heard him say: Verily the man disputes with many things. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1702. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for prolonging recitation in the night prayer. Abu Huraira transmitted it from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him): When any one of you goes to sleep, the devil ties three knots at the back of his neck, sealing every knot with: "You have a long night, so sleep." So if one awakes and mentions Allah, a knot will be loosened; if he performs ablution two knots are loosened; and if he prays (all) knots will be loosened, and in the morning he will be active and in good spirits; otherwise we will be in bad spirits and sluggish in the morning. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1703. ------------------------------ Chapter : What has been related (from the Holy Prophet) about one who sleeps the whole night till morning. Ibn 'Umar reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: Observe some of your prayers in your houses and do not make them graves. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1704. ------------------------------ Chapter : What has been related (from the Holy Prophet) about one who sleeps the whole night till morning. Ibn 'Umar reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: Pray in your houses, and do not make them graves. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1705. ------------------------------ Chapter : What has been related (from the Holy Prophet) about one who sleeps the whole night till morning. Jabir reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When any one of you observes prayer in the mosque he should reserve a part of his prayer for his house, for Allah would make the prayer as a means of betterment in his house. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1706. ------------------------------ Chapter : What has been related (from the Holy Prophet) about one who sleeps the whole night till morning. Abu Musa reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: The house in which remembrance of Allah is made and the house in which Allah is not remembered are like the living and the dead. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1707. ------------------------------ Chapter : What has been related (from the Holy Prophet) about one who sleeps the whole night till morning. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Do not make your houses as graveyards. Satan runs away from the house in which Surah Baqara is recited. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1708. ------------------------------ Chapter : What has been related (from the Holy Prophet) about one who sleeps the whole night till morning. Zaid b. Thabit reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) made an apartment with the help of the leaves of date trees or of mats. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) went out to pray in it. People followed him and came to pray with him. Then they again came one night and waited (for him), but the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) delayed in coming out to them. And when he did not come out, they cried aloud and threw pebbles at the door. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came out in anger and said to them: By what you have been constantly doing, I was inclined to think that it (prayer) might not become obligatory for you. So you must observe prayer (optional) in your houses, for the prayer observed by a man in the house is better except an obligatory prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1709. ------------------------------ Chapter : What has been related (from the Holy Prophet) about one who sleeps the whole night till morning. Zaid b. Thabit reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) made an apartment in the mosque of mats, and he observed in it prayers for many nights till people began to gather around him, and the rest of the hadith is the same but with this addition: "Had this (Nafl) prayer become obligatory for you, you would not be able to observe it." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1710. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for observing Nafl prayer in the house and permissibility of observing it in the mosque also. 'Aisha reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had a mat and he used it for making an apartment during the night and observed prayer in it, and the people began to pray with him, and he spread it (the mat) during the day time. The people crowded round him one night. He (the Holy Prophet) then said: O people, perform such acts as you are capable of doing, for Allah does not grow weary but you will get tired. The acts most pleasing to Allah are those which are done continuously, even if they are small. And it was the habit of the members of Muhammad's (may peace be upon him) household that whenever they did an act they did it continuously. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1711. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for observing Nafl prayer in the house and permissibility of observing it in the mosque also. 'Aisha is reported to have said that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was asked about the act most pleasing to Allah. He replied: That which is done continuously, even if it is small. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1712. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for observing Nafl prayer in the house and permissibility of observing it in the mosque also. Alqama reported: I asked 'Aisha, the mother of the believers, saying O mother of the believers, how did the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) act? Did he choose a particular act for a particular day? She said: No. He act was continuous, and who amongst you is capable of doing what the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) did? Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1713. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for observing Nafl prayer in the house and permissibility of observing it in the mosque also. 'Aisha reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The acts most pleasing to Allah are those which are done continuously, even if they are small. and when 'Aisha did any act she did it continuously. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1714. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for observing Nafl prayer in the house and permissibility of observing it in the mosque also. Anas reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) entered the mosque (and he found) a rope tied between the two pillars; so he said: What is this? They said: It is for Zainab. She prays and when she slackens or feels tired she holds it. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) said: Untie it. Let one pray as long as one feels fresh but when one slackens or becomes tired one must stop it. (And in the hadith transmitted by Zuhair it is: "He should sit down.") Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1715. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for observing Nafl prayer in the house and permissibility of observing it in the mosque also. A hadith like this has been narrated from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) on the authority of Anas by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1716. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for observing Nafl prayer in the house and permissibility of observing it in the mosque also. 'Urwa b. Zubair reported that 'Aisha, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), told him that (once) Haula' dint Tuwait b. Habib b. Asad b. 'Abd al-'Uzzi passed by her (at the time) when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was with her. I ('Aisha) said: It Is Haula' bint Tuwait and they say that she does not sleep at night. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: (Oh) she does not sleep at night ! Choose an act which you are capable of doing (continuously). By Allah, Allah would not grow weary, but you will grow weary. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1717. ------------------------------ Chapter : Preference for observing Nafl prayer in the house and permissibility of observing it in the mosque also. 'Aisha said: The Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) came to me when a woman was sitting with me. He said: Who is she? I said: She is a woman who does not sleep but prays. He said: Do such acts which you are capable of doing. By Allah, Allah does not grow weary but you will grow weary. The religious act most pleasing to Him is one the doer of which does it continuously. (And in the hadith transmitted by Abu Usama [the words are]: "She was a woman from Banu Asad.") Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1718. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of an act (i.e. observe of the night prayer, etc.) done constantly. 'Aisha reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: When anyone amongst you dozes in prayer, he should sleep, till sleep is gone, for when one of you prays while dozing he does not know whether he may be asking pardon or vilifying himself. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1719. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of an act (i.e. observe of the night prayer, etc.) done constantly. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When any one of you gets up at night (for prayer) and his tongue falters in (the recitation) of the Qar'an, and he does not know what he is reciting, he should go to sleep. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1720. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning dozing off in prayer, or faltering of one's tongue in the recitation of the Qur'an, or in mentioning of Allah, one should sleep, or stop it till one becomes lively. 'Aisha reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) heard a person reciting the Qur'an at night. Upon this he said: May Allah show mercy to him; he has reminded me of such and such a verse which I had missed in such and such a surah. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1721. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning dozing off in prayer, or faltering of one's tongue in the recitation of the Qur'an, or in mentioning of Allah, one should sleep, or stop it till one becomes lively. 'Aisha reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) listened to the recitation of the Qur'an by a man in the mosque. Thereupon he said: May Allah have mercy upon him; be reminded me of the verse which I had been made to forget. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1722. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning dozing off in prayer, or faltering of one's tongue in the recitation of the Qur'an, or in mentioning of Allah, one should sleep, or stop it till one becomes lively. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The example of a man who has memorised the Qur'an is like that of a hobbled camel. If he remained vigilant, he would be able to retain it (with him), and if he loosened the hobbled camel it would escape. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1723. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning dozing off in prayer, or faltering of one's tongue in the recitation of the Qur'an, or in mentioning of Allah, one should sleep, or stop it till one becomes lively. This hadith has been narrated by Ibn 'Umar from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), but in the hadith transmitted by Musa b. 'Uqba, this addition is made: "When one who had committed the Qur'an to memory(or who is familiar with it) gets up (for night prayer) and recites it night and day, it remains fresh in his mind, but if he does not get up (for prayer and thus does not recite it) he forgets it." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1724. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning dozing off in prayer, or faltering of one's tongue in the recitation of the Qur'an, or in mentioning of Allah, one should sleep, or stop it till one becomes lively. 'Abdullah reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: What a wretched person is he amongst them who says: I have forgotten such and such a verse. (He should instead of using this expression say): I have been made to forget it. Try to remember the Qur'an for it is more apt to escape from men's minds than a hobbled camel. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1725. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning dozing off in prayer, or faltering of one's tongue in the recitation of the Qur'an, or in mentioning of Allah, one should sleep, or stop it till one becomes lively. 'Abdullah is reported to have said: Keep refreshing your knowledge of the sacred Muslim Books (or always renew your knowledge of these sacred Muslim Books) and sometimes he would mention the Qur'an for it is more apt to escape from men's minds than animals which are hobbled, and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: None of you should say: I forgot such and such a verse, but he has been made to forget. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1726. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning dozing off in prayer, or faltering of one's tongue in the recitation of the Qur'an, or in mentioning of Allah, one should sleep, or stop it till one becomes lively. Ibn Mas'ud reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Wretched is the man who says: I forgot such and such a sura, or I forget such and such a verse, but he has been made to forget. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1727. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning dozing off in prayer, or faltering of one's tongue in the recitation of the Qur'an, or in mentioning of Allah, one should sleep, or stop it till one becomes lively. Abu Musa al-Ash'ari reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: Keep refreshing your knowledge of the Qur'an, for I swear by Him in Whose Hand is the life of Muhammad that it is more liable to escape than camels which are hobbled. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1728. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the careful remembering of the Qur'an. Abu Huraira reported this directly from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him): God has not listened to anything as He listens to a Prophet reciting the Qur'an in a sweet voice. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1729. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the careful remembering of the Qur'an. This hadith has been narrated by Ibn Shihab with the same chain of transmitters with words: "As He listens to a Prophet reciting the Qur'an in a sweet voice." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1730. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the careful remembering of the Qur'an. Abu Huraira is reported to have heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Allah does not listen to anything, (more approvingly) as He listens to a Prophet reciting loudly the Qur'an in a sweet voice. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1731. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the careful remembering of the Qur'an. This hadith has been narrated with the same chain of transmitters by Ibn al-Had except this that Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying and he did not say: "He heard it." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1732. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the careful remembering of the Qur'an. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Allah has not heard anything (more pleasing) than listening to the Prophet reciting the Qur'an in a sweet loud voice. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1733. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the careful remembering of the Qur'an. This hadith has been narrated by another chain of transmitters but with a slight modification of words. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1734. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the careful remembering of the Qur'an. Buraida reported on the authority of his father that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said: 'Abdullah b. Qais or al-Ash'ari has been gifted with a sweet melodious voice out of the voices of the family of David. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1735. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the careful remembering of the Qur'an. Abu Burda narrated on the authority of Abu Musa that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said to Abu Musa: If you were to see me, as I was listening to your recitation (of the Qur'an) yester-night (you would have felt delighted). You are in fact endowed with a sweet voice like that of David himself. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1736. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of reciting the Qur'an in a sweet voice. Mu'awiya b. Qurra reported 'Abdullah b. Mughaffal al-Muzani as saying: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) recited on his ride Surat al Fath during a journey in the year of the Conquest (of Mecca), and he repeated(the words) in his recitation. Mu'awiya said: If I were not afraid that the people would crowd around me, I would have given a demonstration of (the Prophet's) recitation before you. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1737. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of reciting the Qur'an in a sweet voice. Mu'awiya b. Qurra is reported to have heard 'Abdullah b. Mughaffal as saying: I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) reciting Surah Fath on his camel on the day of the Conquest of Mecca. He (the narrator) said: Ibn Mughaffal recited it and repeated it. Mu'awiya said: Had there been (no crowed of) people, I would have given a practical demonstration of that which Ibn Mughaffal had mentioned from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1738. ------------------------------ Chapter : Desirability of reciting the Qur'an in a sweet voice. This hadith has been narrated by Khalid al-Harith with the same chain of transmitters (with these words:) (The Holy Prophet) was reciting Surat al-Fath as he was travelling on his mount. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1739. ------------------------------ Chapter : The recitation by the Apostle (may peace be upon him) of Surat al-Fath on the Day of the Conquest of Mecca. Al-Bara' reported that a person was reciting Surat al-Kahf and there was a horse tied with two ropes at his side, a cloud overshadowed him, and as it began to come nearer and nearer his horse began to take fright from it. He went and mentioned that to the Prophet (may peace be upon him) in the morning, and he (the Holy Prophet) said: That was tranquillity which came down at the recitation of the Qur'an. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1740. ------------------------------ Chapter : The recitation by the Apostle (may peace be upon him) of Surat al-Fath on the Day of the Conquest of Mecca. Ibn Ishaq reported: I heard al-Bara' as saying that a man recited al-Kahf when an animal was there in the house and it began to take fright. And as he looked around, he found a cloud overshadowing it. He mentioned that to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him). Upon this he said: O so and so, recite on (the surah) as-Sakina descends at the (recitation of the Qur'an) or on account (of the recitation) of the Qur'an. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1741. ------------------------------ Chapter : The recitation by the Apostle (may peace be upon him) of Surat al-Fath on the Day of the Conquest of Mecca. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of al-Bara' with a slight modification of words. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1742. ------------------------------ Chapter : The recitation by the Apostle (may peace be upon him) of Surat al-Fath on the Day of the Conquest of Mecca. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri told of Usaid b. Hudair saying that one night he recited the Qur'an in his enclosure, when the horse began to jump about. He again recited and (the horse) again jumped. He again recited and it jumped as before. Usaid said: I was afraid lest it should trample (his son) Yahya. I stood near it (the horse) and saw something like a canopy over my head with what seemed to be lamps in it, rising up in the sky till it disappeared. I went to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on the next day and said: Messenger of Allah, I recited the Qur'an during the night in my enclosure and my horse began to jump. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: You should have kept on reciting, Ibn Hudair. He (Ibn Hudair) said: I recited. It jumped (as before). Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) again said: You should have kept on reciting, Ibn Hudair. He (Ibn Hudair) said: I recited and it again jumped (as before). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) again said: You should kave kept on reciting, Ibu Hudair. He (Ibn Hudair) said: (Messenger of Allah) I finished (the recitation) for Yahya was near (the horse) and I was afraid lest it should trample him. I saw something like a canopy with what seemed to be lamps in it rising up in the sky till it disappeared. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Those were the angels who listened to you; and if you had continued reciting, the people would have seen them in the morning and they would not have concealed themselves from them. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1743. ------------------------------ Chapter : Descending of tranquillity by the recitation of the Qur'an. Abu Musa al-Ash'ari reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: A believer who recites the Qur'an is like an orange whose fragrance is sweet and whose taste is sweet; a believer who does not recite the Qur'an is like a date which has no fragrance but has a sweet taste; and the hypocrite who recites the Qur'an is like a basil whose fragrance is sweet, but whose taste is bitter; and a hypocrite who does not recite the Qur'an is like the colocynth which has no fragrance and has a bitter taste. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1744. ------------------------------ Chapter : Descending of tranquillity by the recitation of the Qur'an. This hadith has been narrated by Qatada with the same chain of transmitters but with one alteration that instead of the word: "hypocrite" (Munafiq), there it is "wicked" (fajir). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1745. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the Hifz; (one who commits the Qur'an to memory) of the Qur'an. 'Aisha reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) (as saying): One who is proficient in the Qur'an is associated with the noble, upright, recording angels; and he who falters in it, and finds it difficult for him, will have a double reward. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1746. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the Hifz; (one who commits the Qur'an to memory) of the Qur'an. This hadith has been reported with the same chain of transmitters by Qatada except with this change: "He who finds it hard (to recite the Qur'an) will have a double reward." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1747. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the one who is proficient in the Qur'an and one who falters in it. Anas reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying to Ubayy b. Ka'b: Allah has commanded me to recite the Qur'an to you. He said: Did Allah mention me to you by name? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Allah made a mention of your name to me. (On hearing this) Ubayy b. Ka'b wept. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1748. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the one who is proficient in the Qur'an and one who falters in it. Anas reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying to Ubayy b. Ka'b: Aliah has commanded me to recite to you: "Those who disbelieve were not..." (Al-Qur'an, xcviii. 1). He said: Did He mention me by name? He (the Holy Prophet said): Yes. Upon this he shed tears (of gratitude). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1749. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the one who is proficient in the Qur'an and one who falters in it. Qatada said: I heard Anas saying that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to Ubayy the same thing. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1750. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the reciting of the Qur'an by one who is more skilled and proficient before one who is inferior to him. 'Abdullah (b. Mas'ud) reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon (him) asked me to recite the Qur'an. He said: Messenger of Allah, (how) should I recite to you whereas it has been sent down to you? He (the Holy Prophet) said: I desire to hear it from someone else. So I recited Surat Al-Nisa' till I reached the verse: How then shall it be when We shall bring from every people a witness and bring you against them as a witness?" (verse 41). I lifted my head or a person touched me in my side, and so I lifted my head and saw his tears falling (from the Holy Prophet's eyes). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1751. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the reciting of the Qur'an by one who is more skilled and proficient before one who is inferior to him. This hadith has been narrated by A'mash with the same chain of transmitters but with this addition: "The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was on the pulpit when he asked me to recite to him." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1752. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the reciting of the Qur'an by one who is more skilled and proficient before one who is inferior to him. Ibrahim reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) asked 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud to recite to him (the Qur'an). He said: Should I recite it to you while it has been sent down or revealed to you? He (the Holy Prophet) said: I love to hear it from someone else. So he ('Abdullah b. Mas'ud) recited to him (from the beginning of Surat al Nisa' up to the verse: " How shall then it be when We bring from every people a witness and bring you as a witness against them?" He (the Holy Prophet) wept (on listening to it). It is narrated on the authority of Ibn Mas'ud through another chain of transmitters that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) also said that he had been a witness to his people as long as (said he): I lived among them or I had been among them. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1753. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the reciting of the Qur'an by one who is more skilled and proficient before one who is inferior to him. 'Abdullah (b. Mas'ud) reported: I was in Hims when some of the people asked me to recite the Qur'an to them. So I recited Surah Yusuf to them. One of the persons among the people said: By Allah, this is not how it has been sent down. I said: Woe upon you ! By Allah, I recited it to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he said to me: You have (recited) it well. I was talking with him (the man who objected to my recitation) that I sensed the smell of wine from him. So I said to him. Do you drink wine and belie the Muslim Book (of Allah)? You would not depart till I would whip you. So I lashed him according to the prescribed punishment (for the offence of drinking wine). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1754. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the reciting of the Qur'an by one who is more skilled and proficient before one who is inferior to him. This hadith has been narrated by A'mash with the same chain of transmitters but with an exception that it is not mentioned in it: "He said to me: You recited (the Qur'an) well." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1755. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of listening to the Qur'an and asking one who has memorised it and to recite it from his memory and shedding tears while listening to the recitation and deliberating over it. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Would any one of you like, when he returns to his family, to find there three large, fat, pregnant she-camels? We said: Yes. Upon this he said: Three verses that one of you recites in his prayer are better for him than three large, fat, pregnant she-camels. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1756. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of listening to the Qur'an and asking one who has memorised it and to recite it from his memory and shedding tears while listening to the recitation and deliberating over it. 'Uqba b. 'Amir reported: When we were in Suffa, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came out and said: Which of you would like to go out every morning to Buthan or al-'Aqiq and bring two large she-camels without being guilty of sin or without severing the ties of kinship? We said: Messenger of Allah, we would like to do it. Upon this he said: Does not one of you go out in the morning to the mosque and teach or recite two verses from the Muslim Book of Allah, the Majestic and Glorious? That is better for him than two she-camels, and three verses are better (than three she-camels) and four verses are better for him than four (she-camels), and to on their number in camels. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1757. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the recitation of the Qur'an in prayer and that of its learning. Abu Umama said he heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) say: Recite the Qur'an, for on the Day of Resurrection it will come as an intercessor for those who recite It. Recite the two bright ones, Al-Baqara and Surah Al-'Imran, for on the Day of Resurrection they will come as two clouds or two shades, or two flocks of birds in ranks, pleading for those who recite them. Recite Surah al-Baqara, for to take recourse to it is a blessing and to give it up is a cause of grief, and the magicians cannot confront it. (Mu'awiya said: It has been conveyed to me that here Batala means magicians.) Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1758. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the recitation of the Qur'an in prayer and that of its learning. This hadith has been narrated by Mu'awiya with the same chain of transmitters but with this exception that in this the words of Mu'awiya: "It has been conveyed to me... " have not been mentioned. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1759. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the recitation of the Qur'an in prayer and that of its learning. An-Nawwas b. Sam'an said he heard the Apostle (may peace be upon him) say: On the Day of Resurrection the Qur'an and those who acted according to it will be brought with Surah Al-Baqara and Al-'Imran preceding them. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) likened them to three things, which I did not forget afterwards. He (the Holy Prophet) likened them to two clouds, or two black canopies with light between them, or like two flocks of birds in ranks pleading for one who recited them. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1760. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the recitation of the Qur'an and that of surat al-Baqara. Ibn 'Abbas reported that while Gabriel was sitting with the Apostle (may peace be upon him) he heard a creaking sound above him. He lifted his head and said: This As a gate opened in heaven today which had never been opened before. Then when an angel descended through it, he said: This is an angel who came down to the earth who had-never come down before. He greeted and said: Rejoice in two lights given to you which have not been given to any prophet before you: Falihat al-Kitab and the concluding verses of Suarah al-Baqara. You will never recite a letter from them for which you will not be given (a reward). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1761. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the recitation of the Qur'an and that of surat al-Baqara. 'Abd al-Rahman b. Yazid reported: I met Abu Mas'ud near the House (Ka'ba) and said to him: A hadith has been conveyed to me on your authority about the two (concluding verses of Surah al-Baqara. He said: Yes. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) (in fact) said: Anyone who recites the two verses at the end of Surah al-Baqara at night, they would suffice for him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1762. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the recitation of the Qur'an and that of surat al-Baqara. This hadith has been narrated by Mansur with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1763. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the recitation of the Qur'an and that of surat al-Baqara. Abu Mas'ud reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: If anyone recites the two verses at the end of Surah al-Baqara at night, they would suffice for him 'Abd al-Rahman said: I met Abu Mas'ud and he was circumambulating the House (of Allah) and asked him about this (tradition) and he narrated it to me from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1764. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the recitation of the Qur'an and that of surat al-Baqara. A hadith like this has been narrated by Abu Mas'ud from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1765. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the recitation of the Qur'an and that of surat al-Baqara. It is through another chain of transmitters that this hadith has been reported by Abu Mas'ud from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1766. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of sura Fatiha and concluding verses of surat al-Baqara and exhortation to recite the last two verses of surat al-Baqara. Abu Darda' reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: If anyone learns by heart the first ten verses of the Surah Al-Kahf, he will be protected from the Dajjal. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1767. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of sura Fatiha and concluding verses of surat al-Baqara and exhortation to recite the last two verses of surat al-Baqara. This hadith has been transmitted by Qatada with the same chain of transmitters. But Shu'ba (one of the narrators) said: At the end of Surah Al-Kahf, but Hammam said: At the beginning of Surah Al-Kahf. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1768. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of sura Fatiha and concluding verses of surat al-Baqara and exhortation to recite the last two verses of surat al-Baqara. Ubayy b. Ka'b said: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: O Abu' al-Mundhir, do you know the verse from the Muslim Book of Allah which, according to you, is the greatest? I said: Allah and His Apostle (may peace be upon him) know best. He again said: Abu'l-Mundhir, do you know the verse from the Muslim Book of Allah which, according to you, is the greatest? I said: Allah, there is no god but He, the Living, the Eternal. Thereupon he struck me on my breast and said: May knowledge be pleasant for you, O Abu'l-Mundhir! Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1769. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of surat al-Kahf and Ayat al-Kursi. Abu Darda' reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: Is any one of you incapable of reciting a third of the Qur'an in a night? They (the Companions) asked: How could one recite a third of the Qur'an (in a night)? Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) said: "He is Allah, One" (Qur'an. cxii.) is equivalent to a third of the Qur'an. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1770. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of surat al-Kahf and Ayat al-Kursi. This hadith has been narrated by Qatada with the same chain of transmitters in these words: He (the Apostle of Allah) said: Allah divided the Qur'an into three parts, and he made: "Say: He, Allah is One." one part out of the (three) parts of the Qur'an. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1771. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of surat al-Kahf and Ayat al-Kursi. It is reported on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Get together, for I am going to recite one-third of the Qur'an before you. And those who could get together gathered there. Then the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) came out and recited: "Say: He, Allah, is One." He then entered (his house). Some of us said to the others: Perhaps there has been some news from the heaven on account of which he has gone Inside (the house). The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) again came out and said: I told you that I was going to recite one-third of the Qur'an; keep in mind, this (Surah Ikhlas) is equivalent to one-third of the Qur'an. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1772. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of surat al-Kahf and Ayat al-Kursi. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came out to us and said: I am going to recite before you one-third of the Qur'an. He (the Holy Prophet) then recited: "Say: He is Allah, One--Allah, the Eternal," to the end of the Surah. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1773. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of surat al-Kahf and Ayat al-Kursi. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sent a man in charge of an expedition and he would recite for his Companions during their prayer, ending (recitation) with: "Say, He is God, One." When they returned mention was made of it to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). He (the Holy Prophet) told them to ask him why he had done like that. So they asked him and he said: Verily, it is an attribute of the Compassionate One, and (for this reason) I love to recite it. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) thereupon said: Inform him that Allah loves him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1774. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the recitation of "Say: He is Allah, the One". 'Uqba b. 'Amir reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: What wonderful verses have been sent down today, the like of which has never been seen ! They are: "Say: I seek refuge with the Lord of the dawn," and "Say: I seek refuge with the Lord of men." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1775. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the recitation of "Say: He is Allah, the One". 'Uqba b. 'Amir reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to me: There have been sent down to me verses the like of which had never been seen before. They are the Mu'awwadhatain. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1776. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the recitation of "Say: He is Allah, the One". This hadith has been narrated through another chain of transmitters directly from the Companions of Muhammad (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1777. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the recitation of the two suras concerning the taking of refuge. Salim narrated on the authority of his father (Ibn 'Umar) that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Envy is not justified but in case of two persons only: one who, having been given (knowledge of) the Qur'an by Allah, recites it during the night and day (and also acts upon it) and a man who, having been given wealth by God, spends it during the night and the day (for the welfare of others seeking the pleasure of the Lord). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1778. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the recitation of the two suras concerning the taking of refuge. Salim son of Abdullah b. 'Umar is reported to have said on the authority of his father that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: Envy is not justified but in case of two persons only: one who, having been given (knowledge of) the Qur'an by Allah, recites it during the night and during the day (and acts upon it), and the person who, having been given wealth by God, gives it in charity during the night and the day. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1779. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the recitation of the two suras concerning the taking of refuge. 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There should be no envy but only in case of two persons: one having been endowed with wealth and power to spend it in the cause of Truth, and (the other) who has been endowed with wisdom and he decides cases with the help of it and teaches it (to others). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1780. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the recitation of the two suras concerning the taking of refuge. 'Amir b. Wathila reported that Nafi' b. 'Abd al-Harith met 'Umar at 'Usfan and 'Umar had employed him as collector in Mecca. He (Hadrat 'Umar) said to him (Nafi'): Whom have you appointed as collector over the people of the valley? He said: Ibn Abza. He said: Who is Ibn Abza? He said: He is one of our freed slaves. He (Hadrat 'Umar) said: So you have appointed a freed slave over them. He said: He is well versed In the Muslim Book of Allah, the Exalted and Great, and he is well versed In the commandments and injunctions (of the Shari'ah). 'Umar said: So the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) said: By this Muslim Book, Allah would exalt some peoples and degrade others. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1781. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the recitation of the two suras concerning the taking of refuge. This hadith has been narrated by Zuhri through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1782. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of one who acts upon (the teachings of the) Qur'an and one who teaches it. 'Umar b. Khattab said: I heard Hisham b. Hakim b. Hizam reciting Surah al-Furqan in a style different from that in which I used to recite it, and in which Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had taught me to recite it. I was about to dispute with him (on this style) but I delayed till he had finished that (the recitation). Then I caught hold of his cloak and brought him to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: Messenger of Allah, I heard this man reciting Surah al-Furqan in a style different from the one in which you taught me to recite. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) told (me) to leave him alone and asked him to recite. He then recited in the style in which I beard him recite it. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) then said: Thus was it sent down. He then told me to recite and I recited it, and he said: Thus was it sent down. The Qur'an was sent down in seven dialects. So recite what seems easy there-from. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1783. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of one who acts upon (the teachings of the) Qur'an and one who teaches it. This hadith has been transmitted thus by 'Umar b. Khattab (with a slight change of words): "I heard Hisham b. Hakim reciting Surah al-Furqan during the lifetime of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him)." The rest is the same but with this addition: "I was about to catch hold of him in prayer, but I exercised patience till he pronounced salutation. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1784. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of one who acts upon (the teachings of the) Qur'an and one who teaches it. This hadith has been transmitted by Zuhri. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1785. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of one who acts upon (the teachings of the) Qur'an and one who teaches it. Ibn 'Abbas reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Gabriel taught me to recite in one style. I replied to him and kept asking him to give more (styles), till he reached seven modes (of recitation). Ibn Shibab said: It has reached me that these seven styles are essentially one, not differing about what is permitted and what is forbidden. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1786. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of one who acts upon (the teachings of the) Qur'an and one who teaches it. This hadith has been narrated by Zuhri with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1787. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of one who acts upon (the teachings of the) Qur'an and one who teaches it. Ubayy b. Ka'b reported: I was in the mosque when a man entered and prayed and recited (the Qur'an) in a style to which I objected. Then another man entered (the mosque) and recited in a style different from that of his companion. When we had finished the prayer, we all went to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and said to him: This man recited in a style to which I objected, and the other entered and recited in a style different from that of his companion. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) asked them to recite and so they recited, and the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) expressed approval of their affairs (their modes of recitation) and there occurred In my mind a sort of denial which did not occur even during the Days of Ignorance. When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saw how I was affected (by a wrong idea), he struck my chest, whereupon I broke into sweating and felt as though I were looking at Allah with fear. He (the Holy Prophet) said to me: Ubayy, a message was sent to me to recite the Qur'an in one dialect, and I replied: Make (things) easy for my people. It was conveyed to me for the second time that it should be recited in two dialects. I again replied to him: Make affairs easy for my people. It was again conveyed to me for the third time to recite in seven dialects And (I was further told): You have got a seeking for every reply that I sent you, which you should seek from Me. I said: O Allah ! forgive my people, forgive my people, and I have deferred the third one for the day on which the entire creation will turn to me, including even Ibrahim (peace be upon him) (for intercession). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1788. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of one who acts upon (the teachings of the) Qur'an and one who teaches it. Ubayy b. Ka'b reported that he was sitting in a mosque that a person entered it and he observed prayer, and made recitation, the rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1789. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of one who acts upon (the teachings of the) Qur'an and one who teaches it. Ubayy b. Ka'b reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) was near the tank of Banu Ghifar that Gabriel came to him and said: Allah has commanded you to recite to your people the Qur'an in one dialect. Upon this he said: I ask from Allah pardon and forgiveness. My people are not capable of doing it. He then came for the second time and said: Allah has commanded you that you should recite the Qur'an to your people in two dialects. Upon this he (the Holy prophet) again said: I seek pardon and forgiveness from Allah, my people would not be able to do so. He (Gabriel) came for the third time and said: Allah has commanded you to recite the Qur'an to your people in three dialects. Upon this he said: I ask pardon and forgiveness from Allah. My people would not be able to do it. He then came to him for the fourth time and said: Allah has commanded you to recite the Qur'an to your people in seven dialects, and in whichever dialect they would recite, they would be right. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1790. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of one who acts upon (the teachings of the) Qur'an and one who teaches it. This hadith has been narrated by Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1791. ------------------------------ Chapter : "The Qur'an has been revealed in seven modes of "reading" and its meaning. Abu Wa'il reported that a person named Nabik b. Sinan came to Abdullah (b. Mas'ud) and said: Abu 'Abd al-Rahman, how do you recite this word (alif) or (ya)? Would you read It as: min ma'in ghaira asin or au min ma'in ghaira ghaira yasin. (al-Qur'an, xlvii. 15)? 'Abdullah said: You (seem to) have memorised the whole of the Qur'an except this. He (again) said: I recite all the mufassal surahs in one rak'ah. Upon this 'Abdullah said: (You must have been reciting It) hastily like the recitation of poetry. Verily. there are people who recite the Qur'an, but it does not go down beyond their collar bones. It is (a fact with the Qur'an) that it is beneficial only when it settles in the heart and is rooted deeply in it. The best of (the acts) in prayer are bowing and prostration. I am quite aware of the occasions when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) combined together two surahs in every rak'ah. 'Abdullah then stood up and went out with 'Alqama following in his footstep. He said Ibn Numair had told him that the narration was like that: "A person belonging to Banu Bajila came to 'Abdullah," and he did not mention (the name of) Nahik b. Sinan. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1792. ------------------------------ Chapter : "The Qur'an has been revealed in seven modes of "reading" and its meaning. Abu Wa'il reported: A person came to 'Abdullah, who was called Nahik b. Sinan, and the rest of the hadith is the same but for this: " Alqama came to him ('Abdullah b. Mas'ud) and we said to him: Ask him about the manners in which he combined (two surahs) in one rak'ah. So he went to him and asked him and then came to us and said: Twenty are the mufassal surahs in the compilation (of the Qur'an) made by 'Abdullah." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1793. ------------------------------ Chapter : "The Qur'an has been revealed in seven modes of "reading" and its meaning. This hadith has been narrated by A'mash with the same chain of transmitters in which ('Abdullah b. Mas'ud) said: "I know the manners in which the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) recited the two surahs in one rak'ah and then twenty surahs in ten rak'ahs." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1794. ------------------------------ Chapter : "The Qur'an has been revealed in seven modes of "reading" and its meaning. Abu Wa'il reported: One day we went to 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud after we had observed the dawn prayer and we paid salutation at the door. He permitted us to enter, but we stayed for a while at the door, when the slave-girl came out and said: Why don't you come in? So we went in and (we found 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud) sitting and glorifying Allah (i.e. he was busy in dhikr) and he said: What obstructed you from coming in though you had been granted permission for it? We said: There was nothing (behind it) but we entertained the idea that some inmate of the house might be sleeping. He said: Do you presume any idleness on the part of the family of Ibn Umm 'Abd (the mother of Abdullah b. Mas'ud)? He was again busy with the glorification of Allah till he thought that the sun had risen. He said: Girl, see whether (the sun) has arisen. She glanced but it had not risen (by that time). He was again busy with the glorification (of Allah) and he (again) thought that the sun had arisen. She glanced (and confirmed) that, it had risen. Upon this he ('Abdullah b. Mas'ud) said: Praise be to Allah Who did not call us to account for our sins today. Mahdi said: I think that he said, He did not destroy us for our sins. One among the people said: I recited all the mufassal surahs during the night. 'Abdullah said: (You must have recited them) like the (recitation) of poetry. I heard (the Holy Prophet) combining (the sarahs) and I remember the combinations which the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) made In the recitation (of surahs). These were constituted of eighteen mufassal surahs and two surahs (commencing with) Ha-Mim. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1795. ------------------------------ Chapter : "The Qur'an has been revealed in seven modes of "reading" and its meaning. Shaqiq reported: A person from Banu Bajila who was called Nabik b. Sinan came to Abdullah and said: I recite mufassal surahs in one rak'ah. Upon this 'Abdullah said: (You recite) like the recitation of poetry. I know the manner in which the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) recited two surahs in one rak'ah. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1796. ------------------------------ Chapter : "The Qur'an has been revealed in seven modes of "reading" and its meaning. Abu Wa'il reported: A person came to 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud and said: I recited all the mufassal surahs in one rak'ah during the night. 'Abdullah said: You must have recited hastily like the recitation of poetry. 'Abdullah said: I remember well the manner in which the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to combine them, and he then mentioned twenty of the mufassal surahs, and (their combinations in) two in every rak'ah. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1797. ------------------------------ Chapter : Reciting the Qur'an leisurely and distinctively and abstaining from reciting it too hurriedly, and permission to recite two suras of more than two in a Rak'ah. Abu Ishaq reported: I saw a man asking Aswad b. Yazid who taught the Qur'an in the mosque: How do you recite the verse (fahal min muddakir) whether (the word muddakir) Is with (d) or (dh)? He (Aswad) said: It was with (d). I heard Abdullah b. Mas'ud saying that he had heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) reciting (muddakir) with (d). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1798. ------------------------------ Chapter : Reciting the Qur'an leisurely and distinctively and abstaining from reciting it too hurriedly, and permission to recite two suras of more than two in a Rak'ah. Ishaq is reported to have said on the authority of Aswad who quoted on the authority of 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to recite these words as (fahal min muddakir). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1799. ------------------------------ Chapter : Reciting the Qur'an leisurely and distinctively and abstaining from reciting it too hurriedly, and permission to recite two suras of more than two in a Rak'ah. 'Alqama reported. We went to Syria and Abu Darda' came to us and said: Is there anyone among you who recites according to the recitation of Abdullah? I said: Yes, it is I. He again said: How did you hear 'Abdullah reciting this verse: (wa'l-lail-i-idha yaghsha = when the night covers)? He ('Alqama) said: I heard him reciting it (like this) (wa'l-lail-i-idha yaghsha) wa-dhakar wal untha = when the night covers and the males and the females). Upon this he said: By Allah, I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) reciting in this way, but they (the Muslims of Syria) desire us to recite: (wa ma khalaqa), but I do not yield to their desire. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1800. ------------------------------ Chapter : Reciting the Qur'an leisurely and distinctively and abstaining from reciting it too hurriedly, and permission to recite two suras of more than two in a Rak'ah. Ibrahim reported: 'Alqama came to Syria and entered the mosque and prayed there and then went to a (place where people were sitting in a) circle and he sat therein. Then a person came there and I perceived that the people were annoyed and perturbed (on this arrival) and he sat on my side and then said: Do you remember how 'Abdullah used to recite (the Qur'an)? And then the rest of the hadith was narrated. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1801. ------------------------------ Chapter : Reciting the Qur'an leisurely and distinctively and abstaining from reciting it too hurriedly, and permission to recite two suras of more than two in a Rak'ah. 'Alqama reported: I met Abu Darda', and he said to me: To which country do you belong? I said: I am one of the people of Iraq. He again said: To which city? I replied: City of Kufa. He again said: Do you recite according to the recitation of 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud? I said: Yes. He said: Recite this verse (By the night when it covers) So I recited it: (By the night when it covers, and the day when it shines, and the creating of the male and the female). He laughed and said: I have heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) reciting like this. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1802. ------------------------------ Chapter : Reciting the Qur'an leisurely and distinctively and abstaining from reciting it too hurriedly, and permission to recite two suras of more than two in a Rak'ah. This hadith has been narrated by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1803. ------------------------------ Chapter : That which concerns recitation. Abu Huraira is reported to have said that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) prohibited to observe prayer after the 'Asr prayer till the sun is set, and after the dawn till the sun rises. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1804. ------------------------------ Chapter : That which concerns recitation. Ibn 'Abbas reported: I heard it from so many Companions of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and one among them is 'Umar b. Khattab, and he is most dear to me among them that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) prohibited observing of prayer after the dawn prayer till the sun rose and after the 'Asr till the sun set. This hadith has been narrated by Qatada with the same chain of transmitters with a minor alteration of words. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1805. ------------------------------ Chapter : That which concerns recitation. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: No prayer is valid after the 'Asr prayer till the sun sets and no prayer is valid after the dawn prayer till the sun rises. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1806. ------------------------------ Chapter : That which concerns recitation. Ibn 'Umar reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Let not any one of you intend to observe prayer at the time of the rising of the sun or of the setting sun. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1807. ------------------------------ Chapter : That which concerns recitation. Ibn 'Umar reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Do not intend to observe prayer at the time of the rising of the sun nor at its setting, for it rises between the horns of Satan. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1808. ------------------------------ Chapter : That which concerns recitation. Ibn 'Umar reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When the rim of the sun starts appearing defer prayer till it completely appears, and when the rim of the sun disappears defer prayer till it completely disappears. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1809. ------------------------------ Chapter : That which concerns recitation. Abu Basra Ghifari reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) led us in the 'Asr prayer at (the place known as) Mukhammas, and then said: This prayer was presented to those gone before you, but they lost it, and he who guards it has two rewards in store for him. And no prayer is valid after till the onlooker appears (by onlooker is meant the evening star). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1810. ------------------------------ Chapter : That which concerns recitation. This hadith has been narrated by Abu Basra Ghifari through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1811. ------------------------------ Chapter : That which concerns recitation. Uqba b. 'Amir said: There were the times at which Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) forbade us to pray, or bury our dead: When the sun begins to rise till it is fully up, when the sun is at its height at midday till it passes over the meridian, and when the sun draws near to setting till it sets. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1812. ------------------------------ Chapter : Times when prayer is prohibited. 'Amr b. 'Abasa Sulami reported: I in the state of the Ignorance (before embracing Islam) used to think that the people were in error and they were not on anything (which may be called the right path) and worshipped the idols. In the meanwhile I heard of a man in Mecca who was giving news (on the basis of his prophetic knowledge); so I sat on my ride and went to him. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was at that time hiding as his people had made life hard for him. I adopted a friendly attitude (towards the Meccans and thus managed) to enter Mecca and go to him (the Holy Prophet) and I said to him: Who are you? He said: I am a Prophet (of Allah). I again said: Who is a Prophet? He said: (I am a Prophet in the sense that) I have been sent by Allah. I said: What is that which you have been sent with? He said: I have been sent to join ties of relationship (with kindness and affection), to break the Idols, and to proclaim the oneness of Allah (in a manner that) nothing is to be associated with Him. I said: Who is with you in this (in these beliefs and practices)? He said: A free man and a slave. He (the narrator) said: Abu Bakr and Bilal were there with him among those who had embraced Islam by that time. I said: I intend to follow you. He said: During these days you would not be able to do so. Don't you see the (hard) condition under which I and (my) people are living? You better go back to your people and when you hear that I have been granted victory, you come to me. So I went to my family. I was in my home when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him)came to Medina. I was among my people and used to seek news and ask people when he arrived in Medina. Then a group of people belonging to Yathrib (Medina) came. I said (to them): How is that person getting on who has come to Medina? They said: The people are hastening to him, while his people (the polytheists of Mecca) planned to kill him, but they could not do so. I (on hearing It) came to Medina and went to him and said: Messenger of Allah, do you recognise me? He said: Yes, you are the same man who met me at Mecca. I said: It is so. I again said: Prophet of Allah, tell me that which Allah has taught you and which I do not know, tell me about the prayer. He said: Observe the dawn prayer, then stop praying when the sun is rising till it Is fully up, for when it rises it comes up between the horns of Satan, and the unbelievers prostrate themselves to it at that time. Then pray, for the prayer is witnessed and attended (by angels) till the shadow becomes about the length of a lance; then cease prayer, for at that time Hell is heated up. Then when the shadow moves forward, pray, for the prayer is witnessed and attended by angels, till you pray the afternoon prayer, then cease prayer till the sun sets, for it sets between the horns of devil, and at that time the unbelievers prostrate themselves before it. I said: Apostle of Allah, tell me about ablution also. He said: None of you who uses water for ablution and rinses his mouth, snuffs up water and blows it, but the sins of his face, and his mouth and his nostrils fall out. When he washes his face, as Allah has commanded him, the sins of his face fall out from the end of his beard with water. Then (when) he washes his forearms up to the elbows, the sins of his arms fall out along with water from his finger-tips. And when he wipes his head, the sins of his head fall out from the points of his hair along with water. And (when) he washes his feet up to the ankles, the sins of his feet fall out from his toes along with water. And if he stands to pray and praises Allah, lauds Him and glorifies Him with what becomes Him and shows wholehearted devotion to Allah, his sins would depart leaving him (as innocent) as he was on the day his mother bore him. 'Amr b. 'Abasa narrated this hadith to Abu Umama, a Companion of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and Abu Umama said to him: 'Amr b. 'Abasa, think what you are saying that such (a great reward) is given to a man at one place (only in the act of ablution and prayer). Upon this 'Amr said: Abu Umama, I have grown old and my bones have become weak and I am at the door of death; what impetus is there for me to attribute a lie to Allah and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him)? Had I heard it from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) once, twice, or three times (even seven times), I would have never narrated it, but I have heard it from him on occasions more than these. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1813. ------------------------------ Chapter : How Amr b. Abasa embraced Islam. 'Aisha reported that 'Umar misconstrued the fact that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had prohibited the observance of prayer at the time of the rising sun and at the time of its setting. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1814. ------------------------------ Chapter : How Amr b. Abasa embraced Islam. 'Aisha said that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) did not abandon observing two rak'ahs after 'Asr, but she reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Do not get used to observe prayer at the time of the rising sun and at the time of its setting and (exhorted the Muslims) to pray at their times. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1815. ------------------------------ Chapter : How Amr b. Abasa embraced Islam. Kuraib, the freed slave of Ibn 'Abbas, reported that 'Abdullah b. 'Abbas, 'Abd al-Rahman b. Azhar, al-Miswar b. Makhrama sent him to 'Aisha, the wife of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), telling him to give her their greetings, and ask her about the two rak'ahs after the afternoon prayer, (for) "we have heard that you observe them whereas it has been conveyed to us that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) prohibited their observance." Ibn 'Abbas said: I along with 'Umar b. al-Khattab dissuaded people to do so (to observe two rak'ahs of prayer). Kuraib said: I went to her ('Aisha) and conveyed to her the message with which I was sent. She said: (Better) ask Umm Salama. So I went to them (those who had sent him to Hadrat 'Aisha) and informed them about what she had said. They sent me back to Umm Salama with that with which I was sent to 'Aisha. Umm Salama said: I beard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) prohibiting them, and then afterwards I saw him observing them. And when he observed them (two rak'ahs) he had already observed the 'Asr prayer. Then he (the Holy Prophet) came, while there were with me ladies of Banu Haram, a tribe of the Ansar and he (the Holy Prophet) observed them (the two rak'ahs). I sent a slave-girl to him asking her to stand by his side and say to him that Umm Salama says: Messenger of Allah, I heard you prohibiting these two rak'ahs, whereas I saw you observing them; and if he (the Holy Prophet) points with his hand (to wait), then do wait. The slave-girl did like that. He (the Holy Prophet) pointed out with his hand and she got aside and waited, and when he had finished (the prayer) he said: Daughter of Abu Umayya. you have asked about the two rak'ahs after the 'Asr prayer. Some people of 'Abu al-Qais came to me for embracing Islam and hindered me from observing the two rak'ahs which come after the noon prayer. So those are the two I have been praying. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1816. ------------------------------ Chapter : How Amr b. Abasa embraced Islam. Abu Salama asked 'Aisha about the two prostrations (i.e. rak'ahs) which the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) made after the 'Asr. She said: He (the Holy Prophet) observed them before the 'Asr prayer, but then he was hindered to do so, or he forgot them and then he observed them after the 'Asr, and then he continued observing them. (It was his habit) that when he (the Holy Prophet) observed prayer, he then continued observing it. Isma'il said: It implies that he always did that. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1817. ------------------------------ Chapter : How Amr b. Abasa embraced Islam. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) did not abandon at all observing two rak'ahs after the 'Asr in my house. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1818. ------------------------------ Chapter : How Amr b. Abasa embraced Islam. 'Aisha reported: Two are the prayers which the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) always observed in my house-openly or secretly-two rak'ahs before the dawn and two rak'ahs after the 'Asr. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1819. ------------------------------ Chapter : How Amr b. Abasa embraced Islam. Aswad and Masruq reported: We bear testimony to the fact that 'Aisha said: Never was there a day that he (the Holy Prophet) was with me and he did not observe two rak'ahs of prayer in my house, i.e. two rak'ahs after the Asr. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1820. ------------------------------ Chapter : Do not get into the habit of observing prayer at the time of the rising sun and at the time of its setting. Mukhtar b. Fulful said: I asked Anas b. Malik about the voluntary prayers after the afternoon prayer, and he replied: 'Umar struck hit hands on prayer observed after the 'Asr prayer and we used to observe two rak'ahs after the sun set before the evening prayer during the time of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him). I said to him: Did the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observe them? He said: He saw us observing them, but he neither commanded us nor forbade us to do so. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1821. ------------------------------ Chapter : Do not get into the habit of observing prayer at the time of the rising sun and at the time of its setting. Anas b. Malik reported: When we were in Medina, the moment the Mu'adhdhin made the call to the sunset prayer, the people hastened to the pillars of the mosque and prayed two rak'ahs with the result that any stranger coming into the mosque would think that the obligatory prayer had been observed owing to the number who were praying then. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1822. ------------------------------ Chapter : Do not get into the habit of observing prayer at the time of the rising sun and at the time of its setting. Abdullah b. Mughaffal reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) u saying: There Is between the two calls (Adhan and Iqama) a prayer. And he mentioned it three times, and at the third time he said: This applies to those who wish to do it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1823. ------------------------------ Chapter : Do not get into the habit of observing prayer at the time of the rising sun and at the time of its setting. This hadith has been narrated by Abdullah b. Mughaffal by another chain of transmitters, but with this variation that he (the Holy Prophet) said at the fourth time: "He who wishes (may do to)." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1824. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs before the evening prayer. Salim b. Abdullah b. 'Umar reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) led one of the two groups In one rak'ah of prayer in danger, while the other group faced the enemy. Then they (the members of the first group) went back and replaced their companions who were facing the enemy and then they (the members of the second group) came and the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) led them in one rak'ah of prayer. Then the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) pronounced salutation, and then they (the members of the Ant group) completed the rak'ah and they (the members of the second group) completed the rak'ah. This hadith has been narrated by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1825. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs before the evening prayer. Ibn Umar reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed prayer in danger on some day (in this way): a group stood with him (the Holy Prophet) (for prayer) and the other group stood In front of the enemy. Then those who were with (him) observed one rak'ah of prayer and they went back and the others came and they observed one rak'ah (with him). Then both the groups completed one rak'ah each. Ibn Umar said: When there is greater danger, then observe prayer even on the ride or with the help of gestures in a standing posture. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1826. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs before the evening prayer. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported: I observed prayer in danger with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). We drew ourselves up in two rows, one row behind him with the enemy between us and the Qibla. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Allah is Most Great, and we all said it. He then bowed and we all bowed. He then raised his head from bowing, we all raised (our heads). He then went down in prostration along with the row close to him, and the rear row faced the enemy; then when the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) completed the prostration,; and then stood up, the row near to him also did it; then went down the rear row in prostration; then they stood up; then the rear row went to the front and the front row went to the rear. Then the Apostle of Allah (may peace he upon him) bowed down and we all bowed. He then raised his head from bowing and we also raised (our heads). He and the row close to him which I had been in the rear then went down in prostration In the first rak'ah, whereas the rear row faced the enemy. And when the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and the rear row close to him had finished the prostration, the rear row went down and prostrated themselves; then the Apostle of Allah pronounced the salutation and we also pronounced the salutation. (Jabir said we hadith) as your guards behave with their chiefs. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1827. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs before the evening prayer. Jabir reported: We fought In the company of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) with the tribe of Juhaina. They fought with us terribly. When we had finished the noon prayer, the polytheists said: Had we attacked them at once, we would have killed them. Gabriel informed the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) about It (about their evil design). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) made a mention of it to us, adding that they (the polytheists) had also said: Shortly there would be time for the 'Asr prayer. which is dearer o them (the Muslims) than even their children. So when the time of the 'Asr prayer came, we formed ourselves into two rows, while the polytheists were between us and the Qibla. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Allah is Most Great, and we also said so. He bowed and we also bowed. He went down in prostration and the first row prostrated along with him. When they stood up, the second row went down in prostration. Then the first row went into the rear, and the second row came in the front and occupied the place of the first row. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) then said: Allah is Most Great, and we also said so. He then bowed, and we also bowed. He then went down in prostration and along with him the row also (went down in prostration), and the second row remained standing. And when the second row had also prostrated and all of them sat down then the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) pronounced salutation to them. Abu Zubair said: Jabir made a mention specially of this thing: just as your chiefs observe prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1828. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs before the evening prayer. Sahl b. Abu Hathma reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) led his Companions in prayer in danger. He made them stand in two rows behind him. He led them who were close to him in one rak'ah. He then stood up and kept standing till those who were behind them observed one rak'ah. Then they (those standing in the second row) came in front and those who were in front went into the rear. He then led them In one rak'ah. He then sat down, till those who were behind him observed one rak'ah and then pronounced salutation. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1829. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs before the evening prayer. Yazid b. Ruman told on the authority of Salih b. Khawwat on the authority of one who prayed in time of danger with Allah's Messenger (may peace he upon him) at the Battle of Dhat ar-Riqa' that a group formed a row and prayed along with him, and a group faced the enemy. He led the group which was along with him in a rak'ah, then remained standing while they finished the prayer by themselves. Then they departed and formed a row facing the enemy. Then the second group came and he led them in the remaining rak'ah, after which he remained seated while they finished the prayer themselves. He then led them in salutation. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1830. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs before the evening prayer. Jabir reported: We went forward with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and when we reached Dhat ar-Riqa', we came to a shady tree which -we left for him One of the polytheists came there and, seeing the sword of the Messenger (may peace be upon him) hanging by a free, took it up. drew it from the scabbard and said to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him): Are you afraid of Me? He (the Holy Prophet) said: No. He again said: Who would protect you from me? He said: Allah will protect me from you. The Companions of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) threatened him. He sheathed the sword and hung it up. Then call to prayer was made and he (the Holy Prophet) led a group in two rak'ah. Then (the members of this group) withdrew and he led the second group in two rak'ah. So the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed four rak'ah and people observed two rak'ah. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1831. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing two Rak'ahs before the evening prayer. Abu Salama b. 'Abd al-Rahman reported that Jabir told him that he had observed the prayer in danger with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) (first) led one of the two groups in two rak'ah of prayer. and then led the second group in two rak'ah of prayer. So the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed four rak'ah and led in two rak'ah each of the groups. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1832. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer in time of danger. Abdullah is reported to have heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When any one of you intends to come for Jumu'a prayer, he should take a bath. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1833. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer in time of danger. Abdullah b. Umar is reported to have said that The Messenger of Allah (may peace be up on him)was standing on the pulpit when he said this: He who comes for Jumu'a he should take a bath. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1834. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer in time of danger. This hadith has been narrated by Ibn Umar by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1835. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer in time of danger. 'Abdullah (b. Umar) reported on the authority of his father that he beard like this from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1836. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer in time of danger. 'Abdullah (b. 'Umar) reported from his father that while he was addressing the people on Friday (sermon), a person, one of the Companions of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), entered (the mosque). Umar said to him loudly: What is this hour (for attending the prayer)? He said: I was busy today and I did not return to my house when I heard the call (to Friday prayer), and I did no more but performed ablution only. Upon this Umar said: just ablution ! You know that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) commanded (us) to take a bath (on Friday). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1837. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer in time of danger. Abu Huraira reported: Umar b. Khattab was delivering a sermon to the people on Friday when 'Uthman b. 'Affan came there. 'Umar hinting to him said: What would become of those persons who come after the call to prayer? Upon this 'Uthman said: Commander of the faithful, I did no more than this that after listening to the call, I performed ablution and came (to the mosque). 'Umar said: Just ablution ! Did you not bear the Messenger of Allah (my peace be upon him) say this: When any one of you comes for Jumu'a, he should take a bath. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1838. ------------------------------ Chapter : Jumu'a Prayer. Sa'id al-Khudri reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Taking a bath on Friday is essential for every adult person. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1839. ------------------------------ Chapter : Jumu'a Prayer. 'Aisha reported: The people came for Jumu'a prayer from their houses in the neighbouring villages dressed in woollen garments on which dust was settled and this emitted a foal smell. A person among them (those who were dressed so) came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) while he was in my house. The Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) said to him: Were you to cleanse yourselves on this day. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1840. ------------------------------ Chapter : Jumu'a Prayer. 'Aisha reported: The people (mostly) were workers and they had no servants. Ill-smell thus emitted out of them. It was said to them: Were you to take bath on Friday. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1841. ------------------------------ Chapter : The essentiality of taking bath on Friday. 'Abd al-Rahman son of Abd Sa'id al-Khudri reported on the authority of his father that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Bathing on Friday for every adult, using of Miswak and applying some perfume, that is available-these are essential. So far as the perfume is concerned, it may be that used by a lady. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1842. ------------------------------ Chapter : The essentiality of taking bath on Friday. Tawus reported that Ibn Abbas narrated the words of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) about taking bath on Friday. Tawus said: I asked Ibn Abbas it one should apply to oneself perfume or oil which is available with his wife. He (Ibn Abbas) said: I do not know of it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1843. ------------------------------ Chapter : The essentiality of taking bath on Friday. This hadith has been narrated by Ibn Juraij with the came chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1844. ------------------------------ Chapter : The essentiality of taking bath on Friday. Abu Huraira reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: It is the right of Allah upon every Muslim that he should take a bath (at least) on one day (Friday) during the seven days (of the week) and he should wash his head and body . Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1845. ------------------------------ Chapter : The essentiality of taking bath on Friday. Abu Huraira reported that the Messenger of, Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who takes a bath on Friday, the bath which is obligatory after the sexual discharge and then goes (to the mosque), he is like one who offers a she-camel as a sacrifice, and he who comes at the second hour would be like one who offers a cow, and he who comes at the third hour is live one who offers a ram with horns, and he who comes at the fourth hour is like one who offers a hen, and he who comes at the fifth hour is like one who offers an egg. And when the Imam comes out, the angels are also present and listen to the mention of God (the sermon). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1846. ------------------------------ Chapter : Perfume and using of miswak on Friday. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: If you (even) ask your companion to be quiet on Friday while the Imam is delivering the sermon, you have in fact talked irrelevance. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1847. ------------------------------ Chapter : Perfume and using of miswak on Friday. A hadith like this has been narrated by Abu Huraira by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1848. ------------------------------ Chapter : Perfume and using of miswak on Friday. The same hadith has been narrated by Abu Huraira, but instead of the word laghauta the word laghita has been used. Abu Zinad (one of the narrators) says that laghita is the dialect of Abu Huraira, whereas it is laghauta. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1849. ------------------------------ Chapter : Observing of silence in sermon on Friday. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There is a time on Friday at which no Muslim servant would pray and would ask Allah for a thing (that is good) but He would give it to him. Qutaiba pointed with the help of his hand that it (the time) is short. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1850. ------------------------------ Chapter : Observing of silence in sermon on Friday. Abu Huraira reported Abu'l-Qasim (the kunya of the Holy Prophet) (may peace be upon him) as saying: There is a time on Friday at which no Muslim would stand and pray and beg Allah for what Is good but He would give it to him; and he pointed with his hand that (this time) is short and narrow. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1851. ------------------------------ Chapter : Observing of silence in sermon on Friday. A hadith like this has been narrated by Abu Huraira. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1852. ------------------------------ Chapter : Observing of silence in sermon on Friday. This hadith has been narrated by Abu Huraira by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1853. ------------------------------ Chapter : Observing of silence in sermon on Friday. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Apostle (way peace be upon him) as saying. There is a time on Friday at which no Muslim would ask Allah for what is good but He would give it to him. And further said: This is a very short time. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1854. ------------------------------ Chapter : Observing of silence in sermon on Friday. Hammam b. Munabbih reported this hadith from Abu Huraira who reported from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) but he did not say: "That time is short." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1855. ------------------------------ Chapter : Observing of silence in sermon on Friday. Abu Burda b. Abu Musa al-Ash'ari reported: 'Abdullah b. Umar said to me: Did you hear anything from your father narrating something from the messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) about the time on Friday? I said: Yes, I heard him say from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) (these words): "It is between the time when the Imam sits down and the end of the prayer." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1856. ------------------------------ Chapter : There is a special (fortunate) time on Friday. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The best day on which the sun has risen is Friday; on it Adam was created, on it he was made to enter Paradise, on it he was expelled from it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1857. ------------------------------ Chapter : There is a special (fortunate) time on Friday. Abu Huraira reported the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: The best day on which the sun has risen is Friday; on it Adam was created on it he was made to enter Paradise, on it he was expelled from it. And the last hour will take place on no day other than Friday. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1858. ------------------------------ Chapter : There is a special (fortunate) time on Friday. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: We who are the last shall be the first on the Day of Resurrection, except that every Ummah was given the Muslim Book before us and we were given it after them. It was this day which Allah prescribed for us and guided us to it and the people came after us with regard to it, the Jews observing the next day and the Christians the day following that. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1859. ------------------------------ Chapter : There is a special (fortunate) time on Friday. A hadith like this has been narrated by Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) said: We are the last and would be the first on the Day of Resurrection. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1860. ------------------------------ Chapter : There is a special (fortunate) time on Friday. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: We are the last (but) we would be the first on the Day of Resurrection, and we would be the first to enter Paradise, but that they were given the Muslim Book before us and we were given after them. They disagreed and Allah guided us aright on whatever they disagreed regarding the truth. And it was this day of theirs about which they disagreed, but Allah guided us to it, and that is Friday for us; the next day is for the Jews and the day following for the Christians. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1861. ------------------------------ Chapter : There is a special (fortunate) time on Friday. Abu Huraira reported Muhammad, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), as saying: We who are the last would be the first on the Day of Resurrection but they (other Ummahs) were given the Muslim Book before us and we were given after them, and this was the day that was prescribed for them but they disagreed on it. And Allah guided us to it and they came after us with regard to it, the Jews observing the next day and the Christians the day following that. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1862. ------------------------------ Chapter : There is a special (fortunate) time on Friday. It is narrated by Abu Huraira and Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: It was Friday from which Allah diverted those who were before us. For the Jews (the day set aside for prayer) was Sabt (Saturday), and for the Christians it was Sunday. And Allah turned towards us and guided us to Friday (as the day of prayer) for us. In fact, He (Allah) made Friday, Saturday and Sunday (as days of prayer). In this order would they (Jews and Christians) come after us on the Day of Resurrection. We are the last of (the Ummahs) among the people in this world and the first among the created to be judged on the Day of Resurrection. In one narration it is: ',to be judged among them". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1863. ------------------------------ Chapter : There is a special (fortunate) time on Friday. Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: We were guided aright to Friday (as a day of prayer and meditation), but Allah diverted those who were before us from it. The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1864. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Friday. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When it is Friday, the angels stand at every door of the mosque and record the people in the order of their arrival, and when the Imam sits (on the pulpit for delivering the sermon) they fold up their sheets (manuscripts of the Qur'an) and listen to the mention (of Allah). And he who comes early is like one who offers a she-camel as a sacrifice, the next like one who offers a cow, the next a ram, the next a hen, the next an egg. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1865. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Friday. This hadith has been narrated by Abu Huratra through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1866. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Friday. Abu Huraira reported Allah Messenger (way peace be upon him) as saying: There is an angel on every door of the mosque recording him first who (conies) first (a the mosque for Friday prayer). And he [the Prophet] likened him as one who offers a camel as a sacrifice and then he went on in the descending order till he reached the point at which the minimum (sacrifice) is that of an egg. And when the Imam sits (on the pulpit) the sheets are folded and they (the angels) attend to the mention of Allah. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1867. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of going out early on Friday. Abu-Huraira reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who took a bath and then came for Jumu'a prayer and then prayed what was fixed for him, then kept silence till the Imam finished the sermon, and then prayed along with him, his sins between that time and the next Friday would be forgiven, and even of three days wore. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1868. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of going out early on Friday. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who performed ablution well, then came to Friday prayer, listened (to the sermon), kept silence all (his sins) between that time and the next Friday would be forgiven with three days extra, and he who touched pebbles caused an interruption. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1869. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of one who listens to the Khutba with perfect silence. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported: We used to observe (Jumu'a) prayer with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and then we returned and gave rest to our camels used for carrying water. Hassan (one of the narrators) said: I asked Ja'far what time that was. He said: It is the time when the sun passes the meridian. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1870. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of one who listens to the Khutba with perfect silence. Ja'far reported on the authority of his father that he asked Jabir b. 'Abdullah when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed Jumu'a prayer. He said: He used to observe prayer, and we then went (back) to our camels and gave them rest. 'Abdullah made this addition in his narration: "Till the sun passed the meridian and the camels used for carrying water (took rest)." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1871. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of one who listens to the Khutba with perfect silence. Sahl b. Said said: We did not have a siesta or lunch till after the Friday prayer. (Ibn Hujr added:) "Daring the lifetime of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him)." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1872. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of one who listens to the Khutba with perfect silence. Iyas b. Salama b. al-Akwa' reported on the authority of his father: We used to observe the Friday prayer with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) when the sun passed the meridian and we then returned and tried to find out afternoon shadow (of the walls for protecting themselves from the heat of the sun). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1873. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of one who listens to the Khutba with perfect silence. Iyas b. Salama b. Akwa' reported on the authority of his father, saying: We used to observe the Friday prayer with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and when we returned we did not find the shadow of the walls in which we could take protection (from the heat of the sun). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1874. ------------------------------ Chapter : Jumu'a prayer is to be observed when the sun passes over the meridian. Ibn 'Umar said that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to deliver the sermon on Friday while standing. He would then sit and then stand (for the second sermon) as they (the Muslims) do nowadays. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1875. ------------------------------ Chapter : Jumu'a prayer is to be observed when the sun passes over the meridian. Jabir b. Samura said: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) gave two sermons between which he sat, recited the Qur'an and exhorted the people. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1876. ------------------------------ Chapter : Jumu'a prayer is to be observed when the sun passes over the meridian. Jabir b. Samura said that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to deliver the sermon while standing. He would then sit down and then stand up and address in a standing posture; and whoever informed you that he (the Holy Prophet) delivered the sermon while sitting told a lie. By Allah, I prayed with him more than two thousand times. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1877. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the two sermons before the Friday prayer and sitting for a while between the two. Jabir b. Abdullah reported that the Apostle (may peace be upon him) was delivering the sermon on Friday in a standing posture when a caravan from Syria arrived. The people flocked towards it till no one was left (with the Holy Prophet) but twelve persons, and it was on this occasion that this verse in regard to Jumu'a was revealed. "And when they see merchandise or sport, they break away to it and leave thee standing." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1878. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the two sermons before the Friday prayer and sitting for a while between the two. This hadith has been narrated by Husain with the same chain of transmitters but with this alteration that he did not make mention of the standing position. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1879. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the two sermons before the Friday prayer and sitting for a while between the two. Jabir b. Abdullah reported: I was along with the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) on Friday when a caravan arrived. The people went to it, and none but twelve persons were left behind and I was one of them; and it was on this occasion that this verse was revealed: "And when they see merchandise or sport away to it, and leave thee standing" (lxii. 11). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1880. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the two sermons before the Friday prayer and sitting for a while between the two. Jabir b. Abdullah reported: While the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) was delivering (a sermon) on Friday, a caravan of merchandise came to Medina. The Companions of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) rushed towards it till only twelve persons were left with him including Abu Bakr and 'Umar; and it was at this occasion that this verse was revealed. "And when they see merchandise or sport, they break away to it." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1881. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the two sermons before the Friday prayer and sitting for a while between the two. Ka'b b. 'Ujra reported that he entered the mosque and saw Abd al-Rahman b. Umm Hakam delivering the sermon in a sitting posture. Upon this he said: Look at this wretched person; he delivers the sermon while sitting, whereas Allah said: "And when they see merchandise or sport, they break away to it and leave thee standing." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1882. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the words of the Qur'an: "And when they see merchandise or sport, they break away to it, and leave thee standing'. Abdullah b. Umar and Abu Huraira said that they heard Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) say on the planks of his pulpit: People most cease to neglect the Friday prayer or Allah will seal their hearts and then they will be among the negligent. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1883. ------------------------------ Chapter : Warning on neglecting Jumu'a. Jabir b. Samura reported: I used to pray with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and both his prayer and sermon were of moderate length. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1884. ------------------------------ Chapter : Warning on neglecting Jumu'a. Jabir b. Samura reported: I used to observe prayer with the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and his prayer was of moderate length and his sermon too was of moderate length. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1885. ------------------------------ Chapter : Warning on neglecting Jumu'a. Jabir b. Abdullah said: When Allah's Messenger (may peace he upon him) delivered the sermon, his eyes became red, his voice rose and his anger increased so that he was like one giving a warning against the enemy and saying: "The enemy has made a morning attack on you and in the evening too." He would also say: "The last Hour and I have been sent like these two." and he would join his forefinger and middle finger; and would further say: "The best of the speech is embodied in the Muslim Book of Allah, and the beet of the guidance is the guidance given by Muhammad. And the most evil affairs are their innovations; and every innovation is error." He would further say: ,I am more dear to a Muslim even than his self; and he who left behind property that is for his family and he who dies under debt or leaves children (in helplessness), the responsibility (of paying his debt and bringing up his children) lies on me." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1886. ------------------------------ Chapter : Warning on neglecting Jumu'a. Ja'far b. Muhammad said on the authority of his father: I heard Jabir b. 'Abdullah saying that in the sermon of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) he praised Allah, lauded Him (and subsequently said [other words] and raised his voice, and the rest of the hadith is the same). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1887. ------------------------------ Chapter : Warning on neglecting Jumu'a. Jabir reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), while delivering the sermon' to the people, praised Allah, and lauded Him for what He deserves, and would then say: He whom Allah guides aright, there is none to mislead him, and he who is led astray, there is none to guide him (aright), and the best of the talk is embodied in the Muslim Book of Allah. And the rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1888. ------------------------------ Chapter : Warning on neglecting Jumu'a. Ibn 'Abbas reported: Dimad came to Mecca and he belonged to the tribe of Azd Shanu'a, and he used to protect the person who was under the influence of charm. He heard the foolish people of Mecca say that Muhammad (may peace be upon him) was under the spell. Upon this he said: If I were to come across this man, Allah might cure him at my hand. He met him and said: Muhammad, I can protect (one) who is under the influence of charm, and Allah cures one whom He so desires at my hand. Do you desire (this)? Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Praise is due to Allah, we praise Him, ask His help; and he whom Allah guides aright there is none to lead him astray, and he who is led astray there is none to guide him, and I bear testimony to the fact that there is no god but Allah, He is One, having no partner with Him, and that Muhammad is His Servant and Messenger. Now after this he (Dimad) said: Repeat these words of yours before me, and the messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) repeated these to him thrice; and he said I have heard the words of soothsayers and the words of magicians, and the words of poets, but I have never heard such words as yours, and they reach the depth (of the ocean of eloquence); bring forth your hand so that I should take oath of fealty to you on Islam. So he took an oath of allegiance to him. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: It (this allegiance of yours) is on behalf of your people too. He said: It is on behalf of my people too. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sent an expedition and the flying column passed by his people. The leader of the flying column said to the detachment: Did you find anything from these people? One of the people said: I found a utensil for water. Upon this he (the commander) said: Return it, for he is one of the people of Dimad. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1889. ------------------------------ Chapter : Warning on neglecting Jumu'a. Abu Wa'il reported: 'Ammar delivered to us the sermon. It was short and eloquent. When he (Ammir) descended (from the pulpit) we said to him: O Abd al-Yaqzn, you have delivered a short and eloquent sermon. Would that you had lengthened (the sermon). He said: I have heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: The lengthening of prayer by a man and the shortness of the sermon is the sign of his understanding (of faith). So lengthen the prayer and shorten the sermon, for there is charm (in precise) expression. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1890. ------------------------------ Chapter : Warning on neglecting Jumu'a. 'Adi b. Hatim reported that a person recited a sermon before the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) thus: He who obeys Allay and His Apostle, he in fact follows the right path, and he who disobeys both of them, he goes astray. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: What a bad speaker you are; say: He who disobeys Allah and His Apostle. Ibn Numair added: He in fact went astray. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1891. ------------------------------ Chapter : Warning on neglecting Jumu'a. Safwan b. Ya'la reported on the authority of his father that he heard the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) reciting (verses of the Qur'an) on the pulpit and "They cried: O Malik." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1892. ------------------------------ Chapter : Warning on neglecting Jumu'a. 'Amra daughter of Abd al-Rahman reported on the authority of the sister of Amra, I memorised (surah) Qaf - l.): "By the glorious Qur'an" from the mouth of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on Friday for he recited it on the pulpit on-every Friday. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1893. ------------------------------ Chapter : Warning on neglecting Jumu'a. The daughter of Haritha b. Nu'man said: I did not memorise (Surah) Qaf but from the mouth of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as he used to deliver the sermon along with it on every Friday. She also added: Our oven and that of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was one. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1894. ------------------------------ Chapter : Warning on neglecting Jumu'a. Umm Bisham hint Haritha b. Nu'man said: Our oven and that of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was one for two years, or for one year or for a part of a year; and I learnt "Qaf. By the Glorious Qur'an" from no other source than the tongue of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) who used to recite it every Friday on the pulpit when he delivered the sermon to the people. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1895. ------------------------------ Chapter : Warning on neglecting Jumu'a. Umara b. Ruwaiba said he saw Bishr b. Marwan on the pulpit raising his hands and said: Allah, disfigure these hands! I have seen Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) gesture no more than this with his hands, and he pointed with his forefinger. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1896. ------------------------------ Chapter : Warning on neglecting Jumu'a. This hadith has been narrated by another chain of transmitters on the authority of Husain b. Abd al-Rahman. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1897. ------------------------------ Chapter : Shortness of prayer and surmon. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported that while Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) was delivering the sermon on Friday a person came there, and the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to him: So and so, have you prayed (two rak'ahs)? He said: No. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Then stand and pray. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1898. ------------------------------ Chapter : Shortness of prayer and surmon. This hadith is narrated by Jabir through another chain of transmitters but Hammad (one of the narrators) made no mention of the two rak'ahs. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1899. ------------------------------ Chapter : Shortness of prayer and surmon. Jabir b. 'Abdullah said that a person entered the Mosque while the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was delivering the sermon on Friday. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) said: Have you observed prayer? He said: No. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Stand and offer the two rak'ahs. According to Qutaiba, the words are: "He said: Offer two rak'ahs." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1900. ------------------------------ Chapter : Shortness of prayer and surmon. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported that a person came (in the Mosque) while the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) was delivering the sermon on Friday (standing) on the pulpit. He (the Holy Prophet) said to him: Have you offered two rak'ahs? He said: No. Upon this he said: Then observe (them). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1901. ------------------------------ Chapter : Shortness of prayer and surmon. Jabir b. 'Abdullah said that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) delivered the sermon and said: When any one of you comes for the Friday (prayer) and the Imam comes out (from his apartment), (even then) should observe two rak'ahs (of prayer). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1902. ------------------------------ Chapter : Shortness of prayer and surmon. Jabir reported that Sulaik Ghatafani came on Friday (for prayer) while the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was sitting on the pulpit. Sulaik also sat down before observing prayer. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Have you observed two rak'ahs? He said: No. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Stand and observe them Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1903. ------------------------------ Chapter : Shortness of prayer and surmon. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported: Sulaik Ghatafani came on Friday when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was delivering the sermon. He (Sulaik) sat down. He (the Holy Prophet) said to him: O Sulaik I stand and observe two rak'ahs and make them short, and then said: When any one of you comes on Friday, while the Imam delivers the sermon, he should observe two rak'ahs and should make them short. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1904. ------------------------------ Chapter : Observing of two Rak'ahs as a salutation of the mosque while the Imam is delivering (the sermon). Abu Rifa'a reported: I came to the Holy Prophet (way peace be upon him) when he was delivering the sermon, and I said: Messenger of Allah, here is a stranger and he wants to learn about this religion and he does not know what this religion is. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) looked at me and left his sermon till he came to me, and he was given a chair and I thought that Its legs were made of iron. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sat In it and he began to teach me what Allah had taught him. He then came (to the pulpit) for his sermon and completed it to the end. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1905. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hadith pertaining to giving instruction in Kbutba. Ibn Abu Rafi' said: Marwan appointed Abu Huraira as his deputy in Medina and he himself left t for Mecca. Abu Huraira led as in the Jumu'a prayer and recited after Surah Jumu'a in the second rak'ah: "When the hypocrites came to thee" (Surah lxiii.). I then met Abu Huraira as he came back and said to him: You have recited two surahs which 'Ali b. Abu Talib used to recite in Kufah. Upon this Abu Huraira said: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace: be upon him) 'reciting these two in the Friday (prayer). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1906. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hadith pertaining to giving instruction in Kbutba. This hadith is narrated by Abdullah b. Abu Rafi' with the same chain of transmitters but with this modification: "That he recited Surah Jumu'a (lxii.) in the first rak'ah and "The hypocrites came" in the second rak'ah. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1907. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hadith pertaining to giving instruction in Kbutba. Nu'man b. Bashir reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to recite on two 'Ids and in Friday prayer: "Glorify The name of Thy Lord, the Most High" (Surah lxxxvii.), and: "Has there come to thee the news of the overwhelming event" (lxxxviii.). And when the 'Id and Jumu'a combined on a day he recited these two (surah) in both the prayers. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1908. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hadith pertaining to giving instruction in Kbutba. This hadith has been narrated by Ibrahim b Muhammad b. al-Muntashir with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1909. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hadith pertaining to giving instruction in Kbutba. Dahhak b. Qais wrote to Nu'man b. Bashir asking him what the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) recited on Friday besides Surah Jumu'a He said that he recited: "Has there reached ..." (Surah lxxxviii). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1910. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hadith pertaining to giving instruction in Kbutba. Ibn Abbas reported: The Apostle of Allah (way peace be upon him) used to recite in the morning prayer on Friday Surah "Alif-Lam-Mim, Tanz'il ul-Sajda" (Surah xxxii.): Surely there came over the man a time" (Surah lxxvii) and he used to recite in Jumu'a prayer Surahs Jumu'a and al-Munafiqin. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1911. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hadith pertaining to giving instruction in Kbutba. A hadith like this has been narrated by Sufyan with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1912. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hadith pertaining to giving instruction in Kbutba. Mukhawwil has narrated this hadith on the authority of Sufyan. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1913. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hadith pertaining to giving instruction in Kbutba. Abu Huraira reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to recite in the dawn prayer on Friday "Alif-Lam-Mim, Tanzil" and "Surely there came." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1914. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hadith pertaining to giving instruction in Kbutba. Abu Huraira reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to recite in the dawn prayer on Friday: "Alif-Lam-Mim, Tanzil" in the first rak'ah, and in the second one: "Surely there came over the man a time when he was nothing that could be mentioned." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1915. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited in the Jumu'a prayer ?. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When any one of you observes the Jumu'a prayer (two obligatory rak'ahs in congregation), he should observe four (rak'ahs) afterwards. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1916. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited in the Jumu'a prayer ?. Suhail reported on the authority of Abu Huraira that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When you observe prayer after (the two obligatory rak'ahs) of Jumu'a, you should observe four rak'ahs (and 'Amr in his narration has made this addition that Ibn Idris said this on the authority of Suhail): And if you are in a hurry on account of something, you should observe two rak'ahs in the mosque and two when you return (to your house). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1917. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited in the Jumu'a prayer ?. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When any one amongst you observes prayer after Jumu'a, he should observe four rak'ahs. (In the hadith transmitted by Jarir the word minkum is not recorded.) Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1918. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited in the Jumu'a prayer ?. Nafi' reported that when 'Abdullah (b. 'Umar) observed the Friday prayer and came back he observed two rak'ahs in his house, and then said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be updn him) used to do this. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1919. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited in the Jumu'a prayer ?. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar, while describing the Nafl prayer of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), said: He did not observe (Nafl) prayer after Jumu'a till he went back and observed two rak'ahs in his house. Yahya said: I guess that I uttered these words (before Imam Malik) that he of course observed (them). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1920. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited in the Jumu'a prayer ?. Salim narrated on the authority of his father that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe two rak'ahs after Jumu'a. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1921. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited in the Jumu'a prayer ?. 'Umar b. 'Ata' b. Abu Khuwar said that Nafi' b. Jubair sent him to al-Sa'ib the son of Namir's sister with a view to asking him about what he had seen in the prayer of Mu'awiya. He said: Yes, I observed the Jumu'a prayer along with him in Maqsura and when the Imam pronounced salutation I stood up at my place and observed (Sunan rak'ahs). As he entered (the apartment) he sent for me and said: Do not repeat what you have done. Whenever you have observed the Jumu'a prayer, do not observe (Sunan prayer) till you, have talked or got out For the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had ordered us to do this and not to combine two (types of) prayers without talking of going out. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1922. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited in the Jumu'a prayer ?. The same hadith is narrated on the authority of 'Umar b. Ata' but with this modification: When he (the Imam) pronounced salutation I stood up at my place. No mention was made of the Imam in it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1923. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer (Sunan) after the Jumu'a prayer (Fard) The prayer of the two Id's. Ibn 'Abbas reported: I participated in the Fitr prayer with the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and Abu Bakr, 'Umar and 'Uthman, and all of them observed this prayer before the Khutba, and then he (the Holy Prophet) delivered the sermon. Then the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) descended (from the pulpit) and I (perceive) as if I am seeing him as he is commanding people with his hand to sit down. He then made his way through their (assembly) till he came to the women. Bilal was with him. He then recited (this verse): O Prophet, when believing women come to thee giving thee a pledge that they will not associate aught with Allah" (lx. 12) till he finished (his address to) them and then said: Do you conform to it (what has been described in the verse)? Only one woman among them replied: Yes, Apostle of Allah, but none else replied. He (the narrator) said: It could not be ascertained who actually she was. He (the Holy Prophet) exhorted them to give alms. Bilal stretched his cloth and then said: Come forward with alms. Let my father and mother be taken as ransom for you. And they began to throw rings and ringlets in the cloth of Bilal. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1924. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer (Sunan) after the Jumu'a prayer (Fard) The prayer of the two Id's. Ibn 'Abbas reported: I bear testimony to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) offering prayer before Kbutba. He (after saying prayer) delivered the Kutba, and he found that the women could not hear it, so he came to them and exhorted them and preached them and commanded them to give alms, and Bilal had stretched his cloth and the women were throwing rings, earrings and other things. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Ayyub with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1925. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer (Sunan) after the Jumu'a prayer (Fard) The prayer of the two Id's. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) stood up on the day of 'Id al-Fitr and observed prayer. And he commenced the prayer before the sermon. He then delivered the sermon. When the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) had finished (the sermon) he came down from (the pulpit), and made his way to the women and exhorted them (to do good acts), and he was leaning on the hand of Bilal. Bilal had stretched his cloth in which women were throwing alms. I (one of the narrators) said to 'Ata' (the other narrator): It must be Zakat on the day of Fitr. He ('Ata') said: No. It was alms (which) they were giving on that occasion, and a woman gave her ring, and then others gave, and then others gave. I said to 'Ata': Is It right now for the Imam to come to the women when he has finished (his address to the men) that he should exhort them (to good deeds)? He said: (Why not) by my life, it is right for them (to do so). What is the matter with them that they do not do it now? Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1926. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer (Sunan) after the Jumu'a prayer (Fard) The prayer of the two Id's. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported: I observed prayer with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on the 'Id day. He commenced with prayer before the sermon without Adhan and Iqama. He then stood up leaning on Bilal, and he commanded (them) to be on guard (against evil for the sake of) Allah, and he exhorted (them) on obedience to Him, and he preached to the people and admonished them. He then walked on till he came to the women and preached to them and admonished them, and asked them to give alms, for most of them are the fuel for Hell. A woman having a dark spot on the cheek stood up and said: Why is it so, Messenger of Allah? He said: For you grumble often and show ingratitude to your spouse. And then they began to give alms out of their ornaments such as their earrings and rings which they threw on to the cloth of Bilal. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1927. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer (Sunan) after the Jumu'a prayer (Fard) The prayer of the two Id's. Ibn 'Abbas and Jaibir b. 'Abdullah al-Ansari reported: There was no Adhan on the (occasion) of Id-ul-Fitr and Id-ul-Adha. I (Ibn Juraij) said: I asked him after some time about it. He ('Ata', one of the narrators) said: Jabir b. 'Abdullah al-Ansari told me: There is neither any Adhan on Id-ul-Fitr when the Imam comes out, nor even after his coming out; their is neither lqama nor call nor anything of the sort of calling on that day and nor Iqama. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1928. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer (Sunan) after the Jumu'a prayer (Fard) The prayer of the two Id's. 'Ata' reported that Ibn 'Abbas sent (him) to Ibn Zubair at the commencement of the oath of allegiance to him (for Caliphate saying): As there is no Adhan on 'Id-ul-Fitr, so you should not pronounce it. Ibn Zubair did not pronounce Adhan on that day. He (Ibn 'Abbas) also sent him (with this message) that sermon (is to be delivered) after the prayer, and thus it was done. So lbn Zubair observed prayer before Khutba. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1929. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer (Sunan) after the Jumu'a prayer (Fard) The prayer of the two Id's. Jabir b. Samura said: I prayed with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) prayers on two I'ds wore than once or twice without there being Adhan and Iqama. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1930. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer (Sunan) after the Jumu'a prayer (Fard) The prayer of the two Id's. Ibn 'Umar reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), Abu Bakr and 'Umar used to observe the two 'Id prayers before the sermon. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1931. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer (Sunan) after the Jumu'a prayer (Fard) The prayer of the two Id's. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to go out on the day of Adha and on the day of Fitr and commenced the prayer. And after having observed his prayer and pronounced the salutation, he stood up facing people as they were seated at their places of worship. And if he intended to send out an army he made mention of it to the people, and if he intended any other thing besides it, he commanded them (to do that). He used to say (to the people): Give alms, give alms, give alms, and the majority that gave alms was of women. He then returned and this (practice) remained (in vogue) till Marwan b. al-Hakam (came into power). I went out hand in hand with Marwan till we came to the place of worship and there Kathir b. Salt had built a pulpit of clay and brick. Marwan began to tug me with his hand as though he were pulling me towards the pulpit, while I was pulling him towards the prayer. When I saw him doing that I said: What has happened to the practice of beginning with prayer? He said: No, Abu Sa'id, what you are familiar with has been abandoned. I thereupon said (three times and went back): By no means, by Him in Whose hand my life is, you are not doing anything better than what I am familiar with. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1932. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of women's going out on 'Id days towards the place of worship and their presence in the Khutba (sitting) at a distance from men. Umm 'Atiyya said: He (the Apostle of Allah) commanded us that we should take out unmarried women and purdah-observing ladies for 'Id prayers, and he commanded the menstruating women to remain away from the place of worship of the Muslims. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1933. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of women's going out on 'Id days towards the place of worship and their presence in the Khutba (sitting) at a distance from men. Umm Atiyya reported: We were commanded to bring out on old days purdah-observing ladies and those unmarried, and menstruating women came out but remained behind people and pronounced takbir (Allah-o-Akbar) along with them. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1934. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of women's going out on 'Id days towards the place of worship and their presence in the Khutba (sitting) at a distance from men. Umm 'Atiyya reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) commanded us to bring out on 'Id-ul-Fitr and 'Id-ul-Adha young women, menstruating women and purdah-observing ladies, menstruating women kept back from prayer, but participated in goodness and supplication of the Muslims. I said: Messenger of Allah, one of us does not have an outer garment (to cover her face and body). He said: Let her sister cover her with her outer garment. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1935. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abandoning of prayer before Id and after it in the place of worship (outside the habitation) especially meant for Id. Ibn 'Abbas reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) went out on the day of Adha or Fitr and observed two rak'ahs, and did not observe prayer (at that place) before and after that. He then came to the women along with Bilal and commanded them to give alms and the women began to give their rings and necklaces. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1936. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited In Id Prayers. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar reported that (his father) 'Umar b. Khattab asked Abu Waqid al-Laithi what the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to recite on 'Id-ul-Adha and 'Id-ul-Fitr. He said: He used to recite in them: "Qaf. By the Glorious Qur'an" (Surah 1), "The Hour drew near, and the moon was rent asunder" (Surah liv.). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1937. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited In Id Prayers. 'Utba reported that his father Waqid al-Laithi said: 'Umar b. Khattab asked me what the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) recited on 'Id day. I said: "The Hour drew near" and Qaf. By the Glorious Qur'an". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1938. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permission for sport on 'Id days in which there in no sin. 'Aisha reported: Abu Bakr came to see me and I had two girls with me from among the girls of the Ansar and they were singing what the Ansar recited to one another at the Battle of Bu'ath. They were not, however, singing girls. Upon this Abu Bakr said: What I (the playing of) this wind instrument of Satan in the house of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and this too on 'Id day? Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Abu Bakr, every people have a festival and it is our festival (so let them play on). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1939. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permission for sport on 'Id days in which there in no sin. This hadith has been narrated by Hisham with the same chain of transmitters, but there the words are: "Two girls were playing upon a tambourine." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1940. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permission for sport on 'Id days in which there in no sin. 'Aisha reported that Abu Bakr came to her and there were with her two girls on Adha days who were singing and beating the tambourine and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had wrapped himself with his mantle. Abu Bakr scolded them. The Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) uncovered (his face) and said: Abu Bakr, leave them alone for these are the days of 'Id. And 'Aisha said: I recapitulate to my mind the fact that once the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) screened me with his mantle and I saw the sports of the Abyssinians, and I was only a girl, and so you can well imagine how a girl of tender age is fond of watching the sport. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1941. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permission for sport on 'Id days in which there in no sin. 'Aisha reported: BY Allah, I remember the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) standing on the door of my apartment screening me with his mantle enabling me to see the sport of the Abyssinians as they played with their daggers in the mosque of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). He (the Holy Prophet) kept standing for my sake till I was satiated and then I went back; and thus you can well imagine how long a girl tender of age who is fond of sports (could have watched it). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1942. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permission for sport on 'Id days in which there in no sin. 'Aisha reported: The Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) came (in my apartment) while there were two girls with me singing the song of the Battle of Bu'ath. He lay down on the bed and turned away his face. Then came Abu Bakr and he scolded me and said: Oh ! this musical instrument of the devil in the house of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) ! The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) turned towards him and said: Leave them alone. And when he (the Holy Prophet) became inattentive, I hinted them and they went out, and it was the day of 'Id and negroes were playing with shields and spear. (I do not remember) whether I asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) or whether he said to me if I desired to see (that sport). I said: Yes. I stood behind him with his face parallel to my face, and he said: O Banu Arfada, be busy (in your sports) till I was satiated. He said (to me): Is that enough? I said: Yes. Upon this he asked me to go. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1943. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permission for sport on 'Id days in which there in no sin. 'Aisha reported that some Abyssinians came and gave a demonstration of armed fight on the 'Id day in the mosque. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) invited me (to see that fight). I placed my head on his shoulder and began to see their sport till it was I who turned away from watching them. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1944. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permission for sport on 'Id days in which there in no sin. This hadith has been narrated by Hisham with the same chain of transmitters but (the narrators) did not make mention of the mosque. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1945. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permission for sport on 'Id days in which there in no sin. 'Aisha said that she sent a message to the players (of this armed fight) saying: I like to see them (fighting). She further said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) stood up and I stood at the door (behind him) and saw (this fight) between his ears and his shoulders they played in the mosque. 'Ata' (one of the narrators) said: Were they persians or Abyssinians? Ibn 'Atiq told me they were Abyssinians. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1946. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permission for sport on 'Id days in which there in no sin. Abu Huraira reported: While the Abyssinians were busy playing with their arms in the presence of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) 'Umar b. Khattab came there. He bent down to take up pebbles to throw at them (in order to make them go off). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to him: 'Umar, leave them alone. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1947. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer for rain. 'Abdullah b. Zaid b. Mazini reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) went to the place of prayer and prayed for rain and turned round his mantle while facing the Qibla. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1948. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer for rain. Ibn Tamim narrated on the authority of his uncle ('Abdullah b. Zaid) that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) went out to the place of prayer and prayed for rain and faced towards Qibla, and turned round his mantle and prayed two rak'ahs. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1949. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer for rain. 'Abdullah b. Zaid al-Ansari reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) went out to the place of prayer in order to offer prayer for rainfall. And when he intended to make supplication he faced Qibla and turned round his mantle. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1950. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer for rain. 'Abbad b. Tamim Mazini heard his uncle, who was one of the Companions of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), as saying: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) went out one day in order to pray for rain. He turned his back towards people, supplicated before Allah, facing towards Qibla, and turned his mantle round and then observed two rak'ahs of prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1951. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer for rain. Anas reported: I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) raising his hands (high enough) in supplication (for rain) that the whiteness of his armpits became visible. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1952. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer for rain. Anas b. Malik reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) prayed for rain pointing the back of his hands to the sky. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1953. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer for rain. Anas reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) was not accustomed to raice his hands in any supplication he made except when praying for rain. (He would then raise [his hands] high enough) that the whiteness of his armpits became visible. 'Abd al-A'la said that (he was in doubt whether it was) the whiteness of his armpit or armpits. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1954. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer for rain. This hadith has been narrated by Anas b. Malik through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1955. ------------------------------ Chapter : Supplication in prayer for rain. Anas b. Malik reported that a person entered the mosque through the door situated on the side of Daral-Qada' during Friday (prayer) and the messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was delivering the sermon while standing. He came and stood in front of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: Messenger of Allah, the camels died and the passages were blocked; so supplicate Allah to send down rain upon us. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) raised his hands and then said: (O Allah, send down rain upon us; O Allah, send down rain upon us; O Allah, send down rain upon us. Anas said: By Allah, we did not see any cloud or any patch of it, and there was neither any house or building standing between us and the (hillock) Sal'a. There appeared a cloud in the shape of a shield from behind it, and as it (came high) in the sky it spread and then there was a downpour of rain. By Allah, we did not see the sun throughout the week. Then (that very man) came on the coming Friday through the same door when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was standing and delivering the sermon. He stood in front of him and said: Messenger of Allah, our animals died and the passages blocked. Supplicate Allah to stop the rain for us. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) again raised his hands and said: O Allah, let it (rain) fall in our suburbs and not on us, O Allah (send it down) on the hillocks and small mountains and the river-beds and at places where trees grow. The rain stopped, and as we stepped out we were walking in sunshine. He (the narrator) said to Sharik: I asked Anas b. Malik if he was the same man. He said: I do not know. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1956. ------------------------------ Chapter : Supplication in prayer for rain. Anas b. Malik reported: The people were in the grip of famine during the lifetime of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and (once) as the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was delivering the sermon standing on the pulpit on Friday, a bedouin stood up and said: Messenger of Allah, the animals died and the children suffered starvation. The rest of the hadith is the same (and the words are) that he (the Holy Prophet) said: O Allah, send down rain in our suburbs but not on us. He (the narrator) said: To whichever directions he pointed with his hands, the clouds broke up and I saw Medina like the opening of a (courtyard) and the stream of Qanat flowed for one month, and none came from any part (of Arabia) but with the news of heavy rainfall. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1957. ------------------------------ Chapter : Supplication in prayer for rain. Anas b. Malik reported that while the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) was delivering the sermon on Friday, people stood up before him and said in a loud voice: Apostle of Allah, there is a drought and the trees have become yellow, the animals have died; and the rest of the hadith is the same, and in the narration transmitted by 'Abd al-A'la the words are: " The clouds cleared from Medina and it began to rain around it and not a single drop of rain fell in Medina. And as I looked towards Medina, I found it hollow like (the hollowness of) a basin. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1958. ------------------------------ Chapter : Supplication in prayer for rain. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Anas but with this addition: "Allah gathered the clouds and as we (were obliged) to stay back I saw that even the strong man, impelled by a desire to go to his family, (could not do so)." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1959. ------------------------------ Chapter : Supplication in prayer for rain. 'Ubaidullah b. Anas b. Malik heard (his father) Anas b. Malik as saying: A bedouin came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on Friday as he was (delivering the sermon on his) pulpit; and the rest of the hadith is the same but with this addition: "I saw the cloud clearing just as a sheet is folded." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1960. ------------------------------ Chapter : Supplication in prayer for rain. Anas (b. Malik) reported: It rained upon us as we were with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). The Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) removed his cloth (from a part of his body) till the rain fell on it. We said: Messenger of Allah, why did you do this? He said: It is because it (the rainfall) has just come from the Exalted Lord. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1961. ------------------------------ Chapter : (Prayer for) protection (of Allah) when there is a windstorm. or (terribly dark) cloud, and feeling joy when there is a rainfall. 'Ata' b. Abi Rabah reported that he heard 'Aisha, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (way peace be upon him), as saying: When there was on any day windstorm or dark cloud (its effects) could be read on the face of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and he moved forward and backward (in a state of anxiety); and when it rained, he was delighted and it (the state of restlessness) disappeared. 'Aisha said: I asked him the reason of this anxiety and he said: I was afraid that it might be a calamity that might fall upon my Ummah, and when he saw rainfall he said: It is the mercy (of Allah). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1962. ------------------------------ Chapter : (Prayer for) protection (of Allah) when there is a windstorm. or (terribly dark) cloud, and feeling joy when there is a rainfall. 'Ata' b. Rabah reported on the authority of 'Aisha, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (way peace be upon him), who said: Whenever the wind was stormy, the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to say: O Allah ! I ask Thee for what is good in it, and the good which it contains, and the good of that which it was sent for. I seek refuge with Thee from what is evil in it, what evil it contains, and the evil of that what it was sent for; and when there was a thunder and lightning in the sky, his colour underwent a change, and he went out and in, backwards and forwards; and when the rain came, he felt relieved, and I noticed that (the sign of relief) on his face. 'Aisha asked him (about it) and he said: It may be as the people of 'Ad said: When they saw a cloud formation coming to their valley they said: "It is a cloud which would give us rain" (Qur'an, xlvi. 24). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1963. ------------------------------ Chapter : (Prayer for) protection (of Allah) when there is a windstorm. or (terribly dark) cloud, and feeling joy when there is a rainfall. 'Aisha, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), reported: I never saw Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) laugh to such an extent that I could see his uvula-whereas he used to smile only-and when he saw dark clouds or wind, (the signs of fear) were depicted on his face. I said: Messenger of Allah, I find people being happy when they ace the dark cloud in the hope that it would bring rain, but I find that when you see that (the cloud) there is an anxiety on your face. He said: 'Aisha, I am afraid that there may be a calamity in it, for a people was afflicted with wind, when the people saw the calamity they said: "It is a cloud which would give us rain" (Qur'an. xlvi. 24). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1964. ------------------------------ Chapter : (Prayer for) protection (of Allah) when there is a windstorm. or (terribly dark) cloud, and feeling joy when there is a rainfall. Ibn 'Abbas reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: I have been helped by the east wind and the 'Ad were destroyed by the west wind. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1965. ------------------------------ Chapter : (Prayer for) protection (of Allah) when there is a windstorm. or (terribly dark) cloud, and feeling joy when there is a rainfall. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Ibn 'Abbas through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1966. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer at the time of solar eclipse. 'Aisha reported that there was a solar eclipse in the time of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). He stood up to pray and prolonged his stand very much. He then bowed and prolonged very much his bowing. He then raised his head and prolonged his stand much, but it was less than the (duration) of the first stand. He then bowed and prolonged bowing much, but it was less than the duration of his first bowing. He then prostrated and then stood up and prolonged the stand, but it was less than the first stand. He then bowed and prolonged his bowing, but it was less than the first bowing. He then lifted his head and then stood up and prolonged his stand, but it was less than the first stand. He then bowed and prolonged bowing and it was less than the first bowing. He then prostrated himself; then he turned about, and the sun had become bright, and he addressed the people. He praised Allah and landed Him and said: The sun and the moon are two signs of Allah; they are not eclipsed on account of anyone's death or on account of anyone's birth. So when you see them, glorify and supplicate Allah, observe prayer, give alms. O Ummah of Muhammad, none is more indignant than Allah When His servant or maid commits fornication. O people of Muhammad, by Allah, if you knew what I know, you would weep much and laugh little. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1967. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer at the time of solar eclipse. This hadith has been narrated by Hisham b. 'Urwa with the same chain of transmitters but with this addition: "Verily the sun and the moon are among the signs of Allah." And similarly this addition was made: "He then lifted his hands and said: O Allah ! have I not conveyed it? " Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1968. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer at the time of solar eclipse. 'Aisha, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), reported There was an eclipse of the sun during the lifetime of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). So, the Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) went to the mosque and stood up and glorified Allah, and the people formed themselves in rows behind him. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) made a long recital (of the Qur'an) and then pronounced takbir and then observed a long ruku'. He then raised his head and said: Allah listened to him who praised Him: our Lord, praise is due to Thee. He then again stood up and made a long recital, which was less than the first recital. He pronounced takbir and observed a long ruku', and it was less than the first one. He again said: Allah listened to him who praised Him; our Lord, praise is due to Thee. (Abu Tahir, one of the narrators) made no mention of: "He then prostrated himself." He did like this in the second rak'ah, till he completed four rak'ahs and four prostrations and the sun became bright before he deported. He then stood up and addressed people, after lauding Allah as He deserved, and then said: The sun and the moon are two signs among the signs of Allah These do not eclipse either on the death of anyone or on his birth. So when you see them, hasten to prayer. He also said this: Observe prayer till Allah dispels the anxiety (of this extraordinary phenomenon) from you. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I saw in my place everything which you have been promised. I even saw myself desiring to pluck a bunch (of grapes) from Paradise (and it was at the time) when you saw me moving forward. And I saw Hell and some of its parts crushing the others, when you saw me moving back; and I saw in it Ibn Luhayy and he was the person who made the she-camels loiter about. In the hadith transmitted by Abu Tahir the words are: "He hastened to prayer," and he made no mention of what follows. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1969. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer at the time of solar eclipse. 'Aisha reported that there was a solar eclipse during the lifetime of the Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) and he sent the announcer (to summon them) for congregational prayer. The people gathered together and he pronounced takbir and he observed four rak'ahs, in the form of two rak'ahs (i.e. he observed two qiyams and two ruku's in one rak'ah) and four prostrations. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1970. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer at the time of solar eclipse. 'Aisha reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) recited loudly in the eclipse prayer, and he observed four rak'ahs in the form of two rak'ahs and four prostrations. Zuhri said: Kathir b. 'Abbas narrated on the authority of Ibn 'Abbas that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed four rak'ahs and four prostrations in two rak'ahs. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1971. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer at the time of solar eclipse. Zuhri said: Kathir b. Abbas used to narrate that Ibn 'Abbas used to relate about the prayer of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) in regard to the eclipse of the sun like that what was narrated by 'Urwa on the authority of 'Aisha. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1972. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer at the time of solar eclipse. 'Ata' reported: I heard 'Ubaid b. 'Umair say: It has been narrated to me by one whom I regard as truthful, (the narrator says: I can well guess that he meant 'Aisha) that the sun eclipsed during the lifetime of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he stood up (in prayer) for a rigorously long time. He then bowed and then stood up and then bowed and then stood up and then bowed, thus observing three ruku's in two rak'ahs and four prostrations. He then departed and the sun brightened. He pronounced "Allah is the Greatest" while bowing. He would then bow and say: "Allah listened to him who praised Him" while lifting up his head. He then stood up, and praised Allah and lauded Him, and then said: The sun and the moon do not eclipse on the death of anyone or on his birth. But both of them are among the signs of Allah with which Allah terrifies His servants. So when you see them under eclipse, remember Allah till they are brightened. This hadith is narrated thus on the authority of 'Aisha through another chain of transmitters: "The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed six ruku's and four prostration in (two rak'ahs)." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1973. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mention of the torment of grave in eclipse prayer. 'Amra reported that a Jewess came to 'Aisha to ask (about something) and said: May Allah protect you from the torment of the grave ! 'Aisha said: Messenger of Allah, would people be tormented in the graves? The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: (May there be) protection of Allah ! The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) mounted one morning on the ride, and the sun eclipsed. 'Aisha said: I came in the company of the women in the mosque from behind the rooms. The Messenger of Allah (way peace he upon him) dismounted from his ride and came to the place of worship where he used to pray. He stood up (to pray) and the people stood behind him. 'Aisha said: He stood for a long time. He then bowed and it was a long ruku'. He then raised his head and he stood for a long time, less than the first standing. He then bowed and his ruku' was long, but it was less than that (the first) ruku'. He then raised (his head) and the sun had become bright. He (the Holy Prophet) then said: I saw you under trial in the grave like the turmoil of Dajjal. 'Amra said: I heard 'Aisha say: I listened after this to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) seeking refuge from the torment of Fire and the torment of the grave. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1974. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mention of the torment of grave in eclipse prayer. This hadith has been narrated by Yahya b. Sa'id with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1975. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mention of the torment of grave in eclipse prayer. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported: The sun eclipsed on one extremely hot day during the lifetime of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) prayed along with his Companions. He prolonged his qiyam (standing posture in prayer) till they (his Companions) began to fall down. He then observed a long ruku'. He raised his head (and stood up for long) and then observed a long ruku'. He then raised (his head and stood up) for a long time and then made two prostrations. He then stood up and did like this and thus he observed four ruku's and four prostrations (in two rak'ahs) and then said: All these things were brought to me in which you will be made to enter. Paradise was brought to me till (I was so close to it) that if I (had intended) to pluck a bunch (of grapes) out of it. I would have got it, or he (the Holy Prophet) said: I intended to get a bunch (out of that) but my hand could not reach it. Hell was also brought to me and I saw in it a woman belonging to the tribe of Israel who was tormented for a cat whom she had tied, but did not give it food nor set it free to eat the creatures of the earth; and I saw Abu Thumama 'Amr b. Malik who was dragging his intestines in Hell. They (the Arabs) used to say that the sun and the moon do not eclipse but on the death of some great person; but (in reality) both these (the sun and the moon) are among the signs of Allah which are shown to you; so when there is an eclipse, observe prayer till it (the sun or the moon) brightens. This hadith has been narrated by Hisham with the same chain of transmitters except this "I saw a dark woman with a tail stature and loud voice," but he made no mention of "from among Bani Israel". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1976. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mention of the torment of grave in eclipse prayer. Jabir reported that the sun eclipsed during the lifetime of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on that very day when Ibrahim (the Prophet's son) died. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) stood up and led people in (two rak'ahs of) prayer with six ruku's and four prostrations. He commenced (the prayer) with takbir (Allah-o-Akbar) and then recited and prolonged his recital. He then bowed nearly the (length of time) that he stood up. He then raised his head from the ruku' and recited but less than the first recital. He then bowed (to the length of time) that he stood up. He then raised his head from the ruku' and again recited but less than the second recital. He then bowed (to the length of time) that he stood up. He then lifted his head from the ruku'. He then fell in prostration and observed two prostrations. He stood up and then bowed, observing six ruku's like it, without (completing) the rak'ah in them, except (this difference) that the first (qiyam of ruku') was longer than the later one, and the ruku' was nearly (of the same length) as prostration. He then moved backward and the rows behind him also moved backward till we reached the extreme (Abu Bakr said: till he reached near the women) He then moved forward and the people also moved forward along with him till he stood at his (original) place (of worship). He then completed the prayer as it was required to complete and the sun brightened and he said: O people ! verily the sun and the moon are among the signs of Allah and they do not eclipse at the death of anyone among people (Abu Bakr said: On the death of any human being). So when you see anything like it (of the nature of eclipse), pray till it is bright. There is nothing which you have been promised (in the next world) but I have seen it in this prayer of mine. Hell was brought to me as you saw me moving back on account of fear lest its heat might affect me; and I saw the owner of the curved staff who dragged his intestines in the fire, and he used to steal (the belongings) of the pilgrims with his curved staff. If he (the owner of the staff) became aware, he would say: It got (accidentally) entangled in my curved staff, but if he was unaware of that, he would take that away. I also saw in it (in Hell) the owner of a cat whom she had tied and did not feed her nor set her free so that she could eat the creatures of the earth, till the cat died of starvation. Paradise was brought to me, and it was on that occasion that you saw me moving forward till I stood at my place (of worship). I stretched my hand as I wanted to catch hold of its fruits so that you may see them. Then I thought of not doing it. Nothing which you have been promised was there that I did not see in this prayer of mine. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1977. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mention of the torment of grave in eclipse prayer. Asma' reported: The sun eclipsed during the lifetime of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). As I went to 'Aisha who was busy in prayer. I said: What is the matter with the people that they are praying (a special prayer)? She ('Aisha) pointed towards the sky with her head. I said: Is it (an unusual) sign? She said: Yes. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) stood up for prayer for such a long time that I was about to faint. I caught hold of a water-skin lying by my side, and began to pour water over my head, or (began to sprinkle water) on my face. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) then finished and the sun had brightened. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) then addressed the people, (after) praising Allah and lauding Him, and then said: There was no such thing as I did not see earlier, but I saw it at this very place of mine. I ever saw Paradise and Hell. It was also revealed to me that you would be tried in the graves, as you would he tried something like the turmoil of the Dajjal. Asma' said: I do not know which word he actually used (qariban or mithl), and each one of you would be brought and it would be said: What is your knowledge about this man? If the person is a believer, (Asma' said: I do not know whether it was the word al-Mu'min or al-Mu'qin) he would say: He is Muhammad and he is the Messenger of Allah. He brought to us the clear signs and right guidance. So we responded and obeyed him. (He would repeat this three times), and it would be said to him: You should go to sleep. We already knew that you are a believer in him. So the pious man would go to sleep. So far as the hypocrite or sceptic is concerned (Asma' said: I do not know which word was that: al-Munafiq (hypocrite) or al-Murtad (doubtful) he would say: I do not know. I only uttered whatever I heard people say. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1978. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mention of the torment of grave in eclipse prayer. Asma' said: I came to 'Aisha when the people were standing (in prayer) and she was also praying. I said: What is this excitement of the people for? And the rest of the hadith was narrated like one, (narrated above). 'Urwa said: Do not say Kasafat-ush-Shamsu, but say Khasafat-ush-Shamsu. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1979. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mention of the torment of grave in eclipse prayer. Asma' bint Abu Bakr said: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) was one day (i.e. on the day when the sun eclipsed) so perturbed that he (in haste) took hold of the outer garment (of a female member of his family) and it was later on that his (own) cloak was sent to him. He stood in prayer along with people for such a long time that if a man came he did not realise that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) had observed ruku', as it has been narrated about ruku' in connection with long qiyam. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1980. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mention of the torment of grave in eclipse prayer. Abu Juraij narrated this hadith with the same chain of transmitters (but with the addition of these words): "It was for a long duration that he (the Holy Prophet) observed qiyam and he would then observe ruku'. (The narrator also added) I (Asma') looked at a woman who was older than I, and at another who was weaker than I. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1981. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mention of the torment of grave in eclipse prayer. Asma' daughter of Abu Bakr reported: The sun eclipsed during the lifetime of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him); so he felt perturbed and he, by mistake, took hold of the outer garment of a woman till he was given his own cloak. After this I satisfied my need and then came and entered the mosque. I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) standing in prayer. I stood along with him. He prolonged his qiyam till I wished to sit down. Then I cast a glance towards an old woman. So I said: She is older than I, therefore, kept standing. He (the Holy Prophet) then observed ruku', and prolonged his ruku'. He then raised his head. He then prolonged his qiyam to such an extent that if a person happened to come he would have thought that he had not observed the ruku'. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1982. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mention of the torment of grave in eclipse prayer. Ibn 'Abbas reported: There was an eclipse of the sun during the lifetime of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). The Messenger of Allah, (may peace be upon him) prayed accompanied by the people. He stood for a long time, about as long as it would take to recite Surah Al-Baqara; then he bowed for a long time; then he raised his head and stood for a long time, but it was less than the first qiyam. He then bowed for a long time but for a shorter while than the first. He then prostrated and then stood for a long time, but it was less than the first qiyam. He then bowed for a long time, but it was less than the first bowing. He then raised (his head) and stood for a long time, but it was less than the first qiyam. He then bowed for a long time but it was less than the first bowing. He then observed prostration, and then he finished, and the sun had cleared (by that time). He (the Holy Prophet) then said: The sun and moon are two signs from the signs of Allah. These two do not eclipse on account of the death of anyone or on account of the birth of anyone. So when you see that, remember Allah. They (his Companions) said: Messenger of Allah, we saw you reach out to something, while you were standing here, then we saw you restrain yourself. He said: I saw Paradise and reached out to a bunch of its grapes; and had I taken it you would have eaten of it as long as the world endured. I saw Hell also. No such (abominable) sight have I ever seen as that which I saw today; and I observed that most of its inhabitants were women. They said: Messenger of Allah, on what account is it so? He said: For their ingratitude or disbelief (bi-kufraihinna). It was said: Do they disbelieve in Allah? He said: (Not for their disbelief in God) but for their ingratitude to their husbands and ingratitude to kindness. If you were to treat one of them kindly for ever, but if she later saw anything (displeasing) in you, she would say: i have never seen any good in you. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1983. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mention of the torment of grave in eclipse prayer. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Zaid b. Aslam with the same chain of transmitters except with this difference that he (the narrator said): " then we saw you keeping aloof (back)." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1984. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mention of the torment of grave in eclipse prayer. Ibn 'Abbas reported: When there was a solar eclipse the Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) observed eight ruku's and four prostrations (in two rak'ahs). This has been narrated by 'Ali also. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1985. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mention of the torment of grave in eclipse prayer. Ibn 'Abbas reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed prayer while it was (solar) eclipse. He recited (the Qur'an in qiyam) and then bowed. He again recited and again bowed. He again recited and again bowed and again recited and again bowed, and then prostrated; and the second (rak'ah) was like this. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1986. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mention of the torment of grave in eclipse prayer. 'Amr b. al-'As reported: When the sun eclipsed during the lifetime of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), they (the people) were called to congregational prayers. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed two ruku's in one rak'ah. He then stood and observed two ruku's in (the second) rak'ah. The sun then became bright, and 'Aisha said; Never did I observe, ruku' and prostration longer than this (ruku' and prostration). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1987. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mention of the torment of grave in eclipse prayer. Abu Mas'ud al-Ansari reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Verily the sun and the moon are the two signs among the signs of Allah by which He frightens his servants and they do not eclipse on account of the death of any one of the people. So when you see anything about them, observe prayer, supplicate Allah till it is cleared from you. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1988. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mention of the torment of grave in eclipse prayer. Abu Mas'ud reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Verily the sun and the moon do not eclipse on account of the death of any one of the people, but they are the two signs among the signs of Allah. So when you see it, stand up and observe prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1989. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mention of the torment of grave in eclipse prayer. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Isma'il with the same chain of transmitters and in the hadith narrated by Sufyan and Waki' (the words are): "The sun eclipsed on the day when Ibrahim died, and the people said: It has eclipsed on the death of Ibrahim." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1990. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mention of the torment of grave in eclipse prayer. Abu Musa reported: The sun eclipsed during the time of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him). He stood in great anxiety fearing that it might be the Doomsday, till he came to the mosque. He stood up to pray with prolonged qiyam, ruku', and prostration which I never saw him doing in prayer; and then he said: These are the signs which Allah sends, not on account of the death of anyone or life of any one, but Allah sends them to frighten thereby His servants. So when you see any such thing, hasten to remember Him, supplicate Him and beg pardon from Him, and in the narration transmitted by Ibn 'Ala the words are: "The sun eclipsed"." "He frightens His servants." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1991. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mention of the torment of grave in eclipse prayer. 'Abd al-Rahman b. Samura said: During the lifetime of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) I was shooting my arrows in Medina, when an eclipse of the sun took place. I, therefore, threw them away and said, I must see how the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) acts in a solar eclipse today. When I came to him, he had been supplicating with his hands, raised, pronouncing Allah-o-Akbar, praising Him, acknowledging that He is One God till the eclipse was over, then he recited two surahs and prayed two rak'ahs. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1992. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mention of the torment of grave in eclipse prayer. 'Abd al-Rahman b. Samura, who was one of the Companions of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: During the lifetime of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) I was shooting some of my arrows in Medina, when the sun eclipsed. I threw (the arrows) and said: By Allah, I must see how the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) acts in solar eclipse. So I came to him and he was standing in prayer, raising his hands, glorifying Him, praising Him, acknowledging His Oneness, declaring His greatness, and supplicating Him, till the sun cleared. When the eclipse was over, he recited two surahs and prayed two rak'ahs. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1993. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mention of the torment of grave in eclipse prayer. 'Abd al-Rahman b. Samura reported: I was shooting some of my arrows during the lifetime of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) that the sun eclipsed. The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1994. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mention of the torment of grave in eclipse prayer. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed: Verily the sun and the moon do not eclipse on account of the death or life of anyone. They are in fact the signs among the signs of Allah. So when you see them, observe prayer. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1995. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mention of the torment of grave in eclipse prayer. Ziyad b. 'Ilaqa reported: I heard Mughira b. Shu'ba saying that the sun eclipsed during the lifetime of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on the day when Ibrahim died. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Verily the sun and the moon are the two signs among the signs of Allah. They do not eclipse on account of the death of anyone or on account of the birth of anyone. So when you see them, supplicate Allah, and observe prayer till it is over. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1996. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to recite La ilaha Il-llah (there. is no god but Allah) to the dying person. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Exhort to recite "There is no god but Allah" to those of you who are dying. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1997. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to recite La ilaha Il-llah (there. is no god but Allah) to the dying person. This hadith has been narrated by Sulaiman b. Bilal with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1998. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to recite La ilaha Il-llah (there. is no god but Allah) to the dying person. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Exhort to recite "There is no god but Allah" to those of you who are dying. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 1999. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be said at the time of calamity. Umm Salama reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: If any Muslim who suffers some calamity says, what Allah has commanded him, "We belong to Allah and to Him shall we return; O Allah, reward me for my affliction and give me something better than it in exchange for it," Allah will give him something better than it in exchange. When Abu Salama died she said: What Muslim is better than Abu Salama whose family was the first to emigrate to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). I then said the words, and Allah gave me God's Messenger (may peace be upon him) in exchange. She said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sent Hatib b. Abu Balta'a to deliver me the message of marriage with him. I said to him: I have a daughter (as my dependant) and I am of jealous temperament. He (the Holy Prophet) said: So far as her daughter is concerned, we would supplicate Allah, that He may free her (of her responsibility) and I would also supplicate Allah to do away with (her) jealous (temperament). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2000. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be said at the time of calamity. Umm Salama, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: If any servant (of Allah) who suffers a calamity says: "We belong to Allah and to Him shall we return; O Allah, reward me for my affliction and give me something better than it in exchange for it,"' Allah will give him reward for affliction, and would give him something better than it in exchange. She (Umm Salama) said: When Abu Salama died. I uttered (these very words) as I was commanded (to do) by the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). So Allah gave me better in exchange than him. i.e. (I was taken as the wife of) the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2001. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be said at the time of calamity. Umm Salama, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (way peace be upon him), reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) saying like the hadith transmitted by Abu Usama, but with this addition that she said: "When Abu Salama died I said: Who is better than Abu Salama, the Companion of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and Allah decided for me and I said (these words contained in the supplication mentioned above) and I was married to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2002. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be said by the side of the sick and the dead. Umm Salama reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Whenever you visit the sick or the dead, supplicate for good because angels say "Amen" to whatever you say. She added: When Abu Salama died, I went to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: Messenger of Allah, Abu Salama has died. He told me to recite: "O Allah ! forgive me and him (Abu Salama) and give me a better substitute than he." So I said (this), and Allah gave me in exchange Muhammad, who is better for me than him (Abu Salama). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2003. ------------------------------ Chapter : Closing the (eyes) of the dead and supplication for him on visiting him. Umm Salama reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon came to Abu Salama (as he died). His eyes were fixedly open. He closed them, and then said: When the soul is taken away the sight follows it. Some of the people of his family wept and wailed. So he said: Do not supplicate for yourselves anything but good, for angels say "Amen" to what you say. He then said: O Allah, forgive Abu Salama, raise his degree among those who are rightly guided, grant him a successor in his descendants who remain. Forgive us and him, O Lord of the Universe, and make his grave spacious, and grant him light in it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2004. ------------------------------ Chapter : Closing the (eyes) of the dead and supplication for him on visiting him. This hadith has been narrated by Khalid al Hadhdha' with the same chain of transmitters but with this alteration that he said: (O Allah !) let Thee be the caretaker of what is left by him, and he said: Grant him expansion of the grave, but he did not say: Make his grave spacious. Khalid said: He supplicated for the seventh (thing too) which I have forgotten. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2005. ------------------------------ Chapter : Closing the (eyes) of the dead and supplication for him on visiting him. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Did you not see when the man died and his eyes were fixedly open? He (Abu Huraira) said: Yes. He (the Holy Prophet) said: It is due to the fact that when (the soul leaves the body) his eyesight follows the soul. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2006. ------------------------------ Chapter : Closing the (eyes) of the dead and supplication for him on visiting him. This hadith is narrated on the authority of 'Ala' with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2007. ------------------------------ Chapter : Weeping for the dead. Umm Salama reported: When Abu Salama died I said: I am a stranger in a strange land; I shall weep for him in a manner that would be talked of. I made preparation for weeping for him when a woman from the upper side of the city came there who intended to help me (in weeping). She happened to come across the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he said: Do you intend to bring the devil into a house from which Allah has twice driven him out? I (Umm Salama), therefore, refrained from weeping and I did not weep. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2008. ------------------------------ Chapter : Weeping for the dead. Usama b. Zaid reported: While we were with the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), one of his daughters sent to him (the Messenger) to call him and inform him that her child or her son was dying. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) told the messenger to go back and tell her that what Allah had taken belonged to Him, and to him belonged what He granted; and He has an appointed time for everything. So you (the messenger) order her to show endurance and seek reward from Allah. The messenger came back and said: She adjures him to come to her. He got up to go accompanied by Sa'd b. 'Ubada, Mu'adh b. Jabal, and I also went along with them. The child was lifted to him and his soul was feeling as restless as if it was in an old (water-skin). His (Prophet's) eyes welled up with tears. Sa'd said: What is this, Messenger of Allah? He replied: This is compassion which Allah has placed in the hearts of His servants, and God shows compassion only to those of His servants who are compassionate. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2009. ------------------------------ Chapter : Weeping for the dead. This hadith has been narrated by another chain of transmitters on the authority of 'Asim al-Ahwal. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2010. ------------------------------ Chapter : Weeping for the dead. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar said that Sa'd b. Ubada complained of illness. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to visit him accompanied by 'Abd al-Rahman b. 'Auf, Sa'd b. Abi Waqqas and 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud. As he entered (his room) he found him in a swoon. Upon this he said: Has he died? They said: Messenger of Allah, it is not so. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) wept. When the people saw Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) weeping, they also began to weep. He said: Listen, Allah does not punish for the tears that the eye sheds or the grief the heart feels, but He punishes for this (pointing to his tongue), or He may show mercy. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2011. ------------------------------ Chapter : Visiting the sick. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar reported: While we were sitting with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), a person, one of the Ansar, came to him and greeted him. The Ansari then turned back. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: o brother of Ansar, how is my brother Sa'd be 'Ubada? He said: He is better. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Who amongst you would visit him? He (the Holy Prophet) stood up and we also got up along with him, and we were more than ten persons. We had neither shoes with us, nor socks, nor caps, nor shirts. We walked on the barren land till we came to him. The people around him kept away till the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and his Companions with him came near him (Sa'd b. 'Ubada). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2012. ------------------------------ Chapter : Endurance in trouble at the fast blow. Anas b. Malik reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Endurance is to be shown at the first blow. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2013. ------------------------------ Chapter : Endurance in trouble at the fast blow. Anas b. Malik reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came to a woman who had been weeping for her (dead) child, and said to her: Fear Allah and show endurance. She (not recognising him) said: You have not been afflicted as I have been. When he (the Holy Prophet) had departed, it was said to her that he was the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), she was mortally shocked. She came to his door and she did not find doorkeepers at his door. She said: Messenger of Allah. I did not recognise you. He said: Endurance is to be shown at first blow, or at the first blow. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2014. ------------------------------ Chapter : Endurance in trouble at the fast blow. A hadith like this is narrated with the same chain of transmitters but with the addition of these words: "The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) happened to pass by a woman (who was sitting) by the side of a grave." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2015. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar reported that Hafsa wept for 'Umar (when he was about to due). He ('Umar) said: Be quiet, my daughter. Don't you know that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said: "The dead is punished because of his family's weeping over it"? Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2016. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. Umar reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: The dead is punished in the grave because of wailing on it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2017. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. The same hadith is narrated on the authority of 'Umar through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2018. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. Ibn 'Umar reported: When 'Umar was wounded he fainted, and there was a loud lamentation over him. When he regained consciousness he said: Didn't you know that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: "The dead is punished because of the weeping of the living"? Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2019. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. Abu Burda narrated on the authority of his father that when 'Umar was wounded Suhaib uttered (loudly in lamentation): O brother! Upon this 'Umar said: Suhaib, did you not know that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: "The dead is punished because of the lamentation of the living"? Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2020. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. Abu Musa reported that when 'Umar was wounded, there came Suhaib from his house and went to 'Umar and stood by his side, and began to wail. Upon this 'Umar said: What are you weeping for? Are you weeping for me? He said: By Allah, it is for you that I weep, O Commander of the believers. He said: By Allah, you already know that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said: He who is lamented upon is punished. I made a mention of it to Musa b. Talha, and he said that 'Aisha told that it concerned the Jews (only). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2021. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. Anas reported that when 'Umar b. Khattab was wounded Hafsa lamented for him. Upon this he said: O Hafsa, did you not hear the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying: "One who is lamented would be punished"? Suhaib also lamented over him. 'Umar told him also: O Suhaib, didn't you know that one who is lamented is punished? Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2022. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. 'Abdullah b. Abu Mulaika reported: I was sitting by the side of Ibn 'Umar, and we were waiting for the bier of Umm Aban, daughter of 'Uthman, and there was also 'Amr b. 'Uthman. In the meanwhile there came Ibn 'Abbas led by a guide. I conceive that he was informed of the place of Ibn 'Umar. So he came till he sat by my side. While I was between them (Ibn 'Abbas and Ibn 'Umar) there came the noise (of wailing) from the house. Upon this Ibn 'Umar said (that is, he pointed out to 'Amr that he should stand and forbid them, for): I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: The dead is punished because of the lamentation of his family. 'Abdullah made it general (what was said for a particular occasion). Ibn 'Abbas said: When we were with the Commander of the believers, 'Umar b. Khattab, we reached Baida', and there was a man under the shadow of the tree. He said to me: Go and inform me who is that person. So I went and (found) that he was Suhaib. I returned to him and said: You commanded me to find out for you who that was, and he is Suhaib. He (Hadrat 'Umar) said: Command him to see us. I said: He has family along with him. He said: (That is of no account) even if he has family along with him. So he (the narrator) told him to see (the Commander of the believers and his party). When we came (to Medina), it was before long that the Commander of the believers was wounded, and Suhaib came weeping and crying: Alas for the brother, alas for the companion. Upon this 'Umar said: Didn't you know, or didn't you hear, that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: "The dead is punished because of the lamentation of his family "? Then 'Abdullah made it general and 'Umar told it of certain occasions. So I ('Abdullah b. Abu Mulaika) stood up and went to 'Aisha and told her what Ibn 'Umar had said, Upon this she said: I swear by Allah that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) never said that dead would be punished because of his family's lamenting (for him). What he said was that Allah would increase the punishment of the unbeliever because of his family's lamenting for him. Verily it is Allah Who has caused laughter and weeping. No bearer of a burden will bear another's burden. Ibn Abu Mulaika said that al-Qasim b. Muhammad said that when the words of 'Umar and Ibn 'Umar were conveyed to 'Aisha, she said: You have narrated it to me from those who are neither liar nor those suspected of lying but (sometimes) hearing misleads. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2023. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. 'Abdullah b. Abu Mulaika said: The daughter of 'Uthman b. 'Affan died in Mecca. We came to attend her (funeral). Ibn 'Umar and Ibn 'Abbas were also present there, and I was sitting between them. He added: I (first sat) by the side of one of them, then the other one came and he sat by my side. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar said to 'Amr b. 'Uthman who was sitting opposite to him: Will you not prevent the people from lamenting, for the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said: "The dead is punished because of the lamenting of his family for him"? Ibn 'Abbas then said that Umar used to say something of that nature, and then narrated saying: I proceeded from Mecca along with 'Umar till we reached al-Baida' and there was a party of riders under the shade of a tree. He said (to me): Go and find out who this party is. I cast a glance and there was Suhaib (in that party). So I informed him ('Umar) about it. He said: Call him to me. So I went back to Suhaib and said: Go and meet the Commander of the believers. When 'Umar was wounded, Suhaib came walling: Alas, for the brother ! alas for the companion ! 'Umar said: O Suhaib, do you wail for me, whereas the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: "The dead would be punished on account of the lamentation of the (members of his family)"? Ibn 'Abbas said: When 'Umar died I made a mention of it to 'Aisha. She said: May Allah have mercy upon 'Umar ! I swear by Allah that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) never said that Allah would punish the believer because of the weeping (of any one of the members of his family), but he said that Allah would increase the punishment of the unbeliever because of the weeping of his family over him. 'Aisha said: The Qur'an is enough for you (when it states): "No bearer of burden will bear another's burden" (vi. 164). Thereupon Ibn 'Abbas said: Allah is He Who has caused laughter and weeping. Ibn Abu Mulaika said: By Allah, Ibn 'Umar said nothing. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2024. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. 'Amr reported on the authority of Ibn Abu Mulaika: We were with the bier of Umm Aban, daughter of 'Uthman, and the rest of the hadith is the same, but he did not narrate it as a marfu' hadith on the authority of 'Umar from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) as it was narrated by Ayyub and Ibn Juraij, and the hadith narrated by them (Ayyub and Ibn Juraij) is more complete than that of 'Amr. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2025. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The dead is punished because of the lamentation of the living. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2026. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. Hisham b. 'Urwa narrated on the authority of his father that the saying of Ibn 'Umar, viz. "The dead would be punished because of the lamentation of his family over him" was mentioned to 'Aisha. Upon this she said: May Allah have mercy upon Abu 'Abd al-Rahman (the kunya of Ibn 'Umar) that he heard something but could not retain it (well). (The fact is) that the bier of a Jew passed before the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and (the members of his family) were waiting over him. Upon this he said: You are wailing and he is being punished. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2027. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. Hisham narrated on the authority of his father that it was mentioned to 'Aisha that Ibn 'Umar had narrated as marfu' hadith from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) that the dead would be punished in the grave because of the lamentation of his family for him. Upon this she said: He (Ibn 'Umar) missed (the point). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had (in fact) said: He (the dead) is punished for his faults or for his sins, and the members of his family are wailing for him now. (This misunderstanding of Ibn 'Umar is similar to his saying:) The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) stood by the well in which were lying the dead bodies of those polytheists who had been killed on the Day of Badr, and he said to them what he had to say, i.e.: They hear what I say. But he (Ibn 'Umar) misunderstood. The Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) had only said: They (the dead) understand that what I used to say to them was truth. She then recited: "Certainly, thou canst not make the dead hear the call" (xxvii. 80), nor can you make those hear who are in the graves, nor can you inform them when they have taken their seats in Hell. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2028. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. This hadith has been narrated by Ibn 'Urwa with the same chain of transmitters. The hadith narrated by Abu Usama is more complete. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2029. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. 'Amra daughter of 'Abd al Rahman narrated that she heard (from) 'Aisha and made a mention to her about 'Abdullah b. 'Umar as saying: The dead is punished because of the lamentation of the living. Upon this 'Aisha said: May Allah have mercy upon the father of 'Abd al-Rahman (Ibn 'Umar). He did not tell a lie, but he forgot or made a mistake. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) happened to pass by a (dead) Jewess who was being lamented. Upon this he said: They weep over her and she is being punished in the grave. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2030. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. 'Ali b. Rabi'a reported that the first one who was lamented upon in Kufa was Qaraza b. Ka'b. Mughira b. Shu'ba said: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying: He who is lamented upon would be punished because of the lamentation for him on the Day of judgment. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2031. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. A hadith like this has been narrated by Mughira b. Shu'ba from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2032. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. This hadith has been narrated from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2033. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. Abu Malik al-Ash'ari reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Among my people there are four characteristics belonging to pre-Islamic period which they do not abandon: boasting of high rank, reviling other peoples' genealogies, seeking rain by stars, and walling. And he (further) said: If the wailing woman does not repent before she dies, she will be made to stand on the Day of Resurrection wearing a garment of pitch and a chemise of mange. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2034. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. 'Aisha reported that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was told that Ibn Haritha, Ja'far b. Abu Talib and Abdullah b. Rawaha were killed, he sat down, showing signs of grief. She (further) said: I was looking (at him) through the crevice of the door. A man came to him and mentioned that Ja'far's women were lamenting. He (the Holy Prophet) commanded him to go and forbid them (to do so). So he went away but came back and told (him) that they did not obey (him). He commanded him a second time to go and forbid them (to do so). He again went but came back to him and said: I swear by God, Messenger of Allah, that they have overpowered us. She ('Aisha) said that she thought the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had told (her) to throw dust in their mouths. Thereupon 'Aisha said: May Allah humble you ! You did not do what Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) ordered you, nor did you stop annoying Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2035. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. This hadith has been narrated by Yahya b. Sa'id with the same chain of transmitters like one narrated by 'Abd al-'Aziz (with the change of these words): "You did not spare the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) the botheration." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2036. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. Umm 'Atiyya reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) took a promise from us along with the oath of Allegiance that we would not lament. But only five among us fulfilled the promise (and they are) Umm Sulaim, and Umm al-'Ala', and the daughter of Abu Sabra the wife of Mu'adh, or daughter of Abu Sabra and wife of Mu'adh. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2037. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. Umm 'Atiyya reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) took pledge from us (including this promise) that we would not lament. Only five amongst us fulfilled the promise, and one of them (who fulfilled the promise) was Umm Sulaim. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2038. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead body is punished for the lamentation of his family. Hafsa narrated on the authority of Umm 'Atiyya that she said: When this verse was revealed: "When believing women came to thee giving thee a pledge that they will not associate aught with Allah, and will not disobey thee in good" (lx. 12), she (Umm Atiyya) said: In (this pledge) was also included wailing. I said: Messenger of Allah I except members of such a tribe who helped me (in lamentation) during pre-Islamic days, there is left no alternative for me, but that I should also help them. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: (Yes) but only in case of the members of such a tribe. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2039. ------------------------------ Chapter : Women forbidden to follow the bier. Umm 'Atiyya reported: We were forbidden to follow the bier, but it was not made absolute on us. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2040. ------------------------------ Chapter : Women forbidden to follow the bier. Umm 'Atiyya reported: We were refrained from following the bier, but it was not made absolute on us. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2041. ------------------------------ Chapter : Washing of the dead body. Umm 'Atiyya reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to us when we were bathing his daughter, and he told us: Wash her with water and (with the leaves of) the lote tree, three or five times, or more than that if you think fit, and put camphor or something like camphor in the last washing; then inform me when you have finished. So when we had finished, we informed him, and he gave to us his (own) under-garment saying: "Put it next her body." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2042. ------------------------------ Chapter : Washing of the dead body. Umm 'Atiyya reported: We braided her hair in three plaits. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2043. ------------------------------ Chapter : Washing of the dead body. Umm 'Atiyya reported: One of the daughters of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) died. And in the hadith transmitted by Ibn 'Ulayya (the words are): The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to us and we were washing his daughter. And in the hadith transmitted by Malik (the words are): There came in (our apartment) the Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) when his daughter died. The rest of the hadith is the same as narrated by Yazid b. Zurai' from Ayyub from Muhammad from Umm 'Atiyya. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2044. ------------------------------ Chapter : Washing of the dead body. A hadith like this has been transmitted by Hafsa on the authority of Umm 'Atiyya with the exception (of these words that the Holy Prophet asked them to wash her dead body): "three times, five times, seven times, or more than that, if you deem fit:" Hafsa (further) said on the authority of Umm 'Atiyya: We braided (the hair) of her head in three plaits. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2045. ------------------------------ Chapter : Washing of the dead body. Umm 'Atiyya reported: We washed her an odd number of times, i.e. three, five or seven times; and Umm 'Atiyya (further) said: We braided her hair in three plaits. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2046. ------------------------------ Chapter : Washing of the dead body. Umm 'Atiyya reported: When Zainab the daughter of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) died, he said to us: Wash her odd number of times, i.e. three or five times, and put camphor or something-like camphor at the fifth time, and after you have washed her inform me. So we informed him and he gave us his under-garment, saying: "Put it next her body." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2047. ------------------------------ Chapter : Washing of the dead body. Umm 'Atiyya reported: There came to us the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as we were washing one of his daughters. So he said: Wash her (dead body) an odd number of times, five times or more than that, the rest of the hadith is the same. She (further) said: We braided her hair in three plaits: (two) on the sides of her head and one on her forehead. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2048. ------------------------------ Chapter : Washing of the dead body. Umm 'Atiyya reported that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) asked her to wash his daughter, he told her to start from the right side, and with those parts of the body over which Wudu' is performed. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2049. ------------------------------ Chapter : Washing of the dead body. Umm 'Atiyya reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to them (the women) in regard to the washing of his daughter to start from the right side and with those parts of the body over which Wudu' is performed. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2050. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the shrouding of the dead body. Khabbab al-Aratt reported: We migrated with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) in the path of Allah seeking Allah's pleasure alone. Thus our reward was assured with Allah. And amongst us were those who spent life (in such a state of piety and austerity) that nothing consumed their reward. Mus'ab b. 'Umair was one of them. He was killed on the Day of Uhud, and nothing but a woollen cloak was found to shroud him. When we covered his head with it, his feet became uncovered, and when we covered his feet, his head was uncovered. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Place it (this cloak) on the side of his head and cover his feet with grass. And there is one amongst us for whom the fruit is ripened and he enjoys it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2051. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the shrouding of the dead body. A hadith like this has been narrated by 'Uyaina on the authority of A'mash with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2052. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the shrouding of the dead body. 'Aisha reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was shrouded in three cotton garments of white Yamani stuff from Sahul, among which was neither a shirt nor a turban; and so far as Hullah is concerned there was some doubt about it in the minds of people, that it was brought for him in order to shroud him with it, but it was abandoned, and he was shrouded in three cotton garments of white Yamani stuff from Sahul. Then 'Abdullah b. Abu Bakr got it and said: I would keep it in order to shroud myself in it. He then said: If Allah, the Exalted and Majestic, would have desired it for His Apostle, he would have been shrouded with it. So he sold it and gave its price in charity. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2053. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the shrouding of the dead body. 'Aisha reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was wrapped in a Yamani wrapper which belonged to 'Abdullah b Abu Bakr; then it was removed from him, and he was shrouded in three cotton sheets of white Yamani stuff from Sahul among which was neither a shirt nor a turban. 'Abdullah took up the Hullah and said: I would be shrouded in it, but then said: How is it that I should be shrouded in it in which the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was not shrouded ! So he gave it in charity. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2054. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the shrouding of the dead body. This hadith is narrated on the authority of Hisham with the same chain of transmitters, but in the hadith narrated by him there is no mention of the story of 'Abdullah b. Abu Bakr. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2055. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the shrouding of the dead body. Abu Salama said: I asked 'Aisha with how many garments the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was shrouded. She said: With three garments of Sahul. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2056. ------------------------------ Chapter : Covering the dead body with a cloth. 'Aisha reported: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upom him) died, he was covered with a Yamani wrapper. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2057. ------------------------------ Chapter : Covering the dead body with a cloth. This hadith has been narrated by Zuhri with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2058. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to shroud the dead body well. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) one day in the course of his sermon made mention of a person among his Companions who had died and had been wrapped in a shroud not long (enough to cover his whole body) and was buried during the night. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) reprimanded (the audience) that a person was buried during the night (in a state that) funeral prayer could not be offered (over him by the Messenger of Allah). (And this is permissible only) when it becomes a dire necessity for a man. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) also said: When any one of you shrouds his brother, he should shroud him well. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2059. ------------------------------ Chapter : Making haste in funeral. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: Make haste at a funeral; if the dead person was good, it is a good state to which you are sending him on; but if he was otherwise it is an evil of which you are ridding yourselves. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2060. ------------------------------ Chapter : Making haste in funeral. This hadith has been narrated by another chain of transmitters except with this variation (of words) that in the hadith narrated by Ma'mar (the words are): "I do not know whether the hadith is marfu'." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2061. ------------------------------ Chapter : Making haste in funeral. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger as saying: Hasten at a funeral, for if (the dead person) is good, you would (soon) bring him close to the good. And if it is otherwise, it is an evil of which you are ridding yourselves. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2062. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of the funeral prayer and following the bier. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who attends the funeral till the prayer is offered for (the dead), for him is the reward of one qirat, and he who attends (and stays) till he is buried, for him is the reward of two qirats. It was said: What are the qirats? He said: They are equivalent to two huge mountains. Two other narrators added: Ibn 'Umar used to pray and then depart (without waiting for the burial of the dead). When the tradition of Abu Huraira reached him, he said: "We have lost many qirats." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2063. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of the funeral prayer and following the bier. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira through another chain of narrators up to these words: "two great mountains." No mention is made of what followed (these words); and in the hadith transmitted by 'Abd al-A'la (the words are): "till (the burial) is complete." In the hadith transmitted by 'Abd ar-Razzaq (the words are): "till he is placed in the grave." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2064. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of the funeral prayer and following the bier. This hadith is narrated on thp authority of Abu Huraira through another chain of transmitters (with these words): "He who followed it (the bier) till he (the dead) is buried." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2065. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of the funeral prayer and following the bier. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who offered prayer over the dead, but did not follow the bier, for him is the reward of one qirat, and he who followed it, for him is the reward of two qirats. It was asked what the qirats were. He said: The smaller amongst the two is equivalent to Uhud. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2066. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of the funeral prayer and following the bier. Nafi' narrated that it was said to Ibn 'Umar that Abu Huraira reported to have heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who follows the bier, for him is the reward of one qirat. Ibn 'Umar said: Abu Huraira narrated it too often. So he sent (a messenger to) 'Aisha to ascertain (the fact). She ('Aisha) testified Abu Huraira. Ibn 'Umar said: We missed so many qirats. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2067. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of the funeral prayer and following the bier. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who offers prayer for the dead, for him is (the reward of) one qirat; and he who follows the bier till it is placed in the grave, for him (is the reward of) two qirats. I (Abu Hazim, one of the narrators) raid: Abu Huraira, what is this qirat? He said: It is like the hill of Uhud. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2068. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of the funeral prayer and following the bier. Dawud b. 'Amir b. Sa'd b. Abu Waqqas reported on the authority of his father that while he was sitting along with 'Abdullah b. 'Umar, Khabbab, the owner of Maqsura, said: Ibn 'Umar, do you hear what Abu Huraira says that he heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) say: "He who goes out with the bier when taken out from its residence and offers prayer for it and he then follows it till it is buried, he would have two qirats of reward, each qirat being equivalent to Uhud; and he who, after having offered prayer, (directly) came back would have his reward (as great) as Uhud"? Ibn 'Umar sent Khabbab to 'Aisha in order to ask her about the words of Abu Huraira (and also told him) to come back to him (Ibn 'Umar) and inform him what 'Aisha said. (In the meanwhile) Ibn 'Umar took up a handful of pebbles and turned them over in his hand till the messenger (Khabbab) came back to him and told (him) that 'Aisha testified (the statement of) Abu Huraira. Ibn 'Umar threw the pebbles he had in his hand on the ground and then said: We missed a large number of qirats. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2069. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of the funeral prayer and following the bier. Thauban, the freed slave of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who offered prayer for the dead, for him is the reward of one qirat, and he who attended its burial, he would have two qirats as his reward. And qirat is equivalent to Uhud. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2070. ------------------------------ Chapter : Merit of the funeral prayer and following the bier. This hadith has been narrated by Qatada with the same chain of transmitters. And in the hadith transmitted by Sa'id and Hisham, (the words are): "The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) was asked about qirat, and he said: It is equivalent to Uhud." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2071. ------------------------------ Chapter : If one hundred Muslim offer prayer for the dead, all of them interceding for him (it would he accepted). 'Aisha reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) saying: If a company of Muslims numbering one hundred pray over a dead person, all of them interceding for him, their intercession for him will be accepted. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2072. ------------------------------ Chapter : If one hundred Muslim offer prayer for the dead, all of them interceding for him (it would he accepted). 'Abdullah b. 'Abbas reported that his son died in Qudaid or 'Usfan. He said to Kuraib to see as to how many people had gathered there for his (funeral). He (Kuraib) said: So I went out and I informed him about the people who had gathered there. He (Ibn 'Abbas) said: Do you think they are forty? He (Kuraib) said: Yes. Ibn 'Abbas then said to them: Bring him (the dead body) out for I have heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: If any Muslim dies and forty men who associate nothing with Allah stand over his prayer (they offer prayer over him), Allah will accept them as intercessors for him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2073. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead who is praised in good words, or who is condemned in bad words. Anas b. Malik reported: There passed a bier (being carried by people) and it was lauded in good terms. Upon this the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: It has become certain, it has become certain, it has become certain. And there passed a bier and it was condemned in bad words. Upon this the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: It has become certain, it has become certain, it has become certain. 'Umar said: May my father and mother be ransom for you ! There passed a bier and it was praised in good terms, and you said: It has become certain, it has become certain, it has become certain. And there passed a bier and it was condemned in bad words, and you said: It has become certain, it has become certain, it has become certain. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) said: He whom you praised in good terms, Paradise has become certain for him, and he whom you condemned in bad words, Hell has become certain for him. You are Allah's witnesses in the earth, you are Allah's witnesses in the earth, you are Allah's witnesses in the earth. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2074. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dead who is praised in good words, or who is condemned in bad words. This hadith has been narrated through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2075. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is said in case of one who gets relief and the one from whom the other gets relief. Qatada b. Rib'i reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Whenever a bier passed before him, he said: He is the one to find relief and the one with (the departure of him) other will find relief. They said: Apostle of Allah, who is al-Mustarih and al-Mustarah? Upon this he said: The believing servant finds relief from the troubles of the world, and in the death of a wicked person, the people, towns, trees and animals find relief. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2076. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is said in case of one who gets relief and the one from whom the other gets relief. In the hadith transmitted by Yahya b. Sa'id on the authority of Qatada (the words are): (The believing servant) finds relief from the troubles of the world and its hardships and (gets into) the Mercy of Allah. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2077. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is said in case of one who gets relief and the one from whom the other gets relief. Abu Huraira reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) gave the people news of the death of Negus on the day he died, and he took them out to the place of prayer and observed four takbirs. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2078. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is said in case of one who gets relief and the one from whom the other gets relief. Abu Huraira reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) gave us the news of the death of Negus, the ruler of Abyssinia, on the day when he died, and he said (to us): Beg pardon for your brother. Ibn Shihab said that Sa'id b. Musayyib had told that Abu Huraira had narrated to him that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) drew them up in a row in a place of prayer, and offered prayer and recited four takbirs for him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2079. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is said in case of one who gets relief and the one from whom the other gets relief. This hadith is narrated through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2080. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is said in case of one who gets relief and the one from whom the other gets relief. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) offered prayer for Ashama, the Negus, and recited four takbirs. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2081. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is said in case of one who gets relief and the one from whom the other gets relief. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There died today the pious servant of Allah, Ashama. So he stood up and led us in (funeral prayer) over him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2082. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is said in case of one who gets relief and the one from whom the other gets relief. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: A brother of yours has died, so stand up and offer prayer over him. So we stood up and drew ourselves up into two rows. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2083. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is said in case of one who gets relief and the one from whom the other gets relief. 'Imran b. Husain reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: A brother of yours has died; so stand up and offer prayer for him, i.e. Negus. And in the hadith transmitted by Zubair (the words are): "Your brother." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2084. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer over the grave. Sha'bi reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed prayer over a grave after the dead was buried and he recited four takbirs over him. Shaibani said: I said to Sha'bi: Who narrated it to you? He said: An authentic one, 'Abdullah b. 'Abbas. This is the word of a hasan hadith. In the narration of Ibn Numair (the words are): The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) went to the grave which had been newly prepared and prayed over it, and they also prayed who were behind him and he recited four takbirs. I said to 'Amir: Who narrated it to you? He said: An authentic one who saw him, i e. Ibn 'Abbas. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2085. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer over the grave. This hadith has been narrated through another chain of transmitters, but in one of them (these words are found): "The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) recited four takbirs." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2086. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer over the grave. The hadith as narrated by Shaibani has been narrated through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2087. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer over the grave. Anas reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed prayer on the grave. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2088. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer over the grave. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira that a dark-complexioned woman (or a youth) used to sweep the mosque. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) missed her (or him) and inquired about her (or him). The people told him that she (or he) had died. He asked why they did not inform him, and it appears as if they had treated her (or him) or her (or his) affairs as of little account. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Lead me to her (or his) grave. They led him to that place and he said prayer over her (or him) and then remarked: Verily, these graves are full of darkness for their dwellers. Verily, the Mighty and Glorious Allah illuminates them for their occupants by reason of my prayer over them. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2089. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prayer over the grave. It is narrated on the authority of 'Abd al-Rahman b. Abu Laila that Zaid used to recite four takbirs on our funerals and he recited five takbirs on one funeral. I asked him the reason (for this variation), to which he replied: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) recited thus. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2090. ------------------------------ Chapter : Standing up on seeing a bier. It is narrated on the authority of 'Amir Ibn Rabi'a (may Allah be pleased with him) that the Prophet (may peace be upon him) said: Whenever you see a funeral procession, stand up for that until it moves away or is lowered on the ground. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2091. ------------------------------ Chapter : Standing up on seeing a bier. It is narrated on the authority of 'Amir Ibn Rabi'a (may Allah be pleased with him) that the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) said: Should any one of you come across a funeral procession, and if he does not intend to accompany it, he must stand up until it passes by him or is placed upon the ground before it passes him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2092. ------------------------------ Chapter : Standing up on seeing a bier. It is reported on the authority of Ibn Juraij that the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) said: Should anyone amongst you see a bier he must stand up so long as it is within sight in case he does not intend to follow it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2093. ------------------------------ Chapter : Standing up on seeing a bier. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Sa'id al-Khudri that the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) said: When you follow a bier, do not sit until it is placed on the (ground). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2094. ------------------------------ Chapter : Standing up on seeing a bier. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Sa'id al-Khudri that the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) said: Whenever you come across a bier you should stand up, and he who follows it should not sit down till it is placed on the ground. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2095. ------------------------------ Chapter : Standing up on seeing a bier. It is narrated on the authority of Jabir Ibn 'Abdullah: There passed a bier and the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) stood up for it and we also stood up along with him. We said: Messenger of Allah, that was the bier of a Jewess. Upon this he remarked: Verily, death is a matter of consternation, so whenever you come across a bier stand up. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2096. ------------------------------ Chapter : Standing up on seeing a bier. Ibn Juraij told me that Abu Zubair heard Jabir say that the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) kept standing for a bier until it disappeared. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2097. ------------------------------ Chapter : Standing up on seeing a bier. Again Abu Zubair heard Jabir say that the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) and his Companions kept standing for a bier of a Jew until it disappeared from sight. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2098. ------------------------------ Chapter : Standing up on seeing a bier. It is narrated on the authority of Ibn Abu Laila that while Qais b. Sa'd and Sahl b. Hunaif were both in Qadislyya a bier passed by them and they both stood up. They were told that it was the bier of one of the people of the land (non-Muslim). They said that a bier passed before the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) and he stood up. He was told that he (the dead man) was a Jew. Upon this he remarked: Was he not a human being or did he not have a soul? And in the hadith narrated by 'Amr b. Murra with the same chain of transmitters, (the words) are: "There passed a bier before us." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2099. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abrogation of the act of standing up the bier. It is narrated on the authority of Waqid: Nafi' b. Jubair saw me and we were standing for a bier, while he was sitting and waiting for the bier to be placed on the ground. He said to me: What makes you keep standing? I said: I am waiting that the bier may be placed on the ground (and I am doing that) on the hadith narrated to me by Abu Sa'id al-Khudri. Upon this Nafi' said: Verily, Mas'ud b. Hakam reported to me on the authority of Hadrat 'Ali b. Abu Talib that the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) stood up first (for a bier) and then sat down. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2100. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abrogation of the act of standing up the bier. Mas'ud b. al-Hakam al-Ansari informed Nafi' that he had heard Hadrat 'Ali (may Allah be pleased with him), son of Abu Talib, say about the biers: Verily, the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) used to stand first but later on kept sitting; but it is also narrated that Nafi' Ibn Jubair saw Waqid b. 'Amr standing for a bier till it was placed down. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2101. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abrogation of the act of standing up the bier. This hadith has been narrated by Yahya b. Sa'id with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2102. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abrogation of the act of standing up the bier. It is narrated on the authority of Muhammad b. Munkadir that he said: I heard from Mas'ud b. al-Hakam who narrated it on the authority of Hadrat 'Ali that he said: We saw the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) stood up for a (bier) and we also stood up; he sat down and we too sat down. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2103. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abrogation of the act of standing up the bier. This hadith has been narrated by Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2104. ------------------------------ Chapter : Supplication for the dead in the funeral prayer. Jubair b. Nufair says: I heard it from 'Auf b. Malik that the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) said prayer on the dead body, and I remembered his prayer: "O Allah ! forgive him, have mercy upon him, give him peace and absolve him. Receive him with honour and make his grave spacious; wash him with water, snow and hail. Cleanse him from faults as Thou wouldst cleanse a white garment from impurity. Requite him with an abode more excellent than his abode, with a family better than his family, and with a mate better than his mate. Admit him to the Garden, and protect him from the torment of the grave and the torment of the Fire." ('Auf bin Malik) said: I earnestly desired that I were this dead body. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2105. ------------------------------ Chapter : Supplication for the dead in the funeral prayer. A hadith like this has been narrated through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2106. ------------------------------ Chapter : Supplication for the dead in the funeral prayer. 'Anas b. Malik said: I heard the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) say (while offering prayer on a dead body): O Allah ! forgive him, have mercy upon him. Give him peace and absolve him. Receive him with honour and make his grave spacious. Wash him with water, snow and hail, cleanse him from faults as is cleaned a white garment from impurity. Requite him with an abode more excellent than his abode, with a family better than his family, and with a mate better than his mate, and save him from the trial of the grave and torment of Hell. 'Auf b. Malik said: I earnestly desired that I were the dead person to receive the prayer of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as this dead body had (received). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2107. ------------------------------ Chapter : Where should the Imam stand for offering prayer over the dead body. Samura b. Jundub said: I prayed behind the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he prayed for a woman who had died in the state of delivery. He stood in front of her waist. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2108. ------------------------------ Chapter : Where should the Imam stand for offering prayer over the dead body. This hadith has been narrated by Husain with the same chain of transmitters, but no mention is made of Umm Ka'b. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2109. ------------------------------ Chapter : Where should the Imam stand for offering prayer over the dead body. Samura b. Jundub said: I was a young boy during the time of the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) and I retained in my mind (what I learnt from him), and nothing restrained me from speaking except the fact that there were persons far more advanced in age than I. Verily, I said prayer behind the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) over a woman who had died in the state of delivery, and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) stood up to say prayer in front of the middle part of her body. And in the tradition narrated on the authority of Ibn Muthanna the words are: "(The Holy Prophet) stood in the middle part of her body for offering prayer for her." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2110. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to ride back after offering funeral prayer. It is reported on the authority of Jabir Ibn Samura that an unsaddled horse was brought to the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) and he rode on it when he returned after having offered the funeral prayer of Ibn Dahdah and we walked on foot around him. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2111. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to ride back after offering funeral prayer. Jabir Ibn Samura reported that the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) said (funeral) prayer on Ibn Dahdah: then an unsaddled horse was brought to him and a person hobbled it, and he (the Messenger of Allah) rode upon it and it bounded and we followed it and ran after it. One of the people said that the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) remarked: How many among hanging bunches in the Paradise are meant for Ibn Dahdah? Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2112. ------------------------------ Chapter : Niche in the grave and setting up of mud bricks over the dead. 'Amir b. Sa'd b. Abu Waqqas told that Sa'd b. Abu Waqqas said during his illness of which he died: "Make a niche for me in the side of the grave and set up bricks over me as was done in case of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2113. ------------------------------ Chapter : Niche in the grave and setting up of mud bricks over the dead. Ibn 'Abbas said that a piece of red stuff was put in the grave of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2114. ------------------------------ Chapter : Commandment in regard to the levelling of the grave. Thumama b. Shafayy reported: When we were with Fadala b. 'Ubaid in the country of the Romans at a place (known as) Rudis, a friend of ours died. Fadala b. 'Ubaid ordered to prepare a grave for him and then it was levelled; and then he said: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) commanding (us) to level the grave. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2115. ------------------------------ Chapter : Commandment in regard to the levelling of the grave. Abu'l-Hayyaj al-Asadi told that 'Ali (b. Abu Talib) said to him: Should I not send you on the same mission as Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) sent me? Do not leave an image without obliterating it, or a high grave without levelling It. This hadith has been reported by Habib with the same chain of transmitters and he said: (Do not leave) a picture without obliterating it. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2116. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to plaster the grave or constructing anything over it. Jabir said: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) forbade that the graves should be plastered or they be used as sitting places (for the people), or a building should be built over them. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2117. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to plaster the grave or constructing anything over it. A hadith like this has been transmitted on the authority of Jabir b. 'Abdullah. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2118. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to plaster the grave or constructing anything over it. Jabir said that he was forbidden to build pucca graves. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2119. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to sit over the grave and observe prayer facing towards it. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: It is better that one of you should sit on live coats which would burn his clothing and come in contact with his skin than that he should sit on a grave. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2120. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to sit over the grave and observe prayer facing towards it. A hadith like this has been narrated by Suhail with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2121. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to sit over the grave and observe prayer facing towards it. Abu Marthad al-Ghanawi reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him)as saying: Do not sit on the graves and do not pray facing towards them. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2122. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to sit over the grave and observe prayer facing towards it. Abu Marthad al-Ghanawi reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Do not pray facing towards the graves, and do not sit on them. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2123. ------------------------------ Chapter : Funeral prayer in the mosque. 'Abbad b. 'Abdullah b. Zubair reported that 'Aisha ordered the bier of Sa'd b. Abu Waqqas to be brought into the mosque so that she should pray for him. The people disapproved this (act) of hers. She said: How soon the people have forgotten that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) offered not the funeral prayer of Suhail b al-Baida' but in a mosque. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2124. ------------------------------ Chapter : Funeral prayer in the mosque. 'Abbad b. 'Abdullah b. Zubair reported on the authority of 'Aisha that when Sa'd b. Abu Waqqas died, the wives of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) sent message to bring his bier into the mosque so that they should offer prayer for him. They (the participants of the funeral) did accordingly, and it was placed in front of their apartments and they offered prayer for him. It was brought out of the door (known as) Bab al-Jana'iz which was towards the side of Maqa'id, and the news reached them (the wives of the Holy Prophet) that the people bad criticised this (i.e. offering of funeral prayer in the mosque) saying that it was not desirable to take the bier inside the mosque. This was conveyed to 'Aisha. She said: How hastily the people criticise that about which they know little. They criticise us for carrying the bier in the mosque. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) offered not the funeral prayer of Suhail b. Baida' but in the innermost part of the mosque. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2125. ------------------------------ Chapter : Funeral prayer in the mosque. Abu Salama b. 'Abd al-Rahman reported on the authority of 'Aisha that when Sa'd b. Abu Waqqas died she said: Bring it (the bier) into the mosque so that I offer prayer for him. But, this act of hers was disapproved. She said: By Allah, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) offered prayer in the mosque for the two sons of Baida', viz, for Suhail and his brother. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2126. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be said while visiting the graveyard and the supplication to be offered for the dead lying in the graves. 'Aisha reported (that whenever it was her turn for Allah's Messenger [may peace be upon him] to spend the night with her) he would go out towards the end of the night to al-Baqi' and say: Peace be upon you, abode of a people who are believers. What you were promised would come to you tomorrow, you receiving it after some delay; and God willing we shall join you. O Allah, grant forgiveness to the inhabitants of Baqi' al-Gharqad. Qutaiba did not mention his words: "would come to you". Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2127. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be said while visiting the graveyard and the supplication to be offered for the dead lying in the graves. Muhammad b. Qais said (to the people): Should I not narrate to you (a hadith of the Holy Prophet) on my authority and on the authority of my mother? We thought that he meant the mother who had given him birth. He (Muhammad b. Qais) then reported that it was 'Aisha who had narrated this: Should I not narrate to you about myself and about the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him)? We said: Yes. She said: When it was my turn for Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) to spend the night with me, he turned his side, put on his mantle and took off his shoes and placed them near his feet, and spread the corner of his shawl on his bed and then lay down till he thought that I had gone to sleep. He took hold of his mantle slowly and put on the shoes slowly, and opened the door and went out and then closed it lightly. I covered my head, put on my veil and tightened my waist wrapper, and then went out following his steps till he reached Baqi'. He stood there and he stood for a long time. He then lifted his hands three times, and then returned and I also returned. He hastened his steps and I also hastened my steps. He ran and I too ran. He came (to the house) and I also came (to the house). I, however, preceded him and I entered (the house), and as I lay down in the bed, he (the Holy Prophet) entered the (house), and said: Why is it, O 'Aisha, that you are out of breath? I said: There is nothing. He said: Tell me or the Subtle and the Aware would inform me. I said: Messenger of Allah, may my father and mother be ransom for you, and then I told him (the whole story). He said: Was it the darkness (of your shadow) that I saw in front of me? I said: Yes. He struck me on the chest which caused me pain, and then said: Did you think that Allah and His Apostle would deal unjustly with you? She said: Whatsoever the people conceal, Allah will know it. He said: Gabriel came to me when you saw me. He called me and he concealed it from you. I responded to his call, but I too concealed it from you (for he did not come to you), as you were not fully dressed. I thought that you had gone to sleep, and I did not like to awaken you, fearing that you may be frightened. He (Gabriel) said: Your Lord has commanded you to go to the inhabitants of Baqi' (to those lying in the graves) and beg pardon for them. I said: Messenger of Allah, how should I pray for them (How should I beg forgiveness for them)? He said: Say, Peace be upon the inhabitants of this city (graveyard) from among the Believers and the Muslims, and may Allah have mercy on those who have gone ahead of us, and those who come later on, and we shall, God willing, join you. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2128. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be said while visiting the graveyard and the supplication to be offered for the dead lying in the graves. Sulaiman b. Buraida narrated on the authority of his father that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to teach them when they went out to the graveyard. One of the narrators used to say this in the narration transmitted on the authority of Abu Bakr: "Peace be upon the inhabitants of the city (i.e. graveyard)." In the hadith transmitted by Zuhair (the words are): "Peace be upon you, the inhabitants of the city, among the believers, and Muslims, and God willing we shall join you. I beg of Allah peace for us and for you." Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2129. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Apostle of Allah (way peace be upon him) seeking permission from the Lord. the Exalted and High, for visiting the grave of his mother. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger, (may peace be upon him) as saying: I sought permission to beg forgiveness for my mother, but He did not grant it to me. I sought permission from Him to visit her grave, and He granted it (permission) to me. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2130. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Apostle of Allah (way peace be upon him) seeking permission from the Lord. the Exalted and High, for visiting the grave of his mother. Abu Huraira reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) visited the grave of his mother and he wept, and moved others around him to tears, and said: I sought permission from my Lord to beg forgiveness for her but it was not granted to me, and I sought permission to visit her grave and it was granted to motel So visit the graves, for that makes you mindful of death. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2131. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Apostle of Allah (way peace be upon him) seeking permission from the Lord. the Exalted and High, for visiting the grave of his mother. Ibn Buraida reported on the authority of his father that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I forbade you to visit graves, but you may now visit them; I forbade you to eat the flesh of sacrificial animals after three days, but you way now keep it as along as you feel inclined; and I forbade you nabidh except in a water-skin, you may drink it from all kinds of water-skins, but you must not drink anything intoxicating. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2132. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Apostle of Allah (way peace be upon him) seeking permission from the Lord. the Exalted and High, for visiting the grave of his mother. This hadith has been narrated through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 004, Hadith Number 2133. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abandoning of funeral prayer for him who committed suicide. Jabir b. Samura reported: (The dead body) of a person who had killed himself with a broad-headed arrow was brought before the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), but he did not offer prayers for him. Total Hadiths : 1399. Generated By : The Hadith Software Version 1.0 Date : 05-03-2009. ****************************************************************** * NOTE!! THERE ARE VARIOUS WEB SITES (I.E. WWW.HADITHONLINE.COM) * * THAT CAN BE USED TO VALIDATE THE AUTHENTICITY OF EACH HADITHS * * GENERATED OR VIEWED IN THIS SOFTWARE. PLEASE REFER TO THEM IF * * YOU HAVE ANY QUESTIONS OR DOUBTS. - Islamasoft Solutions. (UK) * ****************************************************************** Islamasoft Solutions. (www.islamasoft.co.uk) The Hadith Software : Shahi Muslim. Muslim Book 5. Zakat. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2134. ------------------------------ Chapter : No Zakat is due from a Muslim or his slave or his horse. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) as saying: No sadaqa (zakat) is payable on less than five wasqs of (dates or grains), on less than five camel-heads and on less than five uqiyas (of silver). Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2135. ------------------------------ Chapter : No Zakat is due from a Muslim or his slave or his horse. A hadith like this has been narrated by 'Amr b. Yahya with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2136. ------------------------------ Chapter : No Zakat is due from a Muslim or his slave or his horse. 'Umara reported: I heard Abd Sa'id al-Khudri as saying that he had heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) make (this) observation with a gesture of his five fingers, and then he narrated the hadith as transmitted by 'Uyaina (hadith 2134). Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2137. ------------------------------ Chapter : No Zakat is due from a Muslim or his slave or his horse. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Sadaqa (zakat) is payable on less than five wasqs of (dates or grains), on less than five camel-heads, and on less than five uqiyas (of silver). Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2138. ------------------------------ Chapter : No Zakat is due from a Muslim or his slave or his horse. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: No Sadaqa is payable on less than five wasqs of dates or grains. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2139. ------------------------------ Chapter : No Zakat is due from a Muslim or his slave or his horse. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: No Sadaqa is payable on the grains and dates till it (comes to the Weight) of five wasqs, or less than five heads of camels, or less than five uqiyas (of silver). Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2140. ------------------------------ Chapter : No Zakat is due from a Muslim or his slave or his horse. A hadith like this has been narrated by Isma'il b. Umayya with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2141. ------------------------------ Chapter : No Zakat is due from a Muslim or his slave or his horse. A hadith like this has been narrated by Isma'il b. Umayya with the same chain of transmitters, but instead of the word dates, fruit has been used. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2142. ------------------------------ Chapter : No Zakat is due from a Muslim or his slave or his horse. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: No Sadaqa is payable on less than five fiqiyas of silver, and on less than five heads of camels, and less than five wasqs of dates. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2143. ------------------------------ Chapter : No Zakat is due from a Muslim or his slave or his horse. Jabir b. Abdullah reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: A tenth is payable on what is watered by rivers, or rains, and a twentieth on what is watered by camels. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2144. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sending off for the payment of Zakat and of refusing to pay it. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: No Sadaqa is due from a Muslim on his slave or horse. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2145. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sending off for the payment of Zakat and of refusing to pay it. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: No Sadaqa is due from a Muslim on his slave or horse. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2146. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sending off for the payment of Zakat and of refusing to pay it. A hadith like this has been narrated by Abu Huraira through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2147. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sending off for the payment of Zakat and of refusing to pay it. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There is no Sadaqa on a slave except Sadaqat-ul-Fitr. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2148. ------------------------------ Chapter : Zakat (Sadaqa) Fitr is binding on every Muslim. Abu Huraira reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him)sent Umar for (collecting) Sadaqa (zakat), and it was said that Ibn Jamil, Khalid b. Walid and 'Abbas the uncle of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), refused (to pay it). Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Ibn Jamil is taking revenge but for this that he was destitute and Allah made him rich. As regards Khalid, you are unjust to Khalid, for be reserved his armours and weapons for the sake of Allah, and as for 'Abbas, I shall be responsible for it and an equal amount along with it. And he again said: 'Umar, bear this in mind, the uncle of a person is like his father. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2149. ------------------------------ Chapter : Taking out of Sadaqat-ul-Fitr before observing Fitr prayer. Ibn Umar said that Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) prescribed the payment of Zakat-ul-Fitr (on breaking the fast) of Ramadan for people, for every freeman, or slave, male and female among the Muslims-one sa' of dried dates, or one sa' of barley. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2150. ------------------------------ Chapter : Taking out of Sadaqat-ul-Fitr before observing Fitr prayer. Ibn 'Umar said that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) prescribed Zakat-ul-Fitr one sa' of dates or one sa' of barley for every slave or freeman, young or old. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2151. ------------------------------ Chapter : Taking out of Sadaqat-ul-Fitr before observing Fitr prayer. Ibn 'Umar said that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) prescribed the Sadaqa of Ramadan (Sadaqat-al-Fitr) one sa' of dates or one sa' of barley for every free man or a slave, male or female, and then the people equalised (one sa' of dates or barley) with half a sa' of wheat. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2152. ------------------------------ Chapter : Taking out of Sadaqat-ul-Fitr before observing Fitr prayer. Abdullah b. Umar reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) ordered the (payment of) Zakat-ul-Fitr one sa' of dates, or one sa' of barley. Ibn 'Umar ('Abdullah b. 'Umar) further said: The people equalised it (then) with two mudds of fine wheat. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2153. ------------------------------ Chapter : Taking out of Sadaqat-ul-Fitr before observing Fitr prayer. Ibn Umar reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) prescribed Zakat-ul-Fitr of Ramadan one sa' of dates or one sa' of barley for every individual among the Muslims (whether) free man or slave, male or female, young or old. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2154. ------------------------------ Chapter : Taking out of Sadaqat-ul-Fitr before observing Fitr prayer. Sad b. Abu Sarh heard Abu Sa'id al-Khudri as saying: We used to take out as the Zakat of Fitr one sa' of grain, or one sa' of barley or one sa' of dates, or one sa' of cheese or one sa' of raisins. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2155. ------------------------------ Chapter : Taking out of Sadaqat-ul-Fitr before observing Fitr prayer. Abd Sa'id al-Khudri reported: We, on behalf of every young or old, free man or slave (amongst us), used to take out during the lifetime of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as the Zakat of Fitr one sa' of grain, or one sa' of cheese or one sa' of raisins. And we continued taking out these till Mu'awiya b. Abu Sufyan came to us for pilgrimage or 'Umra, and addressed the people on the pulpit and said to them: I see that two mudds of zakat out of the wheat (red) of Syria is equal to one sa' of dates. So the people accepted it. But Abu Sa'id said: I would continue to take out as I used to take out (before, i.e. one sa') as long as I live. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2156. ------------------------------ Chapter : Taking out of Sadaqat-ul-Fitr before observing Fitr prayer. Sa'd b. Abu Sarh heard Abu Sa'id al-Khudri as saying: We, on behalf of young or old, free or slave, used to take out the Zakat of Fitr while the Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) was among us, in three kinds, one sa' of dates, one sa' of cheese, or one sa' of barley, and we continued to take that out till the time of Mu'awiya, for he saw that two mudds of wheat were equal to one sa' of dates. Abu Sa'id sald: I would continue to take that out as before (i.e. one sa' of wheat). Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2157. ------------------------------ Chapter : Taking out of Sadaqat-ul-Fitr before observing Fitr prayer. Abu Sa'id al Khudri reported: We used to take out the Zakat of Fitr in three kinds, cheese, dates and barley. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2158. ------------------------------ Chapter : Taking out of Sadaqat-ul-Fitr before observing Fitr prayer. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported that when Mu'awiya prescribed half a sa' of wheat equal to one sa' of dates, he (Abu Sa'id al-Khudri) objected to it, and said: I would take out (Sadaqat-ul-Fitr) but that which I used to bring forth during the lifetime of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) one sa' of dates, or one sa' of raisins, or one sa' of barley, or one sa' of cheese. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2159. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sin of one who does not pay Zakat. Ibn 'Umar reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) ordered that the Sadaqat-ul-Fitr should be paid before the people go out for prayer. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2160. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sin of one who does not pay Zakat. Abdullah b 'Umar reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) ordered the payment of Sadaqat-ul-Fitr before people go out for prayer. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2161. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pleasing of the collector. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) as saying: If any owner of gold or silver does not pay what is due on him, when the Day of Resurrection would come, plates of fire would be beaten out for him; these would then be heated in the fire of Hell and his sides, his forehead and his back would be cauterised with them. Whenever these cool down, (the process is) repeated during a day the extent of which would be fifty thousand years, until judgment is pronounced among servants, and he sees whether his path is to take him to Paradise or to Hell. It was said: Messenger of Allah, what about the camel? He (the Holy Prophet) said: If any owner of the camel does not pay what is due on him, and of his due in that (camel) is (also) to milk it on the day when it comes down to water. When the Day of Resurrection comes a soft sandy plain would be set for him, as extensive as possible, (he will find) that not a single young one is missing, and they will trample him with their hoofs and bite him with their mouths. As often as the first of them passes him, the last of them would be made to return during a day the extent of which would be fifty thousand years, until judgment is pronounced among servants and he sees whether his path is to take him to Paradise or to Hell. It was (again) said: Messenger of Allah, what about cows (cattle) and sheep? He said: It any owner of the cattle and sheep does not pay what is due on them, when the Day of Resurrection comes a soft sandy plain would be spread for them, he will find none of them missing, with twisted horns, without horns or with a broken horn, and they will gore him with their horns and trample him with their hoofs. As often as the first of them passes him the last of them would be made to return to him during a day the extent of which would be fifty thousand years, until judgment would be pronounced among the servants. And he would be shown his path-path leading him to Paradise or to Hell. It was said: Messenger of Allah, what about the horse? Upon this he said: The horses are of three types. To one than (these are) a burden, and to another man (these are) a covering, and still to another man (these are) a source of reward. The one for whom these are a burden is the person who rears them in order to show off, for vainglory and for opposing the Muslims; so they are a burden for him. The one for whom these are a covering is the person who rears them for the sake of Allah but does not forget the right of Allah concerning their backs and their necks, and so they are a covering for him. As for those which bring reward (these refer to) the person who rears them for the sake of Allah to be used for Muslims and he puts them in meadow and field. And whatever thing do these eat from that meadow and field would be recorded on his behalf as good deeds, as would also the amount of their dung and urine. And these would not break their halter and prance a course or two without having got recorded the amount of their hoof marks and their dung as a good deed on his behalf (on behalf of their owner). And their master does not bring them past a river from which they drink, though he did not intend to quench their thirst, but Allah would record for him the amount of what they drink on his behalf as deeds. It was said: Messenger of Allah, what about the asses?, Upon this he said: Nothing has been revealed to me in regard to the asses (in particular) except this one verse of a comprehensive nature: "He who does an atom's weight of good will see it, and he who does an atom's weight of evil will see it" (xcix. 7) Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2162. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pleasing of the collector. This hadith has been narrated by Zaid b. Aslam with the same chain of transmitters except that he said: "None among the owners of camels who does not pay their due," but did not say "their due (Zakat) out of them." and he make a mention: "He did not miss a single young one out of them." and he said: "Their sides, their foreheads and their backs would be cauterised." Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2163. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pleasing of the collector. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: No owner of the treasure who does not pay Zakat (would be spared) but (his hoards) would be heated in the Fire of Hell and these would be made into plates and with these his sides, his forehead would be cauterised till Allah would pronounce judgment among His servants during a day, the extent of which would be fifty thousand years. He would then see his path, leading either to Paradise or to Hell. And no owner of the camels who does not pay Zakat (would be spared) but a soft sandy plain would be set for him and they (the camels) would be made to pass over him till the last of them would be made to return till Allah would pronounce judgment among His servants during a day the extent of which would be fifty thousand years. He would then see his path leading him to Paradise or leading him to Hell. And no owner of the (cattle and) goats who does not pay Zakat (would be spared) but a soft sandy plain would be set for him, he would find none of them missing, with twisted horns, without horns, or with broken horns, and they will gore him with their horns and trample him with their hoofs and they would be made to pass over him till the last of them would be made to return till Allah would pronounce judgment among His servants, during a day the extent of which would be forty thousand years, and he would see the paths leading to Paradise or to Hell. Suhail said: I do not know whether he made mention of the cows. They said: Messenger of Allah(may peace be upon him), what about the horses? He said: The horses have goodness in their foreheads (or he said) or goodness is ingrained in the foreheads of the horses (Suhail said: I am in doubt as to what was actually said) up till the Day of judgement. The horses are of three kinds. They are a source of reward to a person, they are a covering to a person, and they are a burden to a person. As for those which bring reward is that a person would get reward who rears them for the sake of Allah and trains them for Him, and nothing disappears in their stomachs but Allah would record for him a good deed. And if they were to graze in the meadow, they would eat nothing but Allah would record for him a reward. And if they were to drink water from the canal, with every drop that, would disappear in their stomachs there would be reward (for the owner). He went on describing till a reward was mentioned for their urine and dung. And if they pranced a course or two, there would be recorded a reward for every pace that they covered. As for one for whom they are a covering, he is the man who rears them for honour and dignity but does not forget the right of their backs and their stomachs, in plenty and adversity, As regards one for whom they are a burden, he is that who rears them for vainglory and showing off to the people; for him they are, the burden. They said: Messenger of Allah, what about asses? He said: Allah has not revealed to me anything in regards to it except this one comprehensive verse: "He who does an atom's weight of good will see it, and he who does an atom's weight of evil will see it" (xcix. 7). Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2164. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pleasing of the collector. This hadith has been narrated by Suhail b. Abu Salih with the same chain of transmitters, and he said he substituted the word aqsa' with 'adba' and said: "his side and his back," but he made no mention of his forehead. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2165. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pleasing of the collector. This hadith has been narrated by Abu Huraira through another chain of transmitters: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: "When a person does not pay what is due to Allah or Sadaqa of his camels..." The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2166. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pleasing of the collector. Jabir b. 'Abdullah al-Ansari reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The owner of a camel who does not pay what is due on it (would be punished in this way) that on the Day of Resurrection many more (along with his camel) would come and the owner would be made to sit on a soft sandy ground and they would trample him with their feet and hooves. And no owner of the cattle who does not pay what is due on them (would be spared the punishment) but on the Day of Resurrection, many more would come and he (the owner) would be made to sit on the soft sandy ground and would be gored by their horns and trampled under their feet. And no owner of the goats and sheep who does not pay what is due on them (would be spared of punishment) but many more would come on the Day of Resurrection and he (the owner) would be made to sit on a soft sandy ground and they would gore him with their horns and trample him under their hooves. And there would be more (among this flock of sheep and goat) without horns or with broken horns. And no owner of the treasure who does not pay its due but his treasure would come on the Day of Resurrection like a bald snake and would pursue him with its mouth open, and when it would come near he would run away from it, and he would be called thus: "Take your treasure which you concealed, for I do not need it." When he would find no way out he would put his hand in its mouth and it would gnaw it like a he-camel. Abu Zubair said: We heard Ubaid b. Umair saying this. We then asked Jabir b. 'Abdullah about this. And he also said like Ubaid b. Umair, Abu Zubair said: I heard 'Ubaid b. 'Umair saying: A man said: Messenger of Allah, what is due on camels? He said: Milking them near water, and lending of bucket (used for drawing water from it), or lending its male for mating with a she-camel and providing it as a ride for the sake of Allah. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2167. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pleasing of the collector. Jabir b. Abdullah reported the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: No owner of camels or cattle or flock of sheep or goats who does not pay his due (would be spared punishment) but would be made to sit on the Day of Resurrection on a soft sandy ground and the hoofed animals would trample him with their hoofs and gore him with their horns. And none of them on that day would be without horns, or with broken horns. We said: Messenger of Allah, but what is due on them? He said: Lending of the male (for use) and lending of the bucket (used for drawing water for them) and for mating and milking them near water and providing them as a ride for the sake of Allah. And no owner of the property who does not pay Zakat (would be spared punishment) but it (his property) would turn into a bald snake and would follow its owner wherever he would go, and he would run away from it, and it would be said to him: That is your property about which you were stingy. And when he would find no other way out he would thrust his hand in its mouth and it would gnaw it like a male camel. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2168. ------------------------------ Chapter : The gravity of punishment for one who does not pay Zakat. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported: There came people from among the Bedouins to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: Collectors of Sadaqa come to us and treat us unjustly. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Please your collectors. Jarir said: Ever since I heard it from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) no collector had departed but was pleased with me. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2169. ------------------------------ Chapter : The gravity of punishment for one who does not pay Zakat. This hadith has been narrated by Muhammad b. Isma'il with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2170. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to give Sadaqa. Abu Dharr reported: I went to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he was sitting under the shade of the Ka'ba. As he saw me he said: By the Lord of the Ka'ba, they are the losers. I came there till I sat and I could not stay (longer) and (then) stood up. I said: Messenger of Allah, let my father, be ransom for you, who are they (the losers)? He said: They are those having a huge amount of wealth except so and so and (those who spend their wealth generously on them whom they find in front of them, behind them and on their right side and on their left side) and they are a few. And no owner of camels, or cattle or goat and sheep, who does not pay Zakat (would be spared punishment) but these (camels, cattle, goats and sheep) would come on the Day of Resurrection wearing more flesh and would gore him with their horns and trample them with their hooves. And when the last one would pass away, the first one would return (to trample him) till judgment would be pronounced among people. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2171. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to give Sadaqa. Abu Dbarr reported: I went to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he was sitting under the shade of the Ka'ba, and the rest of the hadith it the same but for this that he (the Holy Prophet) said: "By Allah, in Whose hand is my life, no person on earth who dies and leaves behind camels, or cattle or goat and sheep, and does not pay Zakat (would be spared the punishment)." Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2172. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to give Sadaqa. Abu Huraira reported that the Prophet (may peace be upon him) said: Nothing is more delighting to me than this that Uhud should be of gold for me, and no dinar is left with me out of it before three nights pass except a dinar which I would set aside for the repayment of debt upon me. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2173. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to give Sadaqa. Abu Huraira reported the same from the Prophet (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2174. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hoarders of wealth and punishment to them. Abu Dharr reported: I walked with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on the stony ground of Medina in the afternoon and we were looking at Uhud. The Messenger of Allah (way peace by upon him) said: Abu Dharr ! I said: Messenger of Allah, I am here at thy beck and call. He said: What I desire is that Uhud be gold with me and three nights should pass and there is left with me any dinar but one coin which I would keep to pay debt. (I love) to spend it among the servants of Allah like this and he pointed in front of him, and on his right side and on his left side. We then proceeded on and he said: Abu Dharr. I said: At thy beck and call, Messenger of Allah. He (the Holy Prophet) said: The rich would be poor on the Day of Resurrection, but he who spent like this and like this and like this, and he pointed as at the first time. We again went on when he said: Abu Dharr, stay where you are till I come back to you. He (the Holy Prophet) then moved on till he disappeared from my sight He (Abu Dharr) said: I heard a sound and I heard a noise. I said (to myself): The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) might have met (mishap or an enemy). I wished to follow him but I remembered his command for not departing till he would come back. So I waited for him, and when he came I made a mention of what I heard. He said: it was Gabriel, who came to me and said: "He who dies among your Ummah without associating Anything with Allah would enter Paradise. I said: Even if he committed fornication or theft? He said: Even if he committed fornication or theft. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2175. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hoarders of wealth and punishment to them. Abu Dharr reported: I went out one night (and found) the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) walking all alone. There was no man with him. I thought that he did not like anyone walking along with him. So I began to walk in the light of the moon. He, however turned his attention to me and saw me and said: Who is this? I said: It is Abu Dharr. Let Allah make me as ransom for you. He said: Abu Dharr, come on. He (Abu Dharr) said: So I walked along with him for some time and he said: The wealthy persons would have little (reward) on the Day of Resurrection, except upon whom Allah conferred goodness (wealth). He dispensed it to his right, left, in front of him and at his back (just as the wind diffuses fragrance) and did good with it (riches). I went along with him for some time when He said: Sit here. And he made me sit at a safe place and there were stones around it, and he said to me: Sit here till I come to you. He went away on the stony ground till I could not see him. He stayed away from me, and he prolonged his stay. Then I heard him as he came back and he was saying: Even if he committed theft and even if he committed fornication. When he came I could not help asking him: Apostle of Allah, let Allah make me ransom for you, whom were you speaking on the stony ground? I heard nobody responding to you. He (the Holy Prophet) said: It was Gabriel who met me by the side of the stony ground and said: Give glad tidings to your Ummah that he who died without associating ought with Allah would go into Paradise. I said: Gabriel, even if he committed theft and fornication? He said: Yes. I said: Even it he committed theft and fornication? He said: Yes, I again said: Even if he committed theft and fornication? He said: Yes, even if he drank wine. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2176. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to spend and tidings to him who spends(on good deeds). Ahnaf b. Qais reported: I came to Medina and when I was in the company of the grandees of Quraish a man with a crude body and an uncouth face wearing coarse clothes came there. He stood up before them and said: Give glad tidings to those whom who amass riches of the stones which would be heated in the Fire of Hell, and would be placed at the tick of the chest till it would project from the shoulder bone and would he put on the shoulder bone till it would project from the tick of his chest, and it (this stone) would continue passing and re-passing (from one side to the other). He (the narrator) said: Then people hung their heads and I saw none among them giving any answer. He then returned and I followed him till he sat near a pillar. I said: I find that these (people) disliked what you said to them and they do not understand anything. My friend Abu'l-Qasim (Muhammad) (may peace he upon him) called me and I responded to him, and he said: Do you see Uhud? I saw the sun (shining) on me and I thought that he would send me on an errand for him. So I said: I see it. Upon this he said: Nothing would delight me more than this that I should have gold like it (equal to the bulk of Uhud), and I should spend it all except three dinars. (How sad it is) that they hoard worldly riches, and they know nothing. I said: What about you and your brothers Quraish? You do not go to them for any need and do not accept anything from them. He said: By Allah, I neither beg anything from them (from worldly goods), nor do I ask them anything about religion till I meet my Allah and His Messenger. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2177. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to spend and tidings to him who spends(on good deeds). Ahnaf b. Qais reported: While I was in the company of the (elites) of Quraiah, Abu Dharr came there and he was saying: Give glad tidings to the hoarders of riches that their backs would be branded (so deeply) that (the hot Iron) would come out of their sides, and when the backs of their necks would be branded, it would come out of their foreheads. He (Abu Dharr) then went away and sat down. I asked who he was. They said: He is Abu Dharr. I went to him and said to him: What is this that I heard from you which you were saying before? He said: I said nothing but only that which I heard from their Prophet (may peace be upon him). I again said: What do you say about this gift? He said: Take it, for today it is a help. But when it becomes a price for your religion, then abandon it. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2178. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of spending on one's family, and servant, and sin of one who neglects or withholds their subsistence. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying that Allah, the Most Blessed and High, said: O son of Adam, spend. I will spend on you. The right hand of Allah is full and overflowing and in nothing would diminish it, by overspending day and night. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2179. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of spending on one's family, and servant, and sin of one who neglects or withholds their subsistence. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying that Allah said to him: "Spend, I will bestow upon you." And the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The right hand of Allah is full and spending (the riches) liberally during day and night will not diminish (the resources of Allah). Don't you see what (an enormous amount of resources) He has spent since He created the heaven and the earth, and what is in His right hand has not decreased? His Throne is upon the water. And in His other hand is death, and He elevates and degrades (whom He likes). Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2180. ------------------------------ Chapter : Beginning of spending for one's own self, then for one's family and then for relatives. Thauban reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The most excellent dinar is one that a person spends on his family, and the dinar which he spends on his animal in Allah's path, and the dinar he spends on his companions in Allah's path. Abu Qilaba (one of the narrators) said: He (the narrator) started with family, and then Abu Qilaba said: Who is the person with greater reward than a person who spends on young members of his family (and thus) preserves (saves them from want) (and by virtue of which) Allah brings profit for them and makes them rich. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2181. ------------------------------ Chapter : Beginning of spending for one's own self, then for one's family and then for relatives. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Of the dinar you spend as a contribution in Allah's path, or to set free a slave, or as a sadaqa given to a needy, or to support your family, the one yielding the greatest reward is that which you spent on your family. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2182. ------------------------------ Chapter : Beginning of spending for one's own self, then for one's family and then for relatives. Khaithama reported: While we were sitting in the company of 'Abdullah b. 'Umar there came in his steward. He (Ibn 'Umar) said: Have you supplied the provision to the slaves? He said: No. Upon this he said: Go and give (the provision) to them, for the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) has said: This sin is enough for a man that he withholds the subsistence from one whose master he is. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2183. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of spending and giving Sadaqa to relatives, wife, children, and parents even if they are polytheists. Jabir reported: A person from the Banu 'Udhra set a slave free after his death. This news reached the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Upon this he said: Have you any property besides it? He said: No. Upon this he said: Who would buy (this slave) from me? Nulaim b. Abdullah bought it for eight hundred dirhams and (this amount was) brought to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) who returned it to him (the owner), and then said: Start with your own self and spend it on yourself, and if anything is left, it should be spent on your family, and if anything is left (after meeting the needs of the family) it should be spent on relatives, and if anything is left from the family, it should be spent like this, like this. And he was saying: In front of you, on your right and on your left. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2184. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of spending and giving Sadaqa to relatives, wife, children, and parents even if they are polytheists. Jabir reported that a person among the Ansar who was called Abu Madhkur granted posthumous freedom to his slave who was called Ya'qub. The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2185. ------------------------------ Chapter : Getting of reward to Sadaqa for the dead given on his or her behalf. Anas b. Malik is reported as saying: Abu Talha was the one among the Ansar of Medina who possessed the largest property and among his property he valued most was his garden known as Bairaha' which was opposite the mosque, and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) often visited it and he drank of its sweet water. When this verse was revealed: "You will never attain righteousness till you give freely of what you Have" (iii. 91), Abu Talha got up and, going to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), said: Allah says in His Muslim Book: "You will never attain righteousness till you give freely of what you love," and the dearest of my property is Bairaha' so I give it as Sadaqa to God from Whom I hope for reward for it and the treasure with Allah; so spend it, Messenger of Allah, on whatever purpose you deem it proper. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Bravo I that is profit earning property. I have heard what you have said, but I think you should spend it on your nearest relatives. So Abu Talha distributed it among the neatest relatives and his cousins on his father's side. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2186. ------------------------------ Chapter : Getting of reward to Sadaqa for the dead given on his or her behalf. Anas reported that when this verse was revealed: "You will not attain righteousness till you give freely of what you love," Abu Talha said: I see that our Lord has demanded from us out of our property; so I make you a witness, Messenger of Allah, that I give my land known as Bairaha' for the sake of Allah. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Give that to your relatives. So he gave it to Hassan b. Thabit and Ubayy b. Ka'b. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2187. ------------------------------ Chapter : Getting of reward to Sadaqa for the dead given on his or her behalf. Maimuna bint Harith reported that she set free a slave-girl during the lifetime of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and she made a mention of that to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he said: Had you gives her to your maternal uncles, you would have a greater reward. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2188. ------------------------------ Chapter : Getting of reward to Sadaqa for the dead given on his or her behalf. Zainab, the wife of 'Abdullah (b. Mas'ud), reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: O women, give sadaqa even though it be some of your jewellery. She returned to 'Abdullah and said: You are a person with empty hands, whereas the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) has commanded us to give sadaqa, so better go to him and ask and if this will suffice for me; otherwise I shall give it to someone else. 'Abdullah said to me (his wife): You better go yourself. So I went and there was another woman of the Ansar at the door of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) having the same purpose as I had. Now Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) was invested with awe (so we did not like to knock). Then Bilal came out and we said to him: Go to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and inform him that there are two women at the door asking him whether it will serve them to give sadaqa to their spouses and to orphans who are under their charge, but do not inform him who we are. Bilal went to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and asked him (what these women had instructed him to ask). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) asked him who these women were. He (Bilal) said: They are women from Ansar and Zainab. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Which of the Zainabs? He said: The wife of 'Abdullah. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: There are two rewards for them, the reward of kinship and the reward of Sadaqa. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2189. ------------------------------ Chapter : Getting of reward to Sadaqa for the dead given on his or her behalf. A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of Zainab the wife of 'Abdullah, and she said: I was in the mosque and the Prophet of Allah (may peace be upon him) saw me and said: Give Sadaqa even though it is out of your jewellery. The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2190. ------------------------------ Chapter : Getting of reward to Sadaqa for the dead given on his or her behalf. Umm Salama said: I asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) whether there is a reward for me if I spend oh Abu Salama's sons, and I am not going to abandon them in this state (of helplessness) for they are my sons. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Yes. For you is the reward for what you spend on them. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2191. ------------------------------ Chapter : Getting of reward to Sadaqa for the dead given on his or her behalf. This hadith has been narrated by Ibn 'Urwa with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2192. ------------------------------ Chapter : Getting of reward to Sadaqa for the dead given on his or her behalf. Abu Mas'ud reported Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) as saying: When a Muslim spends on his family seeking reward for it from Allah, it counts for him as sadaqa. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2193. ------------------------------ Chapter : Getting of reward to Sadaqa for the dead given on his or her behalf. This hadith has been narrated by Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2194. ------------------------------ Chapter : Getting of reward to Sadaqa for the dead given on his or her behalf. Asma' daughter of Abu Bakr reported: I said: Messenger of Allah, my mother, who is inclined or scared has come to me. Should I (even An her position of being opposed to Islam) treat her well? He said: Yes. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2195. ------------------------------ Chapter : Getting of reward to Sadaqa for the dead given on his or her behalf. Asma' bint Abu Bakr reported: My mother who was a polytheist came to me when he (the Holy Prophet) entered into treaty with, the Quraish (of Mecca). I inquired from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying: Messenger of Allah, there has come to me my mother and she is inclined; should I (in this state of her mind) show her kindness? He said: Yes, treat her kindly. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2196. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sadaqa includes all types of good acts. 'Aisha said that a person came to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: My mother died suddenly without having made any will. I think she would have definitely given Sadaqa if she had been able to speak. Would she have a reward if I gave Sadaqa on her behalf? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Yes. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Hisham with the same chain of transmitters. And in the hadith transmitted by Abu Usama the words are: "She did not make any will," as it has been reported by Ibn Bishr, but it was not reported by the rest of the narrators. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2197. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning one who spends and who withholds. Hudhaifa and Abu Shaiba reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Every act of goodness is sadaqa. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2198. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning one who spends and who withholds. Abu Dharr reported: some of the people from among the Companions of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to him: Messenger of Allah, the rich have taken away (air the) reward. They observe prayer as we do; they keep the fasts as we keep, and tray give Sadaqa out of their surplus riches. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) said: Has Allah not prescribed for you (a course) by following which you can (also) do sadaqa? In every declaration of the glorification of Allah (i.e. saying Subhan Allah) there is a Sadaqa, and every Takbir (i.e. saying Allah-O-Akbar) is a sadaqa, and every praise of His (saying al-Hamdu Lillah) is a Sadaqa and every declaration that He is One (La illha ill-Allah) is a sadaqa, and enjoining of good is a sadaqa, and forbidding of that which is evil is a Sadaqa, and in man's sexual Intercourse (with his wife,) there is a Sadaqa. They (the Companions) said: Messenger of Allah, is there reward for him who satisfies his sexual passion among us? He said: Tell me, if he were to devote it to something forbidden, would it not be a sin on his part? Similarly, if he were to devote it to something lawful, he should have a reward. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2199. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning one who spends and who withholds. 'Aisha reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Every one of the children of Adam has been created with three hundred and sixty joints; so he who declares the Glory of Allah, praises Allah, declares Allah to be One, Glorifies Allah, and seeks forgiveness from Allah, and removes stone, or thorn, or bone from people's path, and enjoins what is good and forbids from evil, to the number of those three hundred and sixty-four, will walk that day having removed himself from Hell. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2200. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning one who spends and who withholds. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Zaid with the same chain of transmitters except with (a slight) change of words (i.e. he [the Holy Prophet]) said: Or he enjoined what is good,... and said: He enters the evening [i.e. he walks till evening]. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2201. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning one who spends and who withholds. This hadith has been narrated by 'Aisha through another chain of transmitters in which she reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: "Every man is created"; the rest of the hadith is the same and he said: "He walks on that day." Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2202. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning one who spends and who withholds. Sa'id b. Abu Burda reported on the authority of his grandfather that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Giving of Sadaqa is essential for every Muslim. It was said (to him): What do you say of him who does not find (the means) to do so? He said: Let him work with both his hands, thus doing benefit to himself and give Sadaqa. It was said to him: What about him who does not have (the means) to do so? He said: Then let him assist the needy, the aggrieved. It was said: What do you say of one who cannot even do this? He said: Then he should enjoin what is reputable or what is good. He said: What about him if he cannot do that? He (the Holy Prophet) said: He should then abstain from evil, for verify that is Sadaqa on his behalf. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2203. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning one who spends and who withholds. This hadith has been narrated by Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2204. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning one who spends and who withholds. Hammam b. Munabbih reported that-this is out of (those ahadith) which Abu Huraira narrated to us from Muhammad, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). And he while making a mention of ahadith reported from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said this: Sadaqa is due on every joint of a person, every day the sun rises. Administering of justice between two men is also a Sadaqa. And assisting a man to ride upon his beast, or helping him load his luggage upon it, is a Sadaqa; and a good word is a Sadaqa; and every step that you take towards prayer is a Sadaqa, and removing of harmful things from the pathway is a Sadaqa. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2205. ------------------------------ Chapter : Acceptance of Sadaqa by honest work and its growth. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There is never a day wherein servants (of God) get up at morn, but are not visited by two angels. One of them says: O Allah, give him more who spends (for the sake of Allah), and the other says: O Allah, bring destruction to one who withholds. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2206. ------------------------------ Chapter : Acceptance of Sadaqa by honest work and its growth. Haritha b. Wahb reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Give Sadaqa for a time is about to come when a person would walk with alms and the one whom it is to be given would say: Had you brought it yesterday, I would have accepted it. For the present I do not need it. (And the giver of Sadaqa) I would not find anyone to accept it. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2207. ------------------------------ Chapter : Acceptance of Sadaqa by honest work and its growth. Abu Musa reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There would come a time for the people when a person would roam about with Sadaqa of gold, but he would find no one to accept it from him. And a man would be seen followed by forty women seeking refuge with him on account of the scarcity of males and abundance of females." Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2208. ------------------------------ Chapter : Acceptance of Sadaqa by honest work and its growth. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) as saying: The Last Hour will not come before wealth becomes abundant and overflowing, so much so that a man takes Zakat out of his property and cannot find anyone to accept it from him and till the land of Arabia becomes meadows and rivers. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2209. ------------------------------ Chapter : Acceptance of Sadaqa by honest work and its growth. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Last Hour will not come till wealth is abundant and overflowing, so much so that the owner of the property will think as to who will accept Sadaqa from him, and a person would be called to accept Sadaqa and he would say: I do not need it. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2210. ------------------------------ Chapter : Acceptance of Sadaqa by honest work and its growth. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The earth will vomit long pieces of its liver like columns of gold and silver, and the murderer will come and say: It was for this that I committed murder. The breaker of family ties will come and say: It was for this that I broke the family ties; and the thief will come and say: It is for this that my hands were cut off. They will then leave it and will not take anything out of it. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2211. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to Sadaqa even though it is half a date, or a good word. for they are protection against fire. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (tray peace be upon him) as saying: If anyone gives as Sadaqa the equivalent of a date from that (earning) earned honestly, for Allah accepts that which is lawful, the Lord would accept it with His Right Hand, and even if it is a date, it would foster in the Hand of the lord, as one of you fosters his colt, till it becomes bigger than a mountain. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2212. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to Sadaqa even though it is half a date, or a good word. for they are protection against fire. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: No one gives Sadaqa of a date out of his honest earning, but Allah accepts it with His Right Hand, and then fosters it as one of you fosters the colt or a young she-camel, till it becomes like a mountain or even greater. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2213. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to Sadaqa even though it is half a date, or a good word. for they are protection against fire. This hadith has been narrated through another chain of transmitters with a change of words. In the hadith transmitted Rauh (the words are): "Out of the honest earning and its spending at what is its (due) right"; and in the hadith transmitted by Sulaiman (the words are): "And its spending at its proper place." Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2214. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to Sadaqa even though it is half a date, or a good word. for they are protection against fire. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: O people, Allah is Good and He therefore, accepts only that which is good. And Allah commanded the believers as He commanded the Messengers by saying: "O Messengers, eat of the good things, and do good deeds; verily I am aware of what you do" (xxiii. 51). And He said: 'O those who believe, eat of the good things that We gave you" (ii. 172) He then made a mention of a person who travels widely, his hair dishevelled and covered with dust. He lifts his hand towards the sky (and thus makes the supplication): "O Lord, O Lord," whereas his diet is unlawful, his drink is unlawful, and his clothes are unlawful and his nourishment is unlawful. How can then his supplication be accepted? Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2215. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Labourer should give charity out of his wages and it is severely forbidden to belittle one who contributes less. 'Adi b. Hatim reported that he heard Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) as saying: He who among you can protect himself against Fire, he should do so, even if it should be with half a date. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2216. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Labourer should give charity out of his wages and it is severely forbidden to belittle one who contributes less. 'Adi b. Hatim reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Allah will speak with everyone amongst you without any interpreter between them. He (the man) would see towards his right and would not find anything but (the deeds) which he had done before, and he would see towards the left and would not find anything but (the deeds) which he had done before. He would see in front of him and would find nothing but Fire just before his face. So protect (yourselves) against Fire even if it is with the help of half a date. A hadith like this has been transmitted by Khaithama and addition has been made in this of (these words); "Even if it is with a good word." Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2217. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Labourer should give charity out of his wages and it is severely forbidden to belittle one who contributes less. 'Adi b. Hatim reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) made a mention of Fire. He turned his face aside and diverted his attention and then said: Guard (yourselves) against Fire. He turned his face and diverted his attention till we thought as if he were (actually seeing it and then said: Protect yourselves against Fire even if it is with half a date, and he who does not find it, (he should do so) with pleasant words. Abu Kuraib did not mention the word: (as if). Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2218. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Labourer should give charity out of his wages and it is severely forbidden to belittle one who contributes less. Adi b. Hatim reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) made a mention of the Fire and sought refuge (with Allah against it). He turned aside his face three times and then said: Protect yourselves against Fire even if with half a date. But if you fail to find it (then protect yourselves against Fire) with the help of a pleasant word). Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2219. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Labourer should give charity out of his wages and it is severely forbidden to belittle one who contributes less. Mundhir b. Jarir reported on the authority of his father: While we were in the company of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) in the early hours of the morning, some people came there (who) were barefooted, naked, wearing striped woollen clothes, or cloaks, with their swords hung (around their necks). Most of them, nay, all of them, belonged to the tribe of Mudar. The colour of the face of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) underwent a change when he saw them in poverty. He then entered (his house) and came out and commanded Bilal (to pronounce Adhan). He pronounced Adhan and Iqima, and he (the Holy Prophet) observed prayer (along with his Companion) and then addressed (them reciting verses of the Holy Qur'an): '"O people, fear your Lord, Who created you from a single being" to the end of the verse, "Allah is ever a Watcher over you" (iv. 1). (He then recited) a verse of Sura Hashr: "Fear Allah. and let every soul consider that which it sends forth for the morrow and fear Allah" (lix. 18). (Then the audience began to vie with one another in giving charity.) Some donated a dinar, others a dirham, still others clothes, some donated a sa' of wheat, some a sa' of dates; till he (the Holy Prophet) said: (Bring) even if it is half a date. Then a person from among the Ansar came there with a money bag which his hands could scarcely lift; in fact, they could not (lift). Then the people followed continuously, till I saw two heaps of eatables and clothes, and I saw the face of the Messenger (may peace be upon him) glistening, like gold (on account of joy). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who sets a good precedent in Islam, there is a reward for him for this (act of goodness) and reward of that also who acted according to it subsequently, without any deduction from their rewards; and he who sets in Islam an evil precedent, there is upon him the burden of that, and the burden of him also who acted upon it subsequently, without any deduction from their burden. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2220. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Labourer should give charity out of his wages and it is severely forbidden to belittle one who contributes less. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Mandhir through another chain of transmitters. And the hadith transmitted by Ibn Mu'adh contains an addition: "He then observed the noon prayer and then gave the sermon." Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2221. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Labourer should give charity out of his wages and it is severely forbidden to belittle one who contributes less. Mundhir b. Jarir narrated on the authority of his father: When we were sitting in the company of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him). There came people dressed in striped woollen clothes, and the rest of the hadith in the same, and there (it is also mentioned): "He observed the Zuhr prayer and then climbed up a small pulpit, praised Allah, lauded Him, and then said: Verily Allah in His Muslim Book has revealed: 'O people, fear your Lord,' etc." (iv. 1). Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2222. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Labourer should give charity out of his wages and it is severely forbidden to belittle one who contributes less. Jarir b. 'Abdullah reported: People came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and they ware dressed in woollen clothes. He (the Holy Prophet) saw their dismal state, as they were suffering from want and the rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2223. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of giving a gift. Abu Mas'ud reported: We were commanded to give charity (despite the fact.) that we were coolies. Abu 'Aqil donated half a sa'. And there came another man with more than this. The hypocrites said: Verily Allah does not stand in need of the charity of this, and the second one has done nothing but only made a show (of his charity). Then this verse was revealed. "Those who scoff at the voluntary givers of charity among the believers as well as those who cannot find anything (to give) but with their hard labour"(ix. 80). And Bishr did not utter the word Muttawwi'in. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2224. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of giving a gift. This hadith has been narrated by Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters and in the hadith transmitted by Sa'id b. al Rabi (the words are): "We used to carry loads on our backs." Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2225. ------------------------------ Chapter : The likeness of one who spends (in the path of Allah) and one who withholds. It is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira (that the Messenger of Allah) said: Of course the person who gives to the family a she-camel as a gift, which gives milk morning and evening equal to a large bowl, its reward (the reward of the gift) is great. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2226. ------------------------------ Chapter : The likeness of one who spends (in the path of Allah) and one who withholds. Abu Huraira reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) forbade (to do certain things) and then he made a mention of certain habits and said: He who gives a she-camel as a gift, for him is the reward (of the gift) both morning and evening-a reward for drinking milk in the morning and a reward for drinking milk in the evening. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2227. ------------------------------ Chapter : Proof of reward for the giver of charity even if it goes into the hands of and undeserving person. Abu Haraira reported that the likeness of one who spends or one who gives charity is that of a person who has two cloaks or two coats-of-mail over him right from the breast to the collar bones. And when the spender (and the other narrator said, when the giver of charity) makes up his mind to give charity, it (coat-mail) becomes expanded for him. But when a miserly person intends to spend, it contracts and every ring grips the place where it is. For the giver of charity, this coat-of-mail expands to cover his whole body and obliterates even his footprints. Abu Huraira said: (The miserly man) tries to expand it (the coat-of-mail) but it does not expand. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2228. ------------------------------ Chapter : Proof of reward for the giver of charity even if it goes into the hands of and undeserving person. Abu Haraira reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) gave similitude's of a miserly man and the giver of charity as two persons who have two coats-of-mail over them with their hands pressed closely to their breasts and their collar bones. Whenever the giver of charity gives charity it (the coat-of mail) expands so much as to cover his finger tips and obliterate his foot prints. And whenever the miserly person intends to give charity (the coat-of-mail) contracts and every ring grips the place where it is. He (Abu Huraira) said: I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saying with fingers in the opening of his shirt: "If you had seen him trying to expand it, it will not expand." Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2229. ------------------------------ Chapter : Proof of reward for the giver of charity even if it goes into the hands of and undeserving person. Abu Haraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as-saying:. The similitude of a miserly man and the giver of charity is that of two persons with coats-of-mail over them; when the giver of charity intends to give charity, it expands over him (to much so) that the footprints are also obliterated. And when the miserly man intends to give charity, it contracts over him, and his hands are tied up to his collar bone, and every ring is fixed up to another. He (the narrator) said: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: He would try to expand it, but he would not be able to do so. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2230. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reward for an honest trustee and for the woman as she gives charity from the household of her husband. either with his explicit sanction or as it is Customary. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: A man expressed his intention to give charity, so he came out with charity and placed it in the hand of an adulteress. In the morning, the people were talking and saying: charity was given to an adulteress last night. He (the giver of Sadaqa) said: O Allah, to Thee be the praise-to an adulteress. He then again expressed his intention to give charity; so he went out with the charity and placed it in the hand of a rich person. In the morning the people were talking and saying: Charity was given to a rich person. He (the giver of charity) said: O Allah, to Thee be the praise to a well to do person. He then expressed his intention to give charity, so he went out with charity and placed it in the hand of a thief. In the morning, the people were talking and saying: Charity was given to a thief. So (one of the persons) said: O Allah, to Thee be the praise (what a misfortune it is that charity has been given to) the adulteress, to a rich person, to a thief! There came (the angel to him) and he was told: Your charity has been accepted. As for the adulteress (the charity might become the means) whereby she might restrain herself from fornication. The rich man might perhaps learn a lesson and spend from what Allah has given him, and the thief might thereby refrain from committing theft. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2231. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the collection of Sadaqa and doing of good deeds. Abu Musa reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: The honest Muslim trustee who spends (sometimes he said "who gives") what he is commanded to do and he gives that in full with his heart overflowing with cheerfulness and he gives it to one to whom he is ordered, he is one of the givers of charity. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2232. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the collection of Sadaqa and doing of good deeds. 'Aisha reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When a woman gives in charity some of the food in her house, without causing any damage, there is reward for her for whatever she has given, and a reward for her husband for what he earned. The same applies to the trustee. In no respect does the one diminish the reward of the other. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2233. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the collection of Sadaqa and doing of good deeds. This hadith has been narrated by Mansur with the same chain of transmitters (with this alteration of words): "from the food of her husband". Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2234. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the collection of Sadaqa and doing of good deeds. 'Aisha reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When a woman spends (something as Sadaqa) out of the household of her husband without causing any damage, there is a reward for her and for him too like it for whatever he earned, and for her (for the wife) because of her spending (for the sake of Allah), and for the trustee also (there is a reward like it), without any reduction from their rewards. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2235. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the collection of Sadaqa and doing of good deeds. This hadith has been narrated by A'mash with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2236. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the collection of Sadaqa and doing of good deeds. Umair, the freed slave of Abi'l-Lahm reported: I was the slave (of Abi'l-Lahm). I asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) if I could give some charity out of my master's wealth. He said: Yes, and the reward is half and half between you two. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2237. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the collection of Sadaqa and doing of good deeds. 'Umair, the freed slave of Abi'l-Lahm, said: My master commanded me to cut some meat in strips; (as I was doing it) a poor man came to me and I gave him some of it to eat. My master came to know of that, and he beat me. I came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and narrated it to him. He (the Holy Prophet) summoned him and said: Why did you beat him? He (Abi'l-Lahm) said: He gives away my food without being commanded to do so. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) said: The reward would be shared by you two. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2238. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the collection of Sadaqa and doing of good deeds. Hammam b. Munabbih said: These are some of the a hadith of Muhammad. the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), transmitted to us on the authority of Abu Huraira. So he narrated one hadith out of them (as this): The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: No woman should observe fast when her spouse is present (in the house) but with his permission. And she should not admit any (mahram) in his house, while he (her husband) is present, but with his permission. And whatever she spends from his earnings without his sanction, for him is half the reward. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2239. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to spend (for the sake of Allah) and disapproval of calculating (the articles of charity). Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) assaying: If anyone contributes a pair of anything for the sake of Allah, he would be invited to enter Paradise (with these words): O servant of Allah, it is good (for you). These who engage in prayer will he invited to enter by the gate of prayer; those who take part in Jihad will be Invited to enter by the gate of Jihad; those who give charity will be invited to enter by the gate of charity; and those who observe fast will be invited to enter by the gate Ar-Rayyan. Abu Bakr Siddiq said: Messenger of Allah, is it necessary that a person be invited through one of these gates? Will anyone he invited to enter by all those gates? The Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) said: Yes, and I hope you will be one of them. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2240. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to spend (for the sake of Allah) and disapproval of calculating (the articles of charity). This hadith has been narrated by Zuhri through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2241. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to spend (for the sake of Allah) and disapproval of calculating (the articles of charity). Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who spent pairs for the sake of Allah, the guardians of Paradise would call him, (in fact) every guardian of the door (of Paradise would welcome him saying): O, so and so, come on. Upon this Abu Bakr said: Messenger of Allah, (it means) there would be no distress on this person. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I hope you would be among them. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2242. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to spend (for the sake of Allah) and disapproval of calculating (the articles of charity). Abu Huraira reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Who has observed fast among you today? Abu Bakr (Allah be pleased with him) replied: It is I. He (the Holy Prophet again) said: Who among you followed the bier today? Abu Bakr (Allah be pleased with him) replied: It is I. He (the Holy Prophet again) said: Who among you led a poor man today? Abu Bakr (Allah he pleased with him) replied: It is I. He (again) said: Who among you visited an invalid today? Abu Bakr (Allah be pleased with him) said: It is I. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Anyone in whom (these good deeds) are combined will certainly, enter paradise. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2243. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to give charity even though it is small; (the one who gives) small amount should neither be discouraged not looked down upon. Asma', daughter of Abu Bakr (Allah be pleated with him), reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to me: Spend, and do not calculate, or otherwise Allah would also calculate in your case. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2244. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to give charity even though it is small; (the one who gives) small amount should neither be discouraged not looked down upon. Asma' reported Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) as saying (to her): Spend and do not calculate, (for) Allah would calculate in your case; and do not hoard, otherwise Allah would be withholding from you. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2245. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to give charity even though it is small; (the one who gives) small amount should neither be discouraged not looked down upon. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Asma' through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2246. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to give charity even though it is small; (the one who gives) small amount should neither be discouraged not looked down upon. Asma', daughter of Abu Bakr, reported that abe came to the Apostle of Allah (may peace he upon him) and said: Apostle of Allah, I have nothing with me, but only, that which is given to me by Zubair (for household expenses). Is there any sin for me if I spend out of that which is given to me (by Zabair)? Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) said: Spend according to your means; and do not hoard, for Allah will withhold from you. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2247. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of giving Sadaqa secretly. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: O Muslim women, none of you should consider even a sheep's trotter too insignificant to give to her neighbour. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2248. ------------------------------ Chapter : The most excellent Sadaqa is that which is given when one is healthy. Abu Huraira reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said: Seven are (the persons) whom Allah would give protection with His Shade on the Day when there would be no shade but that of Him (i.e. on the Day of Judgment, and they are): a just ruler, a youth who grew up with the worship of Allah; a person whose heart is attached to the mosques; two persons who love and meet each other and depart from each other for the sake of Allah; a man whom a beautiful woman of high rank seduces (for illicit relation), but he (rejects this offer by saying): "I fear Allah" ; a person who gives charity and conceals it (to such an extent) that the right hand does not know what the left has given: and a person who remembered Allah in privacy and his eyes shed tears. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2249. ------------------------------ Chapter : The most excellent Sadaqa is that which is given when one is healthy. This hadith has been narrated, on the authority, of Abu Huraira (with this change of words). "A person whose heart is attached to the mosque when he goes out of it till he returns to it." Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2250. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the statement that the upper hand is better than the lower hand, and the upper hand is that which gives and the lower one is that which receives. Abu Huraira reported that there came a person to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: Messenger of Allah, which charity is the best? Upon this he said: That you should give charity (in a state when you are) healthy and close-fisted, one haunted by the fear of poverty, hoping to become rich (charity in such a state of health and mind is the best). And you must not defer (charity to such a length) that you are about to die and would he saying: This is for so and so, and this is for so and so. Lo, it has already come into (the possession of so and so). Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2251. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the statement that the upper hand is better than the lower hand, and the upper hand is that which gives and the lower one is that which receives. Abu Huraira reported that a person came to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: Messenger of Allah, which charity is the greatest in reward? (The Holy Prophet said): By your father, beware, you should give charity (in a state when you are) healthy and close-fisted, haunted by the fear of poverty, and still hoping to live (as rich). And you must not defer charity (to the time) when you are about to die, and would then say: "This is for so and so, and this for so and so." It has already become the possession of so and so. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2252. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the statement that the upper hand is better than the lower hand, and the upper hand is that which gives and the lower one is that which receives. This hadith has been narrated with the same chain of transmitters except with this change (of words): "Which charity is most excellent?" Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2253. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to beg. Abdullah b. Umar reported that as Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) was sitting on the pulpit and talking about Sadaqa and abstention from begging, he said: The upper hand is better than the lower one, the upper being the one which bestows and the lower one which begs. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2254. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to beg. Hakim b. Hizam reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) having said this: The most excellent Sadaqa or the best of Sadaqa is that after giving which the (giver) remains rich and the upper hand is better than the lower hand, and begin from the members of your household. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2255. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to beg. Hakim b. Hizam reported: I begged the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), and he gave me. I again begged, he again gave me. I again begged, he again gave me, and then said: This property is green and sweet; he who receives it with a cheerful heart is blessed in it, and he who receives it with an avaricious mind would not be blessed in it, he being like one who eats without being satisfied, and the upper hand is better than the lower hand. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2256. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to beg. Abu Umama reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: O son of Adam, it is better for you if you spend your surplus (wealth), but if you withhold it, it is evil for you. There is (however) no reproach for you (if you withhold means necessary) for a living. And begin (charity) with your dependants; and the upper hand is better than the lower hand. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2257. ------------------------------ Chapter : Miskin (poor man) is one who does not find enough to satisfy him and the people do not consider him(needy) as to give him charity. Mu'awiya said: Be cautious about ahadith except those which were current during the reign of Umar, for he exhorted people to fear Allah, the Exalted and majestic. I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: He upon whom Allah intends to bestow goodness, He confers upon him an insight in religion; and I heard the Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) as saying: I am the treasurer. To one whom I give out of (my own) sweet will, he would be blessed in that, but he whom I give (yielding to his constant begging and for his covetousness is like one who would eat, but would not be satisfied. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2258. ------------------------------ Chapter : Miskin (poor man) is one who does not find enough to satisfy him and the people do not consider him(needy) as to give him charity. Mu'awiya reported Allah's Messenger (may prom be upon him) as saying: Do not beg importunately, for, I swear by Allah, none of you who asks me for anything and manages to get what he asks for when I disapprove td it will he be blessed in that which I give him. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2259. ------------------------------ Chapter : Miskin (poor man) is one who does not find enough to satisfy him and the people do not consider him(needy) as to give him charity. 'Amr b. Dinar reported from Wahb b. Munabbih: I went to his house in San'a' and he offered me nuts grown in his house to eat. And his brother said: I heard Mu'awiya b. Abu Sufyan saying that he had heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying, and then he made a mention (of a hadith) like one mentioned above. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2260. ------------------------------ Chapter : Miskin (poor man) is one who does not find enough to satisfy him and the people do not consider him(needy) as to give him charity. Abd Al-Rahman b. Auf reported: I heard Mu'awiya b. Abu Sufyan saying in an address that he had heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: He to whom Allah intends to do good, He gives him insight into religion. And I am only the distributor while Allah is the Bestower. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2261. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of begging from people. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The poor man (miskin) is not the one who goes round to the people and is dismissed with one or two morsels and one or two dates. They (the Prophet's Companions) said: Messenger of Allah, then who is miskin? He said: He who does not get enough to satisfy him, and he is not considered so (as to elicit the attention of the benevolent people), so that charity way be given to him and he does not beg anything from people. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2262. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of begging from people. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Miskin is not he who is dismissed with one or two dates, and with one morsel or two morsels. (In fact) miskin is he who abstains (from begging). Read if you so desire (the verse): "They beg not of men importunately)" (ii. 273). This hadith has been narrated through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2263. ------------------------------ Chapter : One for whom begging is permissible. Hamza, son of 'Abdullah, reported on the authority of his father that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When a man is always begging from people, he would meet Allah (in a state) that there would be no flesh on his face. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2264. ------------------------------ Chapter : One for whom begging is permissible. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of the brother of Zuhri with the same chain of transmitters, but no mention has been made of the word "muz'a" (piece). Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2265. ------------------------------ Chapter : One for whom begging is permissible. Hamza b. 'Abdullah b. Umar heard his father cay that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said: The person would continue begging from people till he would come on the Day of Resurrection and there would be no flesh on his face. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2266. ------------------------------ Chapter : One for whom begging is permissible. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who begs the riches of others to increase his own is asking only for live coals, so let him ask a little or much. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2267. ------------------------------ Chapter : One for whom begging is permissible. Abu Huraira is reported to have heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: It is letter for one among you to bring a load of firewood on his back and give charity out of it (and satisfy his own need) and be independent of people, than that he should beg from people, whether they give him anything or refuse him. Verily the upper hand is better than the lower hand, and begin (charity) with your dependants. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2268. ------------------------------ Chapter : One for whom begging is permissible. Qais b. Abu Hizam reported: We came to Abu Huraira and he told Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) having said this: By Allah, (it is better) that one among you should go and bring a load of firewood on his back and he should sell it, and the rest of the hadith was narrated (like the previous one). Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2269. ------------------------------ Chapter : One for whom begging is permissible. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: It is better for any one of you to tie a bundle of firewood and carry it on his back and sell it than to beg a person, he may give or may refuse. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2270. ------------------------------ Chapter : One for whom begging is permissible. Malik Al-Ashja'i reported: We, nine, eight or seven men, were in the company of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he said: Why don't you pledge allegiance to the Messenger of Allah?-while we had recently pledged allegiance. So we said: Messenger of Allah, we have already pledged allegiance to you. He again said: Why don't you pledge allegiance to the Messenger of Allah? And we said: Messenger of Allah, we have already pledged allegiance to you. He again said: Why don't you pledge allegiance to the Messenger of Allah? We stretched our hands and said: Messenger of Allah, we have already pledged allegiance to you. Now tell (on what things) should we pledge allegiance to you. He said I (You must pledge allegiance) that you would worship Allah only and would not associate with Him anything, (and observe) five prayers, and obey-(and he said one thing in an undertone)-that you would not beg people of anything. (And as a consequence of that) I saw that some of these people did not ask anyone to pick up the whip for them if it fell down. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2271. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility to accept what is given without begging, or without being avaricious. Qabisa b. Mukhariq al-Hilali said: I was under debt and I came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and begged from him regarding it. He said: Wait till we receive Sadaqa, so that we order that to be given to you. He again said: Qabisa, begging is not permissible but for one of the three (classes) of persons: one who has incurred debt, for him begging is permissible till he pays that off, after which he must stop it; a man whose property has been destroyed by a calamity which has smitten him, for him begging is permissible till he gets what will support life, or will provide him reasonable subsistence; and a person who has been smitten by poverty, the genuineness of which is confirmed by three intelligent members of this peoples for him begging is permissible till he gets what will support him, or will provide him subsistence. Qabisa, besides these three (every other reason) for begging is forbidden, and one who engages in such consumes that what is forbidden. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2272. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of the longing for the (possessions of the material) world. Salim b. Abdullah b. 'Umar reported on the authority of his father ('Abdullah b. 'Umar) that he had heard 'Umar b. Khattab (Allah be pleased with him) saying: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) gave me a gift, but I said: Give it to one who needs it more than I. He gave me wealth for the second time but I said: Give it to one who needs it more than I. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Take out of this wealth which comes to you without your being avaricious and without begging, but in other circumstance's do not let your heart hanker after it. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2273. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of the longing for the (possessions of the material) world. Salim b. 'Abdullah reported on the authority of his father that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) gave to 'Umar b. Khattab some gift. Umar said to him: Messenger of Allah, give it to one who needs it more than I. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Take it; either keep it with you or give it as a charity, and whatever comes to you in the form of this type of wealth, without your being avaricious or begging for it, accept it, but in other circumstances do not let your heart hanker after it. And it was on account of this that Ibn 'Umar never begged anything from anyone, nor refused anything given to him. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2274. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of the longing for the (possessions of the material) world. This hadith has been narrated by Abdullah b. al-Sa'di from 'Umar b. al-Khattab who heard it from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2275. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of the longing for the (possessions of the material) world. Ibn al-Sa'di Maliki reported: 'Umar b. Khattab (Allah be pleased with him) appointed me as a collector of Sadaqa. When I had finished that (the task assigned to me) and I handed over that to him (to 'Umar), he commanded me to (accept) some remuneration (for the work). I said: I performed this duty for Allah and my reward is with Allah. He said: Take whatever has been given to you, for I also performed this duty during the time of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). He assigned me the task of a collector and I said as you say, and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to me: When you are given anything without your begging for it, (then accept it), eat it and give it in charity. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2276. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of the longing for the (possessions of the material) world. Ibn al-Sa'di reported: 'Umar b. Khattab (Allah be pleased with him) appointed me as a collector of Sadaqat. The rest of the hadith in the same. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2277. ------------------------------ Chapter : If there were two valleys (of gold for the son, of Adam, he would long for the third one. Abu Huraira reported from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as having said this: The heart of an old person feels young for the love of two things: love for long life and wealth. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2278. ------------------------------ Chapter : If there were two valleys (of gold for the son, of Adam, he would long for the third one. Abu Huraira reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said this: The heart of an old person is young for two things: for long life and love for wealth. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2279. ------------------------------ Chapter : If there were two valleys (of gold for the son, of Adam, he would long for the third one. Anas reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The son of Adam grows old, but two (desires) in him remain young: desire for wealth and desire for life. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2280. ------------------------------ Chapter : If there were two valleys (of gold for the son, of Adam, he would long for the third one. A hadith like this has been narrated by Anas through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2281. ------------------------------ Chapter : If there were two valleys (of gold for the son, of Adam, he would long for the third one. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Anas through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2282. ------------------------------ Chapter : one is not rich because of the abundance of goods. Anas reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: If the son of Adam were to possess two valleys of riches, he would long for the third one. And the stomach of the son of Adam is not filled but with dust. And Allah returns to him who repents. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2283. ------------------------------ Chapter : one is not rich because of the abundance of goods. Anas b. Malik reported: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying this, but I do not know whether this thing was revealed to him or not, but he said to. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2284. ------------------------------ Chapter : one is not rich because of the abundance of goods. Anas b. Malik reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: If there were two valleys of gold for the son of Adam, he would long for another one and his mouth will not be filled but with dust, and Allah returns to him who repents. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2285. ------------------------------ Chapter : one is not rich because of the abundance of goods. Ibn Abbas reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: If there were for the son of Adam a valley full of riches, he would long to possess another one like it, and Ibn Adam does not feel satiated but with dust. (14:13) And Allah returns to him who returns (to him). (14:14) Ibn Abbas said: I do not know whether it is from the Qur'an or not; and in the narration transmitted by Zuhair it was said: I do not know whether it is from the Qur'an, and he made no mention of Ibn Abbas. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2286. ------------------------------ Chapter : one is not rich because of the abundance of goods. Abu Harb b. Abu al-Aswad reported on the authority of his father that Abu Musa al-Ash'ari sent for the reciters of Basra. They came to him and they were three hundred in number. They recited the Qur'an and he said: You are the best among the inhabitants of Basra, for you are the reciters among them. So continue to recite it. (But bear in mind) that your reciting for a long time may not harden your hearts as were hardened the hearts of those before you. We used to recite a surah which resembled in length and severity to (Surah) Bara'at. I have, however, forgotten it with the exception of this which I remember out of it: "If there were two valleys full of riches, for the son of Adam, he would long for a third valley, and nothing would fill the stomach of the son of Adam but dust." And we used so recite a surah which resembled one of the surahs of Musabbihat, and I have forgotten it, but remember (this much) out of it: "Oh people who believe, why do you say that which you do not practise" (lxi 2.) and "that is recorded in your necks as a witness (against you) and you would be asked about it on the Day of Resurrection" (xvii. 13). Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2287. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fear of what would come out of the adornment of the world. Abu Huraira reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said: Richness does not lie in the abundance of (worldly) goods but richness is the richness of the soul (heart, self). Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2288. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of abstaining from begging and that of endurance. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) stood up and addressed the people thus: O people, by Allah, I do not entertain fear about you in regard to anything else than that which Allah would bring forth for you in the form of adornment of the world. A person said: Messenger of Allah, does good produce evil? The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) remained silent for a while and he then said: What did you say? He replied: Messenger of Allah, I said: Does good produce evil? The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him)said to him: The good does not produce but good. but among the plants the spring rain produces There some which kill with a tremor or nearly kill all but the animal which feeds on vegetation. It eats and when its flanks are distended, it faces the can, then when it has donged or urinated and chewed it returns and eats. He who accepts wealth rightly, Allah confers blessing on it for him and he who takes wealth without any right, he is like one who eats and is not satisfied. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2289. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of abstaining from begging and that of endurance. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said: The most dreadful thing I fear in your case is what Allah brings forth for you in the form of the adornment of the world. They (the Prophet's Companions) said: Messenger of Allah, what is the adornment of the world? He said: Blessings (the natural resources) of the earth. They (again) said: Messenger of Allah, does good produce evil? He said: No, only good comes out of good. No, only good comes out of good. No. only good comes out of good. All that which the spring rain helps to grow kills or is about to kill but (the animal) which feeds on vegetation. It eats and when its flanks are distended, it faces the sun, it chews the cud, it has dunged and urinated, it returns and eats. This wealth is green and sweet, and he who accepts it and applies it rightly, finds it a good help, but he who takes it wrongfully is like one who eats without being satisfied. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2290. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of abstaining from begging and that of endurance. Abu Said al-Khudri reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was sitting on the pulpit and we were sitting around him, and he said: What I am afraid of in regard to you after my death is that there would be opened for you the adornments of the world and its beauties. A person said: Messenger of Allah, does good produce evil? The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) remained silent. And it was said to him (the man who had asked the question from the Holy Prophet): What Is the matter with you, that you speak with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) but he does not speak with you? We thought as if revelation was descending upon him. He regained himself and wiped the sweat from him and said: He was the inquirer (and his style of expression showed as if he praised him and then added): Verily good does not produce evil. Whatever the spring rainfall causes to grow kills or is about to kill, but that (animal) which feeds on vegetation. It eats till its flanks are filled ; it faces the sun and dungs and urinates and then returns to eat. And this Wealth is a sweet vegetation, and it is a good companion for a Muslim who gives out of it to the needy, to the orphan, to the wayfarer, or something like that as the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who takes it without his right is like one who eats but does not feel satisfied, and it would stand witness against him on the Day of judgment. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2291. ------------------------------ Chapter : Giving charity to one who begged importunately or with uncivility. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported that some people from among the Ansar begged from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he gave them. They again begged him and he again gave them, till when what was in his possession was exhausted he said: Whatever good (riches, goods) I have, I will not withhold it from you. He who refrains from begging Allah safeguards him against want and he who seeks sufficiency, Allah would keep him in a state of sufficiency, and he who shows endurance. Allah would grant him power to endure, and none is blessed with an endowment better and greater than endurance. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2292. ------------------------------ Chapter : Giving charity to one who begged importunately or with uncivility. This hadith has been narrated by Zuhri with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2293. ------------------------------ Chapter : Giving charity to one who begged importunately or with uncivility. 'Amr b. al-'As reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He Is successful who has accepted Islam, who has been provided with sufficient for his want and been made contented by Allah with what He has given him. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2294. ------------------------------ Chapter : Giving charity to one who begged importunately or with uncivility. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: O Allah, make the provision of Muhammad's family sufficient just to sustain life. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2295. ------------------------------ Chapter : Bestowal upon one who is firm in faith. Umar b. Khattab (Allah be pleased with him) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) distributed something. Upon this I said: Messenger of Allah, I swear by God, the others besides them were more deserving than these (to whom you gave charity). He said: They had in fact left no other alternative for me, but (that they should) either beg importunately from me or they would regard me as a miser, but I am not a miser. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2296. ------------------------------ Chapter : Bestowal upon one who is firm in faith. Anas b. Malik reported: I was walking with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he had put on a mantle of Najran with a thick border. A bedouin met him and pulled the mantle so violently that I saw this violent pulling leaving marks of the border of the mantle on the skin of the neck of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). And he (the bedouin) said: Muhammad, issue command that I should be given out of the wealth of Allah which is at your disposal. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) turned his attention to him and smiled, and then ordered for him a gift (provision). Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2297. ------------------------------ Chapter : Bestowal upon one who is firm in faith. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Anas b. Malik through another chain of transmitters. And In the hadith transmitted by Ikrima b. 'Ammir there is an addition: "He (the bedouin) pulled his (mantle) so violently that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) was drifted very close to the bedouin." And in the hadith transmitted by Hammam, (the words are): "He pulled it so violently that the mantle was torn and the border was left around the neck of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him)." Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2298. ------------------------------ Chapter : Bestowal upon one who is firm in faith. Miswar b. Makhrama reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) distributed some cloaks but did not bestow one upon Makhrama. Upon this Makhrama said: O my son, come along with me to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). So I went with him. He said: Enter the house and call him (to come out) for me. So I called him and he (the Holy Prophet) came out, and there was a cloak (from those already distributed) on him. He (the Holy Prophet) said: I had kept it for you. He (Makhrama), looked at it and was pleased. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2299. ------------------------------ Chapter : Bestowal upon one who is firm in faith. Miswar b. Makhrama reported: Some cloaks were presented to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). My father Makhrama said to me: Come along with me to him; perhaps we may be able to get anything out of that (stock of cloaks). My father stood at the door and began to talk. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) recognised him by his voice and came out and there was a cloak with him, and he was showing its beauties and saying: I kept it for you, I kept it for you. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2300. ------------------------------ Chapter : Bestowal upon those who are made to incline (to truth). Sa'd reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) bestowed (some gifts) upon a group of people and I was sitting amongst them. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), however, left a person and he did not give him anything and he seemed to me the most excellent among them (and thus deserved the gifts more than anyone else). So I stood up before the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said to him in undertone: Messenger of Allah, what about so and so? By Allah, I find him a believer. He (the Messenger of Allah) said: He may be a Muslim. I kept quiet for a short while, and then what I knew of him urged me (to plead his case again) and I said: Messenger of Allah, what about so and so? By Allah, I find him a believer. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) said: He maybe a Muslim. I again remained quiet for a short while, and what I knew of him again urged me (to plead his case so I) said: Messenger of Allah, what about so and so? By Allah, I find him a believer. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) said: He may be a Muslim. I often bestow (something) upon a person, whereas someone else is dearer to me than he, because of the fear that he may fall headling into the fire. And in the hadith transmitted by Hulwani this statement was repeated twice. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2301. ------------------------------ Chapter : Bestowal upon those who are made to incline (to truth). This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Zuhri with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2302. ------------------------------ Chapter : Bestowal upon those who are made to incline (to truth). This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Muhammad b. Sa'd through another chain of transmitters (and the words are): "The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) struck between my neck and shoulder with his hand and said: Do you wrangle, O Sa'd, because I bestow (some gifts) upon a person?" Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2303. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Khwarij and their characteristics. Anas b. Malik reported that when on the Day of Hunain Allah conferred upon His Apostle (may peace be upon him) the riches of Hawazin (without armed encounter), the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) set about distributing to some persons of Quraish one hundred camels Upon this they (the young people from the Ansar) said: May Allah grant pardon to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) that he bestowed (these camels) upon the people of Quraish, and he ignored us, whereas our swords are still dripping blood. Anas b. Malik said: Their statement was conveyed to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he sent (someone) to the Ansar and gathered them under a tent of leather. When they had assembled, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to them and said: What is this news that has reached me from you? The wise people of the Ansar said: Messenger of Allah, so far as the sagacious amongst us are concerned they have said nothing, but we have amongst us persons of immature age; they said: May Allah grant pardon to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) that he gave to the Quraish and ignored us (despite the fact) that our swords are besmeared with their blood. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I give (at times material gifts) to persons who were quite recently in the state of unbelief, so that I may incline them to truth Don't you feel delighted that people should go with riches, and you should go back to your places with the Apostle of Allah? By Allah, that with which you would return is better than that with which they would return. They said: Yes, Messenger of Allah, we are pleased. The Holy Prophet said too: You would find marked preference (in conferring of the material gifts) in future, so you should show patience till you meet Allah and His Messenger and I would he at the Haud Kauthar. They said: We would show patience. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2304. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Khwarij and their characteristics. Anas b. Malik reported that when Allah conferred upon His Messenger (may peace be upon him) the riches of Hawazin (without armed encounter); the rest of the hadith is the same except some variation (of words): "Anas said: We could not tolerate it and he also said: The people were immature in age." Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2305. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Khwarij and their characteristics. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Anas b. Malik through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2306. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Khwarij and their characteristics. Anas b. Malik reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) gathered the Ansar and said: Is there someone alien among you? They said: No, but only the son of our sister. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The son of the sister of the people is included among the tribe, and (farther) said: The Quraish have recently abandoned Jahillyya and have just been delivered from distress; I, therefore, intend to help them and conciliate them. Don't you feel happy that the people should return with worldly riches and you return with the Messenger of Allah to your houses? (So far as my love for you is concerned I should say) if the people were to tread a valley and the Ansar tread a narrow path (in a mountain) I would tread the narrow path of the Ansar. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2307. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Khwarij and their characteristics. Anas b. Malik reported: When Mecca was conquered, he (the Holy Prophet) distributed the spoils among the Quraish. Upon this the Ansar said: It is strange that our swords are dripping with their blood, whereas our spoils have been given to them (to the Quraish). This (remark) reached the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and so he gathered them and said: What is this that has been conveyed to me about you? They said: (Yes) it is that very thing that, has reached you-and they were not (the people) to speak lie. Upon this he said: Don't you like that the people should return to their houses along with worldly riches, whereas you should return to your houses with the Messenger of Allah? If the people were to tread a valley or d narrow path, and the Ansar were also to tread a valley or a narrow path, I would tread the valley (along with the) Ansar or the narrow path (along with the) Ansar. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2308. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Khwarij and their characteristics. Anas b. Malik reported that when it was the Day of Hunain there came the tribes of Hawazin, Ghatafan and others along with their children and animals, and there were with the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) that day ten thousand (soldiers), and newly freed men (of Mecca after its conquest). All these men (once) turned their backs, till he (the Holy Prophet) was left alone. He (the Messenger of Allah) on that day called twice and he did not interpose anything between these two (announcements) He turned towards his right and said: O people of Ansar! They said: At thy beck and call (are we), Messenger of Allah. Be glad we are with thee. He then turned towards his left and said: O people of Ansar. They said: At thy beck and call (are we). Be glad we are with thee. He (the Holy Prophet) was riding a white mule. He dismounted and said: I am the servant of Allah and His Apostle. The polytheists suffered defeat. and the Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) acquired a large quantity of spoils, and he distributed them among the refugees and the people recently delivered (of Mecca) but did not give anything to the Ansar. The Ansar said: In the hour of distress it is we who are called (for help), but the spoils are given to other people besides us. This (remark) reached him (the Holy Prophet). and he gathered them In a tent and said: What is this news that has reached me on your behalf? They kept silence. Upon this he said: O people of Ansar, don't you like that people should go away with worldly (riches), and you go away with Muhammad taking him to your houses? They said: Yes, happy we are. Messenger of Allah. He (the Holy Prophet) said: If the people were to tread a valley, and the Ansar were to tread a narrow path, I would take the narrow path of the Ansar. Hisham said: I asked Abu Hamza if he was present there. He said: How could Ibe absent from him? Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2309. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Khwarij and their characteristics. Anas b. Malik reported: We conquered Mecca and then we went on an expedition to Hunain. The polytheists came, forming themselves into the best rows that I have seen. They first formed the rows of cavalry, then those of infantry, and then those of women behind them. Then there were formed the rows of sheep and goats and then of other animals. We were also people large in number, and our (number) had reached six thousand. And on one side Khalid b. Walid was in charge of the cavalry. And our horses at once turned back from our rear. And we could hardly hold our own when our horses were exposed, and the bedouins and the people whom we knew took to their heels. (Seeing this) the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) called thus: O refugees, O refugees. He then, said: O Ansar, O Ansar. (Anas said: This hadith is transmitted by a group of eminent persons.) We said: At thy beck and call are we, Messenger of Allah. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) then advanced and he (Anas) said: By Allah, we had not yet reached them when Allah defeated them and we took possession of the wealth and we then marched towards Ta'if, and we besieged them for forty nights and then came back to Mecca and encamped (at a place), and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) began to bestow a hundred camels upon each individual. The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2310. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Khwarij and their characteristics. Rafi' b. Khadij reported that the Messenger of Allah; (may peace be upon him) gave to Abu Sufyan b. Harb and Saf wan. b. Umayya and 'Uyaina b. Hisn and Aqra' b. Habis, i.e. to every one of these persons, one hundred of camels, and gave to 'Abbas b. Mirdas less than this number. Upon this 'Abbas b. Mirdis said: You allot the share of my booty and that of my horse between 'Uyaina and Aqra'. Both Uyaina and Aqra' are in no way more eminent than Mirdas (my father) in the assembly. I am in no way inferior to any one of these persons. And he who is let down today would not be elevated. He (the narrator) said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) then completed one hundred camels for him. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2311. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Khwarij and their characteristics. This hadith has been narrated by Sa'id b. Masruq with the same chain of transmitters (with the words): "The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) distributed the spoils of Hunain, and he (the Holy Prophet) gave one hundred camels to Abu Sufyan b. Harb. The rest of the hadith is the same, but with this addition: "He bestowed upon "Alqama b. 'Ulatha one hundred (camels)." Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2312. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Khwarij and their characteristics. This hadith has been narrated by Sa'id with the same chain of transmitters, but no mention has been made of Alqama b. 'Ulatha, nor of safwin b. Umayya, and he did not mention the verse in his hadith. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2313. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Khwarij and their characteristics. Abdullah b. Zaid reported that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) conquered Hunain he distributed the booty, and he bestowed upon those whose hearts it was intended to win. It was conveyed to him (the Holy Prophet) that the Ansar cherished a desire that they should be given (that very portion) which the people (of Quraish) had got. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) stood up and, after having praised Allah and lauded Him, addressed them thus: O people of Ansar, did I not find you erring and Allah guided you aright through me, and (in the state of) being destitute and Allah made you free from want through me, and in a state of disunity and Allah united you through me, and they (the Ansar) said: Allah and His Messenger are most benevolent. He (again) said: Why do you not answer me? They said: Allah and His Messenger are the most benevolent. He said, If you wish you should say so and so, and the event (should take) such and such course (and in this connection he made a mention) of so many things. 'Amr is under the impression that he has not been able to remember them. He (the Holy Prophet) further said: Don't you feel happy (over this state of affairs) that the people should go away with goats and camels, and you go to your places along with the Messenger of Allah? The Ansar are inner garments (more close to me) and (other) people are outer garments. Had there not been migration, I would have been a man from among the Ansar. If the people were to tread a valley or a narrow path, I would tread the valley (chosen) by the Ansar or narrow path (trodden) by them. And you would soon find after me preferences (over you in getting material benefits). So you should show patience till you meet me at the Haud (Kauthar). Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2314. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Khwarij and their characteristics. Abdullah reported: On the day of Hunain, the Messenger of Allah(may peace be upon him) showed preference (to some) People in the distribution of the spoils. He bestowed on Aqra' b. Habis one hundred camels, and bestowed an equal (number) upon 'Uyaina, and bestowed on people among the elites of Arabia, and preferred them) (to others) on that day, in the distribution (of spoils). Upon this a person said: By Allah, neither justice has been done In this distribution (of spoils), nor has the pleasure of Allah been sought in it. I (the Narrator) said: By Allah, I will certainly inform the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) about it, so I came to him and informed him about what he had said: The colour of his (the Prophet's) face changed red like blood and he then said: Who would do justice, if Allah and His Messenger do not do justice? He further said: May Allah have mercy upon Moses; he was tormented more than this, but he showed patience. I said: Never would I convey him (the Holy Prophet) after this (unpleasant) narration. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2315. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Khwarij and their characteristics. Abdullah reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) distributed spoils (of war). Upon this a person said: This is a distribution In which the pleasure of Allah has not been sought. I came to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and informed him in an undertone. He (the Holy Prophet) was deeply angry at this and his face became red till I wished that I had not made a mention of it to him. He (the Holy Prophet) then said: Moses was tormented more than this, but he showed patience. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2316. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to kill the Khwarij. Jabir b. Abdullah reported that a person came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) at Jirana on his way back from Hunain, and there was in the clothes of Bilal some silver. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) took a handful out of that and bestowed it upon the people. He (the person who had met the Prophet at Jirana) said to him: Muhammad, do justice. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Woe be upon thee, who would do justice if I do not do justice, and you would be very unfortunate and a loser if I do not do justice. Upon this Umar b. Khattab (Allah be pleased with him) said: Permit me to kill this hypocrite. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) said: May there be protection of Allah ! People would say that I kill my companions. This man and his companions would recite the Qur'an but it would not go beyond their throat, and they swerve from it just as the arrow goes through the prey. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2317. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to kill the Khwarij. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Jabir b. 'Abdullah through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2318. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to kill the Khwarij. Abu Said Khudri reported that 'Ali (Allah be pleased with him) sent some gold alloyed with dust to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) distributed that among four men, al-Aqra b. Habis Hanzali and Uyaina b. Badr al-Fazari and 'Alqama b. 'Ulatha al-'Amiri, then to one person of the tribe of Kilab and to Zaid al-Khair al-Ta'l, and then to one person of the tribe of Nabhan. Upon this the people of Quraish felt angry and said: He (the Holy Prophet) gave to the chiefs of Najd and ignored us. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I have done it with a view to conciliating them. Then there came a person with thick beard, prominent cheeks, deep sunken eyes and protruding forehead and shaven head. He said: Muhammad, fear Allah. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: If I disobey Allah, who would then obey Him? Have I not been (sent as the) most trustworthy among the people of the-world?-but you do not repose trust in me. That person then went back. A person among the people then sought permission (from the Holy Prophet) for his murder. According to some, it was Khalid b. Walid who sought the permission. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him),said: From this very person's posterity there would arise people who would recite the Qur'an, but it would not go beyond their throat; they would kill the followers of Islam and would spare the idol-worshippers. They would glance through the teachings of Islam so hurriedly just as the arrow passes through the pray. If I were to ever find them I would kill them like 'Ad. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2319. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to kill the Khwarij. Abu Said al-Khudri reported: 'Ali b. Abu Talib sent to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) from Yemen some gold alloyed with clay in a leather bag dyed in the leaves of Mimosa flava.He distributed it among four men. 'Uyaina b. Hisna, Aqra' b. Habis and Zaid al-Khail, and the fourth one was either Alqama b. 'Ulatha or 'Amir b. Tufail. A person from among his(Prophet's) Companions said: We had a better claim to this (wealth) than these (persons). This (remark) reached the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) upon which he said: Will you not trust me, whereas I am a trustee of Him Who is in the heaven? The news come to me from the heaven morning and evening. Then there stood up a person with deep sunken eyes, prominent cheek bones, and elevated forehead, thick beard, shaven head, tucked up loin cloth, and he said: Messenger of Allah, fear Allah. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Woe to thee, do I not deserve most to fear Allah amongst the people of the earth? That man then returned. Khalid b. Walid then said: Messenger of Allah, should I not strike his neck? Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) said: Perhaps he may be observing the prayer. Khalid said: How many observers of prayer are there who profess with their tongue what is not in their heart? Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I have not been commanded to pierce through the hearts of people, nor to split their bellies (insides). He again looked at him and he was going back. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) said: There would arise a people from the progeny of this (man) who would recite the Qur'an glibly, but it would not go beyond their throats; they would (hurriedly) pass through (the teachings of their) religion just as the arrow passes through the prey. I conceive that he (the Holy Prophet) also said this: If I find them I would certainly kill them as were killed the (people of) Thamud. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2320. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to kill the Khwarij. This hadith has been narrated through another chain of transmitters and (the narrator) made a mention of elevated forehead, but he made no mention of tucked-up loin cloth and made this addition: "There stood up 'Umar b. Khattab (Allah be pleased with him), and said: Should I not strike his neck? Upon this he said: No. Then he turned away, and Khalid the Sword of Allah stood up against him, and said: Prophet of Allah, shall I not strike off his neck? He said, No, and then said: A people would rise from his progeny who would recite the Muslim Book of Allah glibly and fluently. 'Umar said: I think he (the Holy Prophet) also said this: If I find them I would certainly kill them like Thamud." Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2321. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to kill the Khwarij. This hadith has been narrated through another chain of transmitters, but no mention has been made of: "If I find them, I would kill them as the Thamud were killed." Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2322. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to kill the Khwarij. Abu Salama and 'Ata' b. Yasar came to Abu Sa'id al-Khudri and asked him about Haruriya, saying: Did you hear the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) making a mention of them? He (Abu Sai'd al-Khudri) said: I don't know who the Haruriya are, but I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: There would arise in this nation (and he did not say "out of them") a people and you would hold insignificant your prayers as compared with their prayers. And they would recite the Qur'an which would not go beyond their throats and would swerve through the religion (as blank) just as a (swift) arrow passes through the prey. The archer looks at his arrow, at its iron head and glances at its end (which he held) in the tip of his fingers to see whether it had any stain of blood. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2323. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to kill the Khwarij. Abu Sai'd al-Khudri reported: When we were in the company of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he was distributing the spoils of war, there came to him Dhul-Khuwasira, one of Banu Tamim. He said: Messenger of Allah, do justice. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Woe be upon thee I Who would do justice, if I do not do justice? You would be unsuccessful and incurring a loss, if I do not do justice. Upon this Umar b. Khattab (Allah be pleased with him) said: Messenger of Allah, permit me to strike off his neck. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Leave him, for he has friends (who would outwardly look to be so religious and pious) that everyone among you would consider his prayer insignificant as compared with their prayer, and his fast as compared with their fasts. They would recite the Qur'an but it would not go beyond their collar-bones. They would pass through (the teachings of Islam so hurriedly) just as the arrow passes through the prey. He would look at its Iron head, but would not find anything ticking) there. He would then see at the lowest end, but would not find anything sticking there. He would then see at its grip but would not find anything sticking to it. He would then see at its feathers and he would find nothing sticking to them (as the arrow would pass so quickly that nothing would stick to it) neither excrement nor blood. They would be recognised by the presence of a black man among them whose upper arms would be like a woman's breast, or like a piece of meat as it quivers, and they would come forth at the time when there is dissension among the people. Abu Sai'd said: I testify to the fact that I heard it from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him),and I testify to the fact that 'Ali b. Abu Talib fought against them and I was with him. He gave orders about that man who was sought for, and when he was brought in, and when I looked at him, he was exactly as the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had described him. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2324. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to kill the Khwarij. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri said that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) made a mention of a sect that would be among his Ummah which would emerge out of the dissension of the people. Their distinctive mark would be shaven heads. They would be the worst creatures or the worst of the creatures. The group who would be nearer to the truth out of the two would kill them. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) gave an example (to give their description) or he said: A man throws an arrow at the prey (or he said at the target), and sees at its iron head, but finds no sign (of blood there), or he sees at the lowest end, but would not see or find any sign (of blood there). He would then see into the grip but would not find (anything) sticking to it. Abu Sa'id then said: People of Iraq, it is you who have killed them. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2325. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to kill the Khwarij. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: A group would secede itself (from the Ummah) when there would be dissension among the Muslims. Out of the two groups who would be nearer the truth would kill them. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2326. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to kill the Khwarij. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There would be two groups in my Ummah, and there would emerge another group (seceding itself from both of them), and the party nearer to the truth among the two would kill them (the group of the Khwarij). Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2327. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to kill the Khwarij. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri reported from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) that a group (Khwarij) would emerge from the different parties (the party of Hadrat 'Ali and the party of Amir Mu'awiya), the group nearer the truth between the two would kill them. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2328. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to pay Zakat to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and Banu Hashim and Banu Muttalib. 'Ali said: Whenever I narrate to you anything from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) believe it to be absolutely true as falling from the sky is dearer to me than that of attributing anything to him (the Holy Prophet) which he never said. When I talk to you of anything which is between me and you (there might creep some error in it) for battle is an outwitting. I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: There would arise at the end of the age a people who would be young in age and immature in thought, but they would talk (in such a manner) as if their words are the best among the creatures. They would recite the Qur'an, but it would not go beyond their throats, and they would pass through the religion as an arrow goes through the prey. So when you meet them, kill them, for in their killing you would get a reward with Allah on the Day of judgment. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2329. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to pay Zakat to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and Banu Hashim and Banu Muttalib. A hadith like this has been narrated through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2330. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to pay Zakat to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and Banu Hashim and Banu Muttalib. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of A'mash with the same chain of transmitters, but (these words) are not there: "They pass through the religion clean as the arrow passes through the prey." Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2331. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to pay Zakat to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and Banu Hashim and Banu Muttalib. 'Abida narrated from 'Ali that he made a mention of the Khwarij (and in this connection) said that there would be a person among them with a defective hand, (or with a short hand) or a fleshy hand. If you were to exercise restraint, I would tell you what Allah has promised to those who would kill them on the order of Muhammad (may peace be upon him). I (the narrator) said to him: Did you hear it from Muhammad: (may peace be upon him)? He (Hadrat 'Ali) said: Yes, by the Lord of the Ka'ba; Yes, by the Lord of the Ka'ba; yes, by the Lord of the Ka'ba. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2332. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to pay Zakat to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and Banu Hashim and Banu Muttalib. 'Abida said: I will not narrate to you except what I heard from him (Hadrat 'Ali), and then he narrated from him. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2333. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to pay Zakat to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and Banu Hashim and Banu Muttalib. Zaid b. Wahb Jahani reported and he was among the squadron which wall under the command of Ali (Allah be pleased with him) and which set out (to curb the activities) of the Khwarij. 'Ali (Allah be pleased with him) said: O people, I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) say: There would arise from my Ummah a people who would recite the Qur'an, and your recital would seem insignificant as compared with their recital, your prayer as compared with their prayer, arid your fast as compared with their fast. They would recite the Qur'an thinking that it supports them, whereas it is an evidence against them. Their prayer does not get beyond their collar bone; they would swerve through Islam just as the arrow passes through the prey. If the squadron which is to encounter them were to know (what great boon) has been assured to them by their Apostle (may peace be upon him) they would completely rely upon this deed (alone and cease to do other good deeds), and their (that of the Khwarij) distinctive mark is that there would be (among them) a person whose wrist would be without the arm, and the end of his wrist would be fleshy like the nipple of the breast on which there would be white hair. You would be marching towards Muawiya and the people of Syria and you would leave them behind among your children and your property (to do harm). By Allah, I believe that these are the people (against whom you have been commanded to fight and get reward) for they have shed forbidden blood, and raided the animals of the people. So go forth in the name of Allah (to fight against them). Salama b. Kuhail mentioned that Zaid b. Wahb made me alight at every stage, till we crossed a bridge. 'Abdullah b. Wahb al-Rasibi was at the head of the Khwarij when we encountered them. He ('Abdullah) said to his army: Throw the spears and draw out your swords from their sheaths, for I fear that they would attack you as they attacked you on the day of Harura. They went back and threw their spears and drew out their swords, and people fought against them with spears and they were killed one after another. Only two persons were killed among the people (among the army led by Hadrat 'Ali) on that day. 'Ali (Allah be pleased with him) said: Find out from among them (the dead bodies of the Khwarij) (the maimed). They searched but did not find him. 'Ali (Allah be pleased with him) then himself stood up and (walked) till he came to the people who had been killed one after another. He ('Ali) said: Search them to the last, and then ('Ali's companions) found him (the dead body of the maimed) near the earth. He (Hadrat 'Ali) then pronounced Allah-O-Akbar (Allah is the Greatest) and then said, Allah told the Truth and His Messenger (may peace be upon him) conveyed it. Then there stood before him 'Abida Salmani who said: Commander of the Believers, by Allah, besides Whom there is no god but He, (tell me) whether you heard this hadith from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). He said: Yes, by Allah, besides Whom there is no god but He. He asked him to take an oath thrice and he took the oath. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2334. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to pay Zakat to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and Banu Hashim and Banu Muttalib. 'Ubaidullah b. Abu Rafi', the freed slave of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), said: When Haruria (the Khwarij) set out and as he was with 'Ali b. Abu Talib (Allah be pleased with him) they said, "There is no command but that of Allah." Upon this 'Ali said: The statement is true but it is intentionally applied (to support) a wrong (cause). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him described their characteristics and I found these characteristics in them. They state the truth with their tongue, but it does not go beyond this part of their bodies (and the narrator pointed towards his throat). The most hateful among the creation of Allah us one black man among them (Khwarij). One of his hand is like the teat of a goat or the nipple of the breast. When 'Ali b. Abu Talib (Allah be pleased with him) killed them, he said: Search (for his dead body). They searched for him, but they did not find it (his dead body). Upon this he said: Go (and search for him). By Allah, neither I have spoken a lie nor has the lie been spoken to me. 'Ali said this twice and thrice. They then found him (the dead body) in a rain. They brought (his dead) body till they placed it before him (Hadrat 'Ali). 'Ubaidullah said: And, I was present at (that place) when this happened and when 'Ali said about them. A person narrated to me from Ibn Hanain that he said: I saw that black man. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2335. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to pay Zakat to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and Banu Hashim and Banu Muttalib. Abu Dharr reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Verily there would arise from my Ummah after me or soon after me a group (of people) who would recite the Qar'an, but it would not go beyond their throats, and they would pass clean through their religion just as the arrow passes through the prey, and they would never come back to it. They would be the worst among the creation and the creatures. Ibn Samit (one of the narrators) said: I met Rafi' b. 'Amr Ghifari, the brother of Al-Hakam Ghifari and I said: What is this hadith that I heard from Abu Dharr, i.e. so and so?-and then I narrated that hadith to him and said: I heard it from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2336. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to pay Zakat to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and Banu Hashim and Banu Muttalib. Yusair b. 'Amr reported that he inquired of Sahl b. Hunaif: Did you hear the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) making a mention of the Khwarij? He said: I heard him say (and he pointed with his hand towards the east) that these would be a people who would recite the Qur'an with their tongues and it would not go beyond their collar bones. They would pass clean through their religion just as the arrow passes through the prey. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2337. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to pay Zakat to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and Banu Hashim and Banu Muttalib. This hadith had been transmitted by Sulaiman Shaibani with the same chain of narrators (and the words are), "There would arise out of (this group) many a group " Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2338. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to pay Zakat to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and Banu Hashim and Banu Muttalib. Sahl b. Hunaif reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: There would arise from the east a people with shaven heads. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2339. ------------------------------ Chapter : The posterity of the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) is not allowed to make use of Sadaqa. Abu Huraira reported that Hasan b. 'Ali took one of The dates of the sadaqa and put it in his mouth, whereupon the Prophet (may peace be upon him) said: Leave it, leave it, throw it; don't you know that we do not eat the sadaqa? Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2340. ------------------------------ Chapter : The posterity of the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) is not allowed to make use of Sadaqa. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters (and the words of the Holy Prophet) are: "Sadaqa is not permissible for us." Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2341. ------------------------------ Chapter : The posterity of the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) is not allowed to make use of Sadaqa. This very hadith has been narrated on the authority of Sbu'ba with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2342. ------------------------------ Chapter : The posterity of the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) is not allowed to make use of Sadaqa. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: I go back to my family and I find a date lying on my bed. I then take it up to eat it, but then I throw it away fearing that it may be a Sadaqa. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2343. ------------------------------ Chapter : The posterity of the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) is not allowed to make use of Sadaqa. Out of so many ahadith which Hammam b. Munabbih narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) one is this that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: I go back to my family and I find a date lying on my bed or in my house, and I take it up to eat it, but then I throw it away fearing that it may be a Sadaqa or from Sadaqa. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2344. ------------------------------ Chapter : The posterity of the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) is not allowed to make use of Sadaqa. Anas b. Malik reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) found a date in the street and said: If it were not of sadaqa I would have eaten it.1457 Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2345. ------------------------------ Chapter : The posterity of the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) is not allowed to make use of Sadaqa. Anas b. Malik reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) found a date lying on the path and said: If it were not out of Sadaqa, I would have eaten it. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2346. ------------------------------ Chapter : The posterity of the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) is not allowed to make use of Sadaqa. Anas b. Malik reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) found a date and said: Were it not (that I fear) it may be part of sadaqa, I would have eaten it. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2347. ------------------------------ Chapter : Accepting of gift by the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) and refusing the Sadaqa. 'Abd al-Muttalib b. Rabi'a b. al-Harith reported that Rabi'a b. al-Harith and Abbas b. Abd al-Muttalib gathered together and said: By Allah, if we had sent these two young boys (i.e. I and Fadl b. 'Abbas) to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and they had spoken to him, he would have appointed them (as the collectors) of these sadaqat; and they would (collect them) and pay (to the Holy Prophet) as other people (collectors) paid and would get a share as other people got it. As they were talking about it there came 'Ali b. Abu Talib and stood before them, and they made a mention of it to him. 'Ali b. Abu Talib said: Don't do that; by Allah he (the Holy Prophet) would not do that (would not accept your request). Rabi'a b. Harith turned to him and said: By Allah, you are not doing so but out of jealousy that you nurse against us By Allah, you became the son-in-law of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) but we felt no jealousy against you (for this great privilege of yours). 'Ali then said: Send them (if you like). They set out and 'Ali lay on the bed. When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) offered the noon prayer, we went ahead of him to his apartment and stood near it till he came out. He took hold of our ears (out of love and affection) and then said: Give out what you have kept in your hearts. He then entered (the apartment) and we also went in and he (the Holy Prophet) was on that day (in the house of) Zainab b. Jahsh. We urged each (of us) to speak. Then one of us thus spoke: Messenger of Allah, you are the best of humanity and the best to cement the ties of blood-relations. We have reached the-marriageable age. We have come (to you) so that you may appoint us (as collectors) of these sadaqat and we would pay you just as thin people (other collectors) pay you, and get our share as others get it. He (the Holy Prophet) kept silence for a long time till we wished that we should speak with him (again), and Zainab pointed to us from behind the curtain not to talk (any more). He (the Holy Prophet) said; It does not become the family of Muhammad (to accept) sadaqat for they are the impurities of people. You call to me Mahmiya (and he was in charge of khums, i.e., of the one-fifth part that goes to the treasury out of the spoils of war), and Naufal b. Harith b. 'Abd al-Muttalib. They both came to him, and he (the Holy Prophet) said to Mahmiya: Marry your daughter to this young man (i.e. Fadl b. 'Abbas), and he married her to him And he said to Naufal b. Harith: Marry your daughter to this young man (i.e. 'Abd al-Muttalib b. Rabi'a, the narrator of this hadith) and he married her to me, and he said to Mahmiya: Pay so much mahr on behalf of both of them from this khums Zuhri, however, said: He did not determine (the amount of mahr). Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2348. ------------------------------ Chapter : Accepting of gift by the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) and refusing the Sadaqa. Rabi'a b. Harith b. 'Abd al-Muttalib and Abbas b. 'Abd al-Muttalib said to Abd al-Muttalib b. Rabi'a and Fadl b. Ibn Abbas: Go to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and the rest of the hadith is the same (but with this addition): "'Ali spread his cloak and then lay down on it and said: I am the father of Hasan, and I am the chief. By Allah, I would not move from my place till your sons come back to you with the reply to that for which you sent them to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). And he then also said: Verily these sadaqat are the impurities of people, and they are not permissible for Muhammad (may peace be upon him), and for the family of Muhammad. And he also said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) also said to me: Call Mahmiya b. Jaz', and he was person from Banu Asad and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had appointed him as a collector of khums. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2349. ------------------------------ Chapter : Accepting of gift by the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) and refusing the Sadaqa. Juwayriya, the wife of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him)" said that Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to her and said: Is there anything to eat? She said: Messenger of Allah, I swear by God, there is no food with us except a bone of goat which my freed maid-servant was given as sadaqa. Upon this he said: Bring that to me, for it (the sadaqa) has reached its destination. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2350. ------------------------------ Chapter : Accepting of gift by the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) and refusing the Sadaqa. This hadith has been narrated by Zuhri with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2351. ------------------------------ Chapter : Accepting of gift by the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) and refusing the Sadaqa. Anas b. Malik reported that Barira presented to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) a piece of meat which had been given to her as sadaqa. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) said: That is a Sadaqa for her and a gift for us. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2352. ------------------------------ Chapter : Accepting of gift by the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) and refusing the Sadaqa. 'Aisha reported that (once) the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him,) was presented with beef. It was said (by someone) that it had been given to Barira as Sadaqa. Upon this he (the Prophet) said: It is a Sadaqa for her and a gift for us. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2353. ------------------------------ Chapter : Accepting of gift by the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) and refusing the Sadaqa. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) said: Three are the decisions (of the Shari'ah that we have come to know) through Barira. The people gave her sadaqa and she offered us as gift. We made a mention of it to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), whereupon he said: It is a sadaqa for her and a gift for you; so eat it. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2354. ------------------------------ Chapter : Accepting of gift by the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) and refusing the Sadaqa. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of A'isha through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2355. ------------------------------ Chapter : Accepting of gift by the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) and refusing the Sadaqa. This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of 'Aisha in a similar manner except a slight variation that he said: "That is a gift for us out of it." Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2356. ------------------------------ Chapter : Accepting of gift by the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) and refusing the Sadaqa. Umm 'Atiyya, said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sent me some mutton of sadaqa. I sent a piece out of that to 'Aisha. When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to 'Aisha, he said: Have you anything with you (to eat)? She said: Nothing, except only that mutton sent to us by Nusaiba (the kunya of Umm 'Atiyya) which you had sent to her. Whereupon he said: It has reached its proper place. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2357. ------------------------------ Chapter : Blessing for him who presents Sadaqa. Abu Huraira reported: Whenever the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) was presented with food, he asked about it, If he was told that it was a gift, he ate out of that, and if he was told that it was a sadaqa he did not eat out of that. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2358. ------------------------------ Chapter : To please the collector of Zakat, unless he makes an unjust demand. 'Abdullah b. Abu Aufa said that it was the common practice of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) that when the people brought to him sadaqa he blessed them: O Allah, bless them. So when Abu Aufa brought to him Sadaqa he (the Holy Prophet) said: O Allah, bless the posterity of Abu Aufa. Muslim Book 005, Hadith Number 2359. ------------------------------ Chapter : To please the collector of Zakat, unless he makes an unjust demand. This hadith has been narrated by Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters (but with a slight variation of words, that he said): (O Allah), bless them." Chapter : Unknown. Jarir b. 'Abdullah said: "When the collector of sadaqat (Zakat) comes to you, (you should see) that he goes away pleased with you". Total Hadiths : 227. Generated By : The Hadith Software Version 1.0 Date : 05-03-2009. ****************************************************************** * NOTE!! THERE ARE VARIOUS WEB SITES (I.E. WWW.HADITHONLINE.COM) * * THAT CAN BE USED TO VALIDATE THE AUTHENTICITY OF EACH HADITHS * * GENERATED OR VIEWED IN THIS SOFTWARE. PLEASE REFER TO THEM IF * * YOU HAVE ANY QUESTIONS OR DOUBTS. - Islamasoft Solutions. (UK) * ****************************************************************** Islamasoft Solutions. (www.islamasoft.co.uk) The Hadith Software : Shahi Muslim. Muslim Book 6. Fasting. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2361. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the month of Ramadan. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When there comes the month of Ramadan, the gates of mercy are opened, and the gates of Hell are locked and the devils are chained, Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2362. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the month of Ramadan. This hadith is reported by Abu Huraira (with a slight alteration of words) that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: "When (the month of) Ramadan begins." Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2363. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting in Ramadan should necessarily be commenced with the sight of the new moon and finished with the sight of the new moon. If the whether is cloudy at the beginning or at the end, then complete thirty days. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying in connection with Ramadan: Do not fast till you see the new moon, and do not break fast till you see it; but if the weather is cloudy calculate about it. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2364. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting in Ramadan should necessarily be commenced with the sight of the new moon and finished with the sight of the new moon. If the whether is cloudy at the beginning or at the end, then complete thirty days. Ibn Umar reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) made a mention of Ramadan and he with the gesture of his hand said: The month is thus and thus. (He then withdrew his thumb at the third time). He then said: Fast when you see it, and break your fast when you see it, and if the weather is cloudy calculate it (the months of Sha'ban and Shawwal) as thirty days. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2365. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting in Ramadan should necessarily be commenced with the sight of the new moon and finished with the sight of the new moon. If the whether is cloudy at the beginning or at the end, then complete thirty days. This hadith is narrated on the authority of 'Ubaidullah with the same chain of transmitters, and he said: If (the sky) is cloudy for you, then calculate thirty days (for the month of Ramadan). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2366. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting in Ramadan should necessarily be commenced with the sight of the new moon and finished with the sight of the new moon. If the whether is cloudy at the beginning or at the end, then complete thirty days. 'Ubaidullah narrated on the authority of the same chain of transmitters that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) made a mention of Ramadan and said: The month may consist of twenty-nine days, and it may be thus, thus and thus, and (he further) said: Calculate it, but he did not say thirty. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2367. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting in Ramadan should necessarily be commenced with the sight of the new moon and finished with the sight of the new moon. If the whether is cloudy at the beginning or at the end, then complete thirty days. Ibn'Umar (Allah be pleased with-both of them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The month of Ramadan may consist of twenty-nine days. So do not fast till you have sighted it (the new moon) and do not break fast, till you have sighted it (the new moon of Shawwal), and if the sky is cloudy for you, then calculate. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2368. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting in Ramadan should necessarily be commenced with the sight of the new moon and finished with the sight of the new moon. If the whether is cloudy at the beginning or at the end, then complete thirty days. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The month (of Ramadan) may consist of twenty nine days; so when you see the new moon observe fast and when you see (the new moon again at the commencement of the month of Shawwal) then break It, and if the sky is cloudy for you, then calculate it (and complete thirty days). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2369. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting in Ramadan should necessarily be commenced with the sight of the new moon and finished with the sight of the new moon. If the whether is cloudy at the beginning or at the end, then complete thirty days. 'Abdullah b. Umar (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When you see the new moon, observe fast, and when you see it (again) then break it, and if the sky is cloudy for you, then calculate it. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2370. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting in Ramadan should necessarily be commenced with the sight of the new moon and finished with the sight of the new moon. If the whether is cloudy at the beginning or at the end, then complete thirty days. Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The month may consist of twenty-nine nights. So do not fast till you have sighted it (the new moon) and do not break it till you have sighted it, except when the sky is cloudy for you, and if it is so, then calculate it. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2371. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting in Ramadan should necessarily be commenced with the sight of the new moon and finished with the sight of the new moon. If the whether is cloudy at the beginning or at the end, then complete thirty days. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The month is thus and thus and thus (i.e. pointing with his fingers thrice), and he held back his thumb at the third time (in order to show that it can also consist of twenty-nine days). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2372. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting in Ramadan should necessarily be commenced with the sight of the new moon and finished with the sight of the new moon. If the whether is cloudy at the beginning or at the end, then complete thirty days. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The month may consist of twenty-nine days. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2373. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting in Ramadan should necessarily be commenced with the sight of the new moon and finished with the sight of the new moon. If the whether is cloudy at the beginning or at the end, then complete thirty days. Abdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The mouth (of Ramadan) is thus and thus, and thus i.e. ten, ten and-nine. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2374. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting in Ramadan should necessarily be commenced with the sight of the new moon and finished with the sight of the new moon. If the whether is cloudy at the beginning or at the end, then complete thirty days. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The month is thus, and thus, and thus, and he flapped his hands with all their fingers twice, but at the third turn, folded his right thumb or left thumb (in order to give an idea of twenty-nine). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2375. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting in Ramadan should necessarily be commenced with the sight of the new moon and finished with the sight of the new moon. If the whether is cloudy at the beginning or at the end, then complete thirty days. Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The month (of Ramadan) may consist of twenty-nine days, and Shu'ba (one of the narrators) (gave a practical demonstration how the Holy prophet (may peace be upon him) explained to them) by unfolding his hands thrice and folding his thumb at the third turn. 'Uqba (one of the narrators in this chain of transmitters) said: I think that he said that the month consists of thirty days and unfolded his palm three times. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2376. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting in Ramadan should necessarily be commenced with the sight of the new moon and finished with the sight of the new moon. If the whether is cloudy at the beginning or at the end, then complete thirty days. Ibn 'Umar(may Allah be pleased with both of them)reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: We are an unlettered people who can neither write nor count. The month is thus, and thus, folding his thumb when he said it the third time. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Aswad b. Qais with the same chain of transmitters, but herein no mention has been made of the other month (consisting of) thirty days. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2377. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting in Ramadan should necessarily be commenced with the sight of the new moon and finished with the sight of the new moon. If the whether is cloudy at the beginning or at the end, then complete thirty days. Sa'd b. 'Ubaida reported that Ibn 'Umar(Allah be pleased with both of them) heard a person saying: This night is the midnight (of the month). Upon this he said to him: How do you know that it is the midnight (of the month), for I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: The month is thus and thus (and he pointed with his ten fingers twice) and thus (i.e. at the third time he pointed with all his fingers but withdrew or folded his thumb)? Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2378. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting in Ramadan should necessarily be commenced with the sight of the new moon and finished with the sight of the new moon. If the whether is cloudy at the beginning or at the end, then complete thirty days. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Whenever you sight the new moon (of the month of Ramadan) observe fast. and when you sight it (the new moon of Shawwal) break it, and if the sky is cloudy for you, then observe fast for thirty days. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2379. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting in Ramadan should necessarily be commenced with the sight of the new moon and finished with the sight of the new moon. If the whether is cloudy at the beginning or at the end, then complete thirty days. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Observe fast on sighting it (the new moon) and break (fast) on sighting it (the new moon), but if the sky is cloudy for you, then complete the number (of thirty). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2380. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting in Ramadan should necessarily be commenced with the sight of the new moon and finished with the sight of the new moon. If the whether is cloudy at the beginning or at the end, then complete thirty days. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Observe fast on sighting it (the new moon) and break it on sighting it. But if (due to clouds) the actual position of the month is concealed from you, you should then count thirty (days). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2381. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting in Ramadan should necessarily be commenced with the sight of the new moon and finished with the sight of the new moon. If the whether is cloudy at the beginning or at the end, then complete thirty days. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) narrated that the Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) made a mention of the new moon and (in this connection) said: Observe fast when you see it (the new moon) and break fast when you see it (the new moon of Shawwal), but when (the actual position of the month is) concealed from you (on account of cloudy sky), then count thirty days. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2382. ------------------------------ Chapter : Do not fast for a day or two days ahead of Ramadan. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him)as saying: Do not observe fast for a day, or two days ahead of Ramadan except a person who is in the habit of observing a particular fast; he may fast on that day. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2383. ------------------------------ Chapter : Do not fast for a day or two days ahead of Ramadan. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Yahya b. Abi Kathir with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2384. ------------------------------ Chapter : The month may consist of twenty-nine days. Zuhri reported that (once) the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) took an oath that he would not go to his wives for one Month. Zuhri said that 'Urwa narrated to him from 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) that she said: When twenty-nine nights were over, which I had counted, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to me (he came to me first of all). I said: Messenger of Allah, you had taken an oath that you would not come to us for a month, whereas you have come after twenty nine days which I have counted. Whereupon he said: The month may also consist of twenty-nine days. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2385. ------------------------------ Chapter : The month may consist of twenty-nine days. Jabir (Allah be pleased with her) narrated that the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) separated himself from his wives for a month. (His wives said:) He came to us on the twenty-ninth day, whereupon we said: It is the twenty-ninth (day) today. Thereupon he said: So far as the month is concerned, (and he, with a view to explaining it) flapped his hands thrice, but held back one finger at the last turn. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2386. ------------------------------ Chapter : The month may consist of twenty-nine days. Abu Zubair is reported to have heard Jabir b. 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with both of them) as saying: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) separated himself from his wives for a month. (His wives said:) He came to us on the morning of the twenty-ninth. Upon this some, of the people said: It is the morning of twenty-ninth (according to our calculation). Upon this the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The month may also consist of twenty-nine days. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) then flapped his bands thrice, twice with all the fingers of both his hand (to indicate twenty-nine) and by the third time with nine (fingers). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2387. ------------------------------ Chapter : The month may consist of twenty-nine days. Umm Salama (Allah be pleased with him) reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) took an oath that he would not go to some of his wives for the whole of the month. When twenty-nine days bad passed he (the Holy Prophet) went to them in the morning or in the evening. Upon this it was said to him: Apostle of Allah, you took an oath that you would not come to us for a month, whereupon he said: The month may also consist of twenty-nine days. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2388. ------------------------------ Chapter : The month may consist of twenty-nine days. A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of Ibn Juraij with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2389. ------------------------------ Chapter : The month may consist of twenty-nine days. Sa'd b. Abi Waqqas (Allah be pleased with him) said that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) struck his hand against the other and (then with the gesture of his two hands) said: The month is thus, thus (two times). He then withdrew (one of) his fingers at the third turn. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2390. ------------------------------ Chapter : The month may consist of twenty-nine days. Muhammad b. Sa'd reported on the authority of his father (Sa'd b. Abi Waqqas (Allah be pleased with him) that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said: Two month is thus and thus, and thus, i.e. ten, ten and nine. This hadith has been narrated by Abu Khalid with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2391. ------------------------------ Chapter : There is a sighting of the moon for every town; the sighting at one town cannot be held valid for the other town situated at a considerable distance from it. Kuraib reported that Umm Fadl, daughter of Harith, sent him (Fadl, i.e. her son) to Mu'awiya in Syria. I (Fadl) arrived in Syria, and did the needful for her. It was there in Syria that the month of Ramadan commenced. I saw the new moon (of Ramadan) on Friday. I then came back to Medina at the end of the month. Abdullah b. 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with him) asked me (about the new moon of Ramadan) and said: When did you see it? I said: We saw it on the night of Friday. He said: (Did) you see it yourself? I said: Yes, and the people also saw it and they observed fast and Mu'awiya also observed fast, whereupon he said: But we saw it on Saturday night. So we would continue to observe fast till we complete thirty (lasts) or we see it (the new moon of Shawwal). I said: Is the sighting of the moon by Mu'awiya not valid for you? He said: No; this is how the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) has commanded us. Yahya b. Yahya was in doubt (whether the word used in the narration by Kuraib) was Naktafi or Taktafi. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2392. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is immaterial whether the new moon is large (on account of appearing after thirty nights) or small (on account of appearing on the thirtieth night): and Allah defers it to make it suitable for sighting and if the sky is cloudy, then thirty (fasts) are to be completed. Abu'l-Bakhtari reported: We went out to perform Umra and when we encamped in the valley of Nakhla, we tried to see the new moon. Some of the people said: It was three nights old, and others (said) that it was two nights old. We then met Ibn 'Abbas and told him we had seen the new moon, but that some of the people said it was three nights old and others that it was two nights old. He asked on which night we had seen it; and when we told him we had seen it on such and such night, he said the Prophet of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said: Verily Allah deferred it till the time it is seen, so it is to be reckoned from the night you saw it. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2393. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is immaterial whether the new moon is large (on account of appearing after thirty nights) or small (on account of appearing on the thirtieth night): and Allah defers it to make it suitable for sighting and if the sky is cloudy, then thirty (fasts) are to be completed. Abu'l-Bakhtari reported: We saw the new moon of Ramadan as we were at Dhit-i-'Irq. We sent a man to Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with both of them) to ask him (whether the sighting of a small moon had something of the nature of defect in it). Upon this Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with both of them) said that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said: Verily Allah deferred its sight, but if (the new moon) is hidden from you, then complete its number (thirty). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2394. ------------------------------ Chapter : The months of Id are not incomplete. The son of Abu Bakra reported it on the authority of his father that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said: The two months of 'Id, Ramadan and Dhu'l-Hijja (are not incomplete). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2395. ------------------------------ Chapter : The months of Id are not incomplete. 'Abd Ar-Rahman b. Abu Bakra reported on the authority of Abu Bakra that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said: The months of 'Id are not incomplete. And in the hadith narrated by Khalid (the words are): "The months, of 'Id are Ramadan and Dhu'l-Hijja." Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2396. ------------------------------ Chapter : The timing of fast begins with the dawn. 'Adi b. Hatim (Allah be pleased with him) reported that when (this verse) was revealed: "Until the white streak of the dawn becomes distinct from the dark streak" (ii. 187) Adi b. Hatim said: Messenger of Allah, verily I keep underneath my pillow two strings, one white and the other black, by which I distinguish night from dawn. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Your pillow seems to be very large. For the word khait implies the blackness of the night and the whiteness of the dawn. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2397. ------------------------------ Chapter : The timing of fast begins with the dawn. Sahl b. Sa'd said that when this verse was revealed: "Eat and drink till the white streak is distinct from the dark streak," a person would take hold of a white thread and a black thread and keep on eating till he could find them distinct (in the light of the dawn). It was then that Allah, the Majestic and Great, revealed (the words) min al-fajr (from the dawn), and then it became clear (that the word khait refers to the streak of light in the dawn). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2398. ------------------------------ Chapter : The timing of fast begins with the dawn. Sahl b. Sa'd (Allah be pleased with him) said: When this verse was revealed. "Eat and drink till the white streak becomes distinct from the dark streak for you," the person who decided to observe fast tied on one of his feet a black thread and on the other a white thread. And he went on eating and drinking till he could distinguish (between their colour) on seeing them. It was after this that Allah revealed (the words): min al-fajr. And they (the Muslims) came to know that (the word khait) refers to the night and day. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2399. ------------------------------ Chapter : The timing of fast begins with the dawn. 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud (Allah be pleased with him) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said: Bilal would pronounce Adhan (at the fag end of the night in order to inform the people about the time of the Sahri). So you eat and drink till you hear the Adhan of Ibn Umm Maktum (which was pronounced at the conclusion of the Sahri and the commencement of the fast). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2400. ------------------------------ Chapter : The timing of fast begins with the dawn. Abdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: Bilal announces Adhan during the night, so you eat and drink, till you hear the Adhan of Ibn Umm Maktum. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2401. ------------------------------ Chapter : The timing of fast begins with the dawn. Ibn 'Umar(Allah be pleased with both of them)reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had two Mu'adhdhins, Bilal and son of Umm Maktum, the blind. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Bilal announces Adhan at (the fag end of the) night (i.e. Sahri), so eat and drink till the son of Umm Maktum announces Adhan. And he (the narrator) said: And the (difference of time) between their (Adhans) was not more than this that one climbed down (from the minaret) and the other climbed up (to announce Adhan). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2402. ------------------------------ Chapter : The timing of fast begins with the dawn. A hadith like this has been transmitted on the authority of 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2403. ------------------------------ Chapter : The timing of fast begins with the dawn. A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of 'Ubaidullah on the two chains of transmitters. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2404. ------------------------------ Chapter : The timing of fast begins with the dawn. Ibn Mas'ud (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying The Adhan of Bilal should not restrain anyone among you from eating Sahur (last meal before daybreak during the month of Ramadan) for he announces Adhan (or he calls) at (the fag end of) the night to make him turn who stands for prayer among you, and to awaken those who are sleeping among you. And he said: The dawn is not like it, as one says (and he lifted his hand) till he (dispersed his fingers) and said: It is like this. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2405. ------------------------------ Chapter : The timing of fast begins with the dawn. This hadith has been narrated by Sulaiman al-Taimi with the same chain of transmitters (but with a slight variation of words) that he (the Holy Prophet) said: The dawn is not like it as it is said; he then gathered his fingers and lowered them. But he said, it is like this (and he placed the index finger upon the other one and spread his hand). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2406. ------------------------------ Chapter : The timing of fast begins with the dawn. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Sulaiman Taimi with the same chain of transmitters and, at the end, it was said that the first Adhan was meant to awaken those who were in slumber amongst them and in order to make them turn who stand in (prayer) among them (towards food at the commencement of the fast). Jarir (one of the narrators) said that the Messenger (may peace be upon him) did not say like this but he said like it (true dawn) that the streaks of (true dawn) are horizontal and not vertical. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2407. ------------------------------ Chapter : The timing of fast begins with the dawn. Samura b. Jandub reported Muhammad (may peace be upon him) as saying. The call of Bilal may not mislead any one of you (and he may, under the wrong impression gathered from it, refrain) from taking meal before the commencement of the fast (for the streaks) of this whiteness (which are vertical indicate the false dawn and the true dawn with which the fast commences is that when the streaks of light are) spread. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2408. ------------------------------ Chapter : The timing of fast begins with the dawn. Samura b. Jundub reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Adhan of Bilal should not mislead you nor the whiteness (of the pillar) of dawn, for it is not the whiteness of the true dawn, but that of the false dawn which is vertical like a pillar and you can eat food till the streaks of whiteness spread like it. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2409. ------------------------------ Chapter : The timing of fast begins with the dawn. Samura b. Jundub (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Adhan of Bilal may not mislead you with regard to your food at the commencement of the fast, nor the vertical (streaks) of whiteness in the horizon (for it is an indication of false dawn). You should stop eating (food) till (the whiteness) spreads like it. Hammad narrated it and with the gesture of his band he explained the horizontal position (of the streaks of light). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2410. ------------------------------ Chapter : The timing of fast begins with the dawn. Samura b. Jundub addressed and narrated from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) having said (these words): Neither the call of Bilal should mislead you nor this whiteness (of false dawn) till (the true) dawn appears (or he said) till the dawn breaks. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2411. ------------------------------ Chapter : The timing of fast begins with the dawn. A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of Samura b. Jundub. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2412. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of taking meal before dawn, stress on giving It preference and preference for deferring it (at the fag end of the night) and hastening in breaking it. Anas (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Take meal a little before dawn, for there is a blessing in taking meal at that time. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2413. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of taking meal before dawn, stress on giving It preference and preference for deferring it (at the fag end of the night) and hastening in breaking it. 'Amr b. al-'As reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The difference between our fasting and that of the people of the Muslim Book is eating shortly before dawn. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2414. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of taking meal before dawn, stress on giving It preference and preference for deferring it (at the fag end of the night) and hastening in breaking it. Musa b. 'Ali has narrated this hadith through the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2415. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of taking meal before dawn, stress on giving It preference and preference for deferring it (at the fag end of the night) and hastening in breaking it. Zaid b. Thabit (Allah be pleased with him) said: We took meal shortly before dawn along with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). We then stood up for prayer. I said: How much span of time was there between the two (acts, i.e. taking of Sahri and observing of prayer)? He said (a span of reciting) fifty verses. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2416. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of taking meal before dawn, stress on giving It preference and preference for deferring it (at the fag end of the night) and hastening in breaking it. This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Qatada too. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2417. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of taking meal before dawn, stress on giving It preference and preference for deferring it (at the fag end of the night) and hastening in breaking it. Sahl b. Sa'd (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The people will continue to prosper as long as they hasten the breaking of the fast. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2418. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of taking meal before dawn, stress on giving It preference and preference for deferring it (at the fag end of the night) and hastening in breaking it. A hadith like this has been transmitted by Sahl b. Sa'd. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2419. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of taking meal before dawn, stress on giving It preference and preference for deferring it (at the fag end of the night) and hastening in breaking it. Abu 'Atiyya reported: I and Masruq went to 'Aisha and said to her: Mother of the Believers, there are two persons among the Companions of Muhammad (may peace be upon him) one among whom hastens in breaking the fast and in observing prayer, and the other delays breaking the fast and delays observing prayer. She said: Who among the two hastens in breaking fast and observing prayers? We said, It is 'Abdullah. i.e. son of Mas'ud, whereupon she said: This is how the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) did. Abu Kuraib added: The second one was Abu Musa. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2420. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of taking meal before dawn, stress on giving It preference and preference for deferring it (at the fag end of the night) and hastening in breaking it. Abu 'Atiyya reported: I and Misruq went to 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) and Masruq said to her: There are two persons among the Companions of Muhammad (may peace be upon him) none of whom abandons the good, but one of them hastens to observe sunset prayer and break the fast, and the other delays in observing the sunset prayer and in breaking the fast, whereupon she said: Who hastens to observe sunset prayer and break the fast? He said: It is 'Abdullah. Upon this she said: This is how the Messenger of Allah(may peace be upon him) used to do. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2421. ------------------------------ Chapter : The time for breaking the fast and ending of day. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: When the night approaches and the day retreats and the sun sinks down, then the observer of the fast should break it. Ibn Numair made no mention of the word "then". Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2422. ------------------------------ Chapter : The time for breaking the fast and ending of day. 'Abdullah b. Abi Aufa reported: We were with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on a journey during the month of Ramadan. When the sun had sunk he said: So and so, get down (from your ride) and prepare the meal of parched barley for us. He said: Messenger of Allah, still (there is light of) day. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Get down and prepare meal of parched barley for us. So he got down and prepared the meal of parched barley and offered him, and the apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) drank that (liquid meal). He then told with the gesture of his hand that when the sun sank from that side and the night appeared from that side, then the observer of the fast should break it. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2423. ------------------------------ Chapter : The time for breaking the fast and ending of day. Ibn Abi Aufa (Allah be pleased with him) reported: We were with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on a journey. When the sun sank he said to a person: Get down and prepare barley meal for us. Upon this he said: Messenger of Allah, let there be dusk. (He the Holy Prophet) said: Get down and prepare barley meal for us. He (the person) said: There is still (the light of) day upon us. (But) he got down (in obedience to the command of the Holy Prophet) and prepared a barley meal for him and he (the Holy Prophet) drank that (liquid meal) and then said: When you see the night approaching from that side (west) (and he pointed towards the east with his hand), then the observer of the fast should break it. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2424. ------------------------------ Chapter : The time for breaking the fast and ending of day. Abdullah b. Abi Aufa (Allah be pleased with him) reported: We travelled with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as he had been observing fast. When the sun sank he said: So and so, get down and prepare barley meal for us. The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2425. ------------------------------ Chapter : The time for breaking the fast and ending of day. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Ibn Abi Aufa (Allah be pleased with him) through another chain of transmitters (but with a sight alteration of words): In this hadith transmitted by one of the narrators (neither these words are found): During the month of Ramadan." nor his statement: "And the night prevails from that side (the eastern side)." (These words are found in the narration of)Hushaim only. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2426. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to observe uninterrupted fasting. Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with both of them) said that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) forbade uninterrupted fasting. They (some of the Companions) said: You yourself fast uninterruptedly, whereupon he said: I am not like you. I am fed and supplied drink (by Allah). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2427. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to observe uninterrupted fasting. Ibn 'Umar reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed fasts uninterruptedly in Ramadan and the people (in his wake) did this. But he forbade them to do so. It was said to him (to the Holy Prophet): You yourself observe the fasts uninterruptedly (but you forbid us to do so) Upon this he said: I am not like you; I am fed and supplied drink (by Allah). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2428. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to observe uninterrupted fasting. A hadith like this has been transmitted by Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with both of them), but he did not make mention of (the words): "During the month of Ramadan." Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2429. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to observe uninterrupted fasting. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) forbade (his Companions) from observing fast uninterruptedly. One of the Muslims said: Messenger of Allah, you yourself observe Saum Wisal. whereupon the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Who among you is like me? I spend night (in a state) that my Allah feeds me and provides me drink. When they (the Companions of the Holy Prophet) did not agree in abandoning the uninterrupted fast, then the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) also observed this fast with them for a day, and then for a day. They then saw the new moon and he (the Holy Prophet) said: If the appearance of the new moon were delayed. I would have observed more (fasts) with you (and he did it) by way of warning to them as they had not agreed to refrain (from observing Saum Wisal) Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2430. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to observe uninterrupted fasting. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Abstain from Saum-Wisal. They (his Companions) said: Messenger of Allah, but you observe Saum Wisal. Upon this he said: You are not like me in this matter, for I spend my night (in a state) that my Lord feeds me and provides me drink Devote yourselves to the deeds (the burden of which) you can bear. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2431. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to observe uninterrupted fasting. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying (the words as said in the previous hadith) but with this alteration (of words): "Take upon yourselves (the burden of the deeds) for which you have the strength to bear." Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2432. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to observe uninterrupted fasting. Abu Huraira reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) forbade (his Companions) to observe Saum Wisal. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2433. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to observe uninterrupted fasting. Anas (Allah be pleased with him) reported The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was observing prayer during Ramadan. I came and stood by his side. Then another man came and he stood likewise till we became a group. When the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) perceived that we were behind him, he lightened the prayer. He then went to his abode and observed such (a long) prayer (the like of which) he never observed with us. When it was morning we said to him: Did you perceive us during the night? Upon this he said: Yes, it was this (realisation) that induced me to do that which I did. He (the narrator) said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) began to observe Saum Wisal at the end of the month (of Ramadan), and some persons among his Companions began to observe this uninterrupted fast, whereupon the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: What about such persons who observe uninterrupted fasts? You are not like me. By Allah. if the month were lengthened for me, I would have observed Saum Wisal, so that those who act with an exaggeration would (have been obliged) to abandon their exaggeration.1501 Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2434. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to observe uninterrupted fasting. Anas (Allah be pleased with him) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed Saum Wisal during the early part of the month of Ramadan. The people among Muslims also observed uninterrupted fast. This (news) reached him (the Holy Prophet) and he said: Had the month been lengthened for me I would have continued observing Saum Wisal, so that those who act with forced hardness would (have been obliged) to abandon it. You are not like me (or he said): I am not like you. I continue to do so (in a state) that my Lord feeds me and provides me drink. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2435. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to observe uninterrupted fasting. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) said: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) forbade them (his Companions) to observe Saum Wisal out of mercy for them. They said: You (Holy Prophet) yourself observe it. Upon this he said: I am not like you. My Lord feeds me and provides me drink. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2436. ------------------------------ Chapter : Kissing is not forbidden while fasting if one is not urged by sexual lust. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) said that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) kissed one of his wives while he was fasting, and then she ('Aisha) smiled (as she narrated). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2437. ------------------------------ Chapter : Kissing is not forbidden while fasting if one is not urged by sexual lust. Sufyan reported: I said to 'Abd al-Rahman b. Qasim: Have you heard from your father narrating from 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) that he kissed her while observing fast? He ('Abd al-Rahman b. Qasim) kept silence for a short while and then said: "Yes." Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2438. ------------------------------ Chapter : Kissing is not forbidden while fasting if one is not urged by sexual lust. 'Aisha reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) used to kiss me while observing fast; and who among you can control his desire as the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) could control his desire. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2439. ------------------------------ Chapter : Kissing is not forbidden while fasting if one is not urged by sexual lust. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) used to kiss (his wives) while fasting and embraced (them) while fasting; but he had the greatest mastery over his desire among you. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2440. ------------------------------ Chapter : Kissing is not forbidden while fasting if one is not urged by sexual lust. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to kiss (his wives) while fasting; and he had the greatest control over his desire (as compared with you). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2441. ------------------------------ Chapter : Kissing is not forbidden while fasting if one is not urged by sexual lust. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) said that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to embrace (his wives) while fasting. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2442. ------------------------------ Chapter : Kissing is not forbidden while fasting if one is not urged by sexual lust. Aswad reported: I and Masruq went to 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) and asked her if the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) embraced (his wives) while fasting. She said: Yes; but he had the greatest control over his desire among you: or he was one of those who had control over his desire. It is further narrated on the authority of Aswad and Masruq that they went to the Mother of the Believers and they asked her (and the rest of the hadith is the same) Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2443. ------------------------------ Chapter : Kissing is not forbidden while fasting if one is not urged by sexual lust. 'Urwa b. Zubair narrated that 'Aisha the Mother of the Believers (Allah be pleased with her) informed him that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) kissed her while fasting. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2444. ------------------------------ Chapter : Kissing is not forbidden while fasting if one is not urged by sexual lust. A hadith like this has been narrated by Yahya b. Abu Kathir with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2445. ------------------------------ Chapter : Kissing is not forbidden while fasting if one is not urged by sexual lust. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to kiss her during the month of fasting. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2446. ------------------------------ Chapter : Kissing is not forbidden while fasting if one is not urged by sexual lust. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) kissed (his wives) during Ramadan while observing fast. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2447. ------------------------------ Chapter : Kissing is not forbidden while fasting if one is not urged by sexual lust. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that Allah's Apostle (peace be upon him) kissed (his wives) while fasting. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2448. ------------------------------ Chapter : Kissing is not forbidden while fasting if one is not urged by sexual lust. Hafsa (Allah be pleased with her) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) kissed (his wives) while fasting. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2449. ------------------------------ Chapter : Kissing is not forbidden while fasting if one is not urged by sexual lust. A hadith like this has been narrated by Hafsa (Allah be pleased with her) through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2450. ------------------------------ Chapter : Kissing is not forbidden while fasting if one is not urged by sexual lust. Umar b Abu Salama reported that he asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him): Should one observing fast kiss (his wife)? The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to him: Ask her (Umm Salama). She informed him that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) did that, where upon he said: Messenger of Allah, Allah pardoned thee all thy sins, the previous and the later ones. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him)) said: By Allah, I am the most God conscious among you and I fear Him most among you. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2451. ------------------------------ Chapter : There is no harm in observing fast if one is Junbi even after dawn. Abu Bakr (he is Abu Bakr b. Abd al-Rahman b. Harith) reported: I heard Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) narrating that he who is overtaken by dawn in a state of seminal emission should not observe fast. I made a mention of it to 'Abd al-Rahman b. Harith (i.e. to his father) but he denied it. 'Abd al-Rahman went and I also went along with him till we came to 'Aisha and Umm Salama (Allah be pleased with both of them) and Abd al-Rahman asked them about it. Both of them said: (At times it so happened) that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) woke up in the morning in a state of junub (but without seminal emission in a dream) and observed fast He (the narrator) said: We then proceeded till we went to Marwan and Abd al-Rahman made a mention of it to him. Upon this Marwan said: I stress upon you (with an oath) that you better go to Abu Huraira and refer to him what is said about it. So we came to Abu Huraira and Abu Bakr had been with us throughout and 'Abd al-Rahman made a mention of it to him, whereupon Abu Huraira said: Did they (the two wives of the Holy Prophet) tell you this? He replied: Yes Upon this (Abu Huraira) said: They have better knowledge. Abu Huraira then attributed that what was said about it to Fadl b. 'Abbas and said: I heard it from Fadl and not from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him). Abu Huraira then retracted from what he used to say about it. Ibn Juraij (one of the narrators) reported: I asked 'Abd al-Malik, if they (the two wives) said (made the statement) in regard to Ramadan, whereupon he said: It was so, and he (the Holy Prophet) (woke up in the) morning in a state of junub which was not due to the wet dream and then observed fast. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2452. ------------------------------ Chapter : There is no harm in observing fast if one is Junbi even after dawn. 'Aisha, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), said: The dawn broke upon the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) during the Ramadan in a state of junub not because of sexual dream (but on account of intercourse) and he washed himself and observed fast. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2453. ------------------------------ Chapter : There is no harm in observing fast if one is Junbi even after dawn. Abu Bakr reported that Marwan sent him to Umm Salama to ask whether a person should observe fast who is in a state of junub and the dawn breaks upon him, whereupon she said that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) (was at times) junbi on account of intercourse and not due to sexual dream, and the dawn broke upon him, but he neither broke the fast nor recompensed. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2454. ------------------------------ Chapter : There is no harm in observing fast if one is Junbi even after dawn. Abu Bakr b. 'Abd al-Rahman b. al-Harith b. Hisham reported on the authority of 'Aisha and Umm Salama, the wives of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him): The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) at times got up in the morning in a state of junub on account of having a sexual intercourse (with his wives during night) but not due to sexual dreams in the month of Ramadan, and would observe fast. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2455. ------------------------------ Chapter : There is no harm in observing fast if one is Junbi even after dawn. 'Aisha reported that a person came to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) asking for a fatwa (religious verdict). She ('Aisha) had been overhearing it from behind the curtain. 'Aisha added that he (the person) had said: Messenger of Allah, (the time) of prayer overtakes me as I am in a state of junub; should I observe fast (in this state)? Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: (At times the time) of prayer overtakes me while I am in a state of junub, and I observe fast (in that very state), whereupon he said: Messenger of Allah, you are not like us Allah has pardoned all your sins, the previous ones and the later ones. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) said: By Allah, I hope I am the most God-fearing of you, and possess the best knowledge among you of those (things) against which I should guard. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2456. ------------------------------ Chapter : There is no harm in observing fast if one is Junbi even after dawn. Sulaiman b. Yasar reported that he asked Umm Salama whether a person (who gets up) in the morning in a state of junub should observe fast. She said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) (at times) got up in the morning in a state of junub, not because of sexual dreams (but on account of intercourse at night), and then observed fast. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2457. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sexual Intercourse is completely forbidden during the day in the month of Ramadhan. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported that a person came to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: Messenger of Allah, I am undone. He (the Holy Prophet) said: What has brought about your ruin? He said: I have had intercourse with my wife during the month of Ramadan. Upon this he (the Holy prophet) said: Can you find a slave to set him free? He said: NO He (the Holy Prophet again) said: Can you observe fast for two consecutive months? He said: No. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Can you provide food to sixty poor people?, He said: No. He then sat down and (in the meanwhile) there was brought to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) a basket which contained dates. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Give these (dates) in charity. He (the man) said: Am I to give to one who is poorer than I? There is no family poorer than mine between the two lava plains of Medina. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) laughed so that his molar teeth became visible and said: Go and give it to your family to eat. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2458. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sexual Intercourse is completely forbidden during the day in the month of Ramadhan. A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of Muhammad b. Muslim al-Zuhri with the same chain of transmitters, and he said: There was brought an 'araq containing dates, an 'araq being a huge basket. But in this hadith no mention has been made of (the fact) that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) laughed till his molar teeth became visible. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2459. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sexual Intercourse is completely forbidden during the day in the month of Ramadhan. Abu Huraira reported that a person had intercourse with his wife during Ramadan (while fasting). He asked for the religious verdict (about it) from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), whereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: Can you find a slave (to grant him freedom)? He said: No. He (the Holy Prophet again) said: Can you afford to observe fasts for two (consecutive) months? He said: No. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Then feed sixty poor men. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2460. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sexual Intercourse is completely forbidden during the day in the month of Ramadhan. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Zuhri with the same chain of transmitters that a person broke fast in Ramadan whereupon the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) commanded him to free a slave (as an atonement), and the rest of the hadith is the same as narrated by Ibn Uyaina. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2461. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sexual Intercourse is completely forbidden during the day in the month of Ramadhan. Humaid b. 'Abd al-Rahman reported that Abu Huraira had narrated to him that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) commanded the person (who) broke the fast in Ramadan to free a slave or observe fasts for two (consecutive) months or feed sixty poor persons. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2462. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sexual Intercourse is completely forbidden during the day in the month of Ramadhan. This hadith has been narrated with the same chain of transmitters on the authority of Zuhri. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2463. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sexual Intercourse is completely forbidden during the day in the month of Ramadhan. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that a person came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: I am burnt, whereupon the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: How is it? He (the person) said: I had intercourse with my wife during the day in Ramadan. Upon this (the Holy Prophet) said: Give charity, give charity. He (the person) said: There is nothing with me. He commanded him to sit down, (In the meanwhile) there were brought to him (to the Holy Prophet) two baskets containing eatables, whereupon the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) told him to give them as sadaqa. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2464. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sexual Intercourse is completely forbidden during the day in the month of Ramadhan. 'Abbad b. Abdullah b. Zubair narrated that he heard 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) saying: A person came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and he then narrated the hadith. But (neither these words are found):"Give charity, give charity" (nor) his words: "during the day time". Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2465. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sexual Intercourse is completely forbidden during the day in the month of Ramadhan. Abbad b. Abdullah b. Zubair reported that he had heard 'Aisha, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), as saying: A person came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) in the mosque during (the month of) Ramadan and said: Messenger of Allah, I am burnt I am burnt, whereupon the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) asked him as to what the matter was. Upon this he said: I had intercourse with my wife (in a state of fasting) Thereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: Give charity. Upon this he said: Apostle of Allah, I swear by God, there is nothing with me (to give in charity) as I do not possess anything. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Sit down. So he sat down and he was in this very state when there came a person urging a donkey with a load of eatables upon it. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Where is that burnt one who was just here? Thereupon the person stood up. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Give this (eatables brought by the man) in charity. Upon this the person said: Messenger of Allah, can there be anyone else (more deserving than I)? By Allah, we are hungry, we have nothing with us. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) said: Then eat (these eatables). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2466. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing the fast or not observing it in the month of Ramadan for a traveller. Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with him) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) went out during the month of Ramadan in the year of Victory (when Mecca was conquered) and was fasting till he reached Kadid (a canal situated at a distance of forty-two miles from Mecca) and he then broke the fast. And it was the habit of the Companions of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) to follow him in every new thing (or act). So they followed him also (in this matter). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2467. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing the fast or not observing it in the month of Ramadan for a traveller. This hadith is narrated on the authority of Zuhri with the same chain of transmitters. Yahya (one of the narrators) said that Sufyan (the narrator) had stated: I do not know whose statement it is: "It is the last word of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) which is accepted as (final as it abrogates the previous ones)." Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2468. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing the fast or not observing it in the month of Ramadan for a traveller. It has been narrated on the authority of Zuhri with the same chain of transmitters that breaking of fast (in a journey) is the final of the two commands (whether one may fast or one may break it), and it is the last command of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) which is to be accepted as final. Zuhri said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) marched on Mecca on the morning of 14th of Ramadan (lit when thirteen nights had passed). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2469. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing the fast or not observing it in the month of Ramadan for a traveller. A hadlth like this has been transmitted on the authority of Ibn Shibab who said that they (the Companions of the Holy Prophet) followed the latest of his commands and looked upon it as one abrogating (the previous ones) and the most firm. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2470. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing the fast or not observing it in the month of Ramadan for a traveller. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with him) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) journeyed during the month of Ramadan in a slate of fasting till he reached 'Usfan. He then ordered a cup containing drinking water and he drank that openly so that the people might see it, and broke the fast (and did not resume it) till he reached Mecca. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with him) said: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) fasted and broke the fast, so he who wished fasted and he who wished to break it broke it. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2471. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing the fast or not observing it in the month of Ramadan for a traveller. Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with him) reported: Do not condemn one who observes fast, or one who does not observe (in a journey) for the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed fast in a journey or he did not observe it (too). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2472. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing the fast or not observing it in the month of Ramadan for a traveller. Jabir b. 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) went out to Mecca in Ramadan in the year of Victory, and he and the people fasted till he came to Kura' al-Ghamim and the people also fasted. He then called for a cup of water which he raised till the people saw it, and then he drank. He was told afterwards that some people had continued to fast, and he said: These people are the disobedient ones; these are the disobedient ones. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2473. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing the fast or not observing it in the month of Ramadan for a traveller. This hadith has been narrated by Ja'far with the some chain of transmitters and he added: It was said to him (to the Holy Prophet): There are people to whom fasting has become unbearable and they are waiting how you do. He (the Holy Prophet) then called for a cup of water when it was afternoon. The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2474. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing the fast or not observing it in the month of Ramadan for a traveller. Jabir b. 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported that in the course of a journey Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) saw a man, people crowding around him and providing him a shade. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) said: What is the matter with him? They said: He is a person observing fast. Whereupon the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: It is no righteousness that you fast on journey. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2475. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing the fast or not observing it in the month of Ramadan for a traveller. 'Amr b. al-Hasan is reported to have said that he heard Jabir b. 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with both of them) as saying that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) saw a man. The rest of the hadith is the same as mentioned above. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2476. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing the fast or not observing it in the month of Ramadan for a traveller. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters but with this addition that he (the Holy Prophet) said: "Take advantage of the concession of Allah Who Wanted it to you." When he (one of the narrators) asked him (the other one, Yabya b. Abi Kathar) he did not retain it in his mind. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2477. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing the fast or not observing it in the month of Ramadan for a traveller. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri (Allah be pleased with him) reported: We went out on an expedition with Allah's Messenger(may peace be upon him)on the 16th of Ramadan. Some of us fasted and some of us broke the fast. But neither the observer of the fast found fault with one who broke it, nor the breaker of the fast found fault with one who observed it. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2478. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing the fast or not observing it in the month of Ramadan for a traveller. A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of Qatada with the same chain of transmitters by different narrators (except this difference) that in the hadith transmitted by Taimi and Umar b. Amir and Hisham (the date of setting out is) 18th, and in the hadith transmitted by Sa'id it is the 12th, and in the one transmitted by Shu'ba it is the 17th or 19th. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2479. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing the fast or not observing it in the month of Ramadan for a traveller. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri (Allah be pleased with him) reported: We went out on an expedition with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) during Ramadan and neither the observer of the fast was found fault with for his fasting, nor the breaker of the fast for breaking it. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2480. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing the fast or not observing it in the month of Ramadan for a traveller. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri (Allah be pleased with him) reported: We went out on an expedition with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) during Ramadan. Some of us observed the fast and some of us broke it. Neither the observer of the fast had any grudge against one who broke it, nor the breaker of the fast had any grudge against one who had fasted They knew that he who had strength enough (to bear its rigour) fasted and that was good, and they also found that he who felt weakness (and could not bear the burden) broke it, and that was also good. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2481. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing the fast or not observing it in the month of Ramadan for a traveller. Abu Nadra reported Abu Sa'id al. Khudri and Jabir b. Abdullah as saying: We travelled with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). The observer of the fast observed it, and the breaker of the fast broke it, but none of them found fault with each other. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2482. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing the fast or not observing it in the month of Ramadan for a traveller. Humaid reported that Anas (Allah be pleased with him) was asked about fasting during Ramadan while travelling. He said: We travelled with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) during the month of Ramadan, but neither the observer of the fast found fault with the breaker of the fast, nor the breaker of the fast found fault with the observer of the fast. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2483. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of observing the fast or not observing it in the month of Ramadan for a traveller. Abu Khalid al-Ahmar narrated from Humaid who said: I went out and was fasting; they said to me: Break (lit go back, repeat). He said that Anas reported that the Companions of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to set out on a journey and neither the observer of the fast found fault with the breaker of the fast, nor the breaker of the fast found fault with the observer of the fast. (One of the narrators Humaid said): I met Ibn Abi Mulaika who informed me the same thing on the authority of 'Aisha. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2484. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reward of one who does not observe fast because of a religious duty. Anas (Allah be pleased with him) reported: We were with the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) on a journey. Some of us had been observing the fast and some of us had not been fasting. We got down at a place on a hot day. Most of us had the cloth for shelter. There were also those amongst us who sheltered (themselves against the rays of the) sun with the help of their hands. The observers of the fast fell down (on account of weakness). Those who had not observed it got up and pitched tents and watered the mounts. Thereupon the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The breakers of the fast have taken away the reward today. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2485. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reward of one who does not observe fast because of a religious duty. Anas (Allah be pleased with him) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was journeying (along with his Companions). Some of them had observed the fast whereas the others had broken it. Those who did not fast girded up their loins and worked, but the observers of the fast were too weak to work. Upon this he (the Apostle of Allah) said: Today the breakers of the fast have gone with the reward. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2486. ------------------------------ Chapter : The reward of one who does not observe fast because of a religious duty. Qaza'a reported: I came to Abu Sa'id al-Khudri (Allah be pleased with him) and he was surrounded (by people), and when they dispersed I said to him: I am not going to ask you about what these people were asking. I ask you about fasting on a journey. Upon this he said: We travelled with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) towards Mecca and we had been observing fast. We halted at a place. There the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: You are nearing your enemy and breaking of fast would give you greater strength, and that was a concession (given to us). But some of us continued to observe the fast and some of us broke it. We then got down at another place and he (the Holy Prophet) said: You are going to encounter the enemy in the morning and breaking of the fast would give you strength, so break the fast. As it was a point of stress, so we broke the fast. But subsequently we saw ourselves observing the fast with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on a journey. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2487. ------------------------------ Chapter : Choice for observing fast and breaking it on a journey. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that Hamza b. 'Amr al-Aslami asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) about fasting on a journey, and he (the Holy Prophet) said: Fast if you like and break it if you like. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2488. ------------------------------ Chapter : Choice for observing fast and breaking it on a journey. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that Hamza b. Amr al-Aslami asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) thus: Messenger of Allah, I am a person devoted much to fasting. Should I fast during the journey? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Fast if you like and break it if you like. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2489. ------------------------------ Chapter : Choice for observing fast and breaking it on a journey. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Hisham with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2490. ------------------------------ Chapter : Choice for observing fast and breaking it on a journey. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Hisham with the same chain of transmitters that Hamza said: I am a person much used to fasting. Should I fast during the journey? (The rest of the hadith is the same.) Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2491. ------------------------------ Chapter : Choice for observing fast and breaking it on a journey. Hamza b. 'Amr al-Aslami (Allah be pleased with him) said: Messenger of Allah, I find strength in me for fasting on a journey; is there any sin upon me (in doing it)? Thereupon the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: It is a concession from Allah.He who took advantage of it, it is good for him, and he who preferred to observe fast, there is no sin upon him. Harun (one of the narrators) in his narration said: "It is a concession, and he made no mention of 'from Allah'". Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2492. ------------------------------ Chapter : Choice for observing fast and breaking it on a journey. Abu Darda' (Allah be pleased with him) reported: We set out during the month of Ramadan with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) in such an intense heat that one of us would place his hand over his head (in order to protect himself) against the excessive heat, and none among us was observing the fast, except the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and 'Abdullah b. Rawaha. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2493. ------------------------------ Chapter : Choice for observing fast and breaking it on a journey. Abu Darda' reported: We were with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on some of his journeys on an intensely hot day so much so that a person would place his hand on his head (in order to protect himself) against excessive heat, and none amongst us was fasting but the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and Abdullah b. Rawaha Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2494. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is preferable for the pilgrim not to observe fast in 'Arafat on the day of 'Arafa. Umm al-Fadl bint-al-Harith reported that some people argued about the fasting of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on the day of 'Arafa. Some of them said that he had been fasting, whereas the others said that he had not been fasting. I sent a cup of milk to him while he was riding his camel at 'Arafa, and he drank it. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2495. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is preferable for the pilgrim not to observe fast in 'Arafat on the day of 'Arafa. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abu Nadr with the same chain of transmitters, but he did not mention that he was mounting (riding on) his camel. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2496. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is preferable for the pilgrim not to observe fast in 'Arafat on the day of 'Arafa. This hadith has been narrated by Abu Nadr on the authority of Umair, the freed slave of Umm al-Fadl, through the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2497. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is preferable for the pilgrim not to observe fast in 'Arafat on the day of 'Arafa. Umm al-Fadl (Allah be pleased with her) is reported to have said that some people among the Companions of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) were in doubt about fasting on the day of 'Arafa and we were with him on that day. I (Umm al-Fadl) sent him a cup of milk and he was halting at 'Arafa, and he drank that. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2498. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is preferable for the pilgrim not to observe fast in 'Arafat on the day of 'Arafa. Kuraib, the freed slave of Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with him), reported from Maimuna, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), that people had doubt about the fasting of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) on the day of 'Arafa. Maimuna sent him a cup of milk and he was halting at a place and he drank it and the people were seeing him. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2499. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her)reported that the Quraish used to fast on the day of 'Ashura in the pre-Islamic days and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) also observed it. When he migrated to Medina, he himself observed this fast and commanded (others) to observe it. But when fasting during the month of Ramadan was made obligatory he said: He who wishes to observe this fast may do so, and he who wishes to abandon it may do so. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2500. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). This hadith is narrated on the authority of Hisham with the same chain of transmitters, but he made no mention in the first part of the hadith that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe fast, and said about the second part that he abandoned the (fast) of Ashura, and he who wished observed the fast and who wished otherwise abandoned it, and he did not hold it as the words of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) as mentioned in the narration transmitted by Jarir. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2501. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported. In the Pre-Islamic days fast was observed on the day of Ashura, but with the advent of Islam (its position was ascertained as that of a voluntary fast). Then he who wished to fast fasted, and he who liked to abandon it abandoned it. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2502. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had ordered to observe fast (on 'Ashura) before the fasting in Ramadan was made obligatory. But when it became obligatory, then he who wished fasted on the day of Ashura, and he who wished did not observe it (on that day). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2503. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that the Quraish used to observe fast on the day of Ashura during the pre-Islamic days. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) then commanded to fast on that day till (fasting) in Ramadan became obligatory. Then the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who wished to fast should do so and he who wished to break it may do so. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2504. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). Abdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported that (the Arabs of) pre-Islamic days used to observe fast on the day of Ashura and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed it and the Muslims too (observed it) before fasting in Ramadan became obligatory. But when it became obligatory, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: 'Ashura is one of the days of Allah, so he who wished should observe fast and he who wished otherwise should abandon it. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2505. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of Abdullah through the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2506. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) said that the day of 'Ashura was mentioned before the Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him). Thereupon the Messenger of Allah,(may peace be upon him) said: That was a day on which the people of pre-Islamic days used to observe fast. So he who amongst you likes to observe fast should do so, and he who does not like it should abandon it. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2507. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). Abdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported that he heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) say about the day of Ashura: It is a day on which the people of pre-Islamic days observed fast. So he who liked to fast on this day should do so, and he who liked to abandon it should abandon it. 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with him) did not observe fast except when it coincided (with the days when he was in the habit of observing voluntary fasts during every month). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2508. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). Abdullah b. Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported that the day of 'Ashura was mentioned before the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he narrated a hadith like one (narrated above). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2509. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). 'Abdullah b. Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported that the day of 'Ashura was mentioned before the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he said: It is a day when the people in the pre-Islamic days need to observe fast, so he who wishes to observe fast should do so, and he who wishes to abandon it should do so. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2510. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). Abd al-Rahman b. Yazid said: When al-Ash'ath b. Qais entered the house of 'Abdullah he was having his breakfast. He ('Abdullah b. Umar) said: Abd Muhammad (al-Asha'th), come near to the breakfast. Thereupon he said: Is not today the day of 'Ashura? He ('Abd al-Rahman) said: Do you know what the day of 'Ashura is? He said: What is it? He said: It is a day on which the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe fast before the (fasting) in the month of Ramadan (became) obligatory. But when it became obligatory the (fasting of 'Ashura) was abandoned (as compulsory). Abu Kuraib said: He (the Holy Prophet) abandoned it. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2511. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). This hadith has been narrated from Jarir on the authority of A'mash with the same chain of transmitters and he said (these words with a little bit of variation from the previous hadith): When (fasting) in Ramadan was (made) obligatory, he abandoned it (the practice of observing fast on Ashura). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2512. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). Qais b Sakan reported that al-Ash'ath b. Qais went to 'Abdullah on the day of 'Ashura while he was eating. He said: Abu Muhammad, come near and dine. Upon this he said: I am fasting. Thereupon he said: We used to observe fast and then (this practice) was abandoned. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2513. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). 'Alqama reported that Ash'ath b. Qais went to Ibn Mas'udd while he was eating on the day of Ashura. Thereupon he said: Abu Abd al-Rahman, it is the day of 'Ashura (and you are eating). Upon this he said: Fast was observed on (this day) before the (fasting) in Ramadan was made obligatory, but when it was made obligatory, (fasting on the day of 'Ashura) was abandoned. So if you are not fasting, then take food. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2514. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). Jabir b Samura reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) commanded us to observe fast on the day of Ashura and exhorted us to do it and was particular about it But when (fasting) in Ramadan was made obligatory, he henceforth neither commanded us nor forbade us, nor was he so particular about it. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2515. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). Abd al-Rahman reported that he heard Mu'awiya b. Abu Sufyan delivering a sermon in Medina. i.e. when he came there (for Hajj). He delivered a sermon on the day of 'Ashura and said: People of Medina, where are your scholars? I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) say on this very day: It is the day of 'Ashura. Allah has not made fasting on This day obligatory for you but I am fasting. He who likes to observe fast among you should do so, and he who likes not to observe it may not observe it. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2516. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of Ibn Shihab through the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2517. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Zuhri with the same chain of transmitters that be heard Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying on a similar day: I am fasting today, so he who wishes to observe fast should do so; but he did not make mention of the rest of the hadith. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2518. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported that when Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came to Medina, he found the Jews observing the fast on the day of Ashura. They (the Jews) were asked about it and they said: It is the day on which Allah granted victory to Moses and (his people) Bani Isra'il over the Pharaoh and we observe fast out of gratitude to Him. Upon this the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: We have a closer connection with Moses than you have, and he commanded to observe fast on this day. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2519. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). This hadith has been narrated by Ibn Bishr with the same chain of transmitters (but with a slight variation) that he (the Holy Prophet) inquired of them (Jews) about it (fasting on the day of 'Ashura). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2520. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). Ibn'Abbas (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) arrived in Medina and found the Jews observing fast on the day of 'Ashura. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to them: What is the (significance) of this day that you observe fast on it? They said: It is the day of great (significance) when Allah delivered Moses and his people, and drowned the Pharaoh and his people, and Moses observed fast out of gratitude and we also observe it. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: We have more right, and we have a closer connection with Moses than you have; so Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) observed fast (on the day of 'Ashura), and gave orders that it should be observed. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2521. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Ayyub with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2522. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). Abu Musa (Allah be pleased with him) reported: The day of 'Ashura was one which the Jews respected and they treated it as Id. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: You also observe fast on this day. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2523. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). Abu Musa reported that the people of Khaibar (most of them were Jews) observed fast on the day of 'Ashura and they treated it as 'Id and gave their women ornaments and beautiful dress to wear. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: You (only) observe fast on this day. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2524. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). Ibn Abbas was asked about observing of fast on the day of Ashura, whereupon he said: I do not know Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) singling out any day's fast and considering it more excellent than another, except this day (the day of Ashura) and this month, meaning the month of Ramadan. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2525. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the day of 'Ashura (1Oth of Muharram). A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of 'Ubaidullah b. Abi Yazid. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2526. ------------------------------ Chapter : On which day the fast is to be observed in Muharram. Hakam b. al-'Araj reported: I went to Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be Pleased with both of them) and he was reclining using his mantle as a pillow near the fountain of Zamzam. I said to him: Tell me about fasting on Ashura. He said: When you see the new moon of Muharram then count the (days) and observe fast on the 9th. I said to him: Is it how the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed the fast? He said: Yes. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2527. ------------------------------ Chapter : On which day the fast is to be observed in Muharram. Hakam b. 'Araj reported: I asked Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) as he was reclining using his cloak as a pillow near Zamzam about fasting on 'Ashura. The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2528. ------------------------------ Chapter : On which day the fast is to be observed in Muharram. Ibn 'Abbas reported that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) fasted on the day of 'Ashura and commanded that it should he observed as a fast, they (his Companions) said to him: Messenger of Allah, it is a day which the Jews and Christians hold in high esteem. Thereupon the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: When the next year comes, God willing, we would observe fast on the 9th But the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) died before the advent of the next year. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2529. ------------------------------ Chapter : On which day the fast is to be observed in Muharram. Abdullah b 'Abbas reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said: If I live till the next (year), I would definitely observe fast on the 9th, and the narration transmitted by Abu Bakr is: "He meant the day of Ashura." Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2530. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who ate on the day of Ashuara should abstain (from eating) for the rest of the day (as a mark of respect). Salama b. al-Akwa' (Allah be pleased with him) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sent a person of the tribe of Aslam on the day of 'Ashura and commanded him to declare to the people to observe fast in case they had not observed it, and to complete fast till evening if they had taken food Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2531. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who ate on the day of Ashuara should abstain (from eating) for the rest of the day (as a mark of respect). Rubayyi' daughter of Mu'awwidh b. 'Afra' said that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sent (a person) on the morning of Ashura to the villages of Ansar around Medina (with this message): He who got up in the morning fasting (without eating anything) he should complete his fast, and he who had had his breakfast in the morning, he should complete the rest of the day (without food). The Companions said; We henceforth observed fast on it (on the day of 'Ashura) and, God willing, made our children observe that. We went to the mosque and made toys out of wool for them and when anyone felt hungry and wept for food we gave them these toys till it was the time to break the fast. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2532. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who ate on the day of Ashuara should abstain (from eating) for the rest of the day (as a mark of respect). Khalid b. Dhakwan reported: I asked Rubayyi' daughter of Mu'awwidh about fasting on the day of 'Ashura. Thereupon she said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) sent his messenger to the villages of the Ansar, and the rest of the hadith is the same (but with this variation that one of the Companions) said: "We used to make toys out of wool and took (them to the mosque) along with us. When they (the children)asked us for food, we gave them these toys to play with, and these made them forgetful till they completed their fast." Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2533. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to observe fast on 'Id-ul-Fitr and 'Id-al-Adha. Abu Ubaid, the freed slave of Ibn Azhar, reported: I observed Id along with Umar b. al-Khattab (Allah be pleased with him). He came (out in an open space) and prayed and (after) completing it addressed the people and said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) has forbidden the observing of fast on these two days. One is the day of Fitr (at the end of your fasts), and the second one, the day when you eat (the meat) of your sacrifices. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2534. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to observe fast on 'Id-ul-Fitr and 'Id-al-Adha. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) forbade to observe fast on these two days. 'Id-ul-Adha bi and 'Id-ul-Fitr. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2535. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to observe fast on 'Id-ul-Fitr and 'Id-al-Adha. Qaza'a related from Abu Sa'id. He said: I heard from him (Abu Sa'id) a hadith which impressed me, and I said to him: Did you hear it from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him)? Thereupon he said: (Is it possible) that (I should) say about the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) that which I have not heard? I heard him saying: It is not proper to fast on two days, Adha and Fitr (at the end) of Ramadan. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2536. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to observe fast on 'Id-ul-Fitr and 'Id-al-Adha. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri (Allah be pleased with him) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) forbade to observe fast on two days the day of Fitr and the day of Sacrifice ('Id-ul-Adha). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2537. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to observe fast on 'Id-ul-Fitr and 'Id-al-Adha. Ziyad b. Jubair reported that a person came to Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) and said: I had taken a vow that I would fast on the day (but it accidentally) synchronises with the day of Adha or the day of Fitr. Thereupon Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with him) said: Allah, the Exalted, has commanded fulfilling of the vow, but the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) has forbidden the observance of fast on this day. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2538. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to observe fast on 'Id-ul-Fitr and 'Id-al-Adha. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) said that the Prophet (may peace be upon him) forbade to observe fast on two days-the day of Fitr and the day of Adha. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2539. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to observe fast on 'Id-ul-Fitr and 'Id-al-Adha. Nubaisha al-Hudhali reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The days of Tashriq are the days of eating and drinking. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2540. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to observe fast on 'Id-ul-Fitr and 'Id-al-Adha. Nabaisha reported that Khalid said: I met Abu Malih and asked him and he narrated it to me from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), a hadith like one (narrated above) with this addition: "And remembrance of Allah" Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2541. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to observe fast on 'Id-ul-Fitr and 'Id-al-Adha. Ibn Ka'b b. Malik reported on the authority of his father that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sent him and Aus b. Hadathan during the days of Tashriq to make this announcement: None but the believer would be admitted into Paradise, and the days of Mina' are the days meant for eating and drinking. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2542. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to observe fast on 'Id-ul-Fitr and 'Id-al-Adha. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Ibrahim b. Tahman with the same chain of transmitters but with this variation that he said: Both of them made the announcement." Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2543. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of fasting on Friday alone. Muhammad b. 'Abbas b. Ja'far reported: I asked Jabir b. 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with both of them) as he was circumambulating the House (Ka'ba) whether the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had forbidden the fasting on Friday, whereupon he said: Yes, by the Lord of this House. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2544. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of fasting on Friday alone. Muhammad b. 'Abbas b. Ja'far reported that he asked Jabir b. Abdullah (Allah be pleased with them), whether he had heard like this from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2545. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of fasting on Friday alone. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: None among you should observe fast on Friday, but only that he observes fast before it and after it. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2546. ------------------------------ Chapter : Disapproval of fasting on Friday alone. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: Do not single out the night (preceding) Friday among the nights for prayer and do not single out Friday among days for fasting but only when anyone among you is accustomed to fast (on dates) which coincide with this day (Friday). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2547. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abrogation of the words of Allah: "And as for those who can fast (but do not) the expiation is" by the words: "Whosoever witnesses it he shall have to fast the whole month" (ii. 184). Salama b. Akwa' (Allah be pleased with him) reported that when this verse was revealed: "And as for those who can fast (but do not) expiation is the feeding of a needy person" (ii. 183), (he who liked to observe fast did observe it) and he who felt reluctant to observe it ate and expiated till the verse was revealed which abrogated it. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2548. ------------------------------ Chapter : Abrogation of the words of Allah: "And as for those who can fast (but do not) the expiation is" by the words: "Whosoever witnesses it he shall have to fast the whole month" (ii. 184). Salama b. Akwa' reported: We, during the lifetime of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), in one month of Ramadan (observed fast according to our liking). He who wished to fast lasted and he who wished to break broke it and fed a needy person as an expiation 1544 till this verse was revealed: "He who witnesses among you the month (of Ramadan) he should observe fast during it" (ii. 184). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2549. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of completing the fasts of Ramadhan before the commencement of the coming Ramadhan. Abu Salama reported: I heard 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) as saying: I had to complete some of the fasts of Ramadan, but I could not do it but during the month of Sha'ban due to my duties to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) or with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2550. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of completing the fasts of Ramadhan before the commencement of the coming Ramadhan. This hadith is narrated on the authority of Yahya b. Sa'id with the same chain of transmitters but with this variation that he said that ('Aisha did not observe fast but in Sha'ban) out of regard for the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). (In another version, the words are): "Yahya said: I think it was due to the regard for the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him)." Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2551. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of completing the fasts of Ramadhan before the commencement of the coming Ramadhan. This hadith is reported on the authority of Yahya with the same chain of transmitters but no mention is made of the duty to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2552. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of completing the fasts of Ramadhan before the commencement of the coming Ramadhan. 'Aisha reported: If one amongst us had to break fasts (of Ramadan due to natural reasons, i.e. menses) during the life of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) she could not find it possible to complete them so long she had been in the presence of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) till Sha'ban commenced. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2553. ------------------------------ Chapter : Completing of the fast on behalf of the dead. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: If anyone dies in a state (that he had to complete) some fasts, his heir must fast on his behalf. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2554. ------------------------------ Chapter : Completing of the fast on behalf of the dead. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported: A woman came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: My mother has died, and fasts of a month are due from her. Thereupon he said: Don't you see that if debt was due from her, would you not pay it? She said: Yes (I would pay on her behalf). Thereupon he said: The debt of Allah deserves its payment more than (the payment of anyone else). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2555. ------------------------------ Chapter : Completing of the fast on behalf of the dead. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported: A man came to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: Messenger of Allah, my mother has died (in a state) that she had to observe fasts of a month (of Ramadan). Should I complete (them) on her behalf? thereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: Would you not pay the debt if your mother had died (without paying it)? He said: Yes. He (the Holy Prophet) said: The debt of Allah deserves more that it should he paid. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2556. ------------------------------ Chapter : Completing of the fast on behalf of the dead. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2557. ------------------------------ Chapter : Completing of the fast on behalf of the dead. Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported: A woman came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: Messenger of Allah, my mother has died and there is due from her a fast of vow; should I fast on her behalf? Thereupon he said: You see that if your mother had died in debt, would it not have been paid on her behalf? She said: Yes. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Then observe fast on behalf of your mother. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2558. ------------------------------ Chapter : Completing of the fast on behalf of the dead. Abdullah b. Buraida (Allah be pleased with him) reported on the authority of his father: When we were sitting with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), a woman came to him and said: I had gifted to my mother a maid-servant, and now she (the mother) has died. Thereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: There is a definite reward for you and she (the maid-servant) has been returned to you as an inheritance. She (that woman) again said: Fasts of a month (of Ramadan) are due upon her; should I observe them on her behalf? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Observe fasts on her behalf. She (again) said: She did not perform Hajj, should I perform it on her behalf? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Perform Hajj on her behalf. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2559. ------------------------------ Chapter : Completing of the fast on behalf of the dead. 'Abdullah b. Buraida (Allah be pleased with him) reported on the authority of his father: I was sitting with the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him); the rest of the hadith is the same but with this variation that the (the narrator) said: "Fasts of two months." Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2560. ------------------------------ Chapter : Completing of the fast on behalf of the dead. Ibn Buraida (Allah be pleased with him) reported on the authority of his father: A woman came to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), and the rest of the hadith is the same, but he said: "Fasting of one month." This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Sufyan with the same chain of transmitters in which it is said: "Fasting of two months." Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2561. ------------------------------ Chapter : Completing of the fast on behalf of the dead. Buraida (Allah be pleased with him) reported a similar hadith on the authority of his father that a woman came to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he said: "Fasting for one month." Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2562. ------------------------------ Chapter : When an observer of fast is invited to a feast or someone fights with him, he should say: "I am fasting". Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: If any one of you is invited to a meal when he is fasting, he should say: "I am fasting." Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2563. ------------------------------ Chapter : When an observer of fast is invited to a feast or someone fights with him, he should say: "I am fasting". Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported: When any one of you gets up in the morning in the state of fasting, he should neither use obscene language nor do any act of ignorance. And if anyone slanders him or quarrels with him, he should say: "I am fasting, I am fasting." Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2564. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of fasting. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Allah, the Majestic and the Exalted, said: Every act of the son of Adam is for him except fasting. It is done for My sake, and I will give a reward for it. By Allah in Whose Hand is the life of Muhammad, the breath of the observer of fast is sweeter to Allah than the fragrance of musk. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2565. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of fasting. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Fasting is a shield. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2566. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of fasting. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Allah the Exalted and Majestic said: Every act of the son of Adam is for him, except fasting. It is (exclusively) meant for Me and I (alone) will reward it. Fasting is a shield. When any one of you is fasting on a day, he should neither indulge in obscene language, nor raise the voice; or if anyone reviles him or tries to quarrel with him he should say: I am a person fasting. By Him, in Whose Hand is the life of Muhammad, the breath of the observer of fast is sweeter to Allah on the Day of judgment than the fragrance of musk. The one who fasts has two (occasions) of joy, one when he breaks the fast he is glad with the breaking of (the fast) and one when he meets his Lord he is glad with his fast. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2567. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of fasting. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Every (good) deed of the son of Adam would be multiplied, a good deed receiving a tenfold to seven hundredfold reward. Allah, the Exalted and Majestic, has said: With the exception of fasting, for it is done for Me and I will give a reward for it, for one abandons his passion and food for My sake. There are two occasions of joy for one who fasts, joy when he breaks it, and joy when he meets his Lord, and the breath (of an observer of fast) is sweeter to Allah than the fragrance of musk. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2568. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of fasting. Abu Huraira and Abu Sa'id (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) (as saying): Allah, the Exalted and Majestic, said: Fast (is exclusively) meant for Me and I would give its reward. There are two (occasions) of joy for the observer of fast. He feels joy when he breaks the fast and he is happy when he meets Allah. By Allah in Whose Hand is the life of Muhammad, the breath of the observer of fast is sweeter to Allah than the fragrance of musk. A hadith like this is narrated on the authority of Abu Sinan with the same chain of transmitters (and the words are): "As he meets Allah, He rewards him, and he is happy." Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2569. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of fasting. Sahl b. Sa'd (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: In Paradise there is a gate which is called Rayyan through which only the observers of fast would enter on the Day on Resurrection. None else would enter along with them. It would be proclaimed: Where are the observers of fast that they should be admitted into it?-and when the last of them would enter, it would be closed and no one would enter it. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2570. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of fasting. Abu Sa'id al Khudri (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Every servant of Allah who observes fast for a day in the way of Allah, Allah would remove, because of this day, his face farther from the Fire (of Hell) to the extent of seventy years' distance. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2571. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of fasting. This hadith has been narrated by Suhail with the chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2572. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of fasting. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who observes fast for a day in the way of Allah He would remove his face from the Hell to the extent of seventy years' distance. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2573. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of making an intention for voluntary fasting before noon and permissibility of breaking voluntary fast without reason. 'Aisha, the Mother of the Believers (Allah be pleased with her), reported that one day the Messenger of Allah (peace be upon him) said to me: 'Aisha, have you anything (to eat)? I said: 'Messenger of Allah, there is nothing with us. Thereupon he said: I am observing fast. She said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) went out, and there was a present, for us and (at the same time) some visitors dropped in. When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came back, I said to him: Messenger of Allah, a present was given to us, (and in the meanwhile) there came to us visitors (a major Portion of it has been spent on them), but I have saved something for you. He said: What is it? I said: It is hais (a compound of dates and clarified butter). He said: Bring that. So I brought it to him and he ate it and then said: I woke up in the morning observing fast. Talha said: I narrated this hadith to Mujahid and he said: This (observing of voluntary fast) is like a person who sets apart Sadaqa out of his wealth. He may spend it if he likes, or he may retain it if he so likes. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2574. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of making an intention for voluntary fasting before noon and permissibility of breaking voluntary fast without reason. 'Aisha, the Mother of the Believers (Allah be pleased with her), reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to me one day and said: Is there anything with you (to eat)? I said: No. Thereupon he said: I shall then be fasting. Then he came to us another day and we said: Messenger of Allah, hais has been offered to us as a gift. Thereupon he said: Show that to me; I had been fasting since morning. He then ate it. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2575. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eating and drinking (and sexual intercourse) in forgetfulness does not break the fast. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: If anyone forgets that he is fasting and eats or drinks he should complete his fast, for it is only Allah Who has fed him and given him drink. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2576. ------------------------------ Chapter : The fasts observed by the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) besides Ramadhan. Abdullah b. Shaqiq reported: I said to 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her): Did the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) observe fast for full one month besides Ramadan? She said: I do not know of any month in which he fasted throughout, but that of the month of Ramadan and (the month) in which he did not fast at all, till he ran the course of his life. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2577. ------------------------------ Chapter : The fasts observed by the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) besides Ramadhan. 'Abdullah b. Shaqiq reported: I said to 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her): Did the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observe fast during a month? She said, I do not know of any month in which he fasted throughout except Ramadan and (the month) in which he did not fast at all till he ran the course of his life. May peace be upon him. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2578. ------------------------------ Chapter : The fasts observed by the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) besides Ramadhan. Abdullah b. Shaqiq reported. I asked 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) about fasting of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). She said: He used to observe fast (at times) so continuously that we said: He has fasted, he has fasted. And (at times) he did not observe fast (for days) and we began to say: He has abandoned fasting, he has abandoned fasting. She said: I did not see him observing fast throughout the whole of the month since he arrived in Medina, but that of Ramadan. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2579. ------------------------------ Chapter : The fasts observed by the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) besides Ramadhan. A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of Abdullah b. Shaqiq but in the chain of transmitters no mention is made of Hisham and Muhammad. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2580. ------------------------------ Chapter : The fasts observed by the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) besides Ramadhan. 'Aisha, the Mother of the Believers (Allah be pleased with her), reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe fasts (so continuously) that we said that he would not break, and did not observe (them) till we said that he would not fast: and I did not see the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) completing the fast of a month, but that of Ramadan, and I did not see him fasting more in any other month than that of Sha'ban. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2581. ------------------------------ Chapter : The fasts observed by the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) besides Ramadhan. Abu Salama reported: I asked 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) about the fasting of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). She said: He used to observe fast (at times so continuously) that we said: He has fasted (never to break), and he did not observe fast till we said: He has given up perhaps never to fast, and I never saw him observing (voluntary fasts) more in any other month than that of Sha'ban.(It appeared as if) he observed fast throughout the whole of Sha'ban except a few (days). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2582. ------------------------------ Chapter : The fasts observed by the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) besides Ramadhan. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) did not observe fast in any month of the year more than in the month of Sha'ban, and used to say: Do as many deeds as you are capable of doing, for Allah will not become weary (of giving you reward), but you would be tired (of doing good deeds); and he also said: The deed liked most by Allah is one to which the doer adheres constantly even if it is small. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2583. ------------------------------ Chapter : The fasts observed by the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) besides Ramadhan. Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported: The Messenger of Allah(may peace be upon him) did not fast throughout any month except during Ramadan. And when he observed fast (he fasted so continuously) that one would say that he would not break (them) and when he Abandoned, he abandoned (so continuously) that one would say: By Allah, perhaps he would never fast. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2584. ------------------------------ Chapter : The fasts observed by the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) besides Ramadhan. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abu Bishr with the same chain of transmitters (with a slight variation of words and these are), that he (the narrator) said: "During any month continuously since he came to Medina." Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2585. ------------------------------ Chapter : The fasts observed by the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) besides Ramadhan. 'Uthman b. Hakim al-Ansari said: I asked Sa'id b. Jubair about fasting In Rajab, and we were then passing through the month of Rajab, whereupon he said: I heard Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with both of them) as saying: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe fast (so continuously) that we (were inclined) to say that he would not break (them) and did not observe them so continuously) that we (were inclined to say) that he would not observe fast. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2586. ------------------------------ Chapter : The fasts observed by the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) besides Ramadhan. Anas (Allah be pleased with him) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe fast till it was said that he had observed fast, he had observed fast (perhaps never to break it), and he did not fast till it was said that he had given up fast, he had given up fast (perhaps never to observe it). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2587. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to observe perpetual fast and excellence of observing fast on alternate days. 'Abdullah b. 'Amr b. al-'As reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was informed that he could stand up for (prayer) throughout the night and observe fast every day so long as he lived. Thereupon the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Is it you who said this? I said to him: Messenger of Allah, it is I who said that. Thereupon the Messenger of Allah may peace be upon him) said: You are not capable enough to do so. Observe fast and break it; sleep and stand for prayer, and observe fast for three days during the month; for every good is multiplied ten times and this is like fasting for ever. I said: Messenger of Allah. I am capable of doing more than this. Thereupon he said: Fast one day and do not fast for the next two days. I said: Messenger of Allah, I have the strength to do more than that. The Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him), said: Fast one day and break on the other day. That is known as the fasting of David (peace be upon him) and that is the best fasting. I said: I am capable of doing more than this. Thereupon the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: There is nothing better than this. 'Abdullah b. 'Amr (Allah be pleased with them) said: Had I accepted the three days (fasting during every month) as the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said, it would have been more dear to me than my family and my property. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2588. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to observe perpetual fast and excellence of observing fast on alternate days. Yahya reported: I and 'Abdullah b. Yazid set out till we came to Abu Salama. We sent a messenger to him (in his house in order to inform him about our arrival) and he came to us. There was a mosque near the door of his house, and we were in that mosque, till he came out to us. He said: If you like you may enter (the house) and, if you like, you may sit here (in the mosque). We said: We would rather sit here and (you) relate to us. He (Yahya) then narrated that 'Abdullah b Amr b. al-'As (Allah be pleased with them) told him: I used to observe fast uninterruptedly and recited the (whole of the) Qur'an every night. It (the uninterrupted fasting and recital of the Qur'an every night) was mentioned to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) or he sent for me, and I went to him and he said to me: I have been informed that you fast continuously and recite (the whole of the Qur'an) every night. I said: Apostle of Allah, it is right, but I covet thereby nothing but good, whereupon he said: It suffices for you that you should observe fast for three days during every mouth. I said: Apostle of Allah, I am capable of doing more than this. He said: Your wife has a right upon you, your visitor has a right upon you, your body has a right upon you; so observe the fast of David, the Apostle of Allah (peace be upon him), for he was the best worshipper of Allah. I said: Apostle of Allah, what is the fast of David? He said: He used to fast one day and did not fast the other day. He (also) said: Recite the Qur'an during every month. I said: Apostle of Allah, I am capable of doing more than this, whereupon he said: Recite it in twenty days; recite it in ten days. I said: I am capable of doing more than this, whereupon he said: Recite it every week, and do not exceed beyond this, for your wife has a right upon you, your visitor has a right upon you, your body has a right upon you. He ('Amr b. 'As) said: I was hard to myself and thus I was put to hardship. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) had told me: 'You do not know you may live long (thus and bear the hardships for a long time), and I accepted that which the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) had told me. When I grew old I wished I had availed myself of the concession (granted by) the Apostle of Allah (may-peace be upon him). This hadith has been narrated by Yahya b. Abu Kathir with the same chain of transmitters and he made this addition after these words: During every month, (fasting) for three days, there is for you ten times for every good and that is perpetual fasting (for three days would bring a reward for full thirty days). I said: What is the fast of the Apostle of Allah, David? He said: Half of the age (observing fast on alternate days for the whole life). And in the hadith no mention has been made of the recital of the Qur'an, and he did not say: Your visitor has a right upon you, but (instead) he said: Your son has a right upon you. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2589. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to observe perpetual fast and excellence of observing fast on alternate days. 'Abdullah b. 'Amr (Allah be pleased with them) reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to me: Recite the whole of the Qur'an during every month. I said: I find power (to recite it) in a shorter period. He said: Then recite it in twenty nights. I said: I find power (to recite it in a shorter period even than this), whereupon he said: Then recite it in seven (nights) and do not exceed beyond it. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2590. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to observe perpetual fast and excellence of observing fast on alternate days. 'Abdullah b. 'Amr b. al-'As (Allah be pleased with them) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: 'Abdullah, don't be like so and so who observed prayer during the whole night and then abandoned it (altogether). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2591. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to observe perpetual fast and excellence of observing fast on alternate days. Abdu'llah b. 'Amr b. 'As (Allah be pleased with them) reported: It was conveyed to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) that I observe fast successively and pray during the whole night. He sent for me or I met him and he (the Holy Prophet) said: It has been conveyed to me that you observe fast continuously and do not break it and pray during the whole night. Don't do that. for there is share for your eyes, share for your own self, share for your family; so observe fast and break it, pray and sleep and observe fast for one day during the ten days, and there is a reward for you (for other) nine (days besides the tenth day of the fast). I said: Apostle of Allah, I find myself more powerful than this. He said: Then observe the fast of David (peace be upon him). He ('Amr) said: Apostle of Allah, how did David observe fast? He (the Holy Prophet) said: He used to fast one day and break it on the other day, and he did not run (from the battlefield) as he encountered (the enemy). He said: Apostle of Allah, who can guarantee this for me (will I also encounter the enemy dauntlessly)? 'Ata', the narrator of the hadith, said: I do not know how there (crept in) the matter of perpetual fast. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), however, said: He who observed perpetual fast did not fast at all; he who observed perpetual fast did not fast at all, he who observed perpetual fast did not fast at all. This hadith has been narrated by Ibn Juraij with the same chain of transmitters. Imam Muslim has narrated this hadith on the authority of Abu 'Abbas al-Sa'ib b. Farrukh and he was a trustworthy and reliable (narrator) among the people of Mecca. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2592. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to observe perpetual fast and excellence of observing fast on alternate days. Abdullah b. Amr (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to me: 'Abdullah b. Amr, you fast continuously and stand in prayer for the whole of night. If you do like that, your eyes would be highly strained and would sink and lose sight. There is no (reward for) fasting (for him) who fasts perpetually. Fasting for three days during the month is like fasting, the whole of the month. I said: I am capable of doing more than this, whereupon he said: Observe the fast of David. He used to fast one day and break (the other) day. And he did not turn back in the encounter. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2593. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to observe perpetual fast and excellence of observing fast on alternate days. This hadith is narrated on the authority of Habib b. Abu Thabit with the same chain of transmitters and he said: "And you would become exhausted." Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2594. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to observe perpetual fast and excellence of observing fast on alternate days. 'Abdullah b. 'Amr (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to me: I have been informed that you stand for prayer the whole of night and fast during the day. I said: I do that, whereupon he said: If you did that you in fact strained heavily your eyes and made yourself weak. There is a right of your eyes (upon you) and a right of your self (upon you) and a right of your family (upon you). Stand for prayer and sleep, observe fasts and break (them). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2595. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to observe perpetual fast and excellence of observing fast on alternate days. 'Abdullah b. 'Amr (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: With Allah the best fasting is that of David and the best prayer is that of David (peace be upon him) for he slept half of the night and stood for prayer for the third of it and (then) slept the sixth part of it and he observed fast one day and broke on the other. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2596. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to observe perpetual fast and excellence of observing fast on alternate days. 'Abdullah b. 'Amr b. al-'As reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The best fasting in the eye of Allah is that of David, for he fasted for half of the age (he fasted on alternate days), and the best prayer in the eye of Allah, the Exalted and Majestic, is that of David (peace be upon him), for he slept for half of the night and then stood for prayer and then again slept. He prayed for one-third of the night after midnight. He (the narrator) said: I asked 'Amr b. Dinar whether 'Amr b. Aus said that he stood for prayer one-third of the night after midnight. He said: Yes. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2597. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to observe perpetual fast and excellence of observing fast on alternate days. Abu Qatada reported that Abu al Malih informed me: I went along with your father to 'Abdullah b. Amr, and he narrated to us that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was informed about my fasting and he came to me, and I placed a leather cushion filled with fibre of date-palms for him. He sat down upon the ground and there was that cushion between me and him, and he said to me: Does three days' fasting in a month not suffice you? I said: Messenger of Allah, (I am capable of observing more fasts). He said: (Would) five (not suffice for you)? I said: Messenger of Allah, (I am capable of observing more fasts) He said: (Would) seven (fasts) not suffice you? I said: Messenger of Allah, (I am capable of observing more fasts). He (the Holy Prophet) then said: (Would) nine (fasts not suffice you)? I said: Messenger of Allah, (I am capable of observing more fasts). He said: (Would) eleven (fasts not suffice you)? I said: Messenger of Allah, (I am capable of observing more fasts than these). Thereupon the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: There is no fasting (better than) the fasting of David which comprises half of the age, fasting a day and not fasting a day. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2598. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to observe perpetual fast and excellence of observing fast on alternate days. 'Abdullah b. Amr (Allah be pleased with them) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had said to him: Observe fast for a day and there would be reward for you for the rest (of the days). He said: I am capable of doing more than this. He then said: Observe fast for two days, and there would be reward for you for the rest (of the days). He said: I am capable of doing more than this. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Observe fast for three days and there would be reward for you for the rest of the days. He said: I am capable of doing more than this, whereupon he said: Observe fast for four days and there would be reward for you for the rest of the days. He said: I am capable of doing more than this. Thereupon he said: Then observe fast (which is the) best in the eye of Allah, the fast of David (peace be upon him); he used to observe fast one day and break on the other day. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2599. ------------------------------ Chapter : Forbiddance to observe perpetual fast and excellence of observing fast on alternate days. 'Abdullah b. 'Amr (Allah be pleased with them) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to me ! 'Abdullah b. 'Amr, it has been conveyed to me that you observe fast during the day and stand in prayer during the whole night. Don't do that, for your body has a share of its own in you, your eye has a share of its own in you, your wife has a share of her own in you. Observe fast and break it too. Fast for three days in every month and that is a perpetual fasting. I said! Messenger of Allah, I have got strength enough (to do more than this), whereupon he said: Then observe the fast of David (peace be upon him). Observe fast one day and break it (on the other) day. And he ('Abdullah b. 'Amr) used to say: Would that I had availed myself of this concession. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2600. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing fast for three days during every month, and fasting on the day of 'Arafa, and 'Ashura and Monday and Thursday. Mu'adha al-'Adawiyya reported that she asked 'Aisha, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), whether the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed fasts for three days during every month. She said: Yes I said to her: Which were (the particular) days of the month on which he observed fast? She said: He was not particular about the days of the month on which to observe fast. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2601. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing fast for three days during every month, and fasting on the day of 'Arafa, and 'Ashura and Monday and Thursday. 'Imran b. Husain (Allah be pleased with them) reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to him (or he said to another person and he was listening to it): O, so and so, did you observe fast in the middle of the month? He said: No. Thereupon he (the Messenger of Allah) said: When you break it, then observe fast for two days. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2602. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing fast for three days during every month, and fasting on the day of 'Arafa, and 'Ashura and Monday and Thursday. Abu Qatada reported that a person came to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) and said: How do you observe fast? The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) felt annoyed.1560 When 'Umar (Allah be pleased with him) noticed his annoyance, he said: We are well pleased with Allah as our Lord, with Islam as our Code of Life, and with Muhammad as our Prophet. We seek refuge with Allah from the anger of Allah and that of His Messenger. 'Umar kept on repeating these words till his (the Prophet's) anger calmed down. Then Umar said: Messenger of Allah, what is the position of one who perpetually observes fasts? Thereupon he said: He neither fasted nor broke it, or he said: He did not fast and he did not break it. He said: What about him who observes fast for two days and breaks one day. Thereupon he said: Is anyone capable of doing it? He ('Umar) said: What is the position of him who observes fast for a day and breaks on the other day? Thereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: That is the fast of David (peace be upon him). He ('Umar) said: What about him who observes fast one day and breaks it for two days. Thereupon he (the Messenger of Allah) said: I wish, I were given strength to observe that. Thereafter he said: The observance of three days' fast every Month and that of Ramadan every year is a perpetual fasting. I seek from Allah that fasting on the day of 'Arafa may atone for the sins of the preceding and the coming years and I seek from Allah that fasting on the day of Ashura may atone for the sins of the preceding year. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2603. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing fast for three days during every month, and fasting on the day of 'Arafa, and 'Ashura and Monday and Thursday. Abu Qatada al-Ansari (Allah be pleased with him) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was asked about his fasting. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) felt annoyed. Thereupon 'Umar (Allah be pleased with him) said: We are pleased with Allah as the Lord, with Islam as our Code of Life, with Muhammad as the Messenger and with our pledge (to you for willing and cheerful submission) as a (sacred) commitment. He was then asked about perpetual fasting, whereupon he said: He neither fasted nor did he break it, or he did not fast and he did not break it. He was then asked about fasting for two days and breaking one day. He (the Holy Prophet) said: And who has strength enough to do it? He was asked about fasting for a day and breaking for two days, whereupon he said: May Allah bestow upon us strength to do it. He was then asked about fasting for a day and breaking on the other, whereupon he said: That is the fasting of my brother David (peace be upon him). He was then asked about fasting on Monday, whereupon he said: It was the day on which I was born. on which I was commissioned with prophet-hood or revelation was sent to me, (and he further) said: Three days' fasting every month and of the whole of Ramadan every year is a perpetual fast. He was asked about fasting on the day of 'Arafa (9th of Dhu'I-Hijja), whereupon he said: It expiates the sins of the preceding year and the coming year. He was asked about fasting on the day of 'Ashura (10th of Muharram), whereupon be said: It expiates the sins of the preceding year. (Imam Muslim said that in this hadith there is a) narration of Imam Shu'ba that he was asked about fasting on Monday and Thursday, but we (Imam Muslim) did not mention Thursday for we found it as an error (in reporting). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2604. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing fast for three days during every month, and fasting on the day of 'Arafa, and 'Ashura and Monday and Thursday. This hadith has been narrated by Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2605. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing fast for three days during every month, and fasting on the day of 'Arafa, and 'Ashura and Monday and Thursday. This hadith has been narrated by Ghailan b. Jarir with the same chain of transmitters, but with one variation, that there has been made mention of Monday and not of Thursday. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2606. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing fast for three days during every month, and fasting on the day of 'Arafa, and 'Ashura and Monday and Thursday. Abu Qatada Ansari (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) was asked about fasting on Monday, whereupon he said: It is (the day) when I was born and revelation was sent down to me. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2607. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting in the month of Sha'ban. 'Imran b. Husain (Allah be pleased with them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace he upon him) having said to him or to someone else: Did you fast in the middle of Sha'ban? He said: No. Thereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: If you did not observe fast, then you should observe fast for two days. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2608. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting in the month of Sha'ban. Imran b. Husain (Allah be pleased with them) reported that Allah's Apostle (peace be upon him) said to a person: Did you observe any fast in the middle of this month (Sha'ban)? He said: No. Thereupon the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Fast for two days instead of (one fast) when you have completed (fasts of) Ramadan. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2609. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting in the month of Sha'ban. 'Imran b. Husain (Allah be pleased with them) reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to a person: Did you observe fast in the middle of this month i.e. Sha'ban? He said: No. Thereupon he said to him: When it is the end of Ramadan, then observe fast for one day or two (Shu'ba had some doubt about it) but he said: I think that he has said: two days. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2610. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting in the month of Sha'ban. This hadith is narrated by 'Abdullah b. Hani b. Akhi Mutarrif with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2611. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the fast of Muharram. Abu Haraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The most excellent fast after Ramadan is God's month; al-Muharram, and the most excellent prayer after what is prescribed is prayer during the night. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2612. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the fast of Muharram. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported that he (the Messenger of Allah) was asked as to which prayer was most excellent after the prescribed prayer, and which fast was most excellent after the month of Ramadan. He said: Prayer offered in the middle of the night and the most excellent fast after (fasting) in the month of Ramadan is the fast in God's month al-Muharram. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2613. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of the fast of Muharram. A hadith like this has been reported from the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) by 'Abd al-Malik with the same chain of transmitters in connection with fast. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2614. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing fast for six days in the month of Shawwal after Ramadhan. Abu Ayyub al-Ansari (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who observed the fast of Ramadan and then followed it with six (fasts) of Shawwal; it would be as if he fasted perpetually. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2615. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing fast for six days in the month of Shawwal after Ramadhan. Abu Ayyub al-Ansari reported (through another chain of transmitters): I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) saying like this. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2616. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing fast for six days in the month of Shawwal after Ramadhan. Abu Ayyub reported a hadith like this (through another chain of transmitters). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2617. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Lailat-ul Qadar and exhortation to find it. Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported that some persons among the Companions of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) were shown Lailat-ul-Qadr while sleeping in the last week (of Ramadan). Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: I see that your dreams agree regarding the last week; so he who wants to seek it should seek it in the last week (during the night). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2618. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Lailat-ul Qadar and exhortation to find it. Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: Seek Lailat-ul-Qadr in the last week (of Ramadan). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2619. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Lailat-ul Qadar and exhortation to find it. Salim reported on the authority of his father that a person saw Lailat-ul-Qadr on the 27th (of Ramadan).Thereupon Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: I see that your dreams agree regarding the last ten (nights of Ramadan). So seek it on an odd number (of these ten nights). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2620. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Lailat-ul Qadar and exhortation to find it. Salim b. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar reported that his father said: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: So far as Lailat-ul-Qadr is concerned, some persons among you have seen it (in a dream) in the first week and some persons among you have been shown that it is in the last week; so seek it in the last ten (nights). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2621. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Lailat-ul Qadar and exhortation to find it. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Seek it (Lailat-ul-Qadr) in the last (ten nights).If one among you shows slackness and weakness (in the earlier part of Ramadan), it should not be allowed to prevail upon him in the last week. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2622. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Lailat-ul Qadar and exhortation to find it. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who is anxious to seek it (Lailat-ul-Qadr) should seek it in the last ten (nights of Ramadan). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2623. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Lailat-ul Qadar and exhortation to find it. 'Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Seek the time of Lailat-ul-Qadr in the last (ten nights), or he said: in the last nine (nights). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2624. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Lailat-ul Qadar and exhortation to find it. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: I was shown Lailat-ul-Qadr; then some members of my family awoke me up, then I was caused to forget it. So seek it in the last week. Harmala said: (The Holy Prophet did not say: "I was made to forget," but he stated): "But I forgot it." Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2625. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Lailat-ul Qadar and exhortation to find it. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) spent in devotion (in i'tikaf) the middle ten nights of the month of Ramadan, and when twenty nights were over and it was the twenty-first night, he went back to his residence and those who were along with him also returned (to their respective residences).He spent one month in devotion. Then he addressed the people on the night he came back (to his residence) and commanded them as Allah desired (him to command) and then said: I used to devote myself (observe i'tikaf) during these ten (nights).Then I started devoting myself in the last ten (nights).And he who desires to observe i'tikaf along with me should spend the night) at his place of i'tikaf. And I saw this night (Lailat-ul-Qadr) but I forgot it (the exact night); so seek it ;In the last ten nights on odd numbers. I saw (the glimpses of that dream) that I was prostrating in water and mud.Abu Sa'id al-Khudri said: It rained on the twenty-first night and the water dripped (from the roof) of the mosque at the place where the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed prayer. I looked at him and as he completed the dawn prayer, (I found) his face was wet with mud and water. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2626. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Lailat-ul Qadar and exhortation to find it. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri (Allah be pleased with him) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) devoted (himself to prayer) in the middle (ten nights) of Ramadan. The rest of the hadith is the same except for these words: "That he adhered to his place of i'tikaf and his forehead was besmeared with mud and water." Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2627. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Lailat-ul Qadar and exhortation to find it. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri (Allah be pleased with him) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed i'tikaf (confined himself for devotion and prayer) in the first ten (days) of Ramadan; he then observed i'tikaf in the middle ten (days) in a Turkish tent with a mat hanging at its door. He (the Holy Prophet) took hold of that mat and placed it in the nook of the tent. He then put his head out and talked with people and they came near him, and he (the Holy Prophet) said: I observed i'tikaf in the first ten (nights and days) in order to seek that night (Lailat-ul-Qadr). I then observed i'tikaf in the middle ten days. Then (an angel) was sent to me and I was told that this (night) is among the last ten (nights). He who among you likes to observe i'tikaf should do so; and the people observed it along with him, and he (the Holy Prophet) said: That (Lailat-ul-Qadr) was shown to me on an odd (night) and I (saw in the dream) that I was prostrating in the morning in clay and water. So in the morning of the twenty-first night when he (the Holy Prophet) got up for dawn (prayer), there was a rainfall and the mosque dripped, and I saw clay and water. When he came out after completing the morning prayer (I saw) that his forehead and the tip of his nose had (traces) of clay and water, and that was the twenty-first night among the last ten (nights). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2628. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Lailat-ul Qadar and exhortation to find it. Abu Salama reported: 'We discussed amongst ourselves Lailat-ul-Qadr. I came to Abu Sa'id al-Khudri (Allah be pleased with him) who was a friend of mine and said to him: Would you not go with us to the garden of date trees? He went out with a cloak over him. I said to him: Did you hear the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) making mention of Lailat-ul-Qadr? He said: Yes, (and added) we were observing i'tikaf with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) in the middle ten days of Ramadan, and came out on the morning of the twentieth and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) addressed us and said: I was shown Lailat-ul-Qadr, but I forgot (the exact night) or I was caused to forget it, so seek it in the last ten odd (nights), and I was shown that I was prostrating in water and clay. So he who wanted to observe i'tikaf with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) should return (to the place of i'tikaf). He (Abu Sa'id al-Khudri) said: And we returned and did not find any patch of cloud in the sky. Then the cloud gathered and there was (so heavy) a downpour that the roof of the mosque which was made of the branches of date-palms began to drip. Then there was prayer and I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) prostrating in water and clay till I saw the traces of clay on his forehead. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2629. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Lailat-ul Qadar and exhortation to find it. This hadith has been reported on the authority of Yahya b. Abu Kathir with the same chain of transmitters (with a slight variation of these words): I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) after he had completed (the prayer) and there was a trace of clay on his forehead and tip (of the nose). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2630. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Lailat-ul Qadar and exhortation to find it. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri (Allah be pleased with him) reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) observed i'tikaf in the middle ten days of Ramadan to seek Lailat-ul-Qadr before it was made manifest to him. When (these nights) were over, he commanded to strike the tent. Then it was made manifest to him that (Lailat-ul-Qadr) was in the last ten nights (of Ramadan), and commanded to pitch the tent (again). He then came to the people and said: O people, Lailat-ul-Qadr was made manifest to me and I came out to inform you about it that two persons came contending with each other and there was a devil along with them and I forgot it. So seek it in the last ten nights of Ramadan. Seek it on the ninth, on the seventh and on the fifth. I (one of the narrators) said: Abu Sa'id, you know more than us about numbers. He said: Yes, indeed we have better right than you. I said: What is this ninth, seventh, and fifth? He said: When twenty-one (nights are over) and the twenty-second begins, it is the ninth, and when twenty-three (nights) are over, that which follows (the last night) is the seventh, and when twenty-five nights are over, what follows it is fifth. Ibn Khallad said: Instead of the word Yahliqan (contending), he said Yakhtasiman, (they are disputing). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2631. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Lailat-ul Qadar and exhortation to find it. 'Abdullah b. Unais reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: I was shown Lailat-ul-Qadr; then I was made to forget it, and saw that I was prostrating in water and clay in the morning of that (night). He (the narrator) said: There was a downpour on the twenty-third night and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) led us in prayer, and as he went back, there was a trace of water and clay on his forehead and on his nose. He (the narrator) said: 'Abdullah b. Unais used to say that it was the twenty-third (night). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2632. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Lailat-ul Qadar and exhortation to find it. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) and Ibn Numair reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Look for (and in the words of Waki, seek) Lailat-ul-Qadr in the last ten nights of Ramadan. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2633. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Lailat-ul Qadar and exhortation to find it. Zirr b. Habaish reported: I thu asked Ubayy b. Ka'b (Allah be pleased with him): Your brother (in faith) Ibn Mas'ud says: He who stands (for the night prayer) throughout the year would find Lailat-ul-Qadr, whereupon he said: May Allah have mercy upon him; (he said these words) with the intention that people might not rely only (on one night), whereas he knew that it (Lailat-ul-Qadr) is in the month of Ramadan and it is the twenty-seventh night. He then took oath (without making any exception, i.e. without saying Insha Allah) that it was the twenty-seventh night. I said to him: Abu Mundhir, on what ground do you say that? Thereupon he said: By the indication or by the sign which the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) gave us, and that is that on that day (the sun) would rise without having any ray in it. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2634. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Lailat-ul Qadar and exhortation to find it. Zirr b. Hubaish reported that Ubayy b. Ka'b (Allah be pleased with him) said about Lailat-ul-Qadr: By Allah, I know well about it. Shu'ba said: To the best of my knowledge it was the twenty-seventh night for which the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) commanded us to stand for prayer. Shu'ba doubted these words: That it was the night for which the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) commanded us to stand for prayer. And (he further) said: This was narrated to me by a friend of mine from him (the Holy Prophet). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2635. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of Lailat-ul Qadar and exhortation to find it. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported: We were talking about Lailat-ul-Qadr in the presence of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he said: He who amongst you remembers (the night) when the moon arose and it was like a piece of plate (at the fag end of the month in a state of waning). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2636. ------------------------------ Chapter : Observing of I'tikaf in the last ten days of Ramadhan. Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe i'tikaf in the last ten days of Ramadan. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2637. ------------------------------ Chapter : Observing of I'tikaf in the last ten days of Ramadhan. Abdullah b. Umar (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe i'tikaf in the last ten days of Ramadan. Nafi' said: Abdullah (Allah be pleased with him) showed me the place in the mosque where the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe i'tikaf. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2638. ------------------------------ Chapter : Observing of I'tikaf in the last ten days of Ramadhan. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to observe i'tikaf in the last ten days of Ramadan. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2639. ------------------------------ Chapter : Observing of I'tikaf in the last ten days of Ramadhan. This hadith has been narrated by 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2640. ------------------------------ Chapter : Observing of I'tikaf in the last ten days of Ramadhan. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) used to observe i'tikaf in the last ten days of Ramadan till Allah called him back (to his heavenly home). Then his wives observed i'tikaf after him. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2641. ------------------------------ Chapter : When should a person enter the place of I'tikaf as he intends to observe it. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) decided to observe i'tikaf, he prayed in the morning and then went to the place of his i'tikaf, and he commanded that a tent should be pitched for him, and it was pitched. He (once) decided to observe i'tikaf in the last ten days of Ramadan. Zainab (the wife of the Holy Prophet) commanded that a tent should be pitched for her. It was pitched accordingly. And some other wives of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) commanded that tents should be pitched for them too. And they were pitched. When the Messenger of Allah (may peace he upon him) offered the morning prayer, he looked and found (so many) tents. Thereupon he said: What is this virtue that these (ladies) have decided to acquire? He commanded his tent to be struck and abandoned i'tikaf in the month of Ramadan and postponed it to the first ten days of Shawwal. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2642. ------------------------------ Chapter : When should a person enter the place of I'tikaf as he intends to observe it. This hadith has been reported through another chain of transmitters, and there it is mentioned that. 'Aisha, Hafsa and Zainab (Allah be pleased with them) pitched the tents for i'tikaf. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2643. ------------------------------ Chapter : One should exert more (in devotion and prayer) in the last ten days of Ramadhan. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that when the last ten nights began Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) kept awake at night (for prayer and devotion), wakened his family, and prepared himself to observe prayer (with more vigour). Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2644. ------------------------------ Chapter : One should exert more (in devotion and prayer) in the last ten days of Ramadhan. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) used to exert himself in devotion during the last ten nights to a greater extent than at any other time. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2645. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the 10th Dhu'l-Hijja. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: I never saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) fasting in the ten days of Dhu'I-Hijja. Muslim Book 006, Hadith Number 2646. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fasting on the 10th Dhu'l-Hijja. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) did not observe fast in the ten days of Dhul-Hijja. Total Hadiths : 286. Generated By : The Hadith Software Version 1.0 Date : 05-03-2009. ****************************************************************** * NOTE!! THERE ARE VARIOUS WEB SITES (I.E. WWW.HADITHONLINE.COM) * * THAT CAN BE USED TO VALIDATE THE AUTHENTICITY OF EACH HADITHS * * GENERATED OR VIEWED IN THIS SOFTWARE. PLEASE REFER TO THEM IF * * YOU HAVE ANY QUESTIONS OR DOUBTS. - Islamasoft Solutions. (UK) * ****************************************************************** Islamasoft Solutions. (www.islamasoft.co.uk) The Hadith Software : Shahi Muslim. Muslim Book 7. Pilgrimage. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2647. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is permitted for the Muhrim (wearer of Ihram) in Hajj and Umra, what is not permissible and forbiddance of the use of perfume. Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported that a person asked the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) what a Muhrim should put on as dress. Thereupon the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Do not put on a shirt or a turban, or trousers or a cap, or leather stockings except one who does not find shoes; he may put on stockings but he should trim them below the ankles. And do not wear clothes to which saffron or wars is applied. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2648. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is permitted for the Muhrim (wearer of Ihram) in Hajj and Umra, what is not permissible and forbiddance of the use of perfume. Salim reported on the authority of his father ('Abdullah b. 'Umar) that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) was asked what a Muhrim should wear, whereupon he said: A Muhrim should not wear a shirt, or a turban, or a cap, or trousers, or a cloth touched with wars or with saffron, nor (should he wear) stockings, but in case he does not find shoes, but (before wearing stockings) be should trim them (in such a way) that these should become lower than the ankles. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2649. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is permitted for the Muhrim (wearer of Ihram) in Hajj and Umra, what is not permissible and forbiddance of the use of perfume. Ibn 'Umar reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) forbade the Muhrim to put on a cloth dyed in saffron or wars and he further said: One who does not find shoes (to wear) he way wear stockings, but (only) after trimming them below the ankles. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2650. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is permitted for the Muhrim (wearer of Ihram) in Hajj and Umra, what is not permissible and forbiddance of the use of perfume. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) say as he was delivering an address: So far as the trousers are concerned, one who does not find lower garment, he may wear them; as also socks, he may wear them who does not find shoes. It concerns the Muhrim. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2651. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is permitted for the Muhrim (wearer of Ihram) in Hajj and Umra, what is not permissible and forbiddance of the use of perfume. 'Amr b. Dinar narrated with the same chain of transmitters that he heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) delivering sermon at 'Arafat, and he made a mention of this hadith (as quoted above). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2652. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is permitted for the Muhrim (wearer of Ihram) in Hajj and Umra, what is not permissible and forbiddance of the use of perfume. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of 'Amr b. Dinar with the same chain of transmitters, but none of them (the narrators) made a mention that he (the Holy Prophet) was delivering address at 'Arafia except Sbu'ba. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2653. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is permitted for the Muhrim (wearer of Ihram) in Hajj and Umra, what is not permissible and forbiddance of the use of perfume. Jabir (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who does not find shoes to wear may wear socks, and he who does not find lower garment to wear may put on trousers. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2654. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is permitted for the Muhrim (wearer of Ihram) in Hajj and Umra, what is not permissible and forbiddance of the use of perfume. Ya'la b. Umayya reported on the authority of his father (Allah be pleased with them) that a person came to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) as he was at Ji'rana and he (the person) had been putting on a cloak which was perfumed, or he (the narrator) said: There was a trace of yellowness on it. He said (to the Holy Prophet): What do you command me to do during my Umra? (It was at this juncture) that the revelation came to the Apostle of Allah (way peace be upon him) and he was covered with a cloth, and Ya'la said: Would that I see revelation coming to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him). He (Hadrat 'Umar) said: Would it please you to see the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) receiving the revelations 'Umar lifted a corner of the cloth and I looked at him and he was emitting a sound of snorting. He (the narrator) said: I thought it was the sound of a camel. When he was relieved of this he said: Where is he who asked about Umra? When the person came, the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) said: Wash out the trace of yellowness, or he said: the trace of perfume and put off the cloak and do in your 'Umra what you do in your Hajj. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2655. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is permitted for the Muhrim (wearer of Ihram) in Hajj and Umra, what is not permissible and forbiddance of the use of perfume. Safwan b. Ya'la reported on the authority of his father (who said): A person came to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) as he was staying at Ji'rana and I (the narrator's father) was at that time in the apostle's (may peace be upon him) company and (the person) was donning a cloak having the marks of perfume on it, and he said: I am in a state of Ihram for the sake of Umra, and it (this cloak) is upon me and I am perfumed. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to him: What would you do in your Hajj? He said: I would take off the clothes and would wash from me this perfume. Thereupon the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: What you do in your Hajj do it in your Umra. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2656. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is permitted for the Muhrim (wearer of Ihram) in Hajj and Umra, what is not permissible and forbiddance of the use of perfume. Safwan b. Ya'la b. Umayya reported that Ya'la used to say to 'Umar b. Khattab (Allah be pleased with him): Would that I see revelation descending upon the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him). (Once) when the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) was in Ji'rana and there was a cloth which provided shade over him, and there were his Companions with him. 'Umar being one of them, there came a person with a cloak of wool on him daubed with perfume and he said: Messenger of Allah, what about the person who, entered upon the state of Ihram with a cloak after daubing it with perfume? The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) looked at him for a short while, and then became quiet, and revelation began descending upon him, and 'Umar gestured (with his hand) to Ya'la b Umayya to come. Ya'la came and he entered his head (beneath the cloth and saw) the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) with his face red, and breathing with a snore. Then he felt relieved (of that burden) and he said: Where is the man who was just asking me about Umra? The man was searched for and he was brought, and the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: So far as the perfume is concerned, wash it three times, and remove the cloak too (as it was sewn) and do in 'Umra as you do in Hajj. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2657. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is permitted for the Muhrim (wearer of Ihram) in Hajj and Umra, what is not permissible and forbiddance of the use of perfume. Ya'la b. Umayya (Allah be pleased with him) reported that a person came to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) as he was staying at Ji'rana and he had put on Ihram for 'Umra and he had dyed his beard and his head with yellow colour and there was a cloak on him. He said: I put on Ihram for 'Umra and I am in this state as you see (with dyed beard and head and a cloak over me). He (the Holy Prophet) said: Take off the cloak and wash the yellowness and do in your 'Umra what you do in Hajj. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2658. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is permitted for the Muhrim (wearer of Ihram) in Hajj and Umra, what is not permissible and forbiddance of the use of perfume. Ya'la reported: We were with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) that a person came to him with a cloak on him having the traces of scent. He said, Messenger of Allah, I put on Ihram for 'Umra: what should I do? He (the Holy Prophet) kept quiet and did not make him any reply. And 'Umar screened him and it was (usual) with 'Umar that when the revelation descended upon him, he provided him shade (with the help of a piece of cloth). I (the person who came to the Holy Prophet) said: I said to 'Umar I wish to project my head into the cloth (to see how the Holy Prophet receives revelation). So when the revelation began to descend upon him 'Umar wrapped him (the Holy Prophet) with cloth I came to him and projected my head with him into the cloth, and saw him (the Holy Prophet) (receiving the revelation). When he (the Holy Prophet) was relieved (of its burden), he said: Where is the inquirer who was just inquiring about 'Umra? That man came to him. Thereupon he (the Apostle of Allah) said: Take off the cloak from (your body) and wash the traces of perfume which were upon you, and do in 'Umra what you did in Hajj. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2659. ------------------------------ Chapter : The place where the pilgrims enter upon the state of Ihram. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) specified Dhu'l-Hulaifa, for the people of Medina; Juhfa for the people of Syria; Qarn al-Manazil, for the people of Najd; Yalamlam for the people of Yemen (the Mawaqit) and those (Mawaqit) are also meant for those who live at these (places) and for those too who come from without towards them for the sake of Hajj or 'Umra. And those who live within them (within the bounds of these places) or in the suburbs of Mecca or within Mecca, they should enter upon the state of Ihram at these very places. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2660. ------------------------------ Chapter : The place where the pilgrims enter upon the state of Ihram. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) specified Dhu'l-Hulaifa for the people of Medina; Juhfa for the people of Syria, Qarn al-Manazil for the people of Najd, Yalamlam for the people of Yemen (as their respective Mawaqit), and he also said: These are (Mawaqit) of them too (who live there) and everyone who comes from outside (through) their (directions) for the sake of Hajj and 'Umra and for those who live within (those bounds their Miqat is that) from which they commenced (their journey), and for the people of Mecca, Mecca itself is (the Miqat). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2661. ------------------------------ Chapter : The place where the pilgrims enter upon the state of Ihram. Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The people of Medina should enter upon the state of Ihram at Dhu'l-Hulaifa, and people of Syria at Juhfa, and people of Najd at Qarn (al-Manazil), and 'Abdullah (further) said: It has reached me that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) also said: The people of Yemen should enter upon the state of Ihram at Yalamlam. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2662. ------------------------------ Chapter : The place where the pilgrims enter upon the state of Ihram. Salim reported on the authority of his father ('Abdullah b. 'Umar) that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: The people of Medina should enter upon the state of Ihram at Dhu'l-Hulaifa; the people of Syria at Juhfa, the people of Najd at Qarn (al-Manazil). Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) said: It was mentioned to me but I did not myself bear it (directly) from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) having said this: The people of Yemen should enter upon the state of Ihram at Yalamlam. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2663. ------------------------------ Chapter : The place where the pilgrims enter upon the state of Ihram. Salim b. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar b. al-Khattab (Allah be pleased with them) reported his father as saying: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying that the people of Medina should enter upon the state of Ihram at Dhu'l-Hulaifa, the people of Syria at Mahya'a and that is Juhfa, and the people of Najd at Qarn (al-Manazil). 'Abdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) said: (I did not hear it myself from him) but heard from them saying that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had (also) said: The people of Yemen should enter upon the state of Ihram at Yalamlam. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2664. ------------------------------ Chapter : The place where the pilgrims enter upon the state of Ihram. Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had commanded the people of Medina to enter upon the state of Ihram at Dhu'l-Hulaifa; the people of Syria at Juhfa; the people of Najd at Qarn (al-Manazil). 'Abdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) said: I was informed that he said that the people of Yemen should enter upon the state of Ihram at Yalamlam. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2665. ------------------------------ Chapter : The place where the pilgrims enter upon the state of Ihram. Abu Zubair reported that he heard Jabir b. 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with them) saying that as he was asked about (the places for entering upon the) state of ihram, he said: I heard (and he then carried the narration directly, I think to) the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2666. ------------------------------ Chapter : The place where the pilgrims enter upon the state of Ihram. Abu Zubair heard Jabir b. 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with them) as saying as he was asked about (the place for entering upon the) state of Ihram: I heard (and I think he carried it directly to the Apostle of Allah) him saying: For the people of Medina Dhu'l-Hulaifa is the place for entering upon the state of Ihram, and for (the people coming through the other way, i.e. Syria) it is Juhfa; for the people of Iraq it is Dbat al-'Irq; for the people of Najd it is Qarn (al-Manazil) and for the people of Yemen it is Yalamlam. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2667. ------------------------------ Chapter : Talbiya, its characteristics and its time. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported that the Talbiya of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was this: Here I am at Thy service. O Allah, here I am at Thy service, here I am at Thy service. There is no associate with Thee; here I am at Thy service. Verily all praise and grace is due to Thee, and the sovereignty (too). There is no associate with Thee. He (the narrator) further said that 'Abdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) made this addition to it: Here I am at Thy service; here I am at Thy service; ready to obey Thee, and good is in Thy Hand; here I am at Thy service; unto Thee is the petition, and deed (is also for Thee). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2668. ------------------------------ Chapter : Talbiya, its characteristics and its time. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) entered upon the state of Ihram near the mosque at Dhu'l-Hulaifa as his camel stood by it and he said: Here I am at Thy service, O Lord; here I am at Thy service: here I am at Thy service. There is no associate with Thee. Here I am at Thy service. All praise and grace is due to Thee and the sovereignty (too). There is no associate with Thee. They (the people) said that 'Abdullah b. 'Umar said that that was the Talbiya of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Nafi' said: 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with him) made this addition to it: Here I am at Thy service; here I am at Thy service; ready to obey Thee. The Good is in Thy Hand. Here I am at Thy service. Unto Thee is the petition and deed (is also for Thee). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2669. ------------------------------ Chapter : Talbiya, its characteristics and its time. Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with him) reported: I immediately learnt Talbiya from the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and he then narrated the hadith. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2670. ------------------------------ Chapter : Talbiya, its characteristics and its time. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported: I heard the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) pronouncing Talbiya with compacted hair: Here I am at Thy service. O Allah: here I am at Thy service; here I am at Thy service. There is no associate with Thee; here I am at Thy service. Verily all praise and grace is due to Thee and the Sovereignty (too). There is no associate with Thee; and he did not make any addition to these words. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) (further) said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) used to offer two rak'ahs of prayer at Dhu'l-Hulaifa and then when his camel stood up with him on its back near the mosque at Dhu'l-Hulaifa, he pronounced these words (of Talbiya). And 'Abdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased'with them) said that 'Umar b. Khattab (Allah be pleased with him) pronounced, the Talbiya of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) in these words of his (Prophet's words) and said: Here I am at Thy service, O Lord; here I am at Thy service, ready to obey Thee, and good is in Thy Hand, Here I am at Thy service. Unto Thee is the petition and deed (is also for Thee). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2671. ------------------------------ Chapter : Talbiya, its characteristics and its time. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported that the polytheists also pronounced (Talbiya) as: Here I am at Thy service, there is no associate with Thee. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Woe be upon them, as they also said: But one associate with Thee, you possess mastery over him, but he does not possess mastery (over you). They used to say this and circumambulate the Ka'ba. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2672. ------------------------------ Chapter : The people of Medina are commanded to enter upon the state of ihram at a mosque in Dhu'l Hulaifa. Salim b. 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with them) reported that he heard his father saying: This place Baida' is for you that about which you attribute lie to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). And the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) did not enter upon the state of Ihram but near the mosque at Dhu'l-Hulaifa. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2673. ------------------------------ Chapter : The people of Medina are commanded to enter upon the state of ihram at a mosque in Dhu'l Hulaifa. Salim reported that when it was said to Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) that the state of Ihram (commences from) al-Baida' he said: Al-Baida', you attribute lie about it to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). And the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) did not enter upon the state of Ihram but near the-tree when his camel stood up with him. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2674. ------------------------------ Chapter : Entering upon the state of Ihram as the ride proceeds towards (Mecca). 'Ubaid b. Juraij said to 'Ahdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them): 'Abd al-Rahman, I find you doing four things which I do not see anyone among your companions doing. He said: Son of Juraij, what are these? Thereupon he said: You (while circumambulating the Ka'ba) do not touch but the two pillars situated on the side of yaman (south), and I find you wearing the sandals of tanned leather, and I find you with dyed beard and head, and I also found that, when you were at Mecca, the people pronounced Talbiya as they saw the new moon (Dhu'l-Hijja), but you did not do it till the 8th of Dhu'l-Hijja. Upon this 'Abdullab b. 'Umar said: (So far as the touching of) the pillars is concerned, I did not see the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) touching them but only those situated on the side of yaman. (So far as the wearing of) the shoes of tanned leather is concerned, I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) wearing shoes without hair on them, and he (wore them with wet feet) after performing ablution, and I like to wear them. So far as the yellowness is concerned, I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) dyeing (head, beard and cloth)with this colour and I love to dye (my head, beard or cloth) with this colour. And so far as the pronouncing of Talbiya is concerned, I did not see the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) pronouncing it until his camel proceeded on (to Dhu'l-Hulaifa). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2675. ------------------------------ Chapter : Entering upon the state of Ihram as the ride proceeds towards (Mecca). 'Ubaid b. Juraij reported: I remained in the company of 'Abdullah b. 'Umar b. al-Khattab (Allah be pleased with them) its twelve Hajjs and 'Umras and I said to him: I saw four characteristics (peculiar in you), and the rest of the hadith is the same except the case of Talbiya. There he offered the narration given by al-Maqburi and he stated the facts excepting the one given above. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2676. ------------------------------ Chapter : Entering upon the state of Ihram as the ride proceeds towards (Mecca). Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) pronounced Talbiya in Dhu'l-Hulaifa as he put his feet in the stirrup and his camel stood up and proceeded. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2677. ------------------------------ Chapter : Entering upon the state of Ihram as the ride proceeds towards (Mecca). Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) pronounced Talbiya as his camel stood up. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2678. ------------------------------ Chapter : Entering upon the state of Ihram as the ride proceeds towards (Mecca). 'Abdullah b. 'Umar reported: I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) riding on his camel at Dhu'l-Hulaifa and pronouncing Talbiya as it stood up with him. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2679. ------------------------------ Chapter : Entering upon the state of Ihram as the ride proceeds towards (Mecca). 'Abdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) spent the night at Dhu'l-Hulaifa while commencing (the rites of) Pilgrimage and he observed prayer in the mosque. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2680. ------------------------------ Chapter : Applying of perfume to the body before entering upon the state of Ihram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: I applied perfume to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) before he entered upon the state of Ihram and (concluding) before circumambulating the (sacred) House. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2681. ------------------------------ Chapter : Applying of perfume to the body before entering upon the state of Ihram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her), the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), reported: I applied perfume to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) with my own hand before he entered upon the state of Ihram, and as he concluded it before-circumambulating the House (for Tawaf-i-Ifada). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2682. ------------------------------ Chapter : Applying of perfume to the body before entering upon the state of Ihram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: I used to apply perfume to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) before his entering upon the state of Ihram and at the conclusion of it, before circumambulating the House (for Tawf-i-Ifada). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2683. ------------------------------ Chapter : Applying of perfume to the body before entering upon the state of Ihram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) said: I applied perfume to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as he became free from Ihram and as he entered upon it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2684. ------------------------------ Chapter : Applying of perfume to the body before entering upon the state of Ihram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) said: I applied perfume of Dharira to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) with my hand (on the occasion of) the Farewell Pilgrimage on freeing from the state of Ihram and entering upon it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2685. ------------------------------ Chapter : Applying of perfume to the body before entering upon the state of Ihram. 'Uthman b. 'Urwa reported on the authority of his father that he said: I asked 'Aisha with what thing she perfumed the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) at the time of entering upon the state of Ihram. She said: With the best of perfume. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2686. ------------------------------ Chapter : Applying of perfume to the body before entering upon the state of Ihram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: I applied the best perfume, which I could get, to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) before entering upon the state of Ihram (and after this) he put on the Ihram. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2687. ------------------------------ Chapter : Applying of perfume to the body before entering upon the state of Ihram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: I applied the best available perfume I could find to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) before he entered upon the state of Ihram and after he was free from it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2688. ------------------------------ Chapter : Applying of perfume to the body before entering upon the state of Ihram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: I still seem to see the glistening of the perfume where the hair parted on Allah's Messenger's (may peace be upon him) head as he was in the state of Ihram, and Khalaf (one of the narrators) did not say: As he was in the state of Ihram, but said: That was the perfume of Ihram. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2689. ------------------------------ Chapter : Applying of perfume to the body before entering upon the state of Ihram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: I still seem to see the glistening of the perfume where the hair parted on Allah's Messenger's (may peace be upon him) head and he was free from Ihram. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2690. ------------------------------ Chapter : Applying of perfume to the body before entering upon the state of Ihram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: I still seem to see the glistening of the perfume where the hair parted on Allah's Messenger's (may peace be upon him) head, while he was pronouncing Talbiya. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2691. ------------------------------ Chapter : Applying of perfume to the body before entering upon the state of Ihram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: I still seem to see; the rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2692. ------------------------------ Chapter : Applying of perfume to the body before entering upon the state of Ihram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) said: I still seem to see the glistening of the perfume where the hair was parted on Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) head while he was in the state of Ihram. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2693. ------------------------------ Chapter : Applying of perfume to the body before entering upon the state of Ihram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: I still seem to perceive the glistening of perfume where the hair was parted on Allah's Messenger's (may peace be upon him) head as he was in the state of Ihram. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2694. ------------------------------ Chapter : Applying of perfume to the body before entering upon the state of Ihram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that when the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) intended to enter upon the state of Ihram he perfumed himself with the best of perfumes which he could find and after that I saw the glistening of oil on his head and beard. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2695. ------------------------------ Chapter : Applying of perfume to the body before entering upon the state of Ihram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: I still seem to see the glistening of musk (in the parting of the head) of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) while he was in the state of Ihram. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2696. ------------------------------ Chapter : Applying of perfume to the body before entering upon the state of Ihram. This hadith has been narrated by 'Ubaidullah with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2697. ------------------------------ Chapter : Applying of perfume to the body before entering upon the state of Ihram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: I used to perfume the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) with a perfume containing musk before entering upon the state of Ihram and on the day of sacrifice (10th of Dhu'l-Hijja) and (at the conclusion of Ihram) before circumambulating the House (for Tawaf-i-Ifada). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2698. ------------------------------ Chapter : Applying of perfume to the body before entering upon the state of Ihram. Muhammad b. al-Muntashir reported on the authority of his father: I asked 'Abdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) about a person who applied perfume and then (on the following) morning entered upon the state of Ihram. Thereupon he said: I do not like to enter upon the state of Ihram shaking off the perfume. Rubbing of tar (upon my body) is dearer to me than doing this (i.e. the applying of perfume), I went to 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) and told her that Ibn 'Umar stated: "I do not like to enter upon the state of Ihram shaking off the perfume. Rubbing of tar (upon my body) is dearer to me than doing it (the applying of perfume)." Thereupon 'Aisha said: I applied perfume to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) at the time of his entering upon the state of Ihram. He then went round his wives and then put on Ihram in the morning. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2699. ------------------------------ Chapter : Applying of perfume to the body before entering upon the state of Ihram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: I used to apply perfume to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). He then went round his wives, and entered upon the state of Ihram in the morning and the perfume was shaken off. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2700. ------------------------------ Chapter : Applying of perfume to the body before entering upon the state of Ihram. Muhammad b. al-Muntashir reported on the authority of his father: I heard from Ibn 'mar having said this: "It is dearer to me to rub tar (on my body) than to enter upon the state of Ihram (in a state) of shaking off the perfume." He (the narrator) said: I went to 'Aisha and told her about this statement of his (of Ibn 'Umar). Thereupon she said: I applied perfume to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he then went round his wives and then entered upon the state of Ihram in the morning. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2701. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hunting is forbidden for one who is in the state of Ihram. Al-Sa'b b. Jaththama al-Laithi reported that he presented a wild ass to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) when he was at al-Abwa', or Waddan, and he refused to accept it. He (the narrator) said: When the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) looked into my face (which had the mark of dejection as my present had been rejected by him) he (in order to console me) said: We have refused it only because we are in a state of Ihram. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2702. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hunting is forbidden for one who is in the state of Ihram. A hadith (pertaining to this topic),has been narrated on the authority of Zuhri (and the words are): "I presented to him (the Holy Prophet) a wild ass." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2703. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hunting is forbidden for one who is in the state of Ihram. It is narrated on the authority of Zuhri with the same chain of transmitters (the narrator having) said this: "I presented to him the flesh of a wild ass." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2704. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hunting is forbidden for one who is in the state of Ihram. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported that al-Sa'b b. Jaththama presented to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) a wild ass as he was in a state of Ihram, and he returned it to him saying: If we were not in a state of Ihram, we would have accepted it from you. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2705. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hunting is forbidden for one who is in the state of Ihram. The narration transmitted by Hakam (the words are): Al-Sa'b b. Jaththama presented to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) the leg of a wild ass. And in the narration transmitted by Shu'ba (the words are): (He presented to him) the rump of a wild ass as the blood was trickling from it. In the narration transmitted by Shu'ba on the authority of Habib (the words are): A part of a wild ass was presented to the Apostle (may peace he upon him) and he returned it to him (who presented it). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2706. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hunting is forbidden for one who is in the state of Ihram. Tawus reported on the authority of Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) that one Zaid b. Arqamwent to him (Ibn 'Abbas) and said: Narrate how you informed me about the meat of the game presented to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as he was in the state of Ihram. Thereupon he said: He was presented with a slice of the meat of game, but he returned it to him (who presented it) saying: We are not going to eat it, as we are in the state of Ihram. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2707. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hunting is forbidden for one who is in the state of Ihram. Abu Qatada reported: We went with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) till we reached al-Qaha (a place three stages away from Medina). Some of us were in the state of Ihram and some of us were not. I saw my companions looking towards something, and as I saw I found It to be a wild ass. I saddled my horse and took up my spear and then mounted upon (the horse) and my whip, fell down. I said to my companions as they were in the state of Ihram to pick up the whip for me but they said: By Allah, we cannot help you in any (such) thing (i.e. hunting). So I dismounted (the horse) and picked it (whip) up and mounted again and caught the wild ass after chasing it. It was behind a hillock and I attacked it with my spear and killed it. Then I brought it to my companions. Some of them said: Eat it, while others said: Do not eat it. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) was in front of us. I moved my horse and came to him (and asked him), whereupon he said: It is permissible, so eat it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2708. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hunting is forbidden for one who is in the state of Ihram. Abu Qatada (Allah be pleased with him) reported that while he was with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on one of the highways of Mecca, he lagged behind him (the Holy Prophet) along with companions who were in the state of Ihram, whereas he was himself not Muhrim. He saw a wild ass. As he was mounting his horse he asked his companions to pick up for him his whip (which had dropped) but they refused to do so. He asked them to hand him over the spear, but they refused. He then himself took hold of it and chased the wild ass and killed it. Some of the Companions of the Apostle of Allah (way peace be upon him) ate (its meat), but some of them refused to do so. They overtook the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and asked him about it, and he said: It is a food which Allah provided you (so eat it). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2709. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hunting is forbidden for one who is in the state of Ihram. This hadith pertaining to the wild ass is reported on the authority of Abu Qatada. The rest of the hadith is the same but with this (variation of words) that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: "Is there with you some of its flesh?" Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2710. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hunting is forbidden for one who is in the state of Ihram. 'Abdullah b. Abu Qatada reported: My father went with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) in the year of Hudaibiya. His Companions entered upon the state of Ihram whereas he did not, for it was conveyed to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) that the enemy (was hiding at) Ghaiqa. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) went forward. He (Abu Qatada) said: Meanwhile I was along with his Companions, some of them smiled (to one another) As I cast a glance I saw a wild ass. I attacked It with a spear and held it, and begged for their (i.e. of his companions) assistance, but they refused to help me and we ate its meat. But we were afraid lest we should be separated (from the Messenger of Allah). So I proceeded on (with a view to) seeking the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Sometimes I dashed my horse and sometimes I made it run at a leisurely pace (keeping pace with others). (In the meanwhile) I met a person from Banfu Ghifar in the middle of the night. I said to him: Where did you meet the messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him)? He said: I left him at Ta'bin and he intended to halt at Suqya to spend the afternoon. I met him and said: Messenger of Allah. your Companions convey salutations and benedictions of Allah to you and they fear that they may not be separated from you (and the enemy may do harm to you), so wait for them, and he (the Holy Prophet) waited for them. I said: Messenger of Allah, I killed a game and there is left with me (some of the meat). The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to his people: Eat it. And they were in the state of Ihram. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2711. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hunting is forbidden for one who is in the state of Ihram. 'Abdullah b. Abu. Qatada reported on the authority of his father (Allah be pleased with him): The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) set out for Pilgrimage and we also set out along with him. He (Abu Qatada) said: There proceeded on some of his Companions and Abu Qatada was (one of them). He,(the Holy Prophet) said: You proceed along the coastline till you meet me. He (Abfl Qatida) said: So they proceeded ahead of the Prophet of God (may peace be upon him), all of them had entered upon the state of Ihram, except Abu Qatada; he had not put on ihram. As they went on they saw a wild ass, and Abu Qatada attacked it and cut off its hind legs. They got down and ate its meat. They said: We ate meat In the state of Ihram. They carried the meat that was left of it. As they came to the Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) they said: Messenger of Allah, we were in the state of Ihram where as Abu Qatada was not. We saw a wild ass and Abu Qatada attacked it and cut off its hind legs. We got down and ate its meat and we thus ate the meat of a game while we were In the state of Ihram. We have (carried to you) what was left out of its meat. There upon he (the holy Prophet) said: Did anyone among you command him (to hunt) or point to him with anything (to do so)? They said: No. There upon he said: Then eat what is left out of its meat. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2712. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hunting is forbidden for one who is in the state of Ihram. This hadith is narrated on the authority of 'Uthman b. 'Abdullah b. Mauhab with the same chain of transmitters. And in the narration transmitted on the authority of Shaiban (the words are): "The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Did any one of you command him to attack it or point towards it?" And in the narration transmitted by Shu'ba (the words are): "Did you point out or did you help or did you hunt?" Shu'ba said: I do not know whether he said: "Did you help or did you hunt?" Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2713. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hunting is forbidden for one who is in the state of Ihram. Abdullah b. Abu Qatada narrated on the authority of his father (Allah be pleased with him) that they went with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) on an expedition to Hudaibiya. He (further) said: They had entered upon the state of Ihram except I for 'Umra. He (again) said: I (Abu Qatada) hunted a wild ass and fed my companions In the state of their being Muhrim. I then came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and informed him that we had with us the meat that was left out of it Thereupon he said: Eat It, while they were in the state of Ihram. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2714. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hunting is forbidden for one who is in the state of Ihram. 'Abdullah b. Abu Qatada reported on the authority of his father (Allah be pleased with him) that they went out with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and they were Muhrim except Abu Qatada. The rest of the hadith Is the same (but with the exception of these words): "He (the Holy Prophet) said: 15 there anything out of it? They said: We have its leg with us. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) took it and ate it." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2715. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hunting is forbidden for one who is in the state of Ihram. Abdullah b. Abi Qatada reported that Abu Qatada was among the party of those who had entered upon the state of Ihram whereas he was not. The rest of the hadith is the same (and herein it is also narrated): "He (the Holy Prophet) said: Did any person among you point to him (to hunt) or command him (in any form)? They said: Messenger of Allah, not at all. Thereupon he said: Then eat it." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2716. ------------------------------ Chapter : Hunting is forbidden for one who is in the state of Ihram. Abd al-Rahman b. 'Uthman Taimi reported on the authority of his father; While we were with Talha b. Ubaidullah and were in the state of Ihram we were presented a (cooked) bird. Talha was sleeping. Some of us ate it and some of us refrained from (eating) it. When Talba awoke he agreed with him who ate it, and said: We ate it along with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2717. ------------------------------ Chapter : Which animal the Muhrim and the non-Muhrim are permitted to kill in the state of Ihram at the conclusion of it (within the precincts of the Ka'ba). 'Aisha, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him). said: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Four are the vicious (birds, beasts and reptiles) which should be killed in the state of Ihram or otherwise: kite (and vulture), crow, rat, and the voracious dog I (one of the narrators, 'Ubaid-ullah b. Miqsam) said to Qasim (the other narrator who beard it from 'Aisha): What about the snake? lie said: Let it be killed with disgrace. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2718. ------------------------------ Chapter : Which animal the Muhrim and the non-Muhrim are permitted to kill in the state of Ihram at the conclusion of it (within the precincts of the Ka'ba). 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported Allah'* Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: Five are the harmful things which should be killed in the state of Ihram or otherwise: snake, speckled crow, rat, voracious dog, and kite. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2719. ------------------------------ Chapter : Which animal the Muhrim and the non-Muhrim are permitted to kill in the state of Ihram at the conclusion of it (within the precincts of the Ka'ba). 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Five are the vicious beasts which should be killed even in the state of Ihram: scorpion, rat, kite, crow and voracious dog. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2720. ------------------------------ Chapter : Which animal the Muhrim and the non-Muhrim are permitted to kill in the state of Ihram at the conclusion of it (within the precincts of the Ka'ba). This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Hisham with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2721. ------------------------------ Chapter : Which animal the Muhrim and the non-Muhrim are permitted to kill in the state of Ihram at the conclusion of it (within the precincts of the Ka'ba). 'Aisha reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) having said this: Five are the vicious and harmful things which should be killed even within the precincts of Haram: rat, scorpion, crow, kite and voracious dog. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2722. ------------------------------ Chapter : Which animal the Muhrim and the non-Muhrim are permitted to kill in the state of Ihram at the conclusion of it (within the precincts of the Ka'ba). This hadith has been narrated on the authority Zuhri with the same chain of transmitters that she ('Aisha) reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) commanded to kill five harmful things in the state of ihram or otherwise. The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2723. ------------------------------ Chapter : Which animal the Muhrim and the non-Muhrim are permitted to kill in the state of Ihram at the conclusion of it (within the precincts of the Ka'ba). I'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Five are the beasts 1618 harmful and vicious and these must be killed even within the precincts of the Ka'ba: crow, kite, voracious dog, scorpion and rat. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2724. ------------------------------ Chapter : Which animal the Muhrim and the non-Muhrim are permitted to kill in the state of Ihram at the conclusion of it (within the precincts of the Ka'ba). Salim reported on the authority of his father (Allah be pleased with them) that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Five are the (beasts) which if one kills them in the precincts of the Ka'ba or in the state of ihram entail no sin: rat, scorpion, crow, kite and voracious dog. In another version the words are: "as a Muhrim and in the state of ihram". Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2725. ------------------------------ Chapter : Which animal the Muhrim and the non-Muhrim are permitted to kill in the state of Ihram at the conclusion of it (within the precincts of the Ka'ba). Hafsa, the wife of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him), reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) having said this: There are five beasts, all of them are vicious and harmful and there is no tin for one who kills them (and these are): scorpion, crow, kite, rat and voracious dog. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2726. ------------------------------ Chapter : Which animal the Muhrim and the non-Muhrim are permitted to kill in the state of Ihram at the conclusion of it (within the precincts of the Ka'ba). Zaid b. Jubair reported: A person asked Ibn Umar which beast a Muhrim could kill. Thereupon he said: One of the wives of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) told me: He (the Holy Prophet) commanded to kill rat, scorpion, kite, voracious dog and crow. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2727. ------------------------------ Chapter : Which animal the Muhrim and the non-Muhrim are permitted to kill in the state of Ihram at the conclusion of it (within the precincts of the Ka'ba). Zaid b. Jubair reported: A person asked Ibn 'Umar which beast a Mubrim could kill, whereupon he said: One of the wives of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) told me: He (the Holy Prophet) commanded to kill voracious dog, rat, scorpion, kite, crow, and snake (and this is allowed) likewise in prayer. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2728. ------------------------------ Chapter : Which animal the Muhrim and the non-Muhrim are permitted to kill in the state of Ihram at the conclusion of it (within the precincts of the Ka'ba). Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Five are the beasts for killing which there is no sin for the Muhrim: crow, kite, 5corpiou, rat and voracious dog. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2729. ------------------------------ Chapter : Which animal the Muhrim and the non-Muhrim are permitted to kill in the state of Ihram at the conclusion of it (within the precincts of the Ka'ba). Ibn Juraij reported: I said to Nafi: What is that which you heard Ibn ,Umar declaring permissible for a Mubrim to kill some of the beasts? Nafi, said to me that 'Abdullah had reported: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Five are the beasts in killing which or their being killed, there is no sin: crow, kite, scorpion, rat and voracious dog. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2730. ------------------------------ Chapter : Which animal the Muhrim and the non-Muhrim are permitted to kill in the state of Ihram at the conclusion of it (within the precincts of the Ka'ba). This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Ibn 'Umar through be upon him) as saying: Five (are the beasts) in killing which or their being killed in the precinct of the Ka'ba there is no sin." The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2731. ------------------------------ Chapter : Which animal the Muhrim and the non-Muhrim are permitted to kill in the state of Ihram at the conclusion of it (within the precincts of the Ka'ba). 'Abdullah b. Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Five (are the animals) which, it one kills them In the state of Ihram, entail no sin for one (who does it): scorpion, rat, voracious dog, crow and kite. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2732. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to shave the head in the state of Ihram if there is a trouble, and expiation becomes obligatory for shaving. Ka'b b. 'Ujra (Allah be pleased with him) reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to me on the occasion of Hudaibiya and I was kindling fire under my cooking pot and lice were creeping on my face. Thereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: Do the vermin's harm your head? I said: Yes. He said: Get your head shaved and (in lieu of it) observe fasts for three days or feed six needy persons, or offer sacrifice (of an animal). Ayyub said: I do not know with what (type of expiation) did he commence (the statement). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2733. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to shave the head in the state of Ihram if there is a trouble, and expiation becomes obligatory for shaving. This hadith is narrated on the authority of Ayyub. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2734. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to shave the head in the state of Ihram if there is a trouble, and expiation becomes obligatory for shaving. Kalb b. Ujra (Allah be pleased with him) reported: It was I for whom this verse was revealed (to the Holy Prophet): "Whoever among you is sick or has an ailment of the head, he (may effect) a compensation by lasting or alms or a sacrifice" He said: I came to him (the Holy Prophet) and he said: Come Dear. So I went near. He (again) said: Come near. So I went near. Thereupon the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Do the vermin's trouble you? Ibn Aun (one of the narrators) said: I think he (Ka'b b. Ujra) replied in the affirmative. He (the Holy Prophet) then commanded to do compensation by fasting or by giving sadaqa (feeding six needy persons) or by sacrifice (of a animal) that is available. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2735. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to shave the head in the state of Ihram if there is a trouble, and expiation becomes obligatory for shaving. Ka'b b. 'Ujra (Allah be pleased with him) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be, upon him) stood near him and lice were falling from his head. Thereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: Do these vermin's trouble you? I said: Yes. Thereupon he said: Then shave your head; and it was in connection with me that this verse was revealed: "Whoever among you is sick or has an ailment of the head, he (may effect) a compensation by fasting or alms or a sacrifice". He (the Holy Prophet, therefore) said to me: Observe fast for three days or give a quantity of alms enough to feed six needy persons or offer sacrifice (of an animal) that is available. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2736. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to shave the head in the state of Ihram if there is a trouble, and expiation becomes obligatory for shaving. Ka'b b. 'Ujra (Allah be pleased with him) reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) happened to pass by him at Hudaibiya before entering Mecca in a state of Ihram and he (Ka'b) was kindling fire under the cooking pot and virmins were creeping on his (Kalb's) face. Thereupon (the Holy Prophet) said: Do these vermin's trouble you? He (Ka'b) said: Yes. The Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) said: Shave your head and give some quantity of food enough to feed six needy persons (faraq is equal to three sa's), or observe fast for three days or offer sacrifice of a sacrificial animal. Ibn Najih (one of the narrators) said: "Or sacrifice a goat." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2737. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to shave the head in the state of Ihram if there is a trouble, and expiation becomes obligatory for shaving. Ka'b b. Ujra (Allah be pleased with him) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) happened to pass by him during the period of Hudaibiya. Thereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said to him (Ka'b b. Ujra): Do these vermin's trouble your head? He said: Yes. Thereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: Shave your head. Then sacrifice a goat or observe fasts for three days or give three sits of dates to feed six needy persons. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2738. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to shave the head in the state of Ihram if there is a trouble, and expiation becomes obligatory for shaving. Abdullah b. Ma'qil said: I sat with Ka'b (Allah be pleased with him) and he was in the mosque. I asked him about this verse: "Compensation in (the form of) fasting, or Sadaqa or sacrifice." Ka'b (Allah be pleased with him) said: It was revealed In my case. There was some trouble in my head. I was taken to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and lice were creeping upon my face. Thereupon he said: I did not think that your trouble had become so unbearable as I see. Would you be able to afford (the sacrificing) of a goat? I (Ka'b) said: Then this verse was revealed: "Compensation (in the form of) fasting or alms or a sacrifice." He (the Holy Prophet) said: (It Implies) fasting for three days, or feeding six needy persons, half sa' of food for every needy person. This verse was revealed particularly for me and (now) Its application is general for all of you. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2739. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to shave the head in the state of Ihram if there is a trouble, and expiation becomes obligatory for shaving. Ka'b b. Ujra (Allah be pleased with him) reported that he went out with the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) in the state of Ihram, and his (Ka'b's) head and beard were infested with lice. This was conveyed to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him). He sent for him (Ka'b) and called a barber (who) shaved his head. He (the Holy Prophet) said. Is there any sacrificial animal with you? He (Kalb) said: I cannot afford it. He then commanded him to observe fasts for three days or feed six needy persons, one sa' for every two needy persons. And Allah the Exalted and Majestic revealed this (verse) particular with regard to him: "So whosoever among you is sick and has an ailment of the head..."; then (its application) became general for the Muslims. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2740. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of cupping for a Muhrim. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) got himself cupped in the state of Ihram. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2741. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of cupping for a Muhrim. Ibn Buhaina reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) got himself cupped in the middle of his head on his way to Mecca. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2742. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Muhrim is permitted to get the treatment for his eyes. Nubaih b. Wabb reported: We went with Aban b. Uthman (in a state of ihram). When we were at Malal the eyes of Umar b. Ubaidullah became sore and, when we reached Rauba' the pain grew intense. He (Nubaib b. Wahb) sent (one) to Aban b. Uthman to ask him (what to do). He sent him (the message) to apply aloes to them, for 'Uthman (Allah be pleased with him) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) applied aloes to the person whose eyes were sore and he was in the state of Ihram. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2743. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Muhrim is permitted to get the treatment for his eyes. Nubaih b Wahb reported that the eyes of Umar b. Ubaidnllah b. Ma'mar were swollen, and he decided to use antimony. Aban b. 'Uthman forbade him to do so and commanded him to apply aloes on them, and reported on the authority of 'Uthman b. Affan that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) had done that. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2744. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of washing the body and head for the Muhrim. Ibrahim b. 'Abdullah narrated on the authority of his father that there cropped up a difference of opinion between Abdullah b. 'Abbas and al-Miswar b. Makhrama at a place (called) Abwa'. Abdullah b. 'Abbas contended that a Muhrim (is permitted) to wash his head, whereas Miswar contended that a Muhrim is not (permitted) to wash his head. So Ibn Abbas sent me (the father of Ibrabam) to Abu Ayyub al-Ansari to ask him about it. (So I went to him) and found him taking bath behind two poles covered by a cloth. I gave him salutation, whereupon be asked: Who is this? I said: I am 'Abdullah b. Hunain. 'Abdullah b. 'Abbas has sent me to you to find out how the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) washed his head in the state of Ihram. Abu Ayyub (Allah be pleased with him) placed his hand on the cloth and lowered it (a little) till his head became visible to me; and he said to the man who was pouring water upon him to pour water. He poured water on his head. He then moved his head with the help of his hands and moved them (the hands) forward and backward and then said: This is how I saw him (the Messenger of Allah) doing. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2745. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of washing the body and head for the Muhrim. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Zaid b. Aslam with the same chain of transmitters that Abu Ayyub rubbed his whole head with his hands and then moved them forward and backward. Miswar said to Ibn 'Abbas: I would never dispute with you (in future). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2746. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be done with a Muhrim when he dies. Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported that a person fell down from his camel (in a state of Ihram) and his neck was broken and he died. Thereupon Allah's Apostle.(may peace be upon him) said: Bathe him with water mixed with the leaves of the lote tree and shroud him in his two (pieces of) cloth (Ihram), and do not cover his head for Allah will raise him on the Day of Resurrection Pronouncing Talbiya. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2747. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be done with a Muhrim when he dies. Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported: While a person was standing in 'Arafat with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) he fell down from his camel and broke his neck. This was mentioned to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), whereupon he said: Bathe him with water mixed with the leaves of the lote tree and shroud him in two (pieces of) cloth and neither perfume him nor cover his head; (Ayyub said) for Allah would raise him on the Day of Resurrection in the state of pronouncing Talbiya. ('Amr. however, said): Verily Allah would raise him on the Day of Resurrection pronouncing Talbiya. Sa'id b. Jubair narrated this hadith on the authority of Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) that a person was standing with the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) as he was in the state of Ihram. The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2748. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be done with a Muhrim when he dies. Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported that a person proceeded along with the Apostle of Allah (may peace he upon him) in the state of Ihram and fell down from his camel and his neck was broken, and he died. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Bathe him with water mixed with lote (leaves) and shroud him in two (pieces of) cloth and do not cover his head for he would come on the Day of Resurrection pronouncing Talbiya. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2749. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be done with a Muhrim when he dies. Sa'id b. Jubair reported on the authority of Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with him) that a person proceeded with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) in the state of Ihram. The rest of the hadith is the same except that he (the Holy Prophet) (is reported to have) said: He would be raised on the Day of Resurrection pronouncing Talbiya. Sa'id b. Jubair did not name the place where he fell down. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2750. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be done with a Muhrim when he dies. Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported that there was a person in the state of Ihram whose camel broke his neck and he died. Thereupon the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Bathe him with water mixed (with the leaves of) lote tree and shroud him In his two (pieces of) cloth and cover neither his head nor his face, for he would be raised on the Day of Resurrection pronouncing Talbiya. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2751. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be done with a Muhrim when he dies. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported that when a person who was in the state of Ihram was in the company of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), his camel broke his neck and he died. Upon this the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Bathe him with water (mixed with the leaves) of the lute tree and shroud him in his two (pieces of) cloth and, neither perfume him nor cover his head, for he would be raised on the Day of Resurrection pronouncing Talbiya. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2752. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be done with a Muhrim when he dies. Sa'id b. Jubair reported on the authority of Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) that a camel broke the neck of its owner while he was in the state of ihram and he was at that time in the company of the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) commanded that he should be bathed with water mixed with (leaves of the) lote (tree) and no perfume should be applied to him and his head should not be covered, for he would be raised on the Day of Resurrection pronouncing Talblya. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2753. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be done with a Muhrim when he dies. Sa'id b. Jubair heard Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) as saying: A person came to Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) while he was in the state of ihram. He fell down from his camel and broke his neck. Thereupon Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) commanded to bathe him with water (mixed with the leaves of) the lote (tree), and shroud him in two (pieces of) cloth and not to apply perfume (to him), keeping his head out (of the shroud). Shu'ba said: He then narrated to me after this (the words) "keeping his head out," his face out, for he would be raised on the Day of Resurrection pronouncing Talbiya. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2754. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be done with a Muhrim when he dies. Sa'id b. Jubair reported on the authority of Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) that the camel of a person broke his neck as he was in the company of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). The Messenger of Allah, (way peace be upon him) commanded them (Companions) to wash him with water mixed (with the leaves of) the lote (tree) and to keep his face exposed; (he, the narrator) said: And his head (too), for he would be raised on the Day of Resurrection pronouncing Talbiya. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2755. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be done with a Muhrim when he dies. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with him) reported that there was a person in the company of Allah's Messenger (may peace' be upon him) whose camel broke his neck and he died; thereupon Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: Wash him, but do not apply perfume and do not cover his face, for he would be raised (on the Day of Resurrection) pronouncing Talbiya. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2756. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of entering into the state Ihram conditionally due to illness. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) went (into the house of) Duba'a bint Zubair and said to her: Did you intend to perform Hajj? She said: By Allah, (I intend to do so) but I often remain ill, whereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said to her: Perform Hajj but with condition, and say: O Allah, I shall be free from Ihram where you detain me. And she (Duba'a) was the wife of Miqdad. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2757. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of entering into the state Ihram conditionally due to illness. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) went (to the house of) Duba'a bint al-Zubair b. Abd al-Muttalib. She said: Messenger of Allah, I intend to perform Hajj, but I am ill. Thereupon Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: Enter Into the state of Ihram on condition that you would abandon it when Allah would detain you. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2758. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of entering into the state Ihram conditionally due to illness. This hadith has been reported on the authority of 'Aisha through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2759. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of entering into the state Ihram conditionally due to illness. Ibn Abbas reported that Duba'a bint al-Zubair b. 'Abd al-Muttalib (Allah be pleased with her) came to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and said: I am an ailing woman but I intend to perform Hajj; what you command me (to do)? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Enter into the state of Ihram (uttering these words) of condition: I would be free from it when Thou wouldst detain me. He (the narrator) said: But she was able to complete (the Hajj without breaking down). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2760. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of entering into the state Ihram conditionally due to illness. Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Duba'a intended to perform Hajj and the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) commanded her (to enter into the state of Ihram) with condition. She did it in compliance with the command of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2761. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of entering into the state Ihram conditionally due to illness. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Ibn 'Abbas with a slight variation of words. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2762. ------------------------------ Chapter : Donning of Ihram for women who are in the state of menses and parturition and excellence of bath while entering into the state of Ihram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that Asma' hint 'Umais gave birth to Muhammad b Abu Bakr near Dhu'I-Hulaifa. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) commanded Abu Bakr to convey to her that she should take a bath and then enter into the state of Ihram. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2763. ------------------------------ Chapter : Donning of Ihram for women who are in the state of menses and parturition and excellence of bath while entering into the state of Ihram. Jabir b. Abdullah (Allah be pleased with them) reported that when Asma' hint Umais gave birth (to a child) in Dhu'I-Hulaifa. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) commanded Abyl Bakr (to convey to her) that she should take a bath and enter Into the state of Ihram. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2764. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) said: We went with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) during the year of the Farewell Pilgrimage. We entered into the state of Ihram for Umra. Then the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Who has the sacrificial animal with him, he should put on Ihram for Hajj along with Umra and should not put it off till he has completed them (both Hajj and Umra). She said: When I came to Mecca. I was having menses, I neither circumambulated the House, nor ran between as-safa' and al-Marwa. I complained about it to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he said: Undo your hair, comb it, and pronounce Talbiya for Hajj, and give up Umra (for the time being), which I did. When we had performed the Hajj, the Messenger of Allah (way peace he upon him) sent me with Abd al-Rabman b. Abu Bakr to Tan'im saying: This is the place for your Umra. Those who had put on Ihram for Umra circumambulated the House, and ran between al-safa' and al-Marwa. They then put off Ihram and then made the last circuit after they had returned from Mina after performing their Hajj, but those who had combined the Hajj and the Umra made only one circuit (as they had combined Hajj and 'Umra). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2765. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. 'Aisha, the wife of the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), said: We went out with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) during the year of the Farewell Pilgrimage. There were some amongst us who had put on Ihram for Umra and there were some who had put on Ihram for Hajj. (We proceeded on till) we came to Mecca. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who put on Ihram for 'Umra but did not bring the sacrificial animal with him should put it off and he who put on Ihram for Umra and he who had brought the sacrificial animal with him should not put it off until he had slaughtered the animal; and he who put on ihram for Hajj should complete it. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) said: I was in the monthly period, and I remained In this state till the day of 'Arafa, and I had entered into the state of Ihram for 'Umra. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) thus commanded me to undo my hair and comb them (again) and enter into the state of Ihram for Hajj, and abandon (the rites of 'Umra). She ('Aisha) said: I did so, and when I had completed my Pilgrimage, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sent with me 'Abd al-Rabman b. Abu Bakr and commanded me to (resume the rites of) 'Umra at Tan'im. the place where (I abandoned) 'Umra and put on Ihram for Hajj (before completing Umra). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2766. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: We went with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) during the year of the Farewell Pilgrimage. I put on Ihram for Umra and did not bring the sacrificial animal. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who has the sacrificial animal with him should enter into the state of Ihram for Hajj along with 'Umra, and he should not put the Ihram off till he has completed both of them. She (Hadrat 'Aisha) said: The monthly period began. When it was the nigt of Arafa,I said to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him): I entered into the state of Ihram for 'Umra, but now how should I perform the Hajj? Thereupon he said: Undo your hair and comb them, and desist from performing Umra, and put on Ihram for Hajj She ('Aisha, said: When I had completed my Hajj he commanded 'Abd al-Rahman b. Abu Bakr to carry me behind him (on bone-back) in order to enable me to resume the rituals of Umra from Tan'im, the place where I abandoned its rituals. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2767. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: 'We went with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) (to Mecca). He said: He who intended among you to put on Ihram for Hajj and Umra should do so. And he who intended to put on Ihram for Hajj may do so and he who intended to put on Ihram for 'Umra only may do so. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) said: The Messenger of Allah (way peace be upon him) put on Ihram for Hajj and some people did that along with him. And some people put on Ihram for Umra and Hajj (both) and some persons put on Ihram for Umra only, and I was among those who put on Ihram for Umra (only). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2768. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: We went with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him? (in his) Farewell Pilgrimage near the time of the appearance of the new moon of Dhu'I-Hijja. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who amongst you intends to put on Ihram for Umra may do so; bad I not brought sacrificial animal along with me, I would have put on Ihram for Umra. She (further said). There were some persons who put on Ihram for Umra, and some persons who put on Ihram for Hajj, and I was one of those who put on Ihram for Umra. We went on till we reached Mecca, and on the day of 'Arafa I found myself In a state of menses, but I did not put off the Ihram for Umra. I told about (this state of mine) to the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him), whereupon he said: Abandon your 'Umra, and undo the hair of your head and comb (them), and put on Ihram for Hajj 'she('Aisha)said: I did accordingly. When it was the night at Hasba and Allah enabled us to complete our Hajj, he (the Holy Prophet) sent with me Abd al-Rahman b. Abu Bakr, and he mounted me behind him on his camel and took me to Tan'im and I put on Ihram for 'Umra, and thus Allah enabled us to complete our Hajj and Umra and (we wore required to observe) neither sacrifice nor alms nor fasting. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2769. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) said: We set out with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) just at the appearance of the new moon of Dhu'l-Hijja. We had no other intention but that of performing the Hajj, whereupon the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who among you intends to put on Ihram for 'Umra should do so for 'Umra. The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2770. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: We went with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) at the appearance of the new moon of Dhu'I-Hijja. There were amongst us those who had put on Ihram for Umra, and those also who had put on Ihram both for Hajj and Umra, and still those who had put on Ihram for Hajj (alone). I was one of those who had put on Ihram for. Umra (only). 'Urwa (one of the narrators) said: Allah enabled her (Hdrat 'Aisha) to complete both Hajj and Umra (according to the way as mentioned above). Hisham (one of the narrators) said: She had neither the sacrificial animal nor (was she required to) fast, nor (was she obliged to give) alms. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2771. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) said: We proceeded with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) during the year of the Farewell Pilgrimage. There were those amongst us who had put on Ihram for Umra, and those who had put on Ihram both for Hajj and "Umra, and those amongst us who had put on Ihram for Hajj (only), while the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had put on Ihram for Hajj (only). He who put on Ihram for Umra put it off (after performing 'Umra), and he who had put on Ihram for Hajj or for both Hajj and 'Umra did not put it off before the day of sacrifice (10th of Dhu'I-Hijja). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2772. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. A'isba (Allah be pleased with her) said: We proceeded with the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) with no other Intention but that of performing the Hajj. As I was at Sarif or near it, I entered in the state of menses. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to me and I was weeping, whereupon he said: Are you in a state of menses? I said. Yes. whereupon he said: This is what Allah has ordained for all the daughters, of Adam. Do whatever the pilgrim does, except that you should not circumambulate the House till you have washed yourself (at the end of the menses period). And the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) offered sacrifice of a cow on behalf of his wives. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2773. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: We went with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) with no other aim but that of Hajj till we came (to the place known as) Sarif; and there I entered in the state of menses. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to me while I was weeping. He said: What makes you weep? I said: Would that I had not come (for Pilgrimage) this year. He (the Holy Prophet) said: What has happened to you? You have perhaps entered the period of menses. I said: Yes. He said: This is what has been ordained for the daughters of Adam. Do what a pilgrim does except that you should not circumambulate the House, till you are purified (of the menses). She ('Aisha) said: When I came to Mecca, the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to his companions: Make this (Ihram) the Ihram for 'Umra. So the people put off Ihram except those who had sacrificial animals with them. She ('Aisha) said: The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) had the sacrificial animal with him, and so had Abd Bakr, 'Umar and other persons of means. They (those who had put off ihram again) put on Ihram (for Hajj) when they marched (towards Mina), and it was the 8th of Dhu'I-Hijja. She ('Aisha) said: When it was the day of sacrifice (10th of Dhu'I-Hijia), I was purified, and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) commanded me and I did the circumambulation of Ifada. She said that the flesh of cow was sent to us. I said: What is It? They said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) has offered cow as sacrifice on behalf of his wives. When it was the might at Hasba, I said: Messenger of Allah, people are coming back from Hajj and Umra, where as I am coming back from Hajj (alone). She ('Aisha) reported: He (the Holy Prophet) commanded "Abd al-Rahman b. Abu Bakr to mount me upon his camel behind him. She ('Aisha) said: I was very young and I well remember that I dozed oil and my face touched the bind part of the haudaj (camel litter) till we came to Tan'im, and entered into the state of Ihram in lieu of Umra (which I for the time being abandoned) and which the people had performed. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2774. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: We entered into the state of. Ihram for Hajj till we were at Sarif and I was in menses. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to me and I was weeping. The rest of the hadith is the same but (with this portion) that there were sacrificial animals with Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and with Abu Bakr, Umar and with rich persons. And they pronounced Talbiya as they proceeded on. And there is no mention of this (too): "I was a girl of tender age and I dozed off and my face touched the bind part of the Haudaj." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2775. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. 'Aisha reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) entered into the state of Ihram for Hajj Ifrid. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2776. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: We proceeded with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) putting on the Ihram for Hajj during the months of Hajj and the night of Hajj till we encamped at Sarlf. He (the Holy Prophet) went to his Companions and said: He who has no sacrificial animal with him, in his case I wish that he should perform Umra (with this Ihram), and he who has the sacrificial animal with him should not do it. So some of them performed Hajj whereas others who had no sacrificial animals with them did not do (Hajj, but performed only 'Umra). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had the sacrificial animal with him and those too who could afford it (performed) Hajj). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to me (i.e. 'Aisha) while I was weeping, and he said: What makes thee weep? I said: I heard your talk with Companions about Umra. He said: What has happened to you? I said: I do not observe prayer (due to the monthly period), whereupon he said: It would not harm you; you should perform (during this time) the rituals of Hajj (which you can do outside the House). Maybe Allah will compensate you for this. You are one among the daughters of Adam and Allah has ordained for you as He has ordained for them. So I proceeded on (with the rituals of Hajj) till we came to Mina. I washed myself and then circumambulated the House, and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) encamped at Muhassab and called ,Abd al-Rahman b. Abua Bakr. and said: Take out your sister from the precincts of the Ka'ba in order to put on Ihram for Umra and circumambulate the House and I shall wait for you here. She said: So I went out and put on Ihram and then circumambulated the House and (ran) between al-Safa and al-Marwa, and then we came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he was in his house in the middle of the night. He said: Have you completed your (rituals)? I said: Yes. He then announced to his Companions to march on. He came out, and went to the House and circumambulated it before the dawn prayer and then proceeded to Medina. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2777. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) said: Some among us put on Ihram for Hajj alone (Hajj Mufrad); some of us for Hajj and Umra together (Qiran), and some of us for Tamattal (first for Umra and after completing it for Haii). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2778. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. Al-Qasim b. Muhammad reported that 'Aisha had come for Hajj. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2779. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. 'Umra reported: I heard 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) as saying: We went out with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) five days before the end of Dhi Qa'dah, and we did see but that he intended to perform Hajj (only), but as we came near Mecca the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) commanded that he who did not have the sacrificial animal with him should put off Ihram after circumambulating the House and running between al-Safa and aI-Marwa (and thus convert his Ihram from that of Hajj to 'Umra). 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) said: The flesh of cow was sent to us on the Day of Sacrifice (10th of Dhu'I-Hijja). I said. What is this? It was said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) sacrificed (the cow) on behalf of his wives. Yabyi said: I made a mention of this hadith (what has been stated by Umra) to Qisim b. Muhammad, whereupon be said: By Allah, she has rightly narrated it to you. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2780. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. This hadlth has been narrated by Yahyi through the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2781. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. Al-Qasim narrated from the Mother of the Believers (Hadrat 'Aisha) that she said: Messenger of Allah, the people return (from Mecca) having done two worships (both Hajj and Umra), but I am coming back with one (only). whereupon he said: You should wait and when the period of menses is over, you should go to Tan'im and put on ihram and then meet us at such and such time (and I think he said tomorrow); and (the reward of this Umra) is for you equal to your hardship or your spending. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2782. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. Ibn al-Muththanna reported on the authority of Ibn Abu'Adi who transmitted on the authority of Ibn'Aun who narrated from al-Qasim and Ibrahim having said: I cannot differentiate the hadith of one from the other (Qasim and Ibrahim) that the Mother of the Believers (Allah be pleased with her) said this: Messenger of Allah, people have come back with two acts of worship. The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2783. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: We went with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and we did not see but that he (intended to perform) Hajj (only), but when we reached Mecca we circumambulated the House; and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) commanded that he who did not have with him a sacrificial animal should put off Ihram. She ('Aisha) said: (And consequently) those who did not bring the sacrificial anima)s with them put off Ihram; and among his wives (too) who had not brought the sacrificial animals with them put off Ihram. 'Aisha said: I entered in the monthly period and could not (therefore) circumambulate the House. When it was the night of Hasba she said: Messenger of Allah, people are coming back (after having performed both) Hajj and Umra, whereas I am coming back only with Hajj, whereupon he said: Did you not circumambulate (the Ka'ba) that very night we entered Mecca? She ('Aisha) said: No, whereupon he said: Go along with your brother to Tan'im and put on the Ihram for Umra, and it is at such and such a place that you can meet (us). (In the meanwhile) Safiyya (the wife of the Holy Prophet) said: I think, I will detain you (since I have entered in the monthly) period and you shall have to wait for me for the farewell circuit). Thereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: May you be wounded and your head shorn did you not circumambulate on the Day of Sacrifice (10th of Dhu'I-Hijja)? She said: Yes. The Holy Prophet (way peace be upon him) said: There is no harm. You should go forward. 'Aisha said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was going upwards to the side of Mecca, whereas I was coming down from it, or I was going upward, whereas he was coming down. Isbiq said: She was climbing down, and he was climbing down. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2784. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased, with her) reported: We went out with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) pronouncing Talbiya having no explicit intention of Pilgrimage or 'Umra. The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2785. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came out on the 4th or 5th of Dhul'I-Hijja (for Pilgrimage to Mecca) and came to me, and he was very angry. I said: Messenger of Allah, who has annoyed you? May Allah cast him in fire I He said: Don't you know that I commanded the people to do an act, but they are hesitant. (Hakam said: I think that he said: They seem to be hesitant.) And if I were to know my affair before what I had to do subsequently, I would not have brought with me the sacrificial animals, and would have bought them (at Mecca) and would have put off ihram as others have done. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2786. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) came out (for Pilgrimage) on The 4th or 5th of Dbu'l Hjjja. The rest of the hadith is the same, but he (the narrator) made no mention of the doubt of Hakam about his (the Prophet's) words: "They were reluctant." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2787. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that she put on Ihram for ,Umra and arrived 'at Mecca) but did not circumambulate the House as she had entered in the period of menses, and then put on Ihram for Hajj and performed all the rituals concerning it (except circumambulating the House). The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to her on the day of march (when pilgrims come to Mina): Your circumambulation would suffice both Hajj and Umra. She, however, felt reluctant. Thereupon the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) sent her with 'Abd al-Rahman to Tan'im and she performed Umra (with separate rituals) after Hajj. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2788. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that she entered in the monthly period at Sarif, and took bath at 'Arafa (after the period was over). The messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to her: Your circumambulation between al Safa and al-Marwa is enough for your Hajj and 'Umra. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2789. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. Safiyya hint Shaiba reported that 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) said: Messenger of Allah, lo ! the people are returning with two rewards whereas I am returning with one reward. Thereupon he commanded 'Abd al-Rahman b. Abu Bakr to take her to al-Tan'im. She ('Aisha) said: He seated me behind him on his camel. She(further) stated: I lifted my head covering and took it off from my neck. He struck my foot as if he was striking the camel. I said to him: Do you find anyone here? She (further) said: I entered into the state of Ihram fond. 'Umra till we reached the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he was at Hasba. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2790. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. Abd al-Rahman b. Abu Bakr reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) ordered him to mount 'Aisha behind him and enable her to (enter into the state of Ihram for 'Umra) at Tan'im. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2791. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. Jabir (Allah be pleased with him) said: We, in the state of ihram, came with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) for Hajj Mufrad (with the aim of Hajj only), and 'Aisha set out for Umra, and when we reached Sarif, she (Hadrat 'Aisha) entered in the state of monthly period; we proceeded on till we reached (Mecca) and circumambulated the Ka'ba and ran between (al-Safa) and al-Marwa; and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) commanded that one who amongst us had no sacrificial animal with him should put off Ihram. We said: What does this "Putting off" imply? He said: Getting out completely from the state of ihram, (so we put off Ihram), and we turned to our wives and applied perfume and put on our clothes and we were at a four night's distance from 'Arafa. And we again put on Ihram on the day of Tarwiya (8th of Dhu'l-Hijja). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) and found her weeping, and said: What is the matter with you? She said: The matter is that I have entered in the monthly period, and the people had put off ihram, but I did not and I did not circumambulate the House, and the people are going for Hajj now (but I can't go), whereupon he said: It is the matter which Allah has ordained for the daughters of Adam, so now take a bath and put on Ihram for Hajj. She ('Aisha) did accordingly, and stayed at the places of staying till the monthly period was over. She then circumambulated the House, and (ran between) al-Safa and al-Marwa. He (the Holy Prophet) then said: Now both your Hajj and 'Umra are complete, whereupon she said: I feel in my mind that I did not circumambulate the House till I performed Hajj (I missed the circumambulation of 'Umra). Thereupon he (Allah's Apostle) said: 'Abd al-Rahman, take her to Tan'im (so as to enable her) to perform Umra (separately), and it was the night at Hasba. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2792. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. Jabir b. Abdullah is reported to have said that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) came to 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) and she was weeping. The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2793. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported that 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) entered into the state of Ihram (separately) for 'Umra while the Prophet (may peace be upon him) was performing Hajj. The rest of the hadith is the same, but with this addition: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was a person of gentle disposition, so when she ('Aisha) wished for a thing, he accepted it (provided it did not contravene the teachings of Islam). So he (in pursuance of her desire for a separate ihram for Umra) sent her with 'Abd al-Rahman b. Abu Bakr and she put on Ihram for 'Umra at al-Tan'im. Matar and Abu Zubair (the two narrators amongst the chain of transmitters) said: Whenever 'Aisha performed Hajj she did as she bad done along with Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2794. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. Jabir (Allah be pleased with him) said.: We went with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) in 'a state of Ihram for the Hajj. There were women and children with us. When we reached Mecca we circumambulated the House and (ran) between al-Safa and al-Marwa. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: He who has no sacrificial animal with him should put off ihram. We said: What kind of putting off? He said: Getting out of ihram completely. So we came to our wives, and put on our clothes and applied perfume. When it was the day of Tarwiya, we put on Ihram for Hajj and the first circumambulation and (running) between al-Safa and al-Marwa sufficed us... Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) commanded us to become seven partners (in the sacrifice) of a camel and a cow. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2795. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. Jabir b. Abdullah reported that the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) ordered us to put on Ihram (again) as we proceeded towards Mina after we had put it off (i.e. on the 8th of Dhu'l-Hijja). So we pronounced Talbiya at al-Abtah. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2796. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. Jabir b. Abdullah is reported to have said: Neither Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) nor his Companions (circumambulated the Ka'ba and) ran between al-Safa and al-Marwa but once (sufficing both for Hajj and 'Umra). But in the hadith transmitted by Muhammad b. Bakr there is an addition: "That is first circumambulation." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2797. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. 'Ata'reported: I, along with some people, heard Jabir b. 'Abdullah saying: We the Companions of Muhammad (may peace be upon him) put on Ihram for Hajj only. Ata' further said that Jabir stated: Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) came on the 4th of Dhu'l-Hijja and he commanded us to put off Ihram. 'Ata'said that he (Allah's Apostle) commanded them to put off Ihram and to go to their wives (for intercourse). 'Ata' said: It was not obligatory for them, but (intercourse) with them had become permissible. We said: When only five days had been left to reach 'Arafa, he (the Holy Prophet) commanded us to have intercourse with our wives. And we reached 'Arafa in a state as if we had just intercourse (with them). He ('Ata') said: Jabir pointed with his hand and I (perceive) as if I am seeing his hand as it moved. In the (meantime) the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) stood amongst us and said: You are well aware that I am the most God-fearing, most truthful and most pious amongst you. And if there were not sacrificial animals with me, I would also have put off Ihram as you have put off. And if I were to know this matter of mine what I have come to know later on. I would not have brought sacrificial animals with me. So they (the Companions) put on Ihram and we also put off and listened to (the Holy Prophet) and obeyed (his command). Jabir said: 'All came with the revenue of the taxes (from Yemen). He (the Holy Prophet) said: For what (purpose) have you entered into the state of Ihram (whether you entered into the state purely for Hajj and ,Umra jointly or Hajj and Umra separately)? He said: For the purpose for which the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) had entered. (The Holy Prophet had entered as a Qiran, i.e. Ihram covering both Umra and Hajj simultaneously.) Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Offer a sacrifice of animal, and retain Ihram. And 'All brought a sacrificial animal for him (for the Holy Prophet). Suraqa b. Malik b. Ju'shum said: Messenger of Allah, is it (this concession putting off Ihram of Hajj or Umra) meant for this year or is it for ever?. He said: It is for ever. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2798. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. Jabir b. 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with them) reported: We entered with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) in the state of Ihram for Hajj. When we came to Mecca he commanded us to put on Ihram and make it for 'Umra. We felt It (the command) hard for us, and our hearts were anguished on account of this and it (this reaction of the people) reached the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him). We do not know whether he received (this news) from the Heaven (through revelation) or from the people. (Whatever the case might be) he said; O people, put off Ihram. If there were not the sacrificial animals with me, I would have done as you do. So we put off the Ihram (after performing Umra), and we bad intercourse with our wives and did everything which a non-Muhrim does (applying perfume, putting on clothes, etc.), and when It was the day of Tarwiya (8th of Dhu'l-Hijja) we turned our back to Mecca (in order to go to Mini, 'Arafat) and we put on ihram for Hajj. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2799. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. Musa b. Nafi reported: I came to Mecca as a Mutamattil for Umra (performing Umra first and then putting off ihram and again entering into the state of Ihram for Hajj) four days before the day of Tarwiya (i.e. on tee 4th of Dhu'l-Hijja). Thereupon the people said: Now yours is the Hajj of the Meccans. I went to 'Ata' b. Abi Rabah and asked his religious verdict. Ata' said: Jabir b. 'Abdullah al'Ans-ari (Allah be pleased with them) narrated to me that he performed Hajj with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) in the year when he took sacrificial animals with him (i.e. during the 10th year of Hijra known as the Farewell Pilgrimage) and they had put on Ihram for Hajj only (as Mufrid). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: Put off Ihram and circumambulate the House, and (run) between al-Safa and al-Marwa and get your hair cut and stay as non-Muhrims. When it was the day of Tarwiya, then put on Ihram for Hajj and make ihram for Mut'a (you had put on Ihram for Hajj, but take it off after performing Umra and then again put on Ihram for Hajj). They said: How should we make it Mut'a although we entered upon ihram in the name of Hajj? He said: Do whatever I command you to do. Had I not brought sacrificial animals with me, I would have done as I have commanded you to do. But it is not permissible for me to put off Ihram till the sacrifice is offered. Then they also did accordingly. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2800. ------------------------------ Chapter : Types of Ihram- It is permissible to enter into the state of Ihram singularly for the sake of Hajj or for tamattu' bi'l-'umra ila'l-Hajj or for both hajj and 'umra together. Jabir b. 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with them) reported: We set out with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as Muhrim for Hajj. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) commanded us to make this Ihram for Umra, and some put it off (after performing 'Umra), but the Prophet (may peace be upon him) had sacrificial animals with him, so he could not make it (this Ihram) as that of Umra. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2801. ------------------------------ Chapter : Performing Hajj and Umra separately. Abu Nadra reported: Ibn 'Abbas commanded the performance of Mut'a putting ihram for 'Umra during the months of Dhu'I-Hijja and after completing it, then putting on Ihram for Hajj), but Ibn Zubair forbade to do it. I made a mention of it to Jabir b. Abdullih and he said: It is through me that this hadith has been circulated. We entered into the state of Ihram as Tamattu' with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him). When 'Umar was Installed as Caliph, he said: Verily Allah made permissible for His Messenger (may peace be upon him) whatever He liked and as Re liked. And (every command) of the Holy Qur'an has been revealed for every occasion. So accomplish Hajj and Umra for Allah as Allah has commanded you; and confirm by (proper conditions) the marriage of those women (with whom you have performed Mut'a). And any person would come to me with a marriage of appointed duration (Mut'a), I would stone him (to death). Qatada narrated this hadith with the same chain of transmitters saying: (That 'Umar also said): Separate your Hajj from 'Umra, for that is the most complete Hajj, and complete your Umra. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2802. ------------------------------ Chapter : Performing Hajj and Umra separately. Jabir b. 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with them) reported: We came with the Messenger of Allah (May peace be upon him) pronouncing Talbiya for Hajj, and the Messenger of Allah (May peace be upon him) commanded us to make (our Ihram) into that of Umra. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2803. ------------------------------ Chapter : Performing Hajj and Umra separately. Ja'far b Muhammad reported on the authority of his father: We went to Jabir b. Abdullah and he began inquiring about the people (who had gone to see him) till it was my turn. I said: I am Muhammad b. 'Ali b. Husain. He placed his hand upon my head and opened my upper button and then the lower one and then placed his palm on my chest (in order to bless me), and I was, during those days, a young boy, and he said: You are welcome, my nephew. Ask whatever you want to ask. And I asked him but as he was blind (he could not respond to me immediately), and the time for prayer came. He stood up covering himself in his mantle. And whenever he placed its ends upon his shoulders they slipped down on account of being short (in size). Another mantle was, however, lying on the clothes rack near by. And he led us in the prayer. I said to him: Tell me about the Hajj of Allah's Messenger (May peace be upon him). And he pointed with his hand nine, and then stated: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) stayed in (Medina) for nine years but did not perform Hajj, then he made a public announcement in the tenth year to the effect that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) was about to perform the Hajj. A large number of persons came to Medina and all of them were anxious to follow the Messenger of Allah (May peace be upon him) and do according to his doing. We set out with him till we reached Dhu'l-Hulaifa. Asma' daughter of Umais gave birth to Muhammad b. Abu Bakr. She sent message to the Messenger of Allah (May peace be upon him) asking him: What should I do? He (the Holy Prophet) said: Take a bath, bandage your private parts and put on Ihram. The Messenger of Allah (May peace be upon him) then prayed in the mosque and then mounted al-Qaswa (his she-camel) and it stood erect with him on its back at al-Baida'. And I saw as far as I could see in front of me but riders and pedestrians, and also on my right and on my left and behind me like this. And the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was prominent among us and the (revelation) of the Holy Qur'an was descending upon him. And it is he who knows (its true) significance. And whatever he did, we also did that. He pronounced the Oneness of Allah (saying): "Labbaik, O Allah, Labbaik, Labbaik. Thou hast no partner, praise and grace is Thine and the Sovereignty too; Thou hast no partner." And the people also pronounced this Talbiya which they pronounce (today). The Messenger of Allah (May peace be upon him) did not reject anything out of it. But the Messenger of Allah (May peace be upon him) adhered to his own Talbiya. Jabir (Allah be pleased with him) said: We did not have any other intention but that of Hajj only, being unaware of the Umra (at that season), but when we came with him to the House, he touched the pillar and (made seven circuits) running three of them and walking four. And then going to the Station of Ibrahim, he recited: "And adopt the Station of Ibrahim as a place of prayer." And this Station was between him and the House. My father said (and I do not know whether he had made a mention of it but that was from Allah's Apostle [May peace be upon him] that he recited in two rak'ahs: "say: He is Allah One," and say: "Say: O unbelievers." He then returned to the pillar (Hajar Aswad) and kissed it. He then went out of the gate to al-Safa' and as he reached near it he recited: "Al-Safa' and al-Marwa are among the signs appointed by Allah," (adding:) I begin with what Allah (has commanded me) to begin. He first mounted al-Safa' till he saw the House, and facing Qibla he declared the Oneness of Allah and glorified Him, and said: "There is no god but Allah, One, there is no partner with Him. His is the Sovereignty, to Him praise is due and He is Powerful over everything. There is no god but Allah alone, Who fulfilled His promise, helped His servant and routed the confederates alone." He then made supplication in the course of that saying such words three times. He then descended and walked towards al-Marwa, and when his feet came down in the bottom of the valley, he ran, and when he began to ascend he walked till he reached al-Marwa. There he did as he had done at al-Safa'. And when it was his last running at al-Marwa he said: If I had known beforehand what I have come to know afterwards, I would not have brought sacrificial animals and would have performed an 'Umra. So, he who among you has not the sacrificial animals with him should put off Ihram and treat it as an Umra. Suraqa b. Malik b. Ju'sham got up and said: Messenger of Allah, does it apply to the present year, or does it apply forever? Thereupon the Messenger of Allah (May peace be upon him) intertwined the fingers (of one hand) into another and said twice: The 'Umra has become incorporated in the Hajj (adding): "No, but for ever and ever." 'All came from the Yemen with the sacrificial animals for the Prophet (May peace be upon him) and found Fatimah (Allah be pleased with her) to be one among those who had put off Ihram and had put on dyed clothes and had applied antimony. He (Hadrat 'Ali) showed disapproval to it, whereupon she said: My father has commanded me to do this. He (the narrator) said that 'Ali used to say in Iraq: I went to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) showing annoyance at Fatimah for what she had done, and asked the (verdict) of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) regarding what she had narrated from him, and told him that I was angry with her, whereupon he said: She has told the truth, she has told the truth. (The Holy Prophet then asked 'Ali): What did you say when you undertook to go for Hajj? I ('Ali) said: O Allah, I am putting on Ihram for the same purpose as Thy Messenger has put it on. He said: I have with me sacrificial animals, so do not put off the Ihram. He (Jabir) said: The total number of those sacrificial animals brought by 'Ali from the Yemen and of those brought by the Apostle (may peace be upon him) was one hundred. Then all the people except the Apostle (may peace be upon him) and those who had with them sacrificial animals, put off Ihram, and got their hair clipped; when it was the day of Tarwiya (8th of Dhu'l-Hijja) they went to Mina and put on the Ihram for Hajj and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) rode and led the noon, afternoon, sunset 'Isha and dawn prayers. He then waited a little till the sun rose, and commanded that a tent of hair should be pitched at Namira. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) then set out and the Quraish did not doubt that he would halt at al-Mash'ar al-Haram (the sacred site) as the Quraish used to do in the pre-Islamic period. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), however, passed on till he came to 'Arafa and he found that the tent had been pitched for him at Namira. There he got down till the sun had passed the meridian; he commanded that al-Qaswa should be brought and saddled for him. Then he came to the bottom of the valley, and addressed the people saying: Verily your blood, your property are as sacred and inviolable as the sacredness of this day of yours, in this month of yours, in this town of yours. Behold ! Everything pertaining to the Days of Ignorance is under my feet completely abolished. Abolished are also the blood-revenges of the Days. of Ignorance. The first claim of ours on blood-revenge which I abolish is that of the son of Rabi'a b. al-Harith, who was nursed among the tribe of Sa'd and killed by Hudhail. And the usury of she pre-Islamic period is abolished, and the first of our usury I abolish is that of 'Abbas b. 'Abd al-Muttalib, for it is all abolished. Fear Allah concerning women ! Verily you have taken them on the security of Allah, and intercourse with them has been made lawful unto you by words of Allah. You too have right over them, and that they should not allow anyone to sit on your bed whom you do not like. But if they do that, you can chastise them but not severely. Their rights upon you are that you should provide them with food and clothing in a fitting manner. I have left among you the Muslim Book of Allah, and if you hold fast to it, you would never go astray. And you would be asked about me (on the Day of Resurrection), (now tell me) what would you say? They (the audience) said: We will bear witness that you have conveyed (the message), discharged (the ministry of Prophethood) and given wise (sincere) counsel. He (the narrator) said: He (the Holy Prophet) then raised his forefinger towards the sky and pointing it at the people (said): "O Allah, be witness. O Allah, be witness," saying it thrice. (Bilal then) pronounced Adhan and later on Iqama and he (the Holy Prophet) led the noon prayer. He (Bilal) then uttered Iqama and he (the Holy Prophet) led the afternoon prayer and he observed no other prayer in between the two. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) then mounted his camel and came to the place of stay, making his she-camel al-Qaswa, turn towards the side where there we are rocks, having the path taken by those who went on foot in front of him, and faced the Qibla. He kept standing there till the sun set, and the yellow light had somewhat gone, and the disc of the sun had disappeared. He made Usama sit behind him, and he pulled the nose-string of Qaswa so forcefully that its head touched the saddle (in order to keep her under perfect control), and he pointed out to the people with his right hand to be moderate (in speed), and whenever he happened to pass over an elevated tract of sand, he slightly loosened it (the nose-string of his camel) till she climbed up and this is how he reached al-Muzdalifa. There he led the evening and 'Isha prayers with one Adhan and two Iqamas and did not glorify (Allah) in between them (i.e. he did not observe supererogatory rak'ahs between Maghrib and 'Isha prayers). The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) then lay down till dawn and offered the dawn prayer with an Adhan and Iqama when the morning light was clear. He again mounted al-Qaswa, and when he came to al-Mash'ar al-Haram, he faced towards Qibla, supplicated Him, Glorified Him, and pronounced His Uniqueness (La ilaha illa Allah) and Oneness, and kept standing till the daylight was very clear. He then went quickly before the sun rose, and seated behind him was al-Fadl b. 'Abbas and he was a man having beautiful hair and fair complexion and handsome face. As the Messenger of Allah (May peace be upon him) was moving on, there was also going a group of women (side by side with them). Al-Fadl began to look at them. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) placed his hand on the face of Fadl who then turned his face to the other side, and began to see, and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) turned his hand to the other side and placed it on the face of al-Fadl. He again turned his face to the other side till he came to the bottom of Muhassir.1680 He urged her (al-Qaswa) a little, and, following the middle road, which comes out at the greatest jamra, he came to the jamral682which is near the tree. At this be threw seven small pebbles, saying Allah-o-Akbar while throwing every one of them in a manner in which the small pebbles are thrown (with the help of fingers) and this he did in the bottom of the valley. He then went to the place of sacrifice, and sacrificed sixty-three (camels) with his own hand.1694 Then he gave the remaining number to 'All who sacrificed them, and he shared him in his sacrifice. He then commanded that a piece of flesh from each animal sacrificed should be put in a pot, and when it was cooked, both of them (the Holy Prophet and Hadrat 'All) took some meat out of it and drank its soup. The Messenger of Allah (May peace be upon him) again rode and came to the House, and offered the Zuhr prayer at Mecca. He came to the tribe of Abd al-Muttalib, who were supplying water at Zamzam, and said: Draw water. O Bani 'Abd al-Muttalib; were it not that people would usurp this right of supplying water from you, I would have drawn it along with you. So they handed him a basket and he drank from it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2804. ------------------------------ Chapter : Performing Hajj and Umra separately. Ja'far b. Muhammad narrated on the authority of his father thus: I came to Jabir b. Abdullah and asked him about the (Farewell) Pilgrimage of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). The rest of the hadith is the same, but with the addition of this: "There was one Abu Sayyara among the Arabs, (of pre-Islamic period) who carried (people from Muzdalifa to Mini). As the Messenger of Allah (May peace be upon him) set out from Muzdalifa to al-Mash'ar al-Haram, the Quraish were certain that he would halt there and that would be his station. But he passed on (without staying) there and paid no heed to it till he came to 'Arafat and there he stayed." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2805. ------------------------------ Chapter : Performing Hajj and Umra separately. Jabir reported Allah's Messenger (May peace be upon him) as saying: I have sacrificed (the animals) here, and the whole of Mini is a place for sacrifice; so sacrifice your animals at your places. I have stayed here (near these rocks), and the whole of Arafat is a place for stay. And I have stayed here (at Muzdalifa near Mash'ar al-Haram and the whole of Muzdalifa) is a place for stay (i.e. one is permitted to spend night in any part of it, as one likes). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2806. ------------------------------ Chapter : Performing Hajj and Umra separately. Jabir b. Abdullah (Allah be pleased with them) reported that when Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) proceeded to Mecca, he came to it (the Black Stone), he kissed it and moved to his right and moved quickly in three circuits, and walked in four circuits. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2807. ------------------------------ Chapter : Staying and the significance of the verse: "Then hasten op from where the people hasten on" (ii 199). 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that the Quraish (of the pre-Islamic days) and those who followed their religions practices stayed at Muzdalifa, and they named themselves as Hums, whereas all other Arabs stayed at 'Arafa. With the advent of Islam, Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, commanded His Apostle (may peace be upon him) to come to 'Arafat and stay there, and then hurry from there, and this is the significance of the words of Allah: "Then hasten on from where the people hasten on." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2808. ------------------------------ Chapter : Staying and the significance of the verse: "Then hasten op from where the people hasten on" (ii 199). Hisham narrated on the authority of his father that the Arabs with the exception of Hums who were Quraish, and their descendants, circumambulated the House naked. They kept circumambulating In this state of nudity unless the Hums supplied to them the clothes. The male provided (clothes) to the male and the female provided clothes to the female. And the Hums did not get out of Muzdalifa, whereas the people (other than the Quraish) went t o 'Arafat. Hisham said on the authority of his father who related from 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) who said: Hums are those about whom Allah, the Exalted and Glorious, revealed this verse: "Then hasten to where the people hasten." She (further) said: The people hastened on from 'Arafat, whereas Hums hastened from Muzdalifa, and said: We do not hasten but from Haram. But when this (verse) was revealed: "Hasten on from that (place) where the people hasten on," they (the Quraish) then went to 'Arafat. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2809. ------------------------------ Chapter : Staying and the significance of the verse: "Then hasten op from where the people hasten on" (ii 199). Jubair. b. Mut'im reported: I lost my camel and went in search of it on the day of 'Arafa, and I saw the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) staying along with people in 'Arafat. Thereupon I said: By Allah, he is among the Hums (Quraish) ; what has happened to him that he has come to this (place)? The Quraish were counted among Hums. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2810. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of saying one has entered into Ihram like the Ihram of the other one or Abrogation of putting off Ihram and completing (Hajj and Umra). Abu Musa (Allah be pleased with him) said: I came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) as he was encamping at Batha. He said to me: Did you intend to perform Hajj? I said: Yes. He again said: With what intention have you entered into the state of Ihram (for Ifrad, Qiran or Tamattu'). I said: I pronounced Talbiya (I have entered into the state of Ihram) with that very aim with which the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) is pronouncing Talbiya. He (the Holy Prophet) said; You have done well. Then circumambulate the House and run between al-Safa' and al-Marwa' and put off Ihram (as you have not brought the sacrificial animals along with you). So I circumambulated the House, and ran between al-Safa' and al-Marwa' and then came to a woman of the tribe of Qais and she rid my head of the lice. I again put on Ihram for Hajj and continued giving religious verdict (according to this practice) till during the Caliphate of Umar (Allah be pleased with him) when a person said to him: Abu Musa, or Abdullah b. Qais, exercise restraint in delivering some religious verdict of yours, for you do not know what has been introduced after you by the Commander of the Believers in the rites (of Hajj). Thereupon he said: O people, whom we gave the religious verdict (concerning putting off Ihram) they should wait, for the Commander of the Believers is about to come to you, and you should follow him. Umar (Allah be pleased with him) then came and I made a mention of it to him, whereupon he said: If we abide by the Muslim Book of Allah (we find) the Muslim Book of Allah has commanded us to complete the (.Hajj and 'Umra), and if we abide by the Sunnah of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), we find that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) did not put off Ihram till the sacrificial animal was brought to its end (till it was sacrificed). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2811. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of saying one has entered into Ihram like the Ihram of the other one or Abrogation of putting off Ihram and completing (Hajj and Umra). This hadith has been narrated by Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2812. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of saying one has entered into Ihram like the Ihram of the other one or Abrogation of putting off Ihram and completing (Hajj and Umra). Abu Musa (Allah be pleased with him) reported: I came to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) and he was encamping at Batha. He (the Holy Prophet) said: With what purpose have you entered into the state of Ihram? I said: I have entered into the state of Ihram in accordance with the Ihram of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him). He said: Have you brought sacrificial animals along with you? I said: No. whereupon he said: Then circumambulate the House and run between al-Safa' and al-Marwa and put off Ihram. So I circumambulated the House, ran between al-Safa' and al-Marwa, and then came to a woman of my tribe. She combed and washed my head. I used to give religious verdict (according to the above mentioned command of the Holy Prophet) during the Caliphate of Abu Bakr and also during that of 'Umar. And it was during the Hajj season that a person came to me and said: You (perhaps) do not know what the Commander of the Believers has introduced in the rites (of Hajj). I said: O people, those whom we have given religious verdict about a certain thing should wait, for the Commander of the Believers is about to arrive among you, so follow him. When the Commander of the Believers arrived, I said: What is this that you have introduced in the rites (of Hajj)? -where upon he said: If we abide by the Muslim Book of Allah (we find) that there Allah, Exalted and Majestic, has said: Complete Hajj and 'Umra for Allah." And if we abide by the Sunnah of our Apostle (may peace be upon him) (we find) that the Apostle of Allah (May peace be upon him) did not put off Ihram till he had sacrificed the animals. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2813. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of saying one has entered into Ihram like the Ihram of the other one or Abrogation of putting off Ihram and completing (Hajj and Umra). Abu Musa (Allah be pleased with him) reported: The Messenger of Allah (May peace be upon him) had sent me to Yemen and I came back In the year in which he (the Holy Prophet) performed the (Farewell) Pilgrimage. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon, him) said to me: Abu Musa, what did you ' say when you entered into the state of Ihram? I said: At thy beck and call; my (Ihram) is that of the Ihram of Allah's Apostle (May peace be upon him). He said: Have you brought the sacrificial animals? I said: No. Thereupon he said: Go and circumambulate the House, and (run) between al-Safa' and al-Marwa and then put off Ihram. The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2814. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of saying one has entered into Ihram like the Ihram of the other one or Abrogation of putting off Ihram and completing (Hajj and Umra). Abu Musa, (Allah be pleased with him) reported that he used to deliver religious verdict in favour of Hajj Tamattu'. A person said to him: Exercise restraint in delivering some of your religious verdicts, for you do not know what the Commander of Believers has introduced in the rites (of Hajj) after you (when you were away in Yemen). He (Abu Musa,) met him (Hadrat Umar) subsequently and asked him (about it), whereupon 'Umar said: I know that Allah's Apostle (May peace be upon him) and also his Companions did that (observed Tamattu'), but I do not approve that the married persons should have intercourse with their wives under the shade of the trees, and then set out for Hajj with water trickling down from their beads. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2815. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of the Tamattu' (form of pilgrimage). 'Abdullah b. Shaqiq reported that 'Uthman (Allah be pleased with him) used to forbid Tamattu', whereas 'Ali (Allah be pleased with him) ordered to do it. 'Uthman said a word to 'Ali, but 'Ali said: You know that we used to perform Tamattu' with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), whereupon he said: It is right, but we entertained fear. This hadith has been narrated by Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2816. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of the Tamattu' (form of pilgrimage). Sa'id b. al-Musayyab reported that 'Ali and 'Uthman (Allah be pleased with them) met at 'Usfan; and Uthman used to forbid (people) from performing Tamattu' and 'Umra (during the period of Hajj), whereupon 'Ali said: What is your opinion about a matter which the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) did but you forbid it? Thereupon Uthman said: You leave us alone, whereupon he ('Ali) said: I cannot leave you alone. When 'Ali saw this, he put on Ihram for both of them together (both for Hajj and 'Umra). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2817. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of the Tamattu' (form of pilgrimage). Abu Dharr (Allah be pleased with him) said that Tamattu' in Ha was a special (concession) 1694 for the Companions of Muhammad (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2818. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of the Tamattu' (form of pilgrimage). Abu Dharr (Allah be pleased with him) reported: Tamattu' in Hajj was a special concession for us. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2819. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of the Tamattu' (form of pilgrimage). Abu Dharr (Allah be pleased with him) said: Two are the Mut'as which were not permissible but only for us, i.e. temporary marriage with women and Tamattu' in Hajj. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2820. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of the Tamattu' (form of pilgrimage). 'Abd al-Rahman b. Abi al-Sha'tha' reported: I came to Ibrahim al-Nakha'I and Ibrahim Taimi and said: I intend to combine 'Umra and Hajj this year, whereupon Ibrahim al-Nakha'i said: But your father did not make such intention. Ibrahim narrated on the authority of, his father that he passed by Abu Dharr (Allah be pleased with him) at Rabdha, and made a mention of that, whereupon he said: It was a special concession for us and not for you. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2821. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of the Tamattu' (form of pilgrimage). Ghunaim b. Qais said: I asked Sa'd b. Abu Waqqas (Allah be pleased with him) about Mut'a, whereupon he said: We did that, and it was the day when he was an unbeliever living in (one of the) houses of Mecca. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2822. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of the Tamattu' (form of pilgrimage). This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Sulaiman Taimi with the same chain of transmitters and in his narration (he) refers to Mu'awiya. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2823. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of the Tamattu' (form of pilgrimage). This hadith has been transmitted on the authority of Sulaiman (but with a slight modification of words). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2824. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of the Tamattu' (form of pilgrimage). Mutarrif reported: 'Imran b. Husain said to me: Should I not narrate to you a hadith today by which Allah will benefit you subsequently-and bear in mind that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) made some members of his family perform 'Umra within ten days of Dhu'l-Hijja. No verse was revealed to abrogate that, and he (the Holy Prophet) did not refrain from doing it till he died. So after him everyone said as he liked, (but it would be his personal opinion and not the verdict of the Shari'ah). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2825. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of the Tamattu' (form of pilgrimage). This hadith been narrated on the authority of Jurairi with the same chain of transmitters, and Ibn Hatim said in his narration: "A person said according to his personal opinion, and it was Umar." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2826. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of the Tamattu' (form of pilgrimage). Imran b. Husain reported: I am narrating to you a hadith by which Allah will benefit you (and the hadith is) that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) combined Hajj and 'Umra, and he did not forbid (this combination) till he died, (Moreover) nothing was revealed in the Holy Qur'an which forbade it. And I was always blessed till I was branded and then it (blessing) was abandoned. I then abandoned branding and it (the blessing was restored). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2827. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of the Tamattu' (form of pilgrimage). This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Mutarrif with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2828. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of the Tamattu' (form of pilgrimage). Mutarrif reported: 'Imran b. Husain sent for me during his illness of which he died, and said: I am narrating to you some ahadith which may benefit you after me. If I live you conceal (the fact that these have been transmitted by me), and if I die, then you narrate them if you like (and these are): I am blessed, and bear in mind that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) combined Hajj and Umra. Then no verse was revealed in regard to it in the Muslim Book of Allah (which abrogated it) and the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) did not forbid (from doing it). And whatever a person (,Umar) said was out of his personal opinion. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2829. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of the Tamattu' (form of pilgrimage). 'Imran b. al-Husain (Allah be pleased with him) said: Know well that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) combined 'Hajj and 'Umra, and nothing was revealed in the Muslim Book (to abrogate it), and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) too did not forbid us from (combining) them. And whatever a person said was out of his personal opinion. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2830. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of the Tamattu' (form of pilgrimage). 'Imran b. Husain (Allah be pleased with him) reported: We performed Tamattu' (Hajj and 'Umra combining together) in the company of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), and nothing was revealed in the Qur'an (concerning the abrogation of this practice), and whatever a person (Hadhrat 'Umar) said was his personal opinion. 'Imran b. Husain narrated this hadith (in these words also): "Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) performed Hajj Tamattu' and we also performed it along with him." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2831. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of the Tamattu' (form of pilgrimage). 'Imran b. Husain said: There was revealed the verse of Tamattu' in Hajj in the Muslim Book of Allah and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) commanded us to perform it and then no verse was revealed abrogating the Tamattu' (form of Hajj), and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) did not forbid to do it till he died. So whatever a person said was his personal opinion. A hadith like this is transmitted on the authority of Imran b. Husain, but with this variation that he ('Imran) said: We did that (Tamattu') in the company of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and he did not say anything but he (the Holy Prophet) commanded us to do it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2832. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sacrificing of animal Is obligatory for Tamattul, but he who does not do it is required to observe fast for three days during the Hajj and for seven days when he returns to the family. Abdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) observed Tamattu' in Hajjat-ul-Wada'. He first put on Ihram for 'Umra and then for Hajj and then offered animal sacrifice. So he drove the sacrificial animals with him from Dhu'l-Hulaifa. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) commenced Ihram of Umra and thus pronounced Talbiya for 'Umra and then (put on Ihram for Hajj) and pronounced Talbiya for Hajj. And the people performed Tamattu' in the company of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). They put on Ihram for Umra (first) and then for Hajj. Some of them had sacrificial animals which they had brought with them, whereas some of them had none to sacrifice. So when Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came to Mecca, he said to the people: He who amongst you has brought sacrificial animals along with him must not treat as lawful anything which has become unlawful for him till he has completed the Hajj; and he, who amongst you has not brought the sacrificial animals should circumambulate the House, and run between al-Safa' and al-Marwa and clip (his hair) and put off the Ihram, and then again put on the Ihram for Hajj and offer sacrifice of animals. But he who does not find the sacrificial animal, he should observe fast for three days during the Hajj and for seven days when he returns to his family. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) circumambulated (the House) when he came to Mecca: he first kissed the corner (of the Ka'ba containing the Black Stone), then ran in three circuits out of seven and walked in four circuits. And then when he had finished the circumambulation of the House he observed two rak'ahs of prayer at the Station (of Ibrahim), and then pronounced Salaam (for concluding the rak'ahs), and departed and came to al-Safa' and ran seven times between al-Safa' and al-Marwa. After that he did not treat anything as lawful which had become unlawful till he had completed his Hajj and sacrificed his animal on the day of sacrifice (10th of Dhu'l-Hijja) and then went back quickly (to Mecca) and performed circumambulation of the House (known as tawaf ifada) after which all that was unlawful for him became lawful; and those who had brought the sacrificial animals along with them did as Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had done. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of 'Aisha. The wife of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), concerning his Tamattu' of Hajj and 'Umra and performing of Tamattu' by people in his company. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2833. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Qarin should not put off the Ihram but at the time when a Mufrid pilgrim takes it off. Hafsa (Allah be pleased with her), the wife of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him), said: Messenger of Allah, what about people who have put off Ihram whereas you have not put it off after your 'Umra? He said: I have stuck my hair and have driven my sacrificial animal, and would not, therefore, put off Ihram until I have sacrificed the animal. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2834. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Qarin should not put off the Ihram but at the time when a Mufrid pilgrim takes it off. Hafsa (Allah be pleased with her) reported: I said: Messenger of Allah what is the matter with you that you have not put off Ihram? The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2835. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Qarin should not put off the Ihram but at the time when a Mufrid pilgrim takes it off. Hafsa (Allah be pleased with her) reported: I said to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him): What is the matter with people that they have put off Ihram, whereas you have not put it off after your Umra'? He said: I have driven my sacrificial animal and stuck my hair, and it is not permissible for me to put off Ihram unless I have completed the Hajj. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2836. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Qarin should not put off the Ihram but at the time when a Mufrid pilgrim takes it off. Hafsa (Allah be pleased with her) said: Messenger of Allah; the rest of the hadith is the same and (the concluding words of the Holy Prophet): "I won't put off Ihram until I have sacrificed the animal." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2837. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Qarin should not put off the Ihram but at the time when a Mufrid pilgrim takes it off. Hafsa (Allah be pleased with her) said that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) commanded his wives that they should put off Ihram during the year of Hajj (at-ul-Wada'), whereupon she (Hafsa) said: What hinders you that you have not put off Ihram? Thereupon he said: I have stuck my hair and driven my sacrificial animal along with men and it is not permissible to put off Ihram (under this condition until I have sacrificed the animal. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2838. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of putting off Ihram (in the midst of Hajj ceremonies) in case of obstruction and permissibility of Qiran. Nafi' reported that 'Abdullah b. Umar (Allah be pleased with them) set out for Umra during the turmoil, and he said: If I am detained (from going to) the House, we would do the same as we did with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). So he went out and put on Ihram for 'Umra and moved on until he reached al-Baida'. He turned towards his Companions and said: There is one command for both of them and I call you as my witness (and say) that verify I have made Hajj with 'Umra compulsory for me. He proceeded until, when he came to the House, he circumambulated it seven times and ran between al-Safa' and al-Marwa seven times, and made no addition to it and thought it to be sufficient for him and offered sacrifice. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2839. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of putting off Ihram (in the midst of Hajj ceremonies) in case of obstruction and permissibility of Qiran. Nafi' reported that 'Abdullah b. 'Abdullah and Salim b. Abdullah said to 'Abdullah (b. 'Umar) at the time when Hajjaj came to fight against Ibn Zubair: There would be no harm if you do not (proceed) for Hajj this year, for we fear that there would be fight among people which would cause obstruction between you and the House, whereupon he said: If there would be obstruction between me and that (Ka'ba), I would do as Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) did. I was with him (the Holy Prophet) when the infidels of Quraish caused obstructions between him (the Holy Prophet) and the House. I call you as my witness (to the fact) that I have made 'Umra essential for me. He proceeded until he came to Dhu'l-Hulaifa and pronounced Talbiya for Umra, and said: If the way Is clear for me, I would then complete my 'Umra but If there is some obstruction between me and that (the Ka'ba). I would then do what Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had done (at the occasion of Hudaibiya), and I was with him (the Holy Prophet) and then recited: "Verily in the Messenger of Allah, there is a model pattern for you" (xxxiii. 21). He then moved on until he came to the rear side of al-Baida' and said: There is one command for both of them automatically)(Hajj and Umra). If I am detained (in the performance) of 'Umra, I am (automatically detained (in the performance) of Hajj (too). I call you as witness that Hajj along with 'Umra I had made essential for me. (I am performing Hajj and 'Umra as Qiran.) He then bought sacrificial animals at Qudaid and then circumambulated the House and ran between al-Safa' and al-Marwa once (covering both Hajj and Umra), and did not put off Ihram until on the Day of Sacrifice in the month of Dhu'l-Hijja. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2840. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of putting off Ihram (in the midst of Hajj ceremonies) in case of obstruction and permissibility of Qiran. Nafi' reported that Ibn Umar intended to go to Hajj (during the year) when Hajjaj attacked Ibn Zubair, and he narrated the account as (narrated above), and he used to say at the end of the hadith: He who combines Hajj with Umra, for him one single circumambulation is sufficient, and he did not put off Ihram until he had completed both of them. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2841. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of putting off Ihram (in the midst of Hajj ceremonies) in case of obstruction and permissibility of Qiran. Nafi' reported that Ibn Umar intended to go for Hajj during the year when Hajjaj attacked Ibn Zubair. It was said to him: There is a state of war between people and we fear that they would detain you, whereupon he ('Abdullah b. Umar) said: "Verily in the Messenger of Allah there is a model pattern for you." I would do as Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) did. I call you as witness that I have undertaken to perform 'Umra. He then set out until, when he reached the rear side of al-Baida', he said: There is one command both for Hajj and Umra. so bear witness. Ibn Rumh said: I call you as witness that I have undertaken to perform my Hajj along with my Umra (i.e. I am performing both of them as Qiran), and he offered the sacrifice of animals which he had bought at Qudaid. He then proceeded pronouncing Talbiya for both of them together until he reached Mecca, He circumambulated the House and (ran) between al-Safa' and al-Marwa and made no addition to it. He neither sacrificed the animal, nor got his head shaved, nor got his hair clipped, nor did he make anything lawful which was unlawful (due to Ihram) until it was the Day of Sacrifice (10th of Dhu'l-Hijja). He then offered sacrifice, and got his hair cut, and saw that circumambulation of Hajj and 'Umra was complete with the first circumambulation. Ibn 'Umar said: This is how Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had done. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2842. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of putting off Ihram (in the midst of Hajj ceremonies) in case of obstruction and permissibility of Qiran. This hadith has been narrated from Ibn Umar through another chain of transmitters except with (this variation) that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) was mentioned in the first part of the hadith i.e. when it was said to him: They would bar you (from going) to the House. He said: In that, case I would do what Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had done. He did not mention at the end of this hadith (i.e. these words): "This is how the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) had done," as it Is narrated by al-Laith. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2843. ------------------------------ Chapter : Ifrad and Qiran (combining Hajj and Umra in one Ihram) in the performance of pilgrimage. Nafi' thus reported on the authority of Ibn Umar: We entered into the state of Ihram with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) for Hajj Mufrad and in the narration of Ibn 'Aun (the words are): "Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) entered into the state of Ihram (with the intention) of Hajj Mufrad." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2844. ------------------------------ Chapter : Ifrad and Qiran (combining Hajj and Umra in one Ihram) in the performance of pilgrimage. Anas (Allah be pleased with him) said: I heard Allah's Apostle (way peace be upon him) pronouncing Talbiya for both Hajj and Umra. Bakr (one of the narrators) said: I narrated it to Ibn 'Umar, whereupon he said: He (the Holy Prophet) pronounced the Talbiya for Hajj alone. I met Anas and narrated to him the words of Ibn 'Umar, whereupon he said: You treat us not but only as children. I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) pronouncing Talbiya both for 'Umra and Hajj. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2845. ------------------------------ Chapter : Ifrad and Qiran (combining Hajj and Umra in one Ihram) in the performance of pilgrimage. Bakr b. 'Abdullah reported: Anas (Allah be pleased with him) had narrated to us that he saw Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) combining Hajj and 'Umra. He (Bakr) said: I asked (about it) from Ibn 'Umar, whereupon he said: We entered into the state of Ihram for Hajj (only). I came to Anas and told him what Ibn Umar had said, whereupon he remarked: (You are treating us) as if we were children. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2846. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is essential for him who enters into the state of Ihram for Hajj and then comes to Mecca for circumambulation and running. Wabara reported: While I was sitting in the company of Ibn 'Umar, a person came to him and said: Is it right for me to circumambulate the House before I come to stay (at 'Arafat)? Ibn 'Umar said: Yes, whereupon he said: Ibn Abbas, however, says: Do not circumambulate the House until you come to stay at 'Arafat. Thereupon Ibn 'Umar said: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) Performed the Hajj and circumambulated the House before coming to stay (at 'Arafat). If you say the Truth, is it more rightful to follow the saying of the Prophet (may peace be upon him) or the words of Ibn Abbas? Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2847. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is essential for him who enters into the state of Ihram for Hajj and then comes to Mecca for circumambulation and running. Wabara reported: A person asked Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with him): May I circumambulate the House, whereas I have entered-into the state of Ihram for Hajj? Thereupon he said: What prevents you from doing it? He said: I saw the son of so and so showing disapproval of it, and you are dearer to us as compared with him. And we see that he is allured by the world, whereupon he said: Who amongst you and us is not allured by the world? And said (further) ':'We saw that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) put on Ihram for Hajj and circumambulated the House and run between al Safa' and al-Marwa. And the way prescribed by Allah and that prescribed by His Apostle (may peace be upon him) deserve more to be followed than the way shown by so and so, if you speak the truth. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2848. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is essential for him who enters into the state of Ihram for Hajj and then comes to Mecca for circumambulation and running. Amr b. Dinar said: We asked Ibn Umar about a person who came for Umra and circumambulated the House, but he did not run between al-Safa' and al-Marwa, whether he is allowed to (put off Ihram) and have intercourse with his wife. He replied: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) circumambulated the House seven times and offered two rak'ahs of prayer after staying (at 'Arafat), and ran between al-Safa and al-Marwa seven times. "Verily there is in Allah's Messenger a model pattern for you" (xxxill. 21). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2849. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is essential for him who enters into the state of Ihram for Hajj and then comes to Mecca for circumambulation and running. This hadith is narrated by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2850. ------------------------------ Chapter : One who undertakes to perform Umra is not allowed to put off Ihram before Sai' and the pilgrim and the (Qiran) is not allowed to put off ihram at Tawaf Qud'um (circumambulation of arrival). Muhammad b. 'Abd al-Rahman reported: A person from Iraq said to him to inquire from 'Urwa b. Zubair for him whether a person who puts on Ihram for Hajj is allowed to put it off or not as he circumambulates the House. And if he says: "No, it can't be put off," then tell him that there is a person who makes such an assertion. He (Muhammad b. 'Abd al-Rahman) then said: I asked him (Urwa b. Zubair), where upon he said: The person who has entered into the state of Ihram for Hajj cannot get out of it unless he has, completed the Hajj I (further) said (to him): (What) if a person makes that assertion? Thereupon he said: It is indeed unfortunate that he makes such an assertion. That person ('Iraqi) then met me and he asked me and I narrated to him (the reply of 'Urwa), whereupon he (the Iraqi) said: Tell him ('Urwa) that a person had informed him that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had done that; and why is it that Asma' and Zubair have done like this? He (Muhammad b. 'Abd al-Rahman) said: I went to him and made a mention of that to him, whereupon he ('Urwa) said: Who is he (the 'Iraqi)? I said: I do not know, whereupon he said: What is the matter that he does not come to me himself and ask me? I suppose he is an 'Iraqi. I said: I do not know, whereupon he said: He has told a lie. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) performed Hajj, and 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) has told me that the first thing with which he commenced (the rituals) when he arrived at Mecca was that he performed ablution and then circumambulated the Ka'ba. Then Abu Bakr performed Hajj and the first thing with which he commenced (the Hajj) as the circumambulation of the Ka'ba and nothing besides it. So did 'Umar. Then 'Uthman performed Hajj and I saw that the first thing with which he commenced the Hajj was the circumambulation of the Ka'ba and nothing besides it. Then Mu'awiya and Abdullah b. 'Umar did that. Then I performed Hajj with my father Zubair b. al-'Awwam, and the first thing with which he commenced (Hajj) was the circumambulation of the House. He then did nothing besides it. I then saw the emigrants (Muhajirin) and the helpers (Ansar) doing like this and nothing besides it. And the last one whom I saw doing like this was Ibn 'Umar. And he did not break it (the Hajj) after performing 'Umra. And Ibn 'Umar is with them. Why don't they ask him (to testify it)? And none amongst those who had passed away commenced (the rituals of Hajj) but by circumambulating the Ka'ba on their (first arrival) and they did not put off Ihram (without completing the Hajj), and I saw my mother and my aunt commencing (their Hajj) with the circumambulation of the House, and they did not put off Ihram. My mother informed me that she came and her sister, and Zubair and so and so for 'Umra, and when they had kissed the corner (the Black Stone, after Sa'i and circumambulation), they put off Ihram. And he (the 'Iraqi) has told a lie in this matter. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2851. ------------------------------ Chapter : One who undertakes to perform Umra is not allowed to put off Ihram before Sai' and the pilgrim and the (Qiran) is not allowed to put off ihram at Tawaf Qud'um (circumambulation of arrival). Asma bint Abu Bakr (Allah be pleased with both of them) reported: We set out (to Mecca) in a state of Ihram. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: He who has the sacrificial animal with him should remain in the state of Ihram, but he who has not the sacrificial animal with him should put off Ihram. As I had not the sacrificial animal with me, I put off Ihram. And since Zubair (her husband) had the sacrificial animal with him, he did not put off Ihram. She (Asma) said: I put on my clothes and then went out and sat by Zabair, whereupon he said: Go away from me, whereupon I said: Do you fear that I would jump upon you? Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2852. ------------------------------ Chapter : One who undertakes to perform Umra is not allowed to put off Ihram before Sai' and the pilgrim and the (Qiran) is not allowed to put off ihram at Tawaf Qud'um (circumambulation of arrival). Asma bint Abu Bakr (Allah be pleased with them) said: We came for Hajj in the state of Ihram with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). The rest of the hadith is the same except (for the words) that he (Zubair) said: Keep away from me, keep away from me, whereupon I said: Do you fear that I will jump upon you? Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2853. ------------------------------ Chapter : One who undertakes to perform Umra is not allowed to put off Ihram before Sai' and the pilgrim and the (Qiran) is not allowed to put off ihram at Tawaf Qud'um (circumambulation of arrival). Abdullah, the freed slave of Asma' bint Abu Bakr (Allah be pleased with them), narrated that he used to hear Asma,' whenever she passed by Hajun, saying (these words): "May there be peace and blessing of Allah upon His Messenger." We used to stay here along with him with light burdens. Few were our rides, and small were our provisions. I performed 'Umra and so did my sister 'Aisha, and Zubair and so and so. And as we touched the House (performed circumambulation and Sa'i) we put off Ihram, and then again put on Ihram in the afternoon for Hajj. Harun (one of the narrators) in one of the narrations said: The freed slave of Asma' and he did not mention 'Abdullah. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2854. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning Tamattul in Hajj. Muslim al-Qurri reported: I asked Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) about Tamattu' in Hajj and he permitted it, whereas Ibn Zubair had forbidden it. He (Ibn 'Abbas) said: This is the mother of Ibn Zubair who states that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had permitted it, so you better go to her and ask her about it. He (Muslim al-Qurri said): So we went to her and she was a bulky blind lady and she said: Verily Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) permitted it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2855. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning Tamattul in Hajj. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters, but with a slight variation of words. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2856. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning Tamattul in Hajj. Muslim al-Qurri heard Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) saying that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) entered into the state of Ihram for Umra and his Companions for Hajj. Neither Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) nor those among his Companions who had brought sacrificial animals with them put off Ihram, whereas the rest (of the pilgrims) did so. Talha b. Ubaidullah was one of those who had brought the sacrificial animals along with them so he did not put off Ihram. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2857. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning Tamattul in Hajj. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters but with this variation (of words): "Talha and another person also were among those who had not brought the sacrificial animals with them and so they put off Ihram." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2858. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of Umra during the mouth of Hajj. Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported that they (the Arabs of pre-Islamic days) looked upon Umra during the months of Hajj as the greatest of sins on the earth. So they intercalated the month of Muharram for Safar and said: When the backs of their camels would become all right and traces (if the pilgrims) would be effaced (from the paths) and the month of Safar would be over, then Umra would be permissible for one who wants to perform it. When Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and his Companions came in the state of Ihram for performing Hajj on the fourth (of Dhu'l-Hijja) he (Allah's Apostle) commanded them to change their state of Ihram (from Hajj) to that of 'Umra. It was something inconceivable for them. So they said: Messenger of Allah, is it a complete freedom (of the obligation) of Ihram? Thereupon he said: It is a complete freedom (from Ihram). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2859. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of Umra during the mouth of Hajj. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them)'is reported to have said: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) put on Ihram for Hajj. When four days of Dhu'l-Hijja were over, he led the dawn prayer, and when the prayer was complete, he said: He who wants to change it to Umra may do so. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2860. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of Umra during the mouth of Hajj. Rauh and Yahya b. Kathir narrated as Na5r reported that the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) entered into the state of Ihram for Hajj. And in the narration of Abu Shihab (the words are): We went out with the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) pronouncing Talbiya for Hajj, And in an the ahadith (narrated in this connection the words are): He led the morning prayer at al-Batha', except al-jahdami who did not make mention of it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2861. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of Umra during the mouth of Hajj. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came along with his Companions when four days had passed out of ten days (of Dhu'l-Hijja) and they were pronouncing Talbiya for Hajj, and he (the Holy Prophet) commanded them to change (this Ihram) into that of 'Umra. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2862. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of Umra during the mouth of Hajj. Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) observed the morning prayer at Dhu Tawa (a valley near Mecca) and arrived (in Mecca) when four days of Dhul-Hijja had passed and he commanded his Companions that they should change their Ihram (of Hajj) to that of Umra, except those who had brought sacrificial animals with them. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2863. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of Umra during the mouth of Hajj. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: This is the 'Umra of which we have taken advantage. So he who has not the sacrificial animal with him should get out of the state of Ihram completely, for 'Umra has been incorporated in Hajj until the Day of Resurrection, Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2864. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of Umra during the mouth of Hajj. Abu Jam at al-Dubu'i reported: I performed Tamattu' but the people discouraged me to do so. I came to Ibn 'Abbas and asked him about it. He ordered me to do so. I came to the House (Ka'ba) and slept. I saw a visitant in the dream who said: 'Umra is acceptable and so is the Hajj performed for God's sake. I came to Ibn Abbas and informed him about that Which I saw in the dream whereupon he said: Allah is the Greatest, Allah is the Greatest This is the Sunnah of Abu'l-Qasim (the Holy Prophet) (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2865. ------------------------------ Chapter : Garlanding the sacrificial animals, and marking them. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) observed the Zuhr prayer at Dhu'l-Hulaifa; then called for his she-camel and marked it on the right side of its bump, removed the blood from it, and tied two sandals round its neck. He then mounted his camel, and when it brought him up to al-Baida', he pronounced Talbiya for the Pilgrimage. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2866. ------------------------------ Chapter : Garlanding the sacrificial animals, and marking them. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Qatada with the same chain of transmitters but with this variation (of words): "When Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) came to Dhu'l-Hulaifa" and he made no mention (of the fact) that he led the Zuhr prayer. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2867. ------------------------------ Chapter : Saying of people to Ibn 'Abbas: What to this religious verdict of yours that has engaged the attention of the people? Abu Hassan al-A'raj reported that a person from Bani Hujaim said to Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them): What is this religious verdict of yours which has engaged the attention of the people or which has become a matter of dispute among them that he who circumambulated the House can be free from Ihram? Thereupon he said: That is the Sunnah of your Apostle (may peace be upon him), even though you may not approve of it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2868. ------------------------------ Chapter : Saying of people to Ibn 'Abbas: What to this religious verdict of yours that has engaged the attention of the people? Abu Hassan reported: It was said to Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) that this affair had engaged the attention of the people that he who circumambulates the House was permitted to circumambulate for Umra (even though he was in a state of Ihram for Hajj), whereupon he said: That is the Sunnah of your Apostle (may peace be upon him), even though you may not approve of it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2869. ------------------------------ Chapter : Saying of people to Ibn 'Abbas: What to this religious verdict of yours that has engaged the attention of the people? Ata' said: Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) used to say that a pilgrim or non-pilgrim (one performing 'Umar) who circumambulates the House is free from the responsibility of Ihram. I (Ibn Juraij, one of the narrators) said to 'Ata': On what authority does he (Ibn Abbas) say this? He said: On the authority of Allah's words: "Then their place of sacrifice is the Ancient House" (al-Qur'an, xxii. 33). I said: It concerns the time after staying at 'Arafat, whereupon he said: Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) had stated (that the place of sacrifice is the Ancient House); it way be after staying at 'Arafat or before (staying there). And he (Ibn Abbas) made this deduction I from the command of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) when he had ordered to put off Ihram on the occasion of the Farewell Pilgrimage. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2870. ------------------------------ Chapter : Clipping of hair in 'Umra. Ibn Abbas reported that Mu'awiya had said to them: Do you know that I clipped some hair from the head of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) at al-Marwa with the help of a clipper? I said: I do not know it except as it verdict against you. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2871. ------------------------------ Chapter : Clipping of hair in 'Umra. Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Mu'awiya b. Abu Safyin had told him: I clipped the hair (from the head of) Allah's Messenger (may peace he upon him) with a clipper while he was at al-Marwa, or I saw him getting his hair clipped with a clipper as he was at al-Marwa.1722 Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2872. ------------------------------ Chapter : Talbiya of the Apostle (may peace be upon him) and his sacrifice. Abu Sa'id (Allah be pleased with him) reported: We went out with Allah's messenger (may peace be upon him) pronouncing loudly the Talbiya for Hajj When we came to Mecca, he commanded us that we should change this (Ihram for Hajj) to that of Umra except one who had brought the sacrificial animal with him. When it was the day of Tarwiya (8th of Dhu'l-Hijja) and we went to Mini, we (again) pronounced Talbiya for Hajj. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2873. ------------------------------ Chapter : Talbiya of the Apostle (may peace be upon him) and his sacrifice. jibir and Abil Salld al-Khudri (Allah be pleased with them) reported: We went with Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and we were pronouncing Talbiya for Hajj loudly. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2874. ------------------------------ Chapter : Talbiya of the Apostle (may peace be upon him) and his sacrifice. Abd Nadra reported: While I was in the company of Jibir, a person came and said: There is difference of opinion among Ibn Abbas and Ibn Zubair about two Mut'as (benefits, Tamattul in Hajj and temporary marriage with women), whereupon jibir said: We have been doing this during the lifetime of Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him), and then 'Umar forbade us to do so, and we never resorted to them. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2875. ------------------------------ Chapter : Talbiya of the Apostle (may peace be upon him) and his sacrifice. Anas (Allah be pleased with him) reported that 'All (Allah be pleased with him) came from the Yemen, and the Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: With (what intention) have you put on Ihram? He said: I have put on Ihram in accordance with the intention with which Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) has put on Ihram, whereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: Had there not been the sacrificial animals with me, I would have put off Ihram (after performing 'Umra). This hadith is narrated by Salim b. Hayyin with the same chain of transmitters, but with a slight variation of words. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2876. ------------------------------ Chapter : Talbiya of the Apostle (may peace be upon him) and his sacrifice. Anas (Allah be pleased with him) reported: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) pronouncing Talbiya for both simultaneously, Talbiya for 'Umra and Hajj. Talbiya for Uwra and Hajj (he performed both Hajj and Umra as a Qarin). In another version words are: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) pronouncing Talbiya for Umra and Hajj (simultaneously)." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2877. ------------------------------ Chapter : Talbiya of the Apostle (may peace be upon him) and his sacrifice. Hanzala al-Aslami reported: I heard Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) as narrating from Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) who said: By Him in Whose Hand is my life. Ibn Maryam (Jesus Christ) would certainly pronounce Talbiya for Hajj or for Umra or for both (simultaneously as a Qiran) In the valley of Rauha Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2878. ------------------------------ Chapter : Talbiya of the Apostle (may peace be upon him) and his sacrifice. Hanzala b. 'Ali al-Aslaml reported that he had heard Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) as saying that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) bed said: By Him In Whose Hand is my life; the rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2879. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the Umras performed by Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and their respective times. Qatida said that Anas (Allah be pleased with him) had informed him that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) performed four 'Umras, all during the month of Dhu'l-Qa'da except the one he performed along with Hajj (and these are) the Umra that he performed from al-Hudaibiya or during the time of (the truce of) Hudaibiya in the month of Dhu'l-Qa'da then the Umra of the next year in the month of Dhu'l-Qa'da, then the Umra for which he had started from ji'rana, the place where he distributed the spoils of (the battle of) Hunain in the month of Dhu'l-Qa'da, and then the 'Umra that he performed along with his Hajj (on the occasion of the Farewell Pilgrimage). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2880. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the Umras performed by Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and their respective times. Qatida said: I asked Anas (Allah be pleased with him) as to bow many Pilgrimages had been performed by Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), and he replied: One Hajj and four 'Umras were performed by him. The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2881. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the Umras performed by Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and their respective times. Abu Ishaq said: I asked Zaid b. Arqam: In how many military expeditions have you participated with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him)? He said: In seventeen (expeditions). He (Abu Ishaq) said: Zaid b. Arqam reported to me that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had led nineteen expeditions. And he performed Hajj only once after Migration, and that was the Farewell Pilgrimage. Abu Ishaq also said: The second (Hajj) he performed at Mecca (before his Migration to Medina) Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2882. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the Umras performed by Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and their respective times. 'Ataa reported that 'Urwa b. Zubair (Allah be pleased with him) had informed him (this): I and Ibn 'Umar were reclining against the (wall) of the apartment of 'Aisha and we were listening to the sound produced by the brushing of her teeth. I said Abu Abd al-Rahman (the kunya of 'Abdullah b. Umar), did Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) perform 'Umra in the month of Rijab? He said: Yes. I said to 'Aisha: Mother, are you listening to what Abu Abd al-Rabman is saying? She said: What is he Saying? I said: He is saying that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) performed 'Umra during the month of Rajab, whereupon she said: May Allah grant pardon to Abu Abd al-Rahman I By my life he (the Holy Prophet) did not perform 'Umra during the month of Rajab. And never was there an Umra performed by him (the Holy Prophet) in which he ('Abdullah b. 'Umar) did not join him. Ibn 'Umar heard this and said nothing to affirm It or to deny it, but kept quiet. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2883. ------------------------------ Chapter : Concerning the Umras performed by Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and their respective times. Mujihid reported: I and 'Urwa h Zubair entered the mosque and there found 'Abdullah b. 'Umar sitting near the apartment of 'Aisha and the people were observing the forenoon prayer (when the sun bad sufficiently risen). We asked him about their prayer, and he said: It is bid'a (innovation), Urwa said to him: Abd al-Rahman, how many, 'Umras had Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) performed? He said: Four Umras, one he performed during the month of Rajab. We were reluctant either to belie him or reject him. We heard the noise of brushing of her teeth by 'Aisha in her apartment. 'Urwa said: Mother of the Faithful, are you not hearing what Abfi 'Abd al-Rahman is saying? She said: What is he saying? Thereupon he ('Urwa) said: He (Ibn 'Umar) states that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) performed four Umras and one of them during the month of Rajab. Thereupon she remarked: May Allah have merely upon Abu 'Abd al-Rahman. Never did Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) perform 'Umra in which he did not accompany him, and he (Allah's Apostle) never performed 'Umra during the month of Rajab. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2884. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of performing Umra in the month of Ramadhan. Ataa reported: I heard Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with him) narrating to us that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said to a woman of the Ansar (Ibn Abbas had mentioned her name but I have forgotten it):'What has prevented you that you do not perform Hajj along with us? She said: We have only two camels for carrying water. One of the camels has been taken by my husband and my son for performing Hajj and one has been left for us for carrying water, whereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: So when the month of Ramadan come, perform Umra, for 'Umra in this (month) is equal to Hajj (in reward). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2885. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of performing Umra in the month of Ramadhan. Ibn Abbis reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said to a woman of the Ansar who was called Umm Sinan: What has prevented you that you did not perform Hajj with us? She said: The father of so and so (i.e. her husband) had only two camels. One of them had been taken away by him (my husband) and his son for Hajj, whereas the other one is used by our boy to carry water. Upon this he (the Holy Prophet) said: Umra during the month of Rawadin would suffice for Hajj or Hajj along with me. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2886. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of entry into Mecca from the upper side and exit from it from the lower side, and entering the town from the side other than that from which one gets out. Ibn 'Umar reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) used to come out (of Medina) by way of al-Shajarah and entered it by the way of al-Mu'arras and whenever he entered Mecca, he entered it from the upper side and went out of it from the lower side. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of 'Ubaidullah with the same chain of transmitters and in the narration transmitted by Zubair (it is mentioned) that the upper side is that which is at al-Batha Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2887. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of entry into Mecca from the upper side and exit from it from the lower side, and entering the town from the side other than that from which one gets out. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that when Allah's Messenger may peace be upon him) came to Mecca he entered from its upper side and came out from its lower side. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2888. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of entry into Mecca from the upper side and exit from it from the lower side, and entering the town from the side other than that from which one gets out. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) entered Mecca during the year of Victory from Kada i.e. from the upper side. Hisham said: My father entered It from both the Fides, but generally he entered from Kada. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2889. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of spending the night at Dhi-Tuwa for entering Mecca (for Hajj) and getting into it after a bath and entering during the day. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger may peace be upon him) spent the night at Dhi Tuwa till it was dawn and then entered Mecca. 'Abdullah (b. 'Umar) himself did like it. And in the narration transmitted by Ibn Sa'id (the words are): Until he observed the dawn prayer. Yahya (another narrator) said: Until it was dawn. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2890. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of spending the night at Dhi-Tuwa for entering Mecca (for Hajj) and getting into it after a bath and entering during the day. Nafi' reported that Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with them) did not enter Mecca without spending the night at Dhi Tawu until it was dawn, when he took a bath, and then entered Mecca in the morning, and made a mention that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) did that. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2891. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of spending the night at Dhi-Tuwa for entering Mecca (for Hajj) and getting into it after a bath and entering during the day. Abdullah (b. 'Umar) reported that whenever Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) entered Mecca, he got down at Dhi Tuwa and spend the night there until he observed the dawn prayer. And Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) observed this prayer on a rough hillock, and not in the mosque which had been then built there, but to the lower side of it (the mosque) on a hillock. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2892. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of spending the night at Dhi-Tuwa for entering Mecca (for Hajj) and getting into it after a bath and entering during the day. Nafi' reported that Abdullah (b. 'Umar) informed him that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) turned his face to the two hillocks which intervened between him and the long mountain by the side of the Ka'ba, and the mosque which had been built there was thus on the left of the hillock. Allah's Messenger's (may peace be upon him) place of prayer was lower than the black hillock, at a distance of ten cubits or near it. He (may peace be upon him) would then observe prayer facing these two hillocks of the long mountain that is intervening between you and the Ka'ba. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2893. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of walking at a quick pace in Tawaf and Umra and on the occasion of first Tawaf in Hajj. Nafi' reported on the authority of Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with them) that when Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) circumambulated the House, while observing the first circumambulation, he walked swiftly in three (circuits), and walked in four circuits, and ran in the bottom of the valley as he moved between al-Safa and al-Marwa. Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) also used to do like this. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2894. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of walking at a quick pace in Tawaf and Umra and on the occasion of first Tawaf in Hajj. Ibn'Umar(Allah be pleased with them) reported that when Allah's messenger (may peace be upon him) circumambulated in Hajj and Umra he walked swiftly in the first three circuit about the House, and then walked in four circuits, and then observed two rak'ahs of prayer, and then ran between al-Safa and al-Marwa. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2895. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of walking at a quick pace in Tawaf and Umra and on the occasion of first Tawaf in Hajj. Abdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported: I saw that when Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came to Mecca and kissed the Black Stone, (in the first circumambulation) he moved quickly in three circuits out of seven circuits. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2896. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of walking at a quick pace in Tawaf and Umra and on the occasion of first Tawaf in Hajj. Nafi' reported on the authority of Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with them) that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) walked swiftly from stone to stone in three circuits and walked (normally) in four. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2897. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of walking at a quick pace in Tawaf and Umra and on the occasion of first Tawaf in Hajj. Nafi' reported that Ibn Umar (Allah he pleased with them) walked swiftly from stone to stone, and stated that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) did like this. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2898. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of walking at a quick pace in Tawaf and Umra and on the occasion of first Tawaf in Hajj. jabir b. Abdullah (Allah be pleased with them) reported: I saw Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) walking swiftly from the Black Stone till he completed three circuits up to it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2899. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of walking at a quick pace in Tawaf and Umra and on the occasion of first Tawaf in Hajj. Jabir b. "Abdullah (Allah be pleased with them) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) walked swiftly in three circuits from stone to stone. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2900. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of walking at a quick pace in Tawaf and Umra and on the occasion of first Tawaf in Hajj. Abu Tufail reported: I said to Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them): Do you think that walking swiftly round the House in three circuits, and just walking in four circuits is the Sunnah (of the Holy Prophet), for your people say that it is Sunnah? Thereupon he (Ibn 'Abbas) said: They have told the truth and the lie (too). I said: What do your words "They have told the truth and the lie (too)" imply? Thereupon he said: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came to Mecca and the polytheists said that Muhammad and his Companions had emaciated and would, therefore, be unable to circumambulate the House; and they felt jealous of him (the Holy Prophet). (It was due to this) that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) commanded them to walk swiftly in three (circuits) and walk (normally) in four. I said to him: Inform me if it is Sunnah to observe Tawaf between al-Safa and al-Marwa while riding, for your people look upon it as Sunnah. He (Ibn Abbas) said: They have told the truth and the lie too. I said: What do your words "They have told the truth and the lie tool, imply? He said: as Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had come to Mecca, there was such a large gathering of people around him that even the virgins had come out of their houses (to catch a glimpse of his face) and they were saying: He is Muhammad; He is Muhammad, Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) (was so gentle and kind) that the people were not beaten back (to make way) in front of him. When there was a; throng (of people) around him, he rode (the she-camel) but walking and trotting is, however, better. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2901. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of walking at a quick pace in Tawaf and Umra and on the occasion of first Tawaf in Hajj. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of jurairi with the same chain of transmitters but with a slight variation of words (and this is) that he (the narrator) did not say: "They felt jealous of him but said: The people of Mecca, were jealous people." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2902. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of walking at a quick pace in Tawaf and Umra and on the occasion of first Tawaf in Hajj. Abu Tufail reported: I said to Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them): People are of the view that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) moved quickly round the House and between al-Safa and al-Marwa, and (thus) it is Sunnah. He said: They told the truth and they told the lie. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2903. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of walking at a quick pace in Tawaf and Umra and on the occasion of first Tawaf in Hajj. Abu Tufail reported; I said to Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them): I think that I saw Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). He (Ibn 'Abbis) said' Give a description of him to me. I said: I saw him near al-Marwa on the back of a she-camel, and people had thronged around him. Thereupon Ibn 'Abbis said: It was Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) for they (the Companions of the Holy Prophet) were neither pushed aside from him, nor were they turned away. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2904. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of walking at a quick pace in Tawaf and Umra and on the occasion of first Tawaf in Hajj. Ibn 'Abbas (At lab be pleased with them) reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and his Companions came to Mecca and the fever in Medina had weakened them. Thereupon the polytheists (of Mecca) said: There would come to you a people whom the fever has made weak and they have suffered severely from it. They sat in Hatim. Thereupon Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) commanded them to walk quickly in three circuits and walk (in four) between the two corners, so that the polytheists should see their endurance. The polytheists then said (to one another You were under the impression that fever had emaciated them, whereas they are stronger than so and so. Ibn Abbas said: He (the Holy Prophet) did not command them (the Muslims) to walk quickly in all the circuits out of kindness to them. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2905. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of walking at a quick pace in Tawaf and Umra and on the occasion of first Tawaf in Hajj. Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported: Allah's Messenger (peace be upon him) observed Sa'i and walked quickly round the House with a view to showing his strength to the polytheists. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2906. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of touching the two corners (Rukunain al- Yamaniyain) in Tawaf. Ahdullah b. Umar (reported) that he had not seen Allah's Messenger (way peace he upon him) touching anything in the House, except the two Yamani corners. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2907. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of touching the two corners (Rukunain al- Yamaniyain) in Tawaf. Salim reported on the authority of his father (Allah he pleased with him) that Allah'& Messenger (tinny peace be upon him) did not touch any of the corners of the House, except that of Black Corner (in which the Black Stone is embedded and that (portion) near it, towards the houses of the tribe of jumuhi. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2908. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of touching the two corners (Rukunain al- Yamaniyain) in Tawaf. Nafi' reported on the authority of 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with him) that Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) did not touch but the Stone and the Yamani corner. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2909. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of touching the two corners (Rukunain al- Yamaniyain) in Tawaf. Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported: I have not abandoned touching of Yamani corners (and kissing of) the Stone since I saw Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) touching them both In hardship and ease. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2910. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of touching the two corners (Rukunain al- Yamaniyain) in Tawaf. Nafi' (Allah be pleased with him) reported: I saw' Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) touching the Stone with his hand and then kissing his hand and he said: I have never abandoned it since I saw Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) doing It. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2911. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of touching the two corners (Rukunain al- Yamaniyain) in Tawaf. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) is reported to have said that he did not see Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) touching other than the Yamani corners. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2912. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of kissing the black stone ;while circumambulating. Salim narrated on the authority of his father (Allah be pleased with him) that 'Umar b. al-Khattib (Allah be pleased with him) kissed (the Black Stone) and then said: By Allah, I know that you are a stone and if I were not to see Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) kissing you, I would not have kissed you. Harun said in his narration: A hadith like this has been transmitted to me by Zaid b. Aslam on the authority of his father Aslam. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2913. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of kissing the black stone ;while circumambulating. Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported that Umar (Allah be pleased with him) kissed the Stone and said: I am kissing you, whereas I know that you are a stone, but I saw Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) kissing you (that Is why I kiss you). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2914. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of kissing the black stone ;while circumambulating. Abdullah b. Sarjis reported: I saw the bald one, i.e. 'Umar b. Khattib (Allah be pleased with him), kissing the Stone and saying: By Allah. I am kissing with full consciousness of the fact that you are a stone and that you can neither do any harm nor good; and if I had not seen Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) kissing you. I would not have kissed you. The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2915. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of kissing the black stone ;while circumambulating. Abis b. Rabi'a reported: I saw 'Umar (Allah be pleased with him) kissing the Stone and saying: I am kissing you and I know that you are a stone. And if I had not seen Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) kissing you, I would not have kissed you. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2916. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of kissing the black stone ;while circumambulating. Suwaid b. Ghafala reported: I saw Umar (Allah be pleased with him) kissing the Stone and clinging to it and saying: I saw Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) having great love for you. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Sufyin with the same chain of transmitters (and the words are): "That he ('Umar) said: But I saw Abu'l-Qasim (way peace be upon him) having great love for you." And he did not mention about clinging to it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2917. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to observe Tawaf on the back of a camel or any other riding beast, and to touch the black stone with a stick. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) circumambulated the House on the occasion of the Farewell Pilgrimage on the back of his camel and touched the Corner (of Black Stone) with a stick. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2918. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to observe Tawaf on the back of a camel or any other riding beast, and to touch the black stone with a stick. Jabir (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) circumambulated the House on the back of his riding camel on the occasion of the Farewell Pilgrimage and touched the Stone with his stick so that the people should see him, and he should be conspicuous, and they should be able to ask him (questions pertaining to religion) as the people had crowded round him. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2919. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to observe Tawaf on the back of a camel or any other riding beast, and to touch the black stone with a stick. jabir b. 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with them) reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) circumambulated the House (and ran) between al-Safa and al-Marwa on the back of his she-camel, at the occasion of the Farewell Pilgrimage, so that the people should see him and he should be conspicuous, and they should be able to ask him (questions pertaining to religion), and the people had crowded round him. In the hadith transmitted on the authority of Ibn Khashram no mention Is made of: "So that they should ask him." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2920. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to observe Tawaf on the back of a camel or any other riding beast, and to touch the black stone with a stick. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) circumambulated the Ka'ba on the back of his camel on the occasion of the Farewell Pilgrimage and touched the corner and he did not like that the people should be pushed away from him. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2921. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to observe Tawaf on the back of a camel or any other riding beast, and to touch the black stone with a stick. Abu Tufail reported: I saw Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) circumambulating the House and touching the corner with a stick that he had with him, and then kissing the stick. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2922. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to observe Tawaf on the back of a camel or any other riding beast, and to touch the black stone with a stick. Umm Salama reported: I made a complaint to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) of my ailment, whereupon be said: Circumambulate behind the people while riding. She said: So I circumambulated and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) was at that time praying towards the side of the House and he was reciting al-Tur and a Muslim Book Inscribed (i.e. Sura lii. of the Qur'an). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2923. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sa'i between al-Safi' and at-Marwi is essential rite of Hajj and Hajj is not complete without it. Hisham b. 'Urwa reported on the authority of his father who narrated from 'Aisha. He said to 'Aisha: I think if a person does not run between al-Safa' and al-Marwa, It does not do any harm to him (so far as Hajj is concerned). She said: Why (do you think so)? I said: For Allah says: "Verily al-Safa' and al-Marwa are among the Signs of Allah" (ii. 158) (to the end of the verse), whereupon she said: Allah does not complete the Hajj of a person or his Umra if he does not observe Sa'i between al-Safa' and al-marwa; and if it were so as you state, then (the wording would have been(fala janah an la yatufu biha) ["There is no harm for him if he does not circumambulate between them']. Do you know in what context (this verse was revealed)? (It was revealed in this context) that the Ansar in the Days of Ignorance pronounced the Talbiya for two idols, fixed on the bank of the river which were called Isaf and Na'ila. The people went there, and then circumambulated between al-Safa' and al-Marwa and then got their heads shaved. With the advent of Islam they (the Muslims) did not like to circumambulate between them as they used to do during the Days of Ignorance. It was on account of this that Allah, the Exalted and Majestic, revealed: "Verily al-Safe and al-Marwa are among the Signs of Allah" to the end of the verse. She said: Then people began to observe Sa'i. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2924. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sa'i between al-Safi' and at-Marwi is essential rite of Hajj and Hajj is not complete without it. Hisham b. 'Urwa narrated on the authority of his father who reported: I said to 'Aisha: I do not see any harm to me if I do not circumambulate between al-Safa' and al-Marwa. She said: On what ground do you say so? (I said:) Since Allah, the Exalted and Majestic, says: "Verily al-Safa' and al-Marwa are among the Signs of Allah." It (your assertion) were (correct), it would have been said like this: "There is no harm for him, that he should not circumambulate between them." It (this verse) has been revealed about the people of Ansar. Whenever they pronounced the Talbiya, they pronounced it in the name of al-Manat during the Days of Ignorance; so they (thought) that it was not permissible for them (for the Muslims) to circumambulate between and al-Marwa. When they (the Muslims) came with Allah's Apostle (may peace he upon him) for Hajj, they mentioned it to him. So Allah, the Exalted and Majestic, revealed this verse. By my life, Allah will not complete the Hajj of one who has not circumambulated between al-Safa and al-Marwa. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2925. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sa'i between al-Safi' and at-Marwi is essential rite of Hajj and Hajj is not complete without it. 'Urwa b. Zabair reported: I said to 'Aisha, the wife of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him): I do not see any (fault) in one who does not circumambulate between al-Safa' and al-Marwa, and I do not mind if I do not circumambulate between them, whereupon she said: O, the son of my sister, what you say is wrong. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) observed Sa'i and so did the Muslims. So it is a Sunnah (of the Prophet). And it was a common practice (with the pagan Arabs) that those who pronounced Talbiya for the wretched al-Manat, situated at Mushalla, did not observe Sa'i between al-Safa' and al-Marwa. With the advent of Islam, we asked Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) about this practice, and (it was on this occasion) that Allah, the Exalted and Majestic, revealed this verse: "Verily al-Safa' and al-Marwa are among the Signs of Allah"; so he who performed Hajj or 'Umra it is no sin on him if he circumambulates them. And if it were as you state, (then the wording would have been): "There is no harm for him, that he should not circumambulate round them." Zuhri said: I made a mention of that to Abu Bakr b. 'Abd al-Rahman b. al-Harith b. Hisham; he was impressed by that and said: This is what is called knowledge. And I have heard many a scholar saying: Many of the Arabs who did not circumambulate between al-Safa' and al-Marwa said: Our circumambulation between these two hills is an act of ignorance; whereas others among the Ansar said: We have been commanded to circumambulate the House, and not Commanded to run between al-Safa' and al-Marwa. So Allah, the Exalted and Majestic, revealed thia verse: "Verily al-Safa' and al-Marwa are among the Signs of Allah." Abu Bakr b. 'Abd al-Rahman said: I think that this (verse) has been revealed for such and such (persons). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2926. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sa'i between al-Safi' and at-Marwi is essential rite of Hajj and Hajj is not complete without it. 'Urwa b. Zubair reported: I asked 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her); the rest of the hadith is the same. And in this hadith (these words are also found): "When they (the Companions of the Holy Prophet) asked Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) about this, they said: Messenger of Allah, we felt reluctant to circumambulate between al-Safa' and al-Marwa. Then Allah, the Exalted and Majestic, revealed this verse: "Verily al-Safa' and al-Marwa are among the Signs of. Allah so he who perform Hajj or Umra it is no sin on him if he should circumambulate between them. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) said: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) laid down this Sa'i between them as Sunnah (of the Holy Prophet). So it is not advisable for anyone to abandon this Sa'i between them. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2927. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sa'i between al-Safi' and at-Marwi is essential rite of Hajj and Hajj is not complete without it. 'Urwa b. Zabair narrated on the authority of 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) who informed him that the Ansar and the people of the tribe of Ghassan before embracing Islam pronounced Talbiya for Manat, and so they avoided circumambulating' between al-Safa' and al-Marwa, and it was a common practice with their forefather, that he who put on Ihram for Manat did not circumambulate between al-Safa' and al-Marwa. And when they embraced Islam, they asked Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) about it, and then Allah, the Exalted and Majestic, revealed this verse: "Verily al-Safa' and al-Marwa are among the Signs of Allah"; so he who performs Hajj or Umra, for him there is no harm if he should circumambulate between them, and he who does good spontaneously-surely Allah is Bountiful in rewarding and Knowing. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2928. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sa'i between al-Safi' and at-Marwi is essential rite of Hajj and Hajj is not complete without it. Anas (Allah be pleased with him) reported that the Ansar felt reluctant that they should circumambulate between al-Safa' and al-Marwa until it was revealed: "Verily al-Safa' and al-Marwa are among the Signs of Allah"; so whoever performs Hajj or 'Umra, for him there is no harm that he should circumambulate between them. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2929. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sa'i should not be repeated. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and his Companions did not observe Sa'i between al-Safa' and al-Marwa but only one Sa'i. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2930. ------------------------------ Chapter : Sa'i should not be repeated. Ibn Juraij reported on the same authority a hadith like that, and said: But one Tawaf and that was the first Tawaf. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2931. ------------------------------ Chapter : The pilgrim should continue to pronounce Talbiya until the stoning of Jamrat al-'Aqaba on the day of sacrifice (10th of Dhu'l-Hajja). Usama b. Zaid (Allah be pleased with him) reported: I was sitting behind Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) on the riding animal from 'Arafat. As Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) reached the left side of the mountain which was situated near Muzdalifa, he made the camel kneel down and made water and then came back. I poured water and he, performed light ablution. I then said: Messenger of Allah, it is time for prayer. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: The prayer awaits you (at the next station, Muzdalifa). Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) rode on until he came to Muzdalifa and observed prayer. Then al-Fadl (Allah be pleased with him) sat behind Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and reached (Muzdalifa) in the morning. Kuraib said: 'Abdullah b. 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) narrated from al-Fadl (Allah be pleased with him) that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) continued pronouncing Talbiya until he reached al-Jamara (al-'Aqaba). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2932. ------------------------------ Chapter : The pilgrim should continue to pronounce Talbiya until the stoning of Jamrat al-'Aqaba on the day of sacrifice (10th of Dhu'l-Hajja). Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) made al-Fadl sit behind him (on the camel back) from the place (where the two prayers) are combined (Muzdalifa). Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) also informed that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) did not stop pronouncing Talbiya till he threw pebbles at Jamrat al-'Aqaba. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2933. ------------------------------ Chapter : The pilgrim should continue to pronounce Talbiya until the stoning of Jamrat al-'Aqaba on the day of sacrifice (10th of Dhu'l-Hajja). Ibn 'Abbas narrated from al-Fadl b. Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) who sat behind Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) that he (the Holy Prophet) said to the people on the evening of 'Arafa and on the morning to the gathering of people (at Muzdalifa) as they were pushing on to proceed slowly. And he himself drove his she-camel with restraint until he entered Muhassir (it is a place in Mina), and further told them to take up pebbles which were to be thrown at Jamra. And Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) continued pronouncing Talbiya till he stoned the Jamra. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abd Zubair with the same chain of transmitters but with this variation that in the hadith no mention is made of (this) that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) continued pronouncing Talbiya till he stoned the Jamra, and he made this addition in his hadith: "The Apostle (may peace be upon him) pointed with his hand how a person should catch hold of pebbles (in order to throw them)." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2934. ------------------------------ Chapter : The pilgrim should continue to pronounce Talbiya until the stoning of Jamrat al-'Aqaba on the day of sacrifice (10th of Dhu'l-Hajja). 'Abdullah narrated to us as we had gathered (at Muzdalifa): I have heard from one upon whom Surah al-Baqara was revealed (the Holy Prophet) pronouncing Talbiya at this place. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2935. ------------------------------ Chapter : The pilgrim should continue to pronounce Talbiya until the stoning of Jamrat al-'Aqaba on the day of sacrifice (10th of Dhu'l-Hajja). 'Abd al-Rahman b. Yazid reported that 'Abdullah (b. Mas'ud) pronounced Talbiya as he returned from the gathering of the people (at Muzdalifa). It was said: He might be a Bedouin (not knowing correctly the rituals of Hajj and, therefore, pronouncing Talbia at this stage), whereupon Abdullah said: Hive the people forgotten (this Sunnah of the Holy Prophet) or have they gone astray? I heard him, upon whom Sibrah al-Baqara was revealed, pronouncing Talbiya at the very place. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2936. ------------------------------ Chapter : The pilgrim should continue to pronounce Talbiya until the stoning of Jamrat al-'Aqaba on the day of sacrifice (10th of Dhu'l-Hajja). 'Abd al-Rahman b. Yazid and al-Aswad b. Yazid reported: We heard 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud saying to the gathering of people (at Muzdalifa) that he had heard Talbiya from him, upon whom Surah al-Baqara was revealed, at this very place. And so he ('Abdullah b. Mas'ud) pronounced Talbiya and we also pronounced it with him. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2937. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pronouncing of Talbiya and takbir while going from Mina to 'Arafat on the day of 'Arafa. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar reported on the authority of his father (Allah be pleased with them). He said: As we proceeded in the morning along with AUbs Messenger (may peace be upon him) from Mina to 'Arafat, some of us pronounced Talbiya, and some pronounced Takbir (Allah-o-Akbar). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2938. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pronouncing of Talbiya and takbir while going from Mina to 'Arafat on the day of 'Arafa. Abdullah b. 'Umar reported on the authority of his father (Allah be pleased with them): We were along with Allah's Messenger (way peace he upon him) in the morning of 'Arafa (9th of Dhu'l-Hijja). Some of us pronounced Takbir and some of us Tahlil La ilaha ill-Allah). And to those of us who pronounced Takbir, I said: By Allah, how strange it is that you did not care to ask him: What did you see Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) doing (on this occasion)? Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2939. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pronouncing of Talbiya and takbir while going from Mina to 'Arafat on the day of 'Arafa. Muhammad b. Abu Bakr al-Thaqafi asked Anas b. Malik (Allah be pleased with him), while on their way from Mina to 'Arafa in the morning: What did you do on this day in the company of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him)? Thereupon he said: One of us pronounced Tahlil, and he met with no disapproval, and one of us pronounced Takbir, and he also met with no disapproval. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2940. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pronouncing of Talbiya and takbir while going from Mina to 'Arafat on the day of 'Arafa. Muhammad b. Abu Bakr reported: I said to Anas b. Malik in the morning of 'Arafa: What do you say as to pronouncing Talbiya on this day? He said: I travelled with Allah's Apostle (may peace he upon him) and his Companions in this journey. Some of us pronounced Takbir and some of us pronounced Tahlil, and none of us found fault with his companion. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2941. ------------------------------ Chapter : Returning from 'Arafat to Muzdalifa and excellence of observing sunset and 'Isha prayers together at Muzdalifa. Kuraib, the freed slave of Ibn Abbas, narrated from Usama b. Zaid (Allah be pleased with him) that he had heard him saying: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) proceeded from 'Arafa, and as he approached the creek of a hill, he got down (from his camel) and urinated, and then performed a light ablution. I said to him: Prayer, whereupon he said: The prayer awaits you (at Muzdalifa). So he rode again, and as he came to Muzdalifa, he got down and performed ablution well. Then Iqima was pronounced for prayer, and he 'observed the sunset prayer. Then every person made his camel kneel down there, and then Iqama was pronounced for 'Isha prayer and he observed it, and he (the Holy Prophet) did not observe any prayer (either Sunan or Nawifil) in between them (He observed the Fard of sunset and 'Isha prayers successively.) Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2942. ------------------------------ Chapter : Returning from 'Arafat to Muzdalifa and excellence of observing sunset and 'Isha prayers together at Muzdalifa. Usama b. Zaid (Allah be pleased with him) reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) on his way back from 'Arafat got down in one of these creeks (to answer the call of nature), and after he had done that I poured water (over his hands) and said: Are you going to pray? Thereupon he said: The place of prayer is ahead of you. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2943. ------------------------------ Chapter : Returning from 'Arafat to Muzdalifa and excellence of observing sunset and 'Isha prayers together at Muzdalifa. Usama b. Zaid (Allah be pleased with him) narrated: AHah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) was on his way back from 'Arafat and as he reached the creek (of a hillock) he got down and urinated (Usama did not say that he poured water), but said: He (the Holy Prophet) called for water and performed ablution, but it was not a thorough one. I said: Messenger of Allah, the prayer ! Thereupon he said: Prayer awaits you ahead (at Muzdalifa). He then proceeded, until he reached Muzdalifa and observed sunset and 'Isha prayers (together) there. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2944. ------------------------------ Chapter : Returning from 'Arafat to Muzdalifa and excellence of observing sunset and 'Isha prayers together at Muzdalifa. Kuraib reported that he asked Usama b. Zaid (Allah be pleased with him) What did you do in the evening of 'Arafa as you rode behind Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him)? He said: We came to a valley where people generally halted their (camels) for the sunset prayer. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) halted his camel and urinated (and he did not say that he had poured water). He then called for water and performed light ablution. I said: Messenger of Allah, the prayer! Thereupon he said: Prayer awaits you (at Muzdalifa) and he rode on until we came to Muzdalifa. Then he offered the sunset prayer and the people halted their camels at their places, and did not untie them until Iqama was pronounced for the 'Isha prayer and he observed the prayer, and then they untied (their camels). I said: What did you do in the morning? He said: Al-Fadl b. Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) sat behind him (the Holy Prophet) in the morning, whereas I proceeded on foot with the Quraish who had gone ahead. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2945. ------------------------------ Chapter : Returning from 'Arafat to Muzdalifa and excellence of observing sunset and 'Isha prayers together at Muzdalifa. Usama b. Zaid (Allah be pleased with him) reported that when Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came to the valley where the rich (people of Mecca) used to get down, he got down and urinated (and he did not mention about pouring water); he then called for water and performed a light ablution. I said: Messenger of Allah, the prayer I Thereupon he said: Prayer awaits you ahead. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2946. ------------------------------ Chapter : Returning from 'Arafat to Muzdalifa and excellence of observing sunset and 'Isha prayers together at Muzdalifa. Usama b. Zaid (Allah be pleased with him) reported that he sat behind Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) on his ride as he came back from 'Arafa. And as he came to the valley, he halted his camel, and then went to the wilderness (to urinate). And when he came back, I poured water on him from the jug and he performed ablution, and then rode on until he came to Muzdalifa and there he combined the sunset and 'Isha prayers. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2947. ------------------------------ Chapter : Returning from 'Arafat to Muzdalifa and excellence of observing sunset and 'Isha prayers together at Muzdalifa. Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon, him) came back from 'Arafa and Usama (Allah be pleased with him) was seated behind him. Usama said that he (the Holy Prophet) continued the journey in this very state until he came to Muzdalifa. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2948. ------------------------------ Chapter : Returning from 'Arafat to Muzdalifa and excellence of observing sunset and 'Isha prayers together at Muzdalifa. Hisham (Allah be pleased with him) reported from his father: Usama (Allah be pleased with him) was asked in my presence or I asked Usama b. Zaid and he rode behind Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as he came back from 'Arafat. I said (to him): How did Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) journey as he came back from 'Arafat? Thereupon he said: He made it (his riding camel) walk at a slow speed, and when he found an open space, he made it walk briskly. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2949. ------------------------------ Chapter : Returning from 'Arafat to Muzdalifa and excellence of observing sunset and 'Isha prayers together at Muzdalifa. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of 'Urwa with the same chain of transmitters and in the hadith narrated by Humaid there is an addition (of these words): "Hisham said: Al-nass (speed of camel) is faster than al-'anaq." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2950. ------------------------------ Chapter : Returning from 'Arafat to Muzdalifa and excellence of observing sunset and 'Isha prayers together at Muzdalifa. Abdullah b. Yazid al-Khatmi reported on the authority of Abu Ayyub (Allah be pleased with him) that he prayed the sunset and 'Isha prayers (together) at Muzdalifa in the company of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) on the occasion of the Farewell Pilgrimage. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2951. ------------------------------ Chapter : Returning from 'Arafat to Muzdalifa and excellence of observing sunset and 'Isha prayers together at Muzdalifa. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) observed the sunset and 'Isha prayers together at Muzdalifa. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2952. ------------------------------ Chapter : Returning from 'Arafat to Muzdalifa and excellence of observing sunset and 'Isha prayers together at Muzdalifa. Ubaidullah b. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar reported on the authority of his father (Allah be pleased with them) that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) combined the sunset and 'Isha, prayers at Muzdalifa and there was no prostration (i.e. any rak'ahs of Sunan or Nawafil prayers) in between them. He observed three rak'ahs of the sunset prayer and two rak'ahs of the 'Isha prayer, and 'Abdullah (b. 'Umar) observed the prayers in this very manner (at Muzdalifa) until he met his Lord. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2953. ------------------------------ Chapter : Returning from 'Arafat to Muzdalifa and excellence of observing sunset and 'Isha prayers together at Muzdalifa. Sa'id b. Jubair reported that he observed the sunset and 'Isha prayers at Muzdalifa with (one) iqama. He narrated on the authority of Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) that he observed prayers like this and Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) narrated that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) did like this. Shu'ba reported this hadith with the same chain of transmitters and said: He (the Holy Prophet) observed the two prayers (together) with one iqama. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2954. ------------------------------ Chapter : Returning from 'Arafat to Muzdalifa and excellence of observing sunset and 'Isha prayers together at Muzdalifa. Ibn 'Umar rep rte that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) combined the sunset and 'Isha prayers at Muzdalifa. He observed three rak'ahs of the sunset prayer and two rak'ahs of the 'Isha prayer with one Iqama. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2955. ------------------------------ Chapter : Returning from 'Arafat to Muzdalifa and excellence of observing sunset and 'Isha prayers together at Muzdalifa. Sa'id b. Jubair reported: We came back along with Ibn 'Umar till we reached Muzdalifa. There he led us in the sunset and 'Isha prayers with one iqama and we then proceeded and he said: This is how Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) led us in prayer at this place. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2956. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing the dawn prayer at the earliest part of the dawn on the 10th of Dhu'l-Hijja at Muzdalifa. A'bdullah (b. 'Umar) reported: I have never seen Allah's Messenger, (may peace be upon him) but observing the prayers at their appointed times except two players, sunset and 'Isha, at Muzdalifa (where he deferred the sunset prayer to combine it with 'Isha and he observed the dawn prayer before its stipulated time on that day (10th of Dhu'l-Hijja). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2957. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing the dawn prayer at the earliest part of the dawn on the 10th of Dhu'l-Hijja at Muzdalifa. This hadith has been transmitted by A'mash with a slight variation of words i.e. he said before its time when it was still dark. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2958. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is excellent that the aged and the weak, especially among the women, should hasten from Muzdalifa to Mina at the latter part of the night before the people moving in multitude. and excellence of staying there for others until they observe the dawn prayer at Muzdalifa. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: Sauda (the wife of the Holy Prophet) who was bulky sought the permission of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) on the night of Muzdalifa to move from (that place) ahead of him and before the multitude (set forth). He (Allah's Apostle) gave her the permission. So she set forth before his (Holy Prophet's) departure. But we stayed there until it was dawn and we moved on, when he departed. And if I were to seek the permission of Allah's Messenger.(may peace be upon him) as Sauda had sought permission, I could have also gone with his permission and it would have been better for me than that for which I was happy. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2959. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is excellent that the aged and the weak, especially among the women, should hasten from Muzdalifa to Mina at the latter part of the night before the people moving in multitude. and excellence of staying there for others until they observe the dawn prayer at Muzdalifa. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that (hadrat) Sauda was a bulky lady, so she sought permission from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) to proceed from Muzdalifa (to Mina) in the (latter part of the) night. He granted her permission. 'Aisha said: I wish I had also sought permission from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as Sauda had sought permission from him. 'Aisha did not proceed but with the Imam. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2960. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is excellent that the aged and the weak, especially among the women, should hasten from Muzdalifa to Mina at the latter part of the night before the people moving in multitude. and excellence of staying there for others until they observe the dawn prayer at Muzdalifa. 'Aisha said: I wish I had sought permission from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as Sauda had sought, and observed the dawn prayer at Mina and stoned at al-Jamra before the people had come there. It was said to 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her): Did Sauda seek permission from him (the Holy Prophet)? She said: Yes. She was a bulky lady and so she sought permission from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) (to proceed to mina from Muzdalifa ahead of him), and he granted her permission. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2961. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is excellent that the aged and the weak, especially among the women, should hasten from Muzdalifa to Mina at the latter part of the night before the people moving in multitude. and excellence of staying there for others until they observe the dawn prayer at Muzdalifa. A hadith like this has been narrated by 'Abd al-Rahman b. al-Qasim with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2962. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is excellent that the aged and the weak, especially among the women, should hasten from Muzdalifa to Mina at the latter part of the night before the people moving in multitude. and excellence of staying there for others until they observe the dawn prayer at Muzdalifa. Abdullah, the freed slave of (Hadrat) Asma', reported: Asma' (Allah be pleased with her), as she was in the house at Muzdalifa, asked me whether the moon had set. I said: No. She prayed for some time, and again said: My son has the moon set? I said: Yes. And she said: Set forth along with me, and so we set forth until (we reached Mini) and the stoned at al-Jamra. She then prayed in her place. I said to her: Respected lady, we set forth (in the very early part of dawn) when it was dark, whereupon she said: My son, there is no harm in it; Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) had granted permission to women. This hadith has been narrated by Ibn Juraij with the same chain of transmitters, and In his narration (the words are): "She (Asma') said: My son, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) granted permission to women." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2963. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is excellent that the aged and the weak, especially among the women, should hasten from Muzdalifa to Mina at the latter part of the night before the people moving in multitude. and excellence of staying there for others until they observe the dawn prayer at Muzdalifa. Ibn Shawwal (the freed slave of Umm Habiba) reported that he went to Umm Habiba (the wife of Allah's Apostle) who informed him that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) sent her from Muzdalifa during the night. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2964. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is excellent that the aged and the weak, especially among the women, should hasten from Muzdalifa to Mina at the latter part of the night before the people moving in multitude. and excellence of staying there for others until they observe the dawn prayer at Muzdalifa. It is narrated from Umm Habiba: We used to set forth from Muzdalifa to Mina, (very early in the dawn) when it was dark. And in the narration of Naqid (the words are): "We set from Muzdalifa in the darkness (of the dawn)." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2965. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is excellent that the aged and the weak, especially among the women, should hasten from Muzdalifa to Mina at the latter part of the night before the people moving in multitude. and excellence of staying there for others until they observe the dawn prayer at Muzdalifa. Ibn 'Abbas reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) sent me from Muzdalifa ahead (of the caravan) along with the luggage or with the weak ones during (the latter part of the) night. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2966. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is excellent that the aged and the weak, especially among the women, should hasten from Muzdalifa to Mina at the latter part of the night before the people moving in multitude. and excellence of staying there for others until they observe the dawn prayer at Muzdalifa. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported: I was among those (i.e. women and children) whom Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) sent forth with the weak members of his family. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2967. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is excellent that the aged and the weak, especially among the women, should hasten from Muzdalifa to Mina at the latter part of the night before the people moving in multitude. and excellence of staying there for others until they observe the dawn prayer at Muzdalifa. This hadith has been transmitted by Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) with a slight variation of words. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2968. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is excellent that the aged and the weak, especially among the women, should hasten from Muzdalifa to Mina at the latter part of the night before the people moving in multitude. and excellence of staying there for others until they observe the dawn prayer at Muzdalifa. 'Ata' reported from Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them): Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) sent me from Muzdalifa along with his luggage (in the very early part of the dawn). I (Ibn Juraij, one of the narrators) said (to 'Ati'): Has this (news) reached you that Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) had said: "He (Allah's Messenger) had sent me in the latter p4art of the night"?Thereupon he said: No, it was the dawn. I (again) said to him: (Did you hear) Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) having said this (too): "We stoned al-Jamra before the dawn prayer"? So where did he observe the dawn prayer? He said: No. But he said only so much (as described above). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2969. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is excellent that the aged and the weak, especially among the women, should hasten from Muzdalifa to Mina at the latter part of the night before the people moving in multitude. and excellence of staying there for others until they observe the dawn prayer at Muzdalifa. Salim b. 'Abdullah reported that 'Abdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) used to send ahead of him the weak members of his household to stay during the night at Mash'ar al-Haram at Muzdalifa. They remembered Allah so long as they could afford, and then they proceeded before the stay of the Imam, and before his return. So some of them reached Mina for the dawn prayer and some of them reached there after that; and as they reached there, they stoned al-Jamra; and Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) used to say: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) has granted this concession to them. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2970. ------------------------------ Chapter : Stoning at Jamrat al-'Aqaba from the heart of the valley in the state that Mecca is on the left side and pronouncing of takbir while throwing every pebble. 'Abd al-Rahman b. Yazid reported that 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud (Allah be pleased with them) threw seven pebbles at Jamrat al-'Aqaba from the heart of the valley. He pronounced Takbir with every pebble. It was said to him that people fling stones from the upper side (of the valley), whereupon 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud (Allah he pleased with them) said: By him, besides Whom there is no other god, that is the place (of flinging stones) of one upon whom Surah al-Baqara was revealed (the Holy Prophet). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2971. ------------------------------ Chapter : Stoning at Jamrat al-'Aqaba from the heart of the valley in the state that Mecca is on the left side and pronouncing of takbir while throwing every pebble. A'mash reported: I heard Hajjaj b. Yusuf saying as he was delivering sermon on the pulpit: Observe the order of the (Holy) Qur'an which has been observed by Gabriel. (Thus state the surahs in this manner) "one in which mention has been made of al-Baqara," "one in which mention has been made of women (Surah al-Nisa')" and then the surah in which mention has been made of the Family of 'Imrin. He (the (narrator) said: I met Ibrahim and informed him about these words of his (the statement of Hajjaj b. Yusuf). He cursed him and said: Abd al-Rahman b. Yazid has narrated to me that when he was in the company of 'Abdullah b. Mas'udd (Allah be pleased with them) he came to Jamrat al-'Aqaba and then entered the heart of the valley and faced towards it (the Jamra) and then flung seven pebbles at it from the heart of the valley pronouncing Takbir with every pebble. I said: Abu 'Abd al-Rahman, people fling pebbles at it (Jamra) from the upper side, whereupon he said: By Him besides Whom there is no god, that is the place (of flinging pebbles of one) upon whom Surah al-Baqara was revealed; Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2972. ------------------------------ Chapter : Stoning at Jamrat al-'Aqaba from the heart of the valley in the state that Mecca is on the left side and pronouncing of takbir while throwing every pebble. A'mash reported: I heard Hajjaj saying I Do not say Surah al-Baqara. The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2973. ------------------------------ Chapter : Stoning at Jamrat al-'Aqaba from the heart of the valley in the state that Mecca is on the left side and pronouncing of takbir while throwing every pebble. Abd al-Rahman b. Yazid reported that he performed Hajj along with 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with him) and he flung seven pebbles at al-Jamra (from a position) that the House was on his left and Mina was on his right and said: That is the place (of flinging pebbles of one) upon whom Surah al-Baqara was revealed. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2974. ------------------------------ Chapter : Stoning at Jamrat al-'Aqaba from the heart of the valley in the state that Mecca is on the left side and pronouncing of takbir while throwing every pebble. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Shu'ba with the same chain of transmitters except with this variation of (words): As he came to Jamrat al-'Aqaba." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2975. ------------------------------ Chapter : Stoning at Jamrat al-'Aqaba from the heart of the valley in the state that Mecca is on the left side and pronouncing of takbir while throwing every pebble. Abd al-Rahman b. Yazid reported: It was said to 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with bird) that people threw pebbles at the Jamra from the upper side of 'Aqaba, whereas he threw stones at it from the heart of the valley, whereupon he said: By Him besides Whom there is no god, it is at this very place that one upon whom was revealed Surah al-Baqara threw stones at it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2976. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of flinging pebbles at Jamrat al-Aqaba on the day of sacrifice (10th of Dhu'l-Hijja) while riding. Jabir (Allah be pleased with him) reported: I saw Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) flinging pebbles while riding his camel on the Day of Nahr, and he was saying: Learn your rituals (by seeing me performing them), for I do not know whether I would be performing Hajj after this Hajj of mine. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2977. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of flinging pebbles at Jamrat al-Aqaba on the day of sacrifice (10th of Dhu'l-Hijja) while riding. Umm al-Husain (Allah be pleased with her) reported: I performed Hajj along with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) on the occasion of the Farewell Pilgrimage and saw him when he flung pebbles at Jamrat al-'Aqaba and returned while he was riding the camel, and Bilal and Usama were with him. One of them was leading his camel, while the other was raising his cloth over the head of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) to protect him from the sun. She (further) said: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said so many things, and I heard him saying: If a slave having some limb of his missing and having dark complexion is appointed to govern you according to the Muslim Book of Allah the Exalted, listen to him and obey him. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2978. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of flinging pebbles at Jamrat al-Aqaba on the day of sacrifice (10th of Dhu'l-Hijja) while riding. Umm al-Husain (Allah be pleased with her) reported: I performed Hajj along with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) on the occasion of the Farewell Pilgrimage and saw Usama and Bilal (too), one of whom had caught hold of the lose string of the she-camel of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) while the other one was raising his cloth (over his head) protecting him from the heat, till he flung pebbles at Jamrat al-'Aqaba. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2979. ------------------------------ Chapter : The pebbles to be used for throwing should be small. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported: I saw Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) throwing stones (at Jamrat al 'Aqaba) like pelting of small pebbles. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2980. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is the excellent time for throwing pebbles (at the Jamras). Jabir (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) flung pebbles at jamra on the Day of Nahr after sunrise, and after that (i.e. on the 11th, 12th and 13th of Dhu'l-Hijja when the sun had declined. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2981. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is the excellent time for throwing pebbles (at the Jamras). Jabir b. Abdullah reported a hadith like this from Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2982. ------------------------------ Chapter : What should be the number of the pebbles? Jabir (b. Abdullah) (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Odd number of stones are to be used for cleaning (the private parts after answering the call of nature), and casting of pebbles at the Jamras is to be done by odd numbers (seven), and (the number) of circuits between al-Safa' and al-Marwa is also odd (seven), and the number of circuits (around the Ka'ba) is also odd (seven). Whenever any one of you is required to use stones (for cleaning the private parts) he should use odd number of stones (three, five or seven). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2983. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is preferable to get one's hair cut (as a ritual of pilgrimage) but clipping is also permissible. 'Abdullah reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) got his head shaved (after slaughtering the sacrificial animal on the 10th of Dhu'l-Hijja), and so did a group of Companions, while some of them got their hair clipped. Abdullah said: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) observed once or twice: "May Allah have mercy upon those who get their heads shaved." And he also said: "Upon those too who got their hair clipped." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2984. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is preferable to get one's hair cut (as a ritual of pilgrimage) but clipping is also permissible. Abdullah b. Umar (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as having observed: O Allah, have mercy upon those who get their heads shaved. They (the Companions) said: Messenger of Allah, (what about those) who have got their hair clipped? He said: O Allah, have mercy upon those who have got their heads shaved. They (again) said: Allah's Messenger, (what about those) who have got their hair clipped? Thereupon he said: (O Allah, have mercy upon those) who have got their hair clipped. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2985. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is preferable to get one's hair cut (as a ritual of pilgrimage) but clipping is also permissible. Ibn 'Umar reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: May Allah have mercy upon those who have got their heads shaved. They said: Messenger of Allah, (what about) those who got their hair clipped? He said: May Allah have mercy upon those who have got their heads shaved. They said: Messenger of Allah, (what about those who have got their hair clipped)? He said: May Allah have mercy upon those who got their hair shaved. They said: Messenger of Allah, (what about) those who got their hair clipped? He said: (O Allah, have mercy upon) those who got their hair clipped. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2986. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is preferable to get one's hair cut (as a ritual of pilgrimage) but clipping is also permissible. Ubaidullah reported this hadith with the same chain of transmitters and (it is said) that it was on the fourth turn that he (the Holy Prophet) said: (May Allah have mercy upon) those who got their hair clipped." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2987. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is preferable to get one's hair cut (as a ritual of pilgrimage) but clipping is also permissible. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as having said: O Allah, grant pardon to those who got their heads shaved They (Companions of the Holy Prophet) said: Messenger of Allah, (what about those) who get their hair cut? He said: O Allah, grant pardon to those who get their heads shaved. They said: Messenger of Allah, (what about those) who got their hair clipped? He said: O Allah, grant pardon to those who get their heads shaved. They said: Messenger of Allah, (what about those) who get their hair clipped? He said: O Allah, grant pardon to those who get their heads shaved. They said: (What about those) who get their hair clipped? He said: (O Allah, grant pardon to) those who get their hair clipped. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2988. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is preferable to get one's hair cut (as a ritual of pilgrimage) but clipping is also permissible. A hadith like this is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2989. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is preferable to get one's hair cut (as a ritual of pilgrimage) but clipping is also permissible. Yahya b. al-Husain reported on the authority of his grandfather that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) invoked blessing on the occasion of the Farewell Pilgrimage three times for those who got their heads shaved and once for those who got their hair clipped. In the narration transmitted by Waki' there is no mention of the Farewell Pilgrimage. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2990. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is preferable to get one's hair cut (as a ritual of pilgrimage) but clipping is also permissible. Ibn Umar reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) got his head shaved on the occasion of the Farewell Pilgrimage. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2991. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is a sunnah that on the day of Nahar one should throw pebbles, then slaughter animal, then get one's head shaved, and one should start shaving one's head from the right side. Anas b. Malik (Allah be pleased wish him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came to Mina; he went to the Jamra and threw pebbles at it, after which he went to his lodging in Mina, and sacrificed the animal. He then called for a barber and, turning his right side to him, let him shave him; after which he timed his left side. He then gave (these hair) to the people. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2992. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is a sunnah that on the day of Nahar one should throw pebbles, then slaughter animal, then get one's head shaved, and one should start shaving one's head from the right side. Abu Bakr reported: (He called for) the barber and, pointing towards the right side of his head, said: (Start from) here, and then distributed his hair among those who were near him. He then pointed to the barber (to shave) the left side and he shaved it, and he gave (these hair) to Umm Sulaim (Allah be pleased with her). And in the narration of Abu Kuraib (the words are): "He started from the right half (of his head), and he distributed a hair or two among the people and then (asked the barber) to shave the left side and he did similarly, and he (the Holy Prophet) said: Here is Abu Talha and he gave these (hair) to Abu Talha." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2993. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is a sunnah that on the day of Nahar one should throw pebbles, then slaughter animal, then get one's head shaved, and one should start shaving one's head from the right side. Anas b. Malik (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) threw stones at Jamrat al-'Aqaba. He then want to his sacrificial animal and sacrificed it, and there was sitting the barber, and he pointed with his hand towards his head, and he shaved the right half of it, and he (the Holy Prophet) distributed them (the hair) among those who were near him. And he again said: Shave the other half, and said: Where is Abu Talha and gave it (the hair) to him. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2994. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is a sunnah that on the day of Nahar one should throw pebbles, then slaughter animal, then get one's head shaved, and one should start shaving one's head from the right side. Anas b. Malik (Allah be pleased with him) reported: When Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had thrown pebbles at the Jamra and had sacrificed the animal, he turned (the right side) of his head towards the barber, and i.e. shaved it. He then called Abu Talha al-Ansari and gave it to him. He then turned his left side and asked him (the barber) to shave. And he (the barber) shaved and gave it to Abu Talha and told him to distribute it amongst the people. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2995. ------------------------------ Chapter : Regarding one who shaves before offering the sacrifice or offers sacrifice before throwing (the stones at Jamra). Abdullah b. 'Amr b. al-'As said that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) stopped during the Farewell Pilgrimage at Mina for people who had something to ask. A man came and said: Messenger of Allah, being ignorant. I shaved before sacrificing, whereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: Now sacrifice (the animal) and there is no harm (for you). Then another man came and he said: Messenger of Allah, being ignorant, I sacrificed before throwing the pebbles, whereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: (Now) throw the pebbles, and there is no harm (for you). Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) was not asked about anything which had been done before or after (its proper time) but he said: Do it, and no harm is there (for you). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2996. ------------------------------ Chapter : Regarding one who shaves before offering the sacrifice or offers sacrifice before throwing (the stones at Jamra). 'Abdullah b. 'Amr b. al-'As (Allah be pleased with them) reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) stopped while riding his camel and the people began to ask him. One of the inquirers said: Messenger of Allah, I did not know that pebbles should be thrown before sacrificing the animal, and by mistake I sacrificed the animal before throwing pebbles, whereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: (Now) throw pebbles and there is no harm in it. Then another(person) came saying: I did not know that the animal was to be sacrificed before shaving, but I got myself shaved before sacrificing the animal, whereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: Sacrifice the animal (now) and there is no harm in it. He (the narrator) said: I did not hear that anything was asked on that day (shout a matter) which a person forgot and could not observe the sequence or anything like it either due to forgetfulness or ignorance, but Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said (about that): Do it; there is no harm in it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2997. ------------------------------ Chapter : Regarding one who shaves before offering the sacrifice or offers sacrifice before throwing (the stones at Jamra). This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Zuhri. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2998. ------------------------------ Chapter : Regarding one who shaves before offering the sacrifice or offers sacrifice before throwing (the stones at Jamra). Abdullah b. Amr b. al-'As (Allah be pleased with them) reported: As Allah's Apostle. (may peace be upon him) was delivering sermon on the Day of Nahr, a man stood up before him and said: Messenger of Allah, I did not know that such and such (rite was to be performed) before such and such (rite). Then another man came and said: Messenger of Allah, I thought that such and such (rite) should precede such and such (rite), and then another man came and said: Messenger of Allah, I had thought that such and such was before such and such, and such and such (is the sequence) of the three (rites, viz. throwing of pebbles, sacrificing of animal and shaving of one's head). He said to all these three: Do now (if you have not observed the sequence); there is no harm in it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 2999. ------------------------------ Chapter : Regarding one who shaves before offering the sacrifice or offers sacrifice before throwing (the stones at Jamra). This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Ibn Juraij with the same chain of transmitters. And the narration of Ibn Bakr is like one transmitted by 'Isa but with this (variation): "There are not these words in it: To all these three rites (throwing of pebbles sacrificing of animal and shaving of one's head)." And so far as the narration of Yahya al-Umawi (the words are): I got (my head) shaved before I sacrificed the animal, and I sacrificed the animal before throwing pebbles, and like that. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3000. ------------------------------ Chapter : Regarding one who shaves before offering the sacrifice or offers sacrifice before throwing (the stones at Jamra). Adullah b. 'Amr (b. al-'As) (Allah be pleased with him) reported that a person came to Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and said: I got (my head) shaved before sacrificing the ,animal, whereupon be (the Holy Prophet) said: Sacrifice the animal (now); there is no harm in it. He (the person said): I sacrificed the animal before throwing pebbles, whereupon he said: Throw pebbles (now); there is no harm in it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3001. ------------------------------ Chapter : Regarding one who shaves before offering the sacrifice or offers sacrifice before throwing (the stones at Jamra). This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Zuhri with the same chain of transmitters (and the words are): I saw Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) on the back of the camel at Mina, and a person came to him," and the rest of the hadith Is like that transmitted by Ibn 'Uyaina. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3002. ------------------------------ Chapter : Regarding one who shaves before offering the sacrifice or offers sacrifice before throwing (the stones at Jamra). 'Abdullah b. 'Amr b. al-As (Allah be pleased with them) said: As Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) was standing near the jamra, a person came to him on the Day of Nahr and said: Messenger of Allah, I got (my head shaved) before throwing pebbles, whereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: Throw pebbles (now); there is no harm in it. Another man (then) came and said: I have sacrificed before throwing the stones. He said: Throw stones (now) and there is no harm. Another came to him and said: I have observed the circumambulation of Ifada of the House before throwing pebbles. He said: Throw pebbles (now); there is no harm in it, He (the narrator) said: I did not see that he (the Holy Prophet) was asked about anything on that day, but he said: Do, and there is no harm in it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3003. ------------------------------ Chapter : Regarding one who shaves before offering the sacrifice or offers sacrifice before throwing (the stones at Jamra). Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported that it was said to Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) about sacrificing of animals, shaving of one's head, throwing of pebbles, and (the order of) precedence and succession, and he said: There is no harm in it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3004. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of observing circumambulation of Ifada on the day of Nahr. Ibn Umar reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) observed the circumambulation of Ifada on the Day of Nabr (10th of Dhu'l-Hijja), and then came back and observed the noon prayer at Mina. Nafi' (one of the narrators) said that Ibn Umar used to observe the circumambulation of Ifada on the Day of Nahr, and then return and observe the noon prayer at Mina, and mentioned that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) did that. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3005. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of making a halt at al Muha'ab, on the day of Nahr, and observing prayer there. Abd al-'Aziz b. Rufai' (Allah be pleased with him) said: I asked Anas b. Malik to tell me about something he knew about Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), viz. where he observed the noon prayer on Yaum al-Tarwiya. He said: At Mina. I said: Where did he observe the afternoon prayer on the Yaum an-Nafr? and he said: It was at al-Abtah. He then said: Do as your rulers do. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3006. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of making a halt at al Muha'ab, on the day of Nahr, and observing prayer there. Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and Abu Bakr and 'Umar observed halt at al-Abtah. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3007. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of making a halt at al Muha'ab, on the day of Nahr, and observing prayer there. Nafi' reported that Ibn 'Umar regarded halt at Muhassab as Sunnah (of the Holy Prophet) and observed the noon prayer on Yaum al-Nafr at that place. Nafi' said: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) halted at Muhassab and the Caliphs did the same after him. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3008. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of making a halt at al Muha'ab, on the day of Nahr, and observing prayer there. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported.: Halt at al-Abtah is not the Sunnah. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) halted there simply because it was easier for him to depart from there, when he left. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3009. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of making a halt at al Muha'ab, on the day of Nahr, and observing prayer there. This hadith is narrated on the authority of Hisham with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3010. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of making a halt at al Muha'ab, on the day of Nahr, and observing prayer there. Salim reported that Abu Bakr, 'Umar and Ibn Umar used to halt at Abtah. 'Urwa narrated from 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) that he did not observe this practice and said: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) halted there, for it is a place from where it was easy to depart. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3011. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of making a halt at al Muha'ab, on the day of Nahr, and observing prayer there. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported: Halt at Muhassab is not something (significant from the point of view of the Shari'ah). It is a place of halt where Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) halted. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3012. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of making a halt at al Muha'ab, on the day of Nahr, and observing prayer there. Abu Rafi' reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) did not command me to observe halt at al-Abtah when be departed from Mina, but I came and set up his (the Holy Prophet's) tent (of my own accord); and he (Allah's Apostle) came and observed halt. This hadith is narrated through another chain of transmitters from Abu Rafi' who was (in charge) of the luggage of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3013. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of making a halt at al Muha'ab, on the day of Nahr, and observing prayer there. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleated with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: God willing, we will get down tomorrow, at Khaif of Banu Kinanah, the place where they had taken an oath on unbelief. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3014. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of making a halt at al Muha'ab, on the day of Nahr, and observing prayer there. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said to us as we were at Mina: We would observe halt tomorrow at-Khaif of Banu Kinanah, where (the polytheists) had taken an oath on unbelief, and that was that the Quraish and Banu Kinanah had, pledged against Banu Hashim and Banu Muttalib that they would neither marry nor do any transaction with them unless they deliver Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) to them. And (this pledge was) taken at this (place) Muhassab. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3015. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of making a halt at al Muha'ab, on the day of Nahr, and observing prayer there. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: God willing, when Allah has granted us victory, our halt tomorrow will be at Khaif, where they (the unbelievers of Mecca) had taken an oath on unbelief. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3016. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is essential to stay (for two or three nights) at Mina during the days of Tashriq (11th, 12th and 13th) and exemption from this command for the suppliers of water. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported that al-'A'bbas b. Abd al-Muttalib (Allah be pleased with him) sought permission from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) to spend in Mecca the nights (which be was required to spend) at Mina on account of his office of supplier of water, and he (the Holy Prophet) granted him permission. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3017. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is essential to stay (for two or three nights) at Mina during the days of Tashriq (11th, 12th and 13th) and exemption from this command for the suppliers of water. A hadith like this has been narrated by 'Ubaidullah b. Umar with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3018. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is essential to stay (for two or three nights) at Mina during the days of Tashriq (11th, 12th and 13th) and exemption from this command for the suppliers of water. Bakr b. 'Abdullah al-Muzani said: While I was sitting along with Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with him) near the Ka'ba, there came a bedouin to him and said: What is the matter that I see that the progeny of your uncle supply honey and milk (as drink to the travellers), whereas you supply al-nabidh (water sweetened with dates)? Is it due to your poverty or due to your close-fistedness? Thereupon Ibn 'Abbas said: Allah be praised, it is neither due to poverty nor due to close-fistedness (but due to the fact) that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) came here riding his she-came, and there was sitting behind him Usama. He asked for water, and we gave him a cup full of nabidh and he drank it, and gave the remaining (part) to Usama; and he (the Holy Prophet) said: You have done Food, You have done well. So continue doing like it So we do not like to change what Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had commanded us to do. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3019. ------------------------------ Chapter : One should offer as sadaqa the meat and hide of the sacrificial animal. 'All (Allah be pleased with him) reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) put me in charge of his sacrificial animals, that I should give their flesh skins and saddle cloths as sadaqa, but not to give anything to the butcher, saying: We would pay him ourselves. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3020. ------------------------------ Chapter : One should offer as sadaqa the meat and hide of the sacrificial animal. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abd al-Karim al-Jazari with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3021. ------------------------------ Chapter : One should offer as sadaqa the meat and hide of the sacrificial animal. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of 'Ali (Allah be pleased with him) with another chain of transmitters, but there is no mention of the wages of the butcher in it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3022. ------------------------------ Chapter : One should offer as sadaqa the meat and hide of the sacrificial animal. Ali b. Abi Talib (Allah be pleased with him) reported: Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) put him in charge of his sacrificial animals, and commanded him to distribute the whole of their meat, hides, and saddle cloths to the poor, and not to give to the butcher anything out of them. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3023. ------------------------------ Chapter : One should offer as sadaqa the meat and hide of the sacrificial animal. A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of Hadrat 'Ali (Allah be pleased with him). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3024. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to join seven persons in a cow or a camel. Jabir b. 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with him) reported: In the year of Hudaibiya (6H), we, along with Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him), sacrificed a camel for seven persons and a cow for seven persons. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3025. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to join seven persons in a cow or a camel. Jabir (Allah be pleased with him) reported: We set out in the state of Ihram for Hajj along, with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). He commanded us that seven person should join in a camel and a cow for offering sacrifice. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3026. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to join seven persons in a cow or a camel. Jabir b. 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with him) reported: We performed Hajj along with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), and we sacrificed a camel on behalf of seven persons, and a cow on behalf of seven persons. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3027. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to join seven persons in a cow or a camel. Jabir b. 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with them) reported: We joined Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) in Hajj and Umra and seven persons shared in the sacrifice of an animal. A person said to Jabir (Allah be pleased with him): Can seven persons share in the sacrifice of al-Badnah (a camel) as he shares in al-Jazur (a cow)? He, (Jabir) said: It (al-Jazur) is nothing but one among the budun. Jabir was present at Hudaibiya and he said: We sacrificed on that day seventy camel, and seven men shared in each sacrifice (of camel). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3028. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to join seven persons in a cow or a camel. Jabir b. 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with them), describing the Hajj of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: He (the Holy Prophet) commanded us as we had entered into the state of Ihram to sacrifice the animals (as a rite of Hajj) and a group (of person; amongst us, i.e. seven) shared in the sacrifice of one (camel or cow), and it happened at that time when he commanded them to put off Ihram for Hajj (after performing 'Umra). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3029. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to join seven persons in a cow or a camel. Jaibir b. 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with them) reported: We performed Hajj Tamattu' along with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and we slaughtered a cow on behalf of seven persons sharing in it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3030. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to join seven persons in a cow or a camel. Jabir reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) sacrificed a cow on behalf of 'Aisha on the Day of Nahr (10th of Dhu'l-Hijja). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3031. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to join seven persons in a cow or a camel. Jabir b. 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with them) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) sacrificed (animals) on behalf of his wives, and in the hadith transmitted by Ibn Abu Bakr (the words are): "A cow on behalf of 'Aisha on the occasion of the Hajj." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3032. ------------------------------ Chapter : The camel is to be sacrificed in a standing posture and fettered. Ziyad b. Jubair reported that Ibn 'Umar came upon a person who was slaughtering (sacrificing) his camel and had made him kneel down. So he told him to make it stand up festered (and then sacrifice it) according to the Sunnah of the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3033. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is meritorious for one who does intend to go himself to send the sacrificial animal to al-Haram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) sent the sacrificial animals from Medina. I wove garlands for his sacrificial animals (and then he hung them round their necks), and he would not avoid doing anything which the Muhrim avoids A hadith like this has been transmitted on the authority of Ibn Shihab. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3034. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is meritorious for one who does intend to go himself to send the sacrificial animal to al-Haram. 'Aisha narrated (in another hadith narrated through another chain of transmitters) these words: "As if I am seeing myself weaving the garlands for the sacrificial animals of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him)." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3035. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is meritorious for one who does intend to go himself to send the sacrificial animal to al-Haram. Abd al-Rahman b. al-Qasim reported on the authority of his father that he heard 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) saying: I used to weave garlands for the sacrificial animals of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) with these hands of mine, but he (Allah's Apostle) neither avoided anything nor gave up anything (which a Muhrim should avoid or give up). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3036. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is meritorious for one who does intend to go himself to send the sacrificial animal to al-Haram. 'Aisha reported: I wove the garlands for the sacrificial animals of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) with my own bands, and then he (the Holy Prophet) marked them, and garlanded them, and then sent them to the House, and stayed at Medina and nothing was forbidden to him which was lawful for him (before). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3037. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is meritorious for one who does intend to go himself to send the sacrificial animal to al-Haram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) sent the sacrificial animals and I wove garlands for them with my own 'hands, and he did not refrain from doing anything which he did not avoid in the state of non-Muhrim. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3038. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is meritorious for one who does intend to go himself to send the sacrificial animal to al-Haram. Al-Qasim reported the Mother of the Faithful (Hadrat 'Aisha Siddiqa) (Allah be pleased with her) as saying: I used to weave these garlands from the multicoloured wool which was with us. The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was in the state of non Muhrim among us, and he would do all that was lawful for a lion-Muhrim with his wife. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3039. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is meritorious for one who does intend to go himself to send the sacrificial animal to al-Haram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: I recall how I wove garlands for the sacrificial animals (the goats) of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). He sent them and then stayed with us as a non-Muhrim. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3040. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is meritorious for one who does intend to go himself to send the sacrificial animal to al-Haram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: I often wove garlands for the sacrificial animals of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), and he garlanded his sacrificial animals, and then he sent them and stayed in the house) avoiding nothing which a Muhrim avoids. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3041. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is meritorious for one who does intend to go himself to send the sacrificial animal to al-Haram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon, him) sent some goats as sacrificial animals to the House and He garlanded them. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3042. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is meritorious for one who does intend to go himself to send the sacrificial animal to al-Haram. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: We used to garland the goats and send them (to Mecca), and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) stayed back in Medina as a non-Muhrim ard nothing was forbidden for him (which is forbidden for a Muhrim). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3043. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is meritorious for one who does intend to go himself to send the sacrificial animal to al-Haram. 'Amra daughter of Abd al-Rahman reported that Ibn Ziyad had written to 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with him) that 'Abdullah b. Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) bad said that he who sent a sacrificial animal (to Mecca) for him was forbidden what is forbidden for a pilgrim (in the state of Ihram) until the animal is sacrificed I have myself sent my sacrificial animal (to Mecca), so write to me your opinion. Amra reported 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) as saying: It is not as Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) had asserted, for I wove the garlands for the sacrificial animals of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) with my own hands. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) then garlanded them with his own hands, and then sent them with my father, and nothing was forbidden for Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) which had been made lawful for him by Allah until the animals were sacrificed. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3044. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is meritorious for one who does intend to go himself to send the sacrificial animal to al-Haram. Masruq reported: I heard 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) clapping her hands behind the curtain and saying: I used to weave garlands for the sacrificial animals of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) with my own hands, and then he (the Holy Prophet) sent them (to Mecca), and he did not avoid doing anything which a Muhrin avoids until his animal was sacrificed. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3045. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is meritorious for one who does intend to go himself to send the sacrificial animal to al-Haram. A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3046. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to ride the sacrificial animal (camel) for one who is in need of it. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) saw a person who was driving a sacrificial camel (and told him to ride on it. Thereupon he said: Messenger of Allah, it is a sacrificial camel. He told him again to ride on it; (when he received the same reply) he said: Woe to you, (he uttered these words on the second or the third reply). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3047. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to ride the sacrificial animal (camel) for one who is in need of it. This hadith has been narrated by A'raj with the same chain of transmitters (and the words are): "Whereas the person was driving a sacrificial camel which was garlanded." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3048. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to ride the sacrificial animal (camel) for one who is in need of it. Hammam b. Munabbih reported: It is one out of these (narrations) that Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) narrated to us from Muhammad the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him), and he narrated to us traditions out of which is that he said: When there was a person who was driving a garlanded sacrificial camel, Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said to him: Woe to you; ride on it. He said: Messenger of Allah, it is a sacrificial animal, whereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Woe to you, ride on it; woe to you, ride on it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3049. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to ride the sacrificial animal (camel) for one who is in need of it. Anas reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) happened to pass by a person who was driving a sacrificial camel, whereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: Ride on It. He said: It is a sacrificial camel. Thereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said twice or thrice: Ride on it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3050. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to ride the sacrificial animal (camel) for one who is in need of it. Anas reported: Someone happened to pass by Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) with a sacrificial camel, or a sacrificial animal, whereupon he said: Ride on it. He said: It is a sacrificial camel, or animal, whereupon he said: (Ride) even if (it is a sacrificial camel). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3051. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to ride the sacrificial animal (camel) for one who is in need of it. Anas (Allah be pleased with him) reported: There happened to pass (a person) with a sacrificial camel by Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and the rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3052. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to ride the sacrificial animal (camel) for one who is in need of it. Jabir b. 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with them) reported that he was asked about riding on a sacrificial animal, and he said: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Ride on it gently, when you have need for it, until you find (another) mount. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3053. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to ride the sacrificial animal (camel) for one who is in need of it. Abu Zubair reported: I asked Jabir (Allah be pleased with him) about riding on the sacrificial animal, to which he replied: I heard Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: Ride on them gently until you find another mount. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3054. ------------------------------ Chapter : What should be done with the sacrificial animal, when it is completely exhausted and becomes powerless to move. Musa b. Salama al-Hudhali reported: I and Sinan b. Salama proceeded (to Mecca to perform Umra. Sinan had a sacrificial camel with him which he was driving. The camel stopped in the way being completely exhausted and this state of it made him (Sinan) helpless.(He thought) if it stops proceeding further how he would be able to take it ,along with him and said: I would definitely find out (the religious verdict) about it. I moved on in the morning and as we encamped at al-Batha', (Sinan) said: Come (along with me) to Ibn 'Abbis (Allah be pleased with them) so that we should narrate to him (this incident), and he (Sinan) reported to him the incident of the sacrificial camel. He (Ibn Abbas) said: You have referred (the matter) to the well informed person. (Now listen) Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) sent sixteen sacrificial camels with a man whom he put in change of them. He set out and came back and said: Messenger of Allah, what should I do with those who are completely exhausted and become powerless to move on, whereupon he said: Slaughter them, and dye their hoofs in their blood, and put them on the sides of their humps, but neither you nor anyone among those who are with you must eat any part of them. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3055. ------------------------------ Chapter : What should be done with the sacrificial animal, when it is completely exhausted and becomes powerless to move. Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) sent eighteen sacrificial camels with a person. The rest of the hadith is the same, and the first part (of the above-mentioned hadith) is not mentioned. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3056. ------------------------------ Chapter : What should be done with the sacrificial animal, when it is completely exhausted and becomes powerless to move. Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported that Dhuwaib, father of Qabisa (Allah be pleased with him) narrated to him that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) sent under his charge the sacrificial camels, and said: If any of these is completely exhausted and you apprehend its death, then slaughter it, then dip its hoofs in its blood and imprint it on its hump; but neither you nor any one of your comrades should eat it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3057. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is obligatory to perform farewell circumambulation, while a menstruating woman i., exempted from it. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported that the people used to return through every path, whereupon Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) said: None amongst you should depart until he performs the last circumambulation round the House. Zuhair said (the words are): [Arabic: Yabswarifuwn Kulla Wajh] and the word [arabic: Fiy] was not mentioned. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3058. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is obligatory to perform farewell circumambulation, while a menstruating woman i., exempted from it. Ibn Abbas reported: The people were commanded (by the Holy Prophet) to perform the last circumambulation round the House, but menstruating women were exempted. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3059. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is obligatory to perform farewell circumambulation, while a menstruating woman i., exempted from it. Tawus reported: I was in the company of Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) when Zaid b. Thabit said: Do you give religious verdict that the woman who is in menses is allowed to go without performing the last circumambulation of the House? Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) said to him: Ask such and such woman of the Ansar, if you do not (believe my religious verdict) whether Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had commanded her this. Zaid b Thabit (went to that lady and after getting this verdict attested by her) came back to Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) smilingly and said: I did not find you but telling the truth. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3060. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is obligatory to perform farewell circumambulation, while a menstruating woman i., exempted from it. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: Safiyyah bint Huyayy entered the period of menses after performing Tawaf Ifada. I made a mention of her menses to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), whereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) remarked: Well, then she will detain us. I said: Messenger of Allah. she has performed Tawif Ifada and circumambulated the House, and it was after this that she entered the period of menses. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: (If it is so), then proceed forth. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3061. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is obligatory to perform farewell circumambulation, while a menstruating woman i., exempted from it. This hadith is narrated (from 'Aisha) on the authority of Ibn Shihab with the same chain of transmitters (and the words are): Safiyyah bint Huyayy, the wife of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him), entered the period of menses at the occasion of the Farewell Pilgrimage after she had performed Tawaf Ifada in the state of cleanliness; the rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3062. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is obligatory to perform farewell circumambulation, while a menstruating woman i., exempted from it. Abd al-Rahman b. al Qasim narrated on the authority of 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) that she made a mention to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) that Safiyyah had entered the period of menses. The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3063. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is obligatory to perform farewell circumambulation, while a menstruating woman i., exempted from it. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: We feared that Safiyyah might have entered the period of menses before performing Tawaf Ifada. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came to us and said: Is Safiyyah going to detain us? Thereupon we said: She has performed Tawaf Ifada. He (the Holy Prophet) said: Then there is no detention (for us) now. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3064. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is obligatory to perform farewell circumambulation, while a menstruating woman i., exempted from it. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) said to the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him): Messenger of Allah, Safiyyah bint Huyayy has entered the state of menses, whereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Perhaps she is going to detain us. Has she not circumambulated the House along with you (i.e. whether she has not performed Tawaf Ifada)? They said: Yes. He said: Then they should set out. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3065. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is obligatory to perform farewell circumambulation, while a menstruating woman i., exempted from it. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) inclined to do with Safiyyah what a man feels inclined to do with his wife. They said: Messenger of Allah, she has entered the state of menses, whereupon he said: (Well) she is going to detain us. They (his wives) said: Messenger of Allah, she performed Tawaf Ziyara (Tawaf Ifada) on the Day of Nahr. Thereupon he said: Then she should proceed along with you Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3066. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is obligatory to perform farewell circumambulation, while a menstruating woman i., exempted from it. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: When Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) decided to march (for return journey), he found Safiyyah at the door of her tent, sad and downcast. He remarked. Barren, shaven-head, you are going to detain us, and then said: Did you perform Tawaf Ifada on the Day of Nahr? She replied in the affirmative, whereupon he said: Then march on. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3067. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is obligatory to perform farewell circumambulation, while a menstruating woman i., exempted from it. This hadith is narrated by 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) through another chain of transmitters, but no mention is made of "sad and downcast". Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3068. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of entering the ka'ba for a pilgrim and observing of prayer in it. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace, be upon him) entered the Ka'ba. Usama, Bilal and 'Uthman b. Talha, the keeper (of the Ka'ba), were along with him. He closed the door and stayed in it for some time. Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) said: I asked Bilal as he came out what Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had done there. He said: He prayed there in (such a position) that two pillars were on his left side, one pillar on his right, and three pillars were behind him, and the House at that time was resting on six pillars. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3069. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of entering the ka'ba for a pilgrim and observing of prayer in it. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came on the Day of Victory, and got down in the courtyard of the Ka'ba and he sent (a message) for 'Uthman b. Talha (Allah be pleased with them). He came with the key and opened the door. Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) then entered therein and Bilal, Usama b. Zaid, and 'Uthman b. Talha (along with him), and then commanded the door to be closed. They stayed there for a considerable time, and then the door was opened, and Abdullah said: I was the first to meet Allah's Messenger. (may peace be upon him). outside (the Ka'ba), and Bilal was close behind him. I said to Bilal: Did Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) observe prayer therein? He said: Yes. I said: Where? He said: Between the two pillars in front of his face. He said: I forgot to ask him as to the number of rakahs he prayed. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3070. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of entering the ka'ba for a pilgrim and observing of prayer in it. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came daring the year of Victory on the she-camel of Usama b. Zaid until he made her kneel down in the courtyard of the Ka'ba (and got down). He then sent for 'Uthman b. Talha and said: Bring me the key. He went to his mother and she refused to give that to him. He said: By Allah, give that to him or this sword would be thrust into my side. So she gave that to him, and he came with that to Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and gave that to him, and he opened the door. The rest of the hadith is the same as the above one. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3071. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of entering the ka'ba for a pilgrim and observing of prayer in it. Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported: Allah's Messenger,(may peace be upon him) entered the House, and Usama, Bilal and Uthman b. Talha were with him, and they kept the door closed for a considerable time. Then it was opened and I was the first to enter the House and meet Bilal, and I said: Where did Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) observe prayer? He said: Between these two front pillars. I, however, forgot to ask him the number of rak'ahs that he observed. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3072. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of entering the ka'ba for a pilgrim and observing of prayer in it. Abdullah b. Umar reported that he reached the Ka'ba and Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) had entered therein, and Bilal and Usama too. 'Uthman b. Talha closed the door to them, and they stayed there for a considerable time, and then the door was opened and Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) came out, and I went upstairs and entered the House and said: Where did Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) observe prayer? They said: At this very place. I, however, forgot to ask them about the (number of) rak'ahs that he observed. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3073. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of entering the ka'ba for a pilgrim and observing of prayer in it. Salim narrated on the authority of his father (Allah be pleased with him) that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) entered the House along with Usama b. Zaid, Bilal and Uthman b. Talha. They closed the door from within, and, as they opened it, I was the first to get into it and meet Bilal, and I asked him: Did Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) observe prayer in it? He said: Yes, he observed prayer between these two Yemenite pillars (pillars situated towards the side of Yemen). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3074. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of entering the ka'ba for a pilgrim and observing of prayer in it. Salim b. Abdullah reported his father (Allah be pleased with him) saying: I saw Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) entering the Ka'ba, and Usama b. Zaid, Bilal and 'Uthman b. Talha were along with him, but none (else) entered therein along with them. Then the door was closed for them from within. 'Abdullah b. Umar (Allah be pleased with them) said: Bilal and Uthman b. Talha informed me that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) observed prayer in the interior of the Ka'ba between the two Yemenite pillars. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3075. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of entering the ka'ba for a pilgrim and observing of prayer in it. Ibn Juraij reported: I said to 'Ata': Have you heard Ibn 'Abbas saying: You have been commanded to observe circumambulation, and not commanded to enter it (the Ka'ba)? He ('Ata') said: He (Ibn Abbas) (at the same time) did not forbid entrance into it. I, however, heard him saying: Usama b. Zaid informed me that when Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) entered the House, he supplicated in all sides of it; and he did not observe prayer therein till he came out, and as he came out he observed two rak'ahs in front of the House, and said: This is your Qibla. I said to him: What is meant by its sides? Does that mean its corners? He said: (In all sides and nooks of the House) there is Qibla. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3076. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of entering the ka'ba for a pilgrim and observing of prayer in it. Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) entered the Ka'ba, and in it there were six pillars, and he stood near a pillar and made supplication, but did not observe the prayer. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3077. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of entering the ka'ba for a pilgrim and observing of prayer in it. Isma'il b. Abu Khalid reported: I asked Abdullah b. Abu Aufa (Allah be pleased with him), a Companion of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), whether Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) had entered the House, while performing 'Umra, He said: NO. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3078. ------------------------------ Chapter : The demolishing of the ka'ba and its reconstruction. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: Allah's Messenger may peace be upon him) said to me: Had your people not been unbelievers in the recent past (had they not quite recently accepted Islam), I would have demolished the Ka'ba and would have rebuilt it on the foundation (laid) by Ibrahim; for when the Quraish had built the Ka'ba, they reduced its (area), and I would also have built (a door) in the rear. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3079. ------------------------------ Chapter : The demolishing of the ka'ba and its reconstruction. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Hisham with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3080. ------------------------------ Chapter : The demolishing of the ka'ba and its reconstruction. 'Aisha, the wife of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him), reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as having said this: Didn't you see that when your people built the Ka'ba, they reduced (its area with the result that it no longer remains) on the foundations (laid) by Ibrahim. I said: Messenger of Allah, why don't you rebuild it on the foundations (laid by) Ibrahim? Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Had your people not been new converts to Islam, I would have done that, 'Abdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) said: If 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) had heard it from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), I would not have seen Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) abandoning the touching of the two corners situated near al-Hijr, but (for the fact) that it was not completed on the foundations (laid) by Ibrahim. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3081. ------------------------------ Chapter : The demolishing of the ka'ba and its reconstruction. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her), wife of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him), heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: If your people, had not been recent converts to Islam, I would have spent the treasure of the Ka'ba in the way of Allah and would have constructed its door just on the level of the ground and would have encompassed in it the space of Hijr. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3082. ------------------------------ Chapter : The demolishing of the ka'ba and its reconstruction. 'Abdullah b. Zubair (Allah be pleased with him) reported on the authority of his mother's sister ('Aisha) saying that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: 'Aisha, if your people had not been recently polytheists (and new converts to Islam), I would have demolished the Ka'ba, and would have brought it to the level of the ground and would have constructed two doors, one facing the east and the other one to the west, and would have added to it six cubits of area from Hijr, for the Quraish had reduced it when they rebuilt it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3083. ------------------------------ Chapter : The demolishing of the ka'ba and its reconstruction. 'Ata' reported: The House was burnt during the time of Yazid b. Muawiya when the people of Syria had fought (in Mecca). And it happened with it (the Ka'ba) what was (in store for it). Ibn Zubair (Allah be pleased with him) felt it (in the same state) until the people came in the season (of Hajj). (The idea behind was) that he wanted to exhort them or incite them (to war) against the people of Syria. When the people had arrived he said to them: O people, advise me about the Ka'ba. Should I demolish it and then build it from its very foundation, or should I repair whatever has been damaged of it? Ibn 'Abbas said: An idea has occurred to me according to which I think that you should only repair (the portion which has been) damaged, and leave the House (in that very state in which) people embraced Islam (and leave those very stones in the same state) when people embraced Islam, and over which Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) had raised it. Thereupon Ibn Zubair said: It the house of any one of you is burnt, he would not be contented until he had reconstructed it, then what about the House of your Lord (which is far more Important than your house)? I would seek good advice from my Lord thrice and then I would make up (my mind) about this affair. After seeking good advice thrice, he made up his mind to demolish it. The people apprehended that calamity might fall from heaven on those persons who would be first to climb (over the building for the purpose of demolishing it), till one (took up courage, and ascended the roof), and threw down one of its stones. When the people saw no calamity befalling him, they followed him, demolished it until it was razed to the ground. Then Ibn Zubair erected pillars and hung curtains on them (in order to provide facilities to the people for observing the time of its construction). And the walls were raised; and Ibn Zubair said: I heard 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) say that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) had observed: If the people had Rot recently (abandoned) unbelief, find I had means enough to reconstruct it, which I had not, I would have definitely encompassed in it five cubits of area from Hijr. And I would also have constructed a door for the people to enter, and a door for their exit. I today have (the means to spend) and I entertain no fear from the side of people (that they would protest against this change). So he added five cubits of area from the side of Hatim to it that there appeared (the old) foundation (upon which Hadrat Ibrahim had built the Ka'ba) and the people saw that and it was upon this foundation that the wall was raised. The length of the Ka'ba was eighteen cubits, when addition was made to it (which was in its breadth), then naturally the length appears to be) small (as compared with its breadth). Then addition of ten cubits (of area) was made in its length (also). Two doors were also constructed, one of which (was meant) for entrance and the other one for exit. When Ibn Zubair (Allah be pleased with him) was killed, Hajjaj wrote to 'Abd al-Malik (b. Marwan) informing him about it, and telling him that Ibn Zubair (Allah be pleased with him) had built (the Ka'ba) on those very foundations (which were laid by Ibrahim) and which reliable persons among the Meccans had seen. 'Abd al-Malik wrote to him: We are not concerned with the censuring of Ibn Zubair in anything. Keep intact the addition made by him in the side of length, and whatever he has added from the side of Hijr revert to (its previous) foundation, and wall up the door which he had opened. Thus Hajjaj at the command of Abd al-Malik) demolished it (that portion) and rebuilt it on (its previous) foundations. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3084. ------------------------------ Chapter : The demolishing of the ka'ba and its reconstruction. Abdullah b. 'Ubaid reported that Harith b. 'Abdullah led a deputation to 'Abd al-Malik b. Marwan during his caliphate. 'Abd al-Malik said: I do riot think that Abu Khubaib (i.e. Ibn Zabair) had heard from 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) (about the intended wish of the Holy Prophet [may peace be upon him) In regard to the alteration of the Ka'ba). Harith said: Yes, I myself did hear from her. He ('Abd al-Malik) said: Well, tell me what you heard from her. He stated that she (Hadrat 'Aisha) had said that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) remarked: Verily your people have reduced (the area) of the House from its (original foundations, and if they had not recently abandoned polytheism (and embraced Islam) I would have reversed it to (those foundations) which they had left out of it, and if your people would take initiative after me in rebuilding it, then come along with me so that I should show you what they have left out of it. He showed her about fifteen cubits of area from the side of Hatim (that they had separated). This is the narration transmitted by 'Abdullah b. Ubaid. Walid b. 'Ata' has, however, made this addition to it: "Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: I would have made two doors on the level of the ground (facing) the east and the west. Do you know why your people raised the level of its door (i.e. the door of the Ka'ba)? She said: No. He said: (They did it) out of vanity so that (they might be in a position) to grant admittance to him only whom they wished. When a person intended to get into it, they let him climb (the stairs), and as he was about to enter, they pushed him and he fell down." 'Abd al-Malik said to Harith; Did you yourself hear her saying this? He said: Yes. He (Harith) said that he ('Abd al-Malik) scratched the ground with his staff for some time and then said: I wish I had left his (Ibn Zubair's) work there. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3085. ------------------------------ Chapter : The demolishing of the ka'ba and its reconstruction. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Juraij with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3086. ------------------------------ Chapter : The demolishing of the ka'ba and its reconstruction. Abu Qaza'ah reported that while Abd al-Malik b. Marwan was circumambulating the Ka'ba he said: May Allah ruin Ibn Zubair that he lies in attributing to the Mother of the Faithful, as he says: I heard her stating that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had said: 'Aisha, if your people had not been new converts to Islam, I would have demolished the House and would have added (in it area) from the Hijr for your people have reduced the area from its foundations. Harith b. 'Abdullah b. Abu Rabi'a (Allah be pleased with him) said: Commander of the Faithful, don't say that, for I heard the Mother of the Faithful saying this, whereupon he said: If I had heard this before demolishing it, I would have left it in the state in which Ibn Zabair had built it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3087. ------------------------------ Chapter : The wall of the Ka'ba and its door. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: I asked Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) about the wall, circumpassing the House (i.e. whether the wall on the side of Hijr was included in the Ka'ba). He said, Yes. I said: Then why did they not include it in the House? He said: 'Your people ran short of the means (to do so). I said: Why is it that the level of its door is raised high? He said: Your people did it so that they should admit one whom they liked, and forbid him whom they disliked, and if your people were not new converts to faith, and I did not apprehend that their hearts would feel agitated at this. I would have definitely included (the area of) this wall-in the House and would have brought the door to the level of the ground. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3088. ------------------------------ Chapter : The wall of the Ka'ba and its door. 'Aisha reported: I asked Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) about Hijr, and the rest of the hadith is the same. I also said: Why is it that the door has been made on a higher level, and one cannot (get into it) but with the help of a ladder? The rest of the hadith is the same as reported above and the concluding words are: (I do not change it) out of the apprehension that their hearts may disapprove of it." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3089. ------------------------------ Chapter : One may perform Hajj on behalf of the maimed, the old and the deceased. 'Abdullah b. 'Abbas reported that while al-Fadl b. Abbas had been riding behind Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) a women of the tribe of Khath'am came to him (to the Holy Prophet) asking for a religious verdict. Fadl looked at her and she looked at him. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) turned the face of al-Fadl to the other side. She said: Messenger of Allah, there is an obligation from Allah upon His servants in regard to Hajj. (But) my father is an aged man; he is incapable of riding safely. May I perform Hajj on his behalf? He said: Yes. It was during the Farewell Pilgrimage. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3090. ------------------------------ Chapter : One may perform Hajj on behalf of the maimed, the old and the deceased. Fadl reported that a woman of Banu Khath'am said: Messenger of Allah, my father is very old. There is an old obligation of Hajj upon him from Allah, but he is not capable of sitting on the back of the camel. Thereupon Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: Perform Hajj on his behalf. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3091. ------------------------------ Chapter : The validity of the Hajj performed by a boy and reward for one who enables him to perform it (by accompanying him and bearing expenses for him). Ibn Abbas reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) met some riders at al-Rauha and asked who they were. They replied that they were Muslims. They said: Who art thou? He said: (I am) Messenger of Allah. A woman (then) lifted up a boy to him and said: Would this child be credited with having performed the Hajj? Thereupon he said: Yes, and you will have a reward. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3092. ------------------------------ Chapter : The validity of the Hajj performed by a boy and reward for one who enables him to perform it (by accompanying him and bearing expenses for him). Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported: A woman lifted up her child and said: Messenger of Allah, would the child be credited with having performed the Hajj? Thereupon he said: Yes, and there would be a reward for you. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3093. ------------------------------ Chapter : The validity of the Hajj performed by a boy and reward for one who enables him to perform it (by accompanying him and bearing expenses for him). Karaib reported: A woman lifted a child and said: Messenger of Allah, would he be credited with Hajj? He said: Yes and for you there would be a reward. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3094. ------------------------------ Chapter : The validity of the Hajj performed by a boy and reward for one who enables him to perform it (by accompanying him and bearing expenses for him). A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of Ibn 'Abbas through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3095. ------------------------------ Chapter : Performance of Hajj is obligatory only once in life. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) addressed us and said: O people, Allah has made Hajj obligatory for you; so perform Hajj. Thereupon a person said: Messenger of Allah, (is it to be performed) every year? He (the Holy Prophet) kept quiet, and he repeated (these words) thrice, whereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: If I were to say "Yes," it would become obligatory (for you to perform it every year) and you would not be able to do it. Then he said: Leave me with what I have left to you, for those who were before you were destroyed because of excessive questioning, and their opposition to their apostles. So when I command you to do anything, do it as much as it lies in your power and when I forbid you to do anything, then abandon it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3096. ------------------------------ Chapter : Travelling of a woman with her Mahram for Hajj, etc. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: A woman should not set out on three (days' journey) except when she has a Mahram with her. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3097. ------------------------------ Chapter : Travelling of a woman with her Mahram for Hajj, etc. This hadith has been narrated on the same authority by Ubaidullah. And in the narration of Abu Bakr (the words are): "More than three (days)." Ibn Numair narrated on the authority of his father, (and the words are): "Three (days) except (when) she has a Mahram with her." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3098. ------------------------------ Chapter : Travelling of a woman with her Mahram for Hajj, etc. 'Abdullah b. Umar (Allah -be pleased with them) reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: It is not lawful for a woman who believes in Allah and the Hereafter to travel for more than three nights journey except when there is a Mahram with her. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3099. ------------------------------ Chapter : Travelling of a woman with her Mahram for Hajj, etc. Qaza'ah reported: I heard a hadith from Abu Sa'id (Allah be pleased with him) and it impressed me (very much), so I said to him: Did you hear it (yourself) from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him)? Thereupon he said: (Can) I speak of anything about Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) which I did not bear? He said: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) saying: Do not set out on a journey (for religious devotion) but for the three mosques-for this mosque of mine (at Medina) the Sacred Mosque (at Mecca), and the Mosque al-Aqsa (Bait al-Maqdis), and I heard him saying also: A woman should not travel for two days duration, but only when there is a Mahram with her or her husband. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3100. ------------------------------ Chapter : Travelling of a woman with her Mahram for Hajj, etc. Qaza'ah reported: I heard Abu Sa'id al-Khudri (Allah be pleased with him) saying: I heard four things from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) which impressed me and captivated me (and one out of these is this), that he forbade a woman to undertake journey extending over two days but with her husband, or with a Mahram; and he then narrated the rest of the hadith. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3101. ------------------------------ Chapter : Travelling of a woman with her Mahram for Hajj, etc. Abu Sa'id (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: A woman should not set out on three (days') journey, but in the company of a Mahram. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3102. ------------------------------ Chapter : Travelling of a woman with her Mahram for Hajj, etc. Abu Sa'id Khudri (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: A woman should not set out on a journey extending beyond three nights but with a Mahram. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3103. ------------------------------ Chapter : Travelling of a woman with her Mahram for Hajj, etc. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Qatada with the same chain of transmitters and he said: "More than three (days) except in the company of a Mahram." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3104. ------------------------------ Chapter : Travelling of a woman with her Mahram for Hajj, etc. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: It is not lawful for a Muslim woman to travel a night's journey except when there is a Mahram with her. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3105. ------------------------------ Chapter : Travelling of a woman with her Mahram for Hajj, etc. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: It is not lawful for a woman who believes in Allah and the Hereafter to undertake a day's journey except in the company of a Mahram. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3106. ------------------------------ Chapter : Travelling of a woman with her Mahram for Hajj, etc. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: It is not lawful for a woman believing in Allah and the Hereafter to undertake journey extending over a day and a night except when there is a Mahram with her. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3107. ------------------------------ Chapter : Travelling of a woman with her Mahram for Hajj, etc. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: It is not lawful for a woman to undertake three (days,) journey except when there is a Mahram with her. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3108. ------------------------------ Chapter : Travelling of a woman with her Mahram for Hajj, etc. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: It is not lawful for a woman believing in Allah and the Hereafter to undertake journey extending over three days or more, except when she is in the company of her father, or her son, or her husband, or her brother, or any other Mahram. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3109. ------------------------------ Chapter : Travelling of a woman with her Mahram for Hajj, etc. A hadith like this has been narrated by A'mash with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3110. ------------------------------ Chapter : Travelling of a woman with her Mahram for Hajj, etc. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) delivering a sermon and making this observation: "No person should be alone with a woman except when there is a Mahram with her, and the woman should not undertake journey except with a Mahram." A person stood up and said: Allah's Messenger, my wife has set out for pilgrimage, whereas I am enlisted to fight in such and such battle, whereupon he said: "You go and perform Hajj with your wife." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3111. ------------------------------ Chapter : Travelling of a woman with her Mahram for Hajj, etc. A hadith like this has been narrated by 'Amr on the authority of the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3112. ------------------------------ Chapter : Travelling of a woman with her Mahram for Hajj, etc. Ibn Juraij narrated this hadith with the same chain of transmitters, but he made no mention of it: "No person should be alone with a woman except when there is a Mahram with her." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3113. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be uttered when one sets out for Hajj or any other journey. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported that whenever Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) mounted his camel while setting out on a journey, he glorified Allah (uttered Allah-O-Akbar) thrice, and then said: Hallowed is He Who subdued for us this (ride) and we were not ourselves powerful enough to use It as a ride, and we are going to return to our Lord. O Allah, we seek virtue and piety from Thee in this journey of ours and the act which pleaseth Thee. O Allah, lighten this journey of ours, and make its distance easy for us. O Allah, Thou art (our) companion during the journey, and guardian of (our) family. O Allah, I seek refuge with Thee from hardships of the journey, gloominess of the sights, and finding of evil changes in property and family on return. And he (the Holy Prophet) uttered (these words), and made this addition to them: We are returning, repentant, worshipping our Lord and praising Him. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3114. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be uttered when one sets out for Hajj or any other journey. Abdullah b. Sarjis (Allah be pleased with him) reported that when Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) set forth on a journey, he sought refuge (with Allah) from the hardships of the travelling, and finding of evil changes on return, and disgrace after honour, and the curse of the oppressed and a gloomy sad scene in family and property. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3115. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be uttered when one sets out for Hajj or any other journey. A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of Asim With the same chain of transmitters except (this difference) that the hadith transmitted by 'Abd al-Wahid (one of the narrators) the (word) "property" precedes the family, and in the hadith transmitted by Muhammad b. Khazim (the word) "family" precedes (the word "Property"), on returning home, in the narrations of both the narrators (these words are found): "O Allah I seek refuge with Thee from the hardships of the journey." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3116. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited on return from the journey of Hajj or any other journey. Abdullah b. 'Umar reported that whenever Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came back from the battle or from expeditions or from Hajj or Umra and as he reached the top of the hillock or upon the elevated hard ground, he uttered Allah-O-Akbar thrice, and then said: There is no god but Allah. He is One, there is no partner with Him, His is the sovereignty and His is the praise and He is Potent over everything. (We are) returning, repenting, worshipping, prostrating before our Lord, and we praise Him Allah fulfilled His promise and helped His servant, and routed the confederates alone. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3117. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited on return from the journey of Hajj or any other journey. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Ibn Umar through another chain of transmitters (but with one alteration) that here Allah-o-Akbar is mentioned twice. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3118. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited on return from the journey of Hajj or any other journey. Anas b. Malik (Allah be pleased with him) reported: I and Abu Talha (both) came back along with Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him). Safiyyah (the wife of the Holy Prophet) rode behind him on his camel and as we came to the out-skirts of Medina he said: (We are those) who return, who repent, who worship our Lord, who praise (Him), and he went on uttering this until we entered Medina. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3119. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be recited on return from the journey of Hajj or any other journey. A hadith like this has been narrated by Anas b. Malik (Allah be pleased with him) through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3120. ------------------------------ Chapter : Staying at Dhu'l-Halaifa and observing of prayer there, while returning from Hajj or Umra. Abdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) made (his camel) kneel down (i.e. halt at the stony ground of Dhu'l-Hulaifa) and prayed there, and so did Abdullah b. Umar (Allah be pleased with them). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3121. ------------------------------ Chapter : Staying at Dhu'l-Halaifa and observing of prayer there, while returning from Hajj or Umra. Nafi' reported that 'Abdullah b. Umar (Allah be pleased with them) used to halt his camel in the stony ground at Dhu'l-Hulaifa, where Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) used to make a halt (and pray). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3122. ------------------------------ Chapter : Staying at Dhu'l-Halaifa and observing of prayer there, while returning from Hajj or Umra. Nafi' reported that when 'Abdullah b. 'Umar returned from Hajj or 'Umra he made his camel kneel down (i.e. halted) in the stony ground of Dhu'l-Hulaifa where Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had made his camel halt. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3123. ------------------------------ Chapter : Staying at Dhu'l-Halaifa and observing of prayer there, while returning from Hajj or Umra. Salim (b. Abdullah b. 'Umar) reported on the authority of his father (Allah be pleased with them) that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) was visited by (someone, i.e. an angel) during the fag end of the night at Dhu'l-Hulaifa, and it was said to him: Verily it is a blessed stony-ground. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3124. ------------------------------ Chapter : Staying at Dhu'l-Halaifa and observing of prayer there, while returning from Hajj or Umra. Salim b. Abdullah b. Umar reported on the authority of his father (Allah be pleased with them) that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) came to Dhu'l-Hulaifa in the heart of the valley at the fag end of the night, and it was said to him: It is a blessed stony ground. Musa (one of the narrators) said: Salim made his came) halt at the mosque where 'Abdullah made his camel halt as seeking the place of stay of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). It is, in fact, situated at a lower plain than the mosque, which stands in the heart of the valley, and it is between it (the mosque) (and Qibla) that that place (where Allah's Apostle used to get down for rest and prayer) is situated. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3125. ------------------------------ Chapter : No polytheist is authorised to perform pilgrimage of the Ka'ba and circumambulate the House naked and the description of the great Hajj. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported: Abu Bakr Siddiq (Allah be pleased with him) sent me during Hajj before the Farewell Pilgrimage for which Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had appointed him an Amir, among a group of people whom he had ordered to make announcement to the people on the Day of Nahr: "After this year no polytheist may perform the Pilgrimage and no naked person may circumambulate the House." Ibn Shihab stated that Humaid b. Abd al-Rahman said that according to this narration of Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) the day of Hajj al-Akbar (Great Hajj) is this Day of Nahr (10th of Dhu'l-Hijja). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3126. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Hajj and Umra and the day of 'Arafa (the 9th of Dhu'l-Hijja). 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There is no day when God sets free more servants from Hell than the Day of 'Arafa. He draws near, then praises them to the angels, saying: What do these want? Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3127. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Hajj and Umra and the day of 'Arafa (the 9th of Dhu'l-Hijja). Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: An Umra is an expiation for the sins committed between it and the next, and Hajj which is accepted will receive no other reward than Paradise. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3128. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Hajj and Umra and the day of 'Arafa (the 9th of Dhu'l-Hijja). This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3129. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Hajj and Umra and the day of 'Arafa (the 9th of Dhu'l-Hijja). Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying. He who came to this House (Ka'ba) (with the intention of performing Pilgrimage), and neither spoke indecently nor did he act wickedly, would return (free from sin) as on the (very first day) his mother bore him. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3130. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Hajj and Umra and the day of 'Arafa (the 9th of Dhu'l-Hijja). This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Mainsur with the same chain of transmitters (and the words are): "He who performed Pilgrimage but neither spoke indecently nor acted wickedly." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3131. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of Hajj and Umra and the day of 'Arafa (the 9th of Dhu'l-Hijja). A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3132. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encamping of pilgrims in Mecca and Inheriting of (the property of their ancestors). Usama b. Zaid b. Haritha (Allah be pleased with him) said to Alla's Messenger (may peace be upon him): Will you stay in your house at Mecca (which you abandoned at the time of migration)? Thereupon he said: Has 'Aqil left for as any land or house? And 'Aqil and Talib became the Inheritors of Abu Talib's (property), and neither Ja'far nor 'Ali inherited anything from him, for both (Ja'far and 'Ali) were Muslims whereas 'Aqil and Talib were non-Muslims. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3133. ------------------------------ Chapter : Encamping of pilgrims in Mecca and Inheriting of (the property of their ancestors). Usama b. Zaid (Allah be pleased with him) said: Allah's Messenger, God willing, where will you stay tomorrow? And it was at the time of the Conquest (of Mecca). Thereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: Has 'Aqil left any accommodation for us? Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3134. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Muhajir is permitted to stay for three days in Mecca after Hajj and Umra and not more than this. Al-'Ali' b. al-Hadrami reported Allah's Messenger (may peace he upon as saying: For a Mahijir, it is only three (days') stay at Mecca, after completing (the Hajj or 'Umra) that is allowed, and it seemed as if he was saying that he should not (stay) beyond this (period). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3135. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Muhajir is permitted to stay for three days in Mecca after Hajj and Umra and not more than this. Al-'Ali,' b. al-Hadrami reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Muhijir should stay at Mecca after performing the rituals (of Hajj) but for three (days) only. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3136. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Muhajir is permitted to stay for three days in Mecca after Hajj and Umra and not more than this. Al-'Ala' b. al-Hadrami reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: It is only for three nights that a Muhajir should stay at Mecca after the completion of the rituals of Hajj. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3137. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Muhajir is permitted to stay for three days in Mecca after Hajj and Umra and not more than this. Al-"Ala' b. al-Hadrami reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The stay at Mecca after the completion of his rituals (of Hajj) is only for three days. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3138. ------------------------------ Chapter : The Muhajir is permitted to stay for three days in Mecca after Hajj and Umra and not more than this. Ibn Juraij narrated this hadith with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3139. ------------------------------ Chapter : The sacred territory of Mecca and its inviolability and the prohibition to do hunting in it and its suburbs and felling down of its trees and cutting its grass. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying on the Day of Victory over Mecca: There is no Hijra (emigration) but only Jihad and good intention; and when you are called to battle, then go forth. He also said on the Day of Victory over Mecca: Allah made this town sacred on the day He created the earth and the heavens; so it is -sacred by the sacredness conferred on it by Allah until the Day of Resurrection and fighting in it was not lawful to anyone before me, and it was made lawful for me only during an hour on one day, for it is sacred by the sacredness conferred on it by Allah until the Day of Resurrection. Its thorns are not to be cut, its game is not to be molested, and the things dropped are to be picked up only by one who makes a public announcement of it, and its fresh herbage is not to be cut. Abbas (Allah be pleased with him) said: Messenger of Allah, exception may be made in case of rush, for it is useful for their blacksmiths and for their houses. He (the Holy Prophet) conceding the suggestion of 'Abbas) said: Except rush. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3140. ------------------------------ Chapter : The sacred territory of Mecca and its inviolability and the prohibition to do hunting in it and its suburbs and felling down of its trees and cutting its grass. A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of Mansur, but he did not mention: "On that very day He created the heavens and the earth," and he (the narrator) substituted the word "fighting" (qital) for "killing" (qatal), and further said: "No one is to pick up the dropped thing except one who makes a public announcement of it." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3141. ------------------------------ Chapter : The sacred territory of Mecca and its inviolability and the prohibition to do hunting in it and its suburbs and felling down of its trees and cutting its grass. Abu Shuraih al-'Adawi reported that he said to Amr b. Sa'id when he was sending troops to Mecca: Let me tell you something. O Commander, which Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said on the day following, the Conquest which my ears heard and my heart has retained, and my eyes saw as he spoke it. He praised Allah and extolled Him and then said: Allah, not men, has made Mecca sacred; so it is not permissible for any person believing in Allah and the Last Day to shed blood in it, or lop a tree in it. If anyone seeks a concession on the basis of fighting of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), tell him that Allah permitted His Messenger, but not you, and He gave him permission only for an hour on one day, and its sacredness was restored on the very day like that of yesterday. Let him who is present convey the information to him who is absent. It was said to Abu Shuraih: What did Amr say to you? He said: I am better informed of that than you, Abu Shuraih, but the sacred territory does not grant protection to one who is disobedient, or one who runs away after shedding blood, or one who runs away after committing Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3142. ------------------------------ Chapter : The sacred territory of Mecca and its inviolability and the prohibition to do hunting in it and its suburbs and felling down of its trees and cutting its grass. Abu Huraira, (Allah be pleased with him) reported. When Allah, the Exalted and Majestic, granted Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) victory over Mecca, he stood before people and praised and extolled Allah and then said: Verily Allah held back the elephants from Mecca and gave the domination of it to His Messenger and believers, and it (this territory) was not violable to anyone before me and it was made violable to me for an hour of a day, and it shall not be violable to anyone after me. So neither molest the game, nor weed out thorns from it. And it is not lawful for anyone to pick up a thing dropped but one who makes public announcement of it. And it a relative of anyone is killed he is entitled to opt for one of two things. Either he should be paid blood-money or he can take life as (a just retribution). 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with him) said: Allah's Messenger, but Idhkhir (a kind of herbage), for we use it for our graves and for our houses, whereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: With the exception of Idhkhir. A person known as Abu Shah, one of the people of Yemen, stood up and said: Messenger of Allah, (kindly) write it for me. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said I Write it for Abu Shah. Walid said: I asked al-Auzai': What did his saying mean: "Write it for me, Messenger of Allah"? He said: This very address that he had heard from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3143. ------------------------------ Chapter : The sacred territory of Mecca and its inviolability and the prohibition to do hunting in it and its suburbs and felling down of its trees and cutting its grass. Abu Huraira(Allah be pleased with him)reported: The people of the Khuza'ah tribe killed a man of the tribe of Laith in the Year of Victory as a retaliation for one whom they had killed (whom the people of the tribe of Laith had killed). It was reported to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). He mounted his camel and delivered this address: Verily Allah, the Exalted and Majestic, held back the Elephants from Mecca, and gave its domination to His Messenger and believers. Behold, it was not violable for anyone before me and it will not be violable for anyone after me. Behold, it was made violable for me for an hour of a day; and at this very hour it has again been made inviolable (for me as well as for others). So its thorns are not to be cut, its trees are not to be lopped, and (no one is allowed to) pick up a thing dropped, but the one who makes an announcement of it. And one whose fellow is killed is allowed to opt between two alternatives: either he should receive blood-money or get the life of the (murderer) in return. He (the narrator said): A person from the Yemen, who was called Abu Shah, came to him and said: Messenger of Allah, write it down for me, whereupon he (Allah's Messenger) said: Write it down for Abu Shah. One of the persons from among the Quraish also said: Except Idhkhir, for we use it in our houses ant our graves. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Except Idhkhir. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3144. ------------------------------ Chapter : The sacred territory of Mecca and its inviolability and the prohibition to do hunting in it and its suburbs and felling down of its trees and cutting its grass. Jabir (Allah be pleased with him) reported: I heard Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) say: It is not permissible for any one of you to carry weapons in Mecca. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3145. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to enter Mecca without Ihram. Anas b. Malik (Allah be pleased with them) reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) entered Mecca in the Year of Victory with a helmet on his head; and when he took it off, a man came to him and said: Ibn Khatal is hanging on to the curtains of the Ka'ba, whereupon he said: Kill him. Malik (one of the narrators) attested this statement having been made. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3146. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to enter Mecca without Ihram. Jabir b. 'Abdullah al-Ansari (Allah be pleased with them) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) entered Mecca and Qutaiba (another narrator) stated that he entered Mecca in the Year of Victory, wearing a black turban, but not wearing the Ihram. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3147. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to enter Mecca without Ihram. Jabir b. Abdullah reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) entered on the day of Victory of Mecca wearing a black turban on his head. and she said: In case Allah cures me I will certainly go and observe prayer in Bait al-Maqdis. She recovered and so she made preparations to go out (to that place). She came to Maimuna, the wife of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and after greeting her she informed her about it, whereupon she said: Stay here and eat the provision (which you had made) and observe prayer In the mosque of the Messenger (may peace be upon him), for I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) say: Prayer in it is better than a thousand prayers observed in other mosques except the mosque of the Ka'ba. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3148. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to enter Mecca without Ihram. Amr b. Huraith reported on the authority of his father that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) addressed the people (on the day of the Victory of Mecca) with a black turban on his head. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3149. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to enter Mecca without Ihram. Ja'far b. 'Amr b. Huraith reported his father as saying: As if I am seeing Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) on the pulpit with a black turban on his head, and its two ends hanging between his shoulders. Abu Bakr (another narrator) did not make mention of: "Upon the pulpit". Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3150. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. 'Abdullah b. Zaid b. 'Asim (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Verily Ibrahim declared Mecca sacred and supplicated (for blessings to be showered) upon its inhabitants, and I declare Medina to be sacred as Ibrahim had declared Mecca to be sacred. I have supplicated (Allah for His blessings to be showered) in its sa' and its mudd (two standards of weight and measurement) twice as did Ibrahim for the inhabitants of Mecca. This hadith has been narrated through another chain of transmitters with a slight variation of words. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3151. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Rafi' b. Khadij reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Ibrahim declared Mecca as sacred and I declare sacred the area between its two stony grounds (lava lands by which he meant Medina). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3152. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Nafi' b. Jubair reported that Marwan b. al-Hakam (Allah be pleased with him) addressed people and made mention of Mecca and its inhabitants and its sacredness, but he made no mention of Medina, its inhabitants and its sacredness. Rafi' b. Khadij called to him and said: What is this that I hear you making mention of Mecca and its inhabitants and its sacredness, but you did not make mention of Medina and its inhabitants and its sacredness, while the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) has also declared sacred (the area) between its two lava lands (Medina)? And (we have record of this) with us written on Khaulani parchment. If you like, I can read it out to you. Thereupon Marwan became silent, and then Said: I too have heard some part of it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3153. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Jabir (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: Ibrahim declared Mecca as sacred; I declare Medina, that between the two mountains, as inviolable. No tree should be lopped and no game is to be molested. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3154. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Amir b. Sa'd reported on the authority of his father (Allah be pleased with him) that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: I have declared sacred the territory between the two lava plains of Medina, so its trees should not be cut down, or its game killed; and he also said: Medina is best for them if they knew. No one leaves it through dislike of it without Allah putting in it someone better than he in place of him; and no one will stay there in spite of its hardships and distress without my being an intercessor or witness on behalf of him on the Day of Resurrection. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3155. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. 'Amir b. Sa'd b. Abu Waqqas reported on the authority of his father (Allah be pleased with him) that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said, and then the (above-mentioned) hadith was narrated with this addition: "None should nurse ill-will towards the people of Medina, or Allah will melt him in fire like the melting of lead or the dissolution of salt in water. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3156. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. 'Amir b. Sa'd reported that Sa'd rode to his castle in al-'Aqiq and found a slave cutting down the trees, or beating off their leaves, so he stripped him off his belongings. When Sa'd returned, there came to him the masters of the slave and negotiated with him asking him to return to their slave or to them what he had taken from their slave, whereupon he said: God forbid that I should return anything which Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) has given me as spoil, and refused to return anything to them. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3157. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Anas b. Malik (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said to Abu Talha (Allah be pleased with him): Find for me a servant from amongst your boys to serve me. Abu Talha went out along with me and made me sit behind him. And I used to serve Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) whenever he got down from the camel. And in one hadith he said: He proceeded and when (the mountain of) Uhud was within sight, he said: This is the mountain which loves us and we love it. And as he came close to Medina he said: O Allah, I declare (the area) between the two mountains of it (Medina) sacred just as Ibrahim declared Mecca as sacred. O Allah, bless them (the people of Medina) in their mudd and sa'. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3158. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Anas b. Malik reported a hadith like this from Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) except with this variation that he said: "I declare sacred the area between its two lava mountains." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3159. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. 'Asim reported: I asked Anas b. Malik whether Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had declared Medina as sacred. He said: Yes. (the area) between so and so. He who made any innovation in it, and further said to me: It is something serious to make any innovation in it (and he who does it) there is upon him the curse of Allah, and that of the angels and of all the people, Allah will not accept from him on the Day of Resurrection either obligatory acts or the supererogatory acts. Ibn Anas said: Or he accommodates an innovator. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3160. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. 'Asim reported: I asked Anas (Allah be pleased with him) whether Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had declared Medina as sacred. He said: Yes, it is sacred, so its tree is not to be cut; and he who did that let the curse of Allah and that of the angels and of all people be upon him. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3161. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Anas b. Malik (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Allah bless them in their measurements, bless them in their sa's and bless them in their mudd. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3162. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Anas b. Malik (Allah he pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: O Allah, increase in Medina twice the blessings (Thou showered) on Mecca. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3163. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Ibrahim al-Taimi reported on the authority of his father: 'Ali b. Abi Talib (Allah be pleased with him) addressed us and said: He who thought that we have besides the Holy Qur'an anything else that we recite, he told a lie. And this document which is hanging by the sheath of the sword contains but the ages of the camels, and the nature of the wounds. He (Hadrat 'Ali) reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: Medina is sacred from 'Air to Thaur'; So if anyone makes an innovation or accommodates an innovator, the curse of Allah, the angels, and all persons will fall upon him, and Allah will not accept any obligatory or supererogatory act as recompense from them. And the protection granted by the Muslims is one and must be respected by the humblest of them. If anyone makes a false claim to paternity, or being a client of other than his own masters, there is upon him the curse of Allah, the angels, and all the people. Allah will not accept from him any recompense in the form of obligatory acts or supererogatory acts. The hadith transmitted on the authority of Abu Bakr and Zabair ends with (these words): The humblest among them should respect it; and what follows after it is not mentioned there, and in the hadith transmitted by them (these words are) not found: (The document was hanging) on the sheath of his sword. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3164. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of A'mash with the same chain of transmitters (but at the end) these words are added: "He who violated the covenant with a Muslim, there is upon him the curse of Allah, of angels and of all people. Neither an obligatory act nor a supererogatory act would be accepted from him as recompense on the Day of Resurrection; and in the hadith transmitted by two other narrators these words are not found: "He who claimed false paternity." And in the hadith transmitted by Waki' there is no mention of the Day of Resurrection. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3165. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. A hadith like this has been narrated with the same chain of transmitters by A'mash with a slight variation of words. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3166. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: Medina is a sacred territory, so he who made any innovation in it or gave protection to an innovator, there is upon him the curse of Allah, that of the angels and that of all the people. There would not be accepted on the Day of Resurrection either obligatory acts or supererogatory acts from him. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3167. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of A'mash with the same chain of transmitters, but no mention has been made of the Day of Resurrection. But this addition is made: "The protection granted by Muslims is one and must be respected by the humblest of them. And he who broke the covenant made by a Muslim, there is a curse of Allah, of his angels, and of the whole people upon him, and neither an obligatory act nor a supererogatory act would be accepted from him as recompense on the Day of Resurrection." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3168. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported: If I were to see deer grazing in Medina, I would have never molested them, for Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) has stated: There is between the two lava mountains a sacred territory. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3169. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) declared sacred the territory between two lava mountains of Medina. Abu Huraira said: If I were to find deer in the territory between the two mountains, I would not molest them, and he (the Holy Prophet) declared twelve miles of suburb around Medina as a prohibited pasture. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3170. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported that when the people saw the first fruit (of the season or of plantation) they brought it to Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him). When he received it he said: O Allah, bless us in our fruits; and bless us in our city; and bless us in our sa's and bless us in our mudd. O Allah, Ibrahim was Thy servant, Thy friend, and Thy apostle; and I am Thy servant and Thy apostle. He (Ibrahim) made supplication to Thee for (the showering of blessings upon) Mecca, and I am making supplication to Thee for Medina just as he made supplication to Thee for Mecca, and the like of it in addition. He would then call to him the youngest child and give him these fruits. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3171. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) was given the first fruit and he said: O Allah, shower blessings upon us in our city, and in our fruits, in our mudd and in our sa's, blessings upon blessings, and he would then give that to the youngest of the children present there. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3172. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Abu Sa'id Maula al-Mahri reported that they were hard pressed by the distress and hardship of Medina, and he come to AbU Sa'Id al-Khudri and said to him: I have a large family (to support) and we are enduring hardships; I have, therefore, made up my mind to take my family to some fertile land. Thereupon Abu Sa'id said: Don't do that, stick to Medina, for we have come out with Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him), and (I think that he also said) until we reached 'Usfan, and he (the Holy Prophet along with his Companions) stayed there for some nights. There the people said: By Allah, we are lying here idle, whereas our children are unprotected behind us, and we do not feel secure about them. This (apprehension of theirs) reached Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him), whereupon he said: What is this matter concerning you that has reached me? (I do not retain how he said it, whether he said like this:) By Him (in the name of Whom) I take oath, (or he said like this:) By Him in Whose Hand is my life, I made up my mind or if you like (I do not retain what word did he actually say), I should command my camel to proceed and not to let it halt until it comes to Medina and then said: Ibrahim declared Mecca as the sacred territory and it became sacred, and I declare Medina as the sacred territory-the area between the two mountains ('Air and Uhud). Thus no blood is to be shed within its (bounds) and no weapon is to be carried for fighting, and the leaves of the trees there should not be beaten off except for fodder. O Allah, bless us in our city; O Allah, bless us in our sil; O Allah, bless us in our mudd; O Allah, bless us in our sa; O Allah, bless us in our mudd. O Allah, bless us in our city. O Allah, bless with this blessing two more blessings. By Him in Whose Hand is my life, there is no ravine or mountain path of Medina which is not protected by two angels until you reach there. (He then said to the people:) Proceed, and we, therefore, proceeded and we came to Medina By Him (in Whose name) we take oath and (in Whose name) oath is taken (Hammad is in doubt about it), we had hardly put down our camel saddles on arriving at Medina that we were attacked by the people of the tribe of 'Abdullah b. Ghatafan but none dared to do it before. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3173. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Abu Sa'id al-Kbudri (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: O Allah, bless us in our sa' and mud and shower with its blessings two other blessings (multiply blessings showered upon it). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3174. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. A hadith like this has been narrated by Yabya b. Abu Kathir with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3175. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Abu Sa'id Maula al-Mahri reported that he came to Abu Sa'id al-Khudri during the nights (of the turmoil) of al-Barrah, and sought his advice about leaving Medina, and complained of the high prices prevailing therein and his large family, and informed him that he could not stand the hardships of Medina and its rugged surrounding. He said to him: Woe to you; I will not advise you to do it, for I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: No one will endure hardships of Medina without my being an intercessor or a witness on his behalf on the Day of Resurrection), if he is a Muslim. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3176. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Abd al-Rahman reported on the authority of his father Abu Sa'id (Allah be pleased with him) that he heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: I have declared sacred what is between the two lava grounds of Medina just as Ibrahim (peace be upon him) declared Mecca as sacred. He (the narrator) then said: Abu Sa'id caught hold of (Abu Bakr, another narrator, used the word "found") a bird in his hand and then released it from his hand and set it free. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3177. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Sahl b. Hunif reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) pointed with his hands towards Medina and said: That is a sacred territory and a place of safety. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3178. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: When we came to Medina, and it was an unhealthy, uncongenial place, Abu Bakr fell sick and Bilal also fell sick; and when Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) saw the illness of his Companions he said: O Allah, make Medina as congenial to us as you made Mecca congenial or more than that; make it conducive to health, and blees us in its sa' and in its mudd, and transfer its fever to al-juhfa. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3179. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. This hadith has been narrated by Hisham b. 'Urwa with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3180. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who patiently endures the hardships of it (of this city of Medina), I would be an intercessor or a withness on his behalf on the Day of Resurrection. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3181. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Yuhannis, the freed slave of Zubair, narrated that when he was sitting with Abdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with him) during the days of turmoil, his freed slave-girl came to him. After saluting him she said: Abu Abd al-Rahmin, I have decided to leave (Medina) for the time is hard for us, whereupon Abdullah said to her: Stay here, foolish lady, for I have heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: For one who shows endurance on the hardships and rigour of it (of Medina) I would be an intercessor or a witness on his behalf on the Day of Resurrection. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3182. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Abdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) said: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who patiently endured the hardships and rigours of (this city, i.e. Medina), I would be his witness and intercessor on the Day of Resurrection. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3183. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported the Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) as saying: For one among my Ummah who shows endurance against the hardships and rigours of Medina, I would be an intercessor or a witness on his behalf on the Day of Resurrection. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3184. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3185. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of Medina, Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) showered blessings upon it. Its sacredness and unlawfulness of hunting and lopping of trees and demarcation its precincts. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: None who shows endurance on the hardships of Medina... (the rest of the hadith is the same). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3186. ------------------------------ Chapter : The security of Medina against plague and Dajjal. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: There are at the approaches of Medina angels so that plague and the Dajjal shall not penetrate into it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3187. ------------------------------ Chapter : The security of Medina against plague and Dajjal. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Dajjal will come from the eastern side with the intention of attacking Medina until he will get down behind Uhud. Then the angels will turn his face towards Syria and there he will perish. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3188. ------------------------------ Chapter : Medina wipes out evil from it and its other names are Tabba and Taiba. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: A time will come for the people (of Medina) when a man will invite his cousin and any other near relation: Come (and settle) at (a place) where living is cheap, come to where there is plenty, but Medina will be better for them; would they know it! By Him in Whose Hand is my life, none amongst them would go out (of the city) with a dislike for it, but Allah would make his successor in it someone better than be. Behold. Medina is like furnace which eliminates from it the impurities. And the Last Hour will not come until Medina banishes its evils just as a furnace eliminates the impurities of iron. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3189. ------------------------------ Chapter : Medina wipes out evil from it and its other names are Tabba and Taiba. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) as saying: I have been commanded (to migrate) to a town (Medina) which would overpower other towns. They (the people) call it Yathrib; its correct name is (in fact) Medina. It eliminates (bad) people just as a furnace removes the alloy of iron. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3190. ------------------------------ Chapter : Medina wipes out evil from it and its other names are Tabba and Taiba. This hadith has been narrated by Yabya b. Sa'id with the same chain of transmitters (and the words are): "Just as a furnace removes impurity," but no mention is made of iron. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3191. ------------------------------ Chapter : Medina wipes out evil from it and its other names are Tabba and Taiba. Jabir b. Abdullah (Allah be pleased with them) reported that a desert Arab swore allegiance to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). He suffered frozen a severe fever in Medina (and) so he came to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) saying: Muhammad, cancel my oath of allegiance, but Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) refused it. He again came and said: Cancel my oath of allegiance, but he (the Holy Prophet) refused it. He again came to him and said: Cancel my oath of allegiance, but he refused. The desert Arab, however, went away (cancelling the allegiance himself); thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Medina is like a furnace which drives away its impurity and purifies what is good. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3192. ------------------------------ Chapter : Medina wipes out evil from it and its other names are Tabba and Taiba. Zaid b. Thabit reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: It is Taiba, thereby meaning Medina. It drives away impurity just as fire removes the impurity of silver. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3193. ------------------------------ Chapter : Medina wipes out evil from it and its other names are Tabba and Taiba. Jabir b. Samura (Allah be pleased with him) reported that he heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) say: Allah named Medina as Tabba. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3194. ------------------------------ Chapter : Allah will punish those who intend to do any harm to the citizens of Medina. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Abu'I-Qasim (Muhammad, may peace be upon him) said: He who intends to do harm to the people of this city (that is, Medina). Allah would efface him as salt is dissolved in water. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3195. ------------------------------ Chapter : Allah will punish those who intend to do any harm to the citizens of Medina. Abu Huraira reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who intends to do harm to its people (he meant Medina), Allah would efface him as salt is dissolved in water. Ibn Hatim (one of the narrators) substituted the word "harm" for "mischief". Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3196. ------------------------------ Chapter : Allah will punish those who intend to do any harm to the citizens of Medina. This hadith is narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira by another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3197. ------------------------------ Chapter : Allah will punish those who intend to do any harm to the citizens of Medina. Sa'd b. Abu Waqqas reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: He who intends to do harm to the people of Medina, Allah would efface him just as water dissolves salt. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3198. ------------------------------ Chapter : Allah will punish those who intend to do any harm to the citizens of Medina. Sa'd b. Malik heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) saying like this except (this variation) that he said: "Sudden attack or harm." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3199. ------------------------------ Chapter : Allah will punish those who intend to do any harm to the citizens of Medina. Abu Huraira and Sa'd reported Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) as saying: O Allah, bless the people of Medina in their mudd, the rest of the hadith being the same, and in It (this is also mentioned): "He who intends to do harm to its people, Allah would efface him just as salt it dissolved in water." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3200. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to stay in Medina when the towns will be conquered. Sufyan b. Abd Zuhair reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Syria will be conquered and some people will go out of Medina along with their families driving their camels and Medina is better for them if they were to know it. Then Yemen will be conquered and some people will go out of Medina along with their families driving their camels, and Medina is better for them if they were to know it. Then Iraq will be conquered and some people will go out of it along with their families driving their camels, and Medina is better for them if they were to know it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3201. ------------------------------ Chapter : Exhortation to stay in Medina when the towns will be conquered. Sufyan b. Abu Zuhair heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) say: Yemen will be conquered and some people will go away (to that country) driving their camels and carrying their families on them and those who are under their authority, while Medina is better for them if they were to know it. Then Syria will be conquered and some people will go away driving their camels along with them and carrying their families with them and those who are under their authority, while Medina is better for them if they were to know it. Then Iraq will be conquered and some people will go away (to that country) driving their camels and carrying their families with them and those who are under their authority, while Medina is better for them if they were to know it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3202. ------------------------------ Chapter : When people will abandon Medina. Salid b. Musayyib heard Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) say that 'Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said about Medina: Its inhabitants will abandon it, whereas it is good for them and it will become the haunt of beasts and birds. (Imam Muslim said that Abu Safwan, one of the narrators whose name was 'Abdullah b. 'Abd al-Malik, was an orphan and Ibn Juraij took him under his care for ten years.) Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3203. ------------------------------ Chapter : When people will abandon Medina. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) say: They (the residents of) Medina will abandon Medina whereas it is good for them and it will be haunted by beasts and birds, and two shepherds will come out from Muzainah intending (to go) towards Medina and tending their herd, and will find nothing but wilderness there until when they will reach the mountain path of Wada, they will fall down on their faces. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3204. ------------------------------ Chapter : Between the grave (of the Holy Prophet) and the pulpit there is a garden from the gardens of paradise. AbduUah b. Zaid al-Mazini (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: That which is between my house" and my pulpit is a garden from the gardens of Paradise. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3205. ------------------------------ Chapter : Between the grave (of the Holy Prophet) and the pulpit there is a garden from the gardens of paradise. Abdullah b. Zaid al-Ansari heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: That which exists between my pulpit and my house is a garden from the gardens of Paradise. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3206. ------------------------------ Chapter : Between the grave (of the Holy Prophet) and the pulpit there is a garden from the gardens of paradise. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: That which exists between my house and my pulpit is a garden from the gardens of Paradise, and my pulpit is upon my cistern. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3207. ------------------------------ Chapter : Uhud is a mountain: it loves us and we love it. Abu Humaid (Allah be pleased with him) reported: We went out along with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) in the expedition of Tabuk, and Humaid further related: We proceeded until we reached the valley of Qura; and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: I am going forth, so he who among you wants to move fast with me may do so; and he who likes to go slowly may do so. We proceeded until Medina wag within our sight and he said: This is Tibba (another name of Medina); this is Ubud, the mountain which loves us and we love it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3208. ------------------------------ Chapter : Uhud is a mountain: it loves us and we love it. Anas b. Malik (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) as saying: Ohud is a mountain which loves us and which we love. This hadith is narrated by Anas b. Malik (Allah be pleased with him) with another chain of transmitters (and the words are): "Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) cast a glance at Ubud and said: Ubud is a mountain which loves us and we love it." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3209. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of praying in the two mosques, at Mecca and Medina. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) narrated It directly from Allah's Apostle'(may peace be upon him) having said this: A prayer in my mosque is a thousand times more excellent than a prayer in any other mosque, except Masjid al-Haram (Mosque of the Ka'ba). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3210. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of praying in the two mosques, at Mecca and Medina. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Prayer in my mosque is more excellent than a thousand prayers observed in other mosques except the Masjid al-Haram. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3211. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of praying in the two mosques, at Mecca and Medina. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported: Prayer in the mosque of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) is more excellent than a thousand prayers in other mosques except the Masjid al-Haram, for Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) is the last of the Apostles, and his mosque is the last of the mosques. Abu Salama and Abu Abdullah (two of the narrators in this chain of narrations said: We had no doubt that what Abu Haraira (Allah be pleased with him) had said was from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), and so we did not like to get an attestation from Abu Huraira about this hadith until Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) died. We discussed it (the issue of getting attestation from Abu Huraira) amongst ourselves and blamed one another as to why we did not talk about it to Abu Huraira regarding it so that he could attribute its transmission to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) in case he had heard It from him. While we were discussing it as we sat with 'Abdullah b. Ibrahim b. Qariz; we made a mention of this hadith, and our omission (in getting its attestation) about its direct transmission by Abu Huraira from him (the Holy Prophet); thereupon Abdullah b. Ibrahim said to us: I bear witness to the fact that I heard Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) say that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: I am the last of the Apostles and my mosque is the last of the mosques. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3212. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of praying in the two mosques, at Mecca and Medina. Yahya b. Sa'id (Allah be pleased with him) reported: I said to Abu Salih: Did you hear Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) making a mention of the excellence of prayer in the mosque of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him)? He said: No (I did not hear directly from Abu Huraira), but I heard Abdullah b. Ibrahim b. Qariz; say that' he had heard from Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) that Allah's Messenger(may peace be upon him) had said: Prayer in this mosque of mine is better than a thousand prayers or is like one thousand prayers observed in other mosques besides It, except that it be in al-Masjid al-Haram. This hadith has been narrated by Yabya b. Sa'id with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3213. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of praying in the two mosques, at Mecca and Medina. Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: Prayer in this mosque of mine is better than a thousand prayers (observed in other mosque.) besides it, except that of Masjid al-Haram. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3214. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of praying in the two mosques, at Mecca and Medina. A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of Ubaidullah with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3215. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of praying in the two mosques, at Mecca and Medina. Ibn 'Umar reported: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) saying like this. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3216. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of praying in the two mosques, at Mecca and Medina. Ibn Umar narrated from Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) a hadith like this. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3217. ------------------------------ Chapter : The merit of praying in the two mosques, at Mecca and Medina. Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported that a woman fell ill and she said: In case Allah cures me I will certainly go and observe prayer in Bait al-Maqdis. She recovered and so she made preparations to go out (to that place). She came to Maimuna, the wife of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and after greeting her she informed her about it, whereupon she said: Stay here and eat the provision (which you had made) and observe prayer In the mosque of the Messenger (may peace be upon him), for I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) say: Prayer In it is better than a thousand prayers observed in other mosques except the mosque of the Ka'ba. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3218. ------------------------------ Chapter : Do not undertake journey (purely for visit to the sacred places) but to three mosques. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported it directly from Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) that he said: Do not undertake journey but to three mosques: this mosque of mine, the Mosque of al-Haram and the Mosque of Aqsa (Bait al-Maqdis). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3219. ------------------------------ Chapter : Do not undertake journey (purely for visit to the sacred places) but to three mosques. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Zuhri (but with this change of words) that he (Allah's Apostle) said: "Undertake journey to three mosques." Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3220. ------------------------------ Chapter : Do not undertake journey (purely for visit to the sacred places) but to three mosques. Abu Haraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) as saying: One should undertake journey to three mosques: the mosque of the Ka'ba, my mosque, and the mosque of Elia (Bait al-Maqdis). Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3221. ------------------------------ Chapter : The mosque founded on piety in the mosque of the Apostle (may peace be upon him) at Medina. Abu Salama b. Abd al-Rabman reported: 'Abd al-Rabman b. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri (Allah be pleased with him) happened to pass by me and I said to him. How did you hear your father making mention of the mosque founded on Piety? He said: My father said: I went to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as he was in the house of one of his wives, and said: Messenger of Allah, which of the two mosques is founded on piety? Thereupon he took a handful of pebbles and threw them on the ground and then said: This is the very mosque of yours (mosque at Medina). He (the narrator) said: I bear witness that I heard your father making mention of it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3222. ------------------------------ Chapter : The mosque founded on piety in the mosque of the Apostle (may peace be upon him) at Medina. Abu Sa'id reported from Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) a hadith like this, but in the chain of transmitters no mention was made of Abd al-Rahman b. Abu Sa'id. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3223. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of the mosque of Quba; and excellence of prayer in it. Ibn Umar reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) visited (the mosque) at Quba' riding and on foot. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3224. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of the mosque of Quba; and excellence of prayer in it. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came to the mosque at Quba' riding and on foot, and he observed two rak'ahs of (Nafl prayer) in it. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3225. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of the mosque of Quba; and excellence of prayer in it. Ibn 'Umar reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came to Quba' riding as well as on foot. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3226. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of the mosque of Quba; and excellence of prayer in it. This hadith has been reported on the authority of Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with them) with another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3227. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of the mosque of Quba; and excellence of prayer in it. Abdullah b. Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) used to come to Quba' riding and on foot. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3228. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of the mosque of Quba; and excellence of prayer in it. Ibn 'Umar had narrated this hadith through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3229. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of the mosque of Quba; and excellence of prayer in it. Ibn Umar used to come to Quba' on every Saturday and he said: I saw Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) coming (to this place) on every Saturday. Muslim Book 007, Hadith Number 3230. ------------------------------ Chapter : Eminence of the mosque of Quba; and excellence of prayer in it. 'Abdullah b. 'Umar reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) used to come to Quba', i.e. (he came) on every Saturday, and he used to come riding or on foot. Ibn Dinar (another narrator) said that Ibn Umar used to do like this. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Ibn Dinar, but he made no mention of: "Every Saturday." Total Hadiths : 584. Generated By : The Hadith Software Version 1.0 Date : 05-03-2009. ****************************************************************** * NOTE!! THERE ARE VARIOUS WEB SITES (I.E. WWW.HADITHONLINE.COM) * * THAT CAN BE USED TO VALIDATE THE AUTHENTICITY OF EACH HADITHS * * GENERATED OR VIEWED IN THIS SOFTWARE. PLEASE REFER TO THEM IF * * YOU HAVE ANY QUESTIONS OR DOUBTS. - Islamasoft Solutions. (UK) * ****************************************************************** Islamasoft Solutions. (www.islamasoft.co.uk) The Hadith Software : Shahi Muslim. Muslim Book 8. Marriage. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3231. ------------------------------ Chapter : One who can support a wife should marry. 'Alqama reported: While I was walking with 'Abdullah at Mina, 'Uthman happened to meet him. He stopped there and began to talk with him. Uthman said to him: Abu 'Abd al-Rahman, should we not marry you to a young girl who may recall to you some of the past of your bygone days; thereupon he said: If you say so, Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: O young men, those among you who can support a wife should marry, for it restrains eyes from casting (evil glances) and preserves one from immorality; but those who cannot should devote themselves to fasting for it is a means of controlling sexual desire. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3232. ------------------------------ Chapter : One who can support a wife should marry. 'Alqama reported: While I was going along with 'Abdullah b. Ma'sud (Allah he pleased with him) in Mina, 'Uthman b. 'Affan (Allah be pleased with him) happened to meet him and said: Come here, Abu 'Abd al-Rahman (kunya of Abdullah b. Mas'ud), and he isolated him (from me), and when 'Abdullah (b. Mas'ud) saw that there was no need (for this privacy), he said to me: 'Alqama, come on, and so I went there. (Then) 'Uthman said to him: Abu Abd al-Rahman, should we not marry you to a virgin girl that your past may be recalled to your mind? 'Abdullah said: If you say so, the rest of the hadith is the same as narrated above. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3233. ------------------------------ Chapter : One who can support a wife should marry. Abdullah (b. Mas'ud) (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said to us: O young men, those among you who can support a wife should marry, for it restrains eyes (from casting evil glances) and preserves one from immorality; but he who cannot afford It should observe fast for it is a means of controlling the sexual desire. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3234. ------------------------------ Chapter : One who can support a wife should marry. Abu al-Rahman b. Yazid said: I and my uncle 'Alqama and al-Aswad went to 'Abdullah b. Mas'ud (Allah be pleased with him). He (the narrator further) said: I was at that time young, and he narrated a hadith which it seemed he narrated for me that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said like one transmitted by Mu'awiya, and further added: I lost no time in marrying. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3235. ------------------------------ Chapter : One who can support a wife should marry. 'Abd al-Rahman b. Yazid reported on the authority of Abdullah: We went to him, and I was the youngest of all (of us), but he did not mention: "I lost no time in marrying." Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3236. ------------------------------ Chapter : One who can support a wife should marry. Anas (Allah be pleased with him) reported that some of the Companions of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) asked his (the Prophet's) wives about the acts that he performed in private. Someone among them (among his Companions) said: I will not marry women; someone among them said: I will not eat meat; and someone among them said: I will not lie down in bed. He (the Holy Prophet) praised Allah and glorified Him, and said: What has happened to these people that they say so and so, whereas I observe prayer and sleep too; I observe fast and suspend observing them; I marry women also? And he who turns away from my Sunnah, he has no relation with Me Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3237. ------------------------------ Chapter : One who can support a wife should marry. Sa'd b. Abi Waqqas (Allah be pleased with him) reported: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) rejected (the idea) of Uthman b. Muz' un-living in celibacy (saying): And if he (the Holy Prophet) had given me permission We would have got ourselves castrated. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3238. ------------------------------ Chapter : One who can support a wife should marry. Sa'id b. al-Musayyib reported: I heard Sa'd (b. Abi Waqqas) saying that the idea of 'Uthman b. Maz'un for living in celibacy was rejected (by the Holy Prophet), and if he had been given permission they would have got themselves castrated. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3239. ------------------------------ Chapter : One who can support a wife should marry. Sa'id b. al Musayyib heard Sa'd b. Abi Waqqas (Allah be pleased with him) saying that Uthman b. Maz'un decided to live in celibacy, but Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) forbade him to do so, and if he had permitted him, we would have got ourselves castrated. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3240. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who sees a woman, and his heart is affected, should come to his wife, and should have intercourse with her. Jabir reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) saw a woman, and so he came to his wife, Zainab, as she was tanning a leather and had sexual intercourse with her. He then went to his Companions and told them: The woman advances and retires in the shape of a devil, so when one of you sees a woman, he should come to his wife, for that will repel what he feels in his heart. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3241. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who sees a woman, and his heart is affected, should come to his wife, and should have intercourse with her. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) saw a woman; and the rest of the hadith was narrated but (with this exception) that he said he came to his wife Zainab, who was tanning a (piece of) leather, and he made no mention of: "She retires in the shape of satan." Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3242. ------------------------------ Chapter : He who sees a woman, and his heart is affected, should come to his wife, and should have intercourse with her. Jabir heard Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) say: When a woman fascinates any one of you and she captivates his heart, he should go to his wife and have an intercourse with her, for it would repel what he feels. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3243. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. Abdullah (b. Mas'ud) reported: We were on an expedition with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and we had no women with us.We said: Should we not have ourselves castrated? He (the Holy Prophet) forbade us to do so He then granted us permission that we should contract temporary marriage for a stipulated period giving her a garment, and 'Abdullah then recited this verse: "Those who believe do not make unlawful the good things which Allah has made lawful for you, and do not transgress. Allah does not like trangressers" (al-Qur'an, v. 87). Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3244. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Jarir with the same chain of transmitters and he also recited this (above-mentioned verse) to us, but he did not say that 'Abdullah recited it. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3245. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Isma'il with the same chain of transmitters (and the words are): "We were young, so we said: Allah's Messenger, should we not have ourselves castrated? But he (the narrator) did not say; We were on an expedition." Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3246. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. Jabir b. 'Abdullah and Salama b. al-Akwa' said: There came to us the proclaimer of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and said: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) has granted you permission to benefit yourselves, i.e. to contract temporary marriage with women. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3247. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. Salama b. al-Akwa' and Jabir b. Abdullah reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came to us and permitted us to contract temporary marriage. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3248. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. Ibn Uraij reported: 'Ati' reported that Jibir b. Abdullah came to perform 'Umra, and we came to his abode, and the people asked him about different things, and then they made a mention of temporary marriage, whereupon he said: Yes, we had been benefiting ourselves by this temporary marriage during the lifetime of the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) and during the time of Abi! Bakr and 'Umar. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3249. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. Jabir b. 'Abdullah reported: We contracted temporary marriage giving a handful of (tales or flour as a dower during the lifetime of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and during the time of Abu Bakr until 'Umar forbade it in the case of 'Amr b. Huraith. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3250. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. Abu Nadra reported: While I was in the company of Jabir b. Abdullah, a person came to him and said that Ibn 'Abbas and Ibn Zubair differed on the two types of Mut'as (Tamattu' of Hajj 1846 and Tamattu' with women), whereupon Jabir said: We used to do these two during the lifetime of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). Umar then forbade us to do them, and so we did not revert to them. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3251. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. Iyas b. Salama reported on the authority of his father that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) gave sanction for contracting temporary marriage for three nights in the year of Autas 1847 and then forbade it. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3252. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. Sabra Juhanni reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) permitted temporary marriage for us. So I and another person went out and saw a woman of Bana 'Amir, who was like a young long-necked she-camel. We presented ourselves to her (for contracting temporary marriage), whereupon she said: What dower would you give me? I said: My cloak. And my companion also said: My cloak. And the cloak of-my companion was superior to my cloak, but I was younger than he. So when she looked at the cloak of my companion she liked it, and when she cast a glance at me I looked more attractive to her. She then said: Well, you and your cloak are sufficient for me. I remained with her for three nights, and then Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: He who has any such woman with whom he had contracted temporary marriage, he should let her off. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3253. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. Rabi' b. Sabra reported that his father went on an expedition with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) during the Victory of Mecca, and we stayed there for fifteen days (i.e. for thirteen full days and a day and a night), and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) permitted us to contract temporary marriage with women. So I and another person of my tribe went out, and I was more handsome than he, whereas he was almost ugly. Each one of us had a cloaks, My cloak was worn out, whereas the cloak of my cousin was quite new. As we reached the lower or the upper side of Mecca, we came across a young woman like a young smart long-necked she-camel. We said: Is it possible that one of us may contract temporary marriage with you? She said: What will you give me as a dower? Each one of us spread his cloak. She began to cast a glance on both the persons. My companion also looked at her when she was casting a glance at her side and he said: This cloak of his is worn out, whereas my cloak is quite new. She, however, said twice or thrice: There is no harm in (accepting) this cloak (the old one). So I contracted temporary marriage with her, and I did not come out (of this) until Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) declared it forbidden. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3254. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. Rabi' b. S'abra al-jahanni reported on the authority of his father. We went with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) to Mecca during the year of Victory and he narrated like this a hadith transmitted by Bishr (the previous one) but with this addition: "She said: Can it be possible?" And it is also mentioned in it: "He said: The cloak of this (man) is old and worn out." Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3255. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. Sabra al-Juhanni reported on the authority of his father that while he was with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) he said: O people, I had permitted you to contract temporary marriage with women, but Allah has forbidden it (now) until the Day of Resurrection. So he who has any (woman with this type of marriage contract) he should let her off, and do not take back anything you have given to then (as dower). Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3256. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of 'Abd al-'Aziz b 'Umar with the same chain of transmitters, and he said: I saw Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) standing between the pillar and the gate (of the Ka'ba) and he was relating a hadith as narrated by Ibn Numair. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3257. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. 'Abd al-Malik b. Rabi' b. Sabraal-Juhanni reported on the authority of his father who narrated it on the authority of his father (i.e. 'Abd al-Malik's grandfather, Sabura al-juhanni): Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) permitted us to contract temporary marriage in the Year of Victory, as we entered Mecca, and we did come out of it but he forbade us to do it. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3258. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. Sabra b. Ma'bad reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) permitted his Companions to contract temporary marriage with women in the Year of Victory. So I and a friend of mine from Banu Sulaim went out, until we found a young woman of Banu Amir who was like a young she-camel having a long neck. We made proposal to her for contracting temporary marriage with us, and presented to her our cloaks (as dower). She began to look and found me more handsome than my friend, but found the cloak of my friend more beautiful than my cloak. She thought in her wind for a while, but then preferred me to my friend. So I remained with her for three (nights), and then Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) commanded us to part with them (such women). Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3259. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. Rabi' b. Sabra reported on the authority of his father that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) prohibited the contracting of temporary marriage. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3260. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. Rabi' b. Sabra reported on the authority of his father that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) forbade on the Day of Victory to contract temporary marriage with women. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Rabi' b. Sabra that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) forbade to contract temporary marriage with women at the time of Victory, and that his father had contracted the marriage for two red cloaks. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3261. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. 'Urwa b. Zabair reported that 'Abdullah b. Zubair (Allah be pleased with him) stood up (and delivered an address) in Mecca saying: Allah has made blind the hearts of some people as He has deprived them of eyesight that they give religious verdict in favour of temporary marriage, while he was alluding to a person (Ibn 'Abbas). Ibn Abbas called him and said: You are an uncouth person, devoid of sense. By my life, Mut'a was practised during the lifetime of the leader of the pious (he meant Allah's Messenger, may peace be upon him), and Ibn Zubair said to him: just do it yourselves, and by Allah, if you do that I will stone you with your stones. Ibn Shihab said, Khalid b. Muhajir b. Saifullah informed me: While I was sitting in the company of a person, a person came to him and he asked for a religious verdict about Mut'a and he permitted him to do it. Ibn Abu 'Amrah al-Ansari (Allah be pleased with him) said to him: Be gentle. It was permitted in the early days of Islam, (for one) who was driven to it under the stress of necessity just as (the eating of) carrion and the blood and flesh of swine and then Allah intensified (the commands of) His religion and prohibited it (altogether). Ibn Shihab reported: Rabi' b. Sabra told me that his father (Sabra) said: I contracted temporary marriage with a woman of Banu 'Amir for two cloaks during the lifetime of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him); then he forbade us to do Mut'a. Ibn Shihab said: I heard Rabi' b. Sabra narrating it to Umar b. 'Abd al-'Aziz and I was sitting there. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3262. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. Sabra al-Juhanni reported on the authority of his father: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) prohibited the contracting of temporary marriage and said: Behold, it is forbidden from this very day of yours to the Day of Resurrection, and he who has given something (as a dower) should not take it back. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3263. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. 'Ali b. AbiTalib reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) prohibited on the Day of Khaibar the contracting of temporary marriage with women and the eating of the flesh of domestic asses. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3264. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. Malik narrated this hadith on the authority of the same chain of transmitters that 'Ali b. Abil Talib said to a person: You are a person led astray; Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) forbade us (to do Mut'a), as is stated In the hadith transmitted on the authority of Yahya b. Malik. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3265. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. Muhammad b. 'Ali narrated on the authority of his father 'Ali that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) on the Day of Khaibar prohibited for ever the contracting of temporary marriage and eating of the flesh of the domestic asses. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3266. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. 'Ali (Allah be pleased with him) heard that Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) gave some relaxation in connection with the contracting of temporary marriage, whereupon he said: Don't be hasty (in your religious verdict), Ibn 'Abbas, for Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) on the Day of Khaibar prohibited for ever the doing of it-And eating of the flesh of domestic asses. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3267. ------------------------------ Chapter : Temporary marriage and its prohibition for all times to come. 'Ali (Allah be pleased with him) said to Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) on the Day of Khaibar forbade forever the contracting of temporary marriage and the eating of the flesh of domestic asses. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3268. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to combine a woman and her father's sister or a woman and her mother's sister together in marriage. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace upon him) having said this: One should not combine a woman and her father's sister, nor a woman and her mother's sister in marriage. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3269. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to combine a woman and her father's sister or a woman and her mother's sister together in marriage. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) forbade combining of four women in marriage: a woman with her father's sister, and a woman with her mother's sister. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3270. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to combine a woman and her father's sister or a woman and her mother's sister together in marriage. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported: I heard Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) say: Father's sister should not be combined with her brother's daughter, nor the daughter of a sister with her mother's sister. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3271. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to combine a woman and her father's sister or a woman and her mother's sister together in marriage. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) forbade a person to combine in marriage a woman and her father's sister, and a woman and her mother's sister. Ibn Shihab said: So we regarded the paternal aunt of her (wife's) father and the maternal aunt of her (wife's) father at the same level. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3272. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to combine a woman and her father's sister or a woman and her mother's sister together in marriage. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: One should not combine in marriage a woman with her father's sister, or her mother's sister. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3273. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to combine a woman and her father's sister or a woman and her mother's sister together in marriage. A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3274. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to combine a woman and her father's sister or a woman and her mother's sister together in marriage. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: A man must not make proposal of marriage to a woman when his brother has done so already. And he must not offer a price for a thing for which his brother had already offered a price; and a woman must not be combined in marriage with her father's sister, nor with her mother's sister, and a woman must not ask to have her sister divorced in order to deprive her of what belongs to her, but she must marry, because she will have what Allah has decreed for her. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3275. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to combine a woman and her father's sister or a woman and her mother's sister together in marriage. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) forbade the combining of a woman in marriage with her father's sister, or with her mother's sister, or that a woman should ask for divorce for her sister in order to deprive her of what belongs to her. Allah, the Exalted and Majestic, is her sustainer too. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3276. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to combine a woman and her father's sister or a woman and her mother's sister together in marriage. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) forbade to combine a woman and her father's sister, and a woman and her mother's sister. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3277. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to combine a woman and her father's sister or a woman and her mother's sister together in marriage. A hadith like this has been transmitted on the authority of Amr b. Dinar. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3278. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mubrim (one who is in the state of Ihram) is forbidden to marry and the disapproval of giving the proposal (in this state). Nubaih b. Wahb reported that 'Umar b. Ubaidullah intended to marry Talha b. 'Umar with the daughter of Shaiba b. Jubair; so he sent a messenger to Aban b. Uthman to attend the marriage, and he was at that time the Amir of Hajj. Aban said: I heard 'Uthman b. 'Affan say that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had stated: A Muhrim must neither marry himself, nor arrange the marriage of another one, nor should he make the proposal of marriage. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3279. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mubrim (one who is in the state of Ihram) is forbidden to marry and the disapproval of giving the proposal (in this state). Nubaih b. Wahb reported: Umar b. Ubaidullah b. Ma'mar sent me to Aban b. Uthman as he wanted to make the proposal of the marriage of his son with the daughter of Shaiba b. Uthman.He (Aban b. Uthman) was at that time (busy) in the season of Pilgrimage. He said: I deem him to be a man of the desert (for it is a common thing) that a Muhrim can neither marry, nor is he allowed to be married to anyone. It is Uthman (b. Affan) who reported this to us from Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3280. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mubrim (one who is in the state of Ihram) is forbidden to marry and the disapproval of giving the proposal (in this state). Uthman b. 'Affan reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had said: A Muhrim should neither marry himself, nor should he be got married to anyone, nor should he make the proposal of marriage. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3281. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mubrim (one who is in the state of Ihram) is forbidden to marry and the disapproval of giving the proposal (in this state). 'Uthman (b. 'Affan) reported it directly from Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) that he said: A Muhrim should neither marry (in that state) nor make the proposal of marriage. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3282. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mubrim (one who is in the state of Ihram) is forbidden to marry and the disapproval of giving the proposal (in this state). Nabaih b. Wahb reported that Umar b. 'Ubaidullah b. Ma'mar intended to marry his son Talha with the daughter of Shaiba b. Jubair during the Pilgrimage. Aban b. Uthman was at that time the Amir of Pilgrims. So he ('Umar b. Ubaidullah) sent someone (as a messenger) to Aban saying: I intend to marry Talha b. 'Umar and I earnestly desire you to be present there (in this ceremony of marriage). Aban said to him: I find you a block-headed 'Iraqi. I heard 'Uthman b. 'Affan say that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: A Muhrim should not marry. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3283. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mubrim (one who is in the state of Ihram) is forbidden to marry and the disapproval of giving the proposal (in this state). Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) married Maimulna in the state of Ihram. Ibn Numair made this addition: "I narrated it to Zuhri and he said: Yazid b. al-Asamm (Allah be pleased with him)told me that he (the Holy Prophet) married her when he was not a muhrim." Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3284. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mubrim (one who is in the state of Ihram) is forbidden to marry and the disapproval of giving the proposal (in this state). Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported: Allah's Messenger. (may peace be upon him) married Maimuna while he was a Muhrim. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3285. ------------------------------ Chapter : Mubrim (one who is in the state of Ihram) is forbidden to marry and the disapproval of giving the proposal (in this state). Yazid b. al-Asamm reported: Maimuna daughter of al-Harith narrated to me that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) married her and he was not in the state of Ihram. And she (Maimuna) was my mother's sister and that of Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with them). Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3286. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prohibition of one's making the proposal of marriage when it has already been made by one's brother until he permits or gives her up. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as having said this: None amongst you should outbid another in a transaction, nor should he make proposals of marriage upon the proposal made by someone else. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3287. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prohibition of one's making the proposal of marriage when it has already been made by one's brother until he permits or gives her up. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as having said this: A person should not enter into a transaction when his brother (had already entered into but not finalised), and he should not make proposal of marriage upon the proposal already made by his brother, until he permits it. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3288. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prohibition of one's making the proposal of marriage when it has already been made by one's brother until he permits or gives her up. A hadith like this has been reported on the authority of Nafi' with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3289. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prohibition of one's making the proposal of marriage when it has already been made by one's brother until he permits or gives her up. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as having forbidden a dweller of the town selling the merchandise of a villager or outbidding in a sale (in order that another might fall into a snare), or a person making the proposal of marriage when his brother has already made such a proposal, or entering into a transaction when his brother has already entered; and a woman asking the divorce of her sister in order to deprive her of what belongs to her. 'Amr made this addition: "The person should not purchase in opposition to his brother." Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3290. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prohibition of one's making the proposal of marriage when it has already been made by one's brother until he permits or gives her up. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as having said this: Do not outbid in a sale in order to ensnare. No man should enter into a transaction in which his brother has already entered, and no dweller of the town should sell on behalf of the villager. And no man should make a proposal of marriage which his brother has already made and no woman should ask for the divorce of another (co-wife) in order to deprive her of what belongs to her. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3291. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prohibition of one's making the proposal of marriage when it has already been made by one's brother until he permits or gives her up. A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of Zuhri with the same chain of transmitters but with a slight alteration. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3292. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prohibition of one's making the proposal of marriage when it has already been made by one's brother until he permits or gives her up. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The Muslim should not purchase in opposition to his brother, and he should not make the proposal of marriage on the proposal already made by his brother. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3293. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prohibition of one's making the proposal of marriage when it has already been made by one's brother until he permits or gives her up. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3294. ------------------------------ Chapter : Prohibition of one's making the proposal of marriage when it has already been made by one's brother until he permits or gives her up. 'Uqba b. 'Amir said on the pulpit that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: A believer is the brother of a believer, so it is not lawful for a believer to outbid his brother, and he should not propose an engagement when his brother has thus proposed until he gives it up. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3295. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is prohibited to contract shighar marriage. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with them) said that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) prohibited Shighar which means that a man gives his daughter in marriage on the condition that the other gives his daughter to him in marriage without any dower being paid by either. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3296. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is prohibited to contract shighar marriage. A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of "Abdullah b. 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) but with a slight variation of words. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3297. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is prohibited to contract shighar marriage. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) prohibited Shighar. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3298. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is prohibited to contract shighar marriage. Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as having said: There is no Shighar in Islam. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3299. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is prohibited to contract shighar marriage. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) prohibited Shighar. Ibn Numair added: Shighar means that a person should say to the other person: Give me the hand of your daughter in marriage and I will (in return) marry my daughter to you; or merry me your sister, and I will marry my sister to you. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3300. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is prohibited to contract shighar marriage. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Ibn Vmar with the same chain of transmitters, but there is no mention of Ibn Numair. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3301. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is prohibited to contract shighar marriage. Jabir b. Abdullah (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) prohibited Shighar. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3302. ------------------------------ Chapter : Fulfilling of condition in marriage. 'Uqba b. Amir (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The most worthy condition which must be fulfilled is that which makes sexual intercourse lawful. In the narration transmitted by Ibn Muthanna (instead of the word "condition") it is "conditions". Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3303. ------------------------------ Chapter : Seeking consent of al-Thayyib in marriage in words and of a virgin in (meaningful) silence. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as having said: A woman without a husband (or divorced or a widow) must not be married until she is consulted, and a virgin must not be married until her permission is sought. They asked the Prophet of Allah (may peace be upon him): How her (virgin's) consent can be solicited? He (the Holy Prophet) said: That she keeps silence. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3304. ------------------------------ Chapter : Seeking consent of al-Thayyib in marriage in words and of a virgin in (meaningful) silence. This hadith has been narrated through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3305. ------------------------------ Chapter : Seeking consent of al-Thayyib in marriage in words and of a virgin in (meaningful) silence. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: I asked Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) about a virgin whose marriage is solemnised by her guardian, whether it was necessary or not to consult her. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Yes, she must be consulted. 'Aisha reported: I told him that she feels shy, whereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Her silence implies her consent. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3306. ------------------------------ Chapter : Seeking consent of al-Thayyib in marriage in words and of a virgin in (meaningful) silence. Ibn 'Abbas (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: A woman without a husband has wore right to her person than her guardian, and a virgin's consent must be asked from her, and her silence implies her consent. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3307. ------------------------------ Chapter : Seeking consent of al-Thayyib in marriage in words and of a virgin in (meaningful) silence. Ibn Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: A woman who has been previously married (Thayyib) has more right to her person than her guardian. And a virgin should also be consulted, and her silence implies her consent. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3308. ------------------------------ Chapter : Seeking consent of al-Thayyib in marriage in words and of a virgin in (meaningful) silence. Sufyan reported on the basis of the same chain of transmitters (and the words are): A woman who has been previously married (Thayyib) has more right to her person than her guardian; and a virgin's father must ask her consent from her, her consent being her silence, At times he said: Her silence is her affirmation. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3309. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible for the father to give the hand of his daughter in marriage even when she is not fully grown up. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) married me when I was six years old, and I was admitted to his house at the age of nine. She further said: We went to Medina and I had an attack of fever for a month, and my hair had come down to the earlobes. Umm Ruman (my mother) came to me and I was at that time on a swing along with my playmates. She called me loudly and I went to her and I did not know what she had wanted of me. She took hold of my hand and took me to the door, and I was saying: Ha, ha (as if I was gasping), until the agitation of my heart was over. She took me to a house, where had gathered the women of the Ansar. They all blessed me and wished me good luck and said: May you have share in good. She (my mother) entrusted me to them. They washed my head and embellished me and nothing frightened me. Allah's Messenger (,may peace be upon him) came there in the morning, and I was entrusted to him. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3310. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible for the father to give the hand of his daughter in marriage even when she is not fully grown up. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) married me when I was six years old, and I was admitted to his house when I was nine years old. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3311. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible for the father to give the hand of his daughter in marriage even when she is not fully grown up. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) married her when she was seven years old, and he was taken to his house as a bride when she was nine, and her dolls were with her; and when he (the Holy Prophet) died she was eighteen years old. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3312. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of marrying or being married during the month of Shawwal and excellence of taking bride in the house during this month. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) contracted marriage with me in Shawwal and took me to his house as a bride during Shawwal. And who among the wives of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) was dearer to him than I, and' 'Aisha liked that the women (of her family) should enter the houses as brides during the month of Shawwal. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3313. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of marrying or being married during the month of Shawwal and excellence of taking bride in the house during this month. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Sufyan with the same chain of transmitters, but he made no mention of the act of 'Aisha (being admitted as a wife in the house of the Holy Prophet). Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3314. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to caste a glance at the face and the palms of a woman who one intends to marry. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported: I was in the company of Allah's Messenger (way peace be upon him) when there came a man and informed him that he had contracted to marry a woman of the Ansar. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Did you cast a glance at her? He said: No. He said: Go and cast a glance at her, for there is something in the eyes of the Ansar. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3315. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is permissible to caste a glance at the face and the palms of a woman who one intends to marry. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported: A man came to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and said: I have contracted marriage with a woman of the Ansar, whereupon Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: Did you cast a glance at her, for there is something in the eyes of the Ansar? He said: I did cast a glance at her, whereupon he said: For what (dower) did you marry her? He said: For four 'uqiyas. Thereupon Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: For four 'uqiyas; it seems as if you dig out silver from the side of this mountain (and that is why you are prepared to pay such a large amount of dower). We have nothing which we should give you. There is a possibility that we may send you to an (expedition) where you may get (booty). So he sent that man (in the expedition) which was despatched to Banu 'Abs. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3316. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dower. Sahl b. Sa'd al-Sa'idi (Allah be pleased with him) reported: A woman came to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and said: Messenger of Allah, I have come to you to entrust myself to you(you may contract my marriage with anyone at your discretion). Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) saw her and cast a glance at her from head to foot. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) then lowered his head. When the woman saw that he had made no decision in regard to her, she sat down. There stood up a person from amongst his companions and said: Messenger of Allah, marry her to me if you have no need of her. He (the Holy Prophet) said: is there anything with you (which you con give as a dower)? He said: No, Messenger of Allah, by Allah I have nothing. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Go to your people (family) and see if you can find something. He returned and said: I have found nothing. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) said: See even if it is an Iron ring. He went and returned and said: No, by God, not even an iron ring, but only this lower garment of mine (Sahl said that he had no upper garment), half of which (I am prepared to part with) for her. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: How can your lower garment serve your purpose, for it you wear it, she would not be able to make any use of it and if she wears it there would not be anything on you? The man sat down and as the sitting prolonged he stood up (in disappointment) and as he was going back Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) commanded (him) to be called back, and as he came, he said to him: Do you know any part of the Qur'an? He said: I know such and such surahs (and he counted them), whereupon he said: Can you recite them from heart (from your memory)? He said: Yes, whereupon he (Allah's Messenger) said: Go, I have given her to you in marriage for the part of the Qur'an which you know. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3317. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dower. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Sahl b. Sa'd with a minor alteration of words, but the hadith transmitted through Za'idah (the words are that the Holy Prophet) said: Go, I have married her to you, and you teach her something of the Qur'an. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3318. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dower. Abu Salama b. 'Abd al-Rahman reported: I asked 'Aisha, the wife of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him): What is the amount of dower of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him)?She said: It was twelve 'uqiyas and one nash. She said: Do you know what is al-nash? I said: No. She said: It is half of uqiya, and it amounts to five hundred dirhams, and that was the dower given by Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) to his wives. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3319. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dower. Anas b. Malik reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) saw the trace of yellowness on 'Abd al-Rahman b. 'Auf and said: What is this? Thereupon he said: Allah's Messenger, I have married a woman for a date-stone's weight of gold. He said: God bless you ! Hold a wedding feast, even if only with a sheep. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3320. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dower. Anas b. Malik (Allah be plca3ed with him) reported that 'Abd al-Rahman b. 'Auf (Allah be pleased with him) married during the lifetime of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) for a nawat weight of gold and the messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) said to him: Give a feast even with a sheep. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3321. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dower. Anas b. Malik (Allah be pleased with him) reported that 'Abd al-Rahman b. 'Auf (Allah be pleased with him) married a woman for a date-stone's weight of gold and Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said to him: Hold a wedding feast, even if only with a sheep. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3322. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dower. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Humaid with the same chain of transmitters except (with this minor alteration of words) that 'Abd al-Rahman said: "I married a woman." Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3323. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dower. Abd al-Rahman b. 'Auf (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) saw the signs of the happiness of wedding in me, and I said: I have married a woman of the Ansar. He said: How much Mahr have you paid? I said: For a date-stone weight of gold. And in the hadith transmitted by Ishaq (it is): (nawat weight) of gold. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3324. ------------------------------ Chapter : The dower. Anas b. Malik reported that 'Abd al-Rahman married a woman for a date-stone weight of gold. Shu'ba has narrated this hadith with the same chain of transmitters except for (this alteration) that he said that a person from among the sons of 'Abd al Rahman said: "from gold". Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3325. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of emancipating a slave-girl and then marrying her. Anas (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) set out on an expedition to Khaibar and we observed our morning prayer in early hours of the dawn. The Apostle of Allah (may peace be upon him) then mounted and so did Abu Talha ride, and I was seating myself behind Abu Talha. Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) moved in the narrow street of Khaibar (and we rode so close to each other in the street) that my knee touched the leg of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him). (A part of the) lower garment of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) slipped from his leg and I could see the whiteness of the leg of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him). As he entered the habitation he called: Allah-o-Akbar (Allah is the Greatest). Khaibar is ruined. And when we get down in the valley of a people evil is the morning of the warned ones. He repeated it thrice. In the meanwhile the people went out for their work, and said: By Allah, Muhammad (has come). Abd al-'Aziz or some of our companions said: Muhammad and the army (have come). He said: We took it (the territory of Khaibar) by force, and there were gathered the prisoners of war. There came Dihya and he said: Messenger of Allah, bestow upon me a girl one of the prisons. He said: Go and get any girl. He made a choice for Safiyya daughter of Huyayy (b. Akhtab). There came a person to Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and said: Apostle of Allah, you have bestowed Safiyya bint Huyayy, the chief of Quraiza and al-Nadir, upon Dihya and she is worthy of you only. He said: Call him along with her. So he came along with her. When Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) saw her he said: Take any other woman from among the prisoners. He (the narrator) said: He (the Holy Prophet) then granted her emancipation and married her. Thabit said to him: Abu Hamza, how much dower did he (the Holy Prophet) give to her? He said: He granted her freedom and then married her. On the way Umm Sulaim embellished her and then sent her to him (the Holy Prophet) at night. Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) appeared as a bridegroom in the morning. He (the Holy Prophet) said: He who has anything (to eat) should bring that. Then the cloth was spread. A person came with cheese, another came with dates, and still another came with refined butter, and they prepared hais and that was the wedding feast of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3326. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of emancipating a slave-girl and then marrying her. This hadith has been narrated through another chain of transmitters on the authority of Anas that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) emancipated Safiyya, and her emancipation was treated as her wedding gift, and in the hadith transmitted by Mu'adh on the authority of his father (the words are): "He (the Holy Prophet) married Safiyya and bestowed her emancipation as her wedding gift." Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3327. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of emancipating a slave-girl and then marrying her. Abu Musa reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said about one who emancipated a slave woman, and then married her, that for him there are two rewards. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3328. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of emancipating a slave-girl and then marrying her. Anas (Allah be pleased with him) reported: I was sitting behind Abu Talha on the Day of Khaibar and my feet touched the foot of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), and we came (to the people of Khaibar) when the sun had risen and they had driven out their cattle, and had themselves come out with their axes, large baskets and hatchets, and they said: (Here come) Muhammad and the army. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Khaibar is ruined. Verily when we get down in the valley of a people, evil is the morning of the warned ones (al-Qur'an, xxxvii. 177). Allah, the Majestic and the Glorious, defeated them (the inhabitants of Khaibar), and there fell to the lot of Dihya a beautiful girl, and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) got her in exchange of seven heads, and then entrusted her to Umm Sulaim so that she might embellish her and prepare her (for marriage) with him. He (the narrator) said: He had been under the impression that he had said that so that she might spend her period of 'Iddah in her (Umm Sulaim's) house. (The woman) was Safiyya daughter of Huyayy. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) arranged the wedding feast consisting of dates, cheese, and refined butter, and pits were dug and tiers were set in them dining cloths, and there was brought cheese and refined butter, and these were placed there. And the people ate to their fill, and they said: We do not know whether he (the Holy Prophet) had married her (as a free woman), or as a slave woman. They said: If he (the Holy Prophet) would make her wear the veil, then she would be a (free married) woman, and if he would not make her wear the veil, then she should be a slave woman. When he intended to ride, he made her wear the veil and she sat on the hind part of the camel; so they came to know that he had married her. As they approached Medina, Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) drove (his ride) quickly and so we did. 'Adba' (the name of Allah's Apostle's camel) stumbled and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) fell down and she (Radrat Safiyya: also fell down. He (the Holy Prophet) stood up and covered her; the woman looked towards her and said: May Allah keep away the Jewess! He (the narrator) said: I said: Aba Hamza, did Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) really fall down? He said: Yes, by Allah, he in fact fell down. Anas said: I also saw the wedding feast of Zainab, and he (the Holy Prophet) served bread and meat to the people, and made them eat to their heart's content, and he (the Holy Prophet) sent me to call people, and as he was free (from the ceremony) he stood up and I followed him. Two persons were left and they were busy in talking and did not get out (of the apartment). He (the Holy Prophet) then proceeded towards (the apartments of) his wives. He greeted with as-Salamu 'alaikum to every one of them and said: Members of the household, how are you? They said: Messenger of Allah, we are in good state 'How do you find your family? He would say: In good state. When he was free from (this work of exchanging greetings) he came back, and I also came back along with him. And as he reached the door, (he found) that the two men were still busy in talking. And when they saw him having returned, they stood up and went out; and by Allah! I do not know whether I had informed him, or there was a revelation to him (to the affect) that they had gone. He (the Holy Prophet) then came back and I also returned along with him, and as he put his step on the threshold of his door he hung a curtain between me and him, and (it was on this occasion) that Allah revealed this verse: ("O you who believe), do not enter the houses of the Prophet unless permission is given to 'you" (xxxiii. 53). Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3329. ------------------------------ Chapter : Excellence of emancipating a slave-girl and then marrying her. Anas,(Allah be pleased with him) reported: Safiyya (Allah be pleased with her) fell to the lot of Dihya in the spoils of war, and they praised her in the presence of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and said: We have not seen the like of her among the captives of war. He sent (a messenger) to Dihya and he gave him whatever he demanded. He then sent her to my mother and asked her to embellish her. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) then got out of Khaibar until when he was on the other side of it, he halted, and a tent was pitched for him. When it was morning Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: He who has surplus of provision with him should bring that to us. Some persons would bring the surplus of dates, and the other surplus of mush of barley until there became a heap of hais. They began to eat the hais and began to drink out of the pond which had the water of rainfall in it and which was situated by their side. Anas said that that constituted the wedding feast of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). He (further) said: We proceeded until we saw the walls of Medina, and we were delighted. We made our mounts run quickly and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) also made his mount run quickly. And Safiyya (Allah be pleased with her) was at his back, and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had seated her behind him. The camel of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) stumbled and he (the Holy Prophet) fell down and she also fell down. And none among the people was seeing him and her, until Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) stood up and he covered her, and we came to him and he said: We have received no injury. We entered Medina and there came out the young ladies of the household. They saw her (Hadrat Safiyya) and blamed her for falling down. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3330. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the marriage of Zainab bint Jahsh with the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) and verses pertaining to purdah veil). Anas (Allah be pleased with him) reported: When the 'Iddah of Zainab was over, Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said to Zaid to make a mention to her about him. Zaid went on until he came to her and she was fermenting her flour. He (Zaid) said: As I saw her I felt in my heart an idea of her greatness so much so that I could not see towards her (simply for the fact) that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had made a mention of her. So I turned my back towards her and I turned upon my heels, and said: Zainab, Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) has sent (me) with a message to you. She said: I do not do anything until I solicit the will of my Lord. So she stood at her place of worship and the (verse of) the Qur'an (pertaining to her marriage) were revealed, and Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came to her without permission. He (the narrator) said: I saw that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) served us bread and meat until it was broad day light and the people went away, but some persons who were busy in conversation stayed on in the house after the meal. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) also went out and I also followed him, and he began to visit the apartments of his wives greeting them (with the words): As-Salamu 'alaikum, and they would say: Allah's Messenger, how did you find your family (Hadrat Zainab)? He (the narrator) stated: I do not know whether I had informed him that the people had gone out or he (the Holy Prophet) informed me (about that). He moved on until he entered the apartment, and I also went and wanted to enter (the apartment) along with him, but he threw a curtain between me and him, as (the verses pertaining to seclusion) had been revealed, and people were instructed in what they had been instructed. Ibn Rafii had made this addition in his narration: "O you who believe, enter not the houses of the Prophet unless permission is given to you for a meal, not waiting for its cooking being finished..." to the words "...Allah forbears not from the truth." Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3331. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the marriage of Zainab bint Jahsh with the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) and verses pertaining to purdah veil). Anas (Allah be pleased with him) reported: I did not see Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) giving a wedding feast (on the marriage) of any one (of his wives) as he did in the case of (his marriage with) Zainab, for then he sacrificed a goat (on this occasion). Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3332. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the marriage of Zainab bint Jahsh with the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) and verses pertaining to purdah veil). Anas b. Malik (Allah be pleased with him) reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) gave no better wedding feast than the one he did (on the occasion of his marriage with) Zainab. Thabit al-Bunani (one of the narrators) said: What did he serve in the wedding feast? He (Anas) said: He fed them bread and meat (so lavishly) that they (the guests) abandoned it (of their own accord after having taken them to their hearts' content). Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3333. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the marriage of Zainab bint Jahsh with the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) and verses pertaining to purdah veil). Anas b. Malik (Allah be pleased with him) reported: When Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) married Zainab bint jahsh, he invited people (to the wedding feast) and they ate food. They then sat there and entered into conversation. He (the Holy Prophet) made a stir as if he was preparing to stand up, but (the persons busy in talking) did not stand up. When he (the Holy Prophet) saw it, he stood up and when he did so, some other persons stood up. 'Asim and Abd al-A'la in their narrations made this addition: Three (persons) sat there, and Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) came there to enter (the apartment) but he found the people sitting there. Then they stood up and went away. He said: Then I came and informed Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) that they had gone away. He (the Holy Prophet) then came there until he entered (the apartment). I also went and was about to enter, when he hung a curtain between me and him (and it was on this occasion that) Allah, the Exalted and Majestic, revealed this verse: "O you who believe, enter not the houses of the Prophet unless permission is given to you for a meal, not waiting for its cooking being finished to the (words) "Surely this is serious in the sight of Allah" (xxxiii. 53). Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3334. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the marriage of Zainab bint Jahsh with the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) and verses pertaining to purdah veil). Anas b. Malik (Allah be pleased with him) reported: I was the best informed among the people pertaining to Hijab (veil and seclusion). Ubayy b. Ka'b used to ask me about it. Anas (Allah be pleased with him) thus narrated: The Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) got up in the morning as a bridegroom of Zainab bint jahsh (Allah be pleased with her) as he had married her at Medina. He invited people to the wedding feast after the day had well risen. There sat Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and there kept sitting along with him some persons after the people had stood up (for departure); then Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) stood up and walked on and I also walked along with him until he reached the door of the apartment of 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her). He then thought that they (those who had been sitting there after meal) had gone away. So he returned and I also returned with him, but they were still sitting at their places. So he returned for the second time and I also returned until he reached the apartment of 'Aisha. He again returned and I also returned and they had (by that time) stood up, and he hung a curtain between me and him (at the door of the apartment of Hadrat Zainab, where he had to stay), and Allah revealed the verse pertaining to veil. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3335. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the marriage of Zainab bint Jahsh with the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) and verses pertaining to purdah veil). Anas b. Malik (Allah be pleased with him) reported: Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) contracted marriage and he went to his wife. My mother Umm Sulaim prepared hais and placed it in an earthen vessel and said: Anas, take it to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and say: My mother has sent that to you and she offers greetings to you, and says that it is a humble gift for you on our behalf, Messenger of Allah. So I went along with it to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and said: My mother offers you salutations, and says that it is a humble gift for you on our behalf. He said: Place it here, and then said: Go and invite on my behalf so and so and anyone whom you meet, and he even named some persons. He (Anas) said: I invited whom he had named and whom I met. I (one of the narrators) said: I said to Anas: How many (persons) were there? He (Anas) said: They were about three hundred persons. Then Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) (said to me): Anas, bring that earthen vessel. They (the guests) then began to enter until the courtyard and the apartment were fully packed. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Make a circle of ten (guests), and every person should eat from that nearest to him. They began to eat, until they ate to their fill. A group went out (after eating the food), and another group came in until all of them had eaten. He (the Holy Prophet) said to me: Anas, lift it (the earthen vessel), so I lifted it, but I could not assess whether it had more (food) when I placed it (before Allah's Messenger) or when I lifted it (after the people had been served out of it). A group among them (the guests) began to talk in the house of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and the Messenger of Allah (may peace be upon him) was sitting and his wife had been sitting with her face turned towards the wall. It was troublesome for Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), so Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) went out and greeted his wives. He then returned. When they (the guests) saw that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had returned they thought that it (their overstay) was something troublesome for him. He (the narrator) said: They hastened towards the door and all of them went out. And there came Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and he hung a curtain and went in, and I was sitting in his apartment and he did not stay but for a short while. He then came to me and these verses were revealed. Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) came out and recited them to the people: "O you who believe, enter not the houses of the Prophet unless permission is given to you for a meal, not waiting for its cooking being finished-but when you are invited, enter, and when you have taken food, disperse not seeking to listen to talk. Surely this gives the Prophet trouble", to the end of verse (xxxiii. 53). (Al-Ja'd said that Anas [b.Malik] stated: I am the first amongst the people to hear these verses), and henceforth the wives of the Apostle (may peace be upon him) began to observe seclusion (al-hijab). Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3336. ------------------------------ Chapter : Pertaining to the marriage of Zainab bint Jahsh with the Holy Prophet (may peace be upon him) and verses pertaining to purdah veil). Anas (Allah be pleased with him) reported: When Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) contracted marriage with Zainab (Allah be pleased with bet), Umm Sulaim sent him hats in a vessel of stone as a gift. Anas stated that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said to him: Go and invite on my behalf all the Muslims whom you meet. So I invited on his behalf everyone whom I met. They entered (his house) and they ate and went out. And Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) had kept his hand on the food, and he invoked blessing on that, and said whatever Allah wished him to say, and none whom I met was left uninvited. They ate to their fill and went out, but a group among them remained there and was engaged in lengthy discussion. Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) felt shy of saying them anything. So he went out and left them in his house and Allah the Great and Majestic revealed this verse: "O you who believe, enter not the houses of the Prophet unless permission is given to you for a meal, not waiting for its cooking being finished." Qatada (instead of using the word Ghaira Nazirina) used the word Ghaira Mutahayyinina (i.e. not waiting for the time of the food). But when you are invited, enter... up to this verse. This is purer for your hearts and their hearts. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3337. ------------------------------ Chapter : When one is invited to a wedding feast, one should accept it. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: When any one of you is invited to a feast, he should attend it. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3338. ------------------------------ Chapter : When one is invited to a wedding feast, one should accept it. Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: When any one of you is invited to a feast, he should accept. 'Ubaidallah took this feast to be a wedding feast. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3339. ------------------------------ Chapter : When one is invited to a wedding feast, one should accept it. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) having said this: When any one of you is invited to a wedding feast, he should accept that. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3340. ------------------------------ Chapter : When one is invited to a wedding feast, one should accept it. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported Allah's Messenger (may be upon him) having said this: Accept the feast, when you are invited. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3341. ------------------------------ Chapter : When one is invited to a wedding feast, one should accept it. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: When any one of you invites his brother, he (the latter) should accept his wedding feast, or any other like it. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3342. ------------------------------ Chapter : When one is invited to a wedding feast, one should accept it. Ibn 'Umar (Allah be pleated with them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) having said: He who is invited to a wedding feast or like it, he should accept it. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3343. ------------------------------ Chapter : When one is invited to a wedding feast, one should accept it. "Abdullah b. Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: Come to the feast, when you are invited. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3344. ------------------------------ Chapter : When one is invited to a wedding feast, one should accept it. Nafil reported: I heard Abdullah b. Umar (Allah be pleased with them) narrating that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: Accept the feast when you are invited to it. And Abdullah (b. Umar) used to come to the feast, whether it was a wedding feast or other than that, and he would come there even in the state of fasting. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3345. ------------------------------ Chapter : When one is invited to a wedding feast, one should accept it. Ibn Umar (Allah be pleased with them) reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) having said: When you are invited to a feast (even though it is) the leg of the sheep, you should accept it. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3346. ------------------------------ Chapter : When one is invited to a wedding feast, one should accept it. Jabir (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace he upon him) said: When any one of you is invited to a feast, he should accept it. He may eat if he likes, or he may abandon (eating) if he likes. Ibn Mathanni did not make mention of the word "feast". Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3347. ------------------------------ Chapter : When one is invited to a wedding feast, one should accept it. A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of Abd Zubair with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3348. ------------------------------ Chapter : When one is invited to a wedding feast, one should accept it. Abu Haraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: If any one of you is invited, he should accept (the invitation). In case he is fasting, he should pray (in order to bless the inmates of the house), and if he is not fasting he should eat. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3349. ------------------------------ Chapter : When one is invited to a wedding feast, one should accept it. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) used to say: The worst kind of food is the wedding feast to which the rich are invited and the poor are ignored. He who does not come to the feast, he in fact disobeys Allah and His Messenger (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3350. ------------------------------ Chapter : When one is invited to a wedding feast, one should accept it. Sufyan reported: I said to Zuhri: Abu Bakr, what does this hadith mean: "The worst kind of food is at a wedding feast of the rich"? He laughed and said: The food served in the feast given by the rich is not worst (in itself). Sufyan said: My father was rich, so I felt disturbed when I heard this hadith, so I asked Zuhri who said: I heard from 'Abd al-Rahman al-Alraj that he heard Abu Huraira (Allah he pleased with him) say: The worst kind of food is that served at the wedding feast. The rest of the hadith is the same. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3351. ------------------------------ Chapter : When one is invited to a wedding feast, one should accept it. This hadith has been narrated on the authority of Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3352. ------------------------------ Chapter : When one is invited to a wedding feast, one should accept it. A hadith like this has been narrated by Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) through another chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3353. ------------------------------ Chapter : When one is invited to a wedding feast, one should accept it. Abu Haraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying. The worst kind of food is at the wedding feast from which one who comes is turned away, and he who refuses it is invited, and he who did not accept the invitation disobeyed Allah and His Messenger (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3354. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is not permissible to marry a woman who it divorced by three pronouncements until she is married to another, man and he has a sexual intercourse with her, and then he abandons her and she completes her 'Idda. 'Aisha (Allah he pleased with her) reported: There came the wife of Rifa'a to Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) and said: I was married to Rifa'a but he divorced me, making may divorce irrevocable. Afterwards I married Abd al-Rahman b. al-Zubair, but all he possesses is like the fringe of a garment (i.e. he is sexually weak). Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) smiled, and said: Do you wish to return to Rifa'a. (You) cannot (do it) until you have tasted his sweetness and he ('Abd al-Rahman) has tasted your sweetness. Abu Bakr was at that time near him (the Holy Prophet) and Khalid (b. Sa'id) was at the door waiting for the permission to be granted to him to enter), He (Khalid) said; Abu Bakr, do you hear what she is saying loudly in the presence of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him)? Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3355. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is not permissible to marry a woman who it divorced by three pronouncements until she is married to another, man and he has a sexual intercourse with her, and then he abandons her and she completes her 'Idda. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her), the wife of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him), reported that Rifa'a al-Quraid (Allah be pleased with him) divorced his wife, making her divorce irrevocable. Afterwards she married Abd at-Rahman b. al-Zubair (Allah be pleased with him), She came to Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him and said to Allah's messenger (may peace be upon him) that she had been the wife of Rifa'a (Allah be pleased with him) and he had divorced her by three pronouncements and afterwards she married 'Abd al-Rahman b. al-Zubair. By Allah, all he possesses is like the fringe of a garment, and she took hold of the fringe of her garment. Thereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) laughed and said: Perhaps you wish to return to Rifa'a, (but you) cannot (do it) until he has tasted your sweetness and you have tasted his sweetness. Abu Bakr al-siddiq (Allah be pleased with him) was sitting at that time with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and Khalid b. Sa'id b. al-'As (Allah be pleased with him) was sitting at the door of his apartment and he was not permitted to (enter the room), and Kbalid called loudly saying: Abu Bakr, why don't you scold her for what she is saying loudly in the presence of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him)? Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3356. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is not permissible to marry a woman who it divorced by three pronouncements until she is married to another, man and he has a sexual intercourse with her, and then he abandons her and she completes her 'Idda. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that Rifa'a al Qurazi divorced his wife and afterwards Abd al-Rahman b. al-Zubair married her. She came to Allah's Apostle (may peace he upon him) and said: Messenger of Allah, Rifa'a has divorced me by three pronouncements. (The rest of the hadith is the same.) Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3357. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is not permissible to marry a woman who it divorced by three pronouncements until she is married to another, man and he has a sexual intercourse with her, and then he abandons her and she completes her 'Idda. 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) was asked about a woman whom a man married and then divorced her, and then she married (another) person, and she was divorced before sexual intercourse with her, whether it was lawful for her first husband (to marry her in this state). He (the Holy Prophet) said: No, until he has tasted her sweetness. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3358. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is not permissible to marry a woman who it divorced by three pronouncements until she is married to another, man and he has a sexual intercourse with her, and then he abandons her and she completes her 'Idda. A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of Hisham with the same chain of transmitters. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3359. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is not permissible to marry a woman who it divorced by three pronouncements until she is married to another, man and he has a sexual intercourse with her, and then he abandons her and she completes her 'Idda. 'A'Asha (Allah be pleased with her) reported: A person divorced his wife by three pronouncements; then another person married her and he also divorced her without having sexual intercourse with her. Then the first husband of her intended to remarry her. It was about such a case that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) was asked, whereupon he said: No, until the second one has tasted her sweetness as the first one had tasted. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3360. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is not permissible to marry a woman who it divorced by three pronouncements until she is married to another, man and he has a sexual intercourse with her, and then he abandons her and she completes her 'Idda. A hadith like this has been narrated on the same chain of transmitters by 'Aisha (Allah be pleased with her). Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3361. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be supplicated at the time of sexual intercourse. Ibn "Abbas (Allah be pleased with them) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: If anyone amongst you intends to go to his wife he should say: In the name of Allah, O Allah protect us against Satan and keep away the Satan from the one that you have bestowed upon us, and if He has ordained a male child for them, Satan will never be able to do any harm to him. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3362. ------------------------------ Chapter : What is to be supplicated at the time of sexual intercourse. This hadith is narrated through another chain of transmitters and there is no mention of (the words) "Bismillah" (In the name of Allah) in it. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3363. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of having sexual intercourse with one's wife from the front or from behind avoiding the anus. Jabir (Allah be pleased with him) declared that the Jews used to say: When a man has intercourse with his wife through the vagina but being on her back, the child will have squint, so the verse came down: "Your wives are your tilth; go then unto your tilth as you may desire"(ii. 223) Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3364. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of having sexual intercourse with one's wife from the front or from behind avoiding the anus. Jabir (b. Abdullah) (Allah be pleased with him) reported that the Jews used to say that when one comes to one's wife through the vagina, but being on her back, and she becomes pregnant, the child has a squint. So the verse came down: "Your wives are your tilth; go then unto your tilth, as you may desire." Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3365. ------------------------------ Chapter : Permissibility of having sexual intercourse with one's wife from the front or from behind avoiding the anus. This hadith has been reported on the authority of Jabir through another chain of transmitters, but in the hadith transmitted on the authority of Zuhri there is an addition (of these words): "If he likes he may (have intercourse) being on the back or in front of her, but it should be through one opening (vagina)." Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3366. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is not permissible for a woman to abandon the bed of her husband. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) said: When a woman spends the night away from the bed of her husband, the angels curse her until morning. This hadith has been narrated through the same chain of transmitters (with a slight variation): "He said: Until she comes back." Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3367. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is not permissible for a woman to abandon the bed of her husband. Abu Huraira (Allah be pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: By Him in Whose Hand is my life, when a man calls his wife to his bed, and she does not respond, the One Who is in the heaven is displeased with her until he (her husband) is pleased with her. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3368. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is not permissible for a woman to abandon the bed of her husband. Abu Huraira (Allah he pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may, peace be upon him) as saying: When a man invites his wife to his bed and she does not come, and he (the husband) spends the sight being angry with her, the angels curse her until morning. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3369. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to divulge the secret of the woman. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri (Allah he pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him)said: The most wicked among the people in the eye of Allah on the Day of judgment is the men who goes to his wife and she comes to him, and then he divulges her secret. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3370. ------------------------------ Chapter : It is forbidden to divulge the secret of the woman. Abu Sirma al-Khudri (Allah he pleased with him) reported Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) as saying: The most important of the trusts in the sight of Allah on the Day of judgment is that a man goes to his wife and she goes to him (and the breach of this trust is) that he should divulge her secret Ibn Numair narrates this hadith with a slight change of wording. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3371. ------------------------------ Chapter : Al-Azl (incomplete sexual intercourse): Coitus Interruptus. Abu Sirma said to Abu Sa'id al Khadri (Allah he pleased with him): O Abu Sa'id, did you hear Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) mentioning al-'azl? He said: Yes, and added: We went out with Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) on the expedition to the Bi'l-Mustaliq and took captive some excellent Arab women; and we desired them, for we were suffering from the absence of our wives, (but at the same time) we also desired ransom for them. So we decided to have sexual intercourse with them but by observing 'azl (Withdrawing the male sexual organ before emission of semen to avoid conception). But we said: We are doing an act whereas Allah's Messenger is amongst us; why not ask him? So we asked Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), and he said: It does not matter if you do not do it, for every soul that is to be born up to the Day of Resurrection will be born. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3372. ------------------------------ Chapter : Al-Azl (incomplete sexual intercourse): Coitus Interruptus. A hadith like this has been narrated on the authority of Habban with the same chain of transmitters (but with this alteration) that he said: "Allah has ordained whom he has to create until the Day of judgment." Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3373. ------------------------------ Chapter : Al-Azl (incomplete sexual intercourse): Coitus Interruptus. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri (Allah be pleased with him) reported: We took women captives, and we wanted to do 'azl with them. We then asked Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) about it, and he said to us: Verily you do it, verily you do it, verily you do it, but the soul which has to be born until the Day of judgment must be born. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3374. ------------------------------ Chapter : Al-Azl (incomplete sexual intercourse): Coitus Interruptus. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri (Allah be pleased with him) (was asked if he had heard it himself), to which he said: Yes. (I heard) Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) as saying: There is no harm if you do not practise it, for it (the birth of the child) is something ordained (by Allah). Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3375. ------------------------------ Chapter : Al-Azl (incomplete sexual intercourse): Coitus Interruptus. This hadith is reported on the authority of Abu Sa'id with the same chain of transmitters but with a slight variation (of words). Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3376. ------------------------------ Chapter : Al-Azl (incomplete sexual intercourse): Coitus Interruptus. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) was asked about 'azl, whereupon he said: There is no harm if you do not do that, for it (the birth of the child) is something ordained. Muhammad (one of the narrators) said: (The words) La 'alaykum (there is no harm) implies its Prohibition. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3377. ------------------------------ Chapter : Al-Azl (incomplete sexual intercourse): Coitus Interruptus. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri (Allah be pleased with him) reported that mention was made of 'azl in the presence of Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) whereupon he said: Why do you practise it? They said: There is a man whose wife has to suckle the child, and if that person has a sexual intercourse with her (she may conceive) which he does not like, and there is another person who has a slave-girl and he has a sexual intercourse with her, but he does not like her to have conception so that she may not become Umm Walad, whereupon he (the Holy Prophet) said: There is no harm if you do not do that, for that (the birth of the child) is something preordained. Ibn 'Aun said: I made a mention of this hadith to Hasan, and he said: By Allah, (it seems) as if there is upbraiding in it (for 'azl). Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3378. ------------------------------ Chapter : Al-Azl (incomplete sexual intercourse): Coitus Interruptus. Ibn 'Aun reported: I reported to Muhammad on the authority of Ibrahim the hadith reported by 'Abd al-Rahmann b. Bishr (the hadith concerning 'azl), whereupon he said: That (hadith) Abd al-Rahman b. Bishr had narrated to me (also). Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3379. ------------------------------ Chapter : Al-Azl (incomplete sexual intercourse): Coitus Interruptus. Ma'bad b. Sirin said to Abu Sa'id (Allah be pleased with him): Did you hear Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) making a mention of something in regard to al-'azl? Thereupon he said: Yes. The rest (of the hadith is the same) Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3380. ------------------------------ Chapter : Al-Azl (incomplete sexual intercourse): Coitus Interruptus. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri (Allah be pleased with him) reported: Mention was made about al-'azl in the presence of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him), whereupon he said: Why any one of you practises it? (He did not say: One of you should not do it), for there is no created soul, whose creator is not Allah. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3381. ------------------------------ Chapter : Al-Azl (incomplete sexual intercourse): Coitus Interruptus. Abu Sa'id al-Khudri (Allah be pleased with him) reported that Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) was asked about 'azl, whereupon he said: The child does not come from all the liquid (semen) and when Allah intends to create anything nothing can prevent it (from coming into existence). Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3382. ------------------------------ Chapter : Al-Azl (incomplete sexual intercourse): Coitus Interruptus. A hadith like this has been transmitted by Abu Sa'id from Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3383. ------------------------------ Chapter : Al-Azl (incomplete sexual intercourse): Coitus Interruptus. Jabir (Allah be pleased with him) reported that a man came to Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) and said: I have a slave-girl who is our servant and she carries water for us and I have intercourse with her, but I do not want her to conceive. He said: Practise 'azl, if you so like, but what is decreed for her will come to her. The person stayed back (for some time) and then came and said: The girl has become pregnant, whereupon he said: I told you what was decreed for her would come to her. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3384. ------------------------------ Chapter : Al-Azl (incomplete sexual intercourse): Coitus Interruptus. Jabir b. 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with them) reported that a person asked Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him) saying: I have a slave-girl and I practise 'azl with her, whereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: This cannot prevent that which Allah has decreed. The person then came (after some time) and said: Messenger of Allah, the slave-girl about whom I talked to you has conceived, whereupon Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him) said: I am the servant of Allah and His Messenger. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3385. ------------------------------ Chapter : Al-Azl (incomplete sexual intercourse): Coitus Interruptus. Jabir b. 'Abdullah (Allah be pleased with them) reported: A person came to Allah's Apostle (the rest of the hadith is the same). Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3386. ------------------------------ Chapter : Al-Azl (incomplete sexual intercourse): Coitus Interruptus. Jabir (Allah be pleased with him) reported: We used to practise 'azl while the Qur'an was revealed (during the days when the Holy Prophet was alive). Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3387. ------------------------------ Chapter : Al-Azl (incomplete sexual intercourse): Coitus Interruptus. Jabir (Allah be pleased with him) reported: We used to practise 'azl during the life of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3388. ------------------------------ Chapter : Al-Azl (incomplete sexual intercourse): Coitus Interruptus. Jabir (Allah be pleased with him) reported: We used to practise 'azl during the lifetime of Allah's Messenger (may peace be upon him). This (the news of this practise) reached Allah's Apostle (may peace be upon him), and he did not forbid us. Muslim Book 008, Hadith Number 3389. ------------------------------ Chapter